summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/50328-0.txt16410
-rw-r--r--old/50328-0.zipbin336467 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50328-h.zipbin392136 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50328-h/50328-h.htm20669
-rw-r--r--old/50328-h/images/cover.jpgbin23263 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 37079 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..3d0a8b0
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #50328 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/50328)
diff --git a/old/50328-0.txt b/old/50328-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index d81e64f..0000000
--- a/old/50328-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,16410 +0,0 @@
-Project Gutenberg's The Eve of the Reformation, by Francis Aidan Gasquet
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: The Eve of the Reformation
- Studies in the Religious Life and Thought of the English
- people in the Period Preceding the Rejection of the Roman
- jurisdiction by Henry VIII
-
-Author: Francis Aidan Gasquet
-
-Release Date: October 27, 2015 [EBook #50328]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE EVE OF THE REFORMATION ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Clarity and the Online Distributed Proofreading
-Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from
-images generously made available by The Internet
-Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-THE EVE OF THE REFORMATION
-
-FRANCIS AIDAN GASQUET, D.D., O.S.B.
-
-
-
-
- THE EVE OF THE
- REFORMATION
-
- STUDIES IN THE
- RELIGIOUS LIFE AND THOUGHT OF THE ENGLISH
- PEOPLE IN THE PERIOD PRECEDING THE
- REJECTION OF THE ROMAN JURISDICTION
- BY HENRY VIII
-
- BY
-
- FRANCIS AIDAN GASQUET, D.D., O.S.B.
-
- AUTHOR OF
- “HENRY VIII. AND THE ENGLISH MONASTERIES,” ETC.
-
- LONDON
- JOHN C. NIMMO
- 14 KING WILLIAM STREET, STRAND
- MDCCCC
-
- Printed by BALLANTYNE, HANSON & CO.
- At the Ballantyne Press.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- CHAP. PAGE
-
- I. INTRODUCTION 1
-
- II. THE REVIVAL OF LETTERS IN ENGLAND 14
-
- III. THE TWO JURISDICTIONS 51
-
- IV. ENGLAND AND THE POPE 78
-
- V. CLERGY AND LAITY 114
-
- VI. ERASMUS 155
-
- VII. THE LUTHERAN INVASION 208
-
- VIII. THE PRINTED ENGLISH BIBLE 236
-
- IX. TEACHING AND PREACHING 278
-
- X. PARISH LIFE IN CATHOLIC ENGLAND 323
-
- XI. PRE-REFORMATION GUILD LIFE 351
-
- XII. MEDIÆVAL WILLS, CHANTRIES, AND OBITS 387
-
- XIII. PILGRIMAGES AND RELICS 415
-
-
-
-
-THE EVE OF THE REFORMATION
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-INTRODUCTION
-
-
-The English Reformation presents a variety of problems to the student
-of history. Amongst them not the least difficult or important is the
-general question, How are we to account for the sudden beginning and
-the ultimate success of a movement which, apparently at least, was
-opposed to the religious convictions and feelings of the nation at
-large? To explain away the difficulty, we are asked by some writers to
-believe that the religious revolution, although perhaps unrecognised
-at the moment when the storm first burst, had long been inevitable,
-and indeed that its issue had been foreseen by the most learned and
-capable men in England. To some, it appears that the Church, on the
-eve of the Reformation, had long lost its hold on the intelligence and
-affection of the English people. Discontented with the powers claimed
-by the ecclesiastical authority, and secretly disaffected to much of
-the mediæval teaching of religious truth and to many of the traditional
-religious ordinances, the laity were, it is suggested, only too eager
-to seize upon the first opportunity of emancipating themselves from
-a thraldom which in practice had become intolerable. An increase of
-knowledge, too, it is supposed, had inevitably led men to view as false
-and superstitious many of the practices of religion which had been
-acquiesced in and followed without doubt or question in earlier and
-more simple days. Men, with the increasing light, had come to see, in
-the support given to these practices by the clergy, a determination to
-keep people at large in ignorance, and to make capital out of many of
-these objectionable features of mediæval worship.
-
-Moreover, such writers assume that in reality there was little or no
-practical religion among the mass of the people for some considerable
-time before the outbreak of the religious difficulties in the sixteenth
-century. According to their reading of the facts, the nation, as
-such, had long lost its interest in the religion of its forefathers.
-Receiving no instruction in faith and morals worthy of the name, they
-had been allowed by the neglect of the clergy to grow up in ignorance
-of the teachings, and in complete neglect of the duties, of their
-religion. Ecclesiastics generally, secular as well as religious, had,
-it is suggested, forfeited the respect and esteem of the laity by
-their evil and mercenary lives; whilst, imagining that the surest way
-to preserve the remnants of their former power was to keep the people
-ignorant, they had opposed the literary revival of the fifteenth
-century by every means at their command. In a word, the picture of
-the pre-Reformation Church ordinarily drawn for us is that of a
-system honeycombed with disaffection and unbelief, the natural and
-necessary outcome of an attempt to maintain at all hazards an effete
-ecclesiastical organisation, which clung with the tenacity of despair
-to doctrines and observances which the world at large had ceased to
-accept as true, or to observe as any part of its reasonable service.
-
-In view of these and similar assertions, it is of interest and
-importance to ascertain, if possible, what really was the position
-of the Church in the eyes of the nation at large on the eve of the
-Reformation, to understand the attitude of men’s minds to the system
-as they knew it, and to discover, as far as may be, what in regard
-to religion they were doing and saying and thinking about, when the
-change came upon them. It is precisely this information which it has
-hitherto been difficult to get, and the present work is designed to
-supply some evidence on these matters. It does not pretend in any sense
-to be a history of the English Reformation, to give any consecutive
-narrative of the religious movements in this country during the
-sixteenth century, or to furnish an adequate account of the causes
-which led up to them. The volume in reality presents to the reader
-merely a series of separate studies which, whilst joined together by a
-certain connecting thread, must not be taken as claiming to present any
-complete picture of the period immediately preceding the Reformation,
-still less of that movement itself.
-
-This is intentional. Those who know most about this portion of our
-national history will best understand how impossible it is as yet for
-any one, however well informed, to write the history of the Reformation
-itself or to draw for us any detailed and accurate picture of the age
-that went before that great event, and is supposed by some to have
-led up to it. The student of this great social and religious movement
-must at present be content to address himself to the necessary work of
-sifting and examining the many new sources of information which the
-researches of late years have opened out to the inquirer. For example,
-what a vast field of work is not supplied by the _Calendar of Papers,
-Foreign and Domestic, of the Reign of Henry VIII._ alone! In many
-ways this monumental work may well be considered one of the greatest
-literary achievements of the age. It furnishes the student of this
-portion of our national history with a vast catalogue of material,
-all of which must be examined, weighed, and arranged, before it is
-possible to pass a judgment upon the great religious revolution of
-the sixteenth century. And, though obviously affording grounds for a
-reconsideration of many of the conclusions previously formed in regard
-to this perplexing period, it must in no sense be regarded as even an
-exhaustive calendar of the available material. Rolls, records, and
-documents of all kinds exist in public and private archives, which are
-not included in these State Papers, but which are equally necessary
-for the formation of a sound and reliable opinion on the whole story.
-Besides this vast mass of material, the entire literature of the period
-demands careful examination, as it must clearly throw great light on
-the tone and temper of men’s minds, and reveal the origin and growth of
-popular views and opinions.
-
-Writers, such as Burnet, for example, and others, have indeed presented
-their readers with the story of the Reformation as a whole, and have
-not hesitated to set out at length, and with assurance, the causes
-which led up to that event. Whether true or false, they have made their
-synthesis, and taking a comprehensive view of the entire subject,
-they have rendered their story more plausible by the unity of idea
-it was designed to illustrate and confirm. The real value of such a
-synthesis, however, must of course entirely depend on the data upon
-which it rests. The opening up of new sources of information and the
-examination of old sources in the critical spirit now demanded in all
-historical investigations have fully proved, however, not merely this
-or that fact to be wrong, but that whole lines of argument are without
-justification, and general deductions without reasonable basis. In
-other words, the old synthesis has been founded upon false facts and
-false inferences.
-
-Whilst, however, seeing that the old story of the Reformation in
-England is wrong on some of the main lines upon which it depended,
-it is for reasons just stated impossible at present to substitute a
-new synthesis for the old. However unsatisfactory it may appear to be
-reduced to the analysis of sources and the examination of details,
-nothing more can safely be attempted at the present time. A general
-view cannot be taken until the items that compose it have been proved
-and tested and found correct. Till such time a provisional appreciation
-at best of the general subject is alone possible. The present volume
-then is occupied solely with some details, and I have endeavoured
-mainly by an examination of the literature of the period in question
-to gather some evidence of the mental attitude of the English people
-towards the religious system which prevailed before the rejection of
-the Roman jurisdiction by Henry VIII.
-
-In regard to the general question, one or two observations may be
-premised.
-
-At the outset it may be allowed that in many things there was need
-of reform in its truest sense. This was recognised by the best and
-most staunch sons of Holy Church; and the Council of Trent itself,
-when we read its decrees and measure its language, is sufficient
-proof that by the highest authorities it was acknowledged that every
-effort must be made to purify the Church from abuses, superstitions,
-and scandals which, in the course of the long ages of its existence,
-had sprung from its contact with the world and through the human
-weaknesses of its rulers and ministers. In reality, however, the
-movement for reform did not in any way begin with Trent, nor was it
-the mere outcome of a terror inspired by the wholesale defection of
-nations under the influence of the Lutheran Reformation. The need had
-long been acknowledged by the best and most devoted sons of the Church.
-There were those, whom M. Eugène Müntz has designated the “morose
-cardinals,” who saw whither things were tending, and strove to the
-utmost of their power to avert the impending catastrophe. As Janssen
-has pointed out, in the middle of the fifteenth century, for instance,
-Nicholas of Cusa initiated reforms in Germany, with the approval--if
-not by the positive injunctions--of the Pope. It was, however, a true
-reform, a reform founded on the principle “not of destruction, but of
-purification and renewal.” Holding that “it was not for men to change
-what was holy; but for the holy to change man,” he began by reforming
-himself and preaching by example. He restored discipline and eagerly
-welcomed the revival of learning and the invention of printing as the
-most powerful auxiliaries of true religion. His projects of general
-ecclesiastical reforms presented to Pius II. are admirable. Without
-wishing to touch the organisation of the Church, he desired full and
-drastic measures of “reformation in head and members.” But all this was
-entirely different from the spirit and aim of those who attacked the
-Church under the leadership of Luther and his followers. Their object
-was not the reform and purification of abuses, but the destruction and
-overthrow of the existing religious system. Before, say, 1517 or even
-1521, no one at this period ever dreamt of wishing to change the basis
-of the Christian religion, as it was then understood. The most earnest
-and zealous sons of the Church never hesitated to attack this or that
-abuse, and to point out this or that spot, desiring to make the edifice
-of God’s Church, as they understood it, more solid, more useful, and
-more like Christ’s ideal. They never dreamt that their work could
-undermine the edifice, much less were their aims directed to pulling
-down the walls and digging up the foundations; such a possibility was
-altogether foreign to their conception of the essential constitution of
-Christ’s Church. To suggest that men like Colet, More, and Erasmus had
-any leaning to, or sympathy with, “the Reformation” as we know it, is,
-in view of what they have written, absolutely false and misleading.
-
-The fact is, that round the true history of the Reformation movement in
-England, there has grown up, as Janssen has shown had been the case in
-Germany, a mass of legend from which it is often difficult enough to
-disentangle the truth. It has been suggested, for instance, that the
-period which preceded the advent of the new religious ideas was, to
-say the least, a period of stagnation. That, together with the light
-of what is called the Gospel, came the era of national prosperity,
-and that the golden age of literature and art was the outcome of
-that liberty and freedom of spirit which was the distinct product of
-the Protestant Reformation. And yet what are the facts? Was the age
-immediately before the religious upheaval of the sixteenth century
-so very black, and was it the magic genius of Luther who divined how
-to call forth the light out of the “void and empty darkness”? Luther,
-himself, shall tell us his opinion of the century before the rise of
-Protestantism. “Any one reading the chronicles,” he writes, “will find
-that since the birth of Christ there is nothing that can compare with
-what has happened in our world during the last hundred years. Never
-in any country have people seen so much building, so much cultivation
-of the soil. Never has such good drink, such abundant and delicate
-food, been within the reach of so many. Dress has become so rich that
-it cannot in this respect be improved. Who has ever heard of commerce
-such as we see it to-day? It circles the globe; it embraces the whole
-world! Painting, engraving--all the arts--have progressed and are still
-improving. More than all, we have men so capable, and so learned, that
-their wit penetrates everything in such a way, that nowadays a youth of
-twenty knows more than twenty doctors did in days gone by.”[1]
-
-In this passage we have the testimony of the German reformer
-himself that the eve of the Reformation was in no sense a period of
-stagnation. The world was fully awake, and the light of learning and
-art had already dawned upon the earth. The progress of commerce and
-the prosperity of peoples owed nothing to the religious revolt of
-the sixteenth century. Nor is this true only for Germany. There is
-evidence to prove that Luther’s picture is as correct in that period
-for England. Learning, there can be no question, in the fifteenth
-century, found a congenial soil in this country. In its origin, as
-well as in its progress, the English revival of letters, which may be
-accurately gauged by the renewal of Greek studies, found its chief
-patrons in the fifteenth and early sixteenth centuries among the clergy
-and the most loyal lay sons of the Church. The fears of Erasmus that
-the rise of Lutheranism would prove the death-blow of solid scholarship
-were literally fulfilled. In England, no less than in Germany, amid
-the religious difficulties and the consequent social disturbances,
-learning, except in so far as it served to aid the exigencies of
-polemics or meet the controversial needs of the hour, declined for
-well-nigh a century; and so far from the Reformation affording the
-congenial soil upon which scholarship and letters flourished, it
-was in reality--to use Erasmus’s own favourite expression about the
-movement--a “catastrophe,” in which was overwhelmed the real progress
-of the previous century. The state of the universities of Oxford and
-Cambridge, before and after the period of religious change, is an
-eloquent testimony as to its effect on learning in general; whilst the
-differences of opinion in religious matters to which the Reformation
-gave rise, at once put a stop to the international character of the
-foreign universities. English names forthwith disappeared from the
-students’ lists at the great centres of learning in France and Italy,
-an obvious misfortune, which had a disastrous effect on English
-scholarship; the opening up of the schools of the reformed churches of
-Germany in no wise compensating for the international training hitherto
-received by most English scholars of eminence.
-
-In art and architecture, too, in the second half of the fifteenth
-century and the beginning of the sixteenth, there was manifested an
-activity in England which is without a parallel. There never was a
-period in which such life and energy was displayed in the building
-and adornment of churches of all kinds as on the very eve of the
-Reformation. Not in one part of the country only, nor in regard only
-to the greater churches, was this characteristic activity shown, but
-throughout the length and breadth of England the walls of our great
-cathedrals and minsters, and well-nigh those of every little parish
-church in the land, still bear their testimony to what was done out
-of love for God’s house during the period in question by the English
-people. Moreover, by the aid of the existing accounts and inventories
-it can be proved to demonstration that it was a work which then, more
-than at any other period of our national existence, appealed to the
-people at large and was carried out by them. No longer, as in earlier
-times, was the building and beautifying of God’s house left in this
-period to some great noble benefactor or rich landowner. During the
-fifteenth century the people were themselves concerned with the work,
-initiated it, found the means to carry it out, and superintended it in
-all its details.
-
-The same may be said of art. The work of adorning the walls of the
-churches with paintings and frescoes, the work of filling in the
-tracery of the windows with pictured glass, the work of setting up,
-and carving, and painting, and decorating; the making of screens,
-and stalls, and altars, all during this period, and right up to the
-eve of the change, was in every sense popular. It was the people who
-carried out these works, and evidently for the sole reason because they
-loved to beautify their churches, which were, in a way now somewhat
-difficult to realise, the centre no less of their lives than of
-their religion. Popular art grows, and only grows luxuriantly, upon a
-religious soil; and under the inspiration of a popular enthusiasm the
-parish churches of England became, if we may judge from the evidence of
-the wills, accounts, and inventories which still survive, not merely
-sanctuaries, but veritable picture galleries, teaching the poor and
-unlettered the history and doctrine of their religion. Nor were the
-pictures themselves the miserable daubs which some have suggested.
-The stained-glass windows were not only multiplied in the churches
-of England during this period, but by those best able to judge, the
-time between 1480 and 1520 has been regarded as the golden age of the
-art; and as regards the frescoes and decorations themselves, there is
-evidence of the existence in England of a high proficiency, both in
-design and execution, before the Reformation. Two examples may be taken
-to attest the truth of this: the series of paintings against which the
-stalls in Eton College Chapel are now placed, and the pictures on the
-walls of the Lady Chapel at Winchester, now unfortunately destroyed
-by the whitewash with which they had been covered on the change of
-religion. Those who had the opportunity of examining the former series,
-when many years ago they were uncovered on the temporary removal of the
-stalls, have testified to their intrinsic merit. Indeed, they appeared
-to the best judges of the time as being so excellent in drawing and
-colour that on their authority they were long supposed to have been
-the work of some unknown Italian artist of the school of Giotto. By a
-fortunate discovery of Mr. J. Willis Clarke, however, it is now known
-that both these and the Winchester series were in reality executed by
-an Englishman, named Baker.
-
-The same is true with regard to decoration and carving work. In
-screen-work, the Perpendicular period is allowed to have excelled all
-others, both in the lavish amount of the ornament as well as in the
-style of decoration. One who has paid much attention to this subject
-says: “During this period, the screen-work was usually enriched by
-gilding and painting, or was ‘depensiled,’ as the phrase runs, and many
-curious works of the limner’s art may still be seen in the churches of
-Norfolk and Suffolk. In Sussex, the screens of Brighton and Horsham
-may be cited as painted screens of beauty and merit, both having
-been thus ornamented in a profuse and costly manner, and each bore
-figures of saints in their panels.”[2] The churchwardens’ accounts,
-too, show that the work of thus decorating the English parish churches
-was in full operation up to the very eve of the religious changes.
-In these truthful pictures of parochial life, we may see the people
-and their representatives busily engaged in collecting the necessary
-money, and in superintending the work of setting up altars and statues
-and paintings, and in hiring carvers and decorators to enrich what
-their ancestors had provided for God’s house. It was the age, too,
-of organ-making and bell-founding, and there is hardly a record of
-any parish church at this time which does not show considerable sums
-of money spent upon these. From the middle of the fifteenth century
-to the period described as “the great pillage,” music, too, had made
-great progress in England, and the renown of the English school had
-spread over Europe. Musical compositions had multiplied in a wonderful
-way, and before the close of the fifteenth century “prick song,”
-or part music, is very frequently found in the inventories of our
-English parish churches. In fact, it has been recently shown that
-much of the music of the boasted school of ecclesiastical music to
-which the English Reformation had been thought to have given birth,
-is, in reality, music adapted to the new English services, from Latin
-originals, which had been inspired by the ancient offices of the
-Church. Most of the “prick song” masses and other musical compositions
-were destroyed in the wholesale destruction which accompanied the
-religious changes, but sufficient remains to show that the English
-pre-Reformation school of music was second to none in Europe. The
-reputation of some of its chief masters, like Dunstable, Tallis, and
-Bird, had spread to other countries, and their works had been used and
-studied, even in that land of song, Italy.
-
-A dispassionate consideration of the period preceding the great
-religious upheaval of the sixteenth century will, it can hardly
-be doubted, lead the inquirer to conclude that it was not in any
-sense an age of stagnation, discontent, and darkness. Letters, art,
-architecture, painting, and music, under the distinct patronage of the
-Church, had made great and steady progress before the advent of the
-new ideas. Moreover, those who will examine the old parish records
-cannot fail to see that up to the very eve of the changes, the old
-religion had not lost its hold upon the minds and affections of the
-people at large. And one thing is absolutely clear, that it was not
-the Reformation movement which brought to the world in its train the
-blessings of education, and the arts of civilisation. What it did for
-all these is written plainly enough in the history of that period of
-change and destruction.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-THE REVIVAL OF LETTERS IN ENGLAND
-
-
-The story of the English literary revival in the fifteenth and
-sixteenth centuries is of no little interest and importance. The full
-history of the movement would form the fitting theme of an entire
-volume; but the real facts are so contrary to much that is commonly
-believed about our English renaissance of letters, that some brief
-account is necessary, if we would rightly understand the attitude of
-men’s minds on the eve of the Reformation. At the outset, it is useful
-to recall the limits of this English renaissance. Judged by what is
-known of the movement in Italy, the land of its origin, the word
-“renaissance” is usually understood to denote not only the adoption of
-the learning and intellectual culture of ancient Greece and Rome by the
-leaders of thought in the Western World during the period in question,
-but an almost servile following of classical models, the absorption
-of the pagan spirit and the adoption of pagan modes of expression so
-fully, as certainly to obscure, if it did not frequently positively
-obliterate, Christian sentiment and Christian ideals. In this sense, it
-is pleasing to think, the renaissance was unknown in England. So far,
-however, as the revival of learning is concerned, England bore its part
-in, if indeed it may not be said to have been in the forefront of, the
-movement.
-
-This has, perhaps, hardly been realised as it should be. That the
-sixteenth century witnessed a remarkable awakening of minds, a
-broadening of intellectual interests, and a considerable advance in
-general culture, has long been known and acknowledged. There is little
-doubt, however, that the date usually assigned both for the dawning
-of the light and for the time of its full development is altogether
-too late; whilst the circumstances which fostered the growth of
-the movement have apparently been commonly misunderstood, and the
-chief agents in initiating it altogether ignored. The great period
-of the reawakening would ordinarily be placed without hesitation in
-post-Reformation times, and writers of all shades of opinion have
-joined in attributing the revival of English letters to the freedom of
-minds and hearts purchased by the overthrow of the old ecclesiastical
-system, and their emancipation from the narrowing and withering effects
-of mediævalism.
-
-On the assumption that the only possible attitude of English
-churchmen on the eve of the great religious changes would be one of
-uncompromising hostility to learning and letters, many have come to
-regard the one, not as inseparably connected with the other, but the
-secular as the outcome of the religious movement. The undisguised
-opposition of the clergy to the “New Learning” is spoken of as
-sufficient proof of the Church’s dislike of learning in general, and
-its determination to check the nation’s aspirations to profit by the
-general classical revival. This assumption is based upon a complete
-misapprehension as to what was then the meaning of the term “New
-Learning.” It was in no sense connected with the revival of letters, or
-with what is now understood by learning and culture; but it was in the
-Reformation days a well-recognised expression used to denote the novel
-religious teachings of Luther and his followers.[3] Uncompromising
-hostility to such novelties, no doubt, marked the religious attitude
-of many, who were at the same time the most strenuous advocates of the
-renaissance of letters. This is so obvious in the works of the period,
-that were it not for the common misuse of the expression at the present
-day, and for the fact that opposition to the “New Learning” is assumed
-on all hands to represent hostility to letters, rather than to novel
-teachings in religious matters, there would be no need to furnish
-examples of its real use in the period in question. As it is, some
-instances taken from the works of that time become almost a necessity,
-if we would understand the true position of many of the chief actors at
-this period of our history.
-
-Roger Edgworth, a preacher, for instance, after speaking of those who
-“so arrogantly glory in their learning, had by study in the English
-Bible, and in these seditious English books that have been sent over
-from our English runagates now abiding with Luther in Saxony,” praises
-the simple-hearted faith that was accepted unquestioned by all “before
-this wicked ‘New Learning’ arose in Saxony and came over into England
-amongst us.”[4]
-
-From the preface of _The Praier and Complaynte of the Ploweman_, dated
-February 1531, it is equally clear that the expression “New Learning”
-was then understood only of religious teaching. Like the Scribes and
-Pharisees in the time of Our Lord, the author says, the bishops and
-priests are calling out: “What ‘New Learning’ is it? These fellows
-teach new learning: these are they that trouble all the world with
-their new learning?… Even now after the same manner, our holy bishops
-with all their ragman’s roll are of the same sort.… They defame,
-slander, and persecute the word and the preachers and followers of
-it, with the selfsame names, calling it ‘New Learning’ and them ‘new
-masters.’”[5]
-
-The same meaning was popularly attached to the words even after the
-close of the reign of Henry VIII. A book published in King Edward’s
-reign, to instruct the people “concerning the king’s majesty’s
-proceedings in the communion,” bears the title, _The olde Faith of
-Great Brittayne and the new learning of England_. It is, of course,
-true, that the author sets himself to show that the reformed doctrines
-were the old teachings of the Christian Church, and that, when St.
-Gregory sent St. Augustine over into England, “the new learning was
-brought into this realm, of which we see much yet remaining in the
-Church at the present day.”[6] But this fact rather emphasises than
-in any way obscures the common understanding of the expression “New
-Learning,” since the whole intent of the author is to show that the
-upholders of the old ecclesiastical system were the real maintainers
-of a “New Learning” brought from Rome by St. Augustine, and not the
-Lutherans. The same appears equally clearly in a work by Urbanus
-Regius, which was translated and published by William Turner in 1537,
-and called _A comparison betwene the old learnynge and the newe_. As
-the translator says at the beginning--
-
- “Some ther be that do defye
- All that is newe and ever do crye
- The olde is better, away with the new
- Because it is false, and the olde is true.
- Let them this booke reade and beholde,
- For it preferreth the learning most olde.”
-
-As the author of the previous volume quoted, so Urbanus Regius compares
-the exclamation of the Jews against our Lord: “What new learning is
-this?” with the objection, “What is this new doctrine?” made by the
-Catholics against the novel religious teaching of Luther and his
-followers. “This,” they say, “is the new doctrine lately devised and
-furnished in the shops and workhouses of heretics. Let us abide still
-in our old faith.… Wherefore,” continues the author, “I, doing the
-office of Christian brother, have made a comparison between the ‘New
-Learning’ and the olden, whereby, dear brother, you may easily know
-whether we are called worthily or unworthily the preachers of the
-‘New Learning.’ For so did they call us of late.” He then proceeds
-to compare under various headings what he again and again calls “the
-New Learning” and “the Old Learning.” For example, according to the
-former, people are taught that the Sacraments bring grace to the soul;
-according to the latter, faith alone is needful. According to the
-former, Christ is present wholly under each kind of bread and wine,
-the mass is a sacrifice for the living and the dead, and “oblation is
-made in the person of the whole church”; according to the latter, the
-Supper is a memorial only of Christ’s death, “and not a sacrifice, but
-a remembrance of the sacrifice that was once offered up on the cross,”
-and that “all oblations except that of our Lord are vain and void.”[7]
-
-In view of passages such as the above, and in the absence of any
-contemporary evidence of the use of the expression to denote the
-revival of letters, it is obvious that any judgment as to a general
-hostility of the clergy to learning based upon their admitted
-opposition to what was then called the “New Learning” cannot seriously
-be maintained. It would seem, moreover, that the religious position of
-many ecclesiastics and laymen has been completely misunderstood by the
-meaning now so commonly assigned to the expression. Men like Erasmus,
-Colet, and to a great extent, More himself, have been regarded, to
-say the least, as at heart very lukewarm adherents of the Church,
-precisely because of their strong advocacy of the movement known as the
-literary revival, which, identified by modern writers with the “New
-Learning,” was, it is wrongly assumed, condemned by orthodox churchmen.
-The Reformers are thus made the champions of learning; Catholics, the
-upholders of ignorance, and the hereditary and bitter foes of all
-intellectual improvement. No one, however, saw more clearly than did
-Erasmus that the rise of Lutheran opinions was destined to be the
-destruction of true learning, and that the atmosphere of controversy
-was not the most fitting to assure its growth. To Richard Pace he
-expressed his ardent wish that some kindly _Deus ex machinâ_ would
-put an end to the whole Lutheran agitation, for it had most certainly
-brought upon the humanist movement unmerited hatred.[8] In subsequent
-letters he rejects the idea that the two, the Lutheran and the humanist
-movements, had anything whatever in common; asserting that even Luther
-himself had never claimed to found his revolt against the Church on
-the principles of scholarship and learning. To him, the storm of the
-Reformation appeared--so far as concerned the revival of learning--as a
-catastrophe. Had the tempest not risen, he had the best expectations of
-a general literary renaissance and of witnessing a revival of interest
-in Biblical and patristic studies among churchmen. It was the breath of
-bitter and endless controversy initiated in the Lutheran revolt and the
-consequent misunderstandings and enmities which withered his hopes.[9]
-
-There remains, however, the broader question as to the real position
-of the ecclesiastical authorities generally, in regard to the revival
-of learning. So far as England is concerned, their attitude is hardly
-open to doubt in view of the positive testimony of Erasmus, which is
-further borne out by an examination of the material available for
-forming a judgment. This proves beyond all question, not only that the
-Church in England on the eve of the change did not refuse the light,
-but that, both in its origin and later development, the movement owed
-much to the initiative and encouragement of English churchmen.
-
-It is not necessary here to enter very fully into the subject of
-the general revival of learning in Europe during the course of the
-fifteenth century. At the very beginning of that period what Gibbon
-calls “a new and perpetual flame” was enkindled in Italy. As in the
-thirteenth century, so then it was the study of the literature and
-culture of ancient Greece that re-enkindled the lamp of learning in
-the Western World. Few things, indeed, are more remarkable than the
-influence of Greek forms and models on the Western World. The very
-language seems as if destined by Providence to do for the Christian
-nations of Europe what in earlier ages it had done for pagan Rome. As
-Dr. Döllinger has pointed out, this is “a fact of immense importance,
-which even in these days it is worth while to weigh and place in its
-proper light,” since “the whole of modern civilisation and culture is
-derived from Greek sources. Intellectually we are the offspring of the
-union of the ancient Greek classics with Hellenised Judaism.” One thing
-is clear on the page of history: that the era of great intellectual
-activity synchronised with re-awakened interests in the Greek
-classics and Greek language in such a way that the study of Greek may
-conveniently be taken as representing a general revival of letters.
-
-By the close of the fourteenth century, the ever-increasing impotence
-of the Imperial sway on the Bosphorus, and the ever-growing influence
-of the Turk, compelled the Greek emperors to look to Western
-Christians for help to arrest the power of the infidels, which, like
-a flood, threatened to overwhelm the Eastern empire. Three emperors
-in succession journeyed into the Western world to implore assistance
-in their dire necessity, and though their efforts failed to save
-Constantinople, the historian detects in these pilgrimages of Greeks
-to the Courts of Europe the providential influence which brought about
-the renaissance of letters. “The travels of the three emperors,” writes
-Gibbon, “were unavailing for their temporal, or perhaps their spiritual
-salvation, but they were productive of a beneficial consequence, the
-revival of the Greek learning in Italy, from whence it was propagated
-to the last nations of the West and North.”
-
-What is true of Italy may well be true of other countries and places.
-The second of these pilgrim emperors, Manuel, the son and successor of
-Palæologus, crossed the Alps, and after a stay in Paris, came over the
-sea into England. In December 1400 he landed at Dover, and was, with a
-large retinue of Greeks, entertained at the monastery of Christchurch,
-Canterbury. It requires little stretch of imagination to suppose that
-the memory of such a visit would have lingered long in the cloister of
-Canterbury, and it is hardly perhaps by chance that it is here that
-half a century later are to be found the first serious indications
-of a revival of Greek studies. Moreover, it is evident that other
-Greek envoys followed in subsequent times, and even the great master
-and prodigy of learning, Manuel Chrysoloras himself, found his way to
-our shores, and it is hardly an assumption, in view of the position
-of Canterbury--on the high-road from Dover to London--to suppose to
-Christchurch also.[10] It was from his arrival in Italy, in 1396,
-that may be dated the first commencement of systematic study of the
-Greek classics in the West. The year 1408 is given for his visit to
-England.[11]
-
-There are indications early in the fifteenth century of a stirring of
-the waters in this country. Guarini, a pupil of Chrysoloras, became
-a teacher of fame at Ferrara, where he gathered round him a school
-of disciples which included several Englishmen. Such were Tiptoft,
-Earl of Worcester;[12] Robert Fleming, a learned ecclesiastic; John
-Free, John Gundthorpe, and William Gray, Bishop of Ely; whilst another
-Italian, Aretino, attracted by his fame another celebrated Englishman,
-Humphrey, Duke of Gloucester, to his classes. These, however, were
-individual cases, and their studies, and even the books they brought
-back, led to little in the way of systematic work in England at the old
-classical models. The fall of Constantinople in 1453 gave the required
-stimulus here, as in Italy. Among the fugitives were many Greek
-scholars of eminence, such as Chalcocondylas, Andronicus, Constantine
-and John Lascaris, who quickly made the schools of Italy famous by
-their teaching. Very soon the fame of the new masters spread to other
-countries, and students from all parts of the Western World found their
-way to their lecture-halls in Rome and the other teaching centres
-established in the chief cities of Northern Italy.
-
-First among the scholars who repaired thither from England to drink
-in the learning of ancient Greece and bring back to their country
-the new spirit, we must place two Canterbury monks named Selling and
-Hadley. Born somewhere about 1430, William Selling became a monk at
-Christchurch, Canterbury, somewhere about 1448. There seems some
-evidence to show that his family name was Tyll, and that, as was
-frequently, if not generally, the case, on his entering into religion,
-he adopted the name of Selling from his birthplace, some five miles
-from Faversham in Kent.[13] It is probable that Selling, after having
-passed through the claustral school at Canterbury, on entering the
-Benedictine Order was sent to finish his studies at Canterbury College,
-Oxford. Here he certainly was in 1450, for in that year he writes
-a long and what is described as an elegant letter as a student at
-Canterbury College to his Prior, Thomas Goldstone, at Christchurch
-Canterbury.[14] He was ordained priest, and celebrated his first mass
-at Canterbury in September 1456.[15]
-
-In 1464 William Selling obtained leave of his Prior and convent to go
-with a companion, William Hadley, to study in the foreign universities
-for three years,[16] during which time they visited and sat under
-the most celebrated teachers at Padua, Bologna, and Rome.[17] At
-Bologna, according to Leland, Selling was the pupil of the celebrated
-Politian, “with whom, on account of his aptitude in acquiring the
-classical elegance of ancient tongues, he formed a familiar and lasting
-friendship.”[18] In 1466 and 1467 we find the monks, Selling and his
-companion Hadley, at Bologna, where apparently the readers in Greek
-then were Lionorus and Andronicus,[19] and where, on the 22nd March
-1466, Selling took his degree in theology, his companion taking his in
-the March of the following year.[20]
-
-Of this period of work, Leland says:--“His studies progressed. He
-indeed imbued himself with Greek; everywhere he industriously and at
-great expense collected many Greek books. Nor was his care less in
-procuring old Latin MSS., which shortly after he took with him, as the
-most estimable treasures, on his return to Canterbury.”[21]
-
-His obituary notice in the Christchurch Necrology recites not only his
-excellence in learning, classical and theological, but what he had
-done to make his monastery at Canterbury a real house of studies. He
-decorated the library over the Priests’ Chapel, adding to the books,
-and assigned it “for the use of those specially given to study, which
-he encouraged and cherished with wonderful watchfulness and affection.”
-The eastern cloister also he fitted with glass and new desks, “called
-carrels,” for the use of the studious brethren.[22]
-
-After the sojourn of the two Canterbury monks in Italy, they returned
-to their home at Christchurch. Selling, however, did not remain
-there long, for on October 3, 1469, we find him setting out again
-for Rome[23] in company with another monk, Reginald Goldstone, also
-an Oxford student. This visit was on business connected with his
-monastery, and did not apparently keep him long away from England,
-for there is evidence that sometime before the election of Selling
-to the Priorship at Canterbury, which was in 1472, he was again at
-his monastery. Characteristically, his letter introducing William
-Worcester, the antiquary, to a merchant of Lucca who had a copy of
-Livy’s _Decades_ for sale, manifests his great and continued interest
-in classical literature.[24]
-
-At Canterbury, Selling must have established the teaching of Greek on
-systematic lines, and it is certainly from this monastic school as
-a centre, that the study spread to other parts of England. William
-Worcester, keenly alive to the classical revival, as his note-books
-show, tells us of “certain Greek terminations as taught by Doctor
-Selling of Christchurch, Canterbury,” and likewise sets down the
-pronunciation of the Greek vowels with examples evidently on the same
-authority.[25]
-
-Selling’s long priorship, extending from 1472 to 1495, would have
-enabled him to consolidate the work of this literary renaissance which
-he had so much at heart.[26] The most celebrated of all his pupils
-was, of course, Linacre. Born, according to Caius, at Canterbury, he
-received his first instruction in the monastic school there, and his
-first lessons in the classics and Greek from Selling himself. Probably
-through the personal interest taken in this youth of great promise
-by Prior Selling, he was sent to Oxford about 1480. Those who have
-seriously examined the matter believe that the first years of his
-Oxford life were spent by Linacre at the Canterbury College, which was
-connected with Christchurch monastery, and which, though primarily
-intended for monks, also afforded a place of quiet study to others who
-were able to obtain admission.[27] Thus, in later years, Sir Thomas
-More, no doubt through his father’s connection with the monastery of
-Christchurch, Canterbury, of which house he was a “confrater,” became
-a student at the monks’ college at Oxford. In later years Sir Thomas
-himself, when Chancellor of England, perpetuated the memory of his
-life-long connection with the monks of Canterbury by enrolling his name
-also on the fraternity lists of that house.
-
-Linacre, in 1484, became a Fellow of All Souls’ College, but evidently
-he did not lose touch with his old friends at Canterbury, for, in 1486,
-Prior Selling being appointed one of the ambassadors of Henry VII. to
-the Pope, he invited his former pupil to accompany him to Italy, in
-order to profit by the teaching of the great humanist masters at the
-universities there. Prior Selling took him probably as far as Florence,
-and introduced him to his own old master and friend, Angelo Politian,
-who was then engaged in instructing the children of Lorenzo de Medici.
-Through Selling’s interest, Linacre was permitted to share in their
-lessons, and there are letters showing that the younger son, when in
-after years he became Pope, as Leo X., was not unmindful of his early
-companionship with the English scholar.[28] From Politian, Linacre
-acquired a purity of style in Latin which makes him celebrated even
-among the celebrated men of his time. Greek he learnt from Demetrius
-Chalcocondylas, who was then, like Politian, engaged in teaching the
-children of Lorenzo de Medici.[29]
-
-From Florence, Linacre passed on to Rome, where he gained many friends
-among the great humanists of the day. One day, when examining the
-manuscripts of the Vatican Library for classics, and engaged in reading
-the _Phædo_ of Plato, Hermolaus Barbarus came up and politely expressed
-his belief that the youth had no claim, as he had himself, to the title
-Barbarus, if it were lawful to judge from his choice of a book. Linacre
-at once, from the happy compliment, recognised the speaker, and this
-chance interview led to a life-long friendship between the Englishman
-and one of the great masters of classical literature.[30]
-
-After Linacre had been in Italy for a year or more, a youth whom he had
-known at Oxford, William Grocyn, was induced to come and share with him
-the benefit of the training in literature then to be obtained only in
-Italy. On his return in 1492, Grocyn became lecturer at Exeter College,
-Oxford, and among his pupils in Greek were Sir Thomas More[31] and
-Erasmus. He was a graduate in theology, and was chosen by Dean Colet to
-give lectures at St. Paul’s and subsequently appointed by Archbishop
-Warham, Master or Guardian of the collegiate church of Maidstone.[32]
-Erasmus describes him as “a man of most rigidly upright life, almost
-superstitiously observant of ecclesiastical custom, versed in every
-nicety of scholastic theology, by nature of the most acute judgment,
-and, in a word, fully instructed in every kind of learning.”[33]
-
-Linacre, after a distinguished course in the medical schools of Padua,
-returned to Oxford, and in 1501 became tutor to Prince Arthur. On the
-accession of Henry VIII. he was appointed physician to the court, and
-could count all the distinguished men of the day, Wolsey, Warham, Fox,
-and the rest, among his patients; and Erasmus, Sir Thomas More, and
-Queen Mary among his pupils in letters. In his early life, entering
-the clerical state, he had held ecclesiastical preferment; in advanced
-years he received priest’s orders, and devoted the evening of his life
-to a pious preparation for his end.[34]
-
-Grocyn and Linacre are usually regarded as the pioneers of the revival
-of letters. But, as already pointed out, the first to cross the Alps
-from England in search for the new light, to convey it back to England,
-and to hand it on to Grocyn and Linacre, were William Selling, and
-his companion, William Hadley. Thus, the real pioneers in the English
-renaissance were the two monks of Christchurch, and, some years after,
-the two ecclesiastics, Grocyn and Linacre.
-
-Selling, even after his election to the priorship of Canterbury,
-continued to occupy a distinguished place both in the political world
-and in the world of letters. He was chosen, though only the fifth
-member of the embassy sent by Henry VII. on his accession to the Pope,
-to act as orator, and in that capacity delivered a Latin oration before
-the Pope and Cardinals.[35]
-
-He was also and subsequently sent with others by Henry on an embassy to
-the French king, in which he also fulfilled the function of spokesman,
-making what is described as “a most elegant oration.”
-
-That as Prior, Selling kept up his interest in the literary revival is
-clear from the terms of his obituary notice. There exists, moreover,
-a translation made by him after his return from his embassy to Rome,
-when he took his youthful protégé, Linacre, and placed him under
-Chalcocondylas and Politian in Florence, which seems to prove that
-the renewal of his intimacy with the great humanist masters of Italy
-had inspired him with a desire to continue his literary work. Even in
-the midst of constant calls upon him, which the high office of Prior
-of Canterbury necessitated, he found time to translate a sermon of
-St. John Chrysostom from the Greek, two copies of which still remain
-in the British Museum.[36] This is dated 1488; and it is probably the
-first example of any Greek work put into Latin in England in the early
-days of the English renaissance of letters. The very volume (Add. MS.
-15,673) in which one copy of this translation is found shows by the
-style of the writing, and other indications, the Italian influences at
-work in Canterbury in the time of Selling’s succession at the close
-of the fifteenth century; and also the intercourse which the monastery
-there kept up with the foreign humanists.[37]
-
-It is hardly necessary to say more about the precious volumes of the
-classics and the other manuscripts which Selling collected on his
-travels. Many of them perished, with that most rare work, Cicero’s
-_De Republica_, in the fire caused by the carelessness of some of
-Henry VIII.’s visitors on the eve of the dissolution of Selling’s old
-monastery at Canterbury. Some, like the great Greek commentaries of
-St. Cyril on the Prophets, were rescued half burnt from the flames;
-“others, by some good chance,” says Leland, “had been removed; amongst
-these were the commentaries of St. Basil the Great on Isaias, the
-works of Synesius and other Greek codices.”[38] Quite recently it has
-been recognised that the complete Homer and the plays of Euripides
-in Corpus Christi College library at Cambridge, which tradition had
-associated with the name of Archbishop Theodore in the seventh century,
-are in reality both fifteenth-century manuscripts; and as they formed,
-undoubtedly, part of the library at Christchurch, Canterbury, it is
-hardly too much to suppose that they were some of the treasures brought
-back by Prior Selling from Italy. The same may probably be said of a
-Livy, a fifteenth-century Greek Psalter, and a copy of the Psalms in
-Hebrew and Latin, in Trinity College Library.[39]
-
-Prior Selling’s influence, moreover, extended beyond the walls of his
-own house, and can be traced to others besides his old pupil, and, as
-some think, relative, Linacre. Among the friendships he had formed
-whilst at Padua was that of a young ecclesiastical student, Thomas
-Langton, with whom he was subsequently at Rome. Langton was employed
-in diplomatic business by King Edward IV., and whilst in France,
-through his friendship for Prior Selling, obtained some favour from
-the French king for the monastery of Canterbury. In return for this
-the monks offered him a living in London.[40] Prior Selling, on one
-occasion at least, drafted the sermon which Dr. Langton was to deliver
-as prolocutor in the Convocation of the Canterbury Province.[41] In
-1483 Langton became Bishop of Winchester, and “such was his love of
-letters” that he established in his own house a _schola domestica_ for
-boys, and himself used to preside in the evening at the lessons. One
-youth especially attracted his attention by his music. This was Richard
-Pace, afterwards renowned as a classical scholar and diplomatist.
-Bishop Langton recognised his abilities, and forthwith despatched him
-to Italy, paying all his expenses at the universities of Padua and
-Rome.[42] At the former place, he says: “When as a youth I began
-to work at my humanities, I was assisted by Cuthbert Tunstall and
-William Latimer, men most illustrious and excelling in every branch of
-learning, whose prudence, probity, and integrity were such that it were
-hard to say whether their learning excelled their high moral character,
-or their uprightness their learning.”[43]
-
-At this university he was taught by Leonicus and by Leonicenus, the
-friend and correspondent of Politian: “Men,” he says, as being unable
-to give higher praise, “like Tunstall and Latimer.”[44] Passing on to
-Bologna he sat at the feet of Paul Bombasius, “who was then explaining
-every best author to large audiences.” Subsequently, at Rome, he formed
-a lasting friendship with William Stokesley, whom he describes as “his
-best friend on earth; a man of the keenest judgment, excellent, and
-indeed marvellous, in theology and philosophy, and not only skilled
-in Greek and Latin, but possessed of some knowledge of Hebrew,” whose
-great regret was that he had not earlier in life realised the power of
-the Greek language.[45] At Ferrara, too, Pace first met Erasmus, and
-he warmly acknowledges his indebtedness to the influence of this great
-humanist.
-
-In 1509, Richard Pace accompanied Cardinal Bainbridge to Rome, and
-was with him when the cardinal died, or was murdered, there in 1514.
-Whilst in the Eternal City, “urged to the study by that most upright
-and learned man, William Latimer,” he searched the Pope’s library for
-books of music, and found a great number of works on the subject.
-The cardinal’s death put a stop to his investigations; but he had
-seen sufficient to be able to say that to study the matter properly a
-man must know Greek and get to the library of the Pope, where there
-were many and the best books on music. “But,” he adds, “I venture to
-say this, our English music, if any one will critically examine into
-the matter, will be found to display the greatest subtlety of mind,
-especially in what is called the introduction of harmonies, and in this
-matter to excel ancient music.”[46]
-
-It is unnecessary to follow in any detail the story of the general
-literary revival in England. Beginning with Selling, the movement
-continued to progress down to the very eve of the religious disputes.
-That there was opposition on the part of some who regarded the
-stirring of the waters with suspicion was inevitable. More especially
-was this the case because during the course of the literary revival
-there rose the storm of the great religious revolt of the sixteenth
-century, and because the practical paganism which had resulted from
-the movement in Italy was perhaps not unnaturally supposed by the
-timorous to be a necessary consequence of a return to the study of
-the classics of Greece and Rome. The opposition sprung generally from
-a misunderstanding, and “not so much from any hostility to Greek
-itself as from an indifference to any learning.” This Sir Thomas More
-expressly declares when writing to urge the Oxford authorities to
-repress a band of giddy people who, calling themselves Trojans, made
-it their duty to fight against the _Grecians_. It is true also that
-the pulpit was at times brought into requisition to decry “not only
-Greek and Latin studies,” but liberal education of any kind.[47] But,
-so far as England is concerned, this opposition to the revival of
-letters, even on the score of the danger likely to come either to faith
-or morals, was, when all is said, slight, and through the influence of
-More, Fisher, and the king himself, easily subdued.[48] The main fact,
-moreover, cannot be gainsaid, namely, that the chief ecclesiastics of
-the day, Wolsey, Warham, Fisher, Tunstall, Langton, Stokesley, Fox,
-Selling, Grocyn, Whitford, Linacre, Colet, Pace, William Latimer, and
-Thomas Lupset,[49] to name only the most distinguished, were not
-only ardent humanists, but thorough and practical churchmen. Of the
-laymen, whether foreigners or Englishmen, whose names are associated
-with the renaissance of letters in this country, such as, for example,
-the distinguished scholar Ludovico Vives, the two Lillys, Sir Thomas
-More, John Clement,[50] and other members of More’s family, there can
-be no shadow of doubt about their dispositions towards the ancient
-ecclesiastical régime. A Venetian traveller, in 1500, thus records what
-he had noticed as to the attitude of ecclesiastics generally towards
-learning:--“Few, excepting the clergy, are addicted to the study of
-letters, and this is the reason why any one who has any learning,
-though he may be a layman, is called a _clerk_. And yet they have great
-advantages for study, there being two general universities in the
-kingdom, Oxford and Cambridge, in which there are many colleges founded
-for the maintenance of poor scholars. And your magnificence (the Doge
-of Venice) lodged at one named Magdalen, in the University of Oxford,
-of which, as the founders having been prelates, so the scholars also
-are ecclesiastics.”
-
-It was in England, and almost entirely among the ecclesiastics of
-England, that Erasmus found his chief support. “This England of yours,”
-he writes to Colet in 1498, “this England, dear to me on many accounts,
-is above all most beloved because it abounds in what to me is the best
-of all, men deeply learned in letters.”[51] Nor did he change his
-opinion on a closer acquaintance. In 1517, to Richard Pace he wrote
-from Louvain in regret at leaving a country which he had come to regard
-as the best hope of the literary revival:--“Oh, how truly happy is your
-land of England, the seat and stronghold of the best studies and the
-highest virtue! I congratulate you, my friend Pace, on having such a
-king, and I congratulate the king whose country is rendered illustrious
-by so many brilliant men of ability. On both scores I congratulate this
-England of yours, for though fortunate for many other reasons, on this
-score no other land can compete with it.”[52]
-
-When William Latimer said in 1518 that Bishop Fisher wished to study
-Greek for Biblical purposes, and that he thought of trying to get a
-master from Italy, Erasmus, whilst applauding the bishop’s intention
-as likely to encourage younger men to take up the study, told Latimer
-that such men were not easy to find in Italy. “If I may openly say my
-mind,” he adds, “if I had Linacre, or Tunstall, for a master (for of
-yourself I say nothing), I would not wish for any Italian.”[53]
-
-Not to go into more lengthy details, there is, it must be admitted,
-abundant evidence to show that there was in the religious houses of
-England, no less than in the universities, a stirring of the waters,
-and a readiness to profit by the real advance made in education and
-scholarship. The name of Prior Charnock, the friend of Colet and
-Erasmus at Oxford, is known to all. But there are others with even
-greater claim than he to be considered leaders in the movement.
-There is distinct evidence of scholarship at Reading, at Ramsey, at
-Glastonbury, and elsewhere.[54] The last-named house, Glastonbury,
-was ruled by Abbot Bere, to whose criticism Erasmus desired to submit
-his translation of the New Testament from the Greek. Bere himself had
-passed some time, with distinction, in Italy, had been sent on more
-than one embassy by the king, and had been chosen by Henry VII. to
-invest the Duke of Urbino with the Order of the Garter, and to make
-the required oration on that occasion.[55] He had given other evidence
-also of the way the new spirit that had been enkindled in Italy had
-entered into his soul. It was through Abbot Bere’s generosity that
-Richard Pace, whom Erasmus calls “the half of his soul,” was enabled
-to pursue his studies in Italy.[56] Glastonbury was apparently a soil
-well prepared for the seed-time, for even in the days of Abbot Bere’s
-predecessor, Abbot John Selwood, there is evidence to show that the
-religious were not altogether out of touch with the movement. The
-abbot himself presented one of the monks with a copy of John Free’s
-translation from the Greek of _Synesius de laude Calvitii_. The volume
-is written by an Italian scribe, and contains in the introductory
-matter a letter to the translator from Omnibonus Leonicensis, dated
-at Vicenza in 1461, as well as a preface or letter by Free to John
-Tiptoft, Earl of Worcester.[57]
-
-At St. Augustine’s, Canterbury, also, we find, even amid the ruins
-of its desolation, traces of the same spirit which pervaded the
-neighbouring cloister of Christchurch. The antiquary Twyne declares
-that he had been intimately acquainted with the last abbot, whom he
-knew to have been deeply interested in the literary movement. He
-describes his friend as often manifesting in conversation his interest
-in and knowledge of the ancient classical authors. He says that this
-monk was the personal friend of Ludovico Vives, and that he sent over
-the sea one of his subjects at St. Augustine’s, John Digon, whom he
-subsequently made prior of his monastery, to the schools of Louvain, in
-order that he might profit by the teaching of that celebrated Spanish
-humanist.[58]
-
-Beyond the foregoing particular instances of the real mind of English
-ecclesiastics towards the revival of studies, the official registers
-of the Universities of Oxford and Cambridge furnish us with evidence
-of the general attitude of approval adopted by the Church authorities
-in England. Unfortunately, gaps in the Register of Graduates at Oxford
-for the second half of the fifteenth century do not enable us to gauge
-the full extent of the revival, but there is sufficient evidence that
-the renaissance had taken place. In the eleven years, from A.D. 1449
-to A.D. 1459, for which the entries exist, the average number of
-degrees taken by all students was 91.5. From 1506, when the registers
-begin again, to 1535, when the commencement of operations against the
-monastic houses seemed to indicate the advent of grave religious
-changes, the average number of yearly degrees granted was 127. In 1506
-the number had risen to 216, and only in very few of the subsequent
-years had the average fallen below 100. From 108 in 1535, the number of
-graduates fell in 1536 to only 44; and the average for the subsequent
-years of the reign of Henry VIII. was less than 57. From 1548 to 1553,
-that is, during the reign of Edward VI., the average of graduates was
-barely 33, but it rose again, whilst Mary was on the throne, to 70.
-
-If the same test be applied to the religious Orders, it will be found
-that they likewise equally profited by the new spirit. During the
-period from 1449 to 1459 the Benedictine Order had a yearly average
-of 4 graduates at Oxford, the other religious bodies taken together
-having 5. In the second period of 1506-1539 the Benedictine graduates
-number 200, and (allowing for gaps in the register) the Order had thus
-a yearly average of 6.75, the average of the other Orders during the
-same period being 5.2. If, moreover, the number of the religious who
-took degrees be compared with that of the secular students, it will be
-found that the former seem to have more than held their own. During
-the time from 1449 to 1459 the members of the regular Orders were to
-the rest in the proportion of 1 to 9.5. In the period of the thirty
-years immediately preceding the general dissolution it was as 1 to 9.
-Interest in learning, too, was apparently kept up among the religious
-Orders to the last. Even with their cloisters falling on all sides
-round about them, in the last hour of their corporate existence, that
-is in the year 1538-39, some 14 Benedictines took their degrees at
-Oxford.
-
-In regard to Cambridge, a few notes taken from the interesting preface
-to a recent “History of Gonville and Caius College” will suffice to
-show that the monks did not neglect the advantages offered to them
-in the sister university.[59] Gonville Hall, as the college was then
-called, was by the statutes of Bishop Bateman closely connected with
-the Benedictine Cathedral Priory of Norwich. Between 1500 and 1523 the
-early bursars’ accounts give a list of “pensioners,” and these “largely
-consisted of monks sent hither from their respective monasteries for
-the purpose of study.” These “pensioners paid for their rooms and their
-commons, and shared their meals with the fellows. All the greater
-monasteries in East Anglia, such as the Benedictine Priory at Norwich,
-the magnificent foundation of Bury, and (as a large landowner in
-Norfolk) the Cluniac House at Lewes, seem generally to have had several
-of their younger members in training at our college. To these must be
-added the Augustinian Priory of Westacre, which was mainly frequented
-(as Dr. Jessopp tells us) by the sons of the Norfolk gentry.”[60]
-
-The Visitations of the Norwich Diocese (1492-1532), edited by Dr.
-Jessopp for the Camden Society, contain many references to the monastic
-students at the university. In one house, for example, in 1520, the
-numbers are short, because “there were three in the university.” In
-another case, when a religious house was too poor to provide the
-necessary money to support a student during his college career, it
-was found by friends of the monastery, until a few years later, when,
-on the funds improving, the house was able to meet the expenses. This
-same house, the Priory of Butley, “had a special arrangement with the
-authorities of Gonville Hall for the reservation of a suitable room
-for their young monks.” One object of sending members of a monastery
-to undergo the training of a university course “was to qualify
-for teaching the novices at their own house”; for after they have
-graduated and returned to their monastery, we not infrequently find
-them described as “_idoneus preceptor pro confratribus_”; “_idoneus
-pro noviciis et junioribus_,” &c. Moreover, the possession of a degree
-on the part of a religious, as an examination of the lists will show,
-often in after life meant some position of trust or high office in the
-monastery of the graduate.
-
-Nor was the training then received any light matter of form; it meant
-long years of study, and the possession of a degree was, too, a public
-testimony to a certain proficiency in the science of teaching. Thus,
-for example, George Mace, a canon of Westacre, who became a pensioner
-at Gonville Hall in 1508, studied arts for five years and canon law for
-four years at the university, and continued the latter study for eight
-years in his monastery.[61] William Hadley, a religious of the same
-house, had spent eleven years in the study of arts and theology;[62]
-and Richard Brygott, who took his B.D. in 1520, and who subsequently
-became Prior of Westacre, had studied two years and a half in his
-monastery, two years in Paris, and seven in Cambridge.[63]
-
-“With the Reformation, of course, all this came to an end,” writes
-Mr. Venn, and we can well understand that this sudden stoppage of
-what, in the aggregate, was a considerable source of supply to the
-university, was seriously felt. On the old system, as we have seen, the
-promising students were selected by their monasteries, and supported in
-college at the expense of the house. As the author of the interesting
-account of Durham Priory says: “If the master did see that any of
-them (the novices) were apt to learning, and did apply his book and
-had a pregnant wit withal, then the master did let the prior have
-intelligence. Then, straightway after he was sent to Oxford to school,
-and there did learn to study divinity.”[64]
-
-Moreover, it should be remembered that it was by means of the
-assistance received from the monastic and conventual houses that a very
-large number of students were enabled to receive their education at the
-universities at all. The episcopal registers testify to this useful
-function of the old religious corporations. The serious diminution in
-the number of candidates for ordination, and the no less lamentable
-depletion of the national universities, consequent upon the dissolution
-of these bodies, attest what had previously been done by them for the
-education of the pastoral clergy. This may be admitted without any
-implied approval of the monastic system as it existed. The fact will
-be patent to all who will examine into the available evidence; and the
-serious diminution in the number of clergy must be taken as part of the
-price paid by the nation for securing the triumph of the Reformation
-principles. The state of Oxford during, say, the reign of Edward VI.,
-is attested by the degree lists. In the year 1547 and in the year 1550
-no student at all graduated, and the historian of the university has
-described the lamentable state to which the schools were reduced. If
-additional testimony be needed, it may be found in a sermon of Roger
-Edgworth, preached in Queen Mary’s reign. Speaking of works of piety
-and pity, much needed in those days, the speaker advocates charity to
-the poor students at the two national universities. “Very pity,” he
-says, “moves me to exhort you to mercy and pity on the poor students
-in the universities of Oxford and Cambridge. They were never so few in
-number, and yet those that are left are ready to run abroad into the
-world and give up their study for very need. Iniquity is so abundant
-that charity is all cold. A man would have pity did he but hear the
-lamentable complaints that I heard lately when amongst them. Would to
-God I were able to relieve them. This much I am sure of: in my opinion
-you cannot bestow your charity better.” He then goes on to instance
-his own case as an example of what used to be done in Catholic times
-to help the student in his education. “My parents sent me to school in
-my youth, and my good lord William Smith, sometime Bishop of Lincoln,
-(was) my bringer up and ‘exhibitour,’ first at Banbury in the Grammar
-School with Master John Stanbridge, and then at Oxford till I was a
-Master of Arts and able to help myself.”
-
-He pleads earnestly that some of his hearers may be inspired to help
-the students in the distress to which they are now reduced, and so help
-to restore learning to the position from which it had fallen in late
-years.[65]
-
-Of the lamentable decay of scholarship as such, the inevitable, and
-perhaps necessary, consequence of the religious controversies which
-occupied men’s minds and thoughts to the exclusion of all else, it is,
-of course, not the place here to dwell upon. All that it is necessary
-to do is to point out that the admitted decay and decline argues a
-previous period of greater life and vigour. Even as early as 1545 the
-Cambridge scholars petitioned the king for an extension of privileges,
-as they feared the total destruction of learning. To endeavour to save
-Oxford, it was ordered that every clergyman, having a benefice to the
-amount of £100, should out of his living find at least one scholar at
-the university. Bishop Latimer, in Edward VI.’s reign, looked back
-with regret to past times “when they helped the scholars,” for since
-then “almost no man helpeth to maintain them.” “Truly,” he said, “it
-is a pitiful thing to see the schools so neglected. Schools are not
-maintained, scholars have not exhibitions.… Very few there be that help
-poor scholars.… It would pity a man’s heart to hear what I hear of the
-state of Cambridge; what it is in Oxford I cannot tell.… I think there
-be at this day (A.D. 1550) ten thousand students less than there were
-within these twenty years.” In the year 1550, it will be remembered,
-there was apparently no degree of any kind taken at the university of
-Oxford.
-
-This fact appears patent on this page of history; that from the time
-when minds began to exercise themselves on the thorny subjects which
-grew up round about the “great divorce” question, the bright promises
-of the revival of learning, which Erasmus had seen in England, faded
-away. Greek, it has been said, may conveniently stand for learning
-generally; and Greek studies apparently disappeared in the religious
-turmoils which distracted England. With Mary’s accession, some attempt
-was made to recover lost ground, or at least re-enkindle the lamp of
-learning. When Sir Thomas Pope refounded Durham College at Oxford
-under the name of Trinity, he was urged by Cardinal Pole, to whom he
-submitted the draft of his statutes, “to order Greek to be more taught
-there than I have provided. This purpose,” he says, “I like well, but
-I fear the times will not bear it now. I remember when I was a young
-scholar at Eton, the Greek tongue was growing apace, the study of which
-is now of late much decayed.”[66]
-
-The wholesale destruction of the great libraries in England is an
-indirect indication of the new spirit which rose at this time, and
-which helped for a time to put an end to the renaissance of letters.
-When Mary came to the throne, and quieter times made the scheme
-possible, it was seriously proposed to do something to preserve the
-remnant of ancient and learned works that might be left in England
-after the wholesale destruction of the preceding years. The celebrated
-Dr. Dee drew up a supplication to the queen, stating that “among the
-many most lamentable displeasures that have of late happened in this
-realm, through the subverting of religious houses and the dissolution
-of other assemblies of godly and learned men, it has been, and among
-all learned students shall for ever be, judged not the least calamity,
-the spoil and destruction of so many and so notable libraries wherein
-lay the treasure of all antiquity, and the everlasting seeds of
-continual excellency in learning within this realm. But although in
-those days many a precious jewel and ancient monument did utterly
-perish (as at Canterbury that wonderful work of the sage and eloquent
-Cicero, _De Republica_, and in many other places the like), yet if
-in time great and speedy diligence be showed, the remnants of such
-incredible a store, as well of writers theological as in all the other
-liberal sciences, might yet be saved and recovered, which now in your
-Grace’s realm being dispersed and scattered, yea, and many of them in
-unlearned men’s hands, still even yet (in this time of reconciliation)
-daily perish; and perchance are purposely by some envious person
-enclosed in walls or buried in the ground.”
-
-The scheme which accompanied this letter in 1556 was for the formation
-of a national library, into which were to be gathered the original
-manuscripts still left in England, which could be purchased or
-otherwise obtained, or at least a copy of such as were in private
-hands, and which the owners would not part with. Beyond this, John
-Dee proposes that copies of the best manuscripts in Europe should be
-secured. He mentions specially the libraries of the Vatican, and of St.
-Mark’s, Venice, those at Florence, Bologna, and Vienna, and offers to
-go himself, if his expenses are paid, to secure the transcripts.[67]
-The plan, however, came to nothing, and with Mary’s death, the nation
-was once more occupied in the religious controversies, which again
-interfered with any real advance in scholarship.
-
-One other point must not be overlooked. Before the rise of the
-religious dissensions caused England to isolate herself from the rest
-of the Catholic world, English students were to be found studying in
-considerable numbers at the great centres of learning in Europe. An
-immediate result of the change was to put a stop to this, which had
-served to keep the country in touch with the best work being done
-on the Continent, and the result of which had been seen in the able
-English scholars produced by that means on the eve of the Reformation.
-
-Taking a broad survey of the whole movement for the revival of letters
-in England, it would appear then certain that whether we regard its
-origin, or the forces which contributed to support it, or the men
-chiefly concerned in it, it must be confessed that to the Church and
-churchmen the country was indebted for the successes achieved. What put
-a stop to the humanist movement here, as it certainly did in Germany,
-was the rise of the religious difficulties, which, under the name of
-the “New Learning,” was opposed by those most conspicuous for their
-championship of true learning, scholarship, and education.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-THE TWO JURISDICTIONS
-
-
-The Reformation found men still occupied with questions as to the
-limits of ecclesiastical and lay jurisdiction, which had troubled
-their minds at various periods during the previous centuries. It is
-impossible to read very deeply into the literature of the period
-without seeing that, while on the one hand, all the fundamental
-principles of the spiritual jurisdiction of the Church were fully
-and freely recognised by all; on the other, a number of questions,
-mainly in the broad borderland of debatable ground between the two,
-were constantly being discussed, and not infrequently gave cause for
-disagreements and misunderstandings. As in the history of earlier
-times, so in the sixteenth century ecclesiastics clung, perhaps
-not unnaturally, to what they regarded as their strict rights, and
-looked on resistance to encroachment as a sacred duty. Laymen on
-the other part, even when their absolute loyalty to the Church was
-undoubted, were found in the ranks of those who claimed for the State
-power to decide in matters not strictly pertaining to the spiritual
-prerogatives, but which chiefly by custom had come to be regarded as
-belonging to ecclesiastical domain. It is the more important that
-attention should be directed in a special manner to these questions,
-inasmuch as it will be found, speaking broadly, that the ultimate
-success or ill-success of the strictly doctrinal changes raised in
-the sixteenth century was determined by the issue of the discussions
-raised on the question of mixed jurisdiction. This may not seem very
-philosophical, but in the event it is proved to be roughly correct. The
-reason is not very far to seek. In great measure at least, questions
-of money and property, even of national interest and prosperity,
-were intimately concerned in the matter in dispute. They touched the
-people’s pocket; and whether rightly or wrongly, those who found the
-money wished to have a say in its disposal. One thing cannot fail to
-strike an inquirer into the literature of this period: the very small
-number of people who were enthusiasts in the doctrinal matters with
-which the more ardent reformers occupied themselves.
-
-We are not here concerned with another and more delicate question as
-to the papal prerogatives exercised in England. For clearness’ sake
-in estimating the forces which made for change on the eve of the
-Reformation, this subject must be examined in connection with the whole
-attitude of England to Rome and the Pope in the sixteenth century. It
-must, consequently, be understood that in trying here to illustrate the
-attitude of men’s minds at this period to these important and practical
-questions, a further point as to the claims of the Roman Pontiffs
-in regard to some or all of them has yet to be considered. Even in
-examining the questions at issue between the authorities--lay and
-ecclesiastical--in the country, the present purpose is to record rather
-than to criticise, to set forth the attitude of mind as it appears in
-the literature of the period, rather than to weigh the reasons and
-judge between the contending parties.
-
-The lawyer, Christopher Saint-German, is a contemporary writer to
-whom we naturally turn for information upon the points at issue. He,
-of course, takes the layman’s side as to the right of the State to
-interfere in all, or in most, questions which arise as to the dues
-of clerics, and other temporalities, such as tithes, &c., which are
-attached to the spiritual functions of the clergy. Moreover, beyond
-claiming the right for the State so to interfere in the regulation of
-all temporalities and kindred matters, Saint-German also held that in
-some things in which custom had given sanction to the then practice,
-it would be for the good of the State that it should do so. In his
-_Dyalogue between a Student of Law and a Doctor of Divinity_,[68] his
-views are put clearly; whilst the Doctor states, though somewhat lamely
-perhaps, the position of the clergy.
-
-To take the example of “mortuaries,” upon which the Parliament had
-already legislated to the dismay of some of the ecclesiastical party,
-who, as it appears, on the plea that the law was unjust and beyond
-the competence of the State authority, tried in various ways to evade
-the provisions of the Act, which was intended to relieve the laity of
-exactions that, as they very generally believed, had grown into an
-abuse. Christopher Saint-German holds that Parliament was quite within
-its rights. The State could, and on occasion should, legislate as to
-dues payable to the clergy, and settle whether ecclesiastics, who claim
-articles in kind, or sums of money by prescriptive right, ought in
-fact to be allowed them. There is, he admits, a difficulty; he does not
-think that it would be competent for the State to prohibit specific
-gifts to God’s service, or to say that only “so many tapers shall be
-used at a funeral,” or that only so many priests may be bidden to the
-burial, or that only so much may be given in alms. In matters of this
-kind he does not think the State has jurisdiction to interfere. “But
-it has,” he says, “the plain right to make a law, that there shall not
-be given above so many black gowns, or that there shall be no herald
-of arms” present, unless it is the funeral of one “of such a degree,”
-or that “no black cloths should be hung in the streets from the house
-where the person died, to the church, as is used in many cities and
-good towns, or the prohibition of such other things as are but worldly
-pomps, and are rather consolations to the friends that are alive, than
-any relief to the departed soul.” In these and such like things, he
-says: “I think the Parliament has authority to pass laws, so as to
-protect the executors of wills, and relieve them from the necessity of
-spending so much of the inheritance of the deceased man’s heirs.”[69]
-
-In like manner the lawyer holds that in all strictly temporal matters,
-whatever privilege and exemption the State may allow and has allowed
-the clergy, it still possesses the radical power to legislate where
-and when it sees fit. It does not in fact by lapse of time lose the
-ordinary authority it possesses over all subjects of the realm in
-these matters. Thus, for example, he holds that the State can and
-should prohibit all lands in mortmain passing to the Church; and that,
-should it appear to be a matter of public policy, Parliament might
-prohibit and indeed break the appropriations of benefices already
-made to monasteries, cathedrals, and colleges, and order that they
-should return to their original purposes. “The advowson,” he says,
-“is a temporal inheritance, and as such is under the Parliament to
-order it as it sees cause.” This principle, he points out, had been
-practically admitted when the Parliament, in the fourth year of Henry
-IV., cancelled all appropriations of vicarages which had been made from
-the beginning of Richard II.’s reign. It is indeed “good,” he adds,
-“that the authority of the Parliament in this should be known, and that
-it should cause them to observe such statutes as are already made, and
-to distribute some part of the fruits (of the benefices) among poor
-parishioners according to the statute of the twentieth year of King
-Richard II.”
-
-In the same way, and for similar reasons, Saint-German claims that the
-State has full power to determine questions of “Sanctuary,” and to
-legislate as to “benefit of clergy.” Such matters were, he contends,
-only customs of the realm, and in no sense any point of purely
-spiritual prerogative. Like every other custom of the realm, these
-were subject to revision by the supreme secular authority. “The Pope
-by himself,” he adds, “cannot make any Sanctuary in this realm.” This
-question of “Sanctuary” rights was continually causing difficulties
-between the lay and the ecclesiastical authorities. To the legal mind
-the custom was certainly dangerous to the well-being of the State,
-and made the administration of justice unnecessarily complicated,
-especially when ecclesiastics pleaded their privileges, and strongly
-resisted any attempt on the part of legal officials to ignore them.
-Cases were by no means infrequent in the courts in the reigns of Henry
-VII. and Henry VIII., which caused more or less friction between the
-upholders of the two views.[70] To illustrate the state of conflict on
-this, in itself a very minor matter, a trial which took place in London
-in the year 1519 is here given in some detail. One John Savage in that
-year was charged with murder. At the time of his arrest he was living
-in St. John Street (Clerkenwell), and when brought to trial pleaded
-that he had been wrongfully arrested in a place of Sanctuary belonging
-to the Priory of St. John of Jerusalem. To justify his contention and
-obtain his liberty, he called on the Prior of the Knights of St. John
-to maintain his rights and privileges, and vindicate this claim of
-Sanctuary. The prior appeared and produced the grant of Pope Urban
-III., made by Bull dated in 1213, which had been ratified by King Henry
-III. He also cited cases in which he alleged that in the reign of the
-late King Henry VII. felons, who had been seized within the precincts,
-had been restored to Sanctuary, and he therefore argued that this case
-was an infringement of the rights of his priory.
-
-Savage also declared that he was in St. John Street within the
-precincts of the priory “pur amendement de son vie, durant son vie,”
-when on the 8th of June an officer, William Rotte, and others took
-him by force out of the place, and carried him away to the Tower. He
-consequently claimed to be restored to the Sanctuary from which he had
-been abducted. Chief-Justice Fineux, before whom the prisoner had been
-brought, asked him whether he wished to “jeopardy” his case upon his
-plea of Sanctuary, and, upon consultation, John Savage replied in the
-negative, saying that he wished rather to throw himself upon the king’s
-mercy. Fineux on this, said: “In this you are wise, for the privileges
-of St. John’s will not aid you in the form in which you have pleaded
-it. In reality it has no greater privilege of Sanctuary than every
-parish church in the kingdom; that is, it has privileges for forty days
-and no more, and in this it partakes merely of the common law of the
-kingdom, and has no special privilege beyond this.”
-
-Further, Fineux pointed out that even had St. John’s possessed the
-Sanctuary the prior claimed, this right did not extend to the fields,
-&c., but in the opinion of all the judges of the land, to which all the
-bishops and clergy had assented, the bounds of any Sanctuary were the
-church, cloister, and cemetery. Most certain it was that the _ambitus_
-did not extend to gardens, barns, and stables, and in his (Fineux’s)
-opinion, not even to the pantry and buttery. He quotes cases in support
-of his opinion. In one instance a certain William Spencer claimed
-the privilege of Sanctuary when in an orchard of the Grey Friars at
-Coventry. In spite of the assertion of the guardian that the Pope had
-extended the privilege to the whole enclosure, of which the place the
-friars had to recreate themselves in was certainly a portion, the plea
-was disallowed, and William Spencer was hanged.
-
-In regard to the privilege of the forty days, Fineux declared that it
-was so obviously against the common good and in derogation of justice,
-that in his opinion it should not be suffered to continue, and he
-quoted cases where it had been set aside. In several cases where
-Papal privileges had been asserted, the judges had held “quant à les
-Bulles du pape, le pape sans le Roy ne ad power de fayre sanctuarie.”
-In other words, Fineux rejected the plea of the murderer Savage.
-But the case did not stop here, both the prior and Savage, as we
-should say, “appealed,” and the matter was heard in the presence of
-Cardinal Wolsey, Fineux, Brudnell, and several members of the inner
-Star Chamber. Dr. Potkyn, counsel for the Prior of St. John, pleaded
-the “knowledge and allowance of the king” to prove the privilege. No
-decision was arrived at, and a further sitting of the Star Chamber was
-held on November 11, 1520, in the presence of the king, the cardinal,
-all the judges, and divers bishops and canonists, as well as the
-Prior of St. John and the Abbot of Westminster. Before the assembly
-many examples of difficulties in the past were adduced by the judges.
-These difficulties they declared increased so as to endanger the peace
-and law of the country, by reason of the Sanctuaries of Westminster
-and St. John’s. To effect a remedy was the chief reason of the royal
-presence at the meeting. After long discussion it was declared that as
-St. John’s Sanctuary was made, as it had been shown, by Papal Bull,
-it was consequently void even if confirmed by the king’s patent, and
-hence that the priory had no privilege at all except the common one of
-forty days. The judges and all the canonists were quite clear that the
-Pope’s right to make a Sanctuary had never been allowed in England, and
-that every such privilege must come from the king. On the other hand,
-the bishops present and all the clergy were equally satisfied that the
-general forty days’ privilege belonged by right to every parish church.
-The Abbot of Westminster then proved by the production of charters and
-other indubitable evidence that the Sanctuary of Westminster had its
-origin in the grants of various kings, and had only been blessed by the
-Pope.
-
-Fineux pointed out that Sanctuary grants had always been made to
-monasteries and churches “to the laud and honour of God,” and that it
-was not certainly likely to redound to God’s honour when men could
-commit murder and felony, and trust to get into the safe precinct of
-some Sanctuary; neither did he believe that to have bad houses in
-Sanctuaries, and such like abuses, was either to the praise of God or
-for the welfare of the kingdom. Further, that as regards Westminster,
-the abbot had abused his privileges as to the _ambitus_ or precincts
-which in law must be understood in the restricted sense. The cardinal
-admitted that there had been abuses, and a Commission was proposed to
-determine the reasonable bounds. Bishop Voysey, of Exeter, suggested
-that if a Sanctuary man committed murder or felony outside, with
-the hope of getting back again, the privilege of shelter should be
-forfeited; but the majority were against this restriction. On the
-whole, however, it was determined that for the good of the State the
-uses of these Sanctuaries should be curtailed, and that none should be
-allowed in law but such as could show a grant of the privilege from the
-crown.[71]
-
-In the opinion of many, of whom Saint-German was the spokesman, to go
-to another matter, Parliament might assign “all the trees and grass in
-churchyards either to the parson, to the vicar, or to the parish,” as
-it thought fit; for although the ground was hallowed, the proceeds,
-such as “trees and grass, are mere temporals, and as such must be
-regulated by the power of the State.”
-
-Moreover, according to the same view, whilst it would be outside the
-province of the secular law to determine the cut of a priest’s cassock
-or the shape of his tonsure, it could clearly determine that no priest
-should wear cloth made out of the country, or costing above a certain
-price; and it might fix the amount of salary to be paid to a chaplain
-or curate.[72]
-
-There were circumstances, too, under which, in the opinion of
-Saint-German, Parliament not only could interfere to legislate about
-clerical duties, but would be bound to do so. At the time when he was
-writing, the eve of the Reformation, many things seemed to point to
-this necessity for State interference. There were signs of widespread
-religious differences in the world. “Why then,” he asks, “may not
-the king and his Parliament, as well to strengthen the faith and give
-health to the souls of many of his subjects, as to save his realm
-being noted for heresy, seek for the reason of the division now in
-the realm by diversity of sects and opinions?… They shall have great
-reward before God that set their hands to prevent the great danger
-to many souls of men as well spiritual as temporal if this division
-continue long. And as far as I have heard, all the articles that are
-misliked (are aimed) either against the worldly honour, worldly power,
-or worldly riches of spiritual men. To express these articles I hold it
-not expedient, and indeed if what some have reported be true, many of
-them be so far against the truth that no Christian man would hold them
-to be true, and they that do so do it for some other consideration.”[73]
-
-As an example, our author takes the question of Purgatory, which he
-believes is attacked because men want to free themselves from the
-money offerings which belief in the doctrine necessitates. And indeed,
-“if it were ordained by law,” he continues, “that every curate at the
-death of any of their parishioners should be bound to say publicly for
-their souls _Placebo_, _Dirige_ and mass, without taking anything for
-(the service): and further that at a certain time, to be assigned by
-Parliament, as say, once a month, or as it shall be thought convenient,
-they shall do the same and pray for the souls of their parishioners and
-for all Christian souls and for the king and all the realm: and also
-that religious houses do in like manner, I fancy in a short time there
-would be few to say there was no purgatory.”[74]
-
-In some matters Saint-German considered that the State might reasonably
-interfere in regard to the religious life. The State, he thinks, would
-have no right whatever to prohibit religious vows altogether; but it
-would be competent for the secular authority to lay down conditions to
-prevent abuses and generally protect society where such protection was
-needed. “It would be good,” for example, he writes, “to make a law that
-no religious house should receive any child below a certain age into
-the habit, and that he should not be moved from the place into which he
-had been received without the knowledge and assent of friends.” This
-would not be to prohibit religious life, which would not be a just law,
-but only the laying down of conditions. In the fourth year of Henry IV.
-the four Orders of Friars had such a law made for them; “when the four
-Provincials of the said four Orders were sworn by laying their hands
-upon their breasts in open Parliament to observe the said statute.”[75]
-
-In the same way the State may, Saint-German thinks, lay down the
-conditions for matrimony, so long as there was no “interference with
-the sacrament of marriage.” Also, “as I suppose,” he says, “the
-Parliament may well enact that every man that makes profit of any
-offerings (coming) by recourse of pilgrims shall be bound under a
-certain penalty not only to set up certain tables to instruct the
-people how they shall worship the saints, but also cause certain
-sermons to be yearly preached there to instruct the people, so that
-through ignorance they do not rather displease than please the
-saints.”[76]
-
-The State “may also prohibit any miracle being noised abroad on such
-slight evidence as they have been in some places in times past; and
-that they shall not be set up as miracles, under a certain penalty, nor
-reported as miracles by any one till they have been proved such in such
-a manner as shall be appointed by Parliament. And it is not unlikely
-that many persons grudge more at the abuse of pilgrimages than at the
-pilgrimages themselves.” Parliament, he points out, has from time to
-time vindicated its right to act in matters such as these. For example:
-“To the strengthening of the faith it has enacted that no man shall
-presume to preach without leave of his diocesan except certain persons
-exempted in the statute” (2 Henry IV.).[77]
-
-There are, Saint-German notes, many cases where it is by no means
-clear whether they are strictly belonging to spiritual jurisdiction
-or not. Could the law, for example, prohibit a bishop from ordaining
-any candidate to Holy Orders who was not sufficiently learned? Could
-the law which exempted priests from serving on any inquest or jury
-be abrogated? These, and such like matters in the borderland, are
-debatable questions; but Saint-German makes it clear that, according
-to his view, it is a mistake for clerics to claim more exemptions from
-the common law than is absolutely necessary. That there must be every
-protection for their purely spiritual functions, he fully and cordially
-admits; but when all this is allowed, in his opinion, it is a grave
-mistake for the clergy, even from their point of view, to try and
-stretch their immunities and exemptions beyond the required limit. The
-less the clergy were made a “caste,” and the more they fell in with the
-nation at large, the better it would be for all parties in the State.
-
-On the question of tithe, Saint-German took the laymen’s view. To the
-ecclesiastics of the period tithes were spiritual matters, and all
-questions arising out of them should be settled by archbishop or bishop
-in spiritual courts. The lawyer, on the other hand, maintained that
-though given to secure spiritual services, in themselves tithes were
-temporal, and therefore should fall under the administration of the
-State. Who, for example, was to determine what was payable on new land,
-and to whom; say on land recovered from the sea? In the first place,
-according to the lawyer, it should be the owner of the soil who should
-apportion the payment, and failing him, the Parliament, and not the
-spirituality.
-
-In another work[78] Saint-German puts his view more clearly. A tithe
-that comes irregularly, say once in ten or twenty years, cannot be
-considered necessary for the support of the clergy. That people were
-bound to contribute to the just and reasonable maintenance of those
-who serve the altar did not admit of doubt, but, he holds, a question
-arises as to the justice of the amount in individual cases. “Though
-the people be bound by the law of reason, and also the law of God,
-to find their spiritual ministers a reasonable portion of goods to
-live upon, yet that they shall pay precisely the tenth part to their
-spiritual ministers in the name of that portion is but the law of man.”
-If the tithe did not at any time suffice, “the people would be bound
-to give more” in order to fulfil their Christian duty. Some authority
-must determine, and in his opinion as a lawyer and a layman, the only
-authority competent to deal with the matter, so far as the payment of
-money was concerned, was the State; and consequently Parliament might,
-and at times ought, to legislate about the payment of tithes.[79]
-
-In a second _Treatise concerning the power of the clergy and the laws
-of the realm_, Saint-German returns to this subject of the relation
-between the two jurisdictions. This book, however, was published
-after Henry VIII. had received his parliamentary title of Supreme
-Head of the Church, and by that time the author’s views had naturally
-become somewhat more advanced on the side of State power. In regard
-to the king’s “Headship,” he declares that in reality it is nothing
-new, but if properly understood would be recognised as implied in
-the kingly power, and as having nothing whatever to do with the
-spiritual prerogatives as such. He has been speaking of the writ, _de
-excommunicato capiendo_, by which the State had been accustomed to
-seize the person of one who had been excommunicated by the Church for
-the purpose of punishment by the secular arm, and he argues that if the
-Parliament were to abrogate the law, such a change would in no sense be
-a derogation of the rights of the Church. Put briefly, the principle
-upon which he bases this opinion is one which was made to apply to many
-other cases besides this special one. It is this: that for a spiritual
-offence no one ought in justice to be made to suffer in the temporal
-order.[80] Whilst insisting on this, moreover, the lawyer maintained
-that there were many things which had come to be regarded as spiritual,
-which were, in reality, temporal, and that it would be better that
-these should be altogether transferred to the secular arm of the State.
-Such, for example, were, in his opinion, the proving and administration
-of wills, the citation and consideration of cases of slander and libel
-and other matters of this nature. “And there is no doubt,” he says,
-“but that the Parliament may with a cause take that power from them
-(_i.e._ the clergy), and might likewise have done so before it was
-recognised by the Parliament and the clergy that the king was Head of
-the Church of England; for he was so before the recognition was made,
-just as all other Christian princes are in their own realms over all
-their subjects, spiritual and temporal.”[81]
-
-Moreover, as regards this, “it lieth in princes to appease all
-variances and unquietness that shall arise among the people, by
-whatsoever occasion it rise, spiritual or temporal. And the king’s
-grace has now no new authority in that he is confessed by the clergy
-and authorised by Parliament to be the Head of the Church of England.
-For it is only a declaration of his first power committed by God to
-kingly and regal authority and no new grant. Further, that, for all the
-power that he has as Head of the Church, he has yet no authority to
-minister any sacraments, nor to do any other spiritual thing whereof
-our Lord gave power to His apostles and disciples only.… And there is
-no doubt that such power as the clergy have by the immediate grant
-of Christ, neither the king nor his Parliament can take from them,
-although they may order the manner of the doing.”[82]
-
-The question whether for grave offences the clergy could be tried by
-the king’s judges was one which had long raised bitter feeling on the
-one side and the other. In 1512, Parliament had done something to
-vindicate the power of the secular arm by passing a law practically
-confining the immunity of the clergy to those in sacred orders. It
-ordained “that all persons hereafter committing murder or felony,
-&c., should not be admitted to the benefit of clergy.” This act led to
-a great dispute in the next Parliament, held in 1515. The clergy as
-a body resented the statute as an infringement upon their rights and
-privileges, and the Abbot of Winchcombe preached at St. Paul’s Cross to
-this effect, declaring that the Lords Spiritual who had assented to the
-measure had incurred ecclesiastical censures. He argued that all clerks
-were in Holy Orders, and that they were consequently not amenable to
-the secular tribunals.
-
-The king, at the request of many of the Temporal Lords and several
-of the Commons, ordered the case to be argued at a meeting held at
-Blackfriars at which the judges were present. At this debate, Dr.
-Henry Standish, a Friar Minor, defended the action of Parliament, and
-maintained that it was a matter of public policy that clerks guilty of
-such offences should be tried by the ordinary process of law. In reply
-to the assertion that there was a decree or canon forbidding it, and
-that all Christians were bound by the canons under pain of mortal sin,
-Standish said: “God forbid; for there is a decree that all bishops
-should be resident at their cathedrals upon every festival day, and yet
-we see the greater part of the English bishops practise the contrary.”
-Moreover, he maintained that the right of exemption of clerks from
-secular jurisdiction had never been allowed in England. The bishops
-were unanimously against the position of Standish, and there can be
-little doubt that they had put forward the Abbot of Winchcombe to be
-their spokesman at St. Paul’s Cross. Later on, Standish was charged
-before Convocation with holding tenets derogatory to the privileges
-and jurisdiction of ecclesiastics. He claimed the protection of the
-king, and the Temporal Lords and judges urged the king at all costs to
-maintain his right of royal jurisdiction in the matters at issue.
-
-Again a meeting of judges, certain members of Parliament, and the
-king’s council, spiritual and temporal, were assembled to deliberate on
-the matter at the Blackfriars. Dr. Standish was supposed to have said
-that the lesser Orders were not Holy, and that the exemption of clerks
-was not _de jure divino_. These opinions he practically admitted,
-saying with regard to the first that there was a great difference
-between the greater Orders and the lesser; and in regard to the second,
-“that the summoning of clerks before temporal judges implied no
-repugnance to the positive law of God.” He further partially admitted
-saying that “the study of canon law ought to be laid aside, because
-being but ministerial to divinity it taught people to despise that
-nobler science.” The judges decided generally against the contention
-of the clergy, and they, with other lords, met the king at Baynard’s
-Castle to tender their advice on the matter. Here Wolsey, kneeling
-before the king, declared “that he believed none of the clergy had any
-intention to disoblige the prerogative royal, that for his part he owed
-all his promotion to his Highness’ favour, and therefore would never
-assent to anything that should lessen the rights of the Crown.” But
-“that this business of conventing clerks before temporal judges was,
-in the opinion of the clergy, directly contrary to the laws of God and
-the liberties of Holy Church, and that both himself and the rest of the
-prelates were bound by their oath to maintain this exemption. For this
-reason he entreated the king, in the name of the clergy, to refer the
-matter for decision to the Pope.” Archbishop Warham added that in old
-times some of the fathers of the Church had opposed the matter so far
-as to suffer martyrdom in the quarrel. On the other hand, Judge Fineux
-pointed out that spiritual judges had no right by any statute to judge
-any clerk for felony, and for this reason many churchmen had admitted
-the competence of the secular courts for this purpose.
-
-The king finally replied on the whole case. “By the Providence of God,”
-he said, “we are King of England, in which realm our predecessors
-have never owned a superior, and I would have you (the clergy) take
-notice that we are resolved to maintain the rights of our crown and
-temporal jurisdiction in as ample manner as any of our progenitors.”
-In conclusion, the Archbishop of Canterbury petitioned the king in the
-name of the clergy for the matter to rest till such time as they could
-lay the case before the See of Rome for advice, promising that if the
-non-exemption of clerks was declared not to be against the law of God,
-they would willingly conform to the usage of the country.
-
-On this whole question, Saint-German maintained that the clergy had
-been granted exemption from the civil law not as a right but as a
-favour. There was, in his opinion, nothing whatever in the nature of
-the clerical state to justify any claim to absolute exemption, nor was
-it, he contended, against the law of God that the clergy should be
-tried for felony and other crimes by civil judges. In all such things
-they, like the rest of his people, were subject to their prince,
-who, because he was a Christian, did not, for that reason, have any
-diminished authority over his subjects. “Christ,” he remarks, “sent His
-apostles,” as appears from the said words, “to be teachers in spiritual
-matters, and not to be like princes, or to take from princes their
-power.”[83] Some, indeed, he says, argue that since the coming of our
-Lord “Christian princes have derived their temporal power from the
-spiritual power,” established by Him in right of His full and complete
-dominion over the world. But Saint-German not only holds that such a
-claim has no foundation in itself, but that all manner of texts of Holy
-Scripture which are adduced in proof of the contention are plainly
-twisted from their true meaning by the spiritual authority. And many,
-he says, talk as if the clergy were the Church, and the Church the
-clergy, whereas they are only one portion, perhaps the most important,
-and possessed of greater and special functions; but they were not the
-whole, and were, indeed, endowed with these prerogatives for the use
-and benefit of the lay portion of Christ’s Church.
-
-Contrary to what might have been supposed, the difficulty between
-the clergy and laity about the exemption of clerics from all lay
-jurisdiction did not apparently reach any very acute stage. Sir Thomas
-More says that “as for the conventing of priests before secular
-judges, the truth is that at one time the occasion of a sermon made the
-matter come to a discussion before the king’s Highness. But neither at
-any time since, nor many years before, I never heard that there was any
-difficulty about it, and, moreover, that matter ceased long before any
-word sprang up about this great general division.”[84]
-
-One question, theoretical indeed, but sufficiently practical to
-indicate the current of thought and feeling prevalent at the time, was
-as to the multiplication of holidays on which no work was allowed to be
-done by ecclesiastical law. Saint-German, in common with other laymen
-of the period, maintained that the king, or Parliament, as representing
-the supreme will of the State, could refuse to allow the spiritual
-authority to make new holidays. About the Sunday he is doubtful, though
-he inclines to the opinion that so long as there was one day in the
-week set apart for rest and prayer, the actual day could be determined
-by the State. The Sunday, he says, is partly by the law of God, partly
-by the law of man. “But as for the other holidays, these are but
-ceremonies, introduced by the devotion of the people through the good
-example of their bishops and priests.” And “if the multitude of the
-holidays is thought hurtful to the commonwealth, and tending rather to
-increase vice than virtue, or to give occasion of pride rather than
-meekness, as peradventure the synod ales and particular holidays have
-done in some places, then Parliament has good authority to reform
-it. But as for the holidays that are kept in honour of Our Lady, the
-Apostles and other ancient Saints, these seem right necessary and
-expedient.”[85]
-
-In his work, _Salem and Bizance_, which appeared in 1533 as a reply
-to Sir Thomas More’s _Apology_, Saint-German takes up the same ground
-as in his more strictly legal tracts. He holds that a distinction
-between the purely spiritual functions of the clergy and their position
-as individuals in the State ought to be allowed and recognised. The
-attitude of ecclesiastics generally to such a view was, perhaps not
-unnaturally, one of opposition, and where the State had already stepped
-in and legislated, as for instance in the case of “mortuaries,” their
-action in trying to evade the prescription of the law, Saint-German
-declared was doing much harm, in emphasising a needless conflict
-between the ecclesiastical and secular jurisdiction. “As long,” he
-writes, “as spiritual rulers will pretend that their authority is so
-high and so immediately derived from God that people are bound to
-obey them and to accept all that they do and teach without argument,
-resistance, or murmuring against them” there will be discord and
-difficulty.[86]
-
-Christopher Saint-German’s position was not by any means that of one
-who would attack the clergy all along the line, and deprive them of
-all power and influence, like so many of the foreign sectaries of the
-time. He admitted, and indeed insisted on, the fact that they had
-received great and undoubted powers by their high vocation, having
-their spiritual jurisdiction immediately from God. Their temporalities,
-however, he maintained they received from the secular power, and were
-protected by the State in their possession. He fully agreed “that such
-things as the whole clergy of Christendom teach and order in spiritual
-things, and which of long time have been by long custom and usage in
-the whole body of Christendom ratified, agreed, and confirmed, by the
-spirituality and temporality, ought to be received with reverence.”[87]
-
-To this part of Saint-German’s book Sir Thomas More takes exception
-in his _Apology_. The former had said, that as long as the spiritual
-rulers will pretend that their authority is so high and so immediately
-derived from God that the people are bound to obey them and accept
-all that they do and teach “there would certainly be divisions and
-dissensions.” “If he mean,” replies More, “that they speak thus of all
-their whole authority that they may now lawfully do and say at this
-time: I answer that they neither pretend, nor never did, that all their
-authority is given them immediately by God. They have authority now
-to do divers things by the grant of kings and princes, just as many
-temporal men also have, and by such grants they have such rights in
-such things as temporal men have in theirs.”[88]
-
-Some authority and power they certainly have from God, he says, “For
-the greatest and highest and most excellent authority that they
-have, either God has Himself given it to them, or else they are very
-presumptuous and usurp many things far above all reason. For I have
-never read, or at least I do not remember to have read, that any king
-granted them the authority that now not only prelates but other poor
-plain priests daily take on them in ministering the sacraments and
-consecrating the Blessed Body of Christ.”[89]
-
-Another popular book of the period, published by Berthelet, just on the
-eve of the Reformation, is the anonymous _Dialogue between a Knight
-and a Clerk concerning the power spiritual and temporal_. We are not
-here concerned with the author’s views as to the power of the Popes,
-but only with what he states about the attitude of men’s minds to the
-difficulties consequent upon the confusion of the two jurisdictions.
-_Miles_ (the Knight), who, of course, took the part of the upholder of
-the secular power, clearly distinguished, like Saint-German, between
-directly spiritual prerogatives and the authority and position assured
-to the clergy by the State. “God forbid,” he says, “that I should deny
-the right of Holy Church to know and correct men for their sins. Not
-to hold this would be to deny the sacrament of Penance and Confession
-altogether.”[90] Moreover, like Saint-German, this author, in the
-person of _Miles_, insists that the temporality “are bound to find the
-spirituality that worship and serve God all that is necessary for them.
-For so do all nations.”[91] But the direction of such temporalities
-must, he contends, be in the hands of the State. “What,” asks the
-conservative cleric, in the person of _Clericus_, “What have princes
-and kings to do with the governance of our temporalities? Let them take
-their own and order their own, and suffer us to be in peace with ours.”
-
-“Sir,” replies _Miles_, “the princes must in any wise have to do
-therewith. I pray you, ought not men above all things to mind the
-health of our souls? Ought not we to see the wills of our forefathers
-fulfilled? Falleth it not to you to pray for our forefathers that
-are passed out of this life? And did not our fathers give you our
-temporalities right plentifully, to the intent that you should pray
-for them and spend it all to the honour of God? And ye do nothing so;
-but ye spend your temporalities in sinful deeds and vanities, which
-temporalities ye should spend in works of charity, and in alms-deeds to
-the poor and needy. For to this purpose our forefathers gave ‘great and
-huge dominions.’ You have received them ‘to the intent to have clothes
-and food … and all overplus besides these you ought to spend on deeds
-of mercy and pity, as on poor people that are in need, and on such as
-are sick and diseased and oppressed with misery.’”[92]
-
-Further, _Miles_ hints that there are many at that time who were
-casting hungry eyes upon the riches of the Church, and that were it
-not for the protecting power of the State, the clergy would soon find
-that they were in worse plight than they think themselves to be. And,
-in answer to the complaints of _Clericus_ that ecclesiastics are taxed
-too hardly for money to be spent on soldiers, ships, and engines of
-war, he tells him that there is no reason in the nature of things why
-ecclesiastical property should not bear the burden of national works
-as well as every other kind of wealth. “I pray you hold your noise,”
-he exclaims somewhat rudely; “stop your grudging and grumbling, and
-listen patiently. Look at your many neighbours round about you in the
-land, who, wanting the wherewith to support life, gape still after your
-goods. If the king’s power failed, what rest should you have? Would not
-the gentlemen such as be needy, and such as have spent their substance
-prodigally, when they have consumed their own, turn to yours, and waste
-and destroy all you have? Therefore, the king’s strength is to you
-instead of a strong wall, and you wot well that the king’s peace is
-your peace, and the king’s safeguard is your safeguard.”[93]
-
-The foregoing pages represent some of the practical difficulties
-which were being experienced on the eve of the Reformation between
-the ecclesiastical and lay portion of the State in the question of
-jurisdiction. Everything points to the fact that the chief difficulty
-was certainly not religious. The ecclesiastical jurisdiction in
-matters spiritual was cordially admitted by all but a few fanatics.
-What even many churchmen objected to, were the claims for exemption
-put forward by ecclesiastics in the name of religion, which they
-felt to be a stretching of spiritual prerogatives into the domain of
-the temporal sovereign. History has shown that most of these claims
-have in practice been disallowed, not only without detriment to the
-spiritual work of the Church, but in some instances at least it was the
-frank recognition of the State rights, which, under Providence, saved
-nations from the general defection which seemed to threaten the old
-ecclesiastical system. Most of the difficulties which were, as we have
-seen, experienced and debated in England were unfelt in Spain, where
-the sovereign from the first made his position as to the temporalities
-of the Church clearly understood by all. In Naples, in like manner, the
-right of State patronage, however objectionable to the ecclesiastical
-legists, was strictly maintained. In France, the danger which at one
-time threatened an overthrow of religion similar to that which had
-fallen on Germany, and which at the time was looming dark over England,
-was averted by the celebrated Concordat between Leo X. and Francis
-I. By this settlement of outstanding difficulties between the two
-jurisdictions, all rights of election to ecclesiastical dignities
-was swept away with the full and express sanction of the Pope. The
-nomination of all bishops and other dignitaries was vested in the king,
-subject, of course, to Papal confirmation. All appeals were, in the
-first place, to be carried in ordinary cases to immediate superiors
-acting in the fixed tribunals of the country, and then only to the Holy
-See. The Papal power of appointment to benefices was by this agreement
-strictly limited; and the policy of the document was generally directed
-to securing the most important ecclesiastical positions, including even
-parish churches in towns, to educated men. It is to this settlement of
-outstanding difficulties, the constant causes of friction--a settlement
-of difficulties which must be regarded as economic and administrative
-rather than as religious--that so good a judge as M. Hanotaux, the
-statesman and historian, attributes nothing less than the maintenance
-of the old religion in France. In his opinion, this Concordat did in
-fact remove, to a great extent, the genuine grievances which had long
-been felt by the people at large, which elsewhere the Reformers of the
-sixteenth century skilfully seized upon, as likely to afford them the
-most plausible means for furthering their schemes of change in matters
-strictly religious.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-ENGLAND AND THE POPE
-
-
-Nothing is more necessary for one who desires to appreciate the true
-meaning of the English Reformation than to understand the attitude of
-men’s minds to the Pope and the See of Rome on the eve of the great
-change. As in the event, the religious upheaval did, in fact, lead
-to a national rejection of the jurisdiction of the Roman Pontiff,
-it is not unnatural that those who do not look below the surface
-should see in this act the outcome and inevitable consequence of
-long-continued irritation at a foreign domination. The renunciation
-of Papal jurisdiction, in other words, is taken as sufficient
-evidence of national hostility to the Holy See. If this be the true
-explanation of the fact, it is obvious that in the literature of the
-period immediately preceding the formal renunciation of ecclesiastical
-dependence on Rome, evidence more or less abundant will be found of
-this feeling of dislike, if not of detestation, for a yoke which we are
-told had become unbearable.
-
-At the outset, it must be confessed that any one who will go to the
-literature of the period with the expectation of collecting evidence
-of this kind is doomed to disappointment. If we put on one side the
-diatribes and scurrilous invectives of advanced reformers, when the
-day of the doctrinal Reformation had already dawned, the inquirer in
-this field of knowledge can hardly fail to be struck by the absence of
-indications of any real hostility to the See of Rome in the period in
-question. So far as the works of the age are concerned: so far, too, as
-the acts of individuals and even of those who were responsible agents
-of the State go, the evidence of an unquestioned acceptance of the
-spiritual jurisdiction of the Pope, as Head of the Christian Church, is
-simply overwhelming. In their acceptance of this supreme authority the
-English were perhaps neither demonstrative nor loudly protesting, but
-this in no way derogated from their loyal and unquestioning acceptance
-of the supremacy of the Holy See. History shows that up to the very
-eve of the rejection of this supremacy the attitude of Englishmen, in
-spite of difficulties and misunderstandings, had been persistently one
-of respect for the Pope as their spiritual head. Whilst other nations
-of Christendom had been in the past centuries engaged in endeavours by
-diplomacy, and even by force of arms, to capture the Pope that they
-might use him for their own national profit, England, with nothing to
-gain, expecting nothing, seeking nothing, had never entered on that
-line of policy, but had been content to bow to his authority as to
-that of the appointed Head of Christ’s Church on earth. Of this much
-there can be no doubt. They did not reason about it, nor sift and sort
-the grounds of their acceptance, any more than a child would dream of
-searching into, or philosophising upon, the obedience he freely gives
-to his parents.
-
-That there were at times disagreements and quarrels may be admitted
-without in the least affecting the real attitude and uninterrupted
-spiritual dependence of England on the Holy See. Such disputes were
-wholly the outcome of misunderstandings as to matters in the domain
-rather of the temporal than of the spiritual, or of points in the broad
-debatable land that lies between the two jurisdictions. It is a failure
-to understand the distinction which exists between these that has led
-many writers to think that in the rejection by Englishmen of claims put
-forward at various times by the Roman curia in matters wholly temporal,
-or where the temporal became involved in the spiritual, they have a
-proof that England never fully acknowledged the spiritual headship of
-the See of Rome.
-
-That the Pope did in fact exercise great powers in England over and
-above those in his spiritual prerogative is a matter of history. No one
-has more thoroughly examined this subject than Professor Maitland, and
-the summary of his conclusions given in his _History of English Law_
-will serve to correct many misconceptions upon the matter. What he says
-may be taken as giving a fairly accurate picture of the relations of
-the Christian nations of Christendom to the Holy See from the twelfth
-century to the disintegration of the system in the throes of the
-Reformation. “It was a wonderful system,” he writes. “The whole of
-Western Europe was subject to the jurisdiction of one tribunal of last
-resort, the Roman curia. Appeals to it were encouraged by all manner
-of means, appeals at almost every stage of almost every proceeding.
-But the Pope was far more than the president of a court of appeal.
-Very frequently the courts Christian which did justice in England
-were courts which were acting under his supervision and carrying out
-his written instructions. A very large part, and by far the most
-permanently important part, of the ecclesiastical litigation that went
-on in this country came before English prelates who were sitting not as
-English prelates, not as ‘judges ordinary,’ but as mere delegates of
-the Pope, commissioned to hear and determine this or that particular
-case. Bracton, indeed, treats the Pope as the ordinary judge of every
-Englishman in spiritual things, and the only ordinary judge whose
-powers are unlimited.”
-
-The Pope enjoyed a power of declaring the law to which but very wide
-and very vague limits could be set. Each separate church might have its
-customs, but there was a _lex communis_, a common law, of the universal
-Church. In the view of the canonist, any special rules of the Church of
-England have hardly a wider scope, hardly a less dependent place, than
-have the customs of Kent or the bye-laws of London in the eye of the
-English lawyer.[94]
-
-We have only to examine the _Regesta_ of the Popes, even up to the dawn
-of difficulties in the reign of Henry VIII., to see that the system
-as sketched in this passage was in full working order; and it was
-herein that chiefly lay the danger even to the spiritual prerogatives
-of the Head of the Church. Had the Providence of God destined that
-the nations of the world should have become a Christendom in fact--a
-theocracy presided over by his Vicar on earth--the system elaborated by
-the Roman curia would not have tended doubtless to obscure the real and
-essential prerogatives of the spiritual Head of the Christian Church.
-As it was by Providence ordained, and as subsequent events have shown,
-claims of authority to determine matters more or less of the temporal
-order, together with the worldly pomp and show with which the Popes of
-the renaissance had surrounded themselves, not only tended to obscure
-the higher and supernatural powers which are the enduring heritage
-of St. Peter’s successors in the See of Rome; but, however clear the
-distinction between the necessary and the accidental prerogatives might
-appear to the mind of the trained theologian or the perception of the
-saint, to the ordinary man, when the one was called in question the
-other was imperilled. And, as a fact, in England popular irritation at
-the interference of the spirituality generally in matters not wholly
-within the strictly ecclesiastical sphere was, at a given moment,
-skilfully turned by the small reforming party into national, if tacit,
-acquiescence in the rejection of even the spiritual prerogatives of the
-Roman Pontiffs.
-
-It is necessary to insist upon this matter if the full meaning of the
-Reformation movement is to be understood. Here in England, there can
-be no doubt, on the one hand, that no nation more fully and freely
-bowed to the spiritual supremacy of the Holy See; on the other, that
-there was a dislike of interference in matters which they regarded,
-rightly or wrongly, as outside the sphere of the Papal prerogative.
-The national feeling had grown by leaps and bounds in the early years
-of the sixteenth century. But it was not until the ardent spirits
-among the doctrinal reformers had succeeded in weakening the hold of
-Catholicity in religion on the hearts of the people that this rise of
-national feeling entered into the ecclesiastical domain, and the love
-of country could be effectually used to turn them against the Pope,
-even as Head of the Christian Church. With this distinction clearly
-before the mind, it is possible to understand the general attitude of
-the English nation to the Pope and his authority on the eve of the
-overthrow of his jurisdiction.
-
-To begin with some evidence of popular teaching as to the Pope’s
-position as Head of the Church. It is, of course, evident that in many
-works the supremacy of the Holy See is assumed and not positively
-stated. This is exactly what we should expect in a matter which was
-certainly taken for granted by all. William Bond, a learned priest, and
-subsequently a monk of Syon, with Richard Whitford, was the author of
-a book called the _Pilgrimage of Perfection_, published by Wynkyn de
-Worde in 1531. It is a work, as the author tells us, “very profitable
-to all Christian persons to read”; and the third book consists of a
-long and careful explanation of the Creed. In the section treating
-about the tenth article is to be found a very complete statement of
-the teaching of the Christian religion on the Church. After taking
-the marks of the Church, the author says: “There may be set no other
-foundation for the Church, but only that which is put, namely, Christ
-Jesus. It is certain, since it is founded on the Apostles, as our Lord
-said to Peter, ‘I have prayed that thy faith fail not.’ And no more it
-shall; for (as St. Cyprian says) the Church of Rome was never yet the
-root of heresy. This Church Apostolic is so named the Church of Rome,
-because St. Peter and St. Paul, who under Christ were heads and princes
-of this Church, deposited there the tabernacles of their bodies, which
-God willed should be buried there and rest in Rome, and that should be
-the chief see in the world; just as commonly in all other places the
-chief see of the bishop is where the chief saint and bishop of the see
-is buried. By this you may know how Christ is the Head of the Church,
-and how our Holy Father the Pope of Rome is Head of the Church. Many,
-because they know not this mystery of Holy Scripture, have erred and
-fallen to heresies in denying the excellent dignity of our Holy Father
-the Pope of Rome.”[95]
-
-In the same way Roger Edgworth, a preacher in the reign of Henry VIII.,
-speaking on the text “_Tu vocaberis Cephas_,” says: “And by this the
-error and ignorance of certain summalists are confounded, who take
-this text as one of their strongest reasons for the supremacy of the
-Pope of Rome. In so doing, such summalists would plainly destroy the
-text of St. John’s Gospel to serve their purpose, which they have no
-need to do, for there are as well texts of Holy Scripture and passages
-of ancient writers which abundantly prove the said primacy of the
-Pope.”[96]
-
-When by 1523 the attacks of Luther and his followers on the position
-of the Pope had turned men’s minds in England to the question, and
-caused them to examine into the grounds of their belief, several books
-on the subject appeared in England. One in particular, intended to
-be subsidiary to the volume published by the king himself against
-Luther, was written by a theologian named Edward Powell, and published
-by Pynson in London. In his preface, Powell says that before printing
-his work he had submitted it to the most learned authority at Oxford
-(_eruditissimo Oxoniensium_). The first part of the book is devoted to
-a scientific treatise upon the Pope’s supremacy, with all the proofs
-from Scripture and the Fathers set out in detail. “This then,” he
-concludes, “is the Catholic Church, which, having the Roman Pontiff,
-the successor of Peter, as its head, offers the means of sanctifying
-the souls of all its members, and testifies to the truth of all that
-is to be taught.” The high priesthood of Peter “is said to be Roman,
-not because it cannot be elsewhere, but through a certain congruity
-which makes Rome the most fitting place. That is, that where the
-centre of the world’s government was, there also should be placed the
-high priesthood of Christ. Just as of old the summus Pontifex was in
-Jerusalem, the metropolis of the Jewish nation, so now it is in Rome,
-the centre of Christian civilisation.”[97]
-
-We naturally, of course, turn to the works of Sir Thomas More for
-evidence of the teaching as to the Pope’s position at this period; and
-his testimony is abundant and definite. Thus in the second book of his
-_Dyalogue_, written in 1528, arguing that there must be unity in the
-Church of Christ, he points out that the effect of Lutheranism has
-been to breed diversity of faith and practice. “Though they began so
-late,” he writes, “yet there are not only as many sects almost as men,
-but also the masters themselves change their minds and their opinions
-every day. Bohemia is also in the same case: one faith in the town,
-another in the field; one in Prague, another in the next town; and yet
-in Prague itself, one faith in one street, another in the next. And yet
-all these acknowledge that they cannot have the Sacraments ministered
-but by such priests as are made by authority derived and conveyed from
-the Pope who is, under Christ, Vicar and head of our Church.”[98] It
-is important to note in this passage how the author takes for granted
-the Pope’s supreme authority over the Christian Church. To this subject
-he returns, and is more explicit in a later chapter of the same book.
-The Church, he says, is the “company and congregation of all nations
-professing the name of Christ.” This church “has begun with Christ, and
-has had Him for its head and St. Peter His Vicar after Him, and the
-head under Him; and always since, the successors of him continually.
-And it has had His holy faith and His blessed Sacraments and His holy
-Scriptures delivered, kept, and conserved therein by God and His Holy
-Spirit, and albeit some nations fall away, yet just as no matter how
-many boughs whatever fall from the tree, even though more fall than be
-left thereon, still there is no doubt which is the very tree, although
-each of them were planted again in another place and grew to a greater
-than the stock it first came off, in the same way we see and know well
-that all the companies and sects of heretics and schismatics, however
-great they grow, come out of this Church I speak of; and we know that
-the heretics are they that are severed, and the Church the stock that
-they all come out of.”[99] Here Sir Thomas More expressly gives
-communion with the successors of St. Peter as one of the chief tests of
-the true Church.
-
-Again, in his _Confutation of Tyndale’s Answer_, written in 1532
-when he was Lord Chancellor, Sir Thomas More speaks specially about
-the absolute necessity of the Church being One and not able to teach
-error. There is one known and recognised Church existing throughout
-the world, which “is that mystical body be it never so sick.” Of this
-mystical body “Christ is the principal head”; and it is no part of his
-concern, he says, for the moment to determine “whether the successor
-of St. Peter is his vicar-general and head under him, as all Christian
-nations have now long taken him.”[100] Later on he classes himself with
-“poor popish men,”[101] and in the fifth book he discusses the question
-“whether the Pope and his sect” (as Tyndale called them) “is Christ’s
-Church or no.” On this matter More is perfectly clear. “I call the
-Church of Christ,” he says, “the known Catholic Church of all Christian
-nations, neither gone out nor cut off. And although all these nations
-do now and have long since recognised and acknowledged the Pope, not as
-the bishop of Rome but as the successor of St. Peter, to be their chief
-spiritual governor under God and Christ’s Vicar on earth, yet I never
-put the Pope as part of the definition of the Church, by defining it
-to be the common known congregation of all Christian nations under one
-head the Pope.”
-
-I avoided this definition purposely, he continues, so as not “to
-entangle the matter with the two questions at once, for I knew well
-that the Church being proved this common known Catholic congregation
-of all Christian nations abiding together in one faith, neither fallen
-nor cut off; there might, peradventure, be made a second question after
-that, whether over all this Catholic Church the Pope must needs be
-head and chief governor and chief spiritual shepherd, or whether, if
-the unity of the faith was kept among them all, every province might
-have its own spiritual chief over itself, without any recourse unto the
-Pope.…
-
-“For the avoiding of all such intricacies, I purposely abstained from
-putting the Pope as part of the definition of the Church, as a thing
-that was not necessary; for if he be the necessary head, he is included
-in the name of the whole body, and whether he be or not is a matter to
-be treated and disputed of besides” (p. 615). As to Tyndale’s railing
-against the authority of the Pope because there have been “Popes that
-have evil played their parts,” he should remember, says More, that
-“there have been Popes again right holy men, saints and martyrs too,”
-and that, moreover, the personal question of goodness or badness has
-nothing to say to the office.[102]
-
-In like manner, More, when arguing against Friar Barnes, says that
-like the Donatists “these heretics call the Catholic Christian people
-papists,” and in this they are right, since “Saint Austin called the
-successor of Saint Peter the chief head on earth of the whole Catholic
-Church, as well as any man does now.” He here plainly states his view
-of the supremacy of the See of Rome.[103] He accepted it not only as
-an antiquarian fact, but as a thing necessary for the preservation
-of the unity of the Faith. Into the further question whether the
-office of supreme pastor was established by Christ Himself, or, as
-theologians would say, _de jure divino_, or whether it had grown with
-the growth and needs of the Church, More did not then enter. The fact
-was sufficient for him that the only Christian Church he recognised had
-for long ages regarded the Pope as the _Pastor pastorum_, the supreme
-spiritual head of the Church of Christ. His own words, almost at the
-end of his life, are the best indication of his mature conclusion on
-this matter. “I have,” he says, “by the grace of God, been always a
-Catholic, never out of communion with the Roman Pontiff; but I have
-heard it said at times that the authority of the Roman Pontiff was
-certainly lawful and to be respected, but still an authority derived
-from human law, and not standing upon a divine prescription. Then, when
-I observed that public affairs were so ordered that the sources of the
-power of the Roman Pontiff would necessarily be examined, I gave myself
-up to a diligent examination of that question for the space of seven
-years, and found that the authority of the Roman Pontiff, which you
-rashly--I will not use stronger language--have set aside, is not only
-lawful to be respected and necessary, but also grounded on the divine
-law and prescription. That is my opinion, that is the belief in which,
-by the grace of God, I shall die.”[104]
-
-Looking at More’s position in regard to this question in the light of
-all that he has written, it would seem to be certain that he never
-for a moment doubted that the Papacy was necessary for the Church. He
-accepted this without regard to the reasons of the faith that was in
-him, and in this he was not different from the body of Englishmen at
-large. When, in 1522, the book by Henry VIII. appeared against Luther,
-it drew the attention of Sir Thomas specially to a consideration of the
-grounds upon which the supremacy of the Pope was held by Catholics. As
-the result of his examination he became so convinced that it was of
-divine institution that “my conscience would be in right great peril,”
-he says, “if I should follow the other side and deny the primacy to
-be provided of God.” Even before examination More evidently held
-implicitly the same ideas, since in his Latin book against Luther,
-published in 1523, he declared his entire agreement with Bishop Fisher
-on the subject. That the latter was fully acquainted with the reasons
-which went to prove that the Papacy was of divine institution, and that
-he fully accepted it as such, is certain.[105]
-
-When, with the failure of the divorce proceedings, came the rejection
-of Papal supremacy in England, there were plenty of people ready
-to take the winning side, urging that the rejection was just, and
-not contrary to the true conception of the Christian Church. It is
-interesting to note that in all the pulpit tirades against the Pope
-and what was called his “usurped supremacy,” there is no suggestion
-that this supremacy had not hitherto been fully and freely recognised
-by all in the country. On the contrary, the change was regarded as a
-happy emancipation from an authority which had been hitherto submitted
-to without question or doubt. A sermon preached at St. Paul’s the
-Sunday after the execution of the Venerable Bishop Fisher, and a few
-days before Sir Thomas More was called to lay down his life for the
-same cause, is of interest, as specially making mention of these two
-great men, and of the reasons which had forced them to lay down their
-lives in the Pope’s quarrel. The preacher was one Simon Matthew,
-and his object was to instruct the people in the new theory of the
-Christian Church necessary on the rejection of the headship of the
-Pope. “The diversity of regions and countries,” he says, “does not
-make any diversity of churches, but a unity of faith makes all regions
-one Church.” “There was,” he continued, “no necessity to know Peter,
-as many have reckoned, in the Bishop of Rome, (teaching) that except
-we knew him and his holy college, we could not be of Christ’s Church.
-Many have thought it necessary that if a man would be a member of the
-Church of Christ, he must belong to the holy church of Rome and take
-the Holy Father thereof for the supreme Head and for the Vicar of
-Christ, yea for Christ Himself, (since) to be divided from him was even
-to be divided from Christ.” This, the preacher informs his audience, is
-“damnable teaching,” and that “the Bishop of Rome has no more power by
-the laws of God in this realm than any foreign bishop.”
-
-He then goes on to speak of what was, no doubt, in everybody’s mind at
-the time, the condemnation of the two eminent Englishmen for upholding
-the ancient teachings as to the Pope’s spiritual headship. “Of late,”
-he says, “you have had experience of some, whom neither friends nor
-kinsfolk, nor the judgment of both universities, Cambridge and Oxford,
-nor the universal consent of all the clergy of this realm, nor the laws
-of the Parliament, nor their most natural and loving prince, could by
-any gentle ways revoke from their disobedience, but would needs persist
-therein, giving pernicious occasion to the multitude to murmur and
-grudge at the king’s laws, seeing that they were men of estimation and
-would be seen wiser than all the realm and of better conscience than
-others, justifying themselves and condemning all the realm besides.
-These being condemned and the king’s prisoners, yet did not cease to
-conceive ill of our sovereign, refusing his laws, but even in prison
-wrote to their mutual comfort in their damnable opinions. I mean
-Doctor Fisher and Sir Thomas More, whom I am as sorry to name as any
-man here is to hear named: sorry for that they, being sometime men of
-worship and honour, men of famous learning and many excellent graces
-and so tenderly sometime beloved by their prince, should thus unkindly,
-unnaturally, and traitorously use themselves. Our Lord give them grace
-to be repentant! Let neither their fame, learning, nor honour move you
-loving subjects from your prince; but regard ye the truth.”
-
-The preacher then goes on to condemn the coarse style of preaching
-against the Pope in which some indulged at that time. “I would exhort,”
-he says, “such as are of my sort and use preaching, so to temper their
-words that they be not noted to speak of stomach and rather to prate
-than preach. Nor would I have the defenders of the king’s matters rage
-and rail, or scold, as many are thought to do, calling the Bishop of
-Rome the ‘harlot of Babylon’ or ‘the beast of Rome,’ with many such
-other, as I have heard some say; these be meeter to preach at Paul’s
-Wharf than at Paul’s Cross.”[106]
-
-The care that was taken at this time in sermons to the people to
-decry the Pope’s authority, as well as the abuse which was hurled at
-his office, is in reality ample proof of the popular belief in his
-supremacy, which it was necessary to eradicate from the hearts of
-the English people. Few, probably, would have been able to state the
-reason for their belief; but that the spiritual headship was fully and
-generally accepted as a fact is, in view of the works of the period,
-not open to question. Had there been disbelief, or even doubt, as to
-the matter, some evidence of this would be forthcoming in the years
-that preceded the final overthrow of Papal jurisdiction in England.
-
-Nor are direct declarations of the faith of the English Church wanting.
-To the evidence already adduced, a sermon preached by Bishop Longland
-in 1527, before the archbishops and bishops of England in synod at
-Westminster, may be added. The discourse is directed against the
-errors of Luther and the social evils to which his teaching had led in
-Germany. The English bishops, Bishop Longland declares, are determined
-to do all in their power to preserve the English Church from this
-evil teaching, and he exhorts all to pray that God will not allow the
-universal and chief Church--the Roman Church--to be further afflicted,
-that He will restore liberty to the most Holy Father and high-priest
-now impiously imprisoned, and in a lamentable state; that He Himself
-will protect the Church’s freedom threatened by a multitude of evil
-men, and through the pious prayers of His people will free it and
-restore its most Holy Father. Just as the early Christians prayed when
-Peter was in prison, so ought all to pray in these days of affliction.
-“Shall we not,” he cries, “mourn for the evil life of the chief Church
-(of Christendom)? Shall we not beseech God for the liberation of the
-primate and chief ruler of the Church? Let us pray then; let us pray
-that through our prayers we may be heard. Let us implore freedom for
-our mother, the Catholic Church, and the liberty, so necessary for the
-Christian religion, of our chief Father on earth--the Pope.”[107]
-
-Again, Dr. John Clark, the English ambassador in Rome, when presenting
-Henry’s book against Luther to Leo X. in public consistory, said that
-the English king had taken up the defence of the Church because in
-attacking the Pope the German reformer had tried to subvert the order
-established by God Himself. In the _Babylonian Captivity of the Church_
-he had given to the world a book “most pernicious to mankind,” and
-before presenting Henry’s reply, he begged to be allowed to protest
-“the devotion and veneration of the king towards the Pope and his most
-Holy See.” Luther had declared war “not only against your Holiness
-but also against your office; against the ecclesiastical hierarchy,
-against this See, and against that Rock established by God Himself.”
-England, the speaker continued, “has never been behind other nations
-in the worship of God and the Christian faith, and in obedience to the
-Roman Church.” Hence “no nation” detests more cordially “this monster
-(Luther) and the heresies broached by him.” For he has declared war
-“not only against your Holiness but against your office; against the
-ecclesiastical hierarchy, against this See, that Rock established by
-God Himself.”[108]
-
-Whilst the evidence goes to show the full acceptance by the English
-people of the Pope’s spiritual headship of the Church, it is also
-true that the system elaborated by the ecclesiastical lawyers in
-the later Middle Ages, dealing, as it did, so largely with temporal
-matters, property, and the rights attaching thereto, opened the door
-to causes of disagreement between Rome and England, and at times open
-complaints and criticism of the exercise of Roman authority in England
-made themselves heard. This is true of all periods of English history.
-Since these disagreements are obviously altogether connected with the
-question, not of spirituals, but of temporals, they would not require
-any more special notice but for the misunderstandings they have given
-rise to in regard to the general attitude of men’s minds to Rome and
-Papal authority on the eve of the Reformation. It is easy to find
-evidence of this. As early as 1517, a work bearing on this question
-appeared in England. It was a translation of several tracts that had
-been published abroad on the debated matter of Constantine’s donation
-to the Pope, and it was issued from the press of Thomas Godfray in
-a well-printed folio. After a translation of the Latin version of a
-Greek manuscript of Constantine’s gift, which had been found in the
-Papal library by Bartolomeo Pincern, and published by order of Pope
-Julius II., there is given in this volume the critical examination of
-this gift by Laurence Valla, the opinion of Nicholas of Cusa, written
-for the Council of Basle, and that of St. Antoninus, Archbishop of
-Florence. The interest of the volume for the present purpose chiefly
-consists in the fact of the publication in England at this date of
-the views expressed by Laurence Valla. Valla had been a canon of the
-Lateran and an eminent scholar, who was employed by Pope Nicholas V.
-to translate Thucydides and Herodotus. His outspoken words got him
-into difficulties with the Roman curia, and obliged him to retire to
-Naples, where he died in 1457. The tract was edited with a preface
-by the leader of the reform party in Germany, Ulrich von Hutten. In
-this introduction von Hutten says that by the publication of Pincern’s
-translation of the supposed donation of Constantine Julius II. had
-“provoked and stirred up men to war and battle,” and further, he
-blames the Pontiff because he would not permit Valla’s work against
-the genuineness of the gift to be published. With the accession of Leo
-X. von Hutten looked, he declares, for better days, since “by striking
-as it were a cymbal of peace the Pope has raised up the hearts and
-minds of all Christian people.” Before this time the truth could not be
-spoken. Popes looked “to pluck the riches and goods of all men to their
-own selves,” with the result that “on the other side they take away
-from themselves all that belongs to the succession of St. Peter.”
-
-Valla, of course, condemns the supposed donation of Constantine to the
-Pope as spurious, and declares against the temporal claims the See of
-Rome had founded upon it. He strongly objects to the “temporal as well
-as the spiritual sword” being in the hands of the successors of St.
-Peter. “They say,” he writes, “that the city of Rome is theirs, that
-the kingdom of Naples is their own property: that all Italy, France,
-and Spain, Germany, England, and all the west part of the world belongs
-to them. For all these nations and countries (they say) are contained
-in the instrument and writ of the donation or grant.”
-
-The whole tract is an attack upon the temporal sovereignty of the head
-of the Christian Church, and it was indeed a bold thing for Ulrich von
-Hutten to publish it and dedicate it to Pope Leo X. For the present
-purpose it is chiefly important to find all this set out in an English
-dress, whilst so far and for a long while after, the English people
-were loyal and true to the spiritual headship of the Pope, and were
-second to no other nation in their attachment to him. At that time
-recent events, including the wars of Julius II., must certainly have
-caused men to reflect upon the temporal aspect of the Papacy; and
-hearts more loyal to the successor of St. Peter than was that of Von
-Hutten would probably have joined fervently in the concluding words
-of his preface as it appeared in English. “Would to God I might (for
-there is nothing I do long for more) once see it brought to pass that
-the Pope were only the Vicar of Christ and not also the Vicar of the
-Emperor, and that this horrible saying may no longer be heard: ‘the
-Church fighteth and warreth against the Perugians, the Church fighteth
-against the people of Bologna.’ It is not the Church that fights and
-wars against Christian men; it is the Pope that does so. The Church
-fights against wicked spirits in the regions of the air. Then shall
-the Pope be called, and in very deed be, a Holy Father, the Father of
-all men, the Father of the Church. Then shall he not raise and stir up
-wars and battles among Christian men, but he shall allay and stop the
-wars which have been stirred up by others, by his apostolic censure and
-papal majesty.”[109]
-
-Evidence of what, above, has been called the probable searching of
-men’s minds as to the action of the Popes in temporal matters, may
-be seen in a book called a _Dyalogue between a knight and a clerk,
-concerning the power spiritual and temporal_.[110] In reply to the
-complaint of the clerk that in the evil days in which their lot had
-fallen “the statutes and ordinances of bishops of Rome and the decrees
-of holy fathers” were disregarded, the knight exposes a layman’s view
-of the matter. “Whether they ordain,” he says, “or have ordained in
-times past of the temporality, may well be law to you, but not to us.
-No man has power to ordain statutes of things over which he has no
-lordship, as the king of France may ordain no statute (binding) on the
-emperor nor the emperor on the king of England. And just as princes of
-this world may ordain no statutes for your spirituality over which they
-have no power; no more may you ordain statutes of their temporalities
-over which you have neither power nor authority. Therefore, whatever
-you ordain about temporal things, over which you have received no power
-from God, is vain (and void). And therefore but lately, I laughed well
-fast, when I heard that Boniface VIII. had made a new statute that
-he himself should be above all secular lords, princes, kings, and
-emperors, and above all kingdoms, and make laws about all things: and
-that he only needed to write, for all things shall be his when he has
-so written: and thus all things will be yours. If he wishes to have my
-castle, my town, my field, my money, or any other such thing he needed,
-nothing but to will it, and write it, and make a decree, and wot that
-it be done, (for) to all such things he has a right.”
-
-The clerk does not, however, at once give up the position. You mean,
-he says in substance, that in your opinion the Pope has no power over
-your property and goods. “Though we should prove this by our law and
-by written decrees, you account them for nought. For you hold that
-Peter had no lordship or power over temporals, but by such law written.
-But if you will be a true Christian man and of right belief, you will
-not deny that Christ is the lord of all things. To Him it is said in
-the Psalter book: ‘Ask of me, and I will give you nations for thine
-heritage, and all the world about for thy possession’ (Ps. ii.). These
-are God’s words, and no one doubts that He can ordain for the whole
-earth.”
-
-Nobody denies God’s lordship over the earth, replied the knight, “but
-if be proved by Holy Writ that the Pope is lord of all temporalities,
-then kings and princes must needs be subject to the Pope in temporals
-as in spirituals.” So they are, in effect, answered the clerk. Peter
-was made “Christ’s full Vicar,” and as such he can do what his lord
-can, “especially when he is Vicar with full power, without any
-withdrawing of power, and he thus can direct all Christian nations in
-temporal matters.” But, said the knight, “Christ’s life plainly shows
-that He made no claim whatever to temporal power. Also in Peter’s
-commission He gave him not the keys of the kingdom of the earth, but
-the keys of the kingdom of heaven. It is also evident that the bishops
-of the Hebrews were subjects of the kings, and kings deposed bishops;
-but,” he adds, fearing to go too far, “God forbid that they should
-do so now.” Then he goes on to quote St. Paul in the Epistle to the
-Hebrews to prove that St. Peter was Christ’s Vicar only in “the godly
-kingdom of souls, and that though some temporal things may be managed
-by bishops, yet nevertheless it is plain and evident that bishops
-should not be occupied in the government of the might and lordship of
-the world.” And indeed, he urges, “Christ neither made St. Peter a
-knight nor a crowned king, but ordained him a priest and bishop.” If
-the contention that “the Pope is the Vicar of God in temporal matter
-be correct,” then of necessity you must also grant that “the Pope may
-take from you and from us all the goods that you and we have, and give
-them all to whichever of his nephews or cousins he wills and give no
-reason why: and also that he may take away from princes and kings
-principalities and kingdoms, at his own will, and give them where he
-likes.”[111]
-
-This statement by the layman of the advanced clerical view is somewhat
-bald, and is probably intentionally exaggerated; but that it could
-be published even as a caricature of the position taken up by some
-ecclesiastics, shows that at this time some went very far indeed
-in their claims. It is all the more remarkable that the argument is
-seriously put forward in a tract, the author of which is evidently a
-Catholic at heart, and one who fully admits the supreme jurisdiction
-of the Pope in all matters spiritual. Of course, when the rejection
-of Papal jurisdiction became imminent, there were found many who by
-sermons and books endeavoured to eradicate the old teaching from
-the people’s hearts, and then it was that what was called, “the
-pretensions” of the successors of St. Peter in matters temporal were
-held up to serve as a convenient means of striking at the spiritual
-prerogatives. As a sample, a small book named a _Mustre of scismatyke
-bysshops of Rome_ may be taken. It was printed in 1534, and its title
-is sufficient to indicate its tone. The author, one John Roberts, rakes
-together a good many unsavoury tales about the lives of individual
-Popes, and in particular he translates the life of Gregory VII. to
-enforce his moral. In his preface he says, “There is a fond, foolish,
-fantasy raging in many men’s heads nowadays, and it is this: the Popes,
-say they, cannot err. This fantastical blindness was never taught by
-any man of literature, but by some peckish pedler or clouting collier:
-it is so gross in itself.” And I “warn, advise, beseech, and adjure all
-my well-beloved countrymen in England that men do not permit themselves
-to be blinded with affection, with hypocrisy, or with superstition.
-What have we got from Rome but pulling, polling, picking, robbing,
-stealing, oppression, blood-shedding, and tyranny daily exercised upon
-us by him and his.”[112]
-
-Again, as another example of how the mind of the people was stirred
-up, we may take a few sentences from _A Worke entytled of the olde
-God and the new_. This tract is one of the most scurrilous of the
-German productions of the period. It was published in English by
-Myles Coverdale, and is on the list of books prohibited by the king
-in 1534. After a tirade against the Pope, whom he delights in calling
-“anti-Christ,” the author declares that the Popes are the cause of many
-of the evils from which people were suffering at that time. In old
-days, he says, the Bishop of Rome was nothing more “than a pastor or
-herdsman,” and adds: “Now he who has been at Rome in the time of Pope
-Alexander VI. or of Pope Julius II., he need not read many histories. I
-put it to his judgment whether any of the Pagans or of the Turks ever
-did lead such a life as did these.”[113]
-
-The same temper of mind appears in the preface of a book called _The
-Defence of Peace_, translated into English by William Marshall and
-printed in 1535. The work itself was written by Marsilius of Padua
-about 1323, but the preface is dated 1522. The whole tone is distinctly
-anti-clerical, but the main line of attack is developed from the
-side of the temporalities possessed by churchmen. Even churchmen, he
-says, look mainly to the increase of their worldly goods. “Riches
-give honour, riches give benefices, riches give power and authority,
-riches cause men to be regarded and greatly esteemed.” Especially is
-the author of the preface severe upon the temporal position which
-the Pope claims as inalienably united with his office as head of the
-Church. Benedict XII., he says, acted in many places as if he were all
-powerful, appointing rulers and officers in cities within the emperor’s
-dominions, saying, “that all power and rule and empire was his own, for
-as much as whosoever is the successor of Peter on earth is the only
-Vicar or deputy of Jesus Christ the King of Heaven.”[114]
-
-In the body of the book itself the same views are expressed. The
-authority of the primacy is said to be “not immediately from God, but
-by the will and mind of man, just as other offices of a commonwealth
-are,” and that the real meaning and extent of the claims put forward by
-the Pope can be seen easily. They are temporal, not spiritual. “This
-is the meaning of this title among the Bishops of Rome, that as Christ
-had the fulness of power and jurisdiction over all kings, princes,
-commonwealth, companies, or fellowships, and all singular persons, so
-in like manner they who call themselves the Vicars of Christ and Peter,
-have also the same fulness of enactive jurisdiction, determined by
-no law of man,” and thus it is that “the Bishops of Rome, with their
-desire for dominion, have been the cause of discords and wars.”[115]
-
-Lancelot Ridley, in his _Exposition of the Epistle of Jude_, published
-in 1538 after the breach with Rome, takes the same line. The Pope has
-no right to have “exempted himself” and “other spiritual men from the
-obedience to the civil rulers and powers.” Some, indeed, he says, “set
-up the usurped power of the Bishop of Rome above kings, princes, and
-emperors, and that by the ordinance of God, as if God and His Holy
-Scripture did give to the Bishop of Rome a secular power above kings,
-princes, and emperors here in this world. It is evident by Scripture
-that the Bishop of Rome has no other power but at the pleasure of
-princes, than in the ministration of the Word of God in preaching God’s
-Word purely and sincerely, to reprove by it evil men, and to do such
-things as become a preacher, a bishop, a minister of God’s Word to do.
-Other power Scripture does not attribute to the Bishop of Rome, nor
-suffer him to use. Scripture wills him to be a bishop, and to do the
-office of a bishop, and not to play the prince, the king, the emperor,
-the lord, and so forth.”[116] It is important to note in this passage
-that the writer was a reformer, and that he was expressing his views
-after the jurisdiction of the Holy See had been rejected by the king
-and his advisers. The ground of the rejection, according to him--or
-at any rate the reason which it was desired to emphasise before the
-public--would appear to be the temporal authority which the Popes had
-been exercising.
-
-In the same year, 1538, Richard Morysine published a translation of
-a letter addressed by John Sturmius, the Lutheran, to the cardinals
-appointed by Pope Paul III. to consider what could be done to stem the
-evils which threatened the Church. As the work of this Papal commission
-was then directly put before the English people, some account of it
-is almost necessary. The commission consisted of four cardinals, two
-archbishops, one bishop, the abbot of San Giorgio, Venice, and the
-master of the Sacred Palace, and its report was supposed to have been
-drafted by Cardinal Caraffa, afterwards Pope Paul IV. The document
-thanks God who has inspired the Pope “to put forth his hand to support
-the ruins of the tottering and almost fallen Church of Christ, and to
-raise it again to its pristine height.” As a beginning, the Holy Father
-has commanded them to lay bare to him “those most grave abuses, that is
-diseases, by which the Church of God, and this Roman curia especially,
-is afflicted,” and which has brought about the state of ruin now so
-evident. The initial cause of all has been, they declare, that the
-Popes have surrounded themselves with people who only told them what
-they thought would be pleasant to them, and who had not the honesty
-and loyalty to speak the truth. This adulation had deceived the Roman
-Pontiffs about many things. “To get the truth to their ears was always
-most difficult. Teachers sprung up who were ready to declare that the
-Pope was the master of all benefices, and as master might by right sell
-them as his own.” As a consequence, it was taught that the Pope could
-not be guilty of simony, and that the will of the Pope was the highest
-law, and could override all law. “From this source, Holy Father,” they
-continue, “as from the Trojan horse, so many abuses and most grievous
-diseases have grown up in the Church of God.” Even pagans, they say,
-scoff at the state of the Christian Church as it is at present, and
-they, the commissioners, beg the Pope not to delay in immediately
-taking in hand the correction of the manifest abuses which afflict and
-disgrace the Church of Christ. “Begin the cure,” they say, “whence
-sprung the disease. Follow the teaching of the Apostle St. Paul: ‘be a
-dispenser, not a lord.’”
-
-They then proceed to note the abuses which to them are most apparent,
-and to suggest remedies. We are not concerned with these further
-than to point out that, as a preliminary, they state that the true
-principle of government is, that what is the law must be kept, and that
-dispensations should be granted only on the most urgent causes, since
-nothing brings government to such bad repute as the continual exercise
-of the power of dispensation. Further, they note that it is certainly
-not lawful for the Vicar of Christ to make any profit (_lucrum_) by the
-dispensations he is obliged to give.
-
-Sturmius, in his preface, says he had hopes of better things, now
-that there was a Pope ready to listen. “It is a rare thing, and much
-more than man could hope for, that there should come a Bishop of Rome
-who would require his prelates upon their oath to open the truth, to
-show abuses, and to seek remedies for them.” He is pleased to think
-that these four cardinals, Sadolet, Paul Caraffa, Contarini, and
-Reginald Pole had allowed fully and frankly that a great portion of
-the difficulty had come from the unfortunate attitude of the Popes
-in regard to worldly affairs. “You acknowledge,” he says, “that no
-lordship is committed to the Bishop of Rome, but rather a certain cure
-by which he may rule things in the church according to good order. If
-you admit this to be true and will entirely grant us this, a great part
-of our (_i.e._ Lutheran) controversy is taken away; granting this also,
-that we did not dissent from you without great and just causes.” The
-three points the cardinals claimed for the Pope, it may be noted, were:
-(1) that he was to be Bishop of Rome; (2) that he was to be universal
-Bishop; and (3) that he should be allowed temporal sovereignty over
-certain cities in Italy.[117] Again we find the same view put before
-the English people in this translation: the chief objection to the
-admission of Papal prerogatives was the “lordship” which he claimed
-over and above the spiritual powers he exercised as successor of St.
-Peter. On this point we find preachers and writers of the period
-insisting most clearly and definitely. Some, of course, attack the
-spiritual jurisdiction directly, but most commonly such attacks are
-flavoured and served up for general consumption by a supply of abuse
-of the temporal assumptions and the worldly show of the Popes. This
-appealed to the popular mind, and to the growing sense of national aims
-and objects, and the real issue of the spiritual headship was obscured
-by the plea of national sentiment and safeguards.
-
-To take one more example: Bishop Tunstall, on Palm Sunday, 1539,
-preached before the king and court. His object was to defend the
-rejection of the Papal supremacy and jurisdiction. He declaimed against
-the notion that the Popes were to be considered as free from subjection
-to worldly powers, maintaining that in this they were like all other
-men. “The Popes,” he says, “exalt their seat above the stars of God,
-and ascend above the clouds, and will be like to God Almighty.… The
-Bishop of Rome offers his feet to be kissed, shod with his shoes on.
-This I saw myself, being present thirty-four years ago, when Julius,
-the Bishop of Rome, stood on his feet and one of his chamberlains held
-up his skirt because it stood not, as he thought, with his dignity
-that he should do it himself, that his shoes might appear, whilst a
-nobleman of great age prostrated himself upon the ground and kissed his
-shoes.”[118]
-
-To us, to-day, much that was written and spoken at this time will
-appear, like many of the above passages, foolish and exaggerated; but
-the language served its purpose, and contributed more than anything
-else to lower the Popes in the eyes of the people, and to justify
-in their minds the overthrow of the ecclesiastical system which had
-postulated the Pope as the universal Father of the Christian Church.
-Each Sunday, in every parish church throughout the country, they had
-been invited in the bidding prayer, as their fathers had been for
-generations, to remember their duty of praying for their common Father,
-the Pope. When the Pope’s authority was finally rejected by the English
-king and his advisers, it was necessary to justify this serious breach
-with the past religious practice, and the works of the period prove
-beyond doubt that this was done in the popular mind by turning men’s
-thoughts to the temporal aspect of the Papacy, and making them think
-that it was for the national profit and honour that this foreign yoke
-should be cast off. Whilst this is clear, it is also equally clear
-in the works of the time that the purely religious aspect of the
-question was as far as possible relegated to a secondary place in the
-discussions. This was perhaps not unnatural, as the duty of defending
-the rejection of the Papal supremacy can hardly have been very tasteful
-to those who were forced by the strong arm of the State to justify it
-before the people. As late as 1540 we are told by a contemporary writer
-that the spirituality under the bishops “favour as much as they dare
-the Bishop of Rome’s laws and his ways.”[119]
-
-Even the actual meaning attached to the formal acknowledgment of
-the king’s Headship by the clergy was sufficiently ambiguous to
-be understood, by some at least, as aimed merely at the temporal
-jurisdiction of the Roman curia. It is true it is usually understood
-that Convocation by its act, acknowledging Henry as sole supreme Head
-of the Church of England, gave him absolute spiritual jurisdiction.
-Whatever may have been the intention of the king in requiring the
-acknowledgment from the clergy, it seems absolutely certain that the
-ruling powers in the Church considered that by their grant there was no
-derogation of the Pope’s spiritual jurisdiction.
-
-A comparison of the clauses required by Henry with those actually
-granted by Convocation makes it evident that any admission that the
-crown had any cure of souls, that is, spiritual jurisdiction, was
-specifically guarded against. In place of the clause containing the
-words, “cure of souls committed to his Majesty,” proposed in the king’s
-name to his clergy, they adopted the form, “the nation committed to his
-Majesty.” The other royal demands were modified in the same manner,
-and it is consequently obvious that all the insertions proposed by the
-crown were weighed with the greatest care by skilled ecclesiastical
-jurists in some two and thirty sessions, and the changes introduced by
-them with the proposals made on behalf of the king throw considerable
-light upon the meaning which Convocation intended to give to the
-_Supremum Caput_ clause. In one sense, perhaps not the obvious one,
-but one that had _de facto_ been recognised during Catholic ages, the
-sovereign was the Protector--the _advocatus_--of the Church in his
-country, and to him the clergy would look to protect his people from
-the introduction of heresy and for maintenance in their temporalities.
-So that whilst, on the one hand, the king and Thomas Cromwell may well
-have desired the admission of Henry’s authority over “the English
-Church, whose Protector and supreme Head he alone is,” to cover even
-spiritual jurisdiction, on the other hand, Warham and the English
-Bishops evidently did intend it to cover only an admission that the
-king had taken all jurisdiction in temporals, hitherto exercised by the
-Pope in England, into his own hands.
-
-Moreover, looking at what was demanded and at what was granted by the
-clergy, there is little room for doubt that they at first deliberately
-eliminated any acknowledgment of the Royal jurisdiction. This deduction
-is turned into a certainty by the subsequent action of Archbishop
-Warham. He first protested that the admission was not to be twisted in
-“derogation of the Roman Pontiff or the Apostolic See,” and the very
-last act of his life was the drafting of an elaborate exposition, to
-be delivered in the House of Lords, of the impossibility of the king’s
-having spiritual jurisdiction, from the very nature of the constitution
-of the Christian Church. Such jurisdiction, he claimed, belonged of
-right to the Roman See.[120]
-
-That the admission wrung from the clergy in fact formed the thin end of
-the wedge which finally severed the English Church from the spiritual
-jurisdiction of the Holy See is obvious. But the “thin end” was, there
-can be hardly any doubt, the temporal aspect of the authority of the
-Roman See; and that its insertion at all was possible may be said in
-greater measure to be due to the fact that the exercise of jurisdiction
-in temporals by a foreign authority had long been a matter which many
-Englishmen had strongly resented.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-CLERGY AND LAITY
-
-
-It is very generally asserted that on the eve of the Reformation the
-laity in England had no particular love or respect for churchmen. That
-there were grave difficulties and disagreements between the two estates
-is supposed to be certain. On the face of it, however, the reason and
-origin of what is frequently called “the grudge” of laymen against
-the ecclesiastics is obviously much misunderstood. Its extent is
-exaggerated, its origin put at an earlier date than should be assigned
-to it, and the whole meaning of the points at issue interpreted quite
-unnecessarily as evidence of a popular and deep-seated disbelief in the
-prevailing ecclesiastical system. To understand the temper of people
-and priest in those times, it is obviously necessary to examine into
-this question in some detail. We are not without abundant material in
-the literature of the period for forming a judgment as to the relations
-which then existed between the clerical and lay elements in the State.
-Fortunately, not only have we assertions on the one side and on the
-other as to the questions at issue, but the whole matter was debated at
-the time in a series of tracts by two eminent laymen. This discussion
-was carried on between an anonymous writer, now recognised as the
-lawyer, Christopher Saint-German, and Sir Thomas More himself.
-
-Christopher Saint-German, who is chiefly known as the writer of
-a _Dyalogue in English between a Student of Law and a Doctor of
-Divinity_, belonged to the Inner Temple, and was, it has already been
-said, a lawyer of considerable repute. About the year 1532, a tract
-from his pen called _A treatise concerning the division between the
-spiritualtie and temporaltie_ appeared anonymously. To this Sir Thomas
-More, who had just resigned the office of Chancellor, replied in his
-celebrated _Apology_, published in 1533. Saint-German rejoined in
-the same year with _A Dyalogue between two Englishmen, whereof one
-is called Salem and the other Bizance_, More immediately retorting
-with the _Debellacyon of Salem and Bizance_. In these four treatises
-the whole matter of the supposed feud between the clergy and laity is
-thrashed out, and the points at issue are clearly stated and discussed.
-
-Christopher Saint-German’s position is at first somewhat difficult to
-understand. By some of his contemporaries he was considered to have
-been tainted by “the new teaching” in doctrinal matters, which at the
-time he wrote was making some headway in England. He himself, however,
-professes to write as a loyal believer in the teaching of the Church,
-but takes exception to certain ecclesiastical laws and customs which
-in his opinion are no necessary part of the system at all. In these he
-thinks he detects the cause of the “division that had risen between the
-spiritualtie and the temporaltie.” Sir Thomas More, it may be remarked,
-is always careful to treat the writer as if he believed him to be a
-sincere Catholic, though mistaken in both the extent of the existing
-disaffection to the Church and altogether impracticable in the remedies
-he suggested. In some things it must, however, be confessed, granting
-Saint-German’s facts, that he shows weighty grounds for some grievance
-against the clergy on the part of the laity.
-
-_The treatise concerning the division_ begins by expressing regret
-at the unfortunate state of things which the author pre-supposes as
-existing in England when he wrote in 1532, contrasting it with what
-he remembered before. “Who may remember the state of this realm now
-in these days,” he writes, “without great heaviness and sorrow of
-heart? For whereas, in times past, there has reigned charity, meekness,
-concord, and peace, there now reigns envy, pride, division, and strife,
-and that not only between laymen and churchmen, but also between
-religious and religious, and between priests and religious, and what is
-more to be lamented also between priests and priests. This division has
-been so universal that it has been a great (cause of) disquiet and a
-great breach of charity through all the realm.”[121]
-
-It must be confessed that if this passage is to be taken as it stands,
-the division would appear to have been very widely spread at the
-time. Sir Thomas More, whilst denying that the difficulty was so
-great as Saint-German would make out, admits that in late years the
-spirit had grown and was still growing apace. He holds, however, that
-Saint-German’s reasons for its existence are not the true ones, and
-that his methods will only serve to increase the spirit of division.
-As regards the quarrels between religious, at which Saint-German
-expresses his indignation, he says: “Except this man means here by
-religious folk, either women and children with whose variances the
-temporality is not very much disturbed, or else the lay brethren, who
-are in some places of religion, and who are neither so many nor so much
-esteemed, that ever the temporality was much troubled at their strife,
-besides this there is no variance between religious and religious
-with which the temporality have been offended.”[122] Again: “Of some
-particular variance among divers persons of the clergy I have indeed
-heard, as sometimes one against another for his tithes, or a parson
-against a religious place for meddling with his parish, or one place
-of religion with another upon some such like occasions, or sometime
-some one religious (order) have had some question and dispute as to
-the antiquity or seniority of its institution, as (for instance) the
-Carmelites claim to derive their origin from Elias and Eliseus: and
-some question has arisen in the Order of Saint Francis between the
-Observants and the Conventuals (for of the third company, that is to
-say the Colettines, there are none in this realm). But of all these
-matters, as far as I have read or remember, there were never in this
-realm either so very great or so many such (variances) all at once,
-that it was ever at the time remarked through the realm and spoken of
-as a great and notable fault of the whole clergy.” Particular faults
-and petty quarrels should not be considered the cause of any great
-grudge against the clergy at large. “And as it is not in reason that it
-should be, so in fact it is not so, as may be understood from this:” …
-“if it were the case, then must this grudge of ours against them have
-been a very old thing, whereas it is indeed neither so great as this
-man maketh out, nor grown to so great (a pass) as it is, but only even
-so late as Tyndale’s books and Frith’s and Friar Barnes’ began to go
-abroad.”[123]
-
-Further, in several places Sir Thomas More emphatically asserts that
-the talking against the clergy, the hostile feeling towards them, and
-the dissensions said to exist between them and lay folk generally,
-were only of very recent origin, and were at worst not very serious.
-“I have, within these four or five years (for before I heard little
-talk of such things),” he writes, “been present at such discussions in
-divers good companies, never talking in earnest thereof (for as yet
-I thank God that I never heard such talk), but as a pass-time and in
-the way of familiar talking, I have heard at such times some in hand
-with prelates and secular priests and religious persons, and talk of
-their lives, and their learning, and of their livelihood too, and as
-to whether they were such, that it were better to have them or not to
-have them. Then touching their livelihood (it was debated), whether it
-might be lawfully taken away from them or no; and if it might, whether
-it were expedient for it to be taken, and if so for what use.”[124]
-
-To this Saint-German replies at length in his _Salem and Bizance_, and
-says that Sir Thomas More must have known that the difficulties had
-their origin long before the rise of the new religious views, and were
-not in any sense founded upon the opinions of the modern heretics.[125]
-More answers by reasserting his position that “the division is nothing
-such as this man makes it, and is grown as great as it is only since
-Tyndale’s books and Frith’s and Friar Barnes’ began to be spread
-abroad.” And in answer to Saint-German’s suggestion that he should
-look a little more closely into the matter, he says: “Indeed, with
-better looking thereon I find it somewhat otherwise. For I find the
-time of such increase as I speak of much shorter than I assigned, and
-that by a great deal. For it has grown greater” by reason of “the book
-upon the division,” which Saint-German with the best of intentions had
-circulated among the people.[126]
-
-Putting one book against the other, it would appear then tolerably
-certain that the rise of the anti-clerical spirit in England must be
-dated only just before the dawn of the Reformation, when the popular
-mind was being stirred up by the new teachers against the clergy.
-There seems, moreover, no reason to doubt the positive declaration
-of Sir Thomas More, who had every means of knowing, that the outcry
-was modern--so modern indeed that it was practically unknown only
-four or five years before 1533, and that it originated undoubtedly
-from the dissemination of Lutheran views and teachings by Tyndale and
-others. It is useful to examine well into the grounds upon which this
-anti-clerical campaign was conducted, and to note the chief causes of
-objection to the clergy which are found set forth by Saint-German in
-his books. In the first place: “Some say,” he writes, that priests and
-religious “keep not the perfection of their order,” and do not set
-that good example to the people “they should do.” Some also work for
-“their own honour, and call it the honour of God, and rather covet to
-have rule over the people than to profit the people.” Others think more
-about their “bodily ease and worldly wealth and meat and drink,” and
-the like, even more than lay people do. Others, again, serve God “for
-worldly motives, to obtain the praise of men, to enrich themselves and
-the like, and not from any great love of God.”
-
-Such is the first division of the general accusations which
-Saint-German states were popularly made against the clergy in 1532.
-Against these may be usefully set Sir Thomas More’s examination of the
-charges, and his own opinion as to the state of the clergy. In his
-previous works he had, he says, forborne to use words unpleasant either
-to the clergy or laity about themselves, though he had “confessed what
-is true, namely, that neither were faultless.” But what had offended
-“these blessed brethren,” the English followers of Luther, was that “I
-have not hesitated to say, what I also take for the very truth, that
-as this realm of England has, God be thanked, as good and praiseworthy
-a temporality, number for number, as any other Christian country of
-equal number has had, so has it had also, number for number, compared
-with any other realm of no greater number in Christendom, as good and
-as commendable a clergy. In both there have never been wanting plenty
-of those who have always been ‘naught’; but their faults have ever been
-their own and should not be imputed to the whole body, neither in the
-spirituality nor temporality.”[127]
-
-Turning to the special accusation made by Saint-German that
-ecclesiastics “do not keep the perfection of their order,” More grants
-that this may “not be much untrue.” For “Man’s duty to God is so great
-that very few serve Him as they should do.”…“But, I suppose, they keep
-it now at this day much after such a good metely manner as they did
-in the years before, during which this division was never dreamed of,
-and therefore those who say this is the cause have need to go seek
-some other.”[128] To the second point his reply is equally clear. It
-is true, More thinks, that some ecclesiastics do look perhaps to their
-own honour and profit, but, he asks, “were there never any such till so
-lately as the beginning of this division, or are all of them like this
-now?” No doubt there are some such, and “I pray God that when any new
-ones shall come they may prove no worse. For of these, if they wax not
-worse before they die, those who shall live after them may, in my mind,
-be bold to say that England had not their betters any time these forty
-years, and I dare go for a good way beyond this too. But this is more
-than twenty years, and ten before this division” (between the clergy
-and laity) was heard of.[129] Further, as far as his own opinion goes,
-although there may be, and probably are, some priests and religious
-whom the world accounts good and virtuous, who are yet at heart
-evil-minded, this is no reason to despise or condemn the whole order.
-Equally certain is it that besides such there are “many very virtuous,
-holy men indeed, whose holiness and prayer have been, I verily believe,
-one great special cause that God has so long held His hand from
-letting some heavier stroke fall on the necks of those whether in the
-spirituality or temporality who are naught and care not.”[130]
-
-In his _Apology_, Sir Thomas More protested against the author of
-the work on the _Division_ translating a passage from the Latin of
-John Gerson, about the evil lives of priests; and on Saint-German
-excusing himself in his second book, More returns to the point in
-_The Debellation of Salem and Bizance_. More had pleaded that his
-opponent had dragged the faults of the clergy into light rather than
-those of the laity, because if the priests led good lives, as St. John
-Chrysostom had said, the whole Church would be in a good state; “and
-if they were corrupt, the faith and virtue of the people fades also
-and vanishes away.” “Surely, good readers,” exclaims More, “I like
-these words well.” They are very good, and they prove “the matter right
-well, and very true is it, nor did I ever say the contrary, but have
-in my _Apology_ plainly said the same: that every fault in a spiritual
-man is, by the difference of the person, far worse and more odious
-to God and man than if it were in a temporal man.” And indeed the
-saying of St. Chrysostom “were in part the very cause that made me
-write against his (_i.e._ Saint-German’s) book. For assuredly, as St.
-Chrysostom says: ‘If the priesthood be corrupt, the faith and virtue of
-the people fades and vanishes away.’ This is without any question very
-true, for though St. Chrysostom had never said it, our Saviour says as
-much himself. ‘Ye are (saith He to the clergy) the salt of the earth.’
-… But, I say, since the priesthood is corrupted it must needs follow
-that the faith and virtue of the people fades and vanishes away, and
-on Christ’s words it must follow that, if the spirituality be nought,
-the temporality must needs be worse than they. I, upon this, conclude
-on the other side against this ‘Pacifier’s’ book, that since this
-realm has (as God be thanked indeed it has) as good and as faithful a
-temporality (though there be a few false brethren in a great multitude
-of true Catholic men) as any other Christian country of equal size has,
-it must needs, I say, follow that the clergy (though it have some such
-false evil brethren too) is not so sorely corrupted as the book of
-_Division_ would make people think, but on their side they are as good
-as the temporality are on theirs.”[131]
-
-On one special point Saint-German insists very strongly. As it is
-a matter upon which much has been said, and upon which people are
-inclined to believe the worst about the pre-Reformation clergy, it
-may be worth while to give his views at some length, and then take
-Sir Thomas More’s opinion also on the subject. It is on the eternal
-question of the riches of the Church, and the supposed mercenary spirit
-which pervaded the clergy. “Some lay people say,” writes Saint-German,
-“that however much religious men have disputed amongst themselves as
-to the pre-eminence of their particular state in all such things as
-pertain to the maintenance of the worldly honour of the Church and
-of spiritual men, which they call the honour of God, and in all such
-things as pertain to the increase of the riches of spiritual men,
-all, religious or secular, agree as one.” For this reason it is found
-that religious men are much more earnest in trying to induce people
-to undertake and support such works as produce money for themselves,
-such as trentals, chantries, obits, pardons, and pilgrimages, than in
-insisting upon the payments of debts, upon restitution for wrong done,
-or upon works of mercy “to their neighbours poor and needy--sometimes
-in extreme necessity.”[132]
-
-Sir Thomas More replies that those who object in this way, object not
-so much because the trentals, &c., tend to make priests rich, but
-because they “hate” the things themselves. Indeed, some of these things
-are not such that they make priests so very rich, in fact, as to induce
-them to use all endeavour to procure them. The chantries, for example,
-“though they are many, no one man can make any very great living out of
-them; and that a priest should have some living of such a mean thing
-as the chantries commonly are, no good man will find great fault.” As
-for pilgrimages, “though the shrines are well garnished, and the chapel
-well hanged with wax (candles), few men nowadays, I fear, can have much
-cause to grudge or complain of the great offerings required from them.
-Those men make the most ado who offer nothing at all.” And with regard
-to “pardons,” it should be remembered that they were procured often
-“by the good faithful devotion of virtuous secular princes, as was the
-great pardon purchased for Westminster and the Savoy” by Henry VII.
-“And in good faith I never yet perceived,” he says, “that people make
-such great offerings at a pardon that we should either much pity their
-expense or envy the priests that profit.”
-
-“But then the trentals! Lo, they are the things, as you well know, by
-which the multitude of the clergy and specially the prelates, all get
-an infinite treasure each year.” For himself, Sir Thomas More hopes and
-“beseeches God to keep men devoted to the trentals and obits too.” But
-where this “Pacifier” asserts that “some say that all spiritual men
-as a body induce people to pilgrimages, pardons, chantries, obits, and
-trentals, rather than to the payment of their debts, or to restitution
-of their wrongs, or to deeds of mercy to their neighbours that are poor
-and needy, and sometimes in extreme necessity, for my part, I thank
-God,” he says, “that I never heard yet of any one who ever would give
-that counsel, and no more has this ‘Pacifier’ himself, for he says it
-only under his common figure of ‘some say.’”[133]
-
-In his second reply, More returns to the same subject. Saint-German
-speaks much, he says, about “restitution.” This, should there be
-need, no reasonable man would object to. “But now the matter standeth
-all in this way: this man talks as if the spirituality were very
-busy to procure men and induce people (generally) to give money for
-trentals, to found chantries and obits, to obtain pardons and to go on
-pilgrimages, leaving their debts unpaid and restitution unmade which
-should be done first, and that this was the custom of the spirituality.
-In this,” says More, “standeth the question.” The point is not whether
-debts and restitution should be satisfied before all other things,
-which all will allow, but whether the “multitude of the clergy, that
-is to say either all but a few, or at least the most part, solicit
-and labour lay people to do these (voluntary) things rather than pay
-their debts or make restitution for their wrongs.… That the multitude
-of priests do this, I never heard any honest man for very shame say.
-For I think it were hard to meet with a priest so wretched, who, were
-he asked his advice and counsel on that point, would not in so plain a
-matter, though out of very shame, well and plainly counsel the truth,
-and if perchance there were found any so shameless as to give contrary
-counsel, I am very sure they would be by far the fewer, and not as this
-good man’s first book says, the greater part and multitude.” What,
-therefore, More blames so much is, that under pretext of an altogether
-“untrue report” the clergy generally are held up to obloquy and their
-good name slandered.[134] If he thinks that “I do but mock him to my
-poor wit, I think it somewhat more civility in some such points as this
-to mock him a little merrily, than with odious earnest arguments to
-discuss matters seriously with him.”
-
-In some things even Saint-German considers the outcry raised against
-the clergy unreasonable. But then, as he truly says, many “work rather
-upon will than upon reason,” and though possessed of great and good
-zeal are lacking in necessary discretion. Thus some people, seeing the
-evils that come to the Church from riches, “have held the opinion that
-it was not lawful for the Church to have any possessions.” Others,
-“taking a more mean way,” have thought that the Church ought not to
-have “that great abundance that” it has, for this induces a love of
-riches in churchmen and “hinders, and in a manner strangles, the love
-of God.” These last would-be reformers of churchmen advocate taking
-away all that is not necessary. Others, again, have gone a step further
-still, “and because great riches have come to the Church for praying
-for souls in Purgatory, have affirmed that there is no Purgatory.”
-In the same way such men would be against pardons, pilgrimages, and
-chantries. They outwardly appear “to rise against all these … and to
-despise them, and yet in their hearts they know and believe that all
-such things are of themselves right good and profitable, as indeed they
-are, if they are ordered as they should be.”[135]
-
-Sir Thomas More truly says that what is implied in this outcry against
-the riches of the clergy is that as a body they lead idle, luxurious,
-if not vicious lives. It is easy enough to talk in this way, but how
-many men in secular occupations, he asks, would be willing to change?
-There might be “some who would, and gladly would, have become prelates
-(for I have heard many laymen who would very willingly have been
-bishops), and there might be found enough to match those that are evil
-and naughty secular priests, and those too who have run away from the
-religious life, and these would, and were able to, match them in their
-own ways were they never so bad. Yet, as the world goes now, it would
-not be very easy, I ween, to find sufficient to match the good, even
-though they be as few as some folk would have them to be.”
-
-In the fifteenth chapter of his book on the _Division_, Saint-German
-deals specially with the religious life and with what in his opinion
-people think about it, and about those who had given up their liberty
-for a life in the cloister. The matter is important, and considerable
-extracts are necessary fully to understand the position. “Another
-cause” of the dislike of the clergy by the laity is to be sought for
-in the “great laxity and liberty of living that people have seen
-in religious men. For they say, that though religious men profess
-obedience and poverty, yet many of them have and will have their own
-will, with plenty of delicate food in such abundance that no obedience
-or poverty appears in them. For this reason many have said, and yet
-say to the present day, that religious men have the most pleasant and
-delicate life that any men have. And truly, if we behold the holiness
-and blessed examples of the holy fathers, and of many religious persons
-that have lived in times past, and of many that now live in these
-days, we should see right great diversity between them. For many of
-them, I trow, as great diversity as between heaven and hell.” Then,
-after quoting the eighteenth chapter of _The Following of Christ_,
-he proceeds: “Thus far goeth the said chapter. But the great pity is
-that most men say that at the present day many religious men will
-rather follow their own will than the will of their superior, and that
-they will neither suffer hunger nor thirst, heat nor cold, nakedness,
-weariness nor labour, but will have riches, honour, dignities, friends,
-and worldly acquaintances, the attendance of servants at their
-commands, pleasure and disports, and that more liberally than temporal
-men have. Thus, say some, are they fallen from true religion, whereby
-the devotion of the people is in a manner fallen from them.”
-
-“Nevertheless, I doubt not that there are many right good and virtuous
-religious persons. God forbid that it should be otherwise. But it is
-said that there are many evil, and that in such a multitude that those
-who are good cannot, or will not, see them reformed. And one great
-cause that hinders reform is this: if the most dissolute person in all
-the community, and the one who lives most openly against the rules of
-religion, can use this policy, namely, to extol his (form of) religious
-life above all others, pointing them out as not being so perfect as
-that to which he belongs, anon he shall be called a good fervent
-brother, and one that supports his Order, and for this reason his
-offences shall be looked on the more lightly.”
-
-“Another thing that has caused many people to mislike religious has
-been the great extremity that has been many times witnessed at the
-elections of abbots, priors, and such other spiritual sovereigns. And
-this is a general ground, for when religious men perceive that people
-mislike them, they in their hearts withdraw their favour and devotion
-again from them. And in this way charity has waxed cold between them.”
-
-“And verily, I suppose, that it were better that there should be no
-abbot or prior hereafter allowed to continue over a certain number
-of years, and that these should be appointed by the authority of the
-rulers, rather than have such extremities at elections, as in many
-places has been used in times past.
-
-“And verily, it seems to me, one thing would do great good concerning
-religious Orders and all religious persons, and that is this: that the
-Rules and Constitutions of religious bodies should be examined and well
-considered, whether their rigour and straightness can be borne now in
-these days as they were at the beginning of the religious Orders. For
-people be nowadays weaker, as to the majority of men, than they were
-then. And if it is thought that they (_i.e._ the Rules) cannot now be
-kept, that then such relaxations and interpretations of their rules be
-made, as shall be thought expedient by the rulers. Better it is to have
-an easy rule well kept, than a strict rule broken without correction.
-For, thereof followeth a boldness to offend, a quiet heart in an evil
-conscience: a custom in sin, with many an ill example to the people.
-By this many have found fault at all religious life, where they should
-rather have found fault at divers abuses against the true religion.
-Certain it is that religious life was first ordained by the holy
-fathers by the inspiration of the Holy Ghost, keep it who so may.”[136]
-
-Much of this criticism on the state of the religious orders on the eve
-of the Reformation is obviously only very general, and would apply
-to all states of society, composed, as such bodies are, of human
-members. With much that Saint-German suggests, it is impossible not
-to agree in principle, however difficult the attainment of the ideal
-may be in practice. Sir Thomas More, whilst admitting that there were
-undoubtedly things requiring correction in the religious life of the
-period, maintains most strongly that in practical working it was far
-better than any one would gather from the assertions and suggestions
-of Saint-German, and that in reality, with all their carping at laxity
-and worldliness, none of the critics of the monks would be willing to
-change places with them. “As wealthy,” he writes, “and as easy and as
-glorious as some tell ‘the pacifier’ religious life is, yet if some
-other would say to them: ‘Lo sirs, those folks who are in religion
-shall out, come you into religion in their steads; live there better
-than they do, and you shall have heaven,’ they would answer, I fear me,
-that they are not weary of the world. And even if they were invited
-into religion another way, and it was said to them, ‘Sir, we will not
-bid you live so straight in religion as these men should have done;
-come on enter, and do just as they did, and then you will have a good,
-easy, and wealthy life, and much worldly praise for it,’--I ween for
-all that, a man would not get them to go into it. But as easy as we
-call it, and as wealthy too--and now peradventure when our wives are
-angry we wish ourselves therein--were it offered … I ween that for
-all our words, if that easy and wealthy life that is in religion were
-offered to us, even as weary as we are of wedding, we would rather bear
-all our pain abroad than take a religious man’s life of ease in the
-cloister.”[137]
-
-With some of the accusations of Saint-German, or rather with some of
-his explanations of the supposed “grudge” borne by the laity to the
-clergy, More has hardly the patience to deal. They, the clergy, and
-above all religious, should, the former says, “give alms and wear hair
-(shirts), and fast and pray that this division may cease.” “Pray, wear
-hair, fast, and give alms,” says the latter; “why, what else do they do
-as a rule? Some may not; but then there were some negligent in those
-matters for the past thousand years, and so the present negligence of
-a few can’t be the cause of the dissension now.” “But this ‘pacifier,’
-perceiving that what one man does in secret another cannot see, is
-therefore bold to say they do not do all those things he would have
-them do; that is to say, fast, pray, wear hair (shirts), and give alms.
-For he says ‘that they do all these things it appears not.’”
-
-Now, “as to praying, it appears indeed that they do this; and that
-so much that they daily pray, as some of us lay men think it a pain
-(to do) once a week; to rise so soon from sleep and to wait so long
-fasting, as on a Sunday to come and hear out their matins. And yet
-the matins in every parish is neither begun so early nor so long in
-the saying as it is in the Charter house you know well; and yet at
-the sloth and gluttony of us, who are lay people, he can wink and fan
-himself asleep. But as soon as the lips of the clergy stop moving he
-quickly spies out that they are not praying.”
-
-And “now as touching on alms: Is there none given, does he think, by
-the spirituality? If he say, as he does, that it does not appear that
-they do give alms, I might answer again that they but follow in this
-the counsel of Christ which says: ‘Let not the left hand see what thy
-right hand doeth.’… But as God, for all that counsel, was content that
-men should both pray and give to the needy and do other works both of
-penance and of charity openly and abroad, where there is no desire
-of vain glory, but that the people by the sight thereof might have
-occasion therefore to give laud and praise to God, so I dare say boldly
-that they, both secretly and openly too, … give no little alms in the
-year, whatsoever this ‘pacifier’ do say. And I somewhat marvel, since
-he goes so busily abroad that there is no ‘some say,’ almost in the
-whole realm, which he does not hear and repeat it; I marvel, I say,
-not a little that he neither sees nor hears from any ‘some say’ that
-there is almsgiving in the spirituality; I do not much myself go very
-far abroad, and yet I hear ‘some say’ that there is; and I myself see
-sometimes so many poor folk at Westminster at the doles, of whom, as
-far as I have ever heard, the monks are not wont to send many away
-unserved, that I have myself for the press of them been fain to ride
-another way.”
-
-“But to this, some one once answered me and said; ‘that it was no
-thanks to them, for it (came from) lands that good princes have given
-them.’ But, as I then told him, it was then much less thanks to them
-that would now give good princes evil counsel to take it from them. And
-also if we are to call it not giving of alms by them, because other
-good men have given them the lands from which they give it, from what
-will you have them give alms? They have no other.…”
-
-Further replying to the insinuation of Saint-German that the religious
-keep retainers and servants out of pride and for “proud worldly
-countenance,” Sir Thomas More says: “If men were as ready in regard to
-a deed of their own, by nature indifferent, to construe the mind and
-intent of the doer to the better part, as they are, of their own inward
-goodness, to construe and report it to the worst, then might I say,
-that the very thing which they call ‘the proud worldly countenance’
-they might and should call charitable alms. That is to say, (when they
-furnish) the right honest keep and good bringing up of so many temporal
-men in their service, who though not beggars yet perhaps the greater
-part of them might have to beg if they did not support them but sent
-them out to look for some service for themselves,” (they are giving
-charitable alms).
-
-“And just as if you would give a poor man some money because he was in
-need and yet would make him go and work for it in your garden, lest
-by your alms he should live idle and become a loiterer, the labour he
-does, does not take away the nature nor merit of alms: so neither is
-the keeping of servants no alms, though they may wait on the finder and
-serve him in his house. And of all alms the chief is, to see people
-well brought up and well and honestly guided. In which point, though
-neither part do fully their duty, yet I believe in good faith that
-in this matter, which is no small alms, the spirituality is rather
-somewhat before us than in any way drags behind.”[138]
-
-With regard to the charge brought against the clergy of great laxity in
-fasting and mortification, More thinks this is really a point on which
-he justly can make merry. Fasting, he says, must be regulated according
-to custom and the circumstances of time and place. If there were to be
-a cast-iron rule for fasting, then, when compared with primitive times,
-people in his day, since they dined at noon, could not be held to fast
-at all. And yet “the Church to condescend to our infirmity” has allowed
-men “to say their evensong in Lent before noon,” in order that they
-might not break their fast before the vesper hour. The fact is that, in
-More’s opinion, a great deal of the outcry about the unmortified lives
-of the religious and clergy had “been made in Germany” by those who
-desired to throw off all such regulations for themselves. As a Teuton
-had said to him in “Almaine” colloquial English--“when I blamed him,”
-More says, “for not fasting on a certain day: ‘Fare to sould te laye
-men fasten? let te prester fasten.’ So we, God knows, begin to fast
-very little ourselves, but bid the ‘prester to fasten.’”[139]
-
-“And as to such mortifications as the wearing of hair shirts, it
-would indeed be hard to bind men, even priests, to do this, … though
-among them many do so already, and some whole religious bodies too.”
-If he says, as he does, that this “does not appear,” what would he
-have? Would he wish them to publish to the world these penances? If
-they take his, Saint-German’s, advice, “they will come out of their
-cloisters every man into the market-place, and there kneel down in the
-gutters, and make their prayers in the open streets, and wear their
-hair shirts over their cowls, and then it shall appear and men shall
-see it. And truly in this way there will be no hypocrisy for their
-shirts of hair, and yet moreover it will be a good policy, for then
-they will not prick them.”[140]
-
-In the same way More points out that people in talking against the
-wealth of the clergy are not less unreasonable than they are when
-criticising what they call their idle, easy lives. “Not indeed that we
-might not be able always to find plenty content to enter into their
-possessions, though we could not always find men enough content to
-enter their religions;” but when the matter is probed to the bottom,
-and it is a question how their wealth “would be better bestowed,” then
-“such ways as at the first face seemed very good and very charitable
-for the comfort and help of poor folk, appeared after reasoning more
-likely in a short while to make many more beggars than to relieve those
-that are so already. And some other ways that at first appeared for
-the greater advantage of the realm, and likely to increase the king’s
-honour and be a great strength for the country, and a great security
-for the prince as well as a great relief of the people’s charges,
-appeared clearly after further discussion to be ‘clean contrary, and of
-all other ways the worst.’”
-
-“And to say the truth,” he continues, “I much marvel to see some
-folk now speak so much and boldly about taking away any possessions
-of the clergy.” For though once in the reign of Henry IV., “about the
-time of a great rumble that the heretics made, when they would have
-destroyed not only the clergy but the king and his nobility also, there
-was a foolish and false bill or two put into Parliament and dismissed
-as they deserved; yet in all my time, when I was conversant with the
-court, I had never found of all the nobility of this land more than
-seven (of which seven there are now three dead) who thought that it
-was either right or reasonable, or could be any way profitable to the
-realm, without lawful cause to take away from the clergy any of the
-possessions which good and holy princes, and other devout, virtuous
-people, of whom many now are blessed saints in heaven, have of devotion
-towards God given to the clergy to serve God and pray for all Christian
-souls.”[141]
-
-In his _Confutation of Tyndale’s Answer_, made in 1532, when Sir
-Thomas More was still Lord Chancellor of England, he protests against
-imputations made by his adversary and his follower Barnes, that the
-clergy were as a body corrupt. “Friar Barnes lasheth out against them,
-against their pride and pomp, and all their lives spent in” vicious
-living, “as if there were not a good priest in all the Catholic
-Church.… He jesteth on them because they wear crowns and long gowns,
-and the bishops wear rochets. And he hath likened them to bulls,
-asses, and apes, and the rochets to smocks.” “But he forgets how many
-good virtuous priests and religious people be put out of their places
-(in Germany) and spoiled of their living, and beaten, and sent out
-a-begging, while heretics and apostates, with their women, keep their
-shameless lives with the living that holy folks have dedicated unto God
-for the support of such as would serve God in spiritual cleanness and
-vowed chastity. He knows well enough, I warrant you, that the clergy
-can never lack persecution where heretics may grow; nor soon after
-the temporality either, as it has hitherto been proved in every such
-country yet.”[142]
-
-He will not repeat all his “ribald railing upon all the clergy of
-Christendom who will not be heretics” when he calls “them bulls, apes,
-asses and abominable harlots and devils.” … “No good man doubts,
-although among the clergy there are many full bad (as, indeed, it were
-hard to have it otherwise among so great a multitude, whilst Christ’s
-own twelve were not without a traitor), that there are again among them
-many right virtuous folk, and such that the whole world beside fares
-the better for their holy living and their devout prayer.”[143]
-
-Beyond the above supposed causes for the growth of the dislike of
-the clergy which Sir Thomas More weighs and considers in the above
-extracts, Saint-German gives others which are instructive as to the
-actual status of the clergy; but with which, as they do not reflect
-upon their moral character, Sir Thomas More was not immediately
-concerned in his reply. One occasion of the present difficulties and
-division, writes Saint-German, “has partly arisen by temporal men who
-have desired much the familiarity of priests in their games and sports,
-and who were wont to make much more of those who were companionable
-than of those that were not so, and have called them good fellows
-and good companions. And many also would have chaplains which they
-would not only suffer, but also command, to go hunting, hawking, and
-such other vain disports; and some would let them lie among other lay
-servants, where they could neither use prayer nor contemplation.”
-
-Some even go so far as to insist on their chaplains wearing “liveries,”
-which “are not convenient in colour for a priest to wear.” Others give
-them worldly businesses to attend to in the way of stewardships, &c.,
-“so that in this way their inward devotion of heart has become as
-cold and as weak, in a manner, as it is in lay men.” Nevertheless, in
-spite of the evil effect to be feared from this training, they do not
-hesitate to put them into the first benefice they have to dispose of;
-“and when they have done so, they will anon speak evil of priests, and
-report great lightness in them, and lightly compare the faults of one
-priest with another.” This they do “even when they themselves have been
-partly the occasion of their offences.”
-
-Moreover, “where by the law all priests ought to be at the (parish)
-church on Sundays and holidays, and help the service of God in the
-choir, and also, when there, to be under the orders of the curate
-(or parish priest of the place), yet nevertheless many men who have
-chaplains will not allow them to come to the parish church; and when
-they are there, will not suffer them to receive their orders from the
-curate, but only from themselves; nor will they tolerate seeing them in
-the choir;” and what is the case with “chaplains and serving priests is
-also (true) of chantry priests and brotherhood priests in many places.”
-
-To remedy these evils, Saint-German thinks, as indeed every one would
-be disposed to agree with him, that priests should be prohibited from
-hunting and all such games as are unsuitable to the priestly character,
-“though perchance he may, as for recreation, use honest disportes for a
-time.” Moreover, he should not “frequent the ale house or tavern,” and,
-if in his recreations the people are offended, he should be warned by
-“an abbot and a justice of the peace of the shire.” If, after this, he
-does not change, he ought to be suspended. Further than this, no one
-should be permitted to have a chaplain who has not “a standing house,”
-where the priest is able to have his private chamber with a lock and
-key, so that “he may use himself therein conveniently in reading,
-prayer, or contemplation, or such other labours and business as it is
-convenient for a priest to use.”[144]
-
-Both in his work on the _Division_ and in his previous tract,
-_A Dyalogue between a Student of Law and a Doctor of Divinity_,
-Saint-German lays great stress upon the question of mortuaries, as one
-that gave great offence to lay people at the period when he wrote. As
-he explained in the _Dyalogue_, the State had already interfered to
-regulate the exactions made by custom at funerals, but nevertheless
-“in some places the Church claims to have the taper that stands in the
-middle of the hearse over the heart of the corpse, and some claim to
-have all the tapers. Some also claim to have one of the torches that is
-about the hearse, and others to have all the torches. And if the body
-be brought in a charette or with coat armour or such other (ornaments),
-then they claim all the horses and charette and the apparel or part
-thereof.”[145] Now, in his other book, Saint-German thinks that though
-these things “are annulled already by statute,” there is rising up
-“a thing concerning mortuaries,” that “if it be allowed to continue”
-will cause great difficulties in the near future. It is this: “Many
-curates not regarding the king’s statute in that behalf, persuade
-their parishioners when they are sick to believe that they cannot be
-saved unless they restore them as much as the old mortuary would have
-amounted to.” All those who act in such a way are, he thinks, “bound in
-conscience to restitution, since they have obtained money under false
-information.”[146]
-
-After arguing that Parliament has a right to legislate in all matters
-concerning goods and property, our author says: “It is certain that
-all such mortuaries were temporal goods, though they were claimed by
-spiritual men; and the cause why they were taken away was, because
-there were few things within this realm which caused more variance
-among the people than they did, when they were allowed. They were taken
-so far against the king’s laws and against justice and right, as shall
-hereafter appear. First they were taken not only after the husband’s
-death, but also after the death of the wife, who by the law of the
-realm had no goods, but what were the husband’s. They were taken also
-from servants and children, as well infants as others; and if a man
-died on a journey and had a household, he should pay mortuaries in both
-places.” Whilst in some places both the parson and the vicar claimed
-the mortuary; “and sometime even the curate (_i.e._ parish priest)
-would prohibit poor men to sell their goods, as were likely to come to
-them as mortuaries, for they would say it was done in order to defraud
-the Church.” And the mortuaries had to be handed over at once, or they
-would not bury the body. All these things led to the great growth of
-mortuaries “by the prescription of the spiritual law, and had they not
-been put an end to by Parliament they would have grown more and more.
-
-“And in many places they were taken in such a way that it made the
-people think that their curates loved their mortuaries better than
-their lives. For this reason there rose in many places great division
-and grudge between them, which caused a breach of the peace, love, and
-charity that ought to be between the curate and his parishioners, to
-the great unquietness of many of the king’s subjects, as well spiritual
-as temporal, and to the great danger and peril of their souls. For
-these causes the said mortuaries be annulled by Parliament, as well in
-conscience as in law, and yet it is said that some curates use great
-extremities concerning the said mortuaries another way; and that is
-this: If at the first request the executor pay not the money that is
-appointed by the statute, they will anon have a citation against him,
-and in this he shall be so handled that, as it is said, it would have
-been generally much better for him to have paid the old mortuary, than
-the costs and expenses he will then have to pay.”[147]
-
-Another fertile cause of complaint against the clergy at this time
-was, in Saint-German’s opinion, the way in which tithes were exacted;
-in many cases without much consideration for justice and reason. “In
-some places, the curates all exact their tenth of everything within the
-parish that is subject to tithe, although their predecessors from time
-immemorial have been contented to do without it: and this even though
-there is sufficient besides for the curates to live upon, and though
-perchance in old time something else has been assigned in place of it.
-In some places there has been asked, it is said, tithe of both chickens
-and eggs; in some places of milk and cheese; and in some others tithe
-of the ground and also of all that falleth to the ground. In other
-places tithes of servants’ wages is claimed without any deduction; and
-indeed it is in but few places that any servant shall go quite without
-some payment of tithe, though he may have spent all in sickness, or
-upon his father and mother, or such necessary expenses.”
-
-Our author, from whom we get so much information as to the relations
-which existed in pre-Reformation times between the clergy and people,
-goes on to give additional instances of the possible hardships
-incidental to the collection of the ecclesiastical dues. These,
-where they exist, he, no doubt rightly, thinks do not tend to a good
-understanding between those who have the cure of souls, and who ought
-to be regarded rather in the light of spiritual fathers, than of
-worldly tax collectors. He admits, however, that these are the abuses
-of the few, and must not be considered as universally true of all
-the clergy. “And though,” he concludes, “these abusions are not used
-universally (God forbid that they should), for there are many good
-curates and other spiritual men that would not use them to win any
-earthly thing, yet when people of divers countries meet together, and
-one tells another of some such extremity used by some curates in his
-country, and the other in like manner to him, soon they come to think
-that such covetousness and harsh dealing is common to all curates. And
-although they do not well in so doing, for the offence of one priest
-is no offence of any other, if they will so take it: yet spiritual men
-themselves do nothing to bring the people out of this judgment; but
-allow these abuses to be used by some without correcting them.”[148]
-
-To these objections, and more of the same kind, Sir Thomas More did
-not make, and apparently did not think it at all necessary to make,
-any formal reply. Indeed, he probably considered that where such
-things could be proved it would be both just and politic to correct
-them. His failing to reply on this score, however, seems to have
-been interpreted by Saint-German as meaning his rejection of all
-blame attaching to the clerical profession in these matters. In the
-_Deballacion of Salem and Byzance_, More protests that this is not his
-meaning at all. “He says,” writes he, “that I, in my mind, prove it to
-be an intolerable fault in the people to misjudge the clergy, since I
-think they have no cause so to do, and that there I leave them, as if
-all the whole cause and principal fault was in the temporality.” This,
-More declares he never dreamed of, for “if he seek these seven years
-in all my _Apology_, he shall find you no such words” to justify this
-view. On the contrary, he will find that “I say in those places, ‘that
-the people are too reasonable to take this or that thing’ amiss for
-‘any reasonable cause of division.’”[149] The fact is, “I have never
-either laid the principal fault to the one or to the other.” To much
-that Saint-German said, More assented; and his general attitude to the
-general accusations he states in these words: “Many of them I will pass
-over untouched, both because most of them are such as every wise man
-will, I suppose, answer them himself in the reading, and satisfy his
-own mind without any need of my help therein, and because some things
-are there also very well said.”
-
-Reading the four books referred to above together, one is forced to the
-conviction that the description of Sir Thomas More really represents
-the state of the clergy as it then was. That there were bad as well as
-good may be taken for granted, even without the admissions of More, but
-that as a body the clergy, secular or religious, were as hopelessly bad
-as subsequent writers have so often asked their readers to believe,
-or even that they were as bad as the reports, started chiefly by
-Lutheran emissaries, who were striving to plough up the soil in order
-to implant the new German teachings in the place of the old religious
-faith of England, would make out, is disproved by the tracts of both
-Saint-German and Sir Thomas More. In such a discussion it may be taken
-for granted that the worst would have appeared. Had the former any
-evidence of general and hopeless corruption he would, when pressed by
-his adversary, have brought it forward. Had the latter--whose honesty
-and full knowledge must be admitted by all--any suspicion of what
-later generations have been asked to believe as the true picture of
-ecclesiastical life in pre-Reformation England, he would not have
-dared, even if his irreproachable integrity would have permitted him,
-to reject as a caricature and a libel even Christopher Saint-German’s
-moderate picture.
-
-In one particular More categorically denies a charge made by Tyndale
-against the clergy in general, and against the Popes for permitting
-so deplorable a state of things in regard to clerical morals.
-As the charge first suggested by Tyndale has been repeated very
-frequently down to our own time, it is useful to give the evidence
-of so unexceptional authority as that of the Lord Chancellor of
-England. Tyndale declared that although marriage was prohibited by
-ecclesiastical law to the clergy of the Western Church, the Pope
-granted leave “unto as many as bring money” to keep concubines. And
-after asserting that this was the case in Germany, Wales, Ireland,
-&c., he adds, “And in England thereto they be not few who have (this)
-licence--some of the Pope, and some of their ordinaries.” To this More
-says: “We have had many pardons come hither, and many dispensations
-and many licences too, but yet I thank our Lord I never knew none
-such, nor I trust never shall, nor Tyndale, I trow either; but that he
-listeth loud to lie. And as for his licences customably given by the
-ordinaries, I trust he lies in regard to other countries, for as for
-England I am sure he lies.”[150]
-
-It would of course be untrue to suggest that there were no grounds
-whatever for objection to the clerical life of the period. At all
-times the ministers of the Church of God are but human instruments,
-manifesting now more now less the human infirmities of their nature.
-A passage in a sermon preached by Bishop Longland of Lincoln in 1538
-suggests that the most crying abuse among the clergy of that time was
-simony. “Yet there is one thing, or ill which the prophet saw not in
-this city (of Sodom). What is that? That which specially above other
-things should have been seen. What is it? That which most is abused
-in this world. I pray thee, what is it? Make no more ado: tell it.
-That which almost destroyed the Church of Christ. Then, I pray thee,
-shew it: shew what it is: let it be known, that remedy may be had and
-the thing holpen. What is it? Forsooth it is simony, simony: chapping
-and changing, buying and selling of benefices and of spiritual gifts
-and promotions. And no better merchandise is nowadays than to procure
-advowsons of patrons for benefices, for prebends, for other spiritual
-livelihood, whether it be by suit, request, by letters, by money
-bargain or otherwise: yea, whether it be to buy them or to sell them,
-thou shalt have merchants plenty, merchants enough for it.
-
-“These advowsons are abroad here in this city. In which city? In most
-part of all the great cities of this realm. In the shops, in the
-streets, a common merchandise. And they that do come by their benefices
-or promotions under such a manner shall never have grace of God to
-profit the Church.”[151]
-
-It is interesting to recall the fact that the late Mr. Brewer, whose
-intimate knowledge of this period of our national history is admitted
-on all hands, arrived, after the fullest investigation, at a similar
-conclusion as to the real state of the Church in pre-Reformation
-England. Taking first the religious houses, this high authority
-considers that no doubt many circumstances had contributed at this time
-to lower the tone of religious discipline; but taking a broad survey,
-the following is the historian’s verdict: “That in so large a body of
-men, so widely dispersed, seated for so many centuries in the richest
-and fairest estates of England, for which they were mainly indebted to
-their own skill, perseverance, and industry, discreditable members were
-to be found (and what literary _chiffonnier_, raking in the scandalous
-annals of any profession, cannot find filth and corruption?) is likely
-enough, but that the corruption was either so black or so general as
-party spirit would have us believe, is contrary to all analogy, and is
-unsupported by impartial and contemporary evidence.”[152]
-
-“It is impossible,” he says in another place, “that the clergy can have
-been universally immoral and the laity have remained sound, temperate,
-and loyal.” This, by the way, is exactly what More, who lived in the
-period, insisted upon.
-
-“But,” continues Brewer, “if these general arguments are not
-sufficient, I refer my readers to a very curious document, dated
-the 8th of July 1519, when a search was instituted by different
-commissioners on a Sunday night, in London and its suburbs, for all
-suspected and disorderly persons. I fear no parish in London, nor any
-town in the United Kingdom, of the same amount of population, would
-at this day pass a similar ordeal with equal credit.”[153] And in
-another place he sums up the question in these words: “Considering
-the temper of the English people, it is not probable that immorality
-could have existed among the ancient clergy to the degree which the
-exaggeration of poets, preachers, and satirists might lead us to
-suppose. The existence of such corruption is not justified by authentic
-documents or by any impartial and broad estimate of the character and
-conduct of the nation before the Reformation. If these complaints of
-preachers and moralists are to be accepted as authoritative on this
-head, there would be no difficulty in producing abundant evidence from
-the Reformers themselves that the abuses and enormities of their own
-age, under Edward VI. and Elizabeth, were far greater than in the ages
-preceding.”[154]
-
-It is too often assumed that in the choice and education of the
-clergy little care and discretion was exercised by the bishops and
-other responsible officials, and that thus those unfit for the
-sacred ministry by education and character often found their way
-into the priesthood. In the last Convocation held on the eve of the
-Reformation a serious attempt was evidently made to correct whatever
-abuses existed in this matter, when it was enacted that no bishop
-might ordain any subject not born in his diocese or beneficed in it,
-or without a domicile in it for three months, even with dimissorial
-letters. Further, that no secular clerk should be ordained without
-testimonial letters as to character from the parish priest of the
-place where he was born or had lived for three years, sealed by the
-archdeacon of the district, or in the case of a university, by the seal
-of the vice-chancellor. No one whatsoever was to be admitted to the
-subdiaconate “who was not so versed in the Epistles and Gospels, at
-least those contained in the Missal, as to be able at once to explain
-their grammatical meaning to the examiner.” He must also show that he
-understands and knows whatever pertains to his office.[155]
-
-The most important book of this period dealing with the life and
-education of the clergy is a tract printed by Wynkyn de Worde about
-the beginning of the sixteenth century. It was written by William
-de Melton, Chancellor of York, and at the end is the declaration of
-Colet, that he has read it and highly approves of its contents.[156]
-The author states that he desires to instruct the “many young men” who
-every Ember time come up to York for ordination in their duties. No
-person, he says, ought to present himself to receive the priesthood
-who is not prepared to lead a life in all things worthy of the sacred
-ministry. He should remember that he is really to be accounted one
-of the twelve who sat with our Lord at His last supper. He must be
-sufficiently versed in the learning of the world not to dishonour the
-priestly calling, and above all be taught in His school “who has said,
-‘Learn of Me, for I am meek and humble of heart.’”
-
-“And since I am now on the question of those only partly well learned,”
-continues the author, “I wish all coming for ordination to understand
-that always and everywhere those who have not yet attained to at least
-a fair knowledge of good letters are to be rejected as candidates for
-Holy Orders. They can in no way be considered to have a fair knowledge
-of letters who, though skilful in grammar, do not possess the science
-well enough to read promptly and easily Latin books, and above all,
-the sacred Scriptures, and expound their meaning and the literal
-signification of the words as they stand in the books; and this not
-haltingly, but readily and easily, so as to show that they know the
-language not merely slightly and slenderly, but that they possess a
-full and radical knowledge of it and its construction. Therefore, those
-who read the sacred Scriptures or other Latin work with difficulty,
-or, whilst reading, often mistake the proper connection of the words,
-or read them with such pauses as to seem not to be used to the Latin
-language, are to be refused Sacred Orders until, by diligent study,
-they have become more skilled in their letters.”
-
-In the same way the tract goes on to declare that those who are unable
-to explain or understand the spiritual signification of Scripture
-are to be refused ordination to the sacred ministry until they show
-themselves at least fairly well able to do so. “To be reckoned among
-even the fairly proficient, we require,” says the author, “such a
-thorough and sure foundation of grammatical knowledge that there may be
-hopes that alone and without other teachers they may, from books and
-diligent study, endeavour day by day to improve themselves by reading
-and study.” Then addressing the candidates the author begs them, if
-they feel they have not this necessary foundation, “not through mere
-presumption to offer themselves to the examiners.” “Seek not a position
-in the Church of God in which neither now nor during your whole life
-will you be able to show yourself a fitting minister. For those who
-before taking Holy Orders have not fitted themselves fairly well in
-learning rarely if ever are seen to make progress in literature. On the
-contrary, they ever remain, even to old age, dunces and stupid, and,
-furthermore, such priests known to the common people for such manifest
-ignorance are a great scandal which involves the whole sacred ministry.”
-
-Great damage is done to the whole Church of God through the ignorance
-of the clergy. Both in towns and country places there are priests
-who occupy themselves, some in mean and servile work, some who give
-themselves to tavern drinking; the former can hardly help mixing
-themselves up with women, the latter employ their time in games of
-dice, &c., and some of them pass it in the vanities of hunting and
-hawking. Thus do they spend their whole lives to extreme old age in
-idleness and non-religious occupations. Nor could they do otherwise,
-for as they are quite ignorant of good letters, how can they be
-expected to work at and take a pleasure in reading and study; rather
-throwing away these despised and neglected books, they turn to that
-kind of miserable and unpriestly life described above, hoping to kill
-time and cure their dulness by such things.
-
-He then goes on to exhort the young to implant in their hearts a strong
-desire to study deeply in the books of God’s Law rather than to be
-tainted thus by the stains and vanities of the world which they were
-supposed to have left. “It is,” he continues, “impossible that such a
-holy desire should possess you, unless you have made progress in such
-studies before taking Holy Orders, and are so advanced in your literary
-studies that the reading of many books is both easy and pleasant
-to you, and the construction of the meaning of a passage no longer
-difficult, but whilst reading you may quickly and easily follow at
-least the literal sense of the sentence.”
-
-This interesting tract then goes on to warn subdeacons not to take
-upon themselves the perpetual obligations of Sacred Orders unless
-they are conscious to themselves of no reason or objection, however
-secret and hidden, which may stand in the way of their faithfully
-keeping their promises. They must feel that they enter the ranks of
-the clergy only from the motive of serving God. Then, after warning
-the clergy against the vices which specially detract from the sacred
-character of the priesthood, the author continues, “Let us therefore
-turn to study, reading, and meditation of the Holy Scriptures as the
-best remedy against unworthy sloth and foolish desires. Let us not
-consume the time given us uselessly and fruitlessly.” A priest should
-say his Hours and Mass daily. He should spend the morning till mid-day
-in choir and other works, and even then not think he has fulfilled the
-whole duty of the priesthood. A priest is bound to serious studies and
-meditation. “Constant reading and meditation of the books of God’s law
-and the writings of the holy Fathers and Doctors are the best remedy
-for slothful habits,” and these have been put at the disposition of
-all through the printing-press. Just as a workman has besides his shop
-a workroom where he has to spend hours preparing the wares that he
-offers for sale, so the priest, who in the church on Sunday offers his
-people the things necessary for salvation, should spend days and nights
-in holy reading and study in order to make them his own before he
-hands them on to others. “Wherefore, my dearest brethren, let us think
-ourselves proper priests only when we find our delight and joy in the
-constant study of Holy Scripture.”
-
-So much for the important advice given to priests or those intending
-to be priests as to the necessity of acquiring previous habits of
-study. Not infrequently the fact that in 1532 Parliament did actually
-transfer the power of ecclesiastical legislation hitherto possessed by
-Convocation to the Crown, is adduced as proof that to the nation at
-large the powers of the clergy, for a long time resented, had at length
-become a yoke not to be borne. Yet it is clear that the policy of the
-king to crush the clergy in this way was by no means heartily supported
-by the Commons. There can be no doubt whatever that the petition of
-the Commons against the spirituality really emanated from the Court,
-and that the Lower House was compelled by direct royal influence to
-take the course indicated by royal will. Four drafts of the petition
-existing among the State papers in the Record Office put this beyond
-doubt, as they are all corrected in the well-known hand of Henry’s
-adviser at this time, Thomas Cromwell. The substance of the petition
-states that on account of the diffusion of heretical books, and the
-action of the bishops in spiritual courts, “much discord had arisen
-between the clergy and the laity at large.” The answer of the bishops
-denies all knowledge of this discord, at least on their parts. The
-ordinaries, they said, exercised spiritual jurisdiction, and no one
-might interfere in that, as their right to make laws in this sphere
-was from God, and could be proved by Scripture. The two jurisdictions
-could not clash as they were derived from the same source, namely, the
-authority given by God. Finally, they practically refused to consider
-the possibility of any just royal interference in matters of the purely
-ecclesiastical domain. Their resistance was, of course, as we know,
-of no avail; but the incident shows that up to the very eve of the
-changes the clergy had no notion of any surrender of their spiritual
-prerogatives, and that it was the Crown and not the Commons that was
-hostile to them.[157]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-ERASMUS
-
-
-During the first portion of the sixteenth century Erasmus occupied a
-unique position in Europe. He was beyond question the most remarkable
-outcome of the renaissance in its literary aspect; and he may fairly
-be taken as a type of the critical attitude of mind in which many
-even of the best and the most loyal Catholics of the day approached
-the consideration of the serious religious problems which were, at
-that time, forcing themselves upon the notice of the ecclesiastical
-authorities. Such men held that the best service a true son of the
-Church could give to religion was the service of a trained mind, ready
-to face facts as they were, convinced that the Christian faith had
-nothing to lose by the fullest light and the freest investigation, but
-at the same time protesting that they would suffer no suspicion to
-rest on their entire loyalty of heart to the authority of the teaching
-Church.
-
-Keenly alive to the spiritual wants of the age, and to what he, in
-common with many others of the time, considered crying abuses in
-the government of the Church, resulting from the excessive temporal
-grandeur of ecclesiastics engaged in secular sovereignty and
-government, Erasmus, like many of his contemporaries, is often perhaps
-injudicious in the manner in which he advocated reforms. But when the
-matter is sifted to the bottom, it will commonly be found that his
-ideas are just. He clamoured loudly and fearlessly for the proper
-enforcing of ecclesiastical discipline, and for a complete change in
-the stereotyped modes of teaching; and he proclaimed the need of a
-thorough literary education for Churchmen as the best corrective of
-what he held to be the narrowing formalism of mediæval scholastic
-training. It is, perhaps, hardly wonderful that his general attitude
-in these matters should have been misunderstood and exaggerated. By
-many of his Catholic contemporaries he was looked upon as a secret
-rebel against received authority, and in truth as the real intellectual
-force of the whole Lutheran movement. By the Reformers themselves,
-regarded as at heart belonging to them, he was upbraided as a coward,
-and spoken of as one who had not the courage of his convictions.
-Posterity has represented him now in the one aspect, now in the other,
-now as at best a lukewarm Catholic, now as a secret and dangerous
-heretic. By most Catholics probably he has been regarded as a Reformer,
-as pronounced even as Luther himself; or to use the familiar phrase
-founded upon an expression of his own, they considered that “his was
-the egg which Luther hatched.” Few writers have endeavoured to read
-any meaning into his seemingly paradoxical position by reference to
-his own explanations, or by viewing it in the light of the peculiar
-circumstances of the times in which he lived, and which are, to some
-extent at least, responsible for it.
-
-Desiderius Erasmus was born at Rotterdam, in the year 1467. His
-father’s Christian name was Gerhard, of which Desiderius was intended
-for the Latin, and Erasmus for the Greek, equivalent. Other surname
-he had none, as he was born out of wedlock; but his father adopted
-the responsibility of his education, for which he provided by placing
-him first as a chorister in the cathedral of Utrecht, and subsequently
-by sending him to Deventer, then one of the best schools in Northern
-Europe. Deventer was at that time presided over by the learned
-scholar and teacher Alexander Hegius, and amongst his fellow-students
-there, Erasmus found several youths who subsequently, as men, won for
-themselves renown in the learned world. One of them, under the title of
-Adrian VI., subsequently occupied the Papal chair.
-
-His father and mother both died of the plague whilst Erasmus was still
-young. At the age of thirteen he was taken from Deventer by the three
-guardians to whose charge he had been committed, and sent to a purely
-ecclesiastical school, meant to prepare those intended only for a life
-in the cloister. Here he remained for three years, and after having for
-a considerable time resisted the suggestions of his masters that he
-should join their Order, he finally entered the novitiate of the Canons
-Regular of St. Augustine at Stein, near Gouda. Here he was professed at
-the age of nineteen, and after the usual interval was ordained priest.
-
-Much obscurity and many apparent contradictions prevent us fully
-understanding Erasmus’s early life, and in particular the portion spent
-by him in the cloister. One thing, however, would seem to be quite
-clear; he could never have had any vocation for the religious life. His
-whole subsequent history shows this unmistakeably; and the ill-judged
-zeal of those who practically forced him into a state for which he
-was constitutionally unfitted, and for which he had no aptitude or
-inclination, must, if we take his account of the facts as correct,
-be as strongly condemned by all right-thinking people as by himself.
-He, however, appears not to have understood that this may have been a
-special case, and not the usual lot of youths entering religion. One
-evident result of his experience is the bitter feeling created in his
-heart towards the religious Orders and the uncompromising hostility he
-ever after displayed towards them. In the celebrated letter he wrote
-to the papal secretary, Lambert Grunnius, which was intended for the
-information of the Pope himself, and which is supposed to describe
-his own case, Erasmus justly condemns in the strongest language the
-practice of enticing youths into the cloister before they were fully
-aware of what they were doing. If we are to believe the statements
-made in that letter, Erasmus did not think that his was by any means
-a singular case. Agents of the religious Orders, he declared, were
-ever hanging about the schools and colleges, endeavouring to entice
-the youthful students into their ranks by any and every method. But he
-is careful to add, “I do not condemn the religious Orders as such.
-I do not approve of those who make the plunge and then fly back to
-liberty as a licence for loose living, and desert improperly what they
-undertook foolishly. But dispositions vary; all things do not suit all
-characters, and no worse misfortune can befall a youth of intellect
-than to be buried under conditions from which he can never after
-extricate himself. The world thought well of my schoolmaster guardian
-because he was neither a liar nor a scamp nor a gambler, but he was
-coarse, avaricious, and ignorant, he knew nothing beyond the confused
-lessons he taught to his classes. He imagined that in forcing a youth
-to become a monk he would be offering a sacrifice acceptable to God.
-He used to boast of the many victims which he destined to Dominic and
-Francis and Benedict.”[158]
-
-Without any taste for the routine of conventual life, and with his mind
-filled by an ardent love of letters, which there seemed in the narrow
-circle of his cloister no prospect of ever being able to gratify,
-the short period of Erasmus’s stay at Stein must have been to him in
-the last degree uncongenial and irksome. Fortunately, however, for
-his own peace of mind and for the cause of general learning, a means
-was quickly found by which he was practically emancipated from the
-restraints he ought never to have undertaken. The Bishop of Cambray
-obtained permission to have him as secretary, and after keeping him a
-short time in this position he enabled him to proceed to the University
-of Paris. From this time Erasmus was practically released from the
-obligations of conventual life; and in 1514, when some question had
-been raised about his return to the cloister, he readily obtained from
-the Pope a final release from a form of life for which obviously he was
-constitutionally unfitted, and the dress of which he had been permitted
-to lay aside seven years previously.
-
-The generosity of his episcopal patron did not suffice to meet all
-Erasmus’s wants. To add to his income he took pupils, and with one of
-them, Lord Mountjoy, he came to England in 1497. He spent, apparently,
-the next three years at Oxford, living in the house which his Order
-had at that University; whilst there he made the acquaintance of the
-most learned Englishmen of that time, and amongst others of Grocyn,
-Linacre, and Colet. He also at this time took up the study of the Greek
-language, with which previously he had but a slender acquaintance, and
-his ardour was so great that the following year, 1498, whilst at work
-on the _Adagia_, he could write, “I am giving my whole soul to the
-study of Greek; directly I get some money I shall buy Greek authors
-first, and then some clothes.” From 1499 to 1506 he was continually
-moving about in various learned centres of France and Holland, his
-longest stay being at the University of Louvain.
-
-In the April of 1506 he was again in England, first with Archbishop
-Warham and Sir Thomas More in London, and subsequently at Cambridge;
-but in a few months he was enabled to carry out the plan of visiting
-Italy which he had long contemplated. He engaged to escort the two sons
-of Sebastian Boyer, the English court physician, as far as Bologna, and
-by September he was already in Turin, where he took his doctor’s degree
-in divinity. The winter of the same year he passed at Bologna, and
-reached Venice in the spring of 1507.
-
-His main object in directing his steps to this last-named city was
-to pass the second and enlarged edition of his _Adagia_ through the
-celebrated Aldine printing-press. Here he found gathered together,
-within reach of the press, a circle of illustrious scholars. Aldus
-himself, a man, as Erasmus recalled in a letter written in 1524,
-“approaching the age of seventy years, but in all matters relating to
-letters still in the prime of his youth,” was his host. In 1508 Erasmus
-removed to Padua, and the following year passed on to Rome, where he
-was well received. His stay in the eternal city at this time was not
-prolonged, for a letter received from Lord Mountjoy announcing the
-death of Henry VII., and the good affection of his youthful successor
-to learning, determined him to turn his face once more towards England.
-He had left the country with keen regret, for, as he wrote to Dean
-Colet, “I can truly say that no place in the world has given me so many
-friends--true, learned, helpful, and illustrious friends--as the single
-city of London,” and he looked forward to his return with pleasurable
-expectation.
-
-For a brief period on his arrival again in this country Erasmus stayed
-in London at the house of Sir Thomas More, where, at his suggestion,
-he wrote the _Enconium Moriæ_, one of the works by which he is best
-known to the general reader, and the one, perhaps, the spirit of which
-has the most given rise to many mistaken notions as to the author’s
-religious convictions.
-
-From London, in 1510, he was invited by Bishop Fisher to come and
-teach at Cambridge, where by his influence he had been appointed Lady
-Margaret Professor of Divinity and Regius Reader of Greek. “Unless I
-am much mistaken,” Erasmus writes, “the Bishop of Rochester is a man
-without an equal at this time, both as to integrity of life, learning,
-or broad-minded sympathies. One only do I except, as a very Achilles,
-the Archbishop of Canterbury (Warham), who alone keeps me in London,
-though I confess not very unwillingly.”[159]
-
-In estimating the spirit which dictated the composition of the _Moriæ_,
-it is well to remember not only that it represented almost as much
-the thought and genius of Sir Thomas More as of Erasmus himself, but
-that, at the very time it was taking definite shape in More’s house at
-Chelsea, the author’s two best friends were the two great and devout
-churchmen, Archbishop Warham and the saintly Bishop Fisher. Moreover,
-Sir Thomas More himself denies that to this work of Erasmus there can
-justly be affixed the note of irreverence or irreligion; he answers
-for the good intention of the author, and accepts his own share of
-responsibility for the publication of the book.
-
-The period of Erasmus’s stay at Cambridge did not extend beyond three
-years. The stipend attached to his professorships was not large, and
-Erasmus was still, apparently, in constant want of money. Archbishop
-Warham continued his friend, and by every means tried continually to
-interest others directly in the cause of learning and indirectly in
-the support of Erasmus, who is ever complaining that his means are
-wholly inadequate to supply his wants. The scholar, however, remained
-on the best of terms with all the chief English churchmen of the day,
-until, as he wrote to the Abbot of St. Bertin, “Erasmus has been
-almost transformed into an Englishman, with such overwhelming kindness
-do so many treat me, and above all, my special Mæcenas, the Archbishop
-of Canterbury. He indeed is not only my patron, but that of all the
-learned, amongst whom I but hold a low place. Immortal gods! how
-pleasant, how ready, how fertile is the wit of that man! What dexterity
-does he not show in managing the most complicated business! What
-exceptional learning! What singular courtesy does he not extend to all!
-What gaiety and geniality at interviews! so that he never sends people
-away from him sad. Added to this, how great and how prompt is his
-liberality! He alone seems to be ignorant of his own great qualities
-and the height of his dignity and fortune. No one can be more true and
-faithful to his friends; and, in a word, he is truly a Primate, not
-only in dignity, but in everything worthy of praise.”[160]
-
-Erasmus returns to this same subject in writing to a Roman Cardinal
-about this time. When I think, he says, of the Italian sky, the rich
-libraries, and the society of the learned men in Rome, I am tempted to
-look back to the eternal city with regret. “But the wonderful kindness
-of William Warham, Archbishop of Canterbury, to me mitigates my desire
-to return. Had he been my father or brother he could not have been
-more kind and loving. I have been accorded, too, the same reception
-by many other bishops of England. Amongst these stands pre-eminent
-the Bishop of Rochester, a man who, in addition to his uprightness of
-life, is possessed of deep and varied learning, and of a soul above all
-meanness, for which gifts he is held here in England in the highest
-estimation.”[161]
-
-Erasmus certainly had reason to be grateful to Warham and his other
-English friends for their ready attention to his, at times importunate,
-requests. Warham, he writes at one time, “has given me a living worth
-a hundred nobles and changed it at my request into a pension of one
-hundred crowns. Within these few years he has given me more than four
-hundred nobles without my asking. One day he gave me one hundred and
-fifty. From other bishops I have received more than one hundred, and
-Lord Mountjoy has secured me a pension of one hundred crowns.” In fact,
-in the _Compendium Vitæ_, a few years later, he says that he would have
-remained for the rest of his life in England had the promises made to
-him been always fulfilled. This constant and importunate begging on
-the part of the great scholar forms certainly an unpleasant feature
-in his life. He gets from Dean Colet fifteen angels for a dedication,
-and in reference to his translation of St. Basil on the Prophet
-Isaias, begs Colet to find out whether Bishop Fisher will be inclined
-“to ease his labours with a little reward,” adding himself, “O this
-begging! I know well enough that you will be laughing at me.”[162]
-Again, whilst lamenting his poverty and his being compelled to beg
-continually in this way, he adds that Linacre has been lecturing him
-for thus pestering his friends, and has warned him to spare Archbishop
-Warham and his friend Mountjoy a little. In this same letter, written
-in October 1513, there are signs of friction with some of the
-Cambridge teachers of theology, which may have helped Erasmus in his
-determination once more to leave England. Not that he professed to care
-what people thought, for he tells Colet he does not worry about those
-whom he calls in derision “the Scotists,” but would treat them as he
-would a wasp. Nevertheless, he is still half inclined by the opposition
-to stop the work he is engaged on; confessing, also, that he is almost
-turned away from the design of thus translating St. Basil, as the
-Bishop of Rochester is not anxious for him to do it, and--at least so a
-friend has told him--rather suspects that he is translating, not from
-the original Greek, but is making use of a Latin version.
-
-Almost immediately after writing this letter Erasmus again bade
-farewell to England, and passed up the Rhine to Strasburg, where he
-made the acquaintance of Wimpheling, Sebastian Brant, and others. The
-following year, 1515, he went on to Basle, attracted by the great
-reputation of the printing-press set up in that city by Froben. He was
-there eagerly welcomed by the bishop of the city, who had gathered
-round him many men imbued with the true spirit of learning; and Erasmus
-soon became the centre of this brilliant group of scholars. From this
-time Basle became Erasmus’s home, although, especially in the early
-years, he was always on the move. He paid a flying visit once more, in
-1517, to England, but he had learnt to love his independence too much
-to entertain any proposals for again undertaking duties that would tie
-him to any definite work in any definite place. Even the suggestions of
-friends that he would find congenial and profitable pursuits in England
-were unheeded, and he remained unmoved even when his friend Andrew
-Ammonius wrote to say the king himself was looking for his return.
-“What about Erasmus?” Henry had asked. “When is he coming back to us?
-He is the light of our age. Oh that he would return to us!”[163]
-
-From England, however, he continued to receive supplies of money;
-although his circumstances improved so much with the steady circulation
-of his books, that he was not at this second period of his life
-so dependent upon the charity of his friends. About the year 1520
-Erasmus settled permanently at Basle as literary superintendent of
-Froben’s press. What, no doubt, induced him to do so, even more than
-the offer of this position, was the fact that Basle had then become,
-by the establishment of printing-presses by Amberbach and Froben,
-the centre of the German book-trade. Froben died in 1527, and that
-circumstance, as well as the religious troubles which, separating Basle
-from the empire and making it the focus of civil strife, ended in
-wrecking learning there altogether, put an end to Erasmus’s connection
-with the press which for eight years had taken the lead of all the
-presses of Europe. Not only was the literary superintendence of the
-work completely in the hands of Erasmus during this period which he
-described as his “mill,” but all the dedications and prefaces to
-Froben’s editions of the Fathers were the distinct work of his own
-pen. His literary activity at this period was enormous, and only the
-power he had acquired of working with the greatest rapidity could
-have enabled him to cope with the multiplicity of demands made upon
-him. Scaliger relates that Aldus informed him Erasmus could do twice
-as much work in a given time as any other man he had ever met. This
-untiring energy enabled him to cope with the immense correspondence
-which, as he says, came pouring in “daily from almost all parts, from
-kings, princes, prelates, men of learning, and even from persons
-of whose existence I was, till then, ignorant,” and caused him not
-infrequently to write as many as forty letters a day.
-
-On Froben’s death in 1527, the fanatical religious contentions forced
-him to remove to Freiburg, in Breisgau, where he resided from 1529 to
-1535. The need for seeing his _Ecclesiastes_ through the press, as well
-as a desire to revisit the scenes of his former activity, took him back
-to Basle; but his health had been giving way for some years, and, at
-the age of sixty-nine, he expired at Basle on July 12, 1536.
-
-Such is a brief outline of the life of the most remarkable among the
-leaders of the movement known as the renaissance of letters. Without
-some general knowledge of the main facts of his life and work, it
-would be still more difficult than it is to understand the position
-he took in regard to the great religious revolution during the later
-half of his life. With these main facts before us we may turn to a
-consideration of his mental attitude towards some of the many momentous
-questions which were then searching men’s hearts and troubling their
-souls.
-
-In the first place, of course, comes the important problem of Erasmus’s
-real position as regards the Church itself and its authority. That he
-was outspoken on many points, even on points which we now regard as
-well within the border-line of settled matters of faith and practice,
-may be at once admitted, but he never appears to have wavered in his
-determination at all costs to remain true and loyal to the Pope and
-the other constituted ecclesiastical authorities. The open criticism
-of time-worn institutions in which he indulged, and the sweeping
-condemnation of the ordinary teachings of the theological schools,
-which he never sought to disguise, brought him early in his public life
-into fierce antagonism with many devoted believers in the system then
-in vogue.
-
-The publication of his translation of the New Testament from the Greek
-brought matters to an issue. The general feeling in England and amongst
-those best able to judge had been favourable to the undertaking, and
-on its first appearance Erasmus was assured of the approval of the
-learned world at the English universities.[164] More wrote Latin verses
-addressed to the reader of the new translation, calling it “the holy
-work and labour of the learned and immortal Erasmus,” to purify the
-text of God’s Word. Colet was warm in its praises. Copies, he writes to
-Erasmus, are being readily bought and read. Many approved, although,
-of course, as was to be expected, some spoke against the undertaking.
-In England, as elsewhere, says Colet, “we have theologians such as you
-describe in your _Moriæ_, by whom to be praised is dishonour, to be
-blamed is the highest praise.” For his part, Colet has, he says, only
-one regret that he did not himself know Greek sufficiently well to be
-able fully to appreciate what Erasmus had done, though “he is only
-too thankful for the light that has been thrown upon the true meaning
-of the Holy Scripture.” Archbishop Warham writes what is almost an
-official letter, to tell Erasmus that his edition of the New Testament
-has been welcomed by all his brother bishops in England to whom he
-has shown it. Bishop Tunstall was away in Holland, where, amidst the
-insanitary condition of the islands of Zeeland, which he so graphically
-describes, he finds consolation in the study of the work. He cannot
-too highly praise it--not merely as the opening up of Greek sources of
-information upon the meaning of the Bible, but as affording the fullest
-commentary on the sacred text.[165] Bishop Fisher was equally clear as
-to the service rendered to religion by Erasmus in this version of the
-Testament; and when, in 1519, Froben had agreed to bring out a second
-edition, Erasmus turned to Fisher and More to assist in making the
-necessary corrections.[166]
-
-More defended his friend most strenuously. Writing to Marten Dorpius
-in 1515, he upbraided him with suggesting that theologians would never
-welcome the help afforded to biblical studies by Erasmus’s work on the
-Greek text of the Bible. He ridicules as a joke not meriting a serious
-reply the report that Erasmus and his friends had declared there was
-no need of the theologians and philosophers, but that grammar would
-suffice. Erasmus, who has studied in the universities of Paris, Padua,
-Bologna, and Rome, and taught with distinction in some of them, is
-not likely to hold such absurd ideas. At the same time, More does not
-hesitate to say that in many things he thinks some theologians are to
-be blamed, especially those who, rejecting all positive science, hold
-that man is born to dispute about questions of all kinds which have not
-the least practical utility “even as regards the _pietas fidei_ or the
-cultivation of sound morals.”
-
-At great length More defends the translation against the insinuations
-made by Dorpius, who evidently regarded it as a sacrilege to suggest
-that the old Latin editions in use in the Church were incorrect. St.
-Jerome, says More, did not hesitate to change when he believed the
-Latin to be wrong, and Dorpius’s suggestion that Erasmus should have
-only noted the errors and not actually made any change would, had
-the same principle been applied, have prevented St. Jerome’s work
-altogether. If it was thought proper that the Latin codices should be
-corrected at that time by Greek manuscripts, why not now? The Church
-had then an equally recognised version before the corrections of St.
-Jerome.[167]
-
-There were, indeed, as might be expected, some discordant notes in the
-general chorus of English praise. For the time, however, they remained
-unheeded, and, in fact, were hardly heard amid the general verdict
-of approval, in which the Pope, cardinals, and other highly-placed
-ecclesiastics joined. Erasmus, however, was fully prepared for
-opposition of a serious character. Writing to Cambridge at the time, he
-says that he knows what numbers of people prefer “their old _mumpsimus_
-to the new _sumpsimus_,” and condemn the undertaking on the plea that
-no such work as the correction of the text of Holy Scripture ought to
-be undertaken without the authority of a general Council.[168]
-
-It is easy to understand the grounds upon which men who had been
-trained on old methods looked with anxiety, and even horror, at this
-new departure. Scholarship and literary criticism, when applied to the
-pagan classics, might be tolerable enough; but what would be the result
-were the same methods to be used in the examination of the works of
-the Fathers, and more especially in criticism of the text of the Holy
-Scripture itself? Overmuch study of the writings of ancient Greece and
-Rome had, it appeared to many, in those days, hardly tended to make the
-world much better: even in high places pagan models had been allowed to
-displace ideals and sentiments, which, if barbarous and homely, were
-yet Christian. Theologians had long been accustomed to look upon the
-Latin Vulgate text as almost sacrosanct, and after the failure of the
-attempt in the thirteenth century to improve and correct the received
-version, no critical revision had been dreamt of as possible, or indeed
-considered advisable. Those best able to judge, such as Warham and More
-and Fisher, were not more eager to welcome, than others to condemn and
-ban, this attempt on the part of Erasmus to apply the now established
-methods of criticism to the sacred text. Not that the edition itself
-was in reality a work of either sound learning or thorough scholarship.
-As an edition of the Greek Testament it is now allowed on all hands
-to have no value whatever; but the truth is, that the Greek played
-only a subordinate part in Erasmus’s scheme. His principal object was
-to produce a new Latin version, and to justify this he printed the
-Greek text along with it. And this, though in itself possessing little
-critical value, was, in reality, the starting-point for all modern
-Biblical criticism. As a modern writer has said, “Erasmus did nothing
-to solve the problem, but to him belongs the honour of having first
-propounded it.”
-
-It must, however, be borne in mind that the publication of Erasmus’s
-New Testament was not, as is claimed for it by some modern writers,
-a new revelation of the Gospel to the world at large, nor is it true
-that the sacred text had become so obscured by scholastic theological
-disquisitions on side issues as almost to be forgotten. According to
-Mr. Froude, “the New Testament to the mass of Christians was an unknown
-book,” when Erasmus’s edition, which was multiplied and spread all
-over Europe, changed all this. Pious and ignorant men had come to look
-on the text of the Vulgate as inspired. “Read it intelligently they
-could not, but they had made the language into an idol, and they were
-filled with horrified amazement when they found in page after page
-that Erasmus had anticipated modern critical corrections of the text,
-introduced various readings, and re-translated passages from the Greek
-into a new version.”[169] The truth is that the publication of the New
-Testament was in no sense an appeal _ad populum_, but to the cultivated
-few. A writer in the _Quarterly Review_, commenting upon Mr. Froude’s
-picture of the effect of the new edition on the people generally, is by
-no means unjust when he says, “Erasmus beyond all question would have
-been very much astonished by this account of the matter. Certain it is
-that during the Middle Ages the minds of the most popular preachers and
-teachers (and we might add of the laity too) were saturated with the
-sacred Scriptures.”[170]
-
-Loud, however, was the outcry in many quarters against the rash author.
-His translations were glibly condemned, and it was pointed out as
-conclusive evidence of his heterodoxy that he had actually changed some
-words in the Our Father, and substituted the word _congregatio_ for
-_ecclesia_.[171]
-
-The year 1519 witnessed the most virulent and persistent attacks upon
-the good name of Erasmus. Of these, and the malicious reports being
-spread about him, he complains in numerous letters at this period.
-One Englishman in particular at this time, and subsequently, devoted
-all his energies to prove not only that Erasmus had falsified many of
-his translations, but that his whole spirit in undertaking the work
-was manifestly uncatholic. This was Edward Lee, then a comparatively
-unknown youth, but who was subsequently created Archbishop of York.
-In February 1519, Erasmus wrote to Cardinal Wolsey, complaining of
-these continued attacks upon his work, although so many learned men,
-including bishops, cardinals, and even the Pope Leo X. himself, had
-given their cordial approval to the undertaking. Those who were at the
-bottom of the movement against the work, he considered, were those
-who had not read it, though they still had no shame in crying out
-against it and its author. He was told that in some public discourses
-in England he had been blamed for translating the word _verbum_ in St.
-John’s Gospel by _sermo_, and about this matter he addressed a letter
-to the Pope defending himself.[172] To the Bishop of Winchester he
-wrote more explicitly about his chief opponent. “By your love for me,”
-he says, “I beg you will not too readily credit those sycophants about
-me, for by their action all things seem to me at present infected by
-a deadly plague. If Edward Lee can prove that he knows better than I
-do, he will never offend me. But when he, by writing and speech, and
-by means of his followers, spreads rumours hurtful to my reputation,
-he is not even rightly consulting his own reputation. He has openly
-shown a hostile spirit against me, who never, either in word or deed,
-have done him harm. He is young, and lusts for fame.… Time will bring
-all to light. Truth may be obscured; overcome it cannot be.”[173] To
-the English king he writes that in all he had published he had been
-actuated by the sole desire to glorify Christ, and in this particular
-work had obtained the highest approval, even that of the Pope himself.
-Some people, indeed, have conspired to destroy his good name. They are
-so pleased with their “old wine,” that “Erasmus’s new” does not satisfy
-them. Edward Lee had been instigated to become their champion, and
-Erasmus only wished that Lee were not an Englishman, since he owed more
-to England than to any other nation, and did not like to think ill even
-of an individual.[174]
-
-When men are thoroughly alarmed, they do not stop to reason or count
-the cost; and so those, who saw in the work of Erasmus nothing but
-danger to the Church, at once jumped to the conclusion that the root
-of the danger really lay in the classical revival itself, of which
-he was regarded as the chief exponent and apostle. The evil must be
-attacked in its cause, and the spread of the canker, which threatened
-to eat into the body of the Christian Church, stayed before it was too
-late. From the theologians of Louvain, with which university Erasmus
-was then connected, he experienced the earliest and most uncompromising
-opposition. He was “daily,” to use his own words, “pounded with
-stones,” and proclaimed a traitor to the Church.[175] His opponents
-did not stop to inquire into the truth of their charges too strictly,
-and Erasmus bitterly complains of the damaging reports that are being
-spread all over Europe concerning his good name and his loyalty to
-religion. To him all opposition came from “the monks,” who were, in his
-eyes, typical of antiquated ecclesiastical narrowness and bigotry. In a
-letter written in 1519, at the height of “the battle of the languages,”
-as it was called, he gives several instances of this attitude towards
-himself at Louvain when he suggested some alteration in a text of
-Holy Scripture. A preacher told the people that he had declared the
-Gospel “to be merely a collection of stupid fables,” and at Antwerp, a
-Carmelite attacked him in a sermon, at which he happened to be present,
-and denounced the appearance of his New Testament as a sign of the
-coming of Antichrist. On being asked afterwards for his reasons, he
-confessed that he had never even read the book himself. “This,” says
-Erasmus sadly, “I generally find to be the case: that none are more
-bitter in their outcry than they who do not read what I write.” In this
-same letter, Erasmus describes the ferment raised in England against
-the study of languages. At Cambridge, Greek was making progress in
-peace, “because the university was presided over by John Fisher, Bishop
-of Rochester, a theologian of learning and uprightness of life.” At
-Oxford, however, fierce public attacks were made in sermons on Greek
-studies; “but the king,” continues Erasmus, “as one not unlearned
-himself, and most favourable to the cause of letters, happened to
-be in the neighbourhood, and hearing of the matter from More and
-Pace, ordered that all wishing to study Greek literature should be
-encouraged, and so put a stop to the business.”
-
-The contest was not confined to the schools. “A theologian preaching
-in the royal palace before the king took this opportunity to inveigh
-boldly and uncompromisingly against Greek studies and the new methods
-of interpretation. Pace, who was present, glanced at the king to
-see how he took it, and Henry smiled at Pace. After the sermon the
-theologian was bidden to the king, and to More was assigned the task
-of defending Greek learning against him, the king himself desiring to
-be present at the discussion. After More had spoken for some time most
-happily, he paused to hear the theologian’s reply; but he, on bended
-knees, asked pardon for what he had said, asserting that whilst talking
-he was moved by some spirit to speak about Greek as he had done.
-Thereupon the king said, ‘And that spirit was not that of Christ, but
-of folly!’ Then Henry asked him whether he had read Erasmus’s works--he
-admitted that he had not. Then said the king, ‘By this you prove
-your folly, in condemning what you have not read.’ Finally the king
-dismissed him, and ordered that he should never be allowed to preach in
-the royal presence again.”
-
-Those who desired to carry on the campaign to extremities, endeavoured,
-and even with temporary success, to influence Queen Katherine against
-Erasmus and the party for the revival of letters which he represented.
-Her confessor, a Dominican bishop, persuaded her that in correcting
-St. Jerome, Erasmus had perpetrated a crime which admitted of no
-excuse.[176] It was but another step to connect the renaissance of
-letters generally with the revolt now associated with the name of
-Luther. In England, however, it was not so easy to persuade people
-of this, since, among the chief supporters of the movement were to
-be numbered the best and wisest of churchmen and laymen whose entire
-orthodoxy was not open to suspicion. Abroad, however, the cry once
-started, was quickly taken up. A theologian at Louvain, writes Erasmus,
-who up to this time had been noted for his sober judgment, before a
-large audience, after having spoken of Lutheranism, attacked “the
-teaching of languages and polite letters, joining the two together,
-and asserting that heresy came from these springs, as if experience
-had shown eloquence to be a mark rather of the heretics than of the
-orthodox, or that the Latin authors of heresy were not mere children
-so far as languages went, or that Luther had been schooled by those
-masters and not rather by the scholastics, according to scholastic
-methods.”[177]
-
-Erasmus puts the position even more clearly in a letter to Pope Leo
-X. on the publication of the revised version of his New Testament in
-August 1519. The book is now in people’s hands, he says, and as it has
-appeared under the direct auspices of the Holy Father himself, it may
-be regarded as his work. Some foolish people, he understands, have
-been trying to get the Pope to believe that a knowledge of languages
-is detrimental to the true study of theology, whereas, in reality,
-the very contrary is obviously the case. Such people will not reason,
-they cry out and will not listen. They suggest damning words, such
-words for example as “heretics,” “antichrists,” &c., as appropriate
-to their opponents. They call out that even the Christian religion
-is imperilled, and beg the Pope to come forward and save it. On his
-part Erasmus hopes that the Pope will believe that all his work is
-for Christ alone, and His Church. “This only reward do I desire, that
-I may ever seek the glory of Christ rather than my own. From boyhood
-I have ever endeavoured to write nothing that savoured of impiety or
-disloyalty. No one has ever yet been made blacker by my writings; no
-one less pious, no one stirred up to tumult.”[178] Again, writing to
-Cardinal Campeggio, when sending him a copy of the New Testament “which
-Pope Leo had approved by his Brief,” Erasmus tells him that, to his
-great regret, many at Louvain were doing their best not to allow good
-letters to flourish. As for himself, his only real desire was to serve
-Christ and increase the glory of His Church; though, he adds, “I am a
-man, and as such liable to err.” No one has ever succeeded in pleasing
-every one, and he, Erasmus, will not try to do the impossible. Still
-he wishes to be judged by what he really has said and written; whereas
-all kinds of things, letters, books, &c., are attributed to him, about
-which he knows nothing: “even Martin Luther’s work, amongst the rest,”
-whilst the truth is, he does not know Luther, and certainly has never
-read his book.[179]
-
-At the end of the following year, 1520, Erasmus again writes to
-Cardinal Campeggio at great length. After telling him that he had
-hoped to have passed the winter in Rome to search in the libraries for
-Greek manuscripts, he informs him that in Louvain those who prefer
-the old barbarism are now rampant. Some think to please the people by
-opposition to learning, and amongst the aiders and abettors of the
-Lutheran movement they place Erasmus in the forefront. The Dominicans
-and Carmelites, he says, will regard him only as their enemy. Why, he
-does not know, for in reality he reverences true religion under “any
-coloured coat.” If on occasion he has said something about the vices of
-the monks, he does not think it were more right for the religious, as
-a body, to turn against him, than it would be for priests as a body,
-when their vices were spoken against. He does not in the least wish to
-be thought opposed to the religious life, as such. The condemnation
-of Luther had been interpreted by many as a condemnation of learning,
-and had been turned against Reuchlin and Erasmus. As for himself,
-he has never, he declares, even seen Luther, who has certainly
-never been famous for good letters or for any knowledge of ancient
-tongues, and hence the revival of letters has no connection whatever
-with the Lutheran movement. The prefaces of some of Luther’s books,
-because written in good Latin, are considered sufficient proof of his
-(Erasmus’s) connection with the matter, and it is asserted openly that
-he was working cordially with the Reformer; whereas, as a fact, he had
-not suggested even so much as a full stop or comma for his writings.
-He had, he admitted, written to Luther, and this and another letter to
-the Cardinal of Mentz were pointed to as proof positive of his Lutheran
-leanings. For these he has been denounced to bishops as a heretic and
-delated to the Pope himself, while all the time, in truth, he has never
-read two pages of Luther’s writings. Certainly, indeed, he recognised
-in Luther considerable power, but he was not by any means alone in
-doing so. Men of undoubted faith and uprightness had congratulated
-themselves on having fallen in with Luther’s works. For himself, he
-adds, “I have always preferred to look for the good rather than to
-search for the evil, and I have long thought that the world needed many
-changes.” Finally, before passing from the subject, he begs Cardinal
-Campeggio to look at the letter in question himself, and see whether it
-could justly be said to favour Luther in any way.[180]
-
-To Pope Leo X. Erasmus also wrote, protesting against the cause of
-letters generally being made the same as that of Reuchlin and Luther.
-With the former movement he was identified heart and soul; with Luther
-and his revolt he had, he declared, no part nor sympathy. “I have
-not known Luther,” he says, “nor have I ever read his books, except
-perhaps ten or a dozen pages in various places. It was really I who
-first scented the danger of the business issuing in tumults, which I
-have always detested.” Moreover, he declares that he had induced the
-Basle printer, Johann Froben, to refuse to print Luther’s works, and
-that by means of friends he had tried to induce Luther to think only
-of the peace of the Church. Two years previously, he says, Luther had
-written to him, and he had replied in a kindly spirit in order to get
-him, if possible, to follow his advice. Now, he hears, that this letter
-has been delated to the Pope in order to prejudice him in the Pontiff’s
-eyes; but he is quite prepared to defend its form and expression. “If
-any one,” he says, “can say he has ever heard me, even at the table,
-maintain the teaching of Luther, I will not refuse to be called a
-Lutheran.” Finally, he expresses the hope that, if the opponents of
-letters have been trying to calumniate him, he may rely on the Pope’s
-prudence and the knowledge of his own complete innocence. “I, who do
-not wish to oppose even my own bishop, am not,” he writes, “so mad as
-to act in any way against the supreme Vicar of Christ.”[181]
-
-As time went on, the position of Erasmus did not become more
-comfortable. Whilst the Lutherans were hoping that sooner or later
-something would happen to compromise the outspoken scholar and force
-him to transfer the weight of his learning to their side, the champions
-of Catholicity were ill satisfied that he did not boldly strike out
-in defence of the Church. To this latter course many of his English
-friends had strongly urged him, and both the king, Fisher, and others
-had set him an example by publishing works against Luther’s position,
-which they invited him to follow. The Pope, too, had on more than one
-occasion personally appealed to him to throw off his reserve and come
-to the aid of orthodoxy. They could not understand how he was able to
-talk of peace and kindness amidst the din of strife, and plead for less
-harsh measures and less bitter words against Luther and his adherents,
-when the battle was raging, and cities and peoples and even countries
-were being seduced by the German Reformer’s plausible plea for freedom
-and liberty. Those who believed in Erasmus’s orthodoxy, as did the Pope
-and his English friends, considered that no voice was more calculated
-to calm the storm and compel the German people to listen to reason than
-was his. Whilst the Reforming party, on the other hand, were doing
-their best to compromise him in the eyes of their opponents, Erasmus
-was most unwilling to be forced into action. “Why,” he writes, “do
-people wish to associate me with Luther? What Luther thinks of me,
-where it is a question of matters of faith, I care very little. That
-he doesn’t think much of me he shows in many letters to his friends.
-In his opinion I am ‘blind,’ ‘miserable,’ ‘ignorant of Christ and
-Christianity,’ ‘thinking of nothing but letters.’ This is just what I
-should expect,” he says, “for Luther has always despised the ancients.”
-As for himself, he (Erasmus) has always tried his best to inculcate
-true piety along with learning.[182]
-
-To Œcolampadius, in February 1525, he wrote a letter of protest
-against the way some of Luther’s followers were doing all they could
-to associate his name with their movement. He does not wish, he says,
-to give his own opinion on the questions at issue; but he can tell his
-correspondent what the King of England, Bishop Fisher, and Cardinal
-Wolsey think on these grave matters. He objects to Œcolampadius putting
-_Magnus Erasmus noster_--“our great Erasmus”--in a preface he wrote,
-without any justification. “This naturally makes people suppose,” he
-adds, “that I am really on your side in these controversies,” and he
-begs that he will strike out the expression.[183]
-
-This was no new position that Erasmus had taken up in view of the
-ever-increasing difficulties of the situation. Six years before (in
-1519) he had written fully on the subject to the Cardinal Archbishop
-of Mentz. It was this letter which had been much misunderstood, and
-even denounced to the Pope as the work of a disloyal son of the Church.
-He, on the other hand, declared that he was not committed in any way
-to the cause of Reuchlin or Luther. “Luther is perfectly unknown to
-me, and his books I have not read, except here and there. If he had
-written well it would not have been to my credit; if then the opposite,
-no blame should attach to me. I regretted his public action, and when
-the first tract, I forget which, was talked about, I did all I could
-to prevent its being issued, especially as I feared that tumults would
-come out of all this. Luther had written me what appeared to my mind to
-be a very Christian letter, and, in replying, I, by the way, warned him
-not to write anything seditious, nor to abuse the Roman Pontiff, &c.,
-but to preach the Gospel truly and humbly.” He adds that he was kind
-in his reply purposely, as he did not wish to be Luther’s judge. And,
-as he thought that there was much good in the man, he would willingly
-do all he could to keep him in the right way. People are too fond, he
-says, of crying out “heretic,” &c., and “the cry generally comes from
-those who have not read the works they exclaim against.”[184]
-
-“I greatly fear,” he writes shortly after, “for this miserable Luther;
-so angry are his opponents on all sides, and so irritated against him
-are princes, and, above all, Pope Leo. Would that he had taken my
-advice and abstained from these hateful and seditious publications.
-There would have been more fruit and less rancour.”[185]
-
-Testimonies might be multiplied almost indefinitely from Erasmus’s
-writings to show that with Lutheranism as such he had no connection nor
-sympathy. Yet his best friends seem to have doubted him, and some, in
-England, suspected that Erasmus’s hand and spirit were to be detected
-in the reply that Luther made to King Henry’s book against him. Bishop
-Tunstall confesses that he is relieved to hear by the letter Erasmus
-had addressed to the king and the legate that he had had nothing to
-do with this violent composition, and, moreover, that he was opposed
-to Lutheran principles. In his letter on this subject, the bishop
-laments the rapid spread of these dangerous opinions which threaten
-disturbances everywhere. When the sacred ceremonies of the Church and
-all pious customs are attacked as they are, he says, civil tumults are
-sure to follow. After Luther’s book _De abroganda Missa_, the Reformer
-will quickly go further, and so Tunstall begs and beseeches Erasmus, by
-“Christ’s Passion and glory” and “by the reward” he expects; “yea, and
-the Church itself prays and desires you,” he adds, “to engage in combat
-with this hydra.”[186]
-
-At length, urged by so many of his best friends, Erasmus took up his
-pen against Luther and produced his book _De libero Arbitrio_, to
-which Luther, a past master in invective, replied in his contemptuous
-_De servo Arbitrio_, Erasmus rejoining in the _Hyperaspistes_. Sir
-Thomas More wrote that this last book delighted him, and urged Erasmus
-to further attacks. “I cannot say how foolish and inflated I think
-Luther’s letter to you,” he writes. “He knows well how the wretched
-glosses into which he has darkened Scripture turn to ice at your touch.
-They were, it is true, cold enough already.”[187]
-
-Erasmus’s volume on _Free-will_ drew down on him, as might be expected,
-the anger of the advanced Lutherans. Ulrich von Hutten, formerly
-a brilliant follower of Erasmus and Reuchlin in their attempts to
-secure a revival of letters, was now the leader of the most reckless
-and forward of the young German Lutherans, who assisted the Reformer
-by their violence and their readiness to promote any and all of his
-doctrinal changes by stirring up civil dissensions. Von Hutten
-endeavoured to throw discredit upon Erasmus by a brilliant and
-sarcastic attack upon it. In 1523, Erasmus published what he called the
-_Spongia_, or reply to the assertions of von Hutten on his honour and
-character. The tract is really an apology or explanation of his own
-position as regards the Lutherans, and an assertion of his complete
-loyalty to the Church. The book was in Froben’s hands for press in
-June 1523, but before it could appear in September von Hutten had
-died. Erasmus, however, determined to publish the work on account of
-the gravity of the issues. It is necessary, if we would understand
-Erasmus’s position fully, to refer to this work at some considerable
-length. After complaining most bitterly that many people had tried to
-defame him to the Pope and to his English friends, and to make him
-a Lutheran whether he would or no; and after defending his attitude
-towards Reuchlin as consistent throughout, he meets directly von
-Hutten’s assertion that he had condemned the whole Dominican body. “I
-have never,” he says, “been ill disposed to that Order. I have never
-been so foolish as to wish ill to any Order. If it were necessary
-to hate all Dominicans because, in the Order, there were some bad
-members, on the same ground it would be needful to detest all Orders,
-since in every one there are many black sheep.” On the same principle
-Christianity itself would be worthy of hatred.[188] The fact really
-is that the Dominicans have many members who are friendly to Erasmus,
-and who are favourable to learning in general, and Scripture study and
-criticism in particular.
-
-In the same way, von Hutten had mistaken Erasmus’s whole attitude
-towards the Roman Church. He had charged him with being inconsistent,
-in now praising, now blaming the authorities. Erasmus characterises
-this as the height of impudence. “Who,” he asks, “has ever approved of
-the vices of the Roman authorities? But, on the other hand, who has
-ever condemned the Roman Church?”
-
-Continuing, he declares that he has never been the occasion of discord
-or tumult in any way, and appeals with confidence to his numerous
-letters and works as sufficient evidence of his love of peace. “I
-love liberty,” he writes; “I neither can aid, nor desire to aid,
-any faction.” Already many confess that they were wrong in taking a
-part; and he sees many, who had thrown in their lot with Luther, now
-drawing back, and regretting that they had ever given any countenance
-to him.[189] His (Erasmus’s) sole object has been to promote good
-letters, and to restore Theology to its simple and true basis, the
-Holy Scripture. This he will endeavour to do as long as he has life.
-“Luther,” he says, “I hold to be a man liable to err, and one who has
-erred. Luther, with the rest of his followers will pass away; Christ
-alone remains for ever.”
-
-In more than one place of this _Spongia_, Erasmus complains bitterly
-that what he had said in joke, and as mere pleasantry at the table, had
-been taken seriously. “What is said over a glass of wine,” he writes,
-“ought not to be remembered and written down as a serious statement of
-belief. Often at a feast, for example, we have transferred the worldly
-sovereignty to Pope Julius, and made Maximilian, the emperor, into
-the supreme Pontiff. Thus, too, we have married monasteries of monks
-to convents of nuns; we have sent armies of them against the Turks,
-and colonised new islands with them. In a word, we turn the universe
-topsy-turvy. But, such whims are never meant to be taken seriously, as
-our own true convictions.”
-
-Von Hutten had complained that Erasmus had spoken harshly about Luther,
-and hinted that he was really actuated by a spirit of envy, on seeing
-Luther’s books more read than his own. Erasmus denies that he has ever
-called Luther by any harsh names, and particularly that he has ever
-called him “heretic.” He admits, however, that he had frequently spoken
-of the movement as a “tragedy,” and he points to the public discords
-and tumults then distracting Germany as the best justification of this
-verdict.[190]
-
-Von Hutten having said that children were being taught by their nurses
-to lisp the name Luther, Erasmus declares that he cannot imagine whose
-children these can be; for, he says, “I daily see how many influential,
-learned, grave, and good men have come to curse his very name.”
-
-The most interesting portion, however, of the _Spongia_ is that in
-which, at considerable length, Erasmus explains his real attitude to
-Rome and the Pope. “Not even about the Roman See,” he says, “will I
-admit that I have ever spoken inconsistently. I have never approved
-of its tyranny, rapacity, and other vices about which of old common
-complaints were heard from good men. Neither do I sweepingly condemn
-‘Indulgences,’ though I have always disliked any barefaced traffic in
-them. What I think about ceremonies, many places in my works plainly
-show.… What it may mean ‘to reduce the Pope to order’ I do not rightly
-understand. First, I think it must be allowed that Rome is a Church,
-for no number of evils can make it cease to be a Church, otherwise we
-should have no Churches whatever. Moreover, I hold it to be an orthodox
-Church; and this Church, it must be admitted, has a Bishop. Let him be
-allowed also to be Metropolitan, seeing there are very many archbishops
-in countries where there has been no apostle, and Rome, without
-controversy, had certainly SS. Peter and Paul, the two chief apostles.
-Then how is it absurd that among Metropolitans the chief place be
-granted to the Roman Pontiff?”[191]
-
-As to the rest, Erasmus had never, he declares, defended the excessive
-powers which for many years the popes have usurped, and, like all men,
-he wishes for a thorough apostolic man for Pope. For his part, if the
-Pope were not above all things else an apostle, he would have him
-deposed as well as any other bishop, who did not fulfil the office of
-his state. For many years, no doubt, the chief evils of the world have
-come from Rome, but now, as he believes, the world has a Pope who will
-try at all costs to purify the See and Curia of Rome. This, however,
-Erasmus fancies is not quite what von Hutten desires. He would declare
-war against the Pope and his adherents, even were the Pope a good
-Pope, and his followers good Christians. War is what von Hutten wants,
-and he cares not whether it brings destruction to cities and peoples
-and countries.
-
-Erasmus admits that he knows many people who are ready to go some
-way in the Lutheran direction; but who would strongly object to the
-overthrow of papal authority. Many would rather feel that they have
-a father than a tyrant: who would like to see the tables of the
-money-changers in the temple overthrown, and the barefaced granting of
-indulgences and trafficking in dispensations and papal bulls repressed:
-who would not object to have ceremonies simplified, and solid piety
-inculcated: who would like to insist on the sacred Scriptures as the
-true and only basis of authoritative teaching, and would not give to
-scholastic conclusions and the mere opinions of schools the force of
-an infallible oracle. With those who think thus, says Erasmus, “if (as
-is the case) there is no compact on my part, certainly my old friendly
-feeling for them remains cemented by the bond of learning, even if I do
-not agree with them in all these things.”
-
-But, he continues, it is not among these well-wishers of reform that
-von Hutten and Luther will find their support. This is to be found
-among the “unlettered people without any judgment; among those who are
-impure in their own lives, and detractors of men; amongst those who
-are headstrong and ungovernable. These are they who are so favourable
-to Luther’s cause that they neither know nor care to examine what
-Luther teaches. They only have the Gospel on their lips; they neglect
-prayer and the Sacraments; they eat what they like; and they live to
-curse the Roman Pontiff. These are the Lutherans.” From such material
-spring forth tumults that cannot be put down. “It is generally in
-their cups,” adds Erasmus, “that the Evangelical league is recruited.”
-They are too stupid to see whither they are drifting, and “with such
-a type of mankind I have no wish to have anything to do.” Some make
-the Gospel but the pretext for theft and rapine; and “there are some
-who, having squandered or lost all their own property, pretend to be
-Lutherans in order to be able to help themselves to the wealth of
-others.” Von Hutten wants me, says Erasmus, to come to them. “To whom?
-To those who are good and actuated by the true Gospel teaching? I would
-willingly fly to them if any one will point them out. If he knew of
-any Lutherans, who in place of wine, prostitutes, and dice, have at
-any time delighted in holy reading and conversation; of any who never
-cheat or neglect to pay their debts, but are ready to give to the
-needy; of any who look on injuries done to them as favours, who bless
-those who curse them--if he can show me such people, he may count on me
-as an associate. Lutherans, I see; but followers of the Gospel, I can
-discover few or none.”
-
-Von Hutten had, in his attack, with much bitterness condemned Erasmus
-for not renouncing connection with those who had written strongly
-against Luther. Erasmus refused to entertain the notion. “There is,” he
-says, “the reverend Father John, Bishop of Rochester. He has written
-a big volume against Luther. For a long period that man has been my
-very special friend and most constant patron. Does von Hutten seriously
-want me to break with him, because he has sharpened his pen in writing
-against Luther? Long before Luther was thought of,” he says, “I enjoyed
-the friendship of many learned men. Of these, some in later years took
-Luther’s side, but on that account I have not renounced outwardly my
-friendship for them. Some of these have changed their views and now do
-not think much of Luther, still I do not cease to regard them as my
-friends.”
-
-Towards the close of his reply, Erasmus returns to the question of the
-Pope. Von Hutten had charged him with inconsistency in his views, and
-Erasmus replies, “He who most desires to see the apostolic character
-manifested in the Pope is most in his favour.” It may be that one can
-hate the individual and approve of the office. Whoever is favourable
-to, and defends, bad Popes does not honour the office. He (Erasmus) has
-been found fault with for saying that the authority of the Pope has
-been followed by the Christian world for very many ages. What he wrote
-is true, and as long as the work of Christ is done may it be followed
-for ever. Luther wants people to take his _ipse dixit_ and authority,
-but he (Erasmus) would prefer to take that of the Pope. “Even if the
-supremacy of the Pope was not established by Christ, still it would be
-expedient that there should be one ruler possessing full authority over
-others, but which authority no doubt should be free from all idea of
-tyranny.… Because I have criticised certain points in the See of Rome,
-I have not for that reason ever departed from it. Who would not uphold
-the dignity of one who, by manifesting the virtues of the Gospel,
-represents Christ to us?” The paradoxes of Luther are not worth dying
-for. “There is no question of articles of faith, but of such matters as
-‘Whether the supremacy of the Roman Pontiff was established by Christ:’
-‘whether cardinals are necessary to the Christian Church:’ ‘whether
-confession is _de jure divino_:’ ‘whether bishops can make their laws
-binding under pain of mortal sin:’ ‘whether free will is necessary for
-salvation:’ ‘whether faith alone assures salvation,’ &c. If Christ gave
-him grace,” Erasmus hopes that “he would be a martyr for His truth, but
-he has no desire whatever to be one for Luther.”
-
-This last point was immediately taken up by the Lutherans. Von Hutten,
-as it has already been said, had died before the publication of the
-_Spongia_, and the reply to Erasmus was undertaken by Otto Brunfels.
-He rejected Erasmus’s suggestion that nearly all that the Lutherans
-were fighting for were matters of opinion. They were matters of faith,
-he says, and no uncertainty could be admitted on this point. In order
-to make the matter clear, he enumerates a great number of tenets of
-Lutheranism which they hold to as matters of revealed certainty.
-For instance: that Christ is the only head of the Church; that the
-Church has no corporate existence; that the mass is no sacrifice; that
-justification comes by faith alone; that our works are sins and cannot
-justify; that good men cannot sin; that there are only two Sacraments;
-that the Pope’s traditions are heretical and against Scripture; that
-the religious state is from the devil; and several score more of
-similar points more or less important.
-
-That Erasmus’s views upon the necessity of the Papacy expressed in the
-_Spongia_ were not inconsistent with his previous position there is
-ample evidence in his letters, to which he himself appeals. Replying,
-for example, to one who had written to him deploring the religious
-differences in Bohemia, Erasmus declares that, in his opinion, it
-is needful for unity that there should be one head. If the prince
-is tyrannical, he should be reduced to order by the teaching and
-authority of the Roman Pontiff. If the bishop play the tyrant, there
-is still the authority of the Roman Pontiff, who is the dispenser of
-the authority and the Vicar of Christ. He may not please all, but who
-that really rules can expect to do that? “In my opinion,” he adds,
-“those who reject the Pope are more in error than they who demand the
-Eucharist under two kinds.” Personally, he would have allowed this,
-although he thinks that, as most Christians have now the other custom,
-those who demand it as a necessity are unreasonable and to be greatly
-blamed. Above all others, he reprobates the position of those who
-refuse to obey, speak of the Pope as Antichrist, and the Roman Church
-as a “harlot” because there have been bad Popes. There have been bad
-cardinals and bishops, bad priests and princes, and on this ground
-we ought not to obey bishop or pastor or king or ruler.[192] In the
-same letter he rebukes those who desire to sweep away vestments and
-ceremonies on the plea that they may not have been used in apostolic
-times.
-
-Later on, in another letter, he complained that people call him a
-favourer of Luther. This is quite untrue. “I would prefer,” he says,
-“to have Luther corrected rather than destroyed; then I should prefer
-that it should be done without any great social tumults. Christ I
-acknowledge; Luther I know not. I acknowledge the Roman Church, which,
-in my opinion, is Catholic. I praise those who are on the side of the
-Roman Pontiff, who is supported by every good man.”[193]
-
-Again, the following year, writing on the subject of the invocation of
-Papal authority against Luther, he says: “I do not question the origin
-of that authority, which is most certainly just, as in ancient times
-from among many priests equal in office one was chosen as the bishop;
-so now from the bishops it is necessary to make choice of one Pontiff,
-not merely to prevent discords, but to temper the tyrannical exercise
-of authority on the part of the other bishops and secular princes.”[194]
-
-The publication of Erasmus’s book against Luther and of his reply
-to von Hutten made little change, however, in the adverse feeling
-manifested against him by those who were most busily engaged in
-combating the spread of Lutheran opinions. As he wrote to King Henry
-VIII., the noisy tumults and discords made him long for the end of
-life, when he might hope at least to find peace.[195] Luckily for him,
-he still retained the confidence of the Pope and some of the best
-churchmen in Europe. Had he not done so, the very violence of the
-attack against his good name might have driven him out of the Church in
-spite of himself. Kind words, he more than once said, would have done
-more for the cause of peace in the Church than all the biting sarcasm
-and unmeasured invective that was launched against Luther, and those
-who, like Erasmus, either were, or were supposed to be, associated with
-his cause. Luther was not delicate about the choice of his language
-when he had an enemy to pelt, but some of the preachers and pamphlet
-writers on the orthodox side were his match in this respect. In this
-way Erasmus puts the responsibility for “the tragedy” of Lutheranism
-upon the theologians, and in part especially upon the Dominicans and
-Carmelites. “Ass,” “pig,” “sow,” “heretic,” “antichrist,” and “pest
-of the world,” are terms named by Erasmus as samples of the epithets
-launched from the pulpit, or more deliberately set up in type, as
-arguments against Luther and himself.[196]
-
-In writing to one of the cardinals after the publication of his
-_Spongia_, there is a touch of sadness in his complaints, that having
-been forced to do battle with the “Lutherans as against a hydra of
-many heads,” Catholics should still try and make the world believe
-that he was really a Lutheran at heart. “I have never,” he declares,
-“doubted about the sovereignty of the Pope, but whether this supremacy
-was recognised in the time of St. Jerome, I have my doubts, on account
-of certain passages I have noted in my edition of St. Jerome. In the
-same place, however, I have marked what would appear to make for the
-contrary opinion; and in numerous other places I call Peter ‘Prince
-of the apostolic order,’ and the Roman Pontiff, Christ’s Vicar and
-the Head of His Church, giving him the highest power according to
-Christ.”[197]
-
-Probably a more correct view of Erasmus’s real mind can hardly be
-obtained than in part of a letter already quoted (Ep. 501) addressed
-to Bishop Marlianus of Tuy in Galicia, on March 25, 1520. “I would
-have the Church,” he writes, “purified, lest the good in it suffer by
-conjunction with the evil. In avoiding the Scylla of Luther, however,
-I would have care taken to avoid Charybdis. If this be sin, then I own
-my guilt. I have sought to save the dignity of the Roman Pontiff, the
-honour of Catholic theology, and to look to the welfare of Christendom.
-I have, as yet, read no whole work of Luther, however short, and I
-have never even in jest defended his paradoxes. Be assured that if any
-movement is set on foot which is injurious to the Christian religion
-and dangerous to the public peace or the supremacy of the Holy See,
-it does not proceed from Erasmus.… In all I have written, I have not
-deviated one hair’s-breadth from the teaching of the Church. But every
-wise man knows that practices and teachings have been introduced into
-the Church partly by custom, partly by the canonists, partly by means
-of scholastic definitions, partly by the tricks and arts of secular
-sovereigns, which have no sound sanction. Many great people have begged
-me to support Luther, but I have ever replied that I would be ready to
-take his part when he was on the Catholic side. They have asked me to
-draw up a formula of faith; I have said that I know of none save the
-creed of the Catholic Church, and every one who consults me I urge to
-submit to the authority of the Pope.”[198]
-
-In many ways Erasmus regarded the rise of Lutheranism as the greatest
-misfortune. Not only did it tend to make good men suspicious of the
-general revival of letters, with which without reason they associated
-it, but the necessity of defending the Catholic position against the
-assaults of the new sectaries naturally obscured the need of reform
-within the Church itself, for which far-seeing and good men had long
-been looking. To Bishop Tunstall he expressed his fears lest in
-pulling up the tares, some, and perchance much, of the precious wheat
-might perish. Whilst, undoubtedly, there was in Luther’s work a great
-deal that he cordially detested, there was also much that would never
-have been condemned, had the points been calmly considered by learned
-men, apart from the ferment of revolt. “This, however, I promise you,”
-he adds, “that for my part I will never forsake the Church.”[199]
-
-This same sentiment he repeats the following year, 1526: “From the
-judgment of the Church I am not able to dissent, nor have I ever
-dissented.”[200] Had this tempest not risen up, he said, in another
-letter from Basle, he had hoped to have lived long enough to have seen
-a general revival of letters and theology returning more and more to
-the foundation of all true divinity, Holy Scripture. For his part, he
-cordially disliked controversy, and especially the discussion of such
-questions as “whether the Council was above the Pope,” and such like.
-He held that he was himself in all things a sound Catholic, and at
-peace with the Pope and his bishop, whilst no name was more hated by
-the Lutherans than that of Erasmus.[201]
-
-So much with regard to the attitude of mind manifested by Erasmus
-towards the authority of the teaching Church, which is the main point
-of interest in the present inquiry. His disposition will probably be
-construed by some into a critical opposition to much that was taught
-and practised; but it seems certain that Erasmus did not so regard
-his own position. He was a reformer in the best sense, as so many
-far-seeing and spiritual-minded churchmen of those days were. He
-desired to better and beautify and perfect the system he found in
-vogue, and he had the courage of his convictions to point out what
-he thought stood in need of change and improvement, but he was no
-iconoclast; he had no desire to pull down or root up or destroy under
-the plea of improvement. That he remained to the last the friend of
-Popes and bishops and other orthodox churchmen, is the best evidence,
-over and above his own words, that his real sentiments were not
-misunderstood by men who had the interests of the Church at heart, and
-who looked upon him as true and loyal, if perhaps a somewhat eccentric
-and caustic son of Holy Church. Even in his last sickness he received
-from the Pope proof of his esteem, for he was given a benefice of
-considerable value, and it was hinted to him that another honour, as
-was commonly supposed at the time nothing less than the sacred purple,
-was in store for him.
-
-Most people are of course chiefly interested in the determination of
-Erasmus’s general attitude to the great religious movement of the age.
-In this place, however, one or two minor points in his literary history
-can hardly be passed over in silence. His attitude to the monks and the
-religious Orders generally, was one of acknowledged hostility, although
-there are passages in his writings, some of which have been already
-quoted, which seem to show that this hostility was neither so sweeping
-nor so deeply rooted as is generally thought. Still, it may be admitted
-that he has few good words for the religious Orders, and he certainly
-brings many and even grave accusations against their good name. There
-is little doubt, however, that much he had to say on the subject was,
-as he himself tells us, said to emphasise abuses that existed, and was
-not intended to be taken as any wholesale sweeping condemnation of
-the system of regular life. Very frequently the _Enconium Moriæ_ has
-been named as the work in which Erasmus hits the monks the hardest.
-Those who so regard it can hardly have read it with attention, and
-most certainly they fail to appreciate its spirit. It was composed,
-as we have seen, at Sir Thomas More’s suggestion, and in his house at
-Chelsea in 1512, on Erasmus’s return from Italy. It is a satire on the
-ecclesiastical manners and customs in which all abuses in turn come
-in for their share of sarcastic condemnation; superstitions of people
-as to particular days and images, superstitions about “magic prayers
-and charmlike rosaries,” as to saints set to this or that office,
-to cure the toothache, to discover stolen goods, &c., in the first
-place came under the lash of Erasmus’s sarcasm. Then come, in turn,
-doctors of divinity and theologians, “a nest of men so crabbed and
-morose” that he has half a mind, he says, to leave them severely alone,
-“lest perchance they should all at once fall upon me with six hundred
-conclusions, driving me to recant.” They are high and mighty and look
-down on other men, thinking of common individuals as “silly men like
-worms creeping on the ground,” and startling ordinary folk by the
-variety of their unpractical discussions and questions. “Nowadays,” he
-says, “not baptism, nor the Gospel, nor Paul, nor Peter, nor Jerome,
-nor Augustine, nor yet Thomas Aquinas, are able to make men Christians,
-unless those Father Bachelors in divinity are pleased to subscribe to
-the same. They require us to address them as _Magister noster_ in the
-biggest of letters.”
-
-Following upon this treatment of the scholastic theologians come the
-few pages devoted to monks, those “whose trade and observance were
-surely most miserable and abject, unless I (Folly) did many ways
-assist them.” They are so ignorant (at least so says Folly), that
-they can hardly read their own names. Erasmus makes merry over the
-office they chant, and the begging practised by the friars, and jeers
-amusingly at their style of dressing, at their mode of cutting their
-hair, and at their sleeping and working by _rule_. “Yea,” he says,
-“some of them being of a straightened rule are such sore punishers of
-their flesh, as outwardly they wear nought but sackcloth and inwardly
-no better than fine holland.” In a word, he laughs at the general
-observance of regular life, and in one place only passes a hint that
-some of their lives are not so saintly as they pretend. As a whole,
-however, the sarcasm is not so bitter as that addressed to other
-ecclesiastics, and even to the Pope himself. In view of Sir Thomas
-More’s subsequent explanation about the spirit of the _Enconium Moriæ_,
-there can be no doubt that it was intended mainly as a playful, if
-somewhat ill-judged and severe, lampoon on some patent abuses, and
-in no sense an attack upon the ecclesiastical system of the Catholic
-Church.[202]
-
-One other misunderstanding about Erasmus’s position in regard to the
-revival of letters may be here noticed. The great scholar has been
-regarded as the incarnation of the spirit of practical paganism, which,
-unfortunately, was quickly the outcome of the movement in Italy, and
-which at this time gave so much colour and point to the denunciations
-of those of the opposite school. No view can be more unjust to Erasmus.
-Though he longed anxiously for the clergy to awake to a sense of the
-importance of studies in general, of classical and scriptural studies
-in particular, there was no one who saw more clearly the danger and
-absurdity of carrying the classical revivalist spirit to extremes. In
-fact, in his _Ciceroniana_, he expressly ridicules what he has seen in
-Rome of the classical spirit run mad. Those afflicted by it, he says,
-try to think that old Rome has returned. They speak of the “Senate,”
-the “conscript fathers,” the “plebs,” the “chief auger,” and the
-“college of soothsayers,” “Pontifices Maximi,” “Vestals,” “triumphs,”
-&c. Nothing can be more unlike the true Ciceronian spirit. Am I, he
-asks, as a Christian speaking to Christians about the Christian
-religion to try and suppose I am living in the age of Cicero, and speak
-as if I were addressing a meeting of the conscript fathers on the
-Capitol? Am I to pick my words, choose my figures and illustrations
-from Cicero’s speeches to the Senate? How can Cicero’s eloquence help
-me to speak to a mixed audience of virgins, wives, and widows in praise
-of fasting, penance, prayer, almsgiving, the sanctity of marriage, the
-contempt of the fleeting pleasures of this world, or of the study of
-Holy Scripture. No, a Christian orator dressed in Cicero’s clothes is
-ridiculous.[203]
-
-As an illustration of the height of absurdity to which the madness of
-the classical craze had brought people in Rome in his day, Erasmus
-relates the story of a sermon he himself once heard in the Eternal
-City during the pontificate of Pope Julius II. “I had been invited,”
-he says, “a few days before, by some learned men to be present at this
-sermon (to be preached on Good Friday). ‘Take care not to miss it,’
-they said, ‘for you will at last be enabled to appreciate the tone
-of the Roman language, spoken by a Roman mouth.’ Hence, with great
-curiosity, I went to the church, procuring a place near the orator so
-as not to miss even one word. Julius II. was himself present, a very
-unusual thing, probably on account of his health. And there were also
-there many cardinals and bishops, and in the crowd most of the men of
-letters who were then in Rome.
-
-“The exordium and peroration were nearly as long as the rest of the
-discourse, and they all rang the changes of praise of Julius II.
-He called him the almighty Jove, and pictured him as brandishing
-the trident, casting his thunderbolts with his right hand, and
-accomplishing all he willed by the mere nod of his head. All that had
-taken place of late years in Gaul, Germany, Spain, &c., were but the
-efforts of his simple will. Then came a hundred times repeated, such
-words as ‘Rome,’ ‘Romans,’ ‘Roman mouth,’ ‘Roman eloquence,’ &c.” But
-what, asks Erasmus, were all these to Julius, bishop of the Christian
-religion, Christ’s vicegerent, successor of Peter and Paul? What are
-these to cardinals and bishops who are in the places of the other
-apostles?
-
-“The orator’s design,” he continues, “was to represent to us Jesus
-Christ, at first in the agony of His Passion, and then in the glory
-of His triumph. To do this, he recalled the memory of Curtius and
-Decius, who had given themselves to the gods for the salvation of the
-Republic. He reminded us of Cecrops, of Menelaus, of Iphigenia, and of
-other noble victims who had valued their lives less than the honour
-and welfare of their country. Public gratitude (he continued, in tears
-and in most lugubrious tones) had always surrounded these noble and
-generous characters with its homage, sometimes raising gilded statues
-to their memory in the forum; sometimes decreeing them even divine
-honours, whilst Jesus Christ, for all His benefits, had received no
-other reward but death. The orator then went on to compare our Saviour,
-who had deserved so well of His country, to Phocion and to Socrates,
-who were compelled to drink hemlock though accused of no crime; to
-Epaminondas, driven to defend himself against envy roused by his noble
-deeds; to Scipio and to Aristides, whom the Athenians were tired of
-hearing called the ‘Just one,’ &c.
-
-“I ask, can anything be imagined colder and more inept? Yet, over all
-his efforts, the preacher sweated blood and water to rival Cicero.
-In brief, my Roman preacher spoke Roman so well that I heard nothing
-about the death of Christ.[204] If Cicero had lived in our days,” asks
-Erasmus, “would he not think the name of God the Father as elegant as
-Jupiter the almighty? Would he think it less elegant to speak of Jesus
-Christ than of Romulus, or of Scipio Africanus, of Quintus Curtius, or
-of Marcus Decius? Would he think the name of the Catholic Church less
-illustrious than that of ‘Conscript Fathers,’ ‘Quirites,’ or ‘Senate
-and people of Rome’? He would speak to us of faith in Christ, of the
-Holy Ghost, or the Holy Trinity?” &c.[205]
-
-At considerable length Erasmus pours out the vials of his scorn upon
-those who act so foolishly under the influence of the false classical
-spirit. He points out the danger to be avoided. People, he says, go
-into raptures over pagan antiquities, and laugh at others who are
-enthusiastic about Christian archæology. “We kiss, venerate, almost
-adore a piece of antiquity,” he says, “and mock at relics of the
-Apostles. If any one finds something from the twelve tables, who does
-not consider it worthy of the most holy place? And the laws written by
-the finger of God, who venerates, who kisses them? How delighted we
-are with a medal stamped with the head of Hercules, or of Mercury, or
-of Fortune, or of Victory, or of Alexander the Great, or one of the
-Cæsars,[206] and we deride those who treasure the wood of the cross or
-images of the Virgin and saints as superstitious.”[207] If in dealing
-with his subject Erasmus may appear to exaggerate the evil he condemns,
-this much is clear, that his advocacy of letters and learning, however
-strenuous and enthusiastic, was tempered by a sense of the paramount
-importance of the Christian spirit in the pursuit of science.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-THE LUTHERAN INVASION
-
-
-It is not uncommonly asserted that the religious changes in England,
-although for convenience’ sake dated from the rejection of Papal
-supremacy, were in reality the outcome of long-continued and
-ever-increasing dissatisfaction with the then existing ecclesiastical
-system. The Pope’s refusal to grant Henry his wished-for divorce
-from Katherine, we are told, was a mere incident, which at most,
-precipitated by a short while what had long been inevitable.[208]
-Those who take this view are bound to believe that the Church in
-England in the early sixteenth century was honeycombed by disbelief
-in the traditional teachings, and that men were only too ready to
-welcome emancipation. What then is the evidence for this picture of the
-religious state of men’s minds in England on the eve of the Reformation?
-
-It is, indeed, not improbable that up and down the country there were,
-at this period, some dissatisfied spirits; some who would eagerly
-seize any opportunity to free themselves from the restraints which no
-longer appealed to their consciences, and from teachings they had come
-to consider as mere ecclesiastical formalism. A Venetian traveller of
-intelligence and observation, who visited the country at the beginning
-of the century, whilst struck with the Catholic practices and with the
-general manifestations of English piety he witnessed, understood that
-there were “many who have various opinions concerning religion.”[209]
-But so far as there is evidence at all, it points to the fact, that of
-religious unrest, in any real sense, there could have been very little
-in the country generally. It is, of course, impossible to suppose that
-any measurable proportion of the people could have openly rejected the
-teaching of the Church or have been even crypto-Lollards, without there
-being satisfactory evidence of the fact forthcoming at the present day.
-
-The similarity of the doctrines held by the English Reformers of
-the sixteenth century with many of those taught by the followers of
-Wycliffe has, indeed, led some writers to assume a direct connection
-between them which certainly did not exist in fact. So far as England
-at least is concerned, there is no justification for assuming for the
-Reformation a line of descent from any form of English Lollardism. It
-is impossible to study the century which preceded the overthrow of
-the old religious system in England without coming to the conclusion
-that as a body the Lollards had been long extinct, and that as
-individuals, scattered over the length and breadth of the land,
-without any practical principle of cohesion, the few who clung to the
-tenets of Wycliffe were powerless to effect any change of opinion in
-the overwhelming mass of the population at large. Lollardry, to the
-Englishman of the day, was “heresy,” and any attempt to teach it was
-firmly repressed by the ecclesiastical authority, supported by the
-strong arm of the State; but it was also an offence against the common
-feeling of the people, and there can be no manner of doubt that its
-repression was popular. The genius of Milton enabled him to see the
-fact that “Wycliffe’s preaching was soon damped and stifled by the Pope
-and prelates for six or seven kings’ reigns,” and Mr. James Gairdner,
-whose studies in this period of our national history enable him to
-speak with authority, comes to the same conclusion. “Notwithstanding
-the darkness that surrounds all subjects connected with the history of
-the fifteenth century,” he writes, “we may venture pretty safely to
-affirm that Lollardry was _not_ the beginning of modern Protestantism.
-Plausible as it seems to regard Wycliffe as ‘the morning star of the
-Reformation,’ the figure conveys an impression which is altogether
-erroneous. Wycliffe’s real influence did not long survive his own day,
-and so far from Lollardry having taken any deep root among the English
-people, the traces of it had wholly disappeared long before the great
-revolution of which it is thought to be the forerunner. At all events,
-in the rich historical material for the beginning of Henry VIII.’s
-reign, supplied by the correspondence of the time, we look in vain for
-a single indication that any such thing as a Lollard sect existed. The
-movement had died a natural death; from the time of Oldcastle it sank
-into insignificance. Though still for a while considerable in point of
-numbers, it no longer counted among its adherents any men of note; and
-when another generation had passed away the serious action of civil war
-left no place for the crotchets of fanaticism.”[210]
-
-On the only evidence available, the student of the reign of Henry VII.
-and of that of Henry VIII. up to the breach with Rome is bound to come
-to the same conclusion as to the state of the English Church. If we
-except manifestations of impatience with the Pope and Curia, which
-could be paralleled in any age and country, and which were rather on
-the secular side than on the religious, there is nothing that would
-make us think that England was not fully loyal in mind and heart to
-the established ecclesiastical system. In fact, as Mr. Brewer says,
-everything proves that “the general body of the people had not as yet
-learned to question the established doctrines of the Church. For the
-most part, they paid their Peter pence and heard mass, and did as their
-fathers had done before them.”[211]
-
-It may be taken, therefore, for granted that the seeds of religious
-discord were not the product of the country itself, nor, so far as we
-have evidence on the subject at all, does it appear that the soil of
-the country was in any way specially adapted for its fructification.
-The work, both of raising the seed and of scattering it over the soil
-of England, must be attributed, if the plain facts of history are to be
-believed, to Germans and the handful of English followers of the German
-Reformers. If we would rightly understand the religious situation in
-England at the commencement of the Reformation, it is of importance to
-inquire into the methods of attack adopted in the Lutheran invasion,
-and to note the chief doctrinal points which were first assailed.
-
-Very shortly after the religious revolt had established itself in
-Germany, the first indications of a serious attempt to undermine the
-traditional faith of the English Church became manifest in England.
-Roger Edgworth, a preacher during the reigns of Henry and Queen Mary,
-says that his “long labours have been cast in most troublesome times
-and most encumbered with errors and heresies, change of minds and
-schisms that ever was in the realm.… Whilst I was a young student in
-divinity,” he continues, “Luther’s heresies rose and were scattered
-here in this realm, which, in less space than a man would think, had
-so sore infected the Christian folk, first the youth and then the
-elders, where the children could set their fathers to school, that the
-king’s Majesty and all Christian clerks in the realm had much ado to
-extinguish them. This they could not so perfectly quench, but that ever
-since, when they might have any maintenance by man or woman of great
-power, they burst forth afresh, even like fire hid under chaff.”[212]
-
-Sir Thomas More, when Chancellor in 1532, attributed the rapid spread
-of what to him and most people of his day in England was heresy, to
-the flood of literature which was poured forth over the country by
-the help of printing. “We have had,” he writes, “some years of late,
-plenteous of evil books. For they have grown up so fast and sprung up
-so thick, full of pestilent errors and pernicious heresies, that they
-have infected and killed, I fear me, more simple souls than the famine
-of the dear years have destroyed bodies.”[213]
-
-We are not left in ignorance as to the books here referred to, as some
-few years previously the bishops of England had issued a list of the
-prohibited volumes. Thus, in October 1526, Bishop Tunstall ordered that
-in London people should be warned not to read the works in question,
-but that all who possessed them should deliver them over to the
-bishop’s officials in order that they might be destroyed as pernicious
-literature. The list included several works of Luther, three or four of
-Tyndale, a couple of Zwingle, and several isolated works, such as the
-_Supplication of Beggars_, and the _Dyalogue between the Father and the
-Son_.[214]
-
-In 1530 the king by proclamation forbade the reading or possession of
-some eighty-five works of Wycliffe, Luther, Œcolampadius, Zwingle,
-Pomeranus, Bucer, Wesselius, and indeed the German divines generally,
-under the heading of “books of the Lutheran sect or faction conveyed
-into the city of London.” Besides these Latin treatises, the
-prohibition included many English tracts, such as _A book of the old
-God and the new_, the _Burying of the Mass_, Frith’s _Disputation
-concerning Purgatory_, and several prayer-books intended to propagate
-the new doctrines, such as _Godly prayers_; _Matins and Evensong with
-the seven Psalms and other heavenly psalms with commendations_; the
-_Hortulus Animæ_ in English,[215] and the _Primer_ in English.
-
-In his proclamation Henry VIII. speaks of the determination of the
-English nation in times past to be true to the Catholic faith and to
-defend the country against “wicked sects of heretics and Lollards,
-who, by perversion of Holy Scripture, do induce erroneous opinions,
-sow sedition amongst Christian people, and disturb the peace and
-tranquillity of Christian realms, as lately happened in some parts of
-Germany, where, by the procurement and sedition of Martin Luther and
-other heretics, were slain an infinite number of Christian people.”
-To prevent like misfortunes happening in England, he orders prompt
-measures to be taken to put a stop to the circulation of books in
-English and other languages, which teach things “intolerable to the
-clean ears of any good Christian man.”[216]
-
-By the king’s command, the convocation of Canterbury drew up a list
-of prohibited heretical books. In the first catalogue of fifty-three
-tracts and volumes, there is no mention of any work of Wycliffe, and
-besides some volumes which had come from the pens of Tyndale, Frith,
-and Roy, who were acknowledged disciples of Luther, the rest are all
-the compositions of the German Reformers. The same may be said of a
-supplementary list of tracts, the authors of which were unknown. All
-these are condemned as containing false teaching, plainly contrary to
-the Catholic faith, and the bishops add: “Moreover, following closely
-in the footsteps of our fathers, we prohibit all from selling, giving,
-reading, distributing, or publishing any tract, booklet, pamphlet,
-or book, which translates or interprets the Holy Scripture in the
-vernacular … or even knowingly to keep such volumes without the licence
-of their diocesan in writing.”[217]
-
-About the same time a committee of bishops, including Archbishop
-Warham and Bishop Tunstall was appointed to draw up a list of some
-of the principal errors contained in the prohibited works of English
-heretics beyond the sea. The king had heard that “many books in the
-English tongue containing many detestable errors and damnable opinions,
-printed in parts beyond the sea,” were being brought into England and
-spread abroad. He was unwilling that “such evil seed sown amongst his
-people (should) so take root that it might overgrow the corn of the
-Catholic doctrine before sprung up in the souls of his subjects,” and
-he consequently ordered this examination. This has been done and the
-errors noted, “albeit many more there be in those books; which books
-totally do swarm full of heresies and detestable opinions.” The books
-thus examined and noted were eight in number: _The Wicked Mammon_;
-the _Obedience of Christian man_; the _Revelation of Antichrist_;
-the _Sum of Scripture_; the _Book of Beggars_; the _Kalendar of the
-Prymer_; the _Prymer_, and an _Exposition unto the Seventh Chapter
-of I Corinthians_. From these some hundreds of propositions were
-culled which contradicted the plain teaching of the Church in matters
-of faith and morality. In this condemnation, as the king states in
-his directions to preachers to publish the same, the commission were
-unanimous.[218]
-
-The attack on the traditional teachings of the Church, moreover,
-was not confined to unimportant points. From the first, high and
-fundamental doctrines, as it seemed to men in those days, were put
-in peril. The works sent forth by the advocates of the change speak
-for themselves, and, when contrasted with those of Luther, leave no
-room for doubt that they were founded on them, and inspired by the
-spirit of the leader of the revolt, although, as was inevitable in
-such circumstances, in particulars the disciples proved themselves in
-advance of their master. Writing in 1546, Dr. Richard Smythe contrasts
-the old times, when the faith was respected, with the then state of
-mental unrest in religious matters. “In our days,” he writes, “not a
-few things, nor of small importance, but (alack the more is the pity)
-even the chiefest and most weighty matters of our religion and faith
-are called in question, babbled, talked, and jangled upon (reasoned
-I cannot nor ought not to call it). These matters in time past (when
-reason had place and virtue with learning was duly regarded, yea, and
-vice with insolency was generally detested and abhorred) were held in
-such reverence and honour, in such esteem and dignity, yea, so received
-and embraced by all estates, that it was not in any wise sufferable
-that tag and rag, learned and unlearned, old and young, wise and
-foolish, boys and wenches, master and man, tinkers and tilers, colliers
-and coblers, with other such raskabilia might at their pleasure rail
-and jest (for what is it else they now do?) against everything that
-is good and virtuous, against all things that are expedient and
-profitable, not sparing any Sacrament of the Church or ordinance of the
-same, no matter how laudable, decent, or fitting it has been regarded
-in times past, or how much it be now accepted by good and Catholic
-men. In this way, both by preaching and teaching (if it so ought to
-be called), playing, writing, printing, singing, and (Oh, good Lord!)
-in how many other ways besides, divers of our age, being their own
-schoolmasters, or rather scholars of the devil, have not forborne or
-feared to speak and write against the most excellent and most blessed
-Sacrament of the Altar, affirming that the said Sacrament is nothing
-more than a bare figure, and that there is not in the same Sacrament
-the very body and blood of our blessed Saviour and Redeemer, Jesus
-Christ, but only a naked sign, a token, a memorial and a remembrance
-only of the same, if they take it for so much even and do not call it
-(as they are wont to do) an idol and very plain idolatry.”[219]
-
-As to the date of the introduction of these heretical views into
-England, Sir Thomas More entirely agreed with Dr. Smythe, the writer
-just quoted. He places the growth of these ideas in the circulation
-of books by Tyndale, Frith, and Barnes, and even as late as 1533,
-declares that the number of those who had accepted the new teaching
-was grossly exaggerated. He states his belief that “the realm is not
-full of heretics, and it has in it but a few, though that few be indeed
-over many and grown more also by negligence in some part than there
-has been in some late years past.”[220] It was, indeed, part of the
-strategy pursued by the innovators in religion to endeavour to make
-the movement appear more important than it had any claim to be. It
-is, writes More, the “policy” of “these heretics who call themselves
-‘evangelical brethren,’” to make their number appear larger than it is.
-“Some pot-headed apostles they have that wander about the realm into
-sundry shires, for whom every one has a different name in every shire,
-and some, peradventure, in corners here and there they bring into the
-brotherhood. But whether they get any or none they do not hesitate to
-lie when they come home, and say that more than half of every shire is
-of their own sect. Boast and brag these blessed brethren never so fast,
-they feel full well themselves that they be too feeble in what country
-so ever they be strongest. For if they thought themselves able to meet
-and match the Catholics they would not, I ween, lie still at rest for
-three days.”
-
-“For in all places where heresies have sprung up hitherto so hath it
-proved yet. And so negligently might these things be handled, that at
-length it might happen so here. And verily they look (far as they be
-yet from the power) for it, and some of them have not hesitated to say
-this, and some to write it, too. For I read the letter myself which was
-cast into the palace of the Right Reverend Father in God, Cuthbert,
-now Bishop of Durham, but then Bishop of London, in which among other
-bragging word … were these words contained: ‘There will once come a
-day.’ And out of question that day they long for but also daily look
-for, and would, if they were not too weak, not fail to find it. And
-they have the greater hope because … they see that it begins to grow
-into a custom that among good Catholic folk they are suffered to talk
-unchecked.” For good men in their own minds indeed think the Catholic
-faith so strong that heretics with all their babbling will never be
-able to vanquish it, “and in this undoubtedly their mind is not only
-good, but also very true. But they do not look far enough. For as the
-sea will never surround and overwhelm all the land, and yet has eaten
-it in many places, and swallowed whole countries up and made many
-places sea, which sometime were well-inhabited lands, and has lost part
-of its own possession again in other places, so, though the faith of
-Christ shall never be overwhelmed with heresy, nor the gate of hell
-prevail against Christ’s Church, yet as in some places it winneth in
-new peoples, so by negligence in some places the old may be lost.”[221]
-
-Sir Thomas More is all for vigilance on the part of the authorities. He
-likens those who are in power and office to the guardians of a fertile
-field who are bound to prevent the sowing of tares on their master’s
-land; and the multiplication of evil books and their circulation
-among the people, cannot, in his opinion, have any other effect than
-to prevent the fertilisation of the good seed of God’s word in the
-hearts of many. “These new teachers,” he says, “despise Christ’s
-Sacraments, which are His holy ordinances and a great part of Christ’s
-New Law and Testament. Who can place less value on His commandments
-than they who, upon the boldness of faith only, set all good works at
-naught, and little consider the danger of their evil deeds upon the
-boldness that a bare faith and slight repentance, without shrift or
-penance, suffices, and that no vow made to God can bind a man to live
-chastely or hinder a monk from marriage. All these things, with many
-pestilent errors besides, these abominable books of Tyndale and his
-fellows teach us. Of these books of heresies there are so many made
-within these few years, what by Luther himself and by his fellows, and
-afterwards by the new sects sprung out of his, which, like the children
-of Vippara, would now gnaw out their mother’s belly, that the bare
-names of those books were almost enough to make a book. Some of every
-sort of those books are brought into this realm and kept in ‘hucker
-mucker’ by some shrewd masters who keep them for no good. Besides
-the Latin, French, and German books of which these evil sects have
-put forth an innumerable number, there are some made in the English
-tongue. First, Tyndale’s _English Testament_, father of them all by
-reason of his false translating, and after that, the _Five Books of
-Moses_ translated by the same man; we need not doubt in what manner
-and for what purpose. Then you have his _Introduction to Saint Paul’s
-Epistle_, with which he introduces his readers to a false understanding
-of Saint Paul, making them believe, among many other heresies, that
-Saint Paul held that faith only was always sufficient for salvation,
-and that men’s good works were worth nothing and could not deserve
-thanks or reward in heaven, although they were done in grace.… Then we
-have from Tyndale _The Wicked Mammona_, by which many a man has been
-beguiled and brought into many wicked heresies, which in good faith
-would be to me a matter of no little wonder, for there was never a more
-foolish frantic book, were it not that the devil is ever ready to put
-out the eyes of those who are content to become blind. Then we have
-Tyndale’s _Book of Obedience_, by which we are taught to disobey the
-teaching of Christ’s Catholic Church and set His holy Sacraments at
-naught. Then we have from Tyndale the _First Epistle of Saint John_,
-expounded in such wise that I dare say that blessed Apostle had rather
-his Epistle had never been put in writing than that his holy words
-should be believed by all Christian people in such a sense. Then we
-have the _Supplication of Beggars_, a piteous beggarly book, in which
-he would have all the souls in Purgatory beg all about for nothing.
-Then we have from George Joye, otherwise called Clarke, a _Goodly Godly
-Epistle_, wherein he teaches divers other heresies, but specially that
-men’s vows and promises of chastity are not lawful, and can bind no man
-in conscience not to wed when he will. And this man, considering that
-when a man teaches one thing and does another himself, the people set
-less value by his preaching, determined therefore with himself, that
-he would show himself an example of his preaching. Therefore, being a
-priest, he has beguiled a woman and wedded her; the poor woman, I ween,
-being unaware that he is a priest. Then you have also an _Exposition
-on the Seventh Chapter of Saint Paul’s Epistle to the Corinthians_,
-by which exposition also priests, friars, monks, and nuns are taught
-the evangelical liberty that they may run out a-caterwauling and wed.
-That work has no name of the maker, but some think it was Friar Roy
-who, when he had fallen into heresy, then found it unlawful to live
-in chastity and ran out of his Order. Then have we the _Examinations
-of Thorpe_ put forth as it is said by George Constantine (by whom I
-know well there has been a great many books of that sort sent into
-this realm). In that book, the heretic that made it as (if it were) a
-communication between the bishop and his chaplains and himself, makes
-all the parties speak as he himself likes, and sets down nothing as
-spoken against his heresies, but what he himself would seem solemnly
-to answer. When any good Christian man who has either learning or any
-natural wit reads this book, he shall be able not only to perceive
-him for a foolish heretic and his arguments easy to answer, but shall
-also see that he shows himself a false liar in his rehearsal of the
-matter in which he makes the other part sometimes speak for his own
-convenience such manner of things as no man who was not a very wild
-goose would have done.
-
-“Then have we _Jonas_ made out by Tyndale, a book that whosoever
-delight therein shall stand in such peril, that Jonas was never so
-swallowed up by the whale, as by the delight of that book a man’s soul
-may be so swallowed by the devil that he shall never have the grace to
-get out again. Then, we have from Tyndale the answer to my _Dyalogue_.
-Then, the book of Frith against _Purgatory_. Then, the book of Luther
-translated into English in the name of Brightwell, but, as I am
-informed, it was translated by Frith; a book, such as Tyndale never
-made one more foolish nor one more full of lies.… Then, we have the
-_Practice of Prelates_, wherein Tyndale intended to have made a special
-show of his high worldly wit, so that men should have seen therein that
-there was nothing done among princes that he was not fully advertised
-of the secrets. Then, we have now the book of Friar Barnes, sometime a
-doctor of Cambridge, who was abjured before this time for heresy, and
-is at this day come under a safe conduct to the realm. Surely, of all
-their books that yet came abroad in English (of all which there was
-never one wise nor good) there was none so bad, so foolish, so false
-as his. This, since his coming, has been plainly proved to his face,
-and that in such wise that, when the books that he cites and alleges
-in his book were brought forth before him, and his ignorance showed
-him, he himself did in divers things confess his oversight, and clearly
-acknowledged that he had been mistaken and wrongly understood the
-passages.
-
-“Then, we have besides Barnes’s book, the _A B C for children_. And
-because there is no grace therein, lest we should lack prayers, we
-have the _Primer_ and the _Ploughman’s Prayer_ and a book of other
-small devotions, and then the whole _Psalter_ too. After the _Psalter_,
-children were wont to go straight to their _Donat_ and their Accidence,
-but now they go straight to Scripture. And for this end we have as a
-Donat, the book of the _Pathway to Scripture_, and for an Accidence,
-the _Whole sum of Scripture_ in a little book, so that after these
-books are learned well, we are ready for Tyndale’s _Pentateuchs_ and
-Tyndale’s _Testament_, and all the other high heresies that he and
-Joye and Frith and Friar Barnes teach in all their books. Of all these
-heresies the seed is sown, and prettily sprung up in these little
-books before. For the _Primer_ and _Psalter_, prayers and all, were
-translated and made in this manner by heretics only. The _Psalter_ was
-translated by George Joye, the priest that is wedded now, and I hear
-say the _Primer_ too, in which the seven Psalms are printed without
-the Litany, lest folks should pray to the saints; and the _Dirge_ is
-left out altogether, lest a man might happen to pray with it for his
-father’s soul. In their Calendar, before their devout prayers, they
-have given us a new saint, Sir Thomas Hytton, the heretic who was
-burned in Kent. They have put him in on St. Matthew’s Eve, by the name
-of St. Thomas the Martyr.
-
-“It would be a long work to rehearse all their books, for there are
-yet more than I have known. Against all these the king’s high wisdom
-politically provided, in that his proclamation forbade any manner of
-English books printed beyond the sea to be brought into this realm, or
-any printed within this realm to be sold unless the name of the printer
-and his dwelling-place were set upon the book. But still, as I said
-before, a few malicious, mischievous persons have now brought into this
-realm these ungracious books full of pestilent, poisoned heresies that
-have already in other realms killed, by schisms and war, many thousand
-bodies, and by sinful errors and abominable heresies many more thousand
-souls.
-
-“Although these books cannot either be there printed without great
-cost, nor here sold without great adventure and peril, yet, with money
-sent hence, they cease not to print them there, and send them hither by
-the whole sacks full at once; and in some places, looking for no lucre,
-cast them abroad at night, so great a pestilent pleasure have some
-devilish people caught with the labour, travail, cast, charge, peril,
-harm, and hurt of themselves to seek the destruction of others.”[222]
-
-In his introduction to the _Confutation_ of Tyndale’s answer, from
-which the foregoing extracts are taken, Sir Thomas More gives ample
-evidence that the teaching of “the New Learning” was founded entirely
-upon that of the German Reformer Luther, although on certain points his
-English followers had gone beyond their master. He takes for example
-what Hytton, “whom Tyndale has canonized,” had been teaching “his holy
-congregations, in divers corners and luskes lanes.” Baptism, he had
-allowed to be “a sacrament necessary for salvation,” though he declared
-that there was no need for a priest to administer it. Matrimony, he
-thought a good thing for Christians, but would be sorry to say it was
-a sacrament. Extreme Unction and Confirmation, together with Holy
-Orders, he altogether rejected as sacraments, declaring them to be
-mere ceremonies of man’s invention. “The mass,” he declared, “should
-never be said,” since to do so was rather an act of sin than virtue.
-Confession to a priest was unnecessary, and the penance enjoined was
-“without profit to the soul.” Purgatory he denied, “and said further,
-that neither prayer nor fasting for the souls departed can do them
-any good.” Religious vows were wrong, and those who entered religion
-“sinned in so doing.” He held further, that “no man had any free-will
-after he had once sinned;” that “all the images of Christ and His
-saints should be thrown out of the Church,” and that whatsoever laws
-“the Pope or a General Council might make beyond what is expressly
-commanded in Scripture” need not be obeyed. “As touching the Sacrament
-of the Altar, he said that it was a necessary sacrament, but held that
-after the consecration, there was nothing whatever therein, but only
-the very substance of material bread and wine.”[223]
-
-Now, it was to defend these points of Catholic faith, as More, in
-common with the most learned in the land, believed them to be, that he
-took up his pen against Tyndale and others. I wish, he says, to second
-“the king’s gracious purpose, as being his most unworthy chancellor,”
-since “I know well that the king’s highness, for his faithful mind to
-God, desires nothing more effectually than the maintenance of the true
-Catholic faith, whereof is his no more honourable than well-deserved
-title, ‘defensor.’ He detests nothing more than these pestilent books
-which Tyndale and others send over into the realm in order to set
-forth their abominable heresies. For this purpose he has not only by
-his most erudite famous books, both in English and Latin, declared his
-most Catholic purpose and intent, but also by his open proclamations
-divers times renewed, and finally in his own most royal person in the
-Star Chamber most eloquently by his mouth, in the presence of his
-lords spiritual and temporal, has given monition and warning to all
-the justices of peace of every quarter of his realm then assembled
-before his Highness, to be declared by them to all his people, and did
-prohibit and forbid under great penalties, the bringing in, reading,
-and keep of those pernicious poisoned books.”[224]
-
-The other writers of the time, moreover, had no doubt whatever as to
-the place whence the novel opinions had sprung, and they feared that
-social disturbances would follow in the wake of the religious teaching
-of the sectaries as they had done in the country of their birth. Thus
-Germen Gardynare, writing to a friend about the execution of John Frith
-for heresy, says that he was “amongst others found busy at Oxford
-in setting abroad these heresies which lately sprang up in Germany,
-and by the help of such folk are spread abroad into sundry places of
-Christendom, tending to nothing else but to the division and rending
-asunder of Christ’s mystical body, His Church; and to the pulling down
-of all power and the utter subversion of all commonwealths.”[225]
-
-Sir Thomas More, too, saw danger to the ship of State from the storms
-which threatened the nation in the rise of the religious novelties
-imported from abroad. As a warning anticipation of what might come to
-pass in England if the flood was allowed to gain head, he describes
-what was known of the state of Germany when he wrote in 1528. What
-helped Luther to successfully spread his poison was, he says, “that
-liberty which he so highly commended unto the people, inducing them
-to believe that having faith they needed nothing else. For he taught
-them to neglect fasting, prayer, and such other things as vain and
-unfruitful ceremonies, teaching them also that being faithful
-Christians they were so near cousins to Christ that they were, in a
-full freedom and liberty, discharged of all governors and all manner of
-laws spiritual and temporal, except only the Gospel. And though he said
-that, as a point of special perfection, it would be good to suffer and
-bear the rule and authority of Popes and princes and other governors,
-whose rule and authority he calls mere tyranny, yet he says the people
-are so free by faith that they are no more bound thereto than they are
-to suffer wrong. And this doctrine Tyndale also teaches as the special
-matter of his holy book of disobedience. Now, this doctrine was heard
-so pleasantly in Germany by the common people that it blinded them in
-looking on the remnant, and would not allow them to consider and see
-what end the same would come to. The temporal lords also were glad to
-hear this talk against the clergy, and the people were as glad to hear
-it against the clergy and against the lords too, and against all the
-governors of every good town and city. Finally, it went so far that it
-began to burst out and fall to open force and violence. For intending
-to begin at the most feeble, a boisterous company of the unhappy sect
-gathered together and first rebelled against an abbot, and afterwards
-against a bishop, wherewith the temporal lords had good game and sport
-and dissembled the matter, gaping after the lands of the spirituality,
-till they had almost played as Æsop tells of the dog, which, in order
-to snatch at the shadow of the cheese in the water, let the cheese
-he had in his mouth fall, and lost it. For so it was shortly after
-that those uplandish Lutherans took so great boldness and began to
-grow so strong that they set also upon the temporal lords. These … so
-acquitted themselves that they slew in one summer 70,000 Lutherans
-and subdued the rest in that part of Germany to a most miserable
-servitude.… And in divers other parts of Germany and Switzerland this
-ungracious sect is so grown, by the negligence of governors in great
-cities, that in the end the common people have compelled the rulers to
-follow them.…
-
-“And now it is too piteous a sight to see the ‘dispiteous dispyghts’
-done in many places to God and all good men, with the marvellous
-change from the face and fashion of Christendom into a very tyrannous
-persecution, not only of all good Christians living and dead, but
-also of Christ Himself. For there you will see now goodly monasteries
-destroyed, the places burnt up, and the religious people put out
-and sent to seek their living; or, in many cities, the places (the
-buildings) yet standing with more despite to God than if they were
-burned to ashes. For the religious people, monks, friars, and nuns,
-are wholly driven or drawn out, except such as would agree to forsake
-their vows of chastity and be wedded; and places dedicated to
-cleanliness and chastity, left only to these apostates as brothels to
-live there in lechery. Now are the parish churches in many places not
-only defaced, all the ornaments taken away, the holy images pulled
-down, and either broken or burned, but also the Holy Sacrament cast
-out. And the abominable beasts (which I abhor to think about) did
-not abhor in despite to defile the pixes and in many places use the
-churches continually for a common siege. And that they have done in
-so despiteful a wise that when a stranger from other places where
-Christ is worshipped resorts to these cities, some of those unhappy
-wretched citizens do not fail, as it were, for courtesy and kindness,
-to accompany them in their walking abroad to show them the pleasures
-and commodities of the town, and then bring them to the church, only
-to show them in derision what uses the churches serve for!” Then,
-after pointing out that “of this sect were the greater part of those
-ungracious people who lately entered into Rome with the Duke of
-Bourbon,” Sir Thomas More details at considerable length the horrors
-committed during that sack of the Eternal City; adding: “For this
-purpose I rehearse to you these their heavy mischievous dealings, that
-you may perceive by their deeds what good comes of their sect. For as
-our Saviour says: ‘ye shall know the tree by the fruit.’”[226]
-
-The activity of the teachers of the new doctrine was everywhere
-remarkable. More only wished that the maintainers of the traditional
-Catholic faith were half so zealous “as those that are fallen into
-false heresies and have forsaken the faith.” These seem, he says,
-indeed to “have a hot fire of hell in their hearts that can never
-suffer them to rest or cease, but forces them night and day to labour
-and work busily to subvert and destroy the Catholic Christian faith
-by every means they can devise.”[227] The time was, “and even until
-now very late,” when no man would allow any heresy to be spoken at
-his table; for this “has been till of late the common Christian zeal
-towards the Catholic faith.” But now (1533) “though, God be thanked,
-the faith is itself as fast rooted in this realm as ever it was before
-(except in some very few places, and yet even in those few the very
-faithful folk are many more than the faithless), even good men are
-beginning to tolerate the discussion of heretical views, and to take
-part in ‘the evil talk.’”
-
-To understand the Reformation in England, it is important to note
-the progress of its growth, and to note that the lines upon which
-it developed were to all intents and purposes those which had been
-laid down by Luther for the German religious revolution, although, in
-many ways, England was carried along the path of reformed doctrines,
-even further than the original leader had been prepared to go. The
-special points of the traditional faith of the English people, which
-the reforming party successfully attacked, were precisely those
-which had been the battle-ground in Germany, and Sir Thomas More’s
-description of the result there might somewhat later have been written
-of this country. Tyndale was described by More as “the captain of the
-English heretics,” and the influence of his works no doubt greatly
-helped to the overthrow of the traditional teaching. The key of the
-position taken up by the English Reformers, as well as by their German
-predecessors, was the claim that all belief must be determined by
-the plain word of Holy Scripture, and by that alone. Tradition they
-rejected, although Sir Thomas More pointed out forcibly that the
-Church had always acknowledged the twofold authority of the written
-and unwritten word.[228] Upon this ground Tyndale and his successors
-rejected all the sacraments but two, attacked popular devotion to
-sacred images and prayers to our Lady and the saints, and rejected
-the old teaching about Purgatory and the help the souls of the
-departed faithful could derive from the suffrages and penances of
-the living. Confirmation and the anointing of priests at ordination
-they contemptuously called “butter smearing,” and with their denial
-of the priesthood quickly came their rejection of the doctrine of the
-Sacrifice in the Mass, and their teaching that the Holy Eucharist is a
-“token and sign” rather than the actual Body and Blood of our Lord.
-
-No means were left untried to further the spread of the new views.
-Books of prayer were drawn up, in which, under the guise of familiar
-devotions, the poison of the reformed doctrine was unsuspectedly
-imbibed. Richard Whitford complains that his works, which just on the
-eve of the Reformation were deservedly popular, had been made use of
-for the purpose of interpolating tracts against points of Catholic
-faith, which people were induced to buy under the supposition that they
-were from the pen of the celebrated monk of Sion. John Waylande, the
-printer of some Whitford books, in 1537 prefixed the following notice
-to the new edition of the _Werke for Householders_. “The said author
-required me instantly that I should not print nor join any other works
-with his, specially of uncertain authors. For of late he found a work
-joined in the same volume with his works, and bought and taken for his
-work. This was not his, but was put there instead of his work that
-before was named among the contents of his book, and yet his (real)
-work was left out, as is complained in this preface here unto the
-Reader.”
-
-In his preface Whitford says that the substituted work was obviously by
-one of the Reformers, and “not only puts me into infamy and slander,
-but also puts all readers in jeopardy of conscience to be infected (by
-heresy) and in danger of the king’s laws, for the manifold erroneous
-opinions that are contained in the same book.” He consequently adds a
-warning to his readers: “By my poor advice,” he says, “read not those
-books that go forth without named authors. For, doubtless, many of them
-that seem very devout and good works, are full of heresies, and your
-old English poet says, ‘There is no poison so perilous of sharpness as
-that is that hath of sugar a sweetness.’”[229]
-
-In a subsequent volume, published in 1541, called _Dyvers holy
-instructions and teachings_, Whitford again complains of this device of
-the teachers of the new doctrines. In the preface he gives the exact
-titles of the four little tracts which go to make up the volume, in
-order, as he says, “to give you warning to search well and surely that
-no other works are put amongst them that might deceive you. For, of a
-certainty, I found now but very lately a work joined and bound with my
-poor labours and under the contents of the same volume, and one of my
-works which was named in the same contents left out. Instead of this,
-was put this other work that was not mine. For the title of mine was
-this, ‘A daily exercise and experience of death,’ and the other work
-has no name of any author. And all such works in this time are ever to
-be suspected, for so the heretics are used to send forth their poison
-among the people covered with sugar. For they seem to be good and
-devout workers, and are in very deed stark heresies.”[230]
-
-Even the smallest points were not deemed too insignificant for the
-teaching of novel doctrines destructive of the old Catholic spirit.
-To take an example: John Standish, writing in Mary’s reign about the
-vernacular Scripture, complains of the translation which had been made
-in the time of Henry VIII. “Who is able,” he writes, “to tell at
-first sight how many hundred faults are even in their best translation
-(if there is any good). Shall they be suffered still to continue? Shall
-they still poison more like as they do in a thousand damnable English
-books set forth within the last twenty-two years? Lord deliver us from
-them all, and that with all speed! I take God to record (if I may
-speak only of one fault in the translation and touch no more) my heart
-did ever abhor to hear this word _Dominus_ … translated _the_ Lord,
-whereas it ought to be translated _our_ Lord, the very Latin phrase
-so declaring. Is not St. John saying to Peter (John, xxi.), _Dominus
-est_, ‘it is our Lord’? whereas they have falsely translated it as in
-many other places ‘_the_ Lord.’ And likewise in the salutation of our
-Lady, ‘Hail, Mary, full of grace, _dominus tecum_,’ does not this word
-_dominus_ here include _noster_, and so ought to be translated ‘our
-Lord is with thee’? Would you make the Archangel like a devil call him
-_the_ Lord? He is the Lord to every evil spirit, but to us He is our
-most merciful Lord and ought to be called so. If, perchance, you ask of
-a husbandman whose ground that is, he will answer, ‘the lord’s,’ who is
-perhaps no better than a collier. Well, I speak this, not now so much
-for the translation, seeing that it swarms as full of faults as leaves
-(I will not say lines) as I do, because I wish that the common speech
-among people sprung from this fond translation, ‘I thank the Lord’;
-‘the Lord be praised’; ‘the Lord knoweth’; with all such-like phrases
-might be given up, and that the people might be taught to call Him ‘our
-Lord,’ saying, ‘I thank our Lord’; ‘our Lord be praised,’[231] &c., &c.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-THE PRINTED ENGLISH BIBLE
-
-
-It is very commonly believed that until the influence of Cranmer had
-made itself felt, the ecclesiastical authorities continued to maintain
-the traditionally hostile attitude of the English Church towards the
-English Bible. In proof of this, writers point to the condemnation
-of the translations issued by Tyndale, and the wholesale destruction
-of all copies of this, the first printed edition of the English New
-Testament. It is consequently of importance to examine into the extent
-of the supposed clerical hostility to the vernacular Scriptures, and
-into the reasons assigned by those having the conduct of ecclesiastical
-affairs at that period for the prohibition of Tyndale’s Testament.
-
-It may not be without utility to point out that the existence of any
-determination on the part of the Church to prevent the circulation
-of vernacular Bibles in the fifteenth century has been hitherto too
-hastily assumed. Those who were living during that period may be
-fairly considered the most fitting interpreters of the prohibition
-of Archbishop Arundel, which has been so frequently adduced as
-sufficient evidence of this supposed uncompromising hostility to
-what is now called “the open Bible.” The terms of the archbishop’s
-monition do not, on examination, bear the meaning usually put upon
-it; and should the language be considered by some obscure, there is
-absolute evidence of the possession of vernacular Bibles by Catholics
-of undoubted orthodoxy with, at the very least, the tacit consent of
-the ecclesiastical authorities. When to this is added the fact that
-texts from the then known English Scriptures were painted on the walls
-of churches, and portions of the various books were used in authorised
-manuals of prayer, it is impossible to doubt that the hostility of the
-English Church to the vernacular Bible has been greatly exaggerated,
-if indeed its attitude has not altogether been misunderstood. This
-much may, and indeed must, be conceded, wholly apart from the further
-question whether the particular version now known as the Wycliffite
-Scriptures is, or is not, the version used in the fifteenth and early
-sixteenth century by Catholic Englishmen. That a Catholic version, or
-some version viewed as Catholic and orthodox by those who lived in
-the sixteenth century, really existed does not admit of any doubt at
-all on the distinct testimony of Sir Thomas More. It will be readily
-admitted that he was no ordinary witness. As one eminent in legal
-matters, he must be supposed to know the value of evidence, and his
-uncompromising attitude towards all innovators in matters of religion
-is a sufficient guarantee that he would be no party to the propagation
-of any unorthodox or unauthorised translations.
-
-Some quotations from Sir Thomas More’s works will illustrate his belief
-better than any lengthy exposition. It is unnecessary, he says, to
-defend the law prohibiting any English version of the Bible, “for there
-is none such, indeed. There is of truth a Constitution which speaks
-of this matter, but nothing of such fashion. For you shall understand
-that the great arch-heretic Wycliffe, whereas the whole Bible was
-long before his days by virtuous and well-learned men translated into
-the English tongue, and by good and godly people and with devotion and
-soberness well and reverently read, took upon himself to translate
-it anew. In this translation he purposely corrupted the holy text,
-maliciously planting in it such words, as might in the readers’ ears
-serve to prove such heresies as he ‘went about’ to sow. These he not
-only set forth with his own translation of the Bible, but also with
-certain prologues and glosses he made upon it, and he so managed this
-matter, assigning probable and likely reasons suitable for lay and
-unlearned people, that he corrupted in his time many folk in this
-realm.…
-
-“After it was seen what harm the people took from the translation,
-prologues, and glosses of Wycliffe and also of some others, who after
-him helped to set forth his sect for that cause, and also for as much
-as it is dangerous to translate the text of Scripture out of one tongue
-into another, as St. Jerome testifieth, since in translating it is
-hard to keep the same sentence whole (i.e. the exact meaning): it was,
-I say, for these causes at a Council held at Oxford, ordered under
-great penalties that no one might thenceforth translate (the Scripture)
-into English, or any other language, on his own authority, in a book,
-booklet, or tract, and that no one might read openly or secretly any
-such book, booklet, or treatise newly made in the time of the said
-John Wycliffe, or since, or should be made any time after, till the
-same translation had been approved by the diocesan, or, if need should
-require, by a Provincial Council.
-
-“This is the law that so many have so long spoken about, and so few
-have all this time sought to look whether they say the truth or not.
-For I hope you see in this law nothing unreasonable, since it neither
-forbids good translations to be read that were already made of old
-before Wycliffe’s time, nor condemns his because it was new, but
-because it was ‘naught.’ Neither does it prohibit new translations to
-be made, but provides that if they are badly made they shall not be
-read till they are thoroughly examined and corrected, unless indeed
-they are such translations as Wycliffe and Tyndale made, which the
-malicious mind of the translator has handled in such a way that it were
-labour lost to try and correct them.”
-
-The “objector,” whom Sir Thomas More was engaged in instructing in
-the _Dialogue_, could hardly believe that the formal Provincial
-Constitution meant nothing more than this, and thereupon, as Sir Thomas
-says: “I set before him the Constitutions Provincial, with Lyndwood
-upon it, and directed him to the place under the title _De magistris_.
-When he himself had read this, he said he marvelled greatly how it
-happened that in so plain a matter men were so deceived.” But he
-thought that even if the law was not as he had supposed, nevertheless
-the clergy acted as if it were, and always “took all translations out
-of every man’s hand whether the translation was good or bad, old or
-new.” To this More replied that to his knowledge this was not correct.
-“I myself,” he says, “have seen and can show you Bibles, fair and old,
-written in English, which have been known and seen by the bishop of
-the diocese, and left in the hands of laymen and women, whom he knew
-to be good and Catholic people who used the books with devotion and
-soberness.” He admitted indeed that all Bibles found in the hands
-of heretics were taken away from them, but none of these, so far
-as he had ever heard, were burnt, except such as were found to be
-garbled and false. Such were the Bibles issued with evil prologues or
-glosses, maliciously made by Wycliffe and other heretics. “Further,”
-he declared, “no good man would be so mad as to burn a Bible in which
-they found no fault.” Nor was there any law whatever that prohibited
-the possession, examination, or reading of the Holy Scripture in
-English.[232]
-
-In reply to the case of Richard Hunn, who, according to the story set
-about by the religious innovators, had been condemned and his dead body
-burnt “only because they found English Bibles in his house, in which
-they never found other fault than because they were in English,” Sir
-Thomas More, professedly, and with full knowledge of the circumstances,
-absolutely denies, as he says, “from top to toe,” the truth of this
-story.[233] He shows at great length that the whole tale of Hunn’s
-death was carefully examined into by the king’s officials, and declares
-that at many of the examinations he himself had been present and heard
-the witnesses, and that in the end it had been fully shown that Hunn
-was in reality a heretic and a teacher of heresy. “But,” urged his
-objector, “though Hunn were himself a heretic, yet might the book (of
-the English Bible) be good enough; and there is no good reason why a
-good book should be burnt.” The copy of this Bible, replied More, was
-of great use in showing the kind of man Hunn really was, “for at the
-time he was denounced as a heretic, there lay his English Bible open,
-and some other English books of his, so that every one could see the
-places noted with his own hand, such words and in such a way that no
-wise and good man could, after seeing them, doubt what ‘naughty minds’
-the men had, both he that so noted them and he that so made them. I
-do not remember the particulars,” he continued, “nor the formal words
-as they were written, but this I do remember well, that besides other
-things found to support divers other heresies, there were in the
-prologue of that Bible such words touching the Blessed Sacrament as
-good Christian men did much abhor to hear, and which gave the readers
-undoubted occasion to think that the book was written after Wycliffe’s
-copy, and by him translated into our tongue.”[234]
-
-More then goes on to state his own mind as to the utility of
-vernacular Scriptures. And, in the first place, he utterly denies
-again that the Church, or any ecclesiastical authority, ever kept the
-Bible in English from the people, except “such translations as were
-either not approved as good translations, or such as had already been
-condemned as false, such as Wycliffe’s and Tyndale’s were. For, as for
-other old ones that were before Wycliffe’s days, they remain lawful,
-and are in the possession of some people, and are read.” To this
-assertion of a plain fact Sir Thomas More’s opponent did not dissent,
-but frankly admitted that this was certainly the case,[235] although he
-still thought that the English Bible might be in greater circulation
-than it was.[236] Sir Thomas More considered that the clergy really had
-good grounds not to encourage the spread of the vernacular Scriptures
-at that time, inasmuch as those who were most urgent in the matter were
-precisely those whose orthodoxy was reasonably suspected. It made men
-fear, he says, “that seditious people would do more harm with it than
-good and honest folk would derive benefit.” This, however, he declared
-was not his own personal view.[237] “I would not,” he writes, “for my
-part, withhold the profit that one good, devout, unlearned man might
-get by the reading, for fear of the harm a hundred heretics might
-take by their own wilful abuse.… Finally, I think that the Provincial
-Constitution (already spoken of) has long ago determined the question.
-For when the clergy in that synod agreed that the English Bibles
-should remain which were translated before Wycliffe’s days, they, as
-a necessary consequence, agreed that it was no harm to have the Bible
-in English. And when they forbade any new translation to be read till
-it were approved by the bishops, it appears clearly that they intended
-that the bishop should approve it, if he found it to be faultless, and
-also to amend it where it was found faulty, unless the man who made it
-was a heretic, or the faults were so many and of such a character that
-it would be easier to retranslate it than to mend it.”[238]
-
-This absolute denial of any attitude of hostility on the part of
-the Church to the translated Bible is reiterated in many parts of
-Sir Thomas More’s English works. When, upon the condemnation of
-Tyndale’s Testament, the author pointed to this fact as proof of the
-determination of the clergy to keep the Word of God from the people,
-More replied at considerable length. He showed how the ground of the
-condemnation had nothing whatever to do with any anxiety upon the
-part of ecclesiastics to keep the Scriptures from lay people, but was
-entirely based upon the complete falsity of Tyndale’s translation
-itself. “He pretends,” says Sir Thomas More, “that the Church makes
-some (statutes) openly and directly against the Word of God, as in that
-statute whereby they have condemned the New Testament. Now, in truth,
-there is no such statute made. For as for the New Testament, if he mean
-the Testament of Christ, it is not condemned nor forbidden. But there
-is forbidden a false English translation of the New Testament newly
-forged by Tyndale, altered and changed in matters of great weight, in
-order maliciously to set forth against Christ’s true doctrine Tyndale’s
-anti-Christian heresies. Therefore that book is condemned, as it is
-well worthy to be, and the condemnation thereof is neither openly nor
-privily, directly nor indirectly, against the word of God.”[239]
-
-Again, in another place, More replies to what he calls Tyndale’s
-“railing” against the clergy, and in particular his saying that they
-keep the Scripture from lay people in order that they may not see how
-they “juggle with it.” “I have,” he says, “in the book of my _Dyalogue_
-proved already that Tyndale in this point falsely belies the clergy,
-and that in truth Wycliffe, and Tyndale, and Friar Barnes, and such
-others, have been the original cause why the Scripture has been of
-necessity kept out of lay people’s hands. And of late, specially, by
-the politic provision and ordinance of our most excellent sovereign
-the king’s noble grace, not without great and urgent causes manifestly
-rising from the false malicious means of Wycliffe and Tyndale,” this
-has been prevented. “For this (attempt of Tyndale) all the lay people
-of this realm, both the evil folk who take harm from him, and the good
-folk that lose their profit by him, have great cause to lament that
-ever the man was born.”[240]
-
-The same view is taken by Roger Edgworth, a popular preacher in the
-reign of Henry VIII. After describing what he considered to be the
-evils which had resulted from the spread of Lutheran literature in
-England, he says: “By this effect you may judge the cause. The effect
-was evil, therefore there must needs be some fault in the cause. But
-what sayest thou? Is not the study of Scripture good? Is not the
-knowledge of the Gospels and of the New Testament godly, good, and
-profitable for a Christian man or woman? I shall tell you what I think
-in this matter. I have ever been in this mind, that I have thought it
-no harm, but rather good and profitable, that Holy Scripture should be
-had in the mother tongue, and withheld from no man that was apt and
-meet to take it in hand, specially if we could get it well and truly
-translated, which will be very hard to be had.”[241]
-
-There is, it is true, no doubt, that the destruction of Tyndale’s
-Testaments and the increasing number of those who favoured the new
-religious opinions, caused people to spread all manner of stories
-abroad as to the attitude of the Church authorities in England towards
-the vernacular Scriptures. Probably the declaration of the friend,
-against whom Sir Thomas More, then Chancellor, in 1530, wrote his
-_Dyalogue_, “that great murmurs were heard against the clergy on this
-score,” is not far from the truth. Ecclesiastics, he said, in the
-opinion of the common people, would not tolerate criticism of their
-lives or words, and desired to keep laymen ignorant. “And they” (the
-people) “think,” he adds, “that for no other cause was there burned at
-St. Paul’s Cross the New Testament, late translated by Master William
-Huchin, otherwise called Tyndale, who was (as men say) well known,
-before he went over the sea, as a man of right good life, studious and
-well learned in the Scriptures. And men mutter among themselves that
-the book was not only faultless, but also very well translated, and was
-ordered to be burned, because men should not be able to prove that such
-faults (as were at Paul’s Cross declared to have been found in it) were
-never in fact found there at all; but untruly surmised, in order to
-have some just cause to burn it, and that for no other reason than to
-keep out of the people’s hands all knowledge of Christ’s Gospel and of
-God’s law, except so much as the clergy themselves please now and then
-to tell them. Further, that little as this is, it is seldom expounded.
-And, as it is feared, even this is not well and truly told; but watered
-with false glosses and altered from the truth of the words and meaning
-of Scripture, only to maintain the clerical authority. And the fear
-lest this should appear evident to the people, if they were suffered to
-read the Scripture themselves in their own tongue, was (it is thought)
-the very cause, not only for which the New Testament translated by
-Tyndale was burned, but also why the clergy of this realm have before
-this time, by a Constitution Provincial, prohibited any book of
-Scripture to be translated into the English tongue, and threaten with
-fire men who should presume to keep them, as heretics; as though it
-were heresy for a Christian man to read Christ’s Gospel.”[242]
-
-It has been already pointed out how Sir Thomas More completely disposed
-of this assertion as to the hostility of the clergy to “the open
-Bible.” In his position of Chancellor of England, More could hardly
-have been able to speak with so much certainty about the real attitude
-of the Church, had not the true facts been at the same time well
-understood and commonly acknowledged. The words of the “objector,”
-however, not only express the murmurs of those who were at that
-period discontented with the ecclesiastical system; but they voice
-the accusations which have been so frequently made from that day to
-this, by those who do not as a fact look at the other side. Sir Thomas
-More’s testimony proves absolutely that no such hostility to the
-English Bible as is so generally assumed of the pre-Reformation Church
-did, in fact, exist. Most certainly there never was any ecclesiastical
-prohibition against vernacular versions as such, and the most
-orthodox sons of the Church did in fact possess copies of the English
-Scriptures, which they read openly and devoutly. This much seems
-certain.
-
-Moreover, Sir Thomas More’s contention that there was no prohibition is
-borne out by other evidence. The great canonist Lyndwood undoubtedly
-understood the Constitution of Oxford on the Scriptures in the same
-sense as Sir Thomas More. In fact, as it has been pointed out already,
-to his explanation Sir Thomas More successfully appealed in proof
-of his assertion that there was no such condemnation of the English
-Scriptures, as had been, and is still, asserted by some. It has, of
-course, been often said that Sir Thomas More, and of course Lyndwood,
-were wrong in supposing that there were any translations previous to
-that of the version now known as Wycliffite. This is by no means so
-clear; and even supposing they were in error as to the date of the
-version, it is impossible that they could have been wrong as to the
-meaning and interpretation of the law itself, and as to the fact that
-versions were certainly in circulation which were presumed by those who
-used them to be Catholic and orthodox. Archbishop Cranmer himself may
-also be cited as a witness to the free circulation of manuscript copies
-of the English Scriptures in pre-Reformation times, since the whole of
-his argument for allowing a new version, in the preface to the Bishops’
-Bible, rests on the well-known custom of the Church to allow vernacular
-versions, and on the fact that copies of the English Scriptures had
-previously been in daily use with ecclesiastical sanction.
-
-The same conclusion must be deduced from books printed by men of
-authority and unquestionable piety. In them we find the reading of the
-Scriptures strongly recommended. To take an example: Thomas Lupset, the
-friend and protégé of Colet and Lilly, gives the following advice to
-his sisters, two of whom were nuns: “Give thee much to reading; take
-heed in meditation of the Scripture, busy thee in the law of God; have
-a customable use in divine books.”[243] The same pious scholar has much
-the same advice for a youth in the world who had been his pupil. After
-urging him to avoid “meddling in any point of faith otherwise than as
-the Church shall instruct and teach,” he adds, “more particularly in
-writings you shall learn this lesson, if you would sometimes take in
-your hand the New Testament and read it with a due reverence”; and
-again: “in reading the Gospels, I would you had at hand Chrysostom and
-Jerome, by whom you might surely be brought to a perfect understanding
-of the text.”[244]
-
-Moreover, the testimony of Sir Thomas More that translations were
-allowed by the Church, and that these, men considered rightly or
-wrongly, had been made prior to the time of Wycliffe, is confirmed
-by Archdeacon John Standish in Queen Mary’s reign. When the question
-of the advisability of a vernacular translation was then seriously
-debated, he says: “To the intent that none should have occasion to
-misconstrue the true meaning thereof, it is to be thought that, if
-all men were good and Catholic, then were it lawful, yea, and very
-profitable also, that the Scripture should be in English, as long as
-the translations were true and faithful.… And that is the cause that
-the clergy did agree (as it is in the Constitution Provincial) that the
-Bibles that were translated into English before Wycliffe’s days might
-be suffered; so that only such as had them in handling were allowed by
-the ordinary and approved as proper to read them, and so that their
-reading should be only for the setting forth of God’s glory.”[245]
-
-Sir Thomas More, in his _Apology_, points out that although, in his
-opinion, it would be a good thing to have a proper English translation,
-still it was obviously not necessary for the salvation of man’s soul.
-“If the having of the Scripture in English,” he writes, “be a thing
-so requisite of precise necessity, that the people’s souls must needs
-perish unless they have it translated into their own tongue, then the
-greater part of them must indeed perish, unless the preacher further
-provide that all people shall be able to read it when they have it. For
-of the whole people, far more than four-tenths could never read English
-yet, and many are now too old to begin to go to school.… Many, indeed,
-have thought it a good and profitable thing to have the Scripture well
-and truly translated into English, and although many equally wise
-and learned and also very virtuous folk have been and are of a very
-different mind; yet, for my own part, I have been and am still of the
-same opinion as I expressed in my Dyalogue, if the people were amended,
-and the time meet for it.”[246]
-
-The truth is, that there was then no such clamour for the translated
-Bible as it has suited the purposes of some writers to represent. In
-view of all that is known about the circumstances of those times, it
-does not appear at all likely that the popular mind would be really
-stirred by any desire for Bible reading. The late Mr. Brewer may be
-allowed to speak with authority on this matter when he writes: “Nor,
-indeed, is it possible that Tyndale’s writings and translations could
-at this early period have produced any such impressions as is generally
-surmised, or have fallen into the hands of many readers. His works were
-printed abroad; their circulation was strictly forbidden; the price
-of them was beyond the means of the poorer classes, even supposing
-that the knowledge of letters at that time was more generally diffused
-than it was for centuries afterwards. To imagine that ploughmen and
-shepherds in the country read the New Testament in English by stealth,
-or that smiths and carpenters in towns pored over its pages in the
-corners of their masters’ workshops, is to mistake the character and
-acquirements of the age.”[247]
-
-“So far from England then being a ‘Bible-thirsty land,’” says a
-well-informed writer, “there was no anxiety whatever for an English
-version at that time, excepting among a small minority of the
-people,”[248] and these desired it not for the thing in itself so much
-as a means of bringing about the changes in doctrine and practice
-which they desired. “Who is there among us,” says one preacher of the
-period, “that will have a Bible, but he must be compelled thereto.” And
-the single fact that the same edition of the Bible was often reissued
-with new titles, &c., is sufficient proof that there was no such
-general demand for Bibles as is pretended by Foxe when he writes: “It
-was wonderful to see with what joy this book of God was received, not
-only among the learneder sort, and those that were noted for lovers of
-the Reformation, but generally all England over among all the vulgar
-common people.” “For,” says the writer above quoted, “if the people all
-England over were so anxious to possess the new translation, what need
-was there of so many penal enactments to force it into circulation, and
-of royal proclamations threatening with the king’s displeasure those
-who neglected to purchase copies.”[249]
-
-There can be little doubt that the condemnation of the first printed
-English Testament, and the destruction, by order of the ecclesiastical
-authority, of all copies which Tyndale had sent over to England for
-sale, have tended, more than anything else, to confirm in their opinion
-those who held that the Church in pre-Reformation England would
-not tolerate the vernacular Scriptures at all. It is of interest,
-therefore, and importance, if we would determine the real attitude of
-churchmen in the sixteenth century to the English Bible, to understand
-the grounds of this condemnation. As the question was keenly debated at
-the time, there is little need to seek for information beyond the pages
-of Sir Thomas More’s works.
-
-The history of Tyndale’s translation is not of such importance in
-this respect, as a knowledge of the chief points objected against it.
-Some brief account of this history, however, is almost necessary if we
-would fully understand the character and purpose of the translation.
-William Tyndale was born about the year 1484, and was in turn at Oxford
-and Cambridge Universities, and professed among the Friars Observant
-at Greenwich. In 1524 he passed over to Hamburg, and then, about the
-middle of the year, to Wittenberg, where he attached himself to Luther.
-Under the direction at least, of the German reformer, and very possibly
-also with his actual assistance, he commenced his translation of the
-New Testament. The royal almoner, Edward Lee, afterwards Archbishop
-of York, being on a journey to Spain, wrote on December 2, 1525, from
-Bordeaux, warning Henry VIII. of the preparation of this book. “I am
-certainly informed,” he says, “that an Englishman, your subject, at the
-solicitation and instance of Luther, with whom he is, hath translated
-the New Testament into English; and within a few days intendeth to
-return with the same imprinted into England. I need not to advertise
-your Grace what infection and danger may ensue hereby if it be not
-withstanded. This is the way to fill your realm with Lutherans. For all
-Luther’s perverse opinions be grounded upon bare words of Scripture not
-well taken nor understood, which your Grace hath opened (_i.e._ pointed
-out) in sundry places of your royal book.”[250]
-
-Luther’s direct influence may be detected on almost every page of the
-printed edition issued by Tyndale, and there can be no doubt that
-it was prepared with Luther’s version of 1522 as a guide. From the
-general introduction of this German Bible, nearly half, or some sixty
-lines, are transferred by Tyndale almost bodily to his prologue, whilst
-he adopted and printed over against the same chapters and verses,
-placing them in the same position in the inner margins, some 190 of the
-German reformer’s marginal references. Besides this, the marginal notes
-on the outer margin of the English Testament are all Luther’s glosses,
-translated from the German. In view of this, it can hardly be a matter
-of surprise that Tyndale’s Testament was very commonly known at the
-time as “Luther’s Testament in English.”
-
-In this work of translation or adaptation, Tyndale was assisted by
-another ex-friar, named Joye, with whom, however, he subsequently
-quarrelled, and about whom he then spoke in abusive and violent
-terms. At first it was intended to print the edition at Cologne, but
-being disturbed by the authorities there, Tyndale fled to Worms,
-and at once commenced printing at the press of Peter Schœffer, the
-octavo volume which is known as the first edition of Tyndale’s New
-Testament. Although the author is supposed to have been a good Greek
-scholar, there is evidence to show that the copy he used for the work
-of translation was the Latin version of Erasmus, printed by Fisher in
-1519, with some alterations taken from the edition of 1522, and some
-other corrections from the Vulgate.
-
-John Cochlæus, who had a full and personal knowledge of all the
-Lutheran movements at the time, writing in 1533, says: “Eight years
-previously, two apostates from England, knowing the German language,
-came to Wittenberg, and translated Luther’s New Testament into English.
-They then came to Cologne, as to a city nearer to England, with a more
-established trade, and more adapted for the despatch of merchandise.
-Here … they secretly agreed with printers to print at first three
-thousand copies, and printers and publishers pushed on the work with
-the firm expectation of success, boasting that whether the king and
-cardinal liked it or not, England would shortly ‘be Lutheran.’”[251]
-
-It was this scheme that Cochlæus was instrumental in frustrating, his
-representations forcing Tyndale to remove the centre of his operations
-to Worms. For the benefit of the Scotch king, to whom his account was
-addressed, Cochlæus adds, that Luther’s German translation of the
-New Testament was intended of set purpose to spread his errors; that
-the people had bought up thousands, and that thereby “they have not
-been made better but rather the worse, artificers who were able to
-read neglecting their shops and the work by which they ought to gain
-the bread of their wives and children.” For this reason, he says,
-magistrates in Germany have had to forbid the reading of Luther’s
-Testament, and many have been put in prison for reading it. In his
-opinion the translation of the Testament into the vernacular had become
-an idol and a fetish to the German Lutherans, although in Germany
-there were many vernacular translations of both the Old and the New
-Testaments, before the rise of Lutheranism.[252]
-
-With a full understanding of the purpose and tendency of Tyndale’s
-translation and of the evils which at least some hard-headed men had
-attributed to the spread of Luther’s German version, upon which almost
-admittedly the English was modelled, the ecclesiastical authorities of
-England approached the practical question--what was to be done in the
-matter? Copies of the printed edition must have reached England some
-time in 1526, for in October of that year Bishop Tunstall of London
-addressed a monition to the archdeacons on the subject. “Many children
-of iniquity,” he says, “maintainers of Luther’s sect, blinded through
-extreme wickedness, wandering from the way of truth and the Catholic
-faith, have craftily translated the New Testament into our English
-tongue, intermeddling therewith many heretical articles and erroneous
-opinions, pernicious and offensive, seducing the simple people;
-attempting by their wicked and perverse interpretations to profane
-the majesty of Scripture, which hitherto hath remained undefiled,
-and craftily to abuse the most holy Word of God, and the true sense
-of the same. Of this translation there are many books printed, some
-with glosses and some without, containing in the English tongue that
-pestiferous and pernicious poison, (and these are) dispersed in our
-diocese of London.” He consequently orders all such copies of the New
-Testament to be delivered up to his offices within thirty days.[253]
-
-This was the first action of the English ecclesiastical authorities,
-and it was clearly taken not from distrust of what the same bishop
-calls “the most holy Word of God,” but because they looked on the
-version sent forth by Tyndale as a profanation of the Bible, and as
-intended to disseminate the errors of Lutheranism.
-
-Of the Lutheran character of the translation the authorities, whether
-in Church or State, do not seem to have had from the first the least
-doubt. The king himself, in a rejoinder to Luther’s letter of apology,
-says that the German reformer “fell in device with one or two lewd
-persons, born in this our realm, for the translating of the New
-Testament into English, as well with many corruptions of that holy
-text, as certain prefaces and other pestilent glosses in the margins,
-for the advancement and setting forth of his abominable heresies,
-intending to abuse the good minds and devotion that you, our dearly
-beloved people, bear toward the Holy Scripture and infect you with the
-deadly corruption and contagious odour of his pestilent errors.”[254]
-
-Bishop Tunstall, in 1529, whilst returning from an embassy abroad,
-purchased at Antwerp through one Packington, all copies of the English
-printed New Testament that were for sale, and, according to the
-chronicler Hall, burned them publicly at St. Paul’s in May 1530. For
-the same reason the confiscated volumes of the edition first sent
-over were committed to the flames some time in 1527,[255] and Bishop
-Tunstall explained to the people at Paul’s Cross that the book was
-destroyed because in more than two thousand places wrong translations
-and corruptions had been detected. Tyndale made a great outcry at
-the iniquity of burning the Word of God; but in _The Wicked Mammon_
-he declares that, “in burning the New Testament they did none other
-thynge than I looked for.” Moreover, as he sold the books knowing the
-purpose for which they were purchased, he may be said to have been
-a participator in the act he blames. “The fact is,” says a modern
-authority, “the books were full of errors and unsaleable, and Tyndale
-wanted money to pay the expense of a revised version and to purchase
-Vastermann’s old Dutch blocks to illustrate his Pentateuch, and was
-glad to make capital in more ways than one by the translation. ‘I am
-glad,’ said he, ‘for these two benefits shall come thereof: I shall get
-money to bring myself out of debt, and the whole world will cry out
-against the burning of God’s Word, and the overplus of the money that
-shall remain to me shall make me more studious to correct the said New
-Testament, and so newly to imprint the same once again, and I trust the
-second you will much better like than you ever did the first.’”[256]
-
-Tyndale allowed nine years to elapse before issuing a second edition
-of his Testament. Meantime, as his former assistant, Joye, says,
-foreigners looking upon the English Testament as a good commercial
-speculation, and seeing that the ecclesiastical authorities in England
-had given orders to purchase the entire first issue of Tyndale’s
-print, set to work to produce other reprints. Through ignorance of
-the language, the various editions they issued were naturally full of
-typographical errors, and, as Joye declared, “England hath enough and
-too many false Testaments, and is now likely to have many more.” He
-consequently set to work himself to see an edition through the press,
-in which, without Tyndale’s leave, he made substantial alterations
-in his translation. Joye’s version appeared in 1534, and immediately
-Tyndale attacked its editor in the most bitter, reproachful terms.
-In George Joye’s _Apology_, which appeared in 1535, he tried, as he
-says, “to defend himself against so many slanderous lies upon him in
-Tyndale’s uncharitable and unsober epistle.” In the course of the
-tract, Joye charges Tyndale with claiming as his own what in reality
-was Luther’s. “I have never,” he says, “heard a sober, wise man praise
-his own works as I have heard him praise his exposition of the fifth,
-sixth, and seventh chapters of St. Matthew, insomuch that mine ears
-glowed for shame to hear him; and yet it was Luther that made it,
-Tyndale only translating it and powdering it here and there with his
-own fantasies.”
-
-In a second publication Joye declares Tyndale’s incompetence to judge
-of the original Greek. “I wonder,” he says, “how he could compare it
-with the Greek, since he himself is not so exquisitely seen therein.…
-I know well (he) was not able to do it without such a helper as he
-hath ever had hitherto.”[257] Tyndale, however, continued his work of
-revision in spite of opposition, and further, with the aid of Miles
-Coverdale, issued translations of various portions of the Old Testament.
-
-Shortly after the public burning of the copies of the translated
-Testament by Bishop Tunstall, on May 24, 1530, an assembly was called
-together by Archbishop Warham to formally condemn these and other books
-then being circulated with the intention of undermining the religion
-of the country. The king was present in person, and a list of errors
-was drawn up and condemned “with all the books containing the same,
-with the translation also of Scripture corrupted by William Tyndale,
-as well in the Old Testament as in the New.” After this meeting, a
-document was issued with the king’s authority, which preachers were
-required to read to their people. After speaking of the books condemned
-for teaching error, the paper takes notice of an opinion “in some of
-his subjects” that the Scripture should be allowed in English. The king
-declares that it is a good thing the Scriptures should be circulated
-at certain times, but that there are others when they should not be
-generally allowed, and taking into consideration all the then existing
-circumstances, he “thinketh in his conscience that the divulging of the
-Scripture at this time in the English tongue to be committed to the
-people … would rather be to their further confusion and destruction
-than for the edification of their souls.”
-
-In this opinion, we are told, all in the assembly concurred. At the
-same time, however, the king promised that he would have the New
-Testament “faithfully and purely translated by the most learned men,”
-ready to be distributed when circumstances might allow.
-
-Sir Thomas More plainly states the reason for this prohibition. “In
-these days, in which Tyndale (God amend him) has so sore poisoned
-malicious and new-fangled folk with the infectious contagion of his
-heresies, the king’s highness, and not without the counsel and advice,
-not only of his nobles with his other counsellors attending upon his
-Grace’s person, but also of the most virtuous and learned men of both
-universities and other parts of the realm, specially called thereto,
-has been obliged for the time to prohibit the Scriptures of God to be
-allowed in the English tongue in the hands of the people, lest evil
-folk … may turn all the honey into poison, and do hurt unto themselves,
-and spread also the infection further abroad … and by their own fault
-misconstrue and take harm from the very Scripture of God.”[258]
-
-Early in 1534 Tyndale took up his abode once more in Antwerp at the
-house of an English merchant, and busied himself in passing his
-revised New Testament through the press. This was published in the
-following November. To it he prefixed a second prologue dealing with
-the edition just published by George Joye. This he declares was no
-true translation, and charges his former assistant with deliberate
-falsification of the text of Holy Scripture in order to support his
-errors and false opinions. The edition itself manifests many changes
-in the text caused by the criticism to which the former impression had
-been subjected, whilst many of the marginal notes “exhibit the great
-change that had taken place in Tyndale’s religious opinions, and show
-that he had ceased to be an Episcopalian.”[259]
-
-Having given a brief outline of the history of Tyndale’s Testament,
-we are now in a position to examine into the grounds upon which the
-ecclesiastical authorities of England condemned it. For this purpose,
-we need again hardly go beyond the works of Sir Thomas More, who in
-several of his tracts deals specifically with this subject. “Tyndale’s
-false translation of the New Testament,” he says, “was, as he himself
-confesses, translated with such changes as he has made in it purposely,
-to the intent that by those changed words the people should be led into
-the opinions which he himself calls true Catholic faith, but which all
-true Catholic people call very false and pestilent heresies.” After
-saying that for this reason this translation was rightly condemned
-by the clergy and openly burnt at Paul’s Cross, he continues: “The
-faults are so many in Tyndale’s translation of the New Testament, and
-so spread throughout the whole book, that it were as easy to weave a
-new web of cloth or to sew up every hole in a net, so would it be less
-labour to translate the whole book anew than to make in his translation
-as many changes as there needs must be before it were made a good
-translation. Besides this, no wise man, I fancy, would take bread which
-he well knew had once been poisoned by his enemy’s hand, even though he
-saw his friend afterwards sweep it ever so clean.… For when it had been
-examined, considered, and condemned by those to whom the judgment and
-ordering of the thing belonged, and that false poisoned translation had
-been forbidden to the people,” it would be the height of presumption
-for any one to encourage the people boldly to resist their prince and
-disobey their prelates, and give them, as some indeed have, such a poor
-reason as this, “that poisoned bread is better than no bread.”[260]
-
-Further, in speaking with sorrow of the flood of heretical literature
-which seemed ever growing in volume, Sir Thomas More writes: “Besides
-the works in Latin, French, and German, there are made in the English
-tongue, first, Tyndale’s New Testament, father of them all, because
-of his false translations, and after that the five books of Moses,
-translated by the same man, we need not doubt in what manner, when we
-know by whom and for what purpose. Then you have his introduction to
-St. Paul’s Epistle, with which he introduces his readers to a false
-understanding of St. Paul, making them, among many other heresies,
-believe that St. Paul held that faith alone was sufficient for
-salvation, and that men’s good works were worth nothing and could
-deserve no reward in heaven, though they were done in grace.”[261]
-
-Again, he says: “In the beginning of my _Dyalogue_, I have shown that
-Tyndale’s translation of the New Testament deserved to be burnt,
-because itself showed that he had translated it with an evil mind, and
-in such a way that it might serve him as the best means of teaching
-such heresies as he had learnt from Luther, and intended to send
-over hither and spread abroad within this realm. To the truth of my
-assertion, Tyndale and his fellows have so openly testified that I need
-in this matter no further defence. For every man sees that there was
-never any English heretical book sent here since, in which one item
-of their complaint has not been the burning of Tyndale’s Testament.
-For of a surety they thought in the first place that his translation,
-with their further false construction, would be the bass and the tenor
-wherever they would sing the treble with much false descant.”[262]
-
-To take some instances of the false translations to which More
-reasonably objects: First, Tyndale substitutes for _Church_ the word
-_Congregation_, “a word with no more signification in Christendom than
-among the Jews or Turks.” After protesting that Tyndale has no right
-to change the signification of a word, as, for example, to speak of “a
-football,” and to mean “the world,” More continues: “Most certainly
-the word _Congregation_, taken in conjunction with the text, would not,
-when he translated it first, have served to make the English reader
-understand by it the Church any more than when he uses the word _idols_
-for _images_, or _images_ for _idols_, or the word _repenting_ for
-_doing penance_, which he also does. And indeed he has since added to
-his translation certain notes, viz., that the order of the priesthood
-is really nothing, but that every man, woman, and child is a priest as
-much as a real priest, and that every man and woman may consecrate the
-body of Christ, and say mass as well as a priest, and hear confessions
-and absolve as well as a priest can; and that there is no difference
-between priests and other folks, but that all are one congregation and
-company without any difference, save appointment to preach.”
-
-This enables men to understand “what Tyndale means by using the word
-_Congregation_ in his translation in place of _Church_. They also see
-clearly by these circumstances that he purposely changed the word to
-set forth these his heresies, though he will say he takes them for no
-heresies. But, on the other hand, all good and faithful people do, and
-therefore they call the Church the Church still, and will not agree to
-change the old _Church_ for his new _Congregation_.”[263]
-
-In reply to Tyndale’s claim to be able to use the word _Congregation_
-to signify the _Church_, More declares that words must be used in their
-ordinary signification. “I say,” he writes, “that this is true of the
-usual signification of these words in the English tongue, by the common
-custom of us English people that now use these words in our language,
-or have used them before our days. And I say that this common custom
-and usage of speech is the only way by which we know the right and
-proper signification of any word. So much so that if a word were taken
-from Latin, French, or Spanish, and from lack of understanding the
-tongue from which it came, was used in English for something else than
-it signified in the other tongue; then in England, whatsoever it meant
-anywhere else, it means only what we understand it. Then, I say, that
-in England this word _Congregation_ never did signify the body of
-Christian people … any more than the word _assembly_, which has been
-taken from French … as _congregation_ is from the Latin.… I say now
-that the word Church never has been used to signify in the ordinary
-speech of this realm, any other than the body of all those that are
-christened. For this reason, and more especially because of Tyndale’s
-evil intent, I said, and still say, that he did wrong to change
-_Church_ for _Congregation_; a holy word for a profane one, so far as
-they have signification in our English tongue, into which Tyndale made
-his translation.…[264]
-
-“If Tyndale had done it either accidentally, or purposely merely for
-pleasure, and not with an evil intent, I would never have said a word
-against it. But inasmuch as I perceive that he has been with Luther,
-and was there at the time when he so translated it, and because I knew
-well the malicious heresies that Luther had begun to bring forth, I
-must needs mistrust him in this change. And now I say that even from
-his own words here spoken, you may perceive his cankered mind in his
-translation, for he says that Demetrius had gathered a company against
-Paul for preaching against _images_. Here the Christian reader may
-easily perceive the poison of this serpent. Every one knows that all
-good Christian people abhor the idols of the false pagan gods, and also
-honour the images of Christ and our Lady, and other holy saints. And
-as they call the one sort images, so they call the other sort idols.
-Now, whereas St. Paul preached against idols, this good man comes and
-says he preached against images. And as he here speaks, even so he
-translates, for in the 15th chapter of St. Paul to the Corinthians,
-where St. Paul says, ‘I have written to you that ye company not
-together … if any that is called a brother be … a worshipper of
-_idols’_--there Tyndale translates worshipper of _images_. Because
-he would have it seem that the Apostle had in that place forbidden
-Christian men to worship images.… Here you may see the sincerity and
-plain meaning of this man’s translation.”[265]…
-
-“As he falsely translated _Ecclesia_ into the unknown word
-_congregation_, in places where he should have translated it into the
-known word of _holy Church_, and this with a malicious purpose to set
-forth his heresy of the secret and unknown church wherein is neither
-good works nor sacraments, in like manner is it now proved, in the
-same way and with like malice, he has translated _idols_ into _images_
-… to make it seem that Scripture reprobates the goodly images of our
-Saviour Himself and His holy saints.… Then he asks me why I have not
-contended with Erasmus whom he calls my darling, for translating this
-word _Ecclesia_ into the word _congregatio_.… I have not contended
-with Erasmus, my darling, because I found no such malicious intent
-with Erasmus, my darling, as I found with Tyndale; for had I found
-with Erasmus, my darling, the cunning intent and purpose that I found
-with Tyndale, Erasmus, my darling, should be no more ‘my darling.’ But
-I find in Erasmus, my darling, that he detests and abhors the errors
-and heresies that Tyndale plainly teaches and abides by, and therefore
-Erasmus, my darling, shall be my darling still.… For his translation of
-_Ecclesia_ by _congregatio_ is nothing like Tyndale’s, for the Latin
-tongue had no Latin word used for Church, but the Greek word, Ecclesia,
-therefore Erasmus, in his new translation gave it a Latin word. But
-we in our English had a proper English word for it, and therefore
-there was no cause for Tyndale to translate it into a worse. Erasmus,
-moreover, meant therein no heresy, as appears by his writings against
-heretics, but Tyndale, intended nothing else thereby, as appears by the
-heresies that he himself teaches and abides by. Therefore, there was in
-this matter no cause for me to contend with Erasmus, as there was to
-contend with Tyndale, with whom I contended for putting ‘congregation’
-instead of ‘Church.’”[266]
-
-Further, More blames Tyndale’s translation in its substitution of
-_senior_ or _elder_ for the old-established word _priest_. This word,
-presbyter, in the Greek, he says, “as it signifies the thing that men
-call priest in English, was sometimes called _senior_ in Latin. But
-the thing that Englishmen call a priest, and the Greek church called
-_presbyter_, and the Latin church also sometimes called _senior_, was
-never called elder either in the Greek church, or the Latin or the
-English.”[267] He considers, therefore, the change made by Tyndale,
-in the second edition of his translation, from senior into elder was
-not only no improvement, but a distinct and reiterated rejection of
-the well-understood word of priest.… “I said and say,” he continues,
-“that Tyndale changed the word priest into senior with the heretical
-mind and intent to set forth his heresy, in which he teaches that the
-priesthood is no sacrament … for else I would not call it heresy if
-any one would translate _presbyteros_ a block, but I would say he was
-a blockhead. And as great a blockhead were he that would translate
-_presbyteros_ into an elder instead of a priest, for this English word
-no more signifies an elder than the Greek word _presbyteros_ signifies
-an elderstick.”[268] “For the same reason he might change bishop into
-overseer, and deacon into server, both of which he might as well do, as
-priest into elder; and then with his English translation he must make
-us an English vocabulary of his own device, and so with such provision
-he may change chin into cheek, and belly into back, and every word into
-every other at his own pleasure, if all England like to go to school
-with Tyndale to learn English--but else, not so.”[269]
-
-In the same way More condemns Tyndale for deliberately changing the
-word “Grace,” the meaning of which was fully understood by Catholic
-Englishmen, into “favour,” “thinking that his own scoffing is
-sufficient reason to change the known holy name of virtue through all
-Scripture into such words as he himself liketh.”[270] He says the same
-of the change of the old familiar words _Confession_ into _knowledge_,
-and _penance_ into _repentance_. “This is what Tyndale means: he would
-have all willing confession quite cast away and all penance doing
-too.”[271] And “as for the word _penance_, whatsoever the Greek word
-be, it ever was, and still is, lawful enough (if Tyndale give us leave)
-to call anything in English by whatever word Englishmen by common
-custom agree upon.… Now, the matter does not rest in this at all. For
-Tyndale is not angry with the word, but with the matter. For this
-grieves Luther and him that by _penance_ we understand, when we speak
-of it … not mere repenting … but also every part of the Sacrament of
-Penance; oral confession, contrition of heart, and satisfaction by good
-deeds. For if we called it the Sacrament of repentance, and by that
-word would understand what we now do by the word penance, Tyndale would
-then be as angry with repentance as he is now with penance.”[272]
-
-Speaking specially in another place about the change of the old
-word _charity_ into _love_ in Tyndale’s translation, More declared
-that he would not much mind which word was used were it not for the
-evident intention to change the teaching. When it is done consistently
-through the whole book “no man could deem but that the man meant
-mischievously. If he called _charity_ sometimes by the bare name
-_love_, I would not stick at that. But since charity signifies in
-Englishmen’s ears not every common love, but a good virtuous and
-well-ordered love, he that will studiously flee from the name of good
-love, and always speak of ‘love,’ and always leave out ‘good,’ I would
-surely say he meant evil. And it is much more than likely. For it is to
-be remembered that at the time of this translation Huchins (or Tyndale)
-was with Luther in Wittenberg, and put certain glosses in the margins,
-made to uphold the ungracious sect.”… And “the reason why he changed
-the name of _charity_ and of the _church_ and of _priesthood_ is no
-very great difficulty to perceive. For since Luther and his fellows
-amongst their other damnable heresies have one that all salvation rests
-on Faith alone--therefore he purposely works to diminish the reverent
-mind that men have to charity, and for this reason changes the name of
-holy virtuous affection into the bare name of love.”
-
-In concluding his justification of the condemnation of Tyndale’s
-Testament and his criticism of the translator’s _Defence_, Sir Thomas
-More says: “Every man knows well that the intent and purpose of my
-_Dyalogue_ was to make men see that Tyndale in his translation changed
-the common known words in order to make a change in the faith. As for
-example: he changed the word _Church_ into this word _congregation_,
-because he would raise the question which the church was, and set forth
-Luther’s heresy that the church which we should believe and obey is
-not the common known body of all Christian realms remaining in the
-faith of Christ and not fallen away or cut off with heresies.… But
-the church we should believe and obey was some secret unknown kind of
-evil living and worse believing heretics. And he changed _priest_ into
-_senior_, because he intended to set forth Luther’s heresy teaching
-that priesthood is no sacrament, but the office of a layman or laywoman
-appointed by the people to preach. And he changed _Penance_ into
-_repenting_, because he would set forth Luther’s heresy teaching that
-penance is no sacrament. This being the only purpose of my _Dyalogue_,
-Tyndale now comes and expressly confesses what I proposed to show.
-For he indeed teaches and writes openly these false heresies so that
-he himself shows now that I then told the people the truth … his own
-writing shows that he made his translation to the intent to set forth
-such heresies as I said he did.”[273]
-
-John Standish in the tract on the vernacular Scriptures, published
-in Queen Mary’s reign, uses in some places the same language as Sir
-Thomas More in condemning the translations which had been later in
-vogue. “At all times,” he writes, “heretics have laboured to corrupt
-the Scriptures that they might serve for their naughty purposes and
-to confirm their errors therewith, but especially now in our time. O
-good Lord, how have the translators of the Bible into English purposely
-corrupted the texts, oft maliciously putting in such words as in the
-readers’ ears might serve for the proof of such heresies as they
-went about to sow. These are not only set forth in the translations,
-but also in certain prologues and glosses added thereunto, and
-these things they have so handled (as indeed it is no great mastery
-to do) with probable reasons very apparent to the simple and
-unlearned, that an infinite number of innocents they have spiritually
-poisoned and corrupted within this realm, and caused them to perish
-obstinately.”[274]
-
-If further proof were wanting that the New Testament as set forth
-by Tyndale was purposely designed to overthrow the then existing
-religious principles held by English churchmen, it is furnished by
-works subsequently published by the English Lutherans abroad. The tract
-named _The Burying of the Mass_, printed in Germany shortly after the
-burning of Tyndale’s Testament, was, as Sir Thomas More points out,
-intended as a direct attack upon the Sacrifice of the Mass and the
-Sacramental system. In it the author poured out the vials of his wrath
-upon all those who caused Tyndale’s translation of the New Testament
-to be destroyed, saying that they burned it because it destroyed the
-Mass. “By this,” adds More, “you may see that the author accounted
-the translation very good for the destruction of the Mass.”[275]
-Moreover, in a book called _The Wicked Mammon_, published by Tyndale
-himself shortly after this, although he blames the style of the author
-of _The Burying of the Mass_, he tacitly accepts his assertion that
-his translation of the New Testament was intended to bring about the
-abolition of the Sacrifice of the Mass.[276]
-
-In later times, after the experience of the religious changes in the
-reign of Edward VI., some writers pointed to the evils, religious and
-social, as evidence of the harm done by the promiscuous reading of
-the Scriptures. In their opinion, what More had feared and foretold
-had come to pass. “In these miserable years now past,” says Standish
-of Mary’s reign, in this tract on the vernacular Scriptures: “In
-these miserable years now past, what mystery is so hard that the
-ignorant with the Bible in English durst not set upon, yea and say they
-understood it: all was light! They desired no explanation but their
-own, even in the highest mysteries.… Alas! experience shows that our
-own men through having the Bible in English have walked far above their
-reach, being sundry ways killed and utterly poisoned with the letter of
-the English Bible.”[277]
-
-The spirit in which the study of Sacred Scripture was taken up by many
-in those days is described by the Marian preacher, Roger Edgworth,
-already referred to. “Scripture,” he says, “is in worse case than any
-other faculty: for where other faculties take upon them no more than
-pertaineth to their own science, as (for example) the physician of
-what pertains to the health of man’s body, and the carpenter and smith
-of their own tools and workmanship--the faculty of Sacred Scripture
-alone is the knowledge which all men and women challenge and claim to
-themselves and for their own. Here and there the chattering old wife,
-the doting old man, the babbling sophister, and all others presume
-upon this faculty, and tear it and teach it before they learn it. Of
-all such green divines as I have spoken of, it appeareth full well
-what learning they have by this, that when they teach any of their
-disciples, and when they give any of their books to other men to read,
-the first suggestion why he should labour (at) such books is ‘because
-of this,’ say they, ‘thou shalt be able to oppose the best priest in
-the parish, and tell him he lies.’”[278]
-
-The result is patent in the history of the religious confusions which
-followed, for this much must be allowed, whatever view may be taken
-of the good or evil which ultimately resulted. Dr. Richard Smith, in
-1546, then states the position as he saw it: “In old times the faith
-was respected, but in our days not a few things, and not of small
-importance, but (alack the more the pity) even the chiefest and most
-weighty matters of religion and faith, are called in question, babbled
-about, talked and jangled upon (reasoned, I cannot and ought not to
-call it).”[279]
-
-Although the cry for the open Bible which had been raised by Tyndale
-and the other early English reformers generally assumed the right to
-free and personal interpretation of its meaning, no sooner was the
-English Scripture put into circulation than its advocates proclaimed
-the need of expositions to teach people the meaning they should attach
-to it. In fact, the marginal notes and glosses, furnished by Tyndale
-chiefly from Lutheran sources, are evidence that even he had no
-wish that the people should understand or interpret the sacred text
-otherwise than according to his peculiar views. Very quickly after the
-permission of Henry VIII. had allowed the circulation of the printed
-English Bible, commentators came forward to explain their views.
-Lancelot Ridley, for example, issued many such explanations of portions
-of the Sacred Text with the object, as he explains, of enabling “the
-unlearned to declare the Holy Scriptures now suffered to all people
-of this realm to read and study at their pleasure.” For the Bible,
-“which is now undeclared (_i.e._ unexplained) to them, and only had
-in the bare letter, appears to many rather death than life, rather
-(calculated) to bring many to errors and heresies than into the truth
-and verity of God’s Word. For this, when unexplained, does not bring
-the simple, rude, and ignorant people from their ignorant blindness,
-from their corrupt and backward judgments, false trusts, evil beliefs,
-vain superstitions, and feigned holiness, in which the people have long
-been in blindness, for lack of a knowledge of Holy Scripture which the
-man of Rome kept under latch and would not suffer to come to light,
-that his usurped power should not have been espied, his worldly glory
-diminished, and his profit decayed.”[280]
-
-Again, in another exposition made eight years later, the same writer
-complains that still, for lack of teaching what he considers the true
-meaning of Scripture, the views of the people are still turned towards
-the “old superstitions” in spite of “the open Bible.” “Although the
-Bible be in English,” he says, “and be suffered to every man and
-woman to read at their pleasures, and commanded to be read every day
-at Matins, Mass, and Evensong, yet there remain great ignorance and
-corrupt judgments … and these will remain still, except the Holy
-Scriptures be made more plain to the lay people who are unlearned by
-some commentary or annotation, so that lay people may understand the
-Holy Scripture better.”[281] Commentaries would help much, he says in
-another place, “to deliver the people from ignorance, darkness, errors,
-heresy, superstitions, false trusts, and from evil opinions fixed and
-rooted in the hearts of many for lack of true knowledge of God’s Holy
-Word, and expel the usurped power of the bishop of Rome and all Romish
-dregs.”[282]
-
-It is interesting to find that from the first, whilst objecting to the
-interpretation of the old teachers of the Church, and claiming that the
-plain text of Scripture was a sufficient antidote and complete answer
-to them and their traditional deductions, the “new teachers” found that
-without teaching and exposition on their part, the open Bible was by
-no means sufficient to wean the popular mind from what they regarded
-as superstitious and erroneous ways. Their attitude in the matter is
-at least a confirmation of the contention of Sir Thomas More and other
-contemporary Catholic writers, that the vernacular Scriptures would be
-useless without a teaching authority to interpret their meaning.
-
-A brief word may now be said as a summary of the attitude towards the
-vernacular Bible taken up by the ecclesiastical authorities on the eve
-of the Reformation. The passages quoted from Sir Thomas More make it
-evident that no such hostility on the part of the Church, as writers of
-all shades of opinion have too hastily assumed, really existed.[283]
-In fact, though those responsible for the conduct of affairs, both
-ecclesiastical and lay, at this period objected to the circulation
-of Tyndale’s printed New Testament, this objection was based, not on
-any dread of allowing the English Bible as such, but on the natural
-objection to an obviously incorrect translation. It is difficult to see
-how those in authority could have permitted a version with traditional
-words changed for the hardly concealed purpose of supporting Lutheran
-tenets, with texts garbled and marginal explanations inserted for the
-same end. Those who hold that Tyndale’s views were right, and even that
-his attempt to enforce them in this way was justifiable, can hardly,
-however, blame the authorities at that time in England, secular or lay,
-who did not think so, from doing all they could to prevent what they
-regarded as the circulation of a book calculated to do great harm if
-no means were taken to prevent it. Men’s actions must be judged by the
-circumstances under which they acted, and it would be altogether unjust
-to regard the prohibition of the Tyndale Scriptures as a final attempt
-on the part of the English Church to prevent the circulation of the
-vernacular Scriptures. To the authorities in those days at least, the
-book in question did not represent the Sacred Text at all. That it was
-full of errors, to say the least, is confessed by Tyndale himself; and
-as to the chief points in his translation which he defended and which
-Sir Thomas More so roundly condemned, posterity has sided with More
-and not with Tyndale, for not one of these special characteristics of
-the translation in which so much of Tyndale’s Lutheran teaching was
-allowed to appear, was suffered to remain in subsequent revisions.
-From this point of view alone, those who examine the question with an
-unbiassed mind must admit that there was ample justification for the
-prohibition of Tyndale’s printed Testament. If this be so, the further
-point may equally well be conceded, namely, that the Church on the eve
-of the Reformation did not prohibit the vernacular Scriptures as such
-at all, and that many churchmen in common with the king, Sir Thomas
-More, and other laymen, would, under happier circumstances, have been
-glad to see a properly translated English Bible.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-TEACHING AND PREACHING
-
-
-It is very commonly assumed that on the eve of the Reformation, and for
-a long period before, there was little in the way of popular religious
-instruction in England. We are asked to believe that the mass of the
-people were allowed to grow up in ignorance of the meaning of the faith
-that was in them, and in a studied neglect of their supposed religious
-practices. So certain has this view of the pre-Reformation Church
-seemed to those who have not inquired very deeply into the subject,
-that more than one writer has been led by this assumption to assert
-that perhaps the most obvious benefit of the religious upheaval of the
-sixteenth century was the introduction of some general and systematic
-teaching of the great truths of religion. Preaching is often considered
-as characterising the reforming movement, as contrasted with the old
-ecclesiastical system, which it is assumed certainly admitted, even if
-it did not positively encourage, ignorance as the surest foundation
-of its authority. It becomes of importance, therefore, to inquire if
-such a charge is founded upon fact, and to see how far, if at all, the
-people in Catholic England were instructed in their religion.
-
-At the outset, it should be remembered that the questions at issue in
-the sixteenth century were not, in the first place at least, connected
-with the influence of religious teaching on the lives of the people at
-large. No one contended that the reformed doctrines would be found to
-make people better, or would help them to lead lives more in conformity
-with Gospel teaching. The question of what may be called practical
-religion never entered into the disputes of the time. Mr. Brewer warns
-the student of the history of this period that he will miss the meaning
-of many things altogether, and quite misunderstand their drift, if he
-starts his inquiry by regarding the Reformation as the creation of
-light to illuminate a previous period of darkness, or the evolution of
-practical morality out of a state of antecedent chaotic corruption.
-“In fact,” he says, “the sixteenth century was not a mass of moral
-corruption out of which life emerged by some process unknown to art
-or nature; it was not an addled egg cradling a living bird; quite the
-reverse.” For, as the historian of the German people, Janssen, points
-out, the truth is that the entire social order of the Middle Ages “was
-established on the doctrine of good works being necessary for the
-salvation of the Christian soul.” Whilst, as Mr. Brewer again notes,
-Luther’s most earnest remonstrances were directed not against _bad_
-works, but against the undue stress laid by the advocates of the old
-religion upon _good_ works. Moreover, an age which could busy itself
-about discussions of questions as to “righteousness,” whether of “faith
-or works,” “is not a demoralised or degenerate age. These are not the
-thoughts of men buried in sensuality.”
-
-Two questions are contained in the inquiry as to pre-Reformation
-religious teaching, namely, as to its extent and as to its character.
-There can hardly be much doubt that the duty of giving instruction to
-the people committed to their charge was fully recognised by the clergy
-in mediæval times. In view of the positive legislation of various
-synods on the subject of regular and systematic teaching, as well as of
-the constant repetition of the obligation in the books of English canon
-law, it is obvious that the priests were not ignorant of what was their
-plain duty. From the time of the constitution of Archbishop Peckham
-at the Synod of Oxford in 1281, to the time of the religious changes,
-there is every reason to suppose that the ordinance contained in the
-following words was observed in every parish church in the country: “We
-order,” says the Constitution, “that every priest having the charge of
-a flock do, four times in each year (that is, once each quarter) on one
-or more solemn feast days, either himself or by some one else, instruct
-the people in the vulgar language simply and without any fantastical
-admixture of subtle distinctions, in the articles of the Creed, the Ten
-Commandments, the Evangelical Precepts, the seven works of mercy, the
-seven deadly sins with their offshoots, the seven principal virtues,
-and the seven Sacraments.”
-
-This means that the whole range of Christian teaching, dogmatic and
-moral, was to be explained to the people four times in every year; and
-in order that there should be no doubt about the matter, the Synod
-proceeds to set out in considerable detail each of the points upon
-which the priest was to instruct his people. During the fourteenth and
-fifteenth centuries the great number of manuals intended to help the
-clergy in the execution of this law attest the fact that it was fully
-recognised and very generally complied with. When at the close of
-the latter century, the invention of printing made the multiplication
-of such manuals easy, the existence both of printed copies of this
-Constitution of Archbishop Peckham, and of printed tracts drawn up
-to give every assistance to the parochial clergy in the preparation
-of these homely teachings, proves that the law was understood and
-acted upon. In the face of such evidence it is impossible to doubt
-that, whatever may have been the case as to set sermons and formal
-discourses, simple, straightforward teaching was not neglected in
-pre-Reformation England, and every care was taken that the clergy might
-be furnished with material suitable for the fundamental religious
-teaching contemplated by the law. As late as 1466, a synod of the York
-Province, held by Archbishop Nevill, not only reiterated this general
-decree about regular quarterly instructions of a simple and practical
-kind, but set out at great length the points of these lessons in the
-Christian faith and life upon which the parish priests were to insist.
-
-Even set discourses of a more formal kind, though probably by no
-means so frequent as in these times, when they have to a great extent
-superseded the simple instructions of old Catholic days, were by no
-means neglected. Volumes of such sermons in manuscript and in print,
-as well as all that is known of the great discourses constantly being
-delivered at St. Paul’s Cross, may be taken as sufficient evidence of
-this. For the conveyance of moral and religious instruction, however,
-the regular and homely talks of a parish priest to his people were
-vastly more important than the set orations, and it is with these
-familiar instructions that the student of this period of our history
-has chiefly to concern himself. All the available evidence goes to
-show that the giving of these was not only regarded as an obligation
-on the pastor; but attendance at them was looked upon as a usual
-and necessary portion of the Christian duty. For example, in the
-examinations of conscience intended to assist lay people in their
-preparation for the Sacrament of penance, there are indications that
-any neglect to attend at these parochial instructions was considered
-sufficiently serious to become a matter of confession. It is, of
-course, hardly conceivable that this should be so, if the giving of
-these popular lessons in the duties of the Christian life was neglected
-by the priests, or if they were not commonly frequented by the laity.
-To take a few instances. “Also,” runs one such examination, “I have
-been slow in God’s service, and negligent to pray and to go to church
-in due time … loth to hear the Word of God, and the preacher of
-the Word of God. Neither have I imprinted it in my heart and borne
-it away and wrought thereafter.”[284] Again: “I have been setting
-nought by preaching and teaching of God’s Word, by thinking it an
-idle thing.”[285] And, to take an example of the view taken in such
-documents as to the priest’s duty: “If you are a priest be a true
-lantern to the people both in speaking and in living, and faithfully
-and truly do all things which pertain to a priest. Seek wisely the
-ground of truth and the true office of the priesthood, and be not
-ruled blindly by the lewd customs of the world. Read God’s law and
-the Expositions of the Holy Doctors, and study and learn and keep
-it, and when thou knowest it, preach and teach it to those that are
-unlearned.”[286]
-
-Richard Whitford, the Monk of Sion, in his _Work for Householders_,
-published first in 1530, lays great stress upon the obligation of
-parents and masters to see that those under their charge attended the
-instructions given in the parish church. Some may perhaps regard his
-greater anxiety for their presence at sermons rather than at Mass,
-when it was not possible for them to be at both, as doubtful advice.
-In this, however, he agrees with the author of what was the most
-popular book of instructions at this period, and the advice itself
-is proof that the obligation of attending instructions was regarded
-as sufficiently serious to be contrasted with that of hearing Mass.
-Speaking of the Sunday duties, Whitford says: “At church on Sundays see
-after those who are under your care. And charge them also to keep their
-sight in the church close upon their book and beads. And whilst they
-are young accustom them always to kneel, stand, and sit, and never walk
-in the church. And let them hear the Mass quietly and devoutly, much
-part kneeling. But at the Gospel, the Preface, and at the Paternoster
-teach them to stand and to make curtesy at the word Jesus, as the
-priest does.… If there be a sermon any time of the day let them be
-present, all that are not occupied in needful and lawful business;
-all other (occupations) laid aside let them ever keep the preachings,
-rather than the Mass, if, perchance, they may not hear both.”
-
-Nothing could possibly be more definite or explicit upon the necessity
-of popular instructions and upon the duty incumbent upon the clergy of
-giving proper vernacular teaching to their flocks than the author of
-_Dives et Pauper_, the most popular of the fifteenth-century books of
-religious instruction. In fact, on this point his language is as strong
-and uncompromising as that which writers have too long been accustomed
-to associate with the name of Wycliffe. No more unwarranted assumption
-has ever been made in the name of history than that which classed
-under the head of Lollard productions almost every fifteenth-century
-tract in English, especially such as dealt openly with abuses needing
-correction, and pleaded for simple vernacular teaching of religion.
-This is what the author of _Dives et Pauper_ says about preaching:
-“Since God’s word is life and salvation of man’s soul, all those who
-hinder them that have authority of God, and by Orders taken, to preach
-and teach, from preaching and teaching God’s word and God’s law, are
-manslayers ghostly. They are guilty of as many souls that perish by
-the hindering of God’s word, and namely those proud, covetous priests
-and curates who can neither teach, nor will teach, nor suffer others
-that both can and will and have authority to teach and preach of God
-and of the bishop who gave them Orders, but prevent them for fear
-lest they should get less from their subjects, or else the less be
-thought of, or else that their sins should be known by the preaching
-of God’s word. Therefore, they prefer to leave their own sins openly
-reproved generally, among other men’s sins. As St. Anselm saith, God’s
-word ought to be worshipped as much as Christ’s body, and he sins as
-much who hindereth God’s word and despiseth God’s word, or taketh it
-recklessly as he that despiseth God’s body, or through his negligence
-letteth it fall to the ground. On this place the gloss showeth that it
-is more profitable to hear God’s word in preaching than to hear a Mass,
-and that a man should rather forbear his Mass than his sermon. For,
-by preaching, folks are stirred to contrition, and to forsake sin and
-the fiend, and to love God and goodness, and (by it) they be illumined
-to know their God, and virtue from vice, truth from falsehood, and
-to forsake errors and heresies. By the Mass they are not so, but if
-they come to Mass in sin they go away in sin, and shrews they come and
-shrews they wend away.… Nevertheless, the Mass profiteth them that are
-in grace to get grace and forgiveness of sin.… Both are good, but the
-preaching of God’s word ought to be more discharged and more desired
-than the hearing of Mass.”[287]
-
-In the same way the author of a little book named _The Interpretatyon
-and Sygnyfycacyon of the Masse_, printed by Robert Wyer in 1532,
-insists on the obligation of attending the Sunday instruction. “On each
-Sunday,” he says, “he shall also hear a sermon, if it be possible, for
-if a man did lose or omit it through contempt or custom, he would sin
-greatly.”[288] And in _The Myrrour of the Church_, the author tells
-those who desire “to see the Will of God in Holy Scripture,” but being
-of “simple learning” and “no cunning” cannot read, that they may do so
-“in open sermon, or in secret collation” with those who can. And in
-speaking of the Sunday duties he tells his readers not to lie in bed,
-“but rising promptly you shall go to the church, and with devotion say
-your matins without jangling. Also sweetly hear your Mass and all the
-hours of the day. And then if there is any preacher in the church who
-proposes to make a sermon, you shall sweetly hear the Word of God and
-keep it in remembrance.”[289] And lastly, to take one more example, in
-Wynkyn de Worde’s _Exornatorium Curatorum_, printed to enable those
-having the cure of souls to perform the duties of instruction laid down
-by Archbishop Peckham’s Provincial Constitution, whilst setting forth
-a form of examination of conscience under the head of the deadly sins,
-the author bids the curate teach his people to ask themselves: “Whether
-you have been slothful in God’s service, and specially upon the Sunday
-and the holy day whether you have been slothful to come to church,
-slothful to pray when you have been there, and slothful to hear the
-Word of God preached. Furthermore, whether you have been negligent to
-learn your _Pater Noster_, your _Ave Maria_, or your Creed, or whether
-you have been negligent to teach the same to your own children or to
-your god-children. Examine yourself also whether you have taught your
-children good manners, and guarded them from danger and bad company.”
-The same book insists on the need of such examination of conscience
-daily, or at least weekly.[290]
-
-The following in this connection is of interest as being a daily rule
-of life recommended to laymen in the English Prymer printed at Rouen
-in 1538: “First rise up at six o’clock in the morning at all seasons,
-and in rising do as follows: Thank our Lord who has brought you to the
-beginning of the day. Commend yourself to God, to Our Lady Saint Mary,
-and to the saint whose feast is kept that day, and to all the saints in
-heaven. When you have arrayed yourself say in your chamber or lodging,
-Matins, Prime, and Hours, if you may. Then go to the church before you
-do any worldly works if you have no needful business, and abide in the
-church the space of a low mass time, where you shall think on God and
-thank Him for His benefits. Think awhile on the goodness of God, on His
-divine might and virtue.… If you cannot be so long in the church on
-account of necessary business, take some time in the day in your house
-in which to think of these things.”… Take your meal “reasonably without
-excess or overmuch forbearing of your meat, for there is as much danger
-in too little as in too much. If you fast once in a week it is enough,
-besides Vigils and Ember days out of Lent.” After dinner rest “an hour
-or half-an-hour, praying God that in that rest He will accept your
-health to the end, that after it you may serve Him the more devoutly.”
-
-“… As touching your service, say up to _Tierce_ before dinner, and make
-an end of all before supper. And when you are able say the _Dirge_ and
-_Commendations_ for all Christian souls, at least on holy days, and if
-you have leisure say them on other days, at least with three lessons.
-Shrive yourself every week to your curate, except you have some great
-hindrance. And beware that you do not pass a fortnight unless you have
-a very great hindrance. If you have the means refuse not your alms to
-the first poor body that asketh it of you that day. Take care to hear
-and keep the Word of God. Confess you every day to God without fail of
-such sins you know you have done that day.” Think often of our Lord’s
-Passion, and at night when you wake turn your thoughts to what our Lord
-was doing at that hour in His Passion. In your life look for a faithful
-friend to whom you may open “your secrets,” and when found follow
-his advice. No doubt this “manner to live well” will perhaps hardly
-represent what people at this time ordinarily did. But the mere fact
-that it could be printed as a Christian’s daily rule of life as late as
-1538, is evidence at any rate that people took at the least as serious
-a view of their obligations in religious matters as we should.[291] In
-the same way _The art of good lyvyng_, quoted above, suggests as the
-proper way to sanctify the Sunday: Meditations on death, the pains of
-hell, and the joys of Paradise. Time should be given to reading the
-lives of the saints, to saying Matins, and studying the Paternoster and
-the Creed. Others should be exhorted to enter into God’s service, and
-fathers of families are bound to see that “their children, servants,
-and families go to church and hear the preachings.”[292]
-
-By far the most interesting and important part of any inquiry on the
-subject of pre-Reformation instructions, regards of course their
-nature and effect. We are asked to believe that the people were
-allowed to grow up in ignorance of the true nature of religion, and
-with superstitions in their hearts which the clergy could easily have
-corrected; but which they, on the contrary, rather fostered as likely
-to prove of pecuniary value to themselves. To keep the people ignorant
-(it is said) was their great object, as it was through the ignorance
-of the lay folk that the clergy hoped to maintain their influence and
-ascendency, and, it is suggested, to draw money out of the pockets of
-the faithful. The reverence which was paid at this time to images of
-the saints, and in an especial manner to the crucifix, is often adduced
-as proof that the people were evidently badly instructed in the nature
-of religious worship; and the destruction of statues, paintings, and
-pictured glass by the advanced reformers is thought to be explained,
-if not excused, by the absolute need of putting a stop once for all to
-a crying abuse. The explanation given to the people by their religious
-teachers on the eve of the religious changes on this matter of devotion
-to the saints, and of the nature of the reverence to be paid to their
-representations, may be taken as a good sample of the practical nature
-of the general instructions imparted in those times. The question
-divested of all ambiguity is really this: Were the people taught to
-understand the nature of an image or representation, or were they
-allowed to regard them as objects of reverence in themselves--that is,
-as _idols_? The material for a reply to this inquiry is fortunately
-abundant. The _Dyalogue_ of Sir Thomas More was written in 1528, in
-order to maintain the Catholic teaching about images, relics, and the
-praying to saints. To this, then, an inquirer naturally turns in the
-first place for an exposition of the common belief in these matters;
-for Sir Thomas claims that in his tract he is defending only “the
-common faith and belief of Christ’s Church.” “What this is,” he says,
-“I am very sure; and perceive it well not only by experience of my
-own time and the places where I have myself been to, with the common
-report of other honest men from all other places of Christendom.” After
-having explained that the commandment of God had reference to idols or
-images worshipped as gods, and not to mere representations of Christ,
-our Lady, or the Saints,[293] he continues: “but neither Scripture
-nor natural reason forbids a man to reverence an image, not fixing
-his final intent on the image, but referring the honour to the person
-the image represents. In such reverence shown to an image there is no
-honour withdrawn from God; but the saint is honoured in his image, and
-God in His saint. When a man of mean birth and an ambassador to a great
-king has high honour done to him, to whom does that honour redound,
-to the ambassador or to the king? When a man on the recital of his
-prince’s letter puts off his cap and kisses it, does he reverence the
-paper or his prince?… All names spoken and all words written are no
-material signs or images, but are made only by consent and agreement
-of men to betoken and signify such things, whereas images painted,
-graven, or carved, may be so well wrought and so near to the life and
-the truth, that they will naturally and much more effectually represent
-the thing than the name either spoken or written.… These two words,
-_Christus crucifixus_, do not represent to us, either to laymen or to
-the learned, so lively a remembrance of His bitter Passion as does
-a blessed image of the crucifix, and this these heretics perceive
-well enough. Nor do they speak against images in order to further
-devotion, but plainly with a malicious mind to diminish and quench
-men’s devotions. For they see clearly that no one who loves another
-does not delight in his image or in anything of his. And these heretics
-who are so sore against the images of God and His holy saints, would
-be right angry with him that would dishonestly handle an image made in
-remembrance of one of themselves, whilst the wretches forbear not to
-handle villainously, and in despite cast dirt upon the holy crucifix,
-an image made in remembrance of our Saviour Himself, and not only of
-His most blessed Person, but also of His most bitter Passion.”[294]
-
-Later on, in the same tract, rejecting the notion that people did not
-fully understand that the image was intended merely to recall the
-memory of the person whose image it was, and was not itself in any
-sense the thing or person, More says: “The flock of Christ is not so
-foolish as those heretics would make them to be. For whereas there is
-no dog so mad that he does not know a real coney (_i.e._ rabbit) from
-a coney carved and painted, (yet they would have it supposed that)
-Christian people that have reason in their heads, and therefore the
-light of faith in their souls, would think that the image of our Lady
-were our Lady herself. Nay, they be not so mad, I trust, but that
-they do reverence to the image for the honour of the person whom it
-represents, as every man delights in the image and remembrance of his
-friend. And although every good Christian man has a remembrance of
-Christ’s passion in his mind, and conceives by devout meditation a
-form and fashion thereof in his heart, yet there is no man I ween so
-good nor so learned, nor so well accustomed to meditation, but that he
-finds himself more moved to pity and compassion by beholding the holy
-crucifix than when he lacks it.”[295]
-
-In his work against Tyndale, More again takes up this subject in
-reference to the way in which the former in his new translation of
-the Bible had substituted the word _idol_ for _image_, as if they
-were practically identical in meaning. “Good folk who worship images
-of Christ and His saints, thereby worship Christ and His saints, whom
-these images represent.” Just as pagan worshippers of idols did evil in
-worshipping them, “because in them they worshipped devils (whom they
-called gods and whom those idols represented), so Christian men do well
-in worshipping images, because in them they worship Christ and His holy
-saints.”[296]
-
-Roger Edgworth, the preacher, describes at Bristol in Queen Mary’s
-reign how the Reforming party endeavoured to confuse the minds of
-the common people as to the meaning of the word idol. “I would,” he
-says, “that you should not ignorantly confound and abuse those terms
-‘idol’ and ‘image,’ taking an image for an idol and an idol for an
-image, as I have heard many do in this city, as well fathers and
-mothers (who should be wise) as their babies and children who have
-learned foolishness from their parents. Now, at the dissolution of the
-monasteries and friars’ houses many images have been carried abroad
-and given to children to play with, and when the children have them
-in their hands, dancing them in their childish manner, the father or
-mother comes and says, ‘What nase, what have you there?’ The child
-answers (as she is taught), ‘I have here my idol.’ Then the father
-laughs and makes a gay game at it. So says the mother to another,
-‘Jugge or Tommy, where did you get that pretty idol?’ ‘John, our parish
-clerk gave it to me,’ says the child, and for that the clerk must have
-thanks and shall not lack good cheer. But if the folly were only in
-the insolent youth, and in the fond unlearned fathers and mothers, it
-might soon be redressed.” The fact is, he proceeds to explain, that
-the new preachers have been doing all in their power to obscure the
-hitherto well-recognised difference in meaning between an image and an
-idol. He begs his hearers to try and keep the difference in meaning
-between an image and an idol clearly before their minds. “An image is a
-similitude of a natural thing that has been, is, or may be,” he tells
-them. “An idol is a similitude of what never was or may be. Therefore
-the image of the crucifix is no idol, for it represents and signifies
-Christ crucified as He was in very deed, and the image of St. Paul with
-a sword in his hand as the sign of his martyrdom is no idol, for the
-thing signified by it was a thing indeed, for he was beheaded with a
-sword.”[297]
-
-In another part of the _Dialogue_ Sir Thomas More pointed out that what
-the reforming party said against devotion to images and pilgrimages
-could be summed up under one of three heads. They charge the people
-with giving “to the saints, and also to their images, honour like in
-kind to what they give to God Himself”; or (2) that “they take the
-images for the things themselves,” which is plain idolatry; or (3) that
-the worship is conducted in a “superstitious fashion with a desire of
-unlawful things.” Now, as to these three accusations, More replies:
-“The first point is at once soon and shortly answered, for it is not
-true. For though men kneel to saints and images, and incense them
-also, yet it is not true that they for this reason worship them in
-every point like unto God.… They lack the chief point (of such supreme
-worship). That is, they worship God in the mind that He is God, which
-intention in worship is the only thing that maketh it _latria_, and not
-any certain gesture or bodily observance.” It would not be supreme or
-divine worship even if “we would wallow upon the ground unto Christ,
-having in this a mind that He were the best man we could think of,
-but not thinking Him to be God. For if the lowly manner of bodily
-observance makes _latria_, then we were in grave peril of idolatry in
-our courtesy used to princes, prelates, and popes, to whom we kneel as
-low as to God Almighty, and kiss some their hands and some our own,
-ere ever we presume to touch them; and in the case of the Pope, his
-foot; and as for incensing, the poor priests in every choir are as well
-incensed as the Sacrament. Hence if _latria_, which is the special
-honour due to God, was contained in these things, then we were great
-idolaters, not only in our worship of the saints and of their images,
-but also of men, one to another among ourselves.” Though indeed to God
-Almighty ought to be shown as “humble and lowly a bodily reverence as
-possible, still this bodily worship is not _latria_, unless we so do
-it in our mind considering and acknowledging Him as God, and with that
-mind and intention do our worship; and this, as I think,” he says, “no
-Christian man does to any image or to any saint either.”
-
-“Now, as touching the second point--namely, that people take the images
-for the saints themselves, I trust there is no man so mad, or woman
-either, that they do not know live men from dead stones, and a tree
-from flesh and bone. And when they prefer our Lady at one pilgrimage
-place before our Lady at another, or one rood before another, or make
-their invocations and vows some to the one and some to the other, I
-ween it easy to perceive that they mean nothing else than that our Lord
-and our Lady, or rather our Lord for our Lady, shows more miracles at
-the one than the other. They intend in their pilgrimages to visit,
-some one place and some another, or sometimes the place is convenient
-for them, or their devotion leads them; and yet (this is) not for the
-place, but because our Lord pleases by manifest miracles to provoke men
-to seek Him, or His Blessed Mother, or some Holy Saint of His, in these
-places more especially than in some others.”
-
-“This thing itself proves also that they do not take the images of our
-Lady for herself. For if they did, how could they possibly in any wise
-have more mind to one of them than to the other? For they can have
-no more mind to our Lady than to our Lady. Moreover, if they thought
-that the image at Walsingham was our Lady herself then must they needs
-think that our Lady herself was that image. Then, if in like manner
-they thought that the image at Ipswich was our Lady herself, and as
-they must then need think that our Lady was the image at Ipswich, they
-must needs think that all these three things were one thing.… And so
-by the same reason they must suppose that the image at Ipswich was the
-self-same image as at Walsingham. If you ask any one you take for the
-simplest, except a natural fool, I dare hold you a wager she will tell
-you ‘nay’ to this. Besides this, take the simplest fool you can find
-and she will tell you our Lady herself is in heaven. She will also
-call an image an image, and she will tell you the difference between
-an image of a horse and a horse in very deed. And this appears clearly
-whatever her words about her pilgrimage are calling, according to the
-common manner of speech, the image of our Lady, our Lady. As men say,
-‘Go to the King’s Head for wine,’ not meaning his real head, but the
-sign, so she means nothing more in the image but our Lady’s image, no
-matter how she may call it. And if you would prove she neither takes
-our Lady for the image, nor the image for our Lady--talk with her about
-our Lady and she will tell you that our Lady was saluted by Gabriel;
-that our Lady fled into Egypt with Joseph; and yet in the telling she
-will never say that ‘our Lady of Walsingham,’ or ‘of Ipswich,’ was
-saluted by Gabriel, or fled into Egypt. If you would ask her whether
-it was ‘our Lady of Walsingham,’ or ‘our Lady of Ipswich,’ that stood
-by the cross at Christ’s Passion, she will, I warrant you, make answer
-that it was neither of them; and if you further ask her, ‘which Lady
-then,’ she will name you no image, but our Lady who is in heaven. And
-this I have proved often, and you may do so, too, when you will and
-shall find it true, except it be in the case of one so very a fool that
-God will give her leave to believe what she likes. And surely, on this
-point, I think in my mind that all those heretics who make as though
-they had found so much idolatry among the people for mistaking (the
-nature) of images, do but devise the fear, to have some cloak to cover
-their heresy, wherein they bark against the saints themselves, and when
-they are marked they say they only mean the wrong beliefs that women
-have in images.”[298]
-
-As regards the third point--namely, that honour is sometimes shown to
-the saints and their images in “a superstitious fashion with a desire
-of unlawful things,” More would be ready to blame this as much as any
-man if it could be shown to be the case. “But I would not,” he says,
-“blame all things which are declared to be of this character by the
-new teachers. For example, to pray to St. Apollonia for the help of
-our teeth is no witchcraft, considering that she had her teeth pulled
-out for Christ’s sake. Nor is there any superstition in other suchlike
-things.” Still, where abuses can be shown they ought to be put down as
-abuses, and the difference between a lawful use and an unlawful abuse
-recognised. But because there may be abuses done on the Sunday, or
-in Lent, that is no reason why the Sunday observance, or the fast of
-Lent, should be swept away.[299] “In like manner it would not be right
-that all due worship of saints and reverence of relics, and honour of
-saints’ images, by which good and devout folk get much merit, should
-be abolished and put down because people abuse” these things. “Now,
-as touching the evil petitions,” he continues, “though they who make
-them were, as I trust they are not, a great number, they are not yet
-so many that ask evil petitions of saints as ask them of God Himself.
-For whatsoever such people will ask of a good saint, they will ask of
-God Himself, and where as the worst point it is said, ‘that the people
-do idolatry in that they take the images for the saints themselves, or
-the rood for Christ Himself,’--which, as I have said, I think none do;
-for some rood has no crucifix thereon, and they do not believe that the
-cross which they see was ever at Jerusalem, or that it was the holy
-cross itself, and much less think that the image that hangs on it is
-the body of Christ Himself. And though some were so mad as to think so,
-yet it is not ‘the people’ who do so. For a few doddering dames do not
-make the people.”[300]
-
-It is hard to imagine any teaching about the use and abuse of images
-clearer than that which is contained in the foregoing passages from Sir
-Thomas More’s writings. The main importance of his testimony, however,
-is not so much this clear statement of Catholic doctrine on the nature
-of devotion to images, as his positive declaration that there were not
-such abuses, or superstitions, common among the people on the eve of
-the religious changes, as it suited the purpose of the early reformers
-to suggest, and of later writers with sectarian bias to believe.
-
-For evidence of positive and distinct teaching on the matter of
-reverence to be shown to images, and on its nature and limits, we
-cannot do better than refer to that most popular book of instruction
-in the fifteenth and early sixteenth centuries, already referred to,
-called _Dives et Pauper_, a treatise on the Ten Commandments. It was
-multiplied from the beginning of the fifteenth century in manuscript
-copies, and printed editions of it were issued from the presses of
-Pynson, Wynkyn de Worde, and Thomas Berthelet. These editions published
-by our early printers are sufficient to attest its popularity, and
-the importance attached to it as a book of instruction by the
-ecclesiastical authorities on the eve of the Reformation.
-
-This is how the teacher lays down the general principle of loving God:
-“The first precept of charity is this: Thou shalt love the Lord God
-with all thy heart, with all thy soul, and with all thy mind, with all
-thy might. When He saith thou shalt love thy God with all thy heart,
-He excludeth all manner of idolatry that is forbidden by the first
-commandment; that is, that man set not his heart, nor his faith, nor
-his trust in any creature more than in God, or against God’s worship.…
-God orders that thou shouldst love Him with all thy heart, that is to
-say, with all thy faith, in such a way that thou set all thy faith and
-trust in Him before all others, as in Him that is Almighty and can
-best help thee in thy need.” Later on, under the same heading, we are
-taught that: “by this commandment we are bound to worship God, who is
-the Father of all things, who is called the Father of mercies and God
-of all comfort. He is our Father, for He made us of nought: He bought
-us with His blood, He findeth us all that we need, and much more, He
-feedeth us. He is our Father by grace, for by His grace He hath made
-us heirs of heavenly bliss. Was there ever a father so tender of his
-child as God is tender of us? He is to us both father and mother,
-and therefore we are bound to love Him and worship Him above all
-things.”[301]
-
-Under the first commandment the whole question as to images, and the
-nature of the reverence to be paid to them, is carefully considered,
-and the matter put so plainly, that there is no room for doubt as to
-the nature of the instructions given to the people in pre-Reformation
-days. Images, the teacher explains, are ordered for three great ends,
-namely: “To stir men’s minds to meditate upon the Incarnation of Christ
-and upon His life and passion, and upon the lives of the saints;”
-secondly, to move the heart to devotion and love, “for oft man is
-stirred more by sight than by hearing or reading;” thirdly, they “are
-intended to be a token and a book to the ignorant people, that they may
-read in images and painting as clerks read in books.”
-
-And in reply to a question from _Dives_, who pretended to think that
-it would be difficult to read a lesson from any painting, _Pauper_
-explains his meaning in calling them “books to the unlearned.” “When
-thou seest the image of the crucifix,” he says, “think of Him that
-died on the cross for thy sins and thy sake, and thank Him for His
-endless charity that He would suffer so much for thee. See in images
-how His head was crowned with a garland of thorns till the blood burst
-out on every side, to destroy the great sin of pride which is most
-manifested in the heads of men and women. Behold, and make an end to
-thy pride. See in the image how His arms were spread abroad and drawn
-up on the tree till the veins and sinews cracked, and how His hands
-were nailed to the cross, and streamed with blood, to destroy the sin
-that Adam and Eve did with their hands when they took the apple against
-God’s prohibition. Also He suffered to wash away the sin of the wicked
-deeds and wicked works done by the hands of men and women. Behold,
-and make an end of thy wicked works. See how His side was opened and
-His heart cloven in two by the sharp spear, and how it shed blood and
-water, to show that if He had had more blood in His body, more He would
-have given for men’s love. He shed His blood to ransom our souls, and
-water to wash us from our sins.”
-
-But whilst the instructor teaches the way in which the crucifix may
-be a book full of deep meaning to the unlearned, he is most careful
-to see that the true signification of the image is not misunderstood.
-In language which for clearness of expression and simplicity of
-illustration cannot be excelled, he warns _Dives_ not to mistake the
-real nature of the reverence paid to the symbol of our redemption. “In
-this manner,” he says, “read thy book and fall down to the ground and
-thank thy God who would do so much for thee. Worship Him above all
-things--not the stock, nor the stone, nor the wood, but Him who died
-on the tree of the cross for thy sins and thy sake. Thou shalt kneel
-if thou wilt before the image, but not to the image. Thou shalt do thy
-worship before the image, before the thing, not to the thing; offer
-thy prayer before the thing, not to the thing, for it seeth thee not,
-heareth thee not, understandeth thee not: make thy offering, if thou
-wilt, before the thing, but not to the thing: make thy pilgrimage not
-to the thing, nor for the thing, for it may not help thee, but to Him
-and for Him the thing represents. For if thou do it for the thing, or
-to the thing, thou doest idolatry.”
-
-This plain teaching as to the only meaning of reverence paid to images,
-namely, that it is relative and intended for that which the image
-represents, our author enforces by several examples. Just as a priest
-when saying mass with a book before him, bends down, holds up his
-hands, kneels, and performs other external signs of worship, not to the
-book, but to God, “so should the unlettered man use his book, that is
-images and paintings, not worshipping the thing, but God in heaven and
-the saints in their degree. All the worship which he doth before the
-thing, he doth, not to the thing, but to Him the thing represents.”
-
-The image of the crucified Saviour on the altar is specially intended,
-our author says, to remind all that “Mass singing is a special
-mind-making of Christ’s passion.” For this reason, in the presence of
-the crucifix, the priest says “his mass, and offers up the highest
-prayer that Holy Church can devise for the salvation of the quick and
-the dead. He holds up his hands, he bows down, he kneels, and all the
-worship he can do, he does--more than all, he offers up the highest
-sacrifice and the best offering that any heart can devise--that is
-Christ, the Son of the God of heaven, under the form of bread and
-wine. All this worship the priest doth at mass before the thing--the
-crucifix; and I hope there is no man nor woman so ignorant that he will
-say that the priest singeth his mass, or maketh his prayer, or offers
-up the Son of God, Christ Himself, to the thing.… In the same way,
-unlettered men should worship before the thing, making prayer before
-the thing, and not to the thing.”
-
-One of the special practices of the mediæval church to which the
-English reformers objected, and to which they gave the epithet
-“superstitious,” was the honour shown to the cross on Good Friday,
-generally known as “the creeping to the cross.” The advocates of change
-in insisting upon this time-honoured ceremony being swept away, claimed
-that in permitting it the Church had given occasion to wrong ideas of
-worship in the minds of the common people, and that the reverence shown
-to the symbol of our redemption on that occasion amounted practically
-to idolatry. In view of such assertions, it is not without interest
-to see how _Pauper_ in this book of simple instructions treats this
-matter. “On Good Friday especially,” says _Dives_, “men creep to the
-cross and worship the cross.” “That is so,” replies the instructor,
-“but not in the way thou meanest. The cross that we creep to and
-worship so highly at that time is Christ Himself, who died on the cross
-on that day for our sin and our sake.… He is that cross, as all doctors
-say, to whom we pray and say, ‘_Ave crux, spes unica_,’ ‘Hail, thou
-cross, our only hope.’” But rejoins _Dives_, “On Palm Sunday, at the
-procession the priest draweth up the veil before the rood and falleth
-down to the ground with all the people, saying thrice thus, ‘_Ave Rex
-noster_,’ ‘Hail, be Thou our King.’ In this he worships the thing as
-King! _Absit!_” “God forbid!” replies _Pauper_, “he speaks not to the
-image that the carpenter hath made and the painter painted, unless the
-priest be a fool, for the stock and stone was never king. He speaketh
-to Him that died on the cross for us all--to Him that is King of all
-things.… For this reason are crosses placed by the wayside, to remind
-folk to think of Him who died on the cross, and to worship Him above
-all things. And for this same reason is the cross borne before a
-procession, that all who follow after it or meet it should worship Him
-who died upon a cross as their King, their Head, their Lord and their
-Leader to Heaven.”
-
-Equally clear is the author of _Dives et Pauper_ upon the distinction
-between the worship to be paid to God and the honour it is lawful to
-give to His saints. It is, of course, frequently asserted that the
-English pre-Reformation church did not recognise, or at least did not
-inculcate, this necessary difference, and consequently tolerated, even
-if it did not suggest, gross errors in this matter. No one who has
-examined the manuals of instruction which were in use on the eve of the
-Reformation can possibly maintain an opinion so opposed to the only
-evidence available. In particular, the real distinction between the
-supreme worship due to God alone, and the honour, however great, to be
-paid to His creatures is drawn out with great care and exactness in
-regard to the devotion paid to our Lord’s Blessed Mother. Thus, after
-most carefully explaining that there are two modes of “service and
-worship” which differ not merely in degree, but in kind and nature, and
-which were then, as now, known under the terms _latria_ and _dulia_,
-our author proceeds, “Latria is a protestation and acknowledgment of
-the high majesty of God; the recognition that He is sovereign goodness,
-sovereign wisdom, sovereign might, sovereign truth, sovereign justice;
-that He is the Creator and Saviour of all creatures and the end of all
-things; that all we have we have of Him, and that without Him we have
-absolutely nothing; and that without Him we can neither have nor do
-anything, neither we nor any other creature. This acknowledgment and
-protestation is made in three ways: by the heart, and by word, and by
-deed. We make it by the heart when we love Him as sovereign goodness;
-when we love Him as sovereign wisdom and truth, that may not deceive
-nor be deceived; when we hope in Him and trust Him as sovereign might
-that can best help us in need; as sovereign greatness and Lord, who may
-best yield us our deserts; and as sovereign Saviour, most merciful and
-most ready to forgive us our misdeeds.… Also the acknowledgment is done
-in the prayer and praise of our mouths.… For we must pray to Him and
-praise Him as sovereign might, sovereign wisdom, sovereign goodness,
-sovereign truth; as all-just and merciful as the Maker and Saviour of
-all things, &c.
-
-“And in this manner we are not to pray to or praise any creature.
-Therefore, they who make their prayers and their praises before images,
-and say their _Paternoster_ and their _Ave Maria_ and other prayers and
-praises commonly used by holy Church, or any such, if they do it to the
-image, and speak to the image, they do open idolatry. Also they are not
-excused even if they understand not what they say, for their lights,
-and their other wits, and their inner wit also, showeth them well that
-there ought that no such prayer, praise, or worship be offered to such
-images, for they can neither hear them, nor see them, nor help them in
-their needs.”
-
-Equally definite and explicit is another writer, just on the eve of the
-Reformation. William Bond, the brother of Sion, in 1531 published his
-large volume of instructions called _The Pilgrymage of Perfeccyon_, to
-which his contemporary, Richard Whitford, refers his readers for the
-fullest teaching on sundry points of faith and practice. In setting
-forth the distinction between an _image_ and an _idol_ this authority
-says, “Many nowadays take the Scripture wrongly, and thereby fall into
-heresy as Wycliffe did with his followers, and now this abominable
-heretic, Luther, with his adherents.… And (as I suppose) the cause
-of their error is some of these following:--First, that they put no
-difference between an idol and an image; secondly, that they put no
-difference between the service or high adoration due to God, called
-in the Greek tongue _latria_, and the lower veneration or worship
-exhibited and done to the saints of God, called in Greek _dulia_.… The
-veneration or worship that is done to the images (as Damascene, Basil,
-and St. Thomas say) rest not in them, but redound unto the thing that
-is represented by such images: as for example, the great ambassador
-or messenger of a king shall have the same reverence that the king’s
-own person should have if he were present. This honour is not done to
-this man for himself, or for his own person, but for the king’s person
-in whose name he cometh, and all such honour and reverence so done
-redoundeth to the king and resteth in him.… So it is in the veneration
-or worshipping of the images of Christ and His saints. The honour
-rests not in the image, nor in the stock, nor in the stone, but in the
-thing that is represented thereby.” According to St. Thomas, he says
-the images in churches are intended to “be as books to the rude and
-unlearned people,” and to “stir simple souls to devotion.”[302]
-
-Bond then draws out most carefully the distinction which the Church
-teaches as to the kinds of honour to be given to the saints. “Our
-lights, oblations, or Paternosters and creeds that we say before images
-of saints,” he says, “are as praisings of God, for His graces wrought
-in His saints, by whose merits we trust that our petitions shall be the
-sooner obtained of God.… We pray to them, not as to the granters of our
-petitions, but as means whereby we may the sooner obtain the same.”[303]
-
-Speaking specially of the reverence shown to the crucifix, our author
-uses the teaching of St. Thomas to explain the exact meaning of this
-honour. “The Church in Lent, in the Passion time,” he continues,
-“worships it, singing, ‘_O crux ave, spes unica_,’ ‘Hail, holy cross,
-our only hope.’ That is to be understood as ‘Hail, blessed Lord
-crucified, Who art our only hope’--for all is one worship and act.
-Christ, our Maker and Redeemer, God and man in one person, is of duty
-worshipped with the high adoration only due to God, called _latria_.
-His image also, or his similitude, called the crucifix, is to be
-worshipped, just as the Blessed Sacrament is adored with the worship of
-_latria_.”[304]
-
-To this testimony may be added that of another passage from Sir Thomas
-More. He was engaged in refuting the accusation made by Tyndale against
-the religious practices of pre-Reformation days, to which charges,
-unfortunately, people have given too much credence in later times. “Now
-of prayer, Tyndale says,” writes More, “that we think no man may pray
-but at church, and that (_i.e._ the praying before a crucifix or image)
-is nothing but the saying of a _Paternoster_ to a post. (Further)
-that the observances and ceremonies of the Church are vain things of
-our own imagination, neither needful to the taming of the flesh, nor
-profitable to our neighbour, nor to the honour of God. These lies come
-in by lumps; lo! I dare say that he never heard in his life men nor
-women say that a man might pray only in church. Just as true is it also
-that men say their _Paternosters_ to the post, by which name it pleases
-him of his reverent Christian mind to call the images of holy saints
-and our Blessed Lady, and the figure of Christ’s cross, the book of
-His bitter passion. Though we reverence these in honour of the things
-they represent, and in remembrance of Christ do creep to the cross and
-kiss it, and say _Paternoster_ at it, yet we say not our _Paternoster_
-to it, but to God; and that Tyndale knows full well, but he likes to
-rail.”[305]
-
-Finally a passage on the subject of pre-Reformation devotion to the
-saints and angels, from the tract _Dives et Pauper_, may fitly close
-this subject. “First,” says the author, “worship ye our Lady, mother
-and maid, above all, next after God, and then other saints both men
-and women, and then the holy angels, as God giveth the grace. Worship
-ye them not as God, but as our tutors, defenders and keepers, as our
-leaders and governors under God, as the means between us and God, who
-is the Father of all and most Sovereign Judge, to appease Him, and to
-pray for us, and to obtain us grace to do well, and for forgiveness
-of our misdeeds.… And, dear friend, pray ye heartily to your angel,
-as to him that is nearest to you and hath most care of you, and is,
-under God, most busy to save you. And follow his governance and trust
-in him in all goodness, and with reverence and purity pray ye to him
-faithfully, make your plaints to him, and speak to him homely to be
-your helper, since he is your tutor and keeper assigned to you by God.
-Say oft that holy prayer, _Angele qui meus est_, &c.”
-
-This prayer to the Guardian Angel, so highly commended, was well known
-to pre-Reformation Catholics. Generations of English mothers taught it
-to their children; it is found frequently recommended in the sermons
-of the fifteenth century, and confessors are charged to advise their
-penitents to learn and make use of it. For the benefit of those of
-my readers who may not know the prayer, I here give it in an English
-form, from a Latin version in the tract _Dextra Pars Oculi_, which
-was intended to assist confessors in the discharge of their sacred
-ministry--
-
- “O angel who my guardian art,
- Through God’s paternal love,
- Defend, and shield, and rule the charge
- Assigned thee from above.
-
- From vice’s stain preserve my soul,
- O gentle angel bright,
- In all my life be thou my stay,
- To all my steps the light.”
-
-It is, of course, impossible here to do more than refer to the
-books of instruction, and those intended to furnish the priests on
-the eve of the Reformation with material for the familiar teaching
-they were bound to give their people. Such works as Walter Pagula’s
-_Pars Oculi Sacerdotis_, and the _Pupilla Oculi_ of John de Burgo,
-both fourteenth-century productions, were in general use during the
-fifteenth century among the clergy. The frequent mention of these works
-in the inventories and wills of the period shows that they were in
-great demand, and were circulated from hand to hand, whilst an edition
-of the latter, printed in 1510 by Wolffgang, at the expense of an
-English merchant, William Bretton, attests its continued popularity.
-In a letter from the editor, Augustine Aggeus, to Bretton, printed on
-the back of the title-page, it is said that the _Pupilla_ was printed
-solely with the desire that the rites and sacraments of the church
-might be better understood and appreciated, and to secure “that nowhere
-in the English Church” should there be any excuse of ignorance on those
-matters.[306]
-
-The contents of the first-named tract, the _Pars Oculi Sacerdotis_,
-show how very useful a manual it must have been to assist the clergy
-in their ministrations. It consists of three parts: the first portion
-forms what would now be called the _praxis confessarii_, a manual
-for instructing priests in the science of dealing with souls, and
-giving examples of the kind of questions that should be asked of
-various people, for example, of religious, secular priests, merchants,
-soldiers, and the like. This is followed by a detailed examination
-of conscience, and pious practices are suggested for the priest to
-recommend for the use of the faithful. For example, in order that the
-lives of lay people might be associated in some way with the public
-prayer of the church, the Divine office, the priest is advised to get
-his penitents to make use of the Pater and Creed, seven times a day,
-to correspond with the canonical hours. Those having the cure of souls
-are reminded that it is their duty to see that all at least know the
-Lord’s Prayer, the Creed, and the Hail Mary by heart, and they are
-urged to do all in their power to inculcate devotions to our Lady,
-Patron Saints, and the Guardian Angels.
-
-The second part of the _Dextra Pars Oculi_ deals minutely and carefully
-with the instructions which a priest should give his people in their
-religion, and this includes not only points of necessary belief
-and Christian practice, but such matters as the proper decorum and
-behaviour in Church, and the cemetery, &c. The materials for these
-familiar instructions are arranged under thirty-one headings, and
-following on these are the explanations of Christian faith and practice
-to be made in the simple sermons the clergy were bound to give to their
-people quarterly. The third part, called the _Sinistra Pars Oculi_, is
-an equally careful treatise on the sacraments. The instructions on the
-Blessed Eucharist are excellent, and in the course of them many matters
-of English religious practice are touched upon and the ceremonies of
-the Mass are fully explained.[307]
-
-It is obvious that much of the real religious instruction in
-pre-Reformation days, as indeed in all ages, had to be given at home by
-parents to their children. The daily practices by which the home life
-is regulated and sanctified are more efficacious in the formation of
-early habits of solid piety and the fear of God in the young than any
-religious instructions given at school or at Church. This was fully
-understood and insisted upon in pre-Reformation books of instruction.
-Such, for example, is the very purpose of Richard Whitford’s book,
-called _A werke for Housholders, or for them that have the guyding or
-governance of any company_, printed by Wynkyn de Worde in 1534, and
-again by Robert Redman in 1537. After reminding his readers that life
-is short, and that it is impossible for any man to know when he shall
-be called upon to give an account of his stewardship, he turns to the
-consideration of the Christian’s daily life. Begin the day well, he
-says; on first awakening, turn your thoughts and heart to God, “and
-then use by continual custom to make a cross with your thumb upon your
-forehead or front, whilst saying these words, _In nomine Patris_; and
-another cross upon your mouth, with these words, _Et filii_; and then
-a third cross upon your breast, saying, _Et spiritus Sancti_.” After
-suggesting a form of morning and evening prayer, and urging a daily
-examination of conscience, he continues: Some may object that all this
-is very well for religious, or people secluded from the world, “but we
-lie two or three sometimes together, and even in one chamber divers
-beds, and so many in company, that if we should use these things in the
-presence of our fellows some would laugh us to scorn and mock at us.”
-But to this objection Whitford in effect replies that at most it would
-be a nine days’ wonder, and people would quickly be induced to follow
-an example of such a good Christian practice if set with courage and
-firmness.[308]
-
-Speaking of the duty of instructing others, “the wretch of Syon,” as
-Whitford constantly calls himself, urges those who can read to use
-their gifts for the benefit of others not so fortunate. They should get
-their neighbours together on holidays, he says, especially the young,
-and teach them the daily exercise, and in particular the “things they
-are bound to know or can say: that is the _Paternoster_, the _Ave_,
-and the _Creed_.” Begin early to teach those that are young, for “our
-English proverb saith that the young cock croweth as he doth hear and
-learn of the old.” Parents, above all things, he urges to look well
-after their children and to take care of the company they keep. Teach
-them to say their grace at meals. “At every meal, dinner or supper,
-I have advised, and do now counsel, that one person should with loud
-voice say thus, ‘Paternoster,’ with every petition paraphrased and
-explained, and the Hail Mary and Creed likewise. This manner of the
-Paternoster, Ave, and Creed,” he says, “I would have used and read from
-the book at every meal, or at least once a day with a loud voice that
-all the persons present may hear it.” People are bound to see that all
-in their house know these prayers and say them.[309]
-
-Very strongly indeed does Whitford in this volume write against belief
-in charms and giving way to superstitions. There is no question about
-his strong condemnation of anything, however slight, which might
-savour of reliance on these external things, and as an instance of
-what he means, he declares that the application of a piece of bread,
-with a cross marked upon it, to a tooth to cure its aching, savours of
-superstition, as showing too great a reliance on the material cross. In
-the same place our author urges parents to correct their children early
-for any use of oaths and strong expressions. “Teach your children,” he
-says, “to make their additions under this form: ‘yea, father,’ ‘nay,
-father,’ ‘yea, mother,’ ‘nay, mother,’ and ever to avoid such things as
-‘by cock and pye,’ and ‘by my hood of green,’ and such other.”[310]
-
-Finally, to take but one more example of the advice given in this
-interesting volume to parents and others having the charge of the
-young, Whitford says: “Teach your children to ask a blessing every
-night, kneeling, before they go to rest, under this form: ‘Father, I
-beseech you a blessing for charity.’” If the child is too stubborn to
-do this, he says let it “be well whisked.” If too old to be corrected
-in this way, let it be set out in the middle of the dining-room and
-made to feed by itself, and let it be treated as one would treat one
-who did not deserve to consort with its fellows. Also teach the young
-“to ask a blessing from every bishop, abbot, and priest, and of their
-godfathers and godmothers also.”[311]
-
-In taking a general survey of the books issued by the English presses
-upon the introduction of the art of printing, the inquirer can hardly
-fail to be struck with the number of religious, or quasi-religious,
-works which formed the bulk of the early printed books. This fact
-alone is sufficient evidence that the invention which at this period
-worked a veritable revolution in the intellectual life of the world,
-was welcomed by the ecclesiastical authorities as a valuable auxiliary
-in the work of instruction. In England the first presses were set up
-under the patronage of churchmen, and a very large proportion of the
-early books were actually works of instruction or volumes furnishing
-materials to the clergy for the familiar and simple discourses which
-they were accustomed to give four times a year to their people. Besides
-the large number of what may be regarded as professional books chiefly
-intended for use by the ecclesiastical body, such as missals, manuals,
-breviaries, and horæ, and the prymers and other prayer-books used by
-the laity, there was an ample supply of religious literature published
-in the early part of the sixteenth century. In fact, the bulk of the
-early printed English books were of a religious character, and as the
-publication of such volumes was evidently a matter of business on the
-part of the first English printers, it is obvious that this class of
-literature commanded a ready sale, and that the circulation of such
-books was fostered by those in authority at this period. Volumes of
-sermons, works of Instruction on the Creed and the Commandments, lives
-of the saints, and popular expositions of Scripture history, were not
-only produced but passed through several editions in a short space
-of time. The evidence, consequently, of the productions of the first
-English printing-presses goes to show not only that religious books
-were in great demand, but also that so far from discouraging the use
-of such works of instruction, the ecclesiastical authorities actively
-helped in their diffusion.
-
-In considering the religious education of the people in the time
-previous to the great upheaval of the sixteenth century, some account
-must be taken of the village mystery plays which obviously formed no
-inconsiderable part in popular instruction in the great truths of
-religion. The inventories of parish churches and the churchwardens’
-accounts which have survived show how very common a feature these
-religious plays formed in the parish life of the fifteenth century, and
-the words of the various dramas, of which we still possess copies, show
-how powerful a medium of teaching they would have been among the simple
-and unlettered villagers of Catholic England, and even to the crowds
-which at times thronged great cities like Coventry and Chester, to be
-present at the more elaborate plays acted in these traditional centres
-of the religious drama.
-
-As to their popularity there can be no question. Dramatic
-representations of the chief events in the life of our Lord, &c., were
-commonly so associated with the religious purposes for which they were
-originally produced, that they were played on Sundays and feast days,
-and not infrequently in churches, church porches, and churchyards.
-“Spectacles, plays, and dances that are used on great feasts,” says
-the author of _Dives et Pauper_, quoted above, “as they are done
-principally for devotion and honest mirth, and to teach men to love
-God the more, are lawful if the people be not thereby hindered from
-God’s service, nor from hearing God’s word, and provided that in such
-spectacles and plays there is mingled no error against the faith of
-Holy Church and good living. All other plays are prohibited, both on
-holidays and work days (according to the law), upon which the gloss
-saith that the representation in plays at Christmas of Herod and the
-Three Kings, and other pieces of the Gospel, both then and at Easter
-and other times, is lawful and commendable.”
-
-A few examples of the kind of teaching imparted in these plays will
-give a better idea of the purpose they served in pre-Reformation days
-than any description. There can be no reasonable doubt that such
-dramatic representations of the chief mysteries of religion and of
-scenes in the life of our Lord or of His saints served to impress
-these truths and events upon the imaginations of the audiences who
-witnessed them, and to make them vivid realities in a way which we,
-who are not living in the same religious atmosphere, find it difficult
-now to understand. The religious drama was the handmaid of the Church,
-and was intended to assist in instructing the people at large in the
-truths and duties of religion, just as the paintings upon the walls of
-the sacred buildings were designed to tell their own tale of the Bible
-history, and form “a book” ever open to the eyes of the unlettered
-children of the Church, easy to be understood, graphically setting
-forth events in the story of God’s dealings with men, and illustrating
-truths which often formed the groundwork for oral instruction in the
-Sunday sermon.
-
-Whatever we may be inclined to think of these simple plays as literary
-works, or however we may be inclined now to smile at some of the
-characters and “situations,” as to the pious spirit which dictated
-their composition and presided over their production there can be
-no doubt. “In great devotion and discretion,” says the monk and
-chronicler, “Higden published the story of the Bible, that the simple
-in their own language might understand.”[312]
-
-This was the motive of all these mediæval religious plays. As a popular
-writer upon the English drama says: “There is abundant evidence that
-the Romish ecclesiastics in the mystery plays, especially that part
-of them relating to the birth, passion, and resurrection of Christ,
-had the perfectly serious intention of strengthening the faith of the
-multitude in the fundamental doctrines of the Church, and it seems the
-less extraordinary that they should have resorted to this expedient
-when we reflect that, before the invention of printing, books had no
-existence for the people at large.”[313]
-
-The subjects treated of in these plays were very varied, although
-those which were performed at the great feasts of Christmas and
-Easter generally had some relation to the mystery then celebrated. In
-fact, the mystery plays of the sacred seasons were only looked upon
-as helping to make men realise more deeply the great drama of the
-Redemption, the memory of which was perpetuated in the sequence of
-the great festivals of the Christian year. In such a collection as
-that known as the _Towneley Mysteries_, and published by the Surtees
-Society, we have examples of the subjects treated in the religious
-plays of the period. The collection makes no pretence to be complete,
-but it comprises some three and thirty plays, including such subjects
-as the Creation, the death of Abel, the story of Noah, the sacrifice of
-Isaac and other Old Testament histories, and a great number of scenes
-from the New Testament, such as the Annunciation, the Visitation, Cæsar
-Augustus, scenes from the Nativity, the Shepherds and the Magi, the
-Flight into Egypt, various scenes from the Passion and Crucifixion, the
-parable of the Talents, the story of Lazarus, &c.
-
-Any one who will take the trouble to read these plays as they are
-printed in this volume cannot fail to be impressed not only with the
-vivid picture of the special scene in the Old or New Testament that
-is presented to the imagination, but by the extensive knowledge of
-the Bible which the production of these plays must have imparted to
-those who listened to them, and by the way in which, incidentally, the
-most important religious truths are conveyed in the crude and rugged
-verse. Again and again, for instance, the entire dependence of all
-created things upon the Providence of Almighty God is declared and
-illustrated. Thus, the confession of God’s Omnipotence, put into the
-mouth of Noah at the beginning of the play of “Noah and his Sons,”
-contains a profession of belief in the Holy Trinity and in the work of
-the three Persons: it describes the creation of the world, the fall
-of Lucifer, the sin of our first parents, and their expulsion from
-Paradise. In the story of Abraham, too, the prayer of the patriarch
-with which it begins:
-
- “Adonai, thou God very,
- Thou hear us when to Thee we call,
- As Thou art He that best may,
- Thou art most succour and help of all,”
-
-gives a complete résumé of the Bible history before the days of
-Abraham, with the purpose of showing that all things are in the hands
-of God, and that complete obedience is due to Him by all creatures whom
-He has made.
-
-The same teaching as to the entire dependence of the Christian for all
-things upon God’s Providence appears in the address of the soul to its
-Maker in the “morality” of Mary Magdalene, printed by Mr. Sharpe from
-the Digby Manuscript collection of religious plays:--
-
- “_Anima_:
-
- ‘Sovereign Lord, I am bound to Thee;
- When I was nought, Thou made me thus glorious;
- When I perished through sin, Thou saved me;
- When I was in great peril, Thou kept me, Christus;
- When I erred, Thou reduced me, Jesus;
- When I was ignorant, Thou taught me truth;
- When I sinned, Thou corrected me thus;
- When I was heavy, Thou comforted me by truth (_i.e._ Thy mercy);
- When I stand in grace, Thou holdest me that tide;
- When I fall, Thou raisest me mightily;
- When I go well, Thou art my guide;
- When I come, Thou receivest me most lovingly;
- Thou hast anointed me with the oil of mercy;
- Thy benefits, Lord, be innumerable:
- Wherefore laud endless to Thee I cry;
- Recommending me to Thy endless power endurable.’”
-
-The more these old plays which delighted our forefathers are examined,
-the more clear it becomes that, although undoubtedly unlearned and
-unread, the people in pre-Reformation days, with instruction such as
-is conveyed in these pious dramas, must have had a deeper insight into
-the Gospel narrative, and a more thorough knowledge of Bible history
-generally, not to speak of a comprehension of the great truths of
-religion, than the majority of men possess now in these days of boasted
-enlightenment. Some of the plays, as for example that representing St.
-Peter’s fall, exhibit a depth of genuine feeling, of humble sorrow, for
-instance, on the part of St. Peter, and of loving-kindness on the part
-of our Lord, which must have come home to the hearts as well as to the
-minds of the beholders. At the same time, the lesson deduced by our
-Saviour from the apostle’s fall, namely, the need of all learning by
-their own shortcomings to be merciful to the trespasses of others, must
-have impressed itself upon them with a force which would not easily
-have been forgotten.
-
-In that most popular of all representations--that of Doomsday--“people
-learnt that before God there is no distinction of persons, and that
-each individual soul will be judged on its own merits, quite apart
-from any fictitious human distinctions of rank, wealth, or power.”
-Thus, as types, appear a _saved_ pope, emperor, king and queen, and
-amongst the _damned_ we also find a pope, emperor, king and queen,
-justiciar and merchant. And the words of thankfulness uttered by the
-Pope that has obtained his crown betrays “no self-satisfaction at the
-attainment of salvation; on the contrary, the true ring of Christian
-humility betokens a due appreciation of God’s unutterable holiness, and
-our unworthiness to stand before His face till the uttermost blemish
-left by sin has been wiped away” by the healing fires of Purgatory.
-No less clearly is the full doctrine of responsibility taught in the
-lament of the Pope, who is represented as having lost his soul by an
-evil life, and as being condemned to eternal punishment. The mere fact
-of a pope being so represented was in itself, when the Office was
-held in the highest regard, a lesson of the highest importance in the
-teaching of the true principles of holiness. In a word, these mystery
-plays provided a most useful means of impressing upon the minds of
-all the facts of Bible history, the great truths of religion, and the
-chief Christian virtues. The people taught in such a school and the
-people who delighted in such representations, as our forefathers in
-pre-Reformation days unquestionably did, cannot, even from this point
-of view alone, be regarded as ignorant of scriptural or moral teaching.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-PARISH LIFE IN CATHOLIC ENGLAND
-
-
-To understand the attitude of men’s minds to the ecclesiastical
-system on the eve of the great religious changes of the sixteenth
-century, some knowledge of the parochial life of Catholic England is
-necessary. Under present conditions, when unity has given place to
-diversity, and three centuries of continuous wrangling “over secret
-truths which most profoundly affect the heart and mind” have done much
-to coarsen and deaden our spiritual sense; when the religious mind of
-England manifests every shade of belief and unbelief without conscious
-reflection on the logical absurdity of the position, it is by no means
-easy to realise the influence of a state of affairs when all men, from
-the highest to the lowest, in every village and hamlet throughout the
-length and breadth of the land, had but one creed, worshipped their
-Maker in but one way, and were bound together with what most certainly
-were to them the real and practical ties of the Christian brotherhood.
-It is hardly possible to overestimate the effect of surroundings upon
-individual opinion, or the influence of a congenial atmosphere both
-on the growth and development of a spirit of religion and on the
-preservation of Christian morals and religious practices generally.
-When all, so far as religious faith is concerned, thought the same, and
-when all, so far as religious observance is concerned, did the same,
-the very atmosphere of unity was productive of that spirit of common
-brotherhood, which appears so plainly in the records of the period
-preceding the religious revolt of the sixteenth century. Those who will
-read below the surface and will examine for themselves into the social
-life of that time must admit, however much they feel bound to condemn
-the existing religious system, that it certainly maintained up to the
-very time of its overthrow a hold over the minds and hearts of the
-people at large, which nothing since has gained. Religion overflowed,
-as it were, into popular life, and helped to sanctify human interests,
-whilst the affection of the people was manifested in a thousand ways in
-regard to what we might now be inclined to consider the ecclesiastical
-domain. Whether for good or evil, religion in its highest and truest
-sense, at least as it was then understood, was to the English people
-as the bloom upon the choicest fruit. Whatever view may be taken as
-to advantage or disadvantage which came to the body politic, or to
-individuals, by the Reformation, it must be admitted that at least
-part of the price paid for the change was the destruction of the sense
-of corporate unity and common brotherhood, which was fostered by the
-religious unanimity of belief and practice in every village in the
-country, and which, as in the main-spring of its life, and the very
-central point of its being, centred in the Church with its rites and
-ceremonies.
-
-A Venetian traveller at the beginning of the sixteenth century bears
-witness to the influence of religion upon the English people of that
-time. His opinion is all the more valuable, inasmuch as he appeals
-to the experience of his master, who was also the companion of his
-travels, to confirm his own impressions, and as he was fully alive to
-the weak points in the English character, of which he thus records his
-opinion: “The English are great lovers of themselves and of everything
-belonging to them; they think that there are no other men but
-themselves and no other world but England. Whenever they see a handsome
-foreigner they say that ‘he looks like an Englishman,’ or that ‘it is a
-great pity that he should not be an Englishman,’ and when they partake
-of any delicacy with a foreigner they ask him whether such a thing is
-made in his country.”[314] In regard to the religious practices of
-the people, this intelligent foreigner says, “They all attend mass
-every day, and say many _Paternosters_ in public. The women carry long
-rosaries in their hands, and any who can read take the Office of Our
-Lady with them, and with some companion recite it in Church verse by
-verse, in a low voice, after the manner of churchmen. On Sundays they
-always hear Mass in their parish church and give liberal alms, because
-they may not offer less than a piece of money of which fourteen are
-equivalent to a golden ducat. Neither do they omit any form incumbent
-on good Christians.”[315]
-
-In these days perhaps the suggestion that the English people commonly
-in the early sixteenth century were present daily at morning Mass is
-likely to be received with caution, and classed among the strange tales
-proverbially told by travellers, then as now. It is, however, confirmed
-by another Venetian who visited England some few years later, and who
-asserts that every morning “at daybreak he went to Mass arm-in-arm with
-some English nobleman or other.”[316] And, indeed, the same desire of
-the people to be present daily at the Sacrifice of the Mass is attested
-by Archbishop Cranmer when, after the change had come, he holds up
-to ridicule the traditional observances previously in vogue. What he
-specially objected to was the common practice of those who run, as
-he says, “from altar to altar, and from sacring, as they call it, to
-sacring, peeping, tooting, and gazing at that thing which the priest
-held up in his hands … and saying, ‘this day have I seen my Maker,’ and
-‘I cannot be quiet except I see my Maker once a day.’”[317]
-
-If there were no other evidence of the affection of the English people
-on the eve of the Reformation for their religion, that of the stone
-walls of the churches would be sufficient to prove the sincerity of
-their love. In the whole history of English architecture nothing is
-more remarkable than the activity in church building manifested during
-the later half of the fifteenth and the early part of the sixteenth
-centuries. From one end of England to the other in the church walls
-are to be seen the evidences of thought and skill, labour and wealth,
-spent freely upon the sacred buildings during a period when it might
-not unnaturally have been thought that the civil dissensions of the
-Wars of the Roses, and the consequent destruction of life and property,
-would have been fatal to enterprise in the field of church building and
-church decoration and enrichment. It is not in any way an exaggeration
-to say that well-nigh every village church in England can show signs
-of this marvellous activity, whilst in many cases there is unmistakable
-evidence of personal care and thought in the smallest details.
-
-No less remarkable than the extent of this movement is the source
-from which the money necessary for all the work upon the cathedrals
-and parish churches of the country came. In previous centuries, to
-a great extent churches and monastic buildings owed their existence
-and embellishment mainly to the individual enterprise of the powerful
-nobles or rich ecclesiastics; but from the middle of the fifteenth
-century the numerous, and, in many cases, even vast operations,
-undertaken in regard to ecclesiastical buildings and ornamentation,
-were the work of the people at large, and were mainly directed by their
-chosen representatives. At the close of the fifteenth century, church
-work was in every sense of the word a popular work, and the wills,
-inventories, and churchwardens’ accounts prove beyond question that the
-people generally contributed generously according to their means, and
-that theirs was the initiative, and theirs the energetic administration
-by which the whole was accomplished.[318] Gifts of money and valuables,
-bequests of all kinds, systematic collections by parish officials, or
-by directors of guilds, often extending over considerable periods,
-and the proceeds of parish plays and parish feasts, were the ordinary
-means by which the sums necessary to carry out these works of building
-and embellishment were provided. Those who had no money to give brought
-articles of jewellery, such as rings, brooches, buckles, and the
-like, or articles of dress or of domestic utility, to be converted
-into vestments, banners, and altar hangings to adorn the images and
-shrines, to make the sacred vessels of God’s house, or to be sold for
-like purposes. For the same end, and to secure the perpetuity of lamps
-before the Blessed Sacrament, or lights before the altars of saints,
-people gave houses and lands into the care of the parish officials, or
-made over to them cattle and sheep to be held in trust, which, when
-let out at a rent, formed a permanent endowment for the furtherance of
-these sacred purposes.
-
-Undoubtedly the period with which we are concerned was not merely an
-age of building, but an age of decoration, and of decoration which
-may almost be described as “lavish.” The very architecture of the
-time is proof of the wealth of ornament with which men sought to give
-expression to their enthusiastic love of the Houses of God, which
-they had come to regard as the centre of their social no less than
-of their religious life. Flowing lines in tracery and arch moulding
-gave place to straight lines, groined roofs were enriched by extra
-ribs, and panels of elaborate work covered the plain surfaces of
-former times; the very key-stones of the vaulting became pendants,
-and the springers branched out like palm trees, forming that rich and
-entirely English variety of groin called “fan-tracery,” such as we
-see at Sherborne, Eton, King’s College, Cambridge, and Henry VII.’s
-Chapel at Westminster. “In other respects,” says a modern writer, “the
-architects of the fifteenth century were very successful. Few things
-can be seen more beautiful than the steeples of Gloucester Cathedral
-and St. Mary’s, Taunton. The open roofs, as for example that of St.
-Peter Mancroft, Norwich, are superb, and finally they have left us a
-large number of enormous parish churches all over the country, full of
-interesting furniture and decoration.”
-
-The fact is, that this was the last expression of Gothic as a living
-art. The builders and beautifiers of the English churches on the eve of
-the religious changes spoke still a living language, and their works
-still tell us of the fulness of the hearts which planned and executed
-such works. It is somewhat difficult for us to understand this, when
-living in an age of imitation, and at a time when architecture has no
-longer a language of its own. “Imitation,” writes Mr. Ferguson, “is
-in fact all we aim at in the architectural art of the present day. We
-entrust its exercise to a specially educated class, most learned in the
-details of the style they are called upon to work in, and they produce
-buildings which delight the scholars and archæologists of the day, but
-which the less educated classes neither understand nor appreciate,
-and which will lose their significance the moment the fashion which
-produced them has passed away.
-
-“The difference between this artificial state of things and the
-practice of a true style will not be difficult to understand. When,
-for instance, Gothic was a living art in England, men expressed
-themselves in it as in any other part of the vernacular. Whatever
-was done was a part of the usual, ordinary every-day life, and men
-had no more difficulty in understanding what others were doing than
-in comprehending what they were saying. A mason did not require to be
-a learned man to chisel what he had carved ever since he was a boy,
-and what alone he had seen being done during his lifetime, and he
-adapted new forms just in the same manner and as naturally as men adapt
-new modes of expression in language as they happen to be introduced,
-without even remarking it. At that time any educated man could design
-in Gothic Art, just as any man who can read and write can now compose
-and give utterance to any poetry or prose that may be in him.
-
-“Where art is a true art, it is naturally practised and as easily
-understood, as a vernacular literature of which, indeed, it is an
-essential and most expressive part, and so it was in Greece and
-Rome, and so, too, in the Middle Ages. But with us it is little more
-than a dead corpse, galvanised into spasmodic life by a few selected
-practitioners for the amusement and delight of a small section of
-the specially educated classes. It expresses truthfully neither our
-wants nor our feelings, and we ought not to be surprised how very
-unsatisfactory every modern building really is, even when executed
-by the most talented architects as compared with the productions of
-our village mason or parish priest at an age when men sought only to
-express clearly what they felt strongly, and sought to do it only in
-their natural mother tongue, untrammelled by the fetters of a dead or
-familiar foreign form of speech.”[319]
-
-To any one who will examine the churchwardens’ accounts of the period
-previous to the religious changes, the truth of the above quotation
-will clearly appear. Then, if ever, ecclesiastical art and architecture
-was the living expression of popular feeling and popular love of
-religion, and the wholesale destruction of ancient architectural
-monuments throughout the land, the pulling down of rood and screen and
-image, the casting down of monuments sacred to the memory of the best
-and holiest and most venerated names in the long roll of English men
-of honour, the breaking up of stone-work and metal-work upon which
-the marks of the chisel of the mason and graver were yet fresh, the
-whitewash daubed over paintings which had helped to make the parish
-churches objects of beauty and interest to the people, the ruthless
-smashing of the pictured window lights, and the pillage of the sacred
-vessels and vestments and hangings, which the people and their fathers
-had loved to provide for God’s service--all this and much more of the
-same kind, the perhaps inevitable accompaniments of the religious
-change, was nothing less to the people than proscription by authority
-of the national language of art and architecture, such as they had
-hitherto understood it. And never probably had the language been more
-truly the language of the people at large. For reasons just assigned,
-the work of church building and church decoration, and the provision
-of vestments and plate, the care of the fabric and the very details
-of things necessary for the church services, were in the hands of the
-people. The period in question had given rise to the great middle
-class, and here, as in Germany, the burgher folk, the merchants and
-traders, began literally to lavish their gifts in adornment of their
-parish churches, and to vie one with another in the profusion of their
-generosity.
-
-It is somewhat difficult for us, as we look upon the generally bare
-and unfurnished churches that have been left to us as monuments of
-the past about which we are concerned, to realise what they must have
-been before what a modern writer has fitly called “the great pillage”
-commenced. All, from the great minsters and cathedral churches down
-to the poorest little village sanctuary, were in those days simply
-overflowing with wealth and objects of beauty which loving hands had
-gathered together to adorn God’s house, and to make it the best and
-brightest spot in their little world, and so far as their means would
-allow the very pride of their hearts. This is no fancy picture. The
-inventories of English churches in this period when compared, say,
-with those of Italy, reveal the fact that the former were in every
-way incomparably better furnished than the latter. The Venetian
-traveller in England in 1500 was impressed by this very thing during
-his journeyings throughout the country. He notes and comments upon the
-great sums of money regularly given to the church as a matter of course
-by Englishmen of all sorts. Then after speaking of the important wealth
-of the country as evidenced by the silver plate possessed by all but
-the poorest in the land, he continues: “But above all are their riches
-displayed in the church treasures, for there is not a parish church
-in the kingdom so mean as not to possess crucifixes, candlesticks,
-censers, patens and cups of silver, nor is there a convent of mendicant
-friars so poor as not to have all these same articles in silver,
-besides many other ornaments worthy of a cathedral church in the same
-metal. Your magnificence may therefore imagine what the decorations
-of those enormously rich Benedictine, Carthusian, and Cistercian
-monasteries must be.… I have been informed that amongst other things
-many of these monasteries possess unicorns’ horns of an extraordinary
-size. I have also been told that they have some splendid tombs of
-English saints, such as St. Oswald, St. Edmund, and St. Edward, all
-kings and martyrs. I saw, one day being with your magnificence, at
-Westminster, a place out of London, the tomb of that saint, King Edward
-the Confessor, in the church of the foresaid place, Westminster; and
-indeed, neither St. Martin of Tours, a church in France, which I have
-heard is one of the richest in existence, nor anything else that I have
-ever seen, can be put into comparison with it. The magnificence of the
-tomb of St. Thomas the Martyr, Archbishop of Canterbury, surpasses all
-belief.”
-
-Our present concern, however, is not with the greater churches of
-the kingdom, but with the parish churches which were scattered in
-such profusion all over the country. An examination of such parochial
-accounts as are still preserved affords an insight into the working
-of the parish, and evidences the care taken by the people to maintain
-and increase the treasures of their churches. What is most remarkable
-about the accounts that remain, which are, of course, but the scanty
-survivals from the wreck, is their consistent tenor. They one and all
-tell the same story of general and intelligent interest taken by the
-people as a whole in the beautifying and supporting of their parish
-churches. In a very real sense, that seems strange to us now, it was
-_their_ church; their life centred in it, and they were intimately
-concerned in its working and management. The articles of furniture and
-plate, the vestments and hangings had a well-known history, and were
-regarded as--what in truth they were--the common property of every
-soul in the particular village or district. Such accounts as we are
-referring to prove that specific gifts and contributions continued to
-flow in an ample stream to the churches from men and women of every
-sort and condition up to the very eve of the great religious changes.
-
-From these and similar records we may learn a good deal about parochial
-life and interests in the closing period of the old ecclesiastical
-system. The church was the common care and business. Its welfare was
-the concern of the people at large, and took its natural place in their
-daily lives. Was there any building to be done, a new peal of bells to
-be procured, the organs to be mended, new plate to be bought, or the
-like, it was the parish as a corporate body that decided the matter,
-arranged the details, and provided for the payment. At times, say for
-example when a new vestment was in question, the whole parish would be
-called to sit in council in the church house upon this matter of common
-interest, and discuss the cost, and stuff, and make.
-
-To take some examples: the inventory of Cranbrook parish church for
-1509 shows that all benefactors were regularly noted down on a roll of
-honour, that their gifts might be known and remembered. The presents,
-of course, vary greatly in value: thus, there was a monstrance of
-silver and gilt of the “value of £20, of Sir Robert Egelonby’s gift;
-which Sir Robert was John Roberts’ priest thirty years, and he never
-had other service nor benefice; and the said John Roberts was father to
-Walter Roberts, Esquire.” And the foresaid Sir Robert gave also to the
-common treasury of the parish “two candlesticks of silver and twenty
-marks of old nobles.” Again John Hendely “gave three copes of purple
-velvet, whereof one was of velvet upon velvet with images broidered,”
-and, adds the inventory, “for a perpetual memory of this deed of
-goodness to the common purposes of the parish church, his name is to be
-read out to the people on festival days.” “He is grandfather of Gervase
-Hendely of Cushorn, and of Thomas of Cranbrook Street.” Or once more,
-it is recorded that “old mother Hopper” gave the “two long candlesticks
-before Our Lady’s altar, fronted with lions, and a towel on the rood of
-Our Lady’s chancel.”
-
-So, too, the inventory of the church goods of St. Dunstan’s,
-Canterbury, includes a wonderful list of furniture, plate, and
-vestments to which the names of the donors are attached. Thus, the best
-chalice was the gift of one “Harry Bole”; the two great candlesticks of
-laten of John Philpot; and “a kercher for Our Lady and a chapplet and a
-powdryd cap for her Son,” the gift of Margery Roper.
-
-The memory of these gifts was kept alive among the people by the
-“bede-roll” or list of those for whom the parish was bound to pray
-in return for their benefactions to the public good. Thus to take an
-example: at Leverton, in the county of Lincoln, the parson, Sir John
-Wright, presented the church with a suit of red purple vestments, “for
-the which,” says the note in the churchwardens’ accounts, “you shall
-all specially pray for the souls of William Wright and Elizabeth his
-wife (father and mother of the donor), and for the soul of Sir William
-Wright, their son, and for the soul of Sir John, sometime parson of
-this place, and for the souls of Richard Wright and Isabel his wife,
-John Trowting and Helen his wife, and for all benefactors, as well them
-that be alive as them that be departed to the mercy of God, for whose
-lives and souls are given here (these vestments) to the honour of God,
-His most blessed Mother, Our Lady Saint Mary, and all His Saints in
-Heaven, and the blessed matron St. Helen his patron, to be used at such
-principal feasts and times as it shall please the curates as long as
-they shall last. For all these souls and all Christian souls you shall
-say one Paternoster.”[320]
-
-In this way the memory of benefactors and their good deeds was ever
-kept alive in the minds of those who benefited by their gifts. The
-parish treasury was not to them so much stock, the accumulation
-of years, without definite history or purpose; but every article,
-vestment, banner, hanging, and chalice, and the rest called for the
-affectionate memories of both the living and the dead. On high day
-and festival, when the church was decked with all that was best and
-richest in the parochial treasury, the display of the parish ornaments
-recalled to the mind of the people assembled within its walls the
-memory of good deeds done by neighbours for the common good. “The
-immense treasures in the churches,” writes Dr. Jessop, “were the joy
-and boast of every man and woman and child in England, who day by day
-and week by week assembled to worship in the old houses of God which
-they and their fathers had built, and whose every vestment and chalice
-and candlestick and banner, organs and bells and picture and image
-and altar and shrine, they looked upon as their own and part of their
-birthright.”[321]
-
-What seems so strange about the facts revealed to us in these church
-accounts of bygone times is that, where now we might naturally be
-inclined to look for poverty and meanness, there is evidence of the
-contrary, so far as the parish church is concerned. Even when the
-lives of the parishioners were spent in daily labours to secure the
-bare necessities of life, and the village was situated in the most
-out-of-the-way part of the country, the sordid surroundings of a hard
-life find no counterpart in the parish accounts so far as the church
-is concerned, but even under such unfavourable circumstances there
-is evidence of a taste for things of art and beauty, and of both the
-will and power to procure them. To take some examples: Morebath was
-a small uplandish parish of no importance lying within the borders
-of Devon, among the hills near the sources of the river Exe. The
-population was scanty, and worldly riches evidently not abundant.
-Morebath may, consequently, be taken as a fair sample of an obscure
-and poor village community. For this hamlet we possess fairly full
-accounts for the close of the period under consideration, namely, from
-the year 1530. At this time, in this poor place, there were no less
-than eight separate accounts kept of money intended for the support of
-different altars, or for carrying out definite decorations, such as,
-for example, the chapels of St. George and Our Lady, and the guilds
-of the young men and maidens of the parish. To the credit of these
-various accounts, or “stores,” as they are called, are entered numerous
-gifts of money, or articles of value, and even of kind, like cows and
-swarms of bees. Most of them are possessed of cattle and sheep, the
-proceeds from the rent of which form a considerable portion of their
-endowment. The accounts as a whole furnish abundant evidence of active
-and intelligent interest in the support and adornment of the parish
-church on the part of the people at large. Voluntary rates to clear
-off obligations contracted for the benefit of the community, such as
-the purchase of bells, the repair of the fabric, or even the making of
-roads and bridges, were raised. Collections for Peter’s pence, for the
-support of the parish clerk, and for various other church purposes,
-are recorded, and the spirit of self-help is evidenced in every line
-of these records. In 1528 the vicar gave up his rights to certain wool
-tithes in order to purchase a complete set of black vestments, which
-were only finished and paid for, at the cost of £6, 5s. 0d., in 1547.
-In the year 1538, the parish made a voluntary rate to purchase a new
-cope, and the collection for the purpose secured £3, 6s. 8d. When in
-1534 the silver chalice was stolen, “ye yong men and maydens of ye
-parysshe dru themselffe together, and at ther gyfts and provysyon they
-bought in another chalice without any charge of the parysshe.” Sums of
-money big and small, specific gifts in kind, the stuff or ornaments
-needed for vestments, were apparently always forthcoming when occasion
-required. Thus at one time a new cope is suggested, and Anne Tymwell
-of Hayne gave the churchwardens her “gown and ring,” Joan Tymwell a
-cloak and girdle, and Richard Norman “seven sheep and three shillings
-and four pence in money,” towards the expenses. At another time it is
-a set of black vestments; at another a chalice; at another a censer;
-but whatever it was, the people were evidently ready and desirous
-of taking their share in the common work of the parish. In 1529 the
-wardens state that Elinor Nicoll gave to the store of St. Sydwell her
-wedding-ring--“the which ring,” they add, “did help to make Saint
-Sydwell’s shoes.” Then she gave to “the store of Jesus” a little silver
-cross, parcel gilt, of the value of 4d. In 1537 there is one item which
-deserves to be noted, as it records the arrival of a piece of spoil
-from Barlinch Abbey Church, which was dissolved by the king’s orders
-the previous year. “Memorandum,” runs the entry, “Hugh Poulett gave to
-the church one of the glass windows of the Barlinch, with the iron and
-stone and all the price” for setting it up.[322]
-
-To understand the working of the pre-Reformation parish, it is
-necessary to enter in detail into some one of the accounts that are
-still preserved to us. We may conveniently take those of Leverton in
-Lincolnshire, printed in the _Archæologia_, which commence in the year
-1492. It is well to note, however, that the same story of self-help and
-the same evidence of a spirit of affection for the parish church and
-its services, is manifested in every account of this kind we possess.
-It must be remembered that it was popular government in a true sense
-that then regulated all parochial matters. Every adult of both sexes
-had a voice in this system of self-government, and what cannot fail to
-strike the student of these records is that, in the management of the
-fabric, in the arrangements for the services, and all things necessary
-for the due performance of these, diocesan authorities evidently
-left to the parish itself a wise discretion. No doubt the higher
-ecclesiastical officials could interfere in theory, but in practice
-such interference was rare. If the means necessary to carry out repairs
-and keep the church in an efficient state, both as to fabric and
-ornaments, were apparently never wanting, it must be borne in mind that
-it was then regarded as a solemn duty binding on the conscience of each
-parishioner to maintain the House of God and the parochial services.
-Bishop Hobhouse, from an examination of the churchwardens’ accounts
-for some parishes in Somerset, is able to describe the various ways
-in which the parochial exchequer was replenished. First, there were
-the voluntary rates, called “setts,” and these, though voluntary in
-the sense that their imposition depended on the will of the people at
-large, when once the parish had declared for the rate, all were bound
-to pay. Then the mediæval church authorities cultivated various methods
-of eliciting the goodwill of the people, and after prohibiting work
-on Sundays and certain festivals, busied themselves with the finding
-of amusements. Amongst these were the parish feasts and church ales,
-at which collections for various public purposes were made, which,
-together with the profits made from such entertainments by those who
-managed them for the benefit of the public purse, formed one of the
-chief sources of parochial income. Beyond this, the principle of
-association was thoroughly understood and carried out in practice in
-the village and town communities. People banded themselves together
-in religious guilds and societies, the _raison d’être_ of which was
-the maintenance of special decorations at special altars, the support
-of lamps and lights, or the keeping of obits and festivals. These
-societies, moreover, became the centres of organisation of any needed
-special collections, and from their funds, or “stores” as they were
-called, they contributed to the general expenses of maintaining the
-fabric and the services. Popular bounty was, moreover, elicited by
-means of the “bede-roll,” or list of public benefactors, for whom
-the prayers of the parishioners were asked in the church on great
-festivals. On this list of honour, all--even the poorest--were anxious
-that their names should appear, and that their memory be kept and their
-souls prayed for in the House of God which they had loved in life. Even
-more than money, which in those days, especially in out-of-the-way
-places, was not over plentiful, the churchwardens’ accounts show that
-specific gifts of all kinds, either to be sold for the profit of the
-purpose for which they were bestowed, or to form a permanent part of
-the church treasury, were common in pre-Reformation times.
-
-Added to these sources of income were the profits of trade carried
-on in the “church house.” Besides the church itself, the wardens’
-accounts testify to the existence of a church house, if not as a
-universal feature in mediæval parish life, at least as a very common
-one. It was the parish club-house--the centre of parochial life and
-local self-government; the place where the community would assemble
-for business and pleasure. It was thus the focus of all the social
-life of the parish, and the system was extending in influence and
-utility up to the eve of the great religious changes which put an end
-to the popular side of parochial life. At Tintinhull, a small village
-in Somerset, for example, the accounts help us to trace the growth
-of this parish club-house. Beginning as a place for making the altar
-bread, it developed into a bakery for the supply of the community. It
-then took up the brewing of beer to supply the people and the church
-ales and similar parish festivals. This soon grew into the brewing of
-beer to supply those who required a supply, and at the same time the
-oven and brewing utensils were let out to hire to private persons. In
-the reign of Henry VII. a house was bought by the wardens for parish
-purposes, and one Agnes Cook was placed in it to manage it for the
-common benefit. In 1533 it was in full swing as a parish club-house,
-used for business and pleasure.[323] The “ale”--the forerunner of the
-wardens’ “charity dinner”--was the ordinary way of raising money to
-meet extraordinary expenses; and as an incidental accompaniment came
-invitations to other parishes in the neighbourhood, and we find items
-charged for the expenses of churchwardens attending at other parochial
-feasts, and the sums they there put into the collection plate.
-
-Beyond this, the parish, as a corporate body generally, if not
-invariably, possessed property in land and houses, which was
-administered by the people’s wardens for the public good. The annual
-proceeds lightened the common burdens, as indeed it was intended that
-they should. A further source of occasional income was found in the
-parish plays which were managed for the common profit. Very frequently
-the production was entrusted to some local guild, and the expenses
-of mounting were advanced by the parochial authorities, who not
-infrequently had amongst the church treasures the dress and other stage
-properties necessary for the proper productions. At Tintinhull, in
-Somerset, for instance, in 1451, five parishioners got up a Christmas
-play for the benefit of the fund required for the erection of the
-new rood loft. At Morebath there was an Easter play representing the
-Resurrection of our Lord, to defray the expenses incurred by the parish
-on some extensive repairs.[324]
-
-With this general notion of the working of pre-Reformation parochial
-accounts, we are now in a position to turn by way of a particular
-example to those of Leverton. The village is situated about six miles
-from Boston. The church, until the neglect of the past three hundred
-years had disfigured it, must have been very beautiful when decked with
-the furniture and ornaments which the loving care of the people of the
-neighbourhood had collected within its walls. When first the accounts
-open in 1492, the parish was beginning to be interested, as indeed, by
-the way, so many parishes were at this period, in the setting up of
-a new peal of bells. The people had evidently made a great effort to
-get these, and they contributed most generously. The rector promised
-ten shillings and sixpence--which sum, by the way, some one paid for
-him--but the whole arrangement for the purchase and hanging of the
-bells was in the hands of the churchwardens. The bell chamber was
-mended and timber was bought to strengthen the framework. When this
-was ready, the great bell was brought over from the neighbouring town,
-and money is disbursed for the carriage and the team of horses, not
-forgetting a penny for the toll in crossing a bridge. One William
-Wright of Benington came over professionally to superintend the hanging
-and “trossyng” of this great service bell. We may judge, however, that
-it was not altogether satisfactory, for in 1498 the two wardens made
-a “move” to “the gathering of the township of Leverton in the kirk,”
-in which they collected £4, 13s. 0d., and they forthwith commenced
-again the building of a steeple for another set of bells. The stone
-was given to them, but they had to see to the work of quarrying it,
-and to all the business of collecting material and of building. Trees
-in a neighbouring wood were bought, were cut and carried, and sawn
-into beams and boards, and poles were selected for scaffolding. Lime
-was burnt and sand was dug for the mortar, and tubs were purchased to
-mix it in, whilst Wreth, the carpenter, was retained to look after the
-building in general, and the timberwork of the new belfry in particular.
-
-This seems to have exhausted the parish exchequer for a year or two,
-but in 1503 the two wardens attended at Boston to see their bell
-“shot,” and to provide for its transport to Leverton. Here Richard
-Messur, the local blacksmith, had prepared the necessary bolts and
-locks to fasten it to the swinging beam, and he was in attendance
-professionally to see the bell hung, with John Red, the bellmaker of
-Boston, who, moreover, remained for a time to teach the parish men how
-to ring a peal upon their new bells.
-
-As the sixteenth century progressed, a great deal of building and
-repairs was undertaken by the parish authorities. In 1503, a new font
-was ordered, and a deputation went to Frieston, about three miles from
-Leverton, to inspect and pass the work. The lead for the lining was
-procured, and it was cast on the spot. In 1517, repairs on the north
-side of the church were undertaken, and these must have been extensive,
-judging from the cost of the timber employed to shore up the walls
-during the progress of the work. Two years later, on the completion
-of these extensive building operations, which had been going on for
-some time, the church and churchyard were consecrated at a cost to
-the public purse of £3. In 1526, the rood loft was decorated, and the
-niches intended for images of the saints, but which had hitherto been
-vacant, were filled. One of the parishioners, William Frankish, in that
-year left a legacy of 46s. 8d. for the purpose. The wardens hired a
-man, called sometimes “the alabaster man,” and sometimes “Robert Brook
-the carver,” and in earnest for the seventeen images of alabaster of
-the rood loft they gave him a shilling. At the same time a collection
-was made for the support of the artist during his stay; some of the
-parishioners gave money, but most of them apparently contributed
-“cheese” for his use.
-
-So much with regard to the serious building operations which were
-continued up to the very eve of the Reformation. They by no means
-occupied all the energies of the parish officials. If the books
-required binding, a travelling workman was engaged on the job, and
-leather, thread, wax, and other necessary materials were purchased for
-the work; the binder’s wife was paid extra for stitching, and he was
-apparently lodged by one of the townspeople as a contribution to the
-common work. Then there were vestments to be procured, and surplices
-and other church linen to be made, washed, and marked; the very marks,
-by the way, being given in the accounts. So entirely was the whole
-regarded as the work of the people, that just as we have seen how the
-parish paid for the consecration of their parish church and graveyard,
-so did they pay a fee to their own vicar for blessing the altar linen
-and the new vestments, and entering the names of benefactors on the
-parish bede-roll.[325]
-
-Details such as these, which might be multiplied to any extent,
-make it abundantly clear that the church was the centre and soul of
-village life in pre-Reformation times, and that up to the very eve of
-the religious revolution it had not lost its place in the hearts of
-the people. In this connection it is useful to bear in mind, though
-somewhat difficult to realise, inasmuch as it is now too foreign to our
-modern experience, that in the period about which we are concerned the
-“parish” meant the whole community of a well-defined area “organised
-for church purposes and subject to church authority.” In such a
-district, writes Bishop Hobhouse, “every resident was a parishioner,
-and, as such, owed his duty of confession and submission to the
-official guidance of a stated pastor. There was no choice allowed.
-The community was completely organised with a constitution which
-recognised the rights of the whole and of every adult member to a voice
-of self-government when assembled for consultation under” their parish
-priest.[326] In this way the church was the centre of all parish life,
-in a way now almost inconceivable. “From the font to the grave,” says
-an authority on village life at this time, “the greater number of the
-people lived within the sound of its bells. It provided them with all
-the consolations of religion, and linked itself with such amusements as
-it did not directly supply.”[327]
-
-The writer of the above words was specially interested in the accounts
-of the parish of St. Dunstan in the city of Canterbury, and some few
-notes on those accounts founded upon his preface may usefully be added
-to what has already been said. The parochial authorities evidently
-were possessed of considerable power either by custom or consent over
-the inhabitants. In St. Dunstan’s, for example, somewhere about 1485,
-there was some disagreement between a man named Baker and the parish,
-and an item of 2½d. appears in the accounts as spent on the arbitration
-that settled it. Later on, two families fell out, and the vicar and
-a jury of four parishioners met in council to put an end to what was
-considered a scandal. A parish so managed had necessarily some place
-in which the inhabitants of the district could meet, and this in St.
-Dunstan’s is called the _church house_, and sometimes the _parish
-house_. It is frequently mentioned in the matters of repairs, &c.,
-and two dozen trenchers and spoons, the property of the parish, were
-placed there for use at the common feasts, and for preparation of food
-distributed to the poor. The annual dinner is named in the accounts,
-and there is no doubt the young people too had dancing, bowling, and
-other games, while “the ancients sat gravely by.”
-
-The money needed for the repairs of the fabric and for parish work
-generally was here collected by the various brotherhoods connected
-with the church. Some wore “scutchons” or badges to show that they
-were authorised to beg. These brotherhoods were possessed of more than
-money; malt, wheat, barley, besides parish sheep and parish cows let
-out to the highest bidder, are mentioned in the accounts as belonging
-to them. One Nicholas Reugge, for example, left four cows to the people
-of the parish to free them for ever from the cost of supplying the
-“paschal,” or great Easter candle. These four cows were valued by the
-churchwardens at 10s. apiece, and were each let at a rent of 2s. a
-year. In 1521, one John Richardson rented five-and-twenty of the parish
-sheep, and the wardens received rent of lambs, wool, &c. The chief
-of the brotherhoods connected with St. Dunstan’s was that named the
-“Schaft,” and it had the principal voice in the ultimate management
-of parochial affairs. Besides this, however, there were many other
-associations, such as that of St. Anne for women and that of St. John
-for youths, and various wardens were appointed to collect the money
-necessary to keep the various lights, such as St. Anne’s light, St.
-John’s light, St. Katherine’s light, and the light of the Holy Rood.
-“These things,” writes the editor of these interesting accounts, “all
-go to show what life and activity there was in this little parish,
-which never wanted willing men to devote their time and influence to
-the management of their own affairs.”
-
-The parish was small, numbering perhaps hardly more than 400 souls.
-“But if small,” says the same authority, “it was thoroughly efficient,
-and the religious and intellectual work was as actively carried on
-as the social.” At the close of the reign of Henry VIII. the church
-possessed a library of some fifty volumes. Of these about a dozen were
-religious plays, part, no doubt, of the Corpus Christi mystery plays,
-which were carried out at St. Dunstan’s with undiminished splendour
-till the advent of the new ideas in the reign of Edward VI.
-
-These parish accounts prove that many cases of disagreement and
-misunderstanding, which in modern times would most likely lead to
-long and protracted cases in the Law Courts, were not infrequently
-settled by arbitration, or by means of a parish meeting or a jury
-of neighbours. Sometimes, undoubtedly, the law had to be invoked
-in defence of parochial rights. A case in point is afforded in the
-accounts of St. Dunstan’s, Canterbury. Nicholas Reugge, as we have
-said above, had left money to purchase four cows as an endowment for
-the Paschal candle and the Font taper. Things went well, apparently,
-till 1486, when William Belser, who rented the stock, died, and his
-executors either could not or would not, or, at any rate, did not pay.
-To recover the common property, the churchwardens, as trustees for
-the parish, had to commence a suit at law. Chief-Justice Fineux and
-Mr. Attorney-General John Roper were two of the parishioners, and the
-parish had their advice, it may be presumed gratuitously. The case,
-however, seems to have dragged on for five years, as it was finally
-settled only in 1491, when the parish scored a pyrrhic victory, for
-although they recovered 30s., the value of three of the cows, their
-costs had mounted up to 35s. 2d., and as they never could get more than
-a third of that amount from the defendants, on the whole they were out
-of pocket by their adventure with the law.
-
-For the most part, however, the parish settled its own difficulties in
-its own way. Documents preserved almost by chance clearly show that
-a vast number of small cases--police cases we should call them--were
-in pre-Reformation days arranged by the ecclesiastical authority.
-Disputes, brawls, libels, minor immoralities, and the like, which
-nowadays would have to be dealt with by the local justices of the peace
-or by the magistrates at quarter sessions, or even by the judges at
-assizes, were disposed of by the parson and the parish. It may not
-have been an ideal system, but it was patriarchal and expeditious. The
-Sunday pulpit was used not only for religious instruction, properly
-so called, and for the “bedes-bidding,” but for the publication of
-an endless variety of notices of common interest. The church was,
-as we have said, the centre of popular life, and it was under
-these circumstances the natural place for the proclamation of the
-commencement of some inquiry into a local suit, or one in which local
-people were concerned. It was here, in the house of God, and at the
-Sunday service at which all were bound to be present, that witnesses
-were cited and accused persons warned of proceedings against them. Here
-was made the declaration of the probate of wills of deceased persons,
-and warning given to claimants against the estate to come forward
-and substantiate their demands. Here, too, were issued proclamations
-against such as did not pay their just debts or detained the goods
-of others; here those who had been guilty of defamation of character
-were ordered to restore the good name of those they had calumniated;
-and those who, having been joined in wedlock, had separated without
-just and approved cause, were warned of the obligations of Christian
-marriage. The transactions of business of this kind in the parish
-church by the parish officials made God’s house a practical reality
-and God’s law a practical code in the ordinary affairs of life, and
-gave religion a living importance in the daily lives of every member of
-every parish throughout the country.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-PRE-REFORMATION GUILD LIFE
-
-
-It would be impossible to fully understand the conditions of life on
-the eve of the Reformation without some knowledge of the working and
-purposes of mediæval guilds. These societies or brotherhoods were so
-common, formed such a real bond of union between people of all ranks
-and conditions of life, and fulfilled so many useful and even necessary
-purposes before their suppression under Edward VI., that a study of
-their principles of organisation and of their practical working cannot
-but throw considerable light on the popular social life of the period.
-To appreciate the position, it is necessary to bear in mind the very
-real hold the Gospel principles of the Christian brotherhood had over
-the minds of all in pre-Reformation days, the extinction of the general
-sense that man did not stand alone being distinctly traceable to the
-tendencies in regard to social matters evolved during the period of
-turmoil initiated by the religious teachings of the Reformers. What
-M. Siméon Luce says about the spirit of common life existing in the
-villages of Normandy in the fourteenth century might be adopted as a
-picture of English life in the fifteenth and early sixteenth centuries.
-“Nobles, priests, religious clerks, sons of the soil who laboured
-at various manual works,” he writes, “lived then, so to say, in
-common, and they are found continually together in all their daily
-occupations. So far from this community of occupations, this familiar
-daily intercourse, being incompatible with the great inequality of
-conditions which then existed, in reality it resulted from it. It was
-where no strict line of demarcation divided the various classes that
-they ordinarily affected to keep at a distance one from the other.”[328]
-
-There can be no doubt as to the nature of the teaching of the English
-Church in regard to the relation which, according to true Christian
-principles, should exist between all classes of society. In particular
-is this seen in all that pertained to the care of the poorer members
-of the Christian family. The evidence appears clear and unmistakable
-enough in pre-Reformation popular sermons and instructions, in formal
-pronouncements of Bishops and Synods, and in books intended for the
-particular teaching of clergy and laity in the necessary duties of the
-Christian man. Whilst fully recognising as a fact that in the very
-nature of things there must ever be the class of those who “have,”
-and the class of those who “have not,” our Catholic forefathers in
-pre-Reformation days knew no such division and distinction between
-the rich man and the poor man as obtained later on, when pauperism,
-as distinct from poverty, had come to be recognised as an inevitable
-consequence of the new era. To the Christian moralist, and even to the
-bulk of Catholic Englishmen, whether secular or lay, in the fifteenth
-century, those who had been blessed by God’s providence with worldly
-wealth were regarded not so much as the fortunate possessors of
-personal riches, their own to do with what they listed, and upon which
-none but they had right or claim, as in the light of stewards of God’s
-good gifts to mankind at large, for the right use and ministration of
-which they were accountable to Him who gave them.
-
-Thus, to take one instance: the proceeds of ecclesiastical benefices
-were recognised in the Constitutions of Legates and Archbishops
-as being in fact as well as in theory the _eleemosynæ et spes
-pauperum_--the alms and the hope of the poor. Those ecclesiastics
-who consumed the revenues of their cures on other than necessary and
-fitting purposes were declared to be “defrauders of the rights of God’s
-poor,” and “thieves of Christian alms intended for them;” whilst the
-English canonists and legal professors who glossed these provisions
-of the Church law gravely discussed the ways in which the poor of a
-parish could vindicate their right to their share in the ecclesiastical
-revenues of the Church.
-
-This “_jus pauperum_,” which is set forth in such a text-book of
-English Law as Lyndwood’s _Provinciale_, is naturally put forth more
-clearly and forcibly in a work intended for popular instruction such
-as _Dives et Pauper_. “To them that have the benefices and goods of
-Holy Church,” writes the author, “it belonged principally to give alms
-and to have the cure of poor people.” To him who squanders the alms
-of the altar on luxury and useless show, the poor may justly point
-and say: “It is ours that you so spend in pomp and vanity!… That thou
-keepest for thyself of the altar passing the honest needful living, it
-is raveny, it is theft, it is sacrilege.” From the earliest days of
-English Christianity the care of the helpless poor was regarded as an
-obligation incumbent on all; and in 1342, Archbishop Stratford, dealing
-with _appropriations_, or the assignment of ecclesiastical revenues to
-the support of some religious house or college, ordered that a portion
-of the tithe should always be set apart for the relief of the poor,
-because, as Bishop Stubbs has pointed out, in England, from the days of
-King Ethelred, “a third part of the tithe” which belonged to the Church
-was the acknowledged birthright of the poorer members of Christ’s flock.
-
-That there was social inequality is as certain as it was inevitable,
-for that is in the very constitution of human society. But this, as
-M. Luce has pointed out in regard to France, and Professor Janssens
-in regard to Germany, in no way detracted from the frank and full
-acknowledgment of the Christian brotherhood. Again and again in the
-sermons of the fifteenth century this truth, with all its practical
-applications, was enforced by the priest at the altar, where both poor
-and rich alike met on a common footing--“all, poor and rich, high and
-low, noble and simple, have sprung from a common stock and are children
-of a common father, Adam:” “God did not create a golden Adam from
-whom the nobles are descended, nor a silver Adam from whom have come
-the rich, and another, a clay Adam, from whom are the poor; but all,
-nobles, rich and poor, have one common father, made out of the dust of
-the earth.” These and similar lessons were constantly repeated by the
-religious teachers of the pre-Reformation English Church.
-
-Equally definite is the author of the book of popular instruction,
-_Dives et Pauper_, above referred to. The sympathy of the writer is
-with the poor, as indeed is that of every ecclesiastical writer of the
-period. In fact, it is abundantly clear that the Church of England in
-Catholic days, as a _pia mater_, was ever ready to open wide her heart
-to aid and protect the poorer members of Christ’s mystical body. This
-is how _Pauper_ in the tract in question states the true Christian
-teaching as to the duties of riches, and impresses upon his readers the
-view that the owners of worldly wealth are but stewards of the Lord:
-“All that the rich man hath, passing his honest living after the degree
-of his dispensation, it is other men’s, not his, and he shall give full
-hard reckoning thereof at the day of doom, when God shall say to him,
-‘Yield account of your bailywick.’ For rich men and lords in this world
-are God’s bailiffs and God’s reeves, to ordain for the poor folk and
-to sustain them.” Most strongly does the same writer insist that no
-property gives any one the right to say “_this is mine_” and that is
-“_thine_,” for property, so far as it is of God, is of the nature of
-governance and dispensation, by which those who, by God’s Providence
-“have,” act as His stewards and the dispensers of His gifts to such as
-“have not.”[329]
-
-It would, of course, be affectation to suggest that poverty and
-great hardness of life were not to be found in pre-Reformation days,
-but what did not exist was pauperism, which, as distinguished from
-poverty, certainly sprung up plentifully amid the ruins of Catholic
-institutions, overthrown as a consequence--perhaps as a necessary and
-useful consequence--of the religious changes in the sixteenth century.
-Bishop Stubbs, speaking of the condition of the poor in the Middle
-Ages, declares that “there is very little evidence to show that our
-forefathers in the middle ranks of life desired to set any impassable
-boundary between class and class.… Even the villein, by learning a
-craft, might set his foot on the ladder of promotion. The most certain
-way to rise was furnished by education, and by the law of the land,
-‘every man or woman, of what state or condition that he be, shall be
-free to set their son or daughter to take learning at any school that
-pleaseth him within the realm.’” Mr. Thorold Rogers, than whom no one
-has ever worked so diligently at the economic history of England, and
-whom none can suspect of undue admiration of the Catholic Church,
-has also left it on record that during the century and a half which
-preceded the era of the Reformation the mass of English labourers
-were thriving under their guilds and trade unions, the peasants were
-gradually acquiring their lands and becoming small freeholders, the
-artisans rising to the position of small contractors and working with
-their own hands at structures which their native genius and experience
-had planned. In a word, according to this high authority, the last
-years of undivided Catholic England formed “the golden age” of the
-Englishman who was ready and willing to work.
-
-“In the age which I have attempted to describe,” writes the same
-authority, “and in describing which I have accumulated and condensed a
-vast amount of unquestionable facts, the rate of production was small,
-the conditions of health unsatisfactory, and the duration of life
-short. But, on the whole, there were none of those extremes of poverty
-and wealth which have excited the astonishment of philanthropists and
-are exciting the indignation of workmen. The age, it is true, had
-its discontents, and these discontents were expressed forcibly and
-in a startling manner. But of poverty which perishes unheeded, of a
-willingness to do honest work and a lack of opportunity there was
-little or none. The essence of life in England during the days of the
-Plantagenets and Tudors was that every one knew his neighbour, and that
-every one was his brother’s keeper.”[330]
-
-In regard to the general care of the poorer brethren of a parish in
-pre-Reformation England, Bishop Hobhouse, after a careful examination
-of the available sources of information, writes as follows: “I can
-only suppose that the brotherhood tie was so strongly realised by
-the community that the weaker ones were succoured by the stronger,
-as out of a family store. The brotherhood tie was, no doubt, very
-much stronger then, when the village community was from generation
-to generation so unalloyed by anything foreign, when all were knit
-together by one faith and one worship and close kindred; but, further
-than this, the guild fellowships must have enhanced all the other
-bonds in drawing men to share their worldly goods as a common stock.
-Covertly, if not overtly, the guildsman bound himself to help his needy
-brother in sickness and age, as he expected his fellow-guildsman to do
-for him in his turn of need, and these bonds, added to a far stronger
-sense of the duty of children towards aged parents than is now found,
-did, I conceive, suffice for the relief of the poor, aided only by the
-direct almsgiving which flowed from the parsonage house, or in favoured
-localities from the doles or broken meat of a monastery.”[331]
-
-To relieve the Reformation from the odious charge that it was
-responsible for the poor-laws, many authors have declared that not only
-did poverty largely exist before, say, the dissolution of the monastic
-houses, but that it would not long have been possible for the ancient
-methods of relieving the distressed to cope with the increase in their
-numbers under the changed circumstances of the sixteenth century. It is
-of course possible to deal with broad assertions only by the production
-of a mass of details, which is, under the present circumstances, out
-of the question, or by assertions equally broad, and I remark that
-there is no evidence of any change of circumstances, so far as such
-changes appear in history, which could not have been fully met by the
-application of the old principles, and met in a way which would never
-have induced the degree of distressing pauperism which, in fact, was
-produced by the application of the social principles adopted at the
-Reformation. The underlying idea of these latter was property in the
-sense of absolute ownership in place of the older and more Christian
-idea of property in the sense of stewardship.
-
-Most certainly the result was not calculated to improve the condition
-of the poorer members of the community. It was they who were made
-to pay, whilst their betters pocketed the price. The well-to-do
-classes, in the process, became richer and more prosperous, whilst the
-“masses” became, as an old writer has it, “mere stark beggars.” As a
-fact, moreover, poverty became rampant, as we should have expected,
-immediately upon the great confiscations of land and other property
-at the dissolution of the religious houses. To take one example: Dr.
-Sharpe’s knowledge of the records of the city of London enables him to
-say that “the sudden closing of these institutions caused the streets
-to be thronged with the sick and poor.”
-
-“The devil,” exclaims a preacher who lived through all these troublous
-times--“the devil cunningly turneth things his own way.” “Examples
-of this we have seen in our time more than I can have leisure to
-express or to rehearse. In the Acts of Parliament that we have had
-made in our days what godly preambles hath gone afore the same; even
-_quasi oraculum Apollinis_, as though the things that follow had come
-from the counsel of the highest in heaven; and yet the end hath been
-either to destroy abbeys or chauntries or colleges, or such like, by
-the which some have gotten much land, and have been made men of great
-possessions. But many an honest poor man hath been undone by it, and an
-innumerable multitude hath perished for default and lack of sustenance.
-And this misery hath long continued, and hath not yet (1556) an end.
-Moreover, all this commotion and fray was made under pretence of a
-common profit and common defence, but in very deed it was for private
-and proper lucre.”[332]
-
-In the sixty years that followed the overthrow of the old system, it
-was necessary for Parliament to pass no less than twelve acts dealing
-with the relief of distress, the necessity for which, Thorold Rogers
-says, “can be traced distinctly back to the crimes of rulers and
-agents.” I need not characterise the spirit which is manifested in
-these acts, where poverty and crime are treated as indistinguishable.
-
-Dr. Jessop writes: “In the general scramble of the _Terror_ under
-Henry the Eighth, and of the _anarchy_ in the days of Edward the Sixth
-… the monasteries were plundered even to their very pots and pans.
-The almshouses, in which old men and women were fed and clothed, were
-robbed to the last pound, the poor almsfolk being turned out in the
-cold at an hour’s warning to beg their bread. The splendid hospitals
-for the sick and needy, sometimes magnificently provided with nurses
-and chaplains, whose very _raison d’être_ was that they were to look
-after the care of those who were past caring for themselves, these were
-stripped of all their belongings, the inmates sent out to hobble into
-some convenient dry ditch to lie down and die in, or to crawl into some
-barn or house, there to be tended, not without fear of consequences,
-by some kindly man or woman, who could not bear to see a suffering
-fellow-creature drop down and die at their own doorposts.”[333]
-
-Intimately connected with the subject of the care of the poor in
-pre-Reformation days is obviously that of the mediæval guilds which,
-more than anything else, tended to foster the idea of the Christian
-brotherhood up to the eve of the religious changes.
-
-It would probably be a mistake to suppose that these societies existed
-everywhere throughout the country in equal numbers. Mr. Thorold
-Rogers, it is true, says--and the opinion of one who has done so much
-work in every kind of local record must carry great weight--that “few
-parishes were probably without guild lands.” But there is certainly
-no distinct evidence that this was the case, especially in counties
-say like Hampshire, always sparsely populated as compared with other
-districts in the east of England, and where the people largely depended
-on agricultural pursuits for a living. It was in the great centres
-of trade and manufacture that the guilds were most numerous and most
-important, for it was precisely in those parts that the advantages of
-mutual help and co-operation outside the parish bond were most apparent
-and combination was practically possible.
-
-An examination of the existing records leads to a general division of
-mediæval guilds into two classes--_Craft_ or _Trade_ associations, and
-_Religious_ or, as some prefer now to call them, _Social_ guilds. The
-former, as their name implies, had, as the special object of their
-existence, the protection of some work, trade or handicraft, and in
-this for practical purposes we may include those associations of
-traders or merchants known under the name of “guild-merchants.” Such,
-for instance, were the great companies of the city of London, and it
-was in reality under the plea that they were trading societies that
-they were saved in the general destruction which overtook all similar
-fraternities and associations in the sixteenth century. The division
-of guilds into the two classes named above is, however, after all more
-a matter of convenience than a real distinction founded on fact. All
-guilds, no matter for what special purpose they were founded, had the
-same general characteristic of brotherly aid and social charity; and
-no guild was divorced from the ordinary religious observances commonly
-practised by all such bodies in those days.
-
-It is often supposed that, for the most part, what are called
-religious guilds existed for the purpose of promoting or encouraging
-the religious practices, such as the attendance at church on certain
-days, the taking part in ecclesiastical processions, the recitations
-of offices and prayers, and the like. Without doubt, there were such
-societies in pre-Reformation days--such as, for example, the great
-Guild of Corpus Christi, in the city of York, which counted its members
-by thousands. But such associations were the exception, not the rule.
-An examination of the existing statutes and regulations of ancient
-guilds will show how small a proportion these purely _Ecclesiastical_
-guilds formed of the whole number of associations known as Religious
-guilds. The origin of the mistaken notion is obvious. In mediæval
-days--that is, in times when such guilds flourished--the word
-“religious” had a wider, and what most people who reflect will be
-inclined to think, a truer signification than has obtained in later
-times. Religion was then understood to include the exercise of the
-two commandments of charity--the love of God and the love of one’s
-neighbour--and the exercises of practical charity to which guild
-brethren were bound by their guild statutes were considered as much
-religious practices as attendance at church or the taking part in an
-ecclesiastical procession. In these days, as Mr. Brentano in his essay
-_On the History and Development of Guilds_ has pointed out, most of
-the objects, to promote which the guilds existed, would now be called
-social duties, but they were then regarded as true objects of Christian
-charity. Mutual assistance, the aid of the poor, of the helpless, of
-the sick, of strangers, of pilgrims and prisoners, the burial of the
-dead, even the keeping of schools and schoolmasters, and other such
-like works were held to be “exercises of religion.”[334]
-
-If the word “religious” be thought now to give a wrong impression about
-the nature of associations, the main object of which was to secure the
-performance of duties we should now call “social,” quite as false an
-impression would be conveyed by the word “social” as applied to them.
-A “social” society would inevitably suggest to many in these days an
-association for convivial meetings, and this false notion of the nature
-of a mediæval guild would be further strengthened by the fact that in
-many, if not most, of them a yearly, and sometimes a more frequent
-feast existed under an item in their statutes. This guild feast,
-however, was a mere incident in the organisation, and in no case did it
-form what we might consider the end or purpose of the association.
-
-By whichever name we call them, and assuming the religious basis
-which underlay the whole social life in the fifteenth century, the
-character and purpose of these mediæval guilds cannot in reality be
-misunderstood. Broadly speaking, they were the benefit societies
-and the provident associations of the middle ages. They undertook
-towards their members the duties now frequently performed by burial
-clubs, by hospitals, by almshouses, and by guardians of the poor.
-Not infrequently they acted for the public good of the community in
-the mending of roads and the repair of bridges, and for the private
-good of their members, in the same way that insurance companies to-day
-compensate for loss by fire or accident. The very reason of their
-existence was the affording of mutual aid and assistance in meeting
-the pecuniary demands which were constantly arising from burials,
-legal exactions, penal fines and all other kinds of payments and
-compensations. Mr. Toulmin Smith thus defines their object: “The
-early English guild was an institution of local self-help which,
-before the poor-laws were invented, took the place in old times of the
-modern friendly or benefit society, but with a higher aim; while it
-joined all classes together in the care of the needy and for objects
-of common welfare, it did not neglect the forms and practice of
-religion, justice, and morality,”[335] which I may add was, indeed, the
-main-spring of their life and action.
-
-“The guild lands,” writes Mr. Thorold Rogers, “were a very important
-economical fact in the social condition of early England. The guilds
-were the benefit societies of the time from which impoverished members
-could be, and were, aided. It was an age in which the keeping of
-accounts was common and familiar. Beyond question, the treasurers of
-the village guild rendered as accurate an annual statement of their
-fraternity as a bailiff did to his lord.… It is quite certain that the
-town and country guilds obviated pauperism in the middle ages, assisted
-in steadying the price of labour, and formed a permanent centre for
-those associations which fulfilled the function that in more recent
-times trades unions have striven to satisfy.”[336]
-
-An examination of the various articles of association contained in the
-returns made into the Chancery in 1389, and other similar documents,
-shows how wide was the field of Christian charity covered by these
-“fraternities.” First and foremost amongst these works of religion
-must be reckoned the burial of the dead; regulations as to which are
-invariably to be found in all the guild statutes. Then, very generally,
-provisions for help to the poor, sick, and aged. In some, assistance
-was to be given to those who were overtaken by misfortune, whose goods
-had been damaged or destroyed by fire or flood, or had been diminished
-by loss or robbery; in others, money was found as a loan to such as
-needed temporary assistance. In the guild at Ludlow, in Shropshire, for
-instance, “any good girl of the guild had a dowry provided for her if
-her father was too poor to find one himself.” The “guild-merchant” of
-Coventry kept a lodging-house with thirteen beds, “to lodge poor folk
-coming through the land on pilgrimage or other work of charity,” with
-a keeper of the house and a woman to wash the pilgrims’ feet. A guild
-at York found beds and attendance for poor strangers, and the guild of
-Holy Cross in Birmingham kept almshouses for the poor in the town. In
-Hampshire, the guild of St. John at Winchester, which comprised men and
-women of all sorts and conditions, supported a hospital for the poor
-and infirm of the city.
-
-The very mass of material at hand makes the task of selecting examples
-for illustrating some of the objects for which mediæval guilds existed
-somewhat difficult. I take a few such examples at haphazard. The
-organisation of these societies was the same as that which has existed
-in similar associations up to the time of our modern trades unions. A
-meeting was held at which officers were elected and accounts audited;
-fines for non-acceptance of office were frequently imposed, as well
-as for absence from the common meeting. Often members had to declare
-on oath that they would fulfil their voluntary obligations, and would
-keep secret the affairs of the society. Persons of ill-repute were not
-admitted, and members who disgraced the fraternity were expelled. For
-example, the first guild statutes printed by Mr. Toulmin Smith are
-those of Garlekhithe, London. They begin: “In worship of God Almighty
-our Creator and His Mother Saint Mary, and all Saints, and St. James
-the Apostle, a fraternity is begun by good men in the Church of St.
-James, at Garlekhith in London, on the day of Saint James, the year of
-our Lord 1375, for the amendment of their lives and of their souls, and
-to nourish greater love between the brethren and sisters of the said
-brotherhood.” Each of them has sworn on the Book to perform the points
-underwritten.
-
-“First: all those that are, or shall be, in the said brotherhood
-shall be of good life, condition, and behaviour, and shall love God
-and Holy Church and their neighbours, as Holy Church commands.” Then,
-after various provisions as to meetings and payments to be made to
-the general funds, the statutes order that “if any of the foresaid
-brethren fall into such distress that he hath nothing, and cannot,
-on account of old age or sickness, help himself, if he has been in
-the brotherhood seven years, and during that time has performed all
-duties, he shall have every week after from the common box fourteen
-pence (_i.e._ about £1 a week of our money) for the rest of his life,
-unless he recovers from his distress.”[337] In one form or other
-this provision for the assistance of needy members is repeated in
-the statutes of almost every guild. Some provide for help in case of
-distress coming “through any chance, through fire or water, thieves or
-sickness, or any other haps.” Some, besides granting this kind of aid,
-add: “and if so befall that he be young enough to work, and he fall
-into distress, so that he have nothing of his own to help himself with,
-then the brethren shall help him, each with a portion as he pleases in
-the way of charity.”[338] Others furnish loans from the common fund to
-enable brethren to tide over temporary difficulties: “and if the case
-falleth that any of the brotherhood have need to borrow a certain sum
-of silver, he (can) go to the keepers of the box and take what he hath
-need of, so that the sum be not so large that any one may not be helped
-as well as another, and that he leave a sufficient pledge, or else
-find a sufficient security among the brotherhood.”[339] Some, again,
-make the contributions to poor brethren a personal obligation on the
-members, such as a farthing a week from each of the brotherhood, unless
-the distress has been caused by individual folly or waste. Others
-extend their Christian charity to relieve distress beyond the circle
-of the brotherhood--that is, of all “whosoever falls into distress,
-poverty, lameness, blindness, sent by the grace of God to them, even
-if he be a thief proven, he shall have seven pence a week from the
-brothers and sisters to assist him in his need.”[340] Some of the
-guilds in seaside districts provide for help in case of “loss through
-the sea,” and there is little doubt that in mediæval days the great
-work carried on by such a body as the Royal Lifeboat Society would
-have been considered a work of religion, and the fitting object of a
-religious guild.
-
-It would be tedious to multiply examples of the purposes and scope of
-the old fraternities, and it is sufficient to repeat that there was
-hardly any kind of social service which in some form or other was not
-provided for by these voluntary associations. As an illustration of the
-working of a trade or craft guild, we may take that of the “Pinners” of
-the city of London, the register of which, dating from A.D. 1464, is
-now in the British Museum.[341] These are some of the chief articles
-approved for the guild by the Mayor and Corporation of the city of
-London: (1) No foreigner to be allowed to keep a shop for the sale of
-pins. (2) No foreigner to take to the making of pins without undergoing
-previous examinations and receiving the approval of the guild officers.
-(3) No master to receive another master’s workman. (4) If a servant
-or workman who has served his master faithfully fall sick he shall be
-kept by the craft. (5) Power to the craft to expel those who do ill and
-bring discredit upon it. (6) Work at the craft at nights, on Saturdays,
-and on the eves of feasts is strictly prohibited. (7) Sunday closing is
-rigidly enforced.
-
-It is curious to find, four hundred years ago, so many of the
-principles set down as established, for which in our days trades unions
-and similar societies are now contending. It has been remarked above,
-that even in the case of craft guilds, such as this Society of Pinners
-undoubtedly was, many of the ordinary purposes of the religious guilds
-were looked to equally with the more obvious object of protecting the
-special trade or handicraft of the specific society. The accounts of
-this Pinners’ Guild fully bear out this view. For example: We have
-the funeral services for departed brethren, and the usual _trentals_,
-or thirty masses, for deceased members. Then we find: “4d. to the wax
-chandlers’ man for setting up of our lights at St. James.” One of the
-members, William Clarke, borrowed 5s. 10d. from the common chest, to
-secure which he placed a gold ring in pledge. There are also numerous
-payments for singers at the services held on the feast days of the
-guild, and for banners and other hangings for processions.
-
-Of payments for the specific ends of the guild there are, of course,
-plenty of examples. For instance: spurious pins and “other ware”
-are searched for and burnt by the craft officers, and this at such
-distances from London as Salisbury and the fair at Stourbridge, near
-Cambridge, the great market for East Anglia and the centre of the
-Flanders trade. “William Mitchell is paid 8d. for pins for the sisters,
-on Saint James’ day.” In 1466, a man is fined 2s. for setting a child
-to work before he had been fully apprenticed; and also another had to
-pay 2s. for working after seven o’clock on a winter night. Later on in
-the accounts we have a man mulcted for keeping a shop before he was
-a “freeman” of the society, and another “for that he sold Flaundres
-pynnes for English pynnes.” At another time, a large consignment of no
-less than 12,000 “pynnes of ware” were forfeited to the craft, and
-sold by them for 8s., which went to the common fund. These accounts
-show also the gradual rise in importance and prosperity which the
-Pinners’ Guild, under the patronage of St. James, manifested. At
-first, the warden and brethren at their yearly visit to Westminster
-were content to hire an ordinary barge upon the Thames, but after a
-few years they had started “a keverid boote” of their own at the cost
-of half-a-crown, in place of the sixpence formerly paid. So, too, in
-the early days of their incorporation they had their annual dinner
-and audited their accounts at some London tavern--the “Mayremayde in
-Bread Street” and “the brew house atte the Sygne of the Rose in Old
-Jury” are two of the places named. Later on they met in some hall
-belonging to another guild, such as the “Armourers’” Hall, and later
-still they built their own Guild Hall and held their banquet there.
-This building made a great demand upon their capital, and the officers
-evidently began to look more carefully after the exaction of fines.
-For late working at this time one of the brethren was mulcted in the
-sum of twenty pence; another was fined twopence for coming late to the
-guild mass, and several others had to pay for neglecting to attend the
-meeting. From the period of starting their own hall, ill-fortune seems
-to have attended the society. About the year 1499, they got involved in
-a great lawsuit with one Thomas Hill, upon which was expended a large
-sum of money. A special whip was made to meet expenses and keep up
-the credit of the guild; for what with counsel’s fees, the writing of
-bills, and the drawing of pleas, the general fund was unable to find
-the necessary munitions of war to continue the suit. To the credit of
-the members, most of them apparently responded generously to this call,
-and, in consequence of this unfortunate litigation, to many subsequent
-demands which the empty exchequer necessitated.
-
-There would be no difficulty whatever in multiplying the foregoing
-illustrations of the working of these mediæval societies. The actual
-account books of course furnish us with the most accurate knowledge,
-even to minute details, and any one of them would afford ample material.
-
-The funds at the disposal of the guilds were derived chiefly from
-voluntary subscriptions, entrance fees, gifts, and legacies of members.
-Frequently these societies became in process of time the trustees
-of lands and houses which they either held and administered for the
-purposes of the guilds, or for some specific purpose determined by the
-will of the original donor. Thus, to take one or two examples from the
-account rolls of the Guild of Tailors in the city of Winchester. In the
-time of King Richard II.--say 1392--the usual entrance fee for members
-was 3s. 4d., and the annual subscription was 1s. There were 106 members
-at that time, seven of whom had been enrolled during the previous year.
-Among others who had thus entered was one Thomas Warener, or Warner, a
-cousin of Bishop William of Wykeham, and the Bishop’s bailiff of the
-Soke; his payment was 4s. 8d. instead of the usual entrance fee. In
-the same year we find the names of Thomas Hampton, lord of the manor
-of Stoke Charity, and Thomas Marleburgh, who was afterwards Mayor of
-Winchester. In the following year, seventeen new members were enrolled,
-one of them being a baker of Southampton, called Dunster. Turning over
-these accounts, we come upon examples of presents either in kind or
-money made to the society. Thus in one place Thomas Marleburgh makes a
-present of a hooded garment which was subsequently sold for eighteen
-pence; and in another, one Maurice John Cantelaw presented for the
-service of the guild, “a chalice and twelve pence in counted money,”
-requesting the members “to pray for his good estate, for the souls of
-his parents, friends, benefactors, and others for whom he was bound to
-pray.” In return for this valuable present, the guild granted that it
-should be accounted as Cantelaw’s life-subscription.
-
-Having spoken of the sources of income, which were practically the
-same in all guilds, something must be said as to the expenditure
-over and above the purposes for which the guilds existed. This may
-be illustrated from the accounts of this same fraternity of tailors
-of Winchester.[342] In the first place, as in almost every similar
-society, provision was made for the funerals of members and for the
-usual daily mass for thirty days after the death of the deceased
-members. The sum set down is 2s. 6d. for each trental of thirty masses.
-Then we find mention of alms to the poor and sick; thus in 1403, the
-sum of 36s., about one-tenth of the annual revenue, was spent upon this
-object. This, of course, was charity of a general kind, and wholly
-unconnected with the assistance given by rule to necessitous members of
-the guild.[343]
-
-One expense, very common in these mediæval guilds, was the preparation
-for taking a fitting part in the great annual religious pageant or
-procession on Corpus Christi day. In the case of this Tailors’ Guild
-at Winchester, we find sums of money charged for making wax torches
-and ornamenting them with flowers and red and blue wax, with card
-shields and parchment streamers, or “pencils,” as they are called. The
-members of the guild apparently carried small tapers; but the four
-great torches were borne by hired men, who received a shilling each for
-their trouble. It is somewhat difficult for us nowadays to understand
-the importance attached to these great ecclesiastical pageants by our
-ancestors four hundred years or so ago. But as to the fact, there
-can be no doubt. Among the documents in the municipal archives of
-Winchester there exists an order of the Mayor and Corporation as to
-the disposition of this solemn procession in 1435. It runs thus: “At
-a convocation holden in the city of Winchester the Friday next after
-the Feast of Corpus Christi in the thirteenth year of the reign of King
-Harry the Sixth, after the conquest; it was ordained by Richard Salter,
-mayor of the city of Winchester, John Symer and Harry Putt, bailiffs of
-the city aforesaid, and also by all the citizens and commonalty of the
-same city: It is agreed of a certain general procession on the Feast of
-Corpus Christi, of divers artificers and crafts within the said city:
-that is to say the carpenters and felters shall go together first;
-smiths and barbers, second; cooks and butchers, third; shoemakers with
-two lights, fourth; tanners and japanners, fifth; plumers and silkmen,
-sixth; fishers and farriers, seventh; taverners, eighth; weavers,
-with two lights, ninth; fullers, with two lights, tenth; dyers, with
-two lights, eleventh; chaundlers and brewers, twelfth; mercers, with
-two lights, thirteenth; the wives with one light and John Blake with
-another light, fourteenth; and all these lights shall be borne orderly
-before the said procession before the priests of the city. And the four
-lights of the brethren of St. John’s shall be borne about the Body of
-our Lord Jesus Christ, the same day in the procession aforesaid.”
-
-The brethren of St. John’s just named, as the chief object of their
-association, kept a hospital for the poor and sick in the city. They
-paid a chaplain of their own, as indeed did most of the guilds, and
-had a master and matron to look after the comfort of the poor. They
-provided bed and bedding, and carefully administered not only their
-own subscriptions, but the sums of money freely bequeathed to them
-to be spent on charity. At every market held within the precincts of
-Winchester an officer, paid by the society, attended and claimed for
-the support of the poor a tax of two handfuls of corn from every sack
-exposed for sale. The mayor and bailiffs were apparently the official
-custodians of this guild, and numerous legacies in wills, even in the
-reign of Henry VIII., attest its popularity. For example, on February
-19, 1503, John Cornishe, alias Putte, late Mayor of Winchester, died
-and left to the guardians his tenements and gardens under the penthouse
-in the city for the charity, on condition that for ten years they would
-spend 6s. 8d. in keeping his annual obit. In 1520, a draper of London,
-named Calley, bequeathed ten shillings to the hospital for annually
-repairing and improving the bedding of the poor. The accounts of this
-Fraternity of St. John’s Hospital for a considerable period in the
-fourteenth century are still in existence. They show large receipts,
-sometimes amounting to over £100, from lands, shops, houses, and
-from the sale of cattle and farm produce, over and above the annual
-subscriptions of members. On the other side, week by week we have the
-payments for food provided for the service of the poor: fish, flesh,
-beer, and bread are the chief items. One year, for instance, the bread
-bought for the sick amounted to 36s. 6d.; beer to 36s. 8d.; meat to
-32s. 2d.; fish to 28s. 3½d., &c. Besides this seven shillings were
-expended in mustard, and 3s. 6d. for six gallons of oil. This same year
-the guardians also paid 2s. 2d. for the clothes and shoes for a young
-woman named Sibil “who nursed the poor in the hospital.” The above
-represents only the actual money expended over the sick patients, and
-from the same source, most minute and curious information might be
-added as to the other expenses of the house, including, for instance,
-even the purchase of grave-clothes and coffins for the dead poor,
-the wages and clothing of the matron and servant, and the payment of
-the officer who collected the handfuls of corn in the market-place.
-At times we have evidence of the arrival and care of strange poor
-people--we should perhaps call them “tramps” in our day. For instance,
-here is one heading: “The expenses of three poor strangers in the
-hospital for 21 days and nights, 15¾d.; to each of whom is given ¾d.
-_Item_: the expenses of one other for 5 days, 3¾d. _Item_: the expenses
-of the burial of the said sick person, 3d. _Item_: the expenses of four
-pilgrims lodged for a night, 2d. _Item_: new straw to stuff the beds of
-the sick, 8d. _Item_: paid to the laundress for washing the clothes of
-the sick during one year, 12d.”
-
-To speak of guilds without making any mention of the feasts--the social
-meetings--which are invariably associated with such societies, would be
-impossible. The great banquets of the city companies are proverbial,
-and, in origin at least, they arose out of the guild meeting for the
-election of officers, followed by the guild feast. As a rule, these
-meetings took place on the day on which the Church celebrated the
-memory of the Saint who had been chosen as patron of the society, and
-were probably much like the club dinners which are still cherished
-features of village life in many parts of England.[344]
-
-It has been said that the wardens of guilds were frequently named in
-mediæval wills as trustees of money for various charitable purposes.
-As an example of property thus left to a guild, take the Candlemas
-Guild, established at Bury St. Edmunds: the society was established
-in the year 1471, and a few years later one of the members made over
-to the brethren considerable property for the common purposes of the
-guild and other specified objects. His name was John Smith, a merchant
-of Bury, and he died, we are told, on “St. Peter’s even at Midsummer,
-1481.” His will, which is witnessed by the Abbot and Prior of St.
-Edmund’s Abbey, provides, in the first place, for the keeping of an
-obit “devoutly.” The residue of the income was to accumulate till
-the appointment of each new abbot, when, on the election, the entire
-amount was to be paid over to the elect in place of the sum of money
-the town was bound to pay on every such occasion. Whatever remained
-over and above this was to be devoted to the payments of any tenth,
-fifteenth, or other tax, imposed upon the citizens by royal authority.
-This revenue was to be administered by the guardians of the guild, who
-were bound at the yearly meeting at Candlemas to render an account of
-their stewardship. Year by year John Smith’s will was read out at the
-meeting, and proclamation was made before the anniversary of his death
-in the following manner: “Let us all of charity pray for the soul of
-John. We put you in remembrance that you shall not miss the keeping of
-his _Dirge_ and also of his Mass.” Round about the town the crier was
-sent to recite the following lines:--
-
- “We put you in remembrance all that the oath have made,
- To come to the Mass and the _Dirge_ the souls for to glade:
- All the inhabitants of this town are bound to do the same,
- To pray for the souls of John and Anne, else they be to blame:
- The which John afore-rehearsed to this town hath been full kind,
- Three hundred marks for this town hath paid, no penny unpaid behind.
- Now we have informed you of John Smith’s will in writing as it is,
- And for the great gifts that he hath given, God bring his soul to
- bliss. Amen.”[345]
-
-The example set by this donor to the Candlemas Guild at Bury was
-followed by many others in the later part of the fifteenth century. For
-instance, a “gentlewoman,” as she calls herself, one Margaret Odom,
-after providing by will for the usual obit and for a lamp to burn
-before “the holie sacrament in St. James’s Church,” desires that the
-brethren of the guild shall devote the residue of the income arising
-from certain houses and lands she has conveyed to their keeping, to
-paying a priest to “say mass in the chapel of the gaol before the
-prisoners there, and giving them holy water and holy bread on all
-Sundays, and to give to the prisoners of the long ward of the said gaol
-every week seven faggots of wood from Hallowmass (November 1) to Easter
-Day.”[346]
-
-Intimately connected with the subject of the guilds is that of the
-fairs, which formed so great a feature in mediæval commercial life,
-and at which the craft guilds were represented. For the south of
-England, the great fair held annually at Winchester became the centre
-of our national commerce with France. The following account of it is
-given in Mr. W. J. Ashley’s most interesting _Introduction to English
-Economic History_: “A fair for three days on the eastern hill outside
-Winchester was granted to the bishop by William II.; his immediate
-successors granted extension of time, until by a charter of Henry II.
-it was fixed at sixteen days, from 31st August to 15th September. On
-the morning of 31st August ‘the justiciars of the pavilion of the
-bishop’ proclaimed the fair on the hilltop, then rode on horseback
-through the city proclaiming the opening of the fair. The keys of
-the city and the weighing machine in the wool market were taken
-possession of, and a special mayor and special bailiffs were appointed
-to supersede the city officials during the fair time. The hilltop was
-quickly covered with streets of wooden shops: in one, the merchants
-from Flanders; in another, those of Caen or some other Norman town; in
-another, the merchants from Bristol. Here were placed the goldsmiths in
-a row, and there the drapers, &c., whilst around the whole was a wooden
-palisade with guarded entrance, a precaution which did not always
-prevent enterprising adventurers from escaping payment of the toll by
-digging a way in for themselves under the wall.… In Winchester all
-trade was compulsorily suspended, and within ‘a seven league circuit,’
-guards being stationed at outlying posts, on bridges and other places
-of passage, to see that the monopoly was not infringed. At Southampton
-nothing was to be sold during the fair time but victuals, and even
-the very craftsmen of Winchester were bound to transfer themselves
-to the hill and there carry on their occupations during the fair.
-There was a graduated scale of tolls and duties: all merchants of
-London, Winchester, or Wallingford who entered during the first week
-were free from entrance tolls.… In every fair there was a _court of
-pie-powder_ (of dusty feet) in which was decided by merchant law all
-cases of dispute that might arise, the ordinary jurisdiction being
-for a time suspended in the town; at Winchester this was called the
-Pavilion Court. Hither the bishop’s servants brought all the weights
-and measures to be tested; here the justices determined on an assize,
-or fixed scale, for bread, wine, beer, and other victuals, adjudging
-to the pillory any baker whose bread was found to be of defective
-weight; and here every day disputes between merchants as to debts were
-decided by juries upon production and comparison of the notched wooden
-tallies.”[347]
-
-A few words must be said about the final destruction of the English
-guilds. At the close of the reign of Henry VIII. an act of Parliament
-was passed vesting the property of colleges, chantries, fraternities,
-brotherhoods and guilds in the Crown (38 Hen. VIII., c. 4). The king
-was empowered to send out his commissioners to take possession of all
-such property, on the plea that it might be “used and exercised to
-more godly and virtuous purposes.” Henry died before the provisions of
-the act could be complied with, and a second act was passed through
-the first Parliament in the reign of Edward VI. (1 Ed. VI., c. 14).
-This went beyond the former decree of destruction, for after providing
-for the demolition of colleges, free chapels, and chantries, it
-proceeded not only separately by name to grant to the king all sums of
-money devoted “by any manner of corporations, guilds, fraternities,
-companies or fellowships or mysteries or crafts,” to the support of a
-priest, obits or lights (which may be taken under colour of religion),
-but to hand over to the crown “all fraternities, brotherhoods and
-guilds, being within the realm of England and Wales and other the
-king’s dominions, and all manors, lands, tenements, and other
-hereditaments belonging to them, other than such corporations, guilds,
-fraternities, &c., and the manors, lands, &c., pertaining to the said
-corporations, &c., above mentioned.”
-
-The Parliament of Henry VIII. assigned as a reason for this seizure of
-the property of the corporate bodies the need “for the maintenance of
-these present wars,” and cleverly put into one group “colleges, free
-chapels, chantries, hospitals, fraternities, brotherhoods, and guilds.”
-“The act of Edward VI.,” writes Mr. Toulmin Smith, “was still more
-ingenious, for it held up the dogma of purgatory to abhorrence, and
-began to hint at grammar schools. The object of both acts was the same.
-All the possessions of all the guilds (except what could creep out as
-being mere trading guilds, which saved the London guilds) became vested
-by these two acts in the Crown; and the unprincipled courtiers who had
-advised and helped the scheme gorged themselves out of this wholesale
-plunder of what was, in every sense, public property.”[348]
-
-It is clear that in seizing the property of the guilds the Crown
-destroyed far more than it gained for itself. A very large proportion
-of their revenues was derived from the entrance fees and the annual
-subscriptions of the existing members, and in putting an end to these
-societies the State swept away the organisation by which these
-voluntary subscriptions were raised, and this not in one or two places,
-but all over England. In this way far more harm was in reality done to
-the interests of the poor, sick, and aged, and, indeed, to the body
-politic at large, than the mere seizure of their comparatively little
-capital, whether in land or money.
-
-It is not, of course, meant to imply that the injury to the poor and
-sick was not fully recognised at the time of these legal confiscations.
-People deeply resented the idea that what generations of benefactors
-had intended for the relief of distress should thus be made to pass
-into the pocket of some “new” man who had grown great upon the spoils.
-The literature of the period affords abundant evidence of the popular
-feeling. Crowley, for instance, wrote about 1550--just at this very
-time--and although no one would look for any accurate description of
-facts in his rhyming satires, he may be taken as a reliable witness as
-to what the people were saying. This is what he writes on the point:--
-
- “A merchant, that long time
- Had been in strange lands
- Returned to his country,
- Which in Europe stands.
-
- And in his return
- His way lay to pass
- By a spittle house not far from
- Where his dwelling-house was.
-
- He looked for this hospital,
- But none could he see,
- For a lordly house was built
- Where the hospital should be.
-
- ‘Good Lord!’ (said the merchant),
- ‘Is my country so wealthy
- That the very beggars’ houses
- Are built so gorgeously?’
-
- Then by the wayside
- Him chanced to see
- A poor man that craved
- Of him for charity.
-
- ‘Why’ (quoth the merchant),
- ‘What meaneth this thing?
- Do ye beg by the way,
- And have a house for a king?’
-
- ‘Alas! sir’ (quoth the poor man),
- ‘We are all turned out,
- And lie and die in corners
- Here and there about.’”
-
-It has frequently been asserted that although grave injury was
-undoubtedly done to the poor of the land by this wholesale
-confiscation, it was done unwittingly by the authorities, or that, at
-the worst, the portions of revenue derived from the property which had
-been intended for the support of the sick, aged, &c., was so bound up
-with those to which religious obligations (now declared superstitious
-and illegal) were attached, that it was impossible to distinguish the
-latter from the former, and all perished together, or rather passed
-undistinguished into the royal pocket. Such a view is not borne
-out by facts, and however satisfactory it might be to believe that
-this robbery of the poor and sick by the Crown was accidental and
-unpremeditated, the historian is bound by the evidence to hold that the
-pillage was fully premeditated and deliberately and consciously carried
-out. It is of course obvious, that some may regard it as proper that
-funds given for the support of priests to say masses or offer prayers
-for the souls of the departed should have been confiscated, although
-it would have been better had the money been devoted to some purpose
-of local utility rather than that it should have been added to the
-Crown revenues or have gone to enrich some royal favourite. For example
-it may, for the sake of argument, be admitted that the two fields at
-Petersfield in Hampshire thus taken by the royal commissioners--one
-called _White field_, in the tenure of Gregory Hill, the rent of which
-was intended to keep a perpetual light burning in the parish church,
-and the other held by John Mill, given to support a priest “called
-the Morrow Masse priest” (_i.e._ the priest employed to say the early
-morning mass for the convenience of people going to work)--were under
-the circumstances fair articles of plunder for the royal officials,
-when the mass was prohibited and the doctrine symbolised by the
-perpetual light declared superstitious. But this will not apply to the
-money intended for the poor. It might have been easy to justify the
-Crown’s action in taking the priest’s portion, and even the little
-pittance intended for the serving clerk, but the seizure of the
-benefactions to the poor cannot be defended. It was not accidental;
-for an examination of the original documents relating to the guilds
-and chantries now in the Record Office will show not only that the
-Royal Commissioners were as a rule careful to distinguish between
-the portions intended for religious purposes and those set aside
-for perpetual charity to the sick and poor, but in many cases they
-actually proposed to the Court of Augmentation to protect the latter
-and preserve them for the objects of Christian charity intended by the
-original donors. In every such case the document reveals the fact that
-this suggestion in the interest of common justice was rejected by the
-ultimate Crown officials, and a plain intimation is afforded on the
-face of the documents that even those sums intended by the original
-donors for the relief of poverty were to be confiscated.
-
-The destruction of the guilds is, from any point of view, a sad and
-humiliating story, and, perhaps fortunately, history has so far
-permitted the thick veil of obscurity drawn over the subject at the
-time to remain practically undisturbed. A consideration of the scope
-and purposes of English mediæval guilds cannot but raise our opinion
-of the wisdom of our forefathers who fostered their growth, and
-convince us that many and useful ends were served by these voluntary
-societies. This opinion we can hold, wholly apart from any views we may
-entertain about the religious aspects of these societies generally.
-Socialistic they were, but their socialism, so far from being adverse
-to religion, as the socialism of to-day is generally considered to be,
-was transfused and directed by a deeply religious spirit, carried out
-into the duties of life, and manifesting itself in practical charities
-of every kind.
-
-One or two points suggested by consideration of the working of mediæval
-guilds may be emphasized. The system of these voluntary societies
-would be, of course, altogether impossible and out of place in this
-modern world of ours. They would not, and could not, meet the wants
-and needs of these days; and yet their working is quite worth studying
-by those who are interested in the social problems which nowadays are
-thrusting themselves upon the public notice and demanding a solution.
-The general lessons taught by these voluntary associations may be
-summed up under one or two heads suggested by Mr. Ashley’s volume
-already referred to: (1) It is obvious that, unlike what we find to-day
-in the commercial enterprises of the world, capital played but a very
-small part in the handicrafts of those times; skill, perseverance, and
-connection were more important. (2) The middle ages had no knowledge
-of any class of what may be called permanent wage-labourers. There
-was no working-class in our modern sense: if by that is meant a class
-the greater portion of which never rises. In the fourteenth century,
-a few years of steady work as a journeyman meant, in most cases, that
-a workman was able to set up as a master craftsman. Every hardworking
-apprentice expected as a matter of course to be able to become in time
-a master. The collisions between capital and labour to which we are
-so much accustomed had no place in the middle ages. (3) There was no
-such gulf between master and man as exists in our days. The master and
-his journeyman worked together side by side, in the same shop, at the
-same work, and the man could earn fully half as much as his master.
-(4) If we desire to institute a comparison between the status of the
-working-classes in the fourteenth century and to-day, the comparison
-must be between the workman we know and the old master craftsman. The
-shop-keeping class and the middle-man were only just beginning to
-exist. The consumer and producer stood in close relation, and public
-control was exercised fully, as the craft guilds were subject to the
-supervision and direction of the municipal or central authority of the
-cities in which they existed.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-MEDIÆVAL WILLS, CHANTRIES, AND OBITS
-
-
-The value of side-lights in an historical picture is frequently
-overlooked, or not duly appreciated. The main facts of a story may
-be presented with accuracy and detail, and yet the result may be as
-unlike the reality as the fleshless skeleton is to the living man.
-More especially are these side-lights requisite when the object of the
-inquirer is to ascertain the tone and temper of minds at some given
-time, and to discover what men, under given circumstances, were doing
-and thinking about. In trying, therefore, to gauge the mental attitude
-of Englishmen towards the ecclesiastical system existing on the eve
-of the Reformation, it is important not to neglect any faint glimmer
-of light which may be reflected from the records of the past, the
-brightness of which in its setting has been obscured only too well by
-the dark storm-clouds of controversy and prejudice.
-
-Not the least valuable among what may be described as the minor
-sources of information about the real feeling of the people generally
-towards their religion on the eve of the Reformation are the wills, of
-which we have abundant examples in the period in question. It may, of
-course, appear to some that their spirit was in great measure dictated
-by what they now hold to be the erroneous opinions then in vogue as
-to Purgatory and the efficacy of prayer for the dead. That these
-doctrines of the Church had a firm hold on the minds and hearts of the
-people at large is certain. The evidence that this was so is simply
-overwhelming, and it may be taken to prove, not merely the existence
-of the teaching, but the cordial and unhesitating way in which it was
-accepted as a necessary part of the Christian faith. But this, after
-all, is merely a minor point of interest in the wills of the fifteenth
-and sixteenth centuries. What clearly appears in these documents,
-however, is the Catholic tone which pervades them, and enables the
-reader to realise perhaps more than he is able to do from any other
-class of document, the strong hold their religion must have had on the
-love and intelligence of the people of those days. The intelligences
-may not, indeed, have been of any very high order, but the souls were
-certainly penetrated by true Christian ideals. To those who penned
-those early wills, Faith was clearly no mere intellectual apprehension
-of speculative truth. Religion, and religious observance, was to them
-a practical reality which entered into their daily lives. The kindly
-Spirit that led them, brought them strength to bear their own and
-others’ burdens, in sickness and health, in adversity and prosperity,
-from childhood till their eyes closed in their last sleep. If we may
-judge from these last aspirations of the Christian soul as displayed
-in mediæval wills, we must allow that religion was very real indeed to
-our English forefathers in the sixteenth century, and that in reality
-the whole social order was founded upon a true appreciation of the
-Christian brotherhood in man, and upon the doctrine of the efficacy of
-good works for salvation. These truths of the social order were not
-indeed taught perhaps scientifically, and we might look in vain for any
-technical expression of them in the books of religious instruction
-most used during this period, but they formed none the less part of the
-traditional Christian teaching of the Middle Ages founded on the great
-principles of the Bible which then dominated popular thought.[349]
-
-Those who would understand what this Christian spirit meant and the
-many ways in which it manifested itself, need only compare the wills of
-the late fifteenth and the early sixteenth centuries with those, say,
-of the later years of Queen Elizabeth, when the religious revolution
-had been accomplished, and note the obvious difference in tone and
-purpose. The comparison need not be searching or entail much study; the
-change is patent and striking, and lies on the very surface.
-
-Some examples of notes taken from pre-Reformation wills may be here
-given from the collection of Northern wills published by the Surtees
-Society under the title _Testamenta Eboracensia_, the fourth volume of
-which contains many wills made during the period in question. It may be
-useful to remark that one and all of these documents manifest the same
-spirit of practical Christianity, though of course in various degrees.
-Most of them contain bequests to churches with which the donors were
-chiefly connected; money is frequently left to the fabric, or to some
-special altar, or for the purchase of vestments, or to furnish some
-light to burn before the Blessed Sacrament, the rood or some image, to
-which the deceased had a particular devotion. Specific gifts of silks,
-rich articles of clothing and embroidered hangings fitted to adorn
-the Church of God, to make chasubles and copes, or altar curtains and
-frontals, are common. Practical sympathy with the poor is manifested by
-provision for distributions of doles at funerals and at anniversaries,
-and by gifts of cloaks and other articles of clothing, to those of
-the parish who were engaged in carrying torches at the burial, or had
-promised to offer up prayers for the soul of the testator. Besides
-these general features of interest, the wills in question show us
-that building operations of great magnitude were being carried on at
-this time in the parish churches of the North, and they thus furnish
-an additional proof of the very remarkable interest thus taken by the
-people at large in the rebuilding and adornment of the parish churches
-of England right up to the very overthrow of the old ecclesiastical
-system. These particular wills also bear a singular testimony to the
-kindly feelings which existed at this time between the general body of
-the clergy and the regular orders. Nearly every will of any cleric of
-note contains bequests of money to monks, nuns, and friars, whilst, in
-particular, those of the canons and officials of the great metropolitan
-church of York bear testimony to the affection and esteem in which they
-held the Abbot and monks of St. Mary’s Abbey in the same city, which
-from its close proximity to the minster might in these days have been
-regarded as its rival.
-
-As an illustration of the religious spirit which pervades these
-documents, we may take the following preface to the will of one John
-Dalton of Hull, made in 1487. “In nomine Patris et Filii et Spiritus
-Sancti. Amen. I, John Dalton of the Kingstown upon Hull--considering
-and remembering, think in my heart that the days of man in this mortal
-life are but short, that the hour of death is in the hand of Almighty
-God, and that He hath ordained the terms that no man may pass. I
-remember also that God hath ordained man to die, and that there is
-nothing more uncertain than the hour of death. I seeing princes and
-(men of) great estates die daily, and men of all ages end their days,
-and that death gives no certain respite to any living creature, but
-takes them suddenly. For these considerations, I, being in my right
-wit and mind, loved be God, whole not sick, beseech Almighty God that
-I may die the true son of Holy Church and of heart truly confessed,
-with contrition and repentance, of all my sins that ever I did since
-the first hour I was born of my mother into this sinful world, to the
-hour of my death. Of these offences I ask and beseech Almighty God
-pardon and forgiveness; and in this I beseech the Blessed Virgin Mary
-and her blessed Son Jesu, our Saviour, that suffered pain and passion
-for me and all sinful creatures, and all the holy company of Paradise
-to pray for me.… For these causes aforesaid, I, being alive of whole
-mind and memory, loved be God, dispose and ordain such goods as God
-hath lent me movable and immovable by my testament, and ordain this my
-last will in the form and manner that followeth: First, I recommend in
-humble devotion, contrition, and true repentance of my faults and sins,
-praying and craving mercy of our Saviour Jesus Christ … my soul to our
-Lord Jesus Christ when it shall depart from my body, and to our Lady
-St. Mary, Saint Michael, St. John the Baptist, St. John the Evangelist,
-St. Katherine and St. Barbara, and to all the whole company and saints
-of heaven: and my body I will to the earth whereof it came.”
-
-The testator then proceeds to direct that his executors shall give
-his wife a third of his property, and his children another third. The
-rest he wishes to be bestowed in charity as they may think best “to
-the pleasure of God and the health of my soul” … “as they shall answer
-before God at the dreadful day of doom. (Especially) I will them to pay
-my debts, charging them before God to discharge me and my soul; and in
-this let them do for me as they would I did for them, as I trust they
-will do.”[350]
-
-Of much the same character is the briefer Latin preface to the will
-of a sub-dean of York in 1490. “I protest before God Almighty, the
-Blessed Mary, and all saints, and I expressly proclaim that, no matter
-what infirmity of mental weakness may happen to me in this or any
-other sickness, it is not my intention in anything to swerve from the
-Catholic faith. On the contrary I firmly and faithly believe all the
-articles of faith, all the sacraments of the Church; and that the
-Church with its sacraments is sufficient for the salvation of any one
-however guilty.”[351]
-
-To take one more example of the same spirit, Thomas Dalton, merchant of
-Hull--probably son of the John Dalton whose will is quoted above--died
-in 1497. After charging his wife, whom he leaves his executrix, to
-pay all his debts, he adds: “And I will and give my mother forty
-shillings, beseeching her meekly to pray for me and to give me her
-daily blessing, and that she will forgive me all trespasses and faults
-done by me to her since I was born of her, as she will be forgiven
-before God at the great day of judgment.”[352]
-
-Much the same spirit evidently dictated the following clause in the
-will of John Sothill of Dewsbury, 1502: “Also I pray Thomas my son, in
-my name and for the love of God, that he never strive with his mother,
-as he will have my blessing, for he will find her courteous to deal
-with.”[353]
-
-Other examples of the catholicity of these mediæval wills may be here
-added as they are taken from the volume almost at haphazard. In 1487,
-a late mayor of the city of York leaves money to help in the repairs
-of many churches of the city and its neighbourhood. He charges his
-executors to provide for the maintenance of lamps and lights in several
-places, and specially names a gold ring with a diamond in it, which
-he desires may be hung round the neck of Our Lady’s statue in York
-Minster, and another with a turquoise “round our Lord’s neck that is
-in the arms of the said image of Our Lady.” After making provision
-for several series of masses to be said, as for example one of thirty
-in honour of the Holy Trinity, another in honour of the Holy Cross,
-a third in that of Our Lady, &c., the testator bequeaths a large sum
-of money to dower fifteen poor girls, and to find fifty complete
-sets of beds and bedding for the poor, as well as other extensive
-charities.[354]
-
-Thomas Wood, a draper of Hull, was sheriff in 1479 and died in 1490. By
-will he left to his parish church a piece of worked tapestry, and the
-clause by which the bequest was conveyed shows that the church already
-possessed many costly hangings of this kind. It runs thus: “To the
-Trinity Church one of my best beds of Arras work, upon condition that
-after my decease the said bed shall yearly cover my grave at my _Dirge_
-and Mass, done in the said Trinity Church with note (in singing) for
-ever more. Also I will that the said bed be yearly hung in the said
-church on the feast of St. George the Martyr among other worshipful
-beds, and when the said bed be taken down and delivered, then I will
-that the same bed be re-delivered into the vestry and there to remain
-with my cope of gold.”[355]
-
-The same kind of gift appears in the last testament of William
-Rowkshaw, Rector of Lowthorpe, in 1504. “I leave,” he says, “to the
-Church of Catton a bed-covering worked with great figures to lie
-in front of the High Altar on the chief feasts. And I leave also a
-bed-covering (worked) with the image of a lion (a blue lion was the
-family arms) to place in front of the altar in the parish church of
-Lowthorpe on the chief feasts.” Also in the will of William Graystoke
-of Wakefield, executed in 1508, there is made a gift to the parish
-church of “a cloth of arras work sometime hanging in the Hall.”[356]
-
-Poor scholars at the universities were not forgotten in the wills of
-the period. Mr. Martin Collins, Treasurer of York, for instance, in
-1508 charges his executors to pay for a scholar at either Oxford or
-Cambridge for seven years to study canon law, or the arts. The only
-condition is that they are to choose him from the “poor and very
-needy, and even from the poorest and most necessitous.”[357] So, too,
-William Copley in 1489 leaves money to support two poor priests for
-the purpose of study at Cambridge. Archbishop Rotheram in his long and
-most Christian will, executed in June 1500, makes provision for the
-education of youth. He founds a college in the place of his birth--the
-College of Jesus at Rotheram--in thanksgiving for God’s providence in
-securing his own education. “For,” he says, “there came to Rotheram,
-I don’t know by what chance, but I believe by the special grace of
-God, a teacher of grammar, who taught me and other youths, and by
-whose means I and others with me rose in life. Wherefore desirous of
-returning thanks to our Saviour, and to proclaim the reason, and lest I
-might seem ungrateful and forgetful of God’s benefits and from whence
-I have come, I have determined first of all to establish there for
-ever a grammar master to teach all gratuitously. And because I have
-seen chantry priests boarding with lay people, one in one place one in
-another, to their own scandal and in some places ruin, I have desired,
-in the second place, to make them a common dwelling-house. For these
-reasons I have commenced to build the college of Jesus, where the head
-shall teach grammar and the others may board and sleep.” Moreover,
-as he has seen, he says, many unlettered and country folk from the
-hills (_rudi et montam_) attracted to church by the very beauty of
-ceremonial, he establishes at Rotheram a choir-master and six singing
-boys to add to the attraction of the services, and for such of these
-boys, who may not want to become priests, he endows a master to teach
-them the art of writing and arithmetic.[358]
-
-A merchant of Holme, one John Barton, after leaving legacies to his
-parish church, charges his executors to pay the king’s taxes for all
-people of the town assessed at 4d. and under, for two years after his
-death. John Barton was a merchant of the staple, and had made his
-wealth by the wool trade. At Holme he built “a fair stone house and a
-fair chapel like a parish church,” and to remind his descendants of the
-source whence their means had come, and in humble acknowledgment of
-God’s goodness to him, he set in the windows of his home the following
-posie--
-
- “I thank God, and ever shall,
- It is the sheep hath payed for all.”[359]
-
-As an example of specific bequests for pious purposes, we may take the
-following: Sir Gervase Clifton in 1491 gives many sums of money to
-churches in Yorkshire and to various chantries in Southwell Minster.
-For the use of these latter also, he directs that “all the altar cloths
-of silk, a bed of gold bawdkyne and another bed of russet satin,
-which belonged to (Archbishop Boothe of York) be delivered to make
-vestments.”[360] In 1493-4, John Vavasour, Justice of the Common Pleas,
-leaves £100 in money to the monastery of Ellerton, to which he says he
-had previously given all his vestments. He names the Priors of Ellerton
-and Thorneholme his executors, and tells them that the Prior of the
-Charterhouse of Axholme has £800 of his in his keeping, and also that a
-chest of his plate is in charge of the London Carthusians.[361]
-
-Again Agnes Hildyard of Beverley, in 1497-8, leaves “an old gold
-noble to hang round the neck of the image of Our Lady in the church
-of Beverley,” some money to purchase a mantle for the statue of the
-Blessed Virgin at Fisholme, and another gold piece for the statue at
-Molescroft.[362] About the same time Lady Scrope of Harling left “to
-the Rood of Northdor my heart of gold with a diamond in the midst. To
-Our Lady of Walsingham, ten of my great gold beads joined with silk
-of crimson and gold, with a button of gold, tasselled with the same.…
-To Our Lady of Pew ten of the same beads; to St. Edmund of Bury ten
-of the same; to St. Thomas of Canterbury, ten of the same; to my Lord
-Cardinal, ten aves with two _Paternosters_ of the same beads; to Thomas
-Fynchman ten aves and two _Paternosters_ of the same beads.”[363]
-Again, in 1502, Elizabeth Swinburne bequeathed to the Carmelites of
-Newcastle a piece of silver to make a crown for the image of Our
-Lady at her altar “where my mother is buried,” and to Mount Grace a
-rosary, “fifty beads of gold, a hundred of corall, with all the gaudys
-of gold,” on condition that she and her mother might be considered
-_consorores_ of the house, and that thirteen poor people might be fed
-on the day of her burial.[364] So, too, a chain of gold is left to
-make a cup for the Blessed Sacrament, velvet and silk dresses to make
-vestments,[365] plate to make a new chrismatory, crystal beads to adorn
-the monstrance used on Corpus feast day.[366]
-
-William Sheffield, Dean of York, whose will is dated 1496, after some
-few bequests to friends, leaves the residue to the poor, and he thus
-explains the reason: “Also I will that the residue of my goods be
-distributed among the poor parishioners in each of the benefices I have
-held, according to the discretion of my executors, so that they may
-be bestowed more or less in proportion to the time of my living and
-keeping hospitality in them; for the goods of the church are the riches
-of the poor, and so the distribution of church goods is a serious
-matter of conscience, and on those badly disposing of them Jesus have
-mercy.”[367]
-
-The Vicar of Wighill, William Burton, in 1498-9, left a sum of money to
-remain in the hands of his successors for ever “to ease poor folk of
-the parish, for to pay their farms with, so that the said people set
-not their goods at wainworth (_i.e._ cartloads--what they would fetch),
-and that they have a reasonable day to pay the said silver again duly
-and truly to the Vicar for the time being, and the said Vicar to ask
-and keep eyes (aye) to the same intent, as he will answer for it at
-the dreadful day of judgment betwixt God and the devil; and he shall
-not lend the foresaid money for any tax or tallage, nor for any common
-purpose of the town, but only to the said poor men.” With kindly
-thought for the young among his old flock, the Vicar adds a bequest of
-4d. “to every house poor and rich among the children.”[368]
-
-The above is not by any means an isolated instance of a sum, or sums,
-of money being left to assist the poorer members of the Christian
-brotherhood, represented by the parish, with temporary loans. One
-document sets out the working of such a common parish chest under
-the supervision of the priest. The original chest and the necessary
-funds for starting this work of benevolence were furnished by one of
-the parishioners. In order to maintain “this most pious object,”
-as it is called, the rector undertakes to read out the name of the
-original donor at the “bedes-bidding” on principal feasts, together
-with those of all who may subsequently add to the capital sum by alms
-or legacies, in order that people might be reminded of their duty to
-offer up prayers for the eternal welfare of their benefactors. The
-chest was to have three locks, the keys being kept by the rector and
-the two wardens. Those who might need to borrow temporarily from the
-common stock to meet their rent, purchase of seed or stock, or for any
-other purpose, were to bring pledges to the full value of the loan,
-or else to find known sureties for the amount. No single person was
-to be surety for more than six shillings and eightpence, and for wise
-and obvious reasons the parish priest was not to be allowed to stand
-security under any circumstances. The loan was for a year, and if at
-the end of that time the pledge was not redeemed, it was to be sold,
-but all that it might fetch over and above the amount of the original
-loan was to be returned to the borrower.[369]
-
-In close connection with the subject of wills in pre-Reformation times
-is that of chantries and obits. Both these two institutions of the
-later mediæval church in England have been commonly much misunderstood
-and misrepresented. Most writers regard them only in the light of the
-doctrine of Purgatory, and as illustrating the extent to which the
-necessity of praying for the dead was impressed upon the people by the
-ecclesiastical authorities, and that with a view to their own profit.
-It has come, therefore, to be believed that a “chantry” only meant a
-place (chapel or other locality) connected with the parish church,
-where masses were offered for the repose of the soul of the donor,
-and other specified benefactors. No doubt there were such chantries
-existing, but to imagine that all followed this rule is wholly to
-mistake the purpose of such foundations. Speaking broadly, the chantry
-priests were the assistant priests or, as we should nowadays say, the
-curates of the parish, who were supported by the foundation funds
-which benefactors had left or given for that purpose, and even not
-infrequently by the contributions of the inhabitants. To speak the
-language of our own time the system held the place of the “additional
-curates” or “pastoral aid” societies. For the most part the _raison
-d’être_ of these chantry priests was to look after the poor of the
-parish, to visit the sick, and to assist in the functions of the parish
-church. By universal custom, and even by statute law of the English
-Church, every chaplain and chantry priest, besides the fulfilment of
-the functions of his own special benefice, was bound to be at the
-disposition of the parish priest in the common services of the parish
-church. His presence was required in the choir, vested in a surplice
-or other ecclesiastical dress proper to his station, or as one of the
-sacred ministers of the altar, should his services be so required. In
-this way the existence of guild chaplains, chantry priests, and others,
-added to the dignity of the ecclesiastical offices and the splendour
-of the ceremonial in most parish churches throughout the country, and
-afforded material and often necessary assistance in the working of the
-parish.
-
-It will give, perhaps, a better idea of the functions of a chantry
-priest on the eve of the Reformation than can be obtained by any
-description, to take an example of the foundation made for a chantry
-at the altar of Saint Anne in the church of Badsworth. It was founded
-in 1510 to pray for the soul of Isabella, wife of William Vavasour, and
-daughter of Robert Urswick. The charter deed ordains that the chaplain
-shall be a secular priest, without other benefice, and that he should
-say a Requiem each week with _Placebo_ and _Dirige_. At the first
-lavatory of the Mass he is to turn to the people and exhort them to
-pray for the soul of the founder, saying _De Profundis_ and the prayer
-_Inclina Domine_. Once every year there is to be an anniversary service
-on Tuesday in Easter week, when ten shillings and eightpence is to be
-distributed to the poor under the direction of the rector. The chaplain
-is to be learned in grammar and plain song, and should be present in
-the choir of the parish church at Matins, Mass, Vespers, and Compline,
-with other divine services on Sundays and feasts, when he is to take
-what part the rector shall ordain. He is not to be absent for more than
-a month, and then only with leave of the rector, by whom, for certain
-specified offences, he may be deprived of his office.[370]
-
-In these chantries were established services for the dead commonly
-called “obits.” These were not, as we have been asked to believe,
-mere money payments to the priest for anniversary services, but were,
-for the most part, bequests left quite as much for annual alms to the
-poor as for the celebration of those services. A few examples will
-illustrate this better than any explanation. In the town of Nottingham
-there were two chantries connected with the parish church of St. Mary,
-that of our Lady and that called Amyas Chantry. The former, according
-to the record, was founded “to maintain the services and to be an aid
-to the Vicar and partly to succour the poor;” the latter, to assist in
-“God’s service,” and to pray for William Amyas the founder. When the
-commissioners, in the first year of Edward VI., came to inquire into
-the possession of these chantries, they were asked to note that in this
-parish there were “1400 houseling people, and that the vicar there
-had no other priests to help but the above two chantry priests.” They
-were not, of course, spared on this account, for within two years the
-property, upon which these two priests were supported, had been sold to
-two speculators in such parcels of land--John Howe and John Broxholme.
-
-Then again, in the parish of St. Nicholas, in the same town, we
-find from the returns that the members of the Guild of the Virgin
-contributed to the support of a priest. In that parish there were more
-than 200 houseling people, and as the living was very poor, there
-was absolutely no other priest to look after them but this one, John
-Chester, who was paid by the guild. The king’s officials, however, did
-not hesitate on this account to confiscate the property. It is needless
-to adduce other instances of this kind, some scores of which might be
-given in the county of Nottingham alone. As an example of “obits” and
-the purposes for which they were intended, the following instances
-may be given, which it must be remembered could be multiplied to any
-extent. From the returns of the commissioners in Nottinghamshire we
-find that in the parish of South Wheatley there were parish lands let
-out to farm which produced eighteenpence a year, say from eighteen
-shillings to a pound of our money. Of this sum, one shilling was for
-the poor, and sixpence for church lights; that is two-thirds, or, say,
-16s. of our money, was for the relief of the distressed. So in the
-parish of Tuxford, the church “obit” lands produced £1, 5s. 4d., or
-about £16 a year; of which 16s. 4d. was for the poor and 9s. for the
-church services.
-
-Mr. Thorold Rogers, speaking of the endowments left by generations
-of Englishmen for the support of chantries, obits, &c., says: “The
-ancient tenements which are still the property of the London companies
-were originally burdened with masses for donors. In the country, the
-parochial clergy undertook the services of these chantries … and
-the establishment of a mass or chantry priest at a fixed stipend in
-a church with which he had no other relation, was a common form of
-endowment. The residue, if any, of the revenue derivable from these
-tenements was made the common property of the guild, and as the
-continuity of the service was the great object of its establishment,
-the donor, like the modern trustee of a life income, took care that
-there should be a surplus from the foundation. The land or house was
-let, and the guild consented to find the ministration which formed the
-motive of the grant.”[371]
-
-This is very true, but it is questionable whether Mr. Thorold
-Rogers appreciated the extent to which these chantry funds were
-intended to be devoted to purposes other than the performance of the
-specified religious services. A couple of examples have been given in
-Nottinghamshire, and to these may be added one in the south of England.
-In connection with the parish church of Alton, in Hampshire, there
-were, on the eve of the Reformation, six foundations for obits. The
-following is the account of these taken from the chantry certificates
-made by the king’s commissioners in the first year of the reign of
-Edward VI.: (1) “Issues of land for an obit for John Pigott, growing
-and coming out of certain houses and lands in Alton for to maintain for
-ever a yearly obit there, in the tenure of Thomas Mathew, of the yearly
-value of 23s. 4d.; whereof to the poor 15s. 4d., to the parish priest
-and his clerk 8s. (2) The same for an obit for William Reding, of the
-annual value of 15s., of which the poor were to have 10s. and the
-priest and his clerk 5s. (3) The same for Alice Hacker, of the yearly
-value of 10s., of which the poor were to get 7s. 8d. and the priest
-2s. 4d. (4) Another of the value of 4s., the poor to get 2s. 10d.
-and the priest 1s. 2d. (5) Another for the soul of Nicholas Bailey,
-worth annually 11s., and of this 7s. 8d. was intended for the poor
-and 3s. 4d. for the clergy. (6) Another for Nicholas Crushelon, worth
-annually 4s. 4d., the poor to have 3s. 1d. and the priest 1s. 3d.” In
-this parish of Alton, therefore, these six foundations for “obits” or
-anniversaries produced a total of 77s. 8d., but so far from the whole
-sum being spent upon priests’ stipends, lights, and singing men, we
-find that considerably more than half, namely 46s. 7d., was bestowed
-upon the relief of the poor of the parish. Or if we take the value of
-money in those days as only twelve times that of our present money, out
-of a total of £36, 12s. some £27, 19s. went to the support of the poor.
-
-It is obvious that the general advantages derived by a parish from the
-foundation of these chantries and obits have been commonly overlooked,
-and the notion that they were intended for no other purpose than
-procuring prayers for the dead, and that in fact they served no other
-end, is altogether misleading and erroneous. Without the assistance
-of the clergy, so supported by the generosity of those who left money
-for these foundations, the religious services in many of the parish
-churches of England in pre-Reformation times could not have been so
-fittingly or even adequately provided for. Wherever information is
-available this view is borne out, and it is altogether to mistake the
-true bearing of facts to suppose that in suppressing the chantries
-and appropriating the endowment of obits the officials of Edward VI.
-merely put an end to superstitious prayers for the souls in Purgatory.
-In reality they deprived the poor of much property left by deceased
-persons for their relief, and took away from every parish in England
-the assistance of the unbeneficed clergy who had hitherto helped to
-support the dignity of God’s worship and look after the souls of the
-people in the larger districts.
-
-One instance may be given to illustrate how far the chantry
-clergy actually took part in the work of the parish. At Henley on
-Thames, on the eve of the Reformation, there were seven chapels or
-chantries--namely, those of Our Lady, St. Katherine, St. Clement,
-St. Nicholas, St. Ann, St. John, and St. Leonard. These were all
-supported by various bequests, and the four priests who served them
-all resided in a common house situated in the churchyard known as “the
-chapel-house,” or “the four priest chambers.” The disposition of the
-services of these chaplains was apparently in the hands of the “Warden
-and the commonalty” of the township, and for the convenience of the
-people they arrange, for example, that the chaplain of the Lady altar
-shall say his mass there every day at six in the morning, and that
-the priest in charge of St. Katherine’s shall always begin his at
-eight.[372]
-
-“To maintain God’s service” is perhaps the most common reason assigned
-to King Edward’s commission for the existence of a chantry, or
-chantries, in connection with a parish church. Thus at Edwinstowe, in
-Nottinghamshire, there was a chantry chapel a mile from the parish
-church known as Clipston Chantry. The priest was John Thompson,
-and he had £5 a year, and “hath no mansion but a parlour under the
-chapel.”[373] At Harworth in the same county there was the hospital of
-St. Mary’s of Bawtree, founded by Robert Morton to serve the people two
-miles from the parish church. The priest had a mansion and close, “and
-had to say Mass every morning before sunrise, for such as be travellers
-by the way and to maintain God’s service there, which towne is also a
-thoroughfare towne.”[374] At Hayton, still in the same county, also two
-miles from the parish church, was the chantry of Tilne, founded for a
-priest to serve the villages of North and South Tilne “to celebrate
-mass and minister the sacraments to the inhabitants adjoining, for that
-they for the greatness of the waters cannot divers times in the year
-repair to the parish church.” For “the water doth abound so much within
-the said hamlets that the inhabitants thereof can by no means resort
-into their parish church of Hayton, being two miles distant from the
-said chapel, neither for christening, burying, nor other rights.”[375]
-
-The purposes which these chantry priests were intended to serve is
-seen to be the same all over England. To take Suffolk for example:
-at Redgrave, near Eye, or rather at Botesdale, a hamlet about a mile
-and a half from Redgrave, there was a chapel of “ancient standing for
-the ease of the inhabitants of the said street, which was first built
-at their cost, whereunto do belong no other than the chapel yard.”
-The “street” consisted of forty-six householders, and by estimation a
-hundred and sixty houselings. It was “a common thoroughfare and hath a
-liberty of market.” These matters “the poor inhabitants” submitted to
-the King; it is unnecessary to say without success.[376] At Levenham
-the alderman of St. Peter’s Guild held certain lands to find a priest
-who was to teach the children of the town, and was to be “secondary to
-the curate, who without help of another priest is not able to serve the
-cure there,” as there were two thousand souls in the district.[377]
-So, too, at Mildenhall there was a chantry established, as the parish
-was long and populous, “having a great number of houseling people and
-sundry hamlets, divers of them having chapels distant from the parish
-church one mile or two miles, where the said priest did sing Mass
-sundry festival days and other holy days, and also help the curate to
-minister the Sacraments, who without help were not able to discharge
-his cure.”[378] At Southwold were four cottages left by one John Perce
-for an “obit.” The property produced twenty shillings a year, and
-of this sum ten shillings were to be distributed to the poor; eight
-shillings to maintain the town and pay the taxes of the poor, and two
-shillings to be paid to the parson and his clerk for their services in
-church. There was also in the same town a tenement called Skilman’s,
-intended to supply a stipendiary priest for sixteen years to the
-parish, and after that to go to the town. The sixteen years were up
-when the royal commissioners visited the town, and the whole sum was
-then being spent on the town. In vain the people pleaded that “it was
-to be considered that the said town of Southwold is a very poor town,
-whereupon the sea lies beating daily, to the great ruin and destruction
-of the said town, if that the power and violence of the same were
-not broken by the maintenance of jetties and piers there, and that
-the maintenance of the haven and bridge of the same town is likewise
-very chargeable.” The marsh belonging to the said tenement, called
-Skilman’s, is let to the poor inhabitants of the same town, every man
-paying for his cowgate by the year 20d. only “to the great relief of
-the poor.”[379]
-
-So, too, the Aldermen of the Guild of the Holy Ghost in Beccles held
-lands to supply a priest to assist in the parish for ninety-nine years,
-to find money to pay the tenths, fifteenths, and other taxes, and for
-other charitable purposes. The property brought in £10, 9s. 4d., and
-each year the poor received forty shillings; thirty shillings went to
-pay for the taxes, and the rest--some £6--to the priest. In order to
-induce the king to leave this fund untouched, the commissioners of 1547
-are asked to note “that Beccles is a great and populous town,” there
-being eight hundred houselings, “and the said priest is aiding unto
-the curate there, who without help is not able to discharge the said
-cure.”[380]
-
-The case of Bury St. Edmunds is particularly distressing. Amongst other
-charities, lands had been left by will or given by various benefactors
-to find priests to serve St. Mary’s, to sing “the Jesus Mass,” and to
-act as chaplain at the Lady altar. Property also was given in charge
-of St. Nicholas Guild of the annual value of 25s. 4d., of which sum
-22s. was to be distributed to the poor of the town, and the rest was to
-go to the annual anniversary services for members of the guild. More
-property, too, had been left by one Margaret Oldham for a priest to say
-Mass in the church of St. James on the week days, and in the jail on
-the Sundays, and to find the poor prisoners in wood for a fire during
-winter months. There were several other similar benefactions of the
-same kind, and the parishioners of St. James’s church “gathered weekly
-of their devotion” the stipend of a priest paid to say “the morrow
-Mass”--that is, the Mass at daybreak intended for those who had to go
-early to their daily work. When the royal commissioners came on behalf
-of the said Edward VI. to gather in these spoils at Bury, they were
-asked to forward to the authorities in London the following plea for
-pity: “It is to be considered that the said town of Bury is a great and
-populous town, having in it two parish churches, and in the parishes
-of the same above the number of 3000 houseling persons, and a great
-number of youth. And the king’s majesty hath all the tithes and all
-the profits yearly coming and growing within the same parishes,[381]
-finding two parish priests there. And the said two parish priests are
-not able to serve and discharge the said cures without aid and help
-of other priests. And further, there is no school, nor other like
-foundation, within the said town, nor within twenty miles of it, for
-the virtuous education and bringing up of youth, nor any hospital or
-other like foundation for the comfort and relief of the poor, of which
-there is an exceeding great number within the said town other than what
-are before mentioned, of which the said incumbents do now take the
-whole[382] yearly revenues and profits, and distribute no part thereof
-to the aid and comfort or relief of the said poor people.
-
-“In consideration whereof it may please the king’s majesty of his most
-charitable benignity, moved with pity in that behalf, to convert the
-revenues and profits of the sum of the said promotions into some godly
-foundation, whereby the said poor inhabitants, daily there multiplying,
-may be relieved, and the youth instructed and brought up virtuously,
-or otherwise, according to his most godly and discreet wisdom, and the
-inhabitants shall daily pray to God for the prosperous preservation of
-his most excellent majesty, long to endure.”[383]
-
-It is hardly necessary to say that the petition had no effect. At
-Bury, as indeed all over England, the claims of the sick and poor were
-disregarded and the money passed into the possession of the crown.
-The hospitals that mediæval charity had erected and supported were
-destroyed; the youth remained untaught; the poor were deprived of the
-charity which had been, as it was supposed, secured to them for ever by
-the wills of generations of Catholic benefactors; the poor prisoners
-in the jail at Bury had to go without their Sunday Mass and their
-winter fire; whilst the money that had hitherto supported chaplains
-and chantry priests to assist the parish priests in the care of their
-districts was taken by the crown.
-
-For Yorkshire the certificates of the commissioners have been published
-by the Surtees Society. The same impression as to the utility and
-purpose of the chantry and other assisting priests may be gathered from
-almost every page. For example, the chantry of St. Katherine in the
-parish church of Selby: “The necessity thereof is to do divine service,
-and help the parish priest in time of necessity to minister sacraments
-and sacramentals and other divine services.”… For “the said parish of
-Selby is a great parish, having but one curate, and in the same parish
-is a thousand houseling people; and the said curate has no help in time
-of necessity but only the said chauntry priest.”[384]
-
-Again: “Two chantries of our Lady in the parish church of Leeds,
-‘founded by the parishioners there to serve in the choir and to
-minister sacraments and other divine service, as shall be appointed
-by the vicar and other honest parishioners there, which they do.… The
-necessity thereof is to do divine service, to help the curate, and
-minister the Sacraments, having 3000 houseling people.’”[385]
-
-In the same parish church, the chantry of St. Mary Magdalene was
-“founded by William Evers, late vicar of Leeds, to pray for the soul of
-the founder and all Christian souls, to minister at the altar of St.
-Mary Magdalene, to keep one yearly obit, with seven shillings to be
-distributed, and to serve in the choir at divine service all holy days
-and festival days, as appears by the foundation deed thereof, dated
-A.D. 1524.”[386]
-
-One more example may be taken out of the hundreds in these volumes:
-“The chantry, or donative, within the chapel of Holbecke in the parish
-of Leeds, ‘the incumbent is used to say daily mass there and is taken
-for a stipendiary priest paying tithes. And there is a great river
-between the said parish church and the chapel, whereby they can by no
-means often pass to the said church.… The said chantry is distant from
-the said parish church one mile. The necessity thereof is to do divine
-service according to the foundation.’”[387]
-
-A few words enforcing the lesson to be learned from these extracts
-taken from the preface to the second part of these interesting
-Yorkshire records may be here given. Mr. Page, the editor, says: “Up to
-the time of the Reformation nearly all education was maintained by the
-church, and when the chantries were dissolved practically the whole of
-the secondary education of the country would have been swept away, had
-not some provision for the instruction of the middle and lower classes
-been made by continuing, under new ordinances, some of the educational
-endowments which pious founders had previously provided.”[388]
-
-“The next most important class of foundations, some of which were
-continued under the commission … consisted of the chapels of ease,
-which were much required in extensive parishes with a scattered
-population, and had been generally founded by the parishioners for
-their own convenience. It seems, therefore, that the dissolution of
-these chapels was a peculiar hardship. As early as 1233, the Pope
-granted licence to the archbishop of York to build oratories or chapels
-and to appoint to them priests, in places so distant from the parish
-churches that the people could with difficulty attend divine service,
-and the sick died before the priest could get to them to administer
-the last sacraments. The necessity for these chapels of ease was
-especially felt in Yorkshire, where the inhabitants of so many outlying
-hamlets were cut off from their parish churches in winter time by
-impassable roads and flooded rivers, which is the reason time after
-time assigned by the commissioners, for the necessity of the existence
-of such chapels; and yet comparatively few of them were recommended for
-continuance by Sir Walter Mildmay and Robert Kelway in the returns to
-the commission. Possibly, it was the loss of the endowments of Ayton
-chapel which occasioned the insurrection at Leamer … which chapel the
-inhabitants so piously kept up afterwards at their own expense.”[389]
-
-“In most cases, the chantry priest seems to have acted in much the
-same capacity in a parish as that now occupied by the curate; he
-assisted the parish priest in performing mass, hearing confessions and
-visiting the sick, and also helped in the ordinary services of the
-church; the few only were licensed to preach, like the schoolmaster at
-Giggleswick. In the Cathedral Church at York, besides praying for the
-soul of his founder and all Christian souls, each chantry priest had
-to be present in the choir in his habit of a parson on all principal
-and double feast days, Sundays, and nine lections, at Matins, Mass,
-Evensong, and processions, when he had to read lessons, begin anthems,
-and to minister at the high altar as should be appointed to him by the
-officers of the choir. Besides these purely ecclesiastical duties, very
-many of the chantry priests were bound to teach a certain number of
-the children of the neighbourhood, which was the origin of most of our
-Grammar schools.”[390]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-PILGRIMAGES AND RELICS
-
-
-Pilgrimages and the honour shown to relics are frequently pointed out
-as, with Indulgences, among the most objectionable features of the
-pre-Reformation ecclesiastical system. It is assumed that on the eve of
-the religious changes the abuses in these matters were so patent, that
-no voice was, or indeed could have been, raised in their defence, and
-it is asserted that they were swept away without regret or protest as
-one of the most obvious and necessary items in the general purification
-of the mediæval church initiated in the reign of Henry VIII. That they
-had indeed been tolerated at all even up to the time of their final
-overthrow was in part, if not entirely, due to the clergy, and in
-particular to the monks who, as they derived much pecuniary benefit
-from encouraging such practices, did not scruple to inculcate by every
-means in their power the spiritual advantages to be derived from them.
-That the objectionable features of these so-called works of piety had
-long been recognised, is taken for granted, and the examinations of
-people suspected of entertaining Wycliffite opinions are pointed to
-as proof that earnest men were alive to these abuses for more than a
-century before religion was purified from them. As conclusive evidence
-of this, the names, too, of Chaucer for early times, and of Erasmus
-for the Reform period, are given as those whose condemnation and even
-scornful rejection of such practices cannot be doubted. It becomes
-important, then, for a right understanding of the mental attitude of
-the people generally to the existing ecclesiastical system at the time
-of its overthrow, to see how far the outcry against pilgrimages and
-the devotion to relics was really popular, and what were the precise
-objections taken to them by the innovators.
-
-It is difficult to exaggerate the importance attached to pilgrimages
-by our pre-Reformation forefathers. From very early times the practice
-was followed with eagerness, not to say with devotion, and included not
-merely visits to the shrines situated within the country itself, but
-long and often perilous journeys into foreign lands--to Compostella,
-Rome, and to the Holy Land itself. These foreign pilgrimages of
-course could be undertaken only by the rich, or by those for whom the
-requisite money was found by some one unable to undertake the journey
-in person. Not infrequently the early English wills contain injunctions
-upon the executors to defray the cost of some poor pilgrim to Spain,
-to Rome, or to some of the noted shrines on the Continent. The English
-love for these works of piety in nowise showed any sign of decadence
-even right up to the period of change. Books furnishing intending
-pilgrims with necessary information, and vocabularies, even in Greek,
-were prepared to assist them in their voyages. The itineraries of
-William Wey, printed by the Roxburghe Club, give a very good idea of
-what these great religious pilgrimages must have been like at the
-close of the fifteenth century. In 1462 Wey was in the Holy Land, and
-describes how joyfully the pilgrims on landing at Jaffa sang the
-“_Urbs beata Jerusalem_ in faburthyn.” In 1456 he took part in a large
-English pilgrimage to St. James of Compostella, leaving Plymouth with
-a shipload of English fellow-pilgrims on May 17. William Wey’s ship
-was named the _Mary White_, and in company with them six other English
-ships brought pilgrims from Portsmouth, Bristol, Weymouth, Lymington,
-and a second from Plymouth. They reached Corunna on May 21st, and
-Compostella for the great celebration of Trinity Day. Wey was evidently
-much honoured by being pointed out to the church officials as the chief
-Englishman of note present, and he was given the post of first bearer
-of the canopy in the procession of the Blessed Sacrament. Four out of
-the six poles were carried by his countrymen, whom he names as Austill,
-Gale, and Fulford.
-
-On their return the pilgrims spent three days at Corunna. They were not
-allowed to be idle, but religious festivities must have occupied most
-of their time. On Wednesday, the eve of Corpus Christi day, there was a
-procession of English pilgrims throughout the city and a mass in honour
-of the Blessed Virgin. On Corpus Christi itself their procession was
-in the Franciscan church, and a sermon was preached in English by an
-English Bachelor in Theology on the theme, _Ecce ego; vocasti me_. “No
-other nation,” says William Wey, somewhat proudly, “had these special
-services but the English.” In the first port there were ships belonging
-to English, Welsh, Irish, Norman, French, and Breton, and the English
-alone had two and thirty.
-
-Such journeys were not, of course, in those days devoid of danger,
-especially from sickness brought on, or developed in the course of the
-travels. Erasmus, in his _Colloquy on Rash Vows_, speaks of losing
-three in a company. “One dying on the way commissioned us to salute
-Peter (in Rome) and James (at Compostella) in his name. Another we lost
-at Rome, and he desired that we should greet his wife and children
-for him. The third we left behind at Florence, his recovery entirely
-despaired of, and I imagine he is now in heaven.” That this account of
-the mortality among pilgrims is not exaggerated is shown in the diary
-of Sir Richard Torkington, Rector of Mulbarton, in Norfolk. In 1517 he
-made a pilgrimage to Jerusalem, and records on “the 25th of August,
-that was Saynt Bertolmew’s day, deceased Robert Crosse of London, and
-was buried in the churchyard of Salyus (in the island of Cyprus); and
-the 27th day of August deceased Sir Thomas Tappe, a priest of the West
-country, and was cast over the board; as were many more whose souls
-God assoyl; and then there remained in the ship four English priests
-more.”[391]
-
-If Englishmen went abroad to the celebrated shrines, foreigners in
-turn found their way to the no less renowned places of pilgrimage in
-England. Pilgrims’ inns and places of rest were scattered over the
-great roads leading to Glastonbury, Walsingham, and Canterbury, and
-other “holy spots” in this island, and at times these places were
-thronged with those who came to pay their devotion. At one time we
-are told that more than a hundred thousand pilgrims were together in
-the city of Canterbury to celebrate one of the Jubilee celebrations
-of the martyr St. Thomas; whilst the road to Walsingham was so much
-frequented, that in the common mind the very “milk way” had been set
-by Providence in the heaven to point the path to Our Lady’s shrine.
-
-With the very question of pilgrimages, Sir Thomas More actually deals
-in the first portion of his _Dyalogue_, and it would be difficult to
-find any authority who should carry greater weight. He first deals with
-the outcry raised by the followers of Luther against the riches which
-had been lavished upon the churches, and in particular upon the shrines
-containing the relics of saints.
-
-Those who so loudly condemn this devotion shown by the church to the
-saints should know, he says “that the church worships not the saints
-as God, but as God’s servants, and therefore the honour that is done
-to them redoundeth principally to the honour of their Master; just
-as by common custom of people we sometimes, for their master’s sake,
-reverence and make great cheer for people to whom perhaps except for
-this we would not have said ‘good morrow.’
-
-“And sure if any benefit or alms, done to one of Christ’s poor folk for
-his sake, be reputed and accepted by His high goodness, as done unto
-Himself: and if whosoever receiveth one of His apostles or disciples
-receives Himself, every wise man may well think that in like manner
-he who honours His holy saints for His sake, honours Himself, except
-these heretics think that God were as envious as they are themselves,
-and that He would be wroth to have any honour done to any other, though
-it thereby redoundeth unto Himself. In this matter our Saviour Christ
-clearly declares the contrary, for He shows Himself so well content
-that His holy saints shall be partakers of His honour that He promises
-His apostles that at the dreadful doom (when He shall come in His high
-majesty) they shall have their honourable seats and sit with Himself
-upon the judgment of the world. Christ also promised that Saint Mary
-Magdalene should be worshipped through the world and have here an
-honourable remembrance because she bestowed that precious ointment upon
-His holy head. When I consider this thing it makes me marvel at the
-madness of these heretics that bark against the old ancient customs of
-Christ’s church, mocking at the setting up of candles, and with foolish
-facetiousness (fallacies) and blasphemous mockery demand whether God
-and His saints lack light, or whether it be night with them that they
-cannot see without a candle. They might as well ask what good did that
-ointment do to Christ’s head? But the heretics grudge the cost now as
-their brother Judas did then, and say it were better spent on alms upon
-a poor folk, and thus say many of them who can neither find in their
-heart to spend on the one nor the other. And some spend sometimes on
-the one for no other intent, but the more boldly to rebuke against and
-rail against the other.”
-
-After pointing out how riches were lavished on the temple by God’s
-special ordinance, Sir Thomas More continues: “If men will say that
-the money were better spent among poor folk by whom He (_i.e._ God)
-setteth more store as the living temples of the Holy Ghost made by His
-own hand than by the temples of stone made by the hand of men, this
-would perhaps be true if there were so little to do it with that we
-should be driven by necessity to leave the one undone. But God gives
-enough for both, and gives divers men divers kinds of devotion, and
-all to His pleasure. Luther, in a sermon of his, wished that he had
-in his hand all the pieces of the holy cross, and said if he had he
-would throw them where the sun should never shine on them. And for what
-worshipful reason would the wretch do such villainy to the cross of
-Christ? Because, as he says, there is so much gold now bestowed on the
-garnishing of the pieces of the cross that there is none left for poor
-folks. Is not this a high reason? As though all the gold that is now
-bestowed about the pieces of the holy cross would not have failed to
-be given to poor men if they had not been bestowed on the garnishing
-of the cross; and as though there was nothing lost except what is
-bestowed about Christ’s cross. Take all the gold that is spent about
-all the pieces of Christ’s cross through Christendom (albeit many a
-good Christian prince and other godly people have honourably garnished
-many pieces of it), yet if all the gold were gathered together it would
-appear a poor portion in comparison with the gold that is bestowed upon
-cups--what do we speak of cups for? in which the gold, though it is not
-given to poor men, is saved, and may be given in alms when men will,
-which they never will; how small a portion, ween we, were the gold
-about all the pieces of Christ’s cross, if it were compared with the
-gold that is quite cast away about the gilding of knives, swords, &c.”
-
-Our author then goes on to put in the mouth of the “objector” the chief
-reasons those who were then the advocates of the religious changes were
-urging against pilgrimages to the shrines of saints and to special
-places of devotion to our Blessed Lady. Protesting that he had, of
-course, no desire to see the images of the saints treated in any way
-disrespectfully, the objector declares that “yet to go in pilgrimages
-to them, or to pray to them, not only seemed vain, considering that
-(if they can do anything) they can do no more for us among them all
-than Christ can Himself alone who can do all things, nor are they so
-ready to hear (if they hear us at all) as Christ that is everywhere.”…
-Moreover, to go a pilgrimage to one place rather than to another “seems
-to smell of idolatry,” as implying that God was not so powerful in
-one place as He is in another, and, as it were, making God and His
-saints “bound to a post, and that post cut out and carved into images.
-For when we reckon we are better heard by our Lord in Kent than at
-Cambridge, at the north door of Paul’s than at the south door, at one
-image of our Lady than at another,” is it not made plain that we “put
-our trust and confidence in the image itself, and not in God and our
-Lady,” and think of the image and not of what the image represents.
-
-Further, “men reckon that the clergy gladly favour these ways, and
-nourish this superstition under the name and colour of devotion, to the
-peril of people’s souls for the lucre and temporal advantage that they
-themselves receive from the offerings” (p. 120).
-
-Lest it may be thought that these objections to places of pilgrimage
-were merely such as Sir Thomas More invented to put into the mouth of
-the “objector” in order to refute them, the reader may like to have the
-words of a known advocate of the new ideas. Lancelot Ridley, in his
-expositions of some of the Epistles, states his views very clearly.
-“Ignorant people,” he writes, “have preferred the saints before God,
-and put more trust, more confidence, (look for) more help and succour,
-in a saint than in God. Yea, I fear me that many have put their help
-and succour in an image made of stone or of wood by men’s hand, and
-have done great honour and reverence to the image, believing that
-great virtue and great holiness was in that image above other images.
-Therefore that image must have a velvet coat hanged all over with
-brooches of silver, and much silver hanged about it and on it, with
-much light burning before it, and with candles always burning before
-it. I would no man (should put out the light) in contempt of the saint
-whose image there is, but I would have this evil opinion out of the
-simple hearts that they should esteem images after the value they are,
-and put no more holiness in one image than in another, no more virtue
-in one than in another. It holds the simple people in great blindness,
-and makes them put great trust and (esteem) great holiness in images,
-because one image is called our Lady of Grace, another our Lady of
-Pity, another our Lady of Succour or Comfort; the Holy Rood of such a
-place, &c.” And this he maintained, though he did not condemn images
-generally in churches. These he thought useful to remind people of
-God’s saints and their virtues, and “to stir up our dull hearts and
-slothful minds to God and to goodness.” What he objected to chiefly was
-the special places of pilgrimage and special images to which more than
-ordinary devotion was shown.[392]
-
-In another of his _Expositions_, printed in 1540, Ridley again states
-his objections to the places of pilgrimage. “Some think,” he writes,
-“that they have some things of God, and other part of saints, of
-images, and so divide God’s glory, part to God and part to an image,
-of wood or of stone made by man’s hand. This some ignorant persons
-have done in times past, and thanked God for their health and the
-blessed Lady of Walsingham, of Ipswich, St. Edmund of Bury, Etheldred
-of Ely, the Lady of Redbourne, the Holy Blood of Hayles, the Holy Rood
-of Boxley, of Chester, &c., and so other images in this realm to the
-which have been much pilgrimage and much idolatry, supposing the dead
-images could have healed them or could have done something for them to
-God. For this the ignorant have crouched, kneeled, kissed, bobbed and
-licked the images, giving them coats of cloth, of gold, silver, and of
-tissue, velvet, damask, and satin, and suffered the living members of
-Christ to be without a russet coat or a sackcloth to keep them from the
-cold.”[393]
-
-Again in another place he says that his great objection to images
-is not that they may not be good in themselves and as a reminder of
-the holiness of the saints, but that they are used as a means of
-making money. “Who can tell,” he writes, “half the ways they have
-found to get, yea to extort money from men by images, by pardons, by
-pilgrimages, by indulgences, &c. … all invented for money.” The above
-passages may be taken as fair samples of the outcry against shrines and
-pilgrimages raised by the English followers of Luther and the advocates
-of the religious changes generally. It will be noticed that the ground
-of the objections was in reality only the same as that which induced
-them to declare against any honour shown to images, whether of Christ
-or His saints. There is no suggestion of any special abuses connected
-with particular shrines and places of pilgrimage, such as is often
-hinted at by those who refer to Chaucer and Erasmus. In addition to
-the general ground of objection, the only point raised in regard to
-pilgrimages by the advocates for their suppression was that money was
-spent upon them which might have been bestowed more profitably on the
-poor, and that the clergy were enriched by the offerings made at the
-shrines visited. Sir Thomas More’s reply to the latter suggestion has
-been already given, and elsewhere his views as to the general question
-of the danger of people mistaking the nature of the honour shown to
-images of the saints have been stated at length. With regard to his
-approval of the principle of pilgrimages there is no room for doubt.
-
-“If the thing were so far from all frame of right religion,” he says,
-“and so perilous to men’s souls, I cannot perceive why the clergy,
-for the gain they get thereby, would suffer such abuses to continue.
-For, first, if it were true that no pilgrimage ought to be used, no
-image offered to, nor worship done nor prayer offered to any saint,
-then--if all these things were all undone (if that were the right way,
-as I wot well it were wrong), then to me there is little question but
-that Christian people who are in the true faith and in the right way
-Godward would not thereby in any way slack their good minds towards the
-ministers of His church, but their devotion towards them would more and
-more increase. So that if by this way they now get a penny they would
-not then fail to receive a groat; and so should no lucre be the cause
-to favour this way if it be wrong, whilst they could not fail to win
-more by the right.”
-
-“Moreover, look through Christendom and you will find the fruit of
-those offerings a right small part of the living of the clergy, and
-such as, though some few places would be glad to retain, yet the whole
-body might easily forbear without any notable loss. Let us consider our
-own country, and we shall find that these pilgrimages are for the most
-part in the hands of such religious persons or of such poor parishes
-as have no great authority in the convocations. Besides this you will
-not find, I suppose, that any Bishop in England has the profit of even
-one groat from any such offering in his diocese. Now, the continuance
-or breaking of this manner and custom stands them specially in the
-power of those who take no profit by it. If they believed it to be
-(as you call it) superstitious and wicked they would never suffer it
-to continue to the perishing of men’s souls (something whereby they
-themselves would destroy their own souls and get no commodity either in
-body or goods). And beyond this, we see that the bishops and prelates
-themselves visit these holy places and pilgrimages, and make as large
-offerings and (incur) as great cost in coming and going as other
-people do, so that they not only take no temporal advantage, but also
-bestow their own money therein. And surely I believe this devotion so
-planted by God’s own hand in the hearts of the whole Church, that is to
-say, not the clergy only, but the whole congregation of all Christian
-people, that if the spirituality were of the mind to give it up, yet
-the temporality would not suffer it.”
-
-It would be impossible, without making extensive quotations, to do
-justice to Sir Thomas More’s argument in favour of the old Catholic
-practice of pilgrimages. He points out that the whole matter turns
-upon the question whether or no Almighty God does manifest His power
-and presence more in one place of His world than in another. That He
-does so, he thinks cannot be questioned; why He should do so, it is
-not for us to guess, but the single example of the Angel and the pool
-of Bethsaida related in St. John’s Gospel is sufficient proof of the
-fact--at least to Sir Thomas More’s intelligence. Moreover, he thinks
-also that in many cases the special holiness of a place of pilgrimage
-has been shown by the graces and favours, and even miracles, which have
-been granted by God at that particular spot, and on the “objector”
-waiving this argument aside on the plea that he does not believe in
-modern miracles, More declares that what is even more than miracles
-in his estimation is the “common belief in Christ’s Church” in the
-practice.
-
-As to believing in miracles; they, like every other fact, depend
-on evidence and proof. It is unreasonable in the highest degree to
-disbelieve everything which we have not seen or which we do not
-understand. Miracles, like everything else, must be believed on the
-evidence of credible witnesses. What in their day, he says, is believed
-in by all would have been deemed impossible a century or two before;
-for example, that the earth is round and “sails in mid-air,” and that
-“men walk on it foot to foot” and ships sail on its seas “bottom to
-bottom.” Again, “It is not fifty years ago,” he says, “since the first
-man, as far as men have heard, came to London who ever parted the
-silver gilt from the silver, consuming shortly the silver into dust
-with a very fair water.” At first the gold and silver smiths laughed
-at the suggestion as absurd and impossible. Quite recently also More
-had been told that it was possible to melt iron and make it “to run
-as silver or lead doeth, and make it take a print.” More had never,
-he says, seen this, but he had seen the new invention of drawing out
-silver into thread-like wires. The “objector” was incredulous, and when
-More went on to tell him that if a piece of silver had been gilded,
-it could be drawn out with the gilding into gilt wires, he expressed
-his disbelief in the possibility of such a thing, and was hardly more
-satisfied that he was not being deceived when the process was shown to
-him the next day.
-
-These and such like things, argues More, show us that our knowledge is,
-after all, very limited, and that while some supposed miracles may be
-doubted, it is most unreasonable to doubt or deny the possibility of
-miracles generally. If nature and reason tell us there is a God, the
-same two prove that miracles are not impossible, and that God can act
-when He wills against the course of nature. Whether He does in this or
-that case is plainly a matter of evidence. The importance of Sir Thomas
-More’s opinion on the matter of Pilgrimage does not, of course, rest
-upon the nature of his views, which were those naturally of all good
-Catholic sons of Holy Church, but upon the fact that, in face of the
-objections which were then made and which were of the kind to which
-subsequent generations have been accustomed, so learned and liberal a
-man as he was, did not hesitate to treat them as groundless, and to
-defend the practice as it was then known in England. That there may
-have been “abuses” he would have no doubt fully admitted, but that the
-“abuses” were either so great or so serious as to be any reasonable
-ground against the “use” he would equally have indignantly denied.
-
-No less clear and definite are his opinions as to “relics” and the
-honour shown them. The “adversary” in the _Dyalogue_ takes up the usual
-objections urged against the reverence shown to the remains of the
-saints, and in particular to the wealth which was lavished upon their
-shrines. “May the taking up of a man’s bones,” he says, “and setting
-his carcase in a gay shrine, and then kissing his bare scalp, make a
-man a saint? And yet are there some unshrined, for no man knoweth where
-they lie. And men doubt whether some ever had any body at all or not,
-but to recompense that again some there are who have two bodies, to
-lend one to some good fellow that lacketh his. For … some one body lies
-whole in two places asunder, or else the monks of the one be beguiled.
-For both places plainly affirm that it lieth there, and at either place
-they show the shrine, and in the shrine they show a body which they say
-is _the_ body, and boldly allege old writings and miracles also for the
-proof of it. Now must he confess that either the miracles at the one
-place be false and done by the devil, or else that the same saint had
-indeed two bodies. It is therefore likely that a bone worshipped for
-a relic of some holy saint in some place was peradventure ‘a bone (as
-Chaucer says) of some holy Jew’s sheep.’” More’s “adversary” then goes
-on to say that our Lord in reproving the Pharisees for “making fresh
-the sepulchres of the prophets” condemns the “gay golden shrines made
-for saints’ bodies, especially when we have no certainty that they are
-saints at all.”[394]
-
-What all this really amounts to, replies More, is not that your reasons
-would condemn honour and worship to true relics of the saints, but
-that “we may be deceived in some that we take for saints--except you
-would say that if we might by any possibility mistake some, therefore
-we should worship none.” Few people would say this, and “I see,”
-says More, “no great peril to us from the danger of a mistake. If
-there came, for example, a great many of the king’s friends into your
-country, and for his sake you make them all great cheer; if among them
-there come unawares to you some spies that were his mortal enemies,
-wearing his badge and seeming to you and so reported as his familiar
-friends, would he blame you for the good cheer you made his enemies or
-thank you for the good cheer you gave his friends?” He then goes on at
-great length to suggest that, as in the case of the head of St. John
-the Baptist in which portions only existing in each place are each
-called “the head,” so, very frequently, only a portion of the body of
-a saint is called “the body.” He mentions having himself been present
-at the abbey of Barking thirty years before (_i.e._ in 1498), when a
-number of relics were discovered hidden in an old image, which must
-have been put there four or five hundred years since “when the abbey
-was burned by the infidels.” He thinks that in this way the names of
-relics are frequently either lost or changed. But he adds, “the name
-is not so very requisite but that we may mistake it without peril, so
-that we nevertheless have the relics of holy men in reverence.”
-
-In replying to Tyndale also, More declares that he had never in all
-his life held views against relics of the saints or the honour due to
-their holy images. Tyndale had charged him with being compromised by
-the words used by Erasmus in the _Enconium Moriæ_, which was known to
-have been composed in More’s house, and was commonly regarded as almost
-the joint work of the two scholars. If there were anything like this in
-the _Moriæ_--any words that could mean or seem to mean anything against
-the true Catholic devotion to relics and images--then More rejects them
-from his heart. But they are not my words, he adds, “the book being
-made by another man, though he were my darling never so dear” (p. 422).
-But the real truth is that in the _Moriæ_ Erasmus never said more or
-meant more than to “jest upon the abuses of such things.”
-
-In this regard it is of interest to understand what was the real
-opinion of Erasmus in regard to devotions to particular saints and
-their images and relics. This is all the more important, as most
-people regard the account of his two pilgrimages to Walsingham and to
-Canterbury as full and conclusive evidence of his sentiments. In his
-tract _Enchiridion Militis Christiani_, published at Louvain in 1518,
-his views are stated with absolute clearness. “There are some,” he
-says, “who honour certain saints with some special ceremonies.… One
-salutes St. Christopher each day, and only in presence of his image.
-Why does he wish to see it? Simply because he will then feel safe that
-day from any evil death. Another honours Saint Roch--but why? Because
-he thinks that he will drive away infection from his body. Others
-murmur prayers to St. Barbara or St. George, so as not to fall into
-the hands of any enemy. One man fasts for St. Apollonia, not to have
-toothache. Some dedicate a certain portion of their gains to the poor
-so that their merchandise is not destroyed in shipwreck,” &c.[395]
-
-Our author’s point is that in these and such-like things people pray
-for riches, &c., and do not think much about the right use of them;
-they pray for health and go on living evil lives. In so far such
-prayers to the saints are mere superstitions, and do not much differ
-from the pagan superstitions; the cock to Æsculapius, the tithe to
-Hercules, the bull to Neptune. “But,” he says, “I praise those who ask
-from St. Roch a life protected from disease if they would consecrate
-that life to Christ. I would praise them more if they would pray only
-for increased detestation of vice and love virtue. I will tolerate
-infirmity, but with Paul I show the better way.” He would think it,
-consequently, a more perfect thing to pray only for grace to avoid sin
-and to please God, and to leave life and death, sickness, health and
-riches to Him and His will.
-
-“You,” he says farther on, “venerate the saints, you rejoice to
-possess their relics, but you despise the best thing they have left
-behind them, namely, the example of a pure life. No devotion is so
-pleasing to Mary as when you imitate her humility; no religion is so
-acceptable to the saints and so proper in itself as striving to copy
-their virtue. Do you wish to merit the patronage of Peter and Paul?
-Imitate the faith of the one and the charity of the other and you will
-do more than if you had made ten journeys to Rome. Do you wish to do
-something to show high honour to St. Francis? You are proud, you are
-a lover of riches, you are quarrelsome; give these to the saint, rule
-your soul and be more humble by the example of Francis; despise filthy
-lucre, and covet rather the good of the soul. Leave contentions aside
-and overcome evil by good. The saint will receive more honour in this
-way than if you were to burn a hundred candles to him. You think it a
-great thing if clothed in the habit of St. Francis you are borne to the
-grave. This dress will not profit you when you are dead if, when alive,
-your morals were unlike his.”
-
-“People,” he continues, “honour the relics of St. Paul, and do not
-trouble to listen to his voice still speaking. They make much of a
-large portion of one of his bones looked at through a glass, and think
-little of honouring him really by understanding what he teaches and
-trying to follow that.” It is the same so often with the honour shown
-to the crucifix. “You honour,” he says, “the representation of Christ’s
-face fashioned of stone or of wood or painted in colours, the image of
-His mind ought to be more religiously honoured, which, by the work of
-the Holy Spirit, is set forth in the gospels. No Apelles ever sketched
-the form and figure of a human body in such a perfect way as to compare
-with the mental image formed in prayer.”
-
-Erasmus then passes on to speak at length of what should lie at the
-foundation of all true devotion to the saints. The spirit which
-actuates is that which matters. To put up candles to images of the
-saints and not to observe God’s laws; to fast and to abstain and not to
-set a guard on the tongue, to give way to detraction and evil speaking
-of all kinds; to wear the religious habit and to live the life of a
-worldling under it; to build churches and not to build up the soul;
-to keep Sunday observances externally but not to mind what the spirit
-gives way to--these are the things that really matter. “By your lips
-you bless and in your heart you curse. Your body is shut up in a narrow
-cell, and in thought you wander over the whole world. You listen to
-God’s word with the ears of your body; it would be more to the purpose
-if you listened inwardly. What doth it profit not to do the evil which
-you desire to accomplish? What doth it profit to do good outwardly and
-to do the opposite inwardly? Is it much to go to Jerusalem in the body
-when in the spirit it is to thee but Sodom and Egypt and Babylon?”[396]
-
-In his tract _De amabili Ecclesiæ concordia_, printed in 1533, Erasmus
-lays down the same principle. It is, he writes, a pious and good thing
-to believe that the saints who have worked miracles in the time of
-their lives on earth, can help us now that they are in heaven. As long
-as there is no danger of real superstition, it is absurd to try to
-prevent people invoking the saints. Though superstition in the cultus
-of the saints is, of course, to be prevented, “the pious and simple
-affection is sometimes to be allowed even if it be mixed with some
-error.” As for the representations of the saints in churches, those
-who disapprove of them should not for that reason “blame those who,
-without superstition, venerate these images for the love of those they
-represent, just as a newly-married woman kisses a ring or present left
-or sent by her absent spouse out of affection for him.” Such affection
-cannot be displeasing to God, since it comes not from superstition, but
-from an abundance of affectionate feeling, and exactly the same view
-should be taken of the true devotion shown to the relics of the saints,
-provided that it be ever borne in mind that the highest honour that can
-be paid to them consists in imitation of their lives.
-
-Considering the importance of “indulgences” or “pardons,” as they were
-frequently called, in the Reformation controversies, it is curious
-that very little is made of them in the literature of the period
-preceding the religious changes. If we except the works of professed
-followers of Luther, there is hardly any trace of serious objection
-being raised to the fundamental idea of “indulgences” in their true
-sense. Here and there may be found indications of some objection to
-certain abuses which had been allowed to creep into the system, but
-these proceeded from loyal sons of the Church rather than from those
-ill affected to the existing ecclesiastical authority, or those who
-desired to see the abolition of all such grants of spiritual favours.
-The lawyer Saint-German, for instance, may be taken as an example
-of the acute layman, who, although professing to be a Catholic and
-an obedient son of the Church, was credited by his contemporaries
-with holding advanced if not somewhat heterodox views on certain
-matters of current controversy. What he has to say about “pardons”
-and “indulgences” is neither very startling nor indeed very different
-from what all serious-minded churchmen of that day held. He considered
-that the people generally were shocked at finding “the Pope and other
-spiritual rulers” granting “pardons” for the payment of money. This,
-he considered, had been brought prominently into notice at the time he
-was writing, by the indulgences granted to those who should contribute
-to the building of St. Peter’s when “it has appeared after, evidently
-that it has not been disposed to that use. And that has caused many to
-think that the said pardons were granted rather of covetousness than of
-charity, or for the health of the souls of the people. And thereupon
-some have fallen in a manner into despising ‘pardons’ as though pardons
-granted upon such covetousness would not avail … and verily it were a
-great pity that any misliking of pardons should grow in the hearts of
-the people for any misdemeanour in the grantor or otherwise, for they
-are right necessary. And I suppose that if certain pardons were granted
-freely without money, for the saying of certain appointed prayers, then
-all misliking of pardons would shortly cease and vanish away.”[397]
-
-Christopher Saint-German speaks much in the same way as to the evil of
-connecting payment of money with the granting of indulgences, in the
-work in connection with which his name is chiefly known, _A Dyaloge in
-English between a Student and a Doctor of Divinity_. “If it were so
-ordered by the Pope,” he writes, “that there might be certain general
-pardons of full remission in diverse parts of the realm, which the
-people might have for saying certain orisons and prayers without paying
-any money for it, it is not unlikely that in a short time there would
-be very few that would find any fault with ‘pardons.’ For verily it is
-a great comfort to all Christian people to remember that our Lord loved
-His people so much that to their relief and comfort leave behind Him so
-great a treasure as is the power to grant pardons, which, as I suppose,
-next unto the treasure of His precious body in the Sacrament of the
-altar, may be accounted among the greatest, and therefore he would
-labour greatly to his own hurt and to the great heaviness of all others
-also who would endeavour to prove that there was no such power left by
-God.”[398]
-
-In the literature of the period, it must be remembered, there is
-nothing to show that the true nature of a “pardon” or indulgence was
-not fully and commonly understood. There is no evidence that it was
-in any way interpreted as a remission of sin, still less that any one
-was foolish enough to regard it as permission to commit this or that
-offence against God. Tyndale, indeed, had suggested that by purchasing
-an indulgence “thou mayest quench almost the terrible fire of hell for
-three halfpence.” But Sir Thomas More meets the point directly. “Nay,
-surely,” he says, “that fire is not so lightly quenched that folk upon
-the boldness of pardons should stand out of the fear of purgatory.
-For though the sacrament of penance is able to put away the eternal
-(nature) of the pain, yet the party for all that has cause to fear both
-purgatory and hell too, lest some default on his own part prevented God
-working such grace in him in the Sacrament as should serve for this.
-So, though the pardon be able to discharge a man of purgatory, yet
-there may be such default in the party to whom the pardon is granted
-that although instead of three halfpence he gives three hundred pounds,
-still he may receive no pardon at all, and therefore he cannot be out
-of fear of purgatory, but ever has cause to fear it. For no man without
-a revelation can be sure whether he be partaker of the pardon or not,
-though he may have and ought to have both in that and every good thing
-good hope.”[399]
-
-Bishop Gardiner in 1546, in writing against George Joye, incidentally
-makes use of some strong expressions about the granting of pardons
-for the payment of money, and blames the friars as being instrumental
-in spreading them. He has been asserting that by every means in his
-power the devil, now in one way and now in another, attempts to prevent
-men from practising the good works necessary for salvation. “For that
-purpose,” he says, “he procured out pardons from Rome, wherein heaven
-was sold for a little money, and to retail that merchandise the devil
-used friars for his ministers. Now they be all gone with all their
-trumpery; but the devil is not yet gone, for now the cry is that
-‘heaven needs no works at all, but only belief, only, only, and nothing
-else.’”[400]
-
-This, after all, was very little more than the abuse which previously
-was pointed out by the cardinal who, conjointly with Cardinal Caraffa,
-afterwards Pope Paul IV., had been directed to draw up suggestions for
-improvement of ecclesiastical discipline. The document drawn up by
-Caraffa himself was submitted to the Pope by his command, and amongst
-the points which were declared to need correction were the granting
-of indulgences for money payments and permission given to travelling
-collectors, such as the Questors of the Holy Spirit, &c., to bestow
-“pardons” in return for subscriptions. This, in the judgment of the
-four cardinals, is likely to lead to misunderstandings as to the real
-nature of the indulgences granted, to deceive rustic minds, and to give
-rise to all manner of superstitions.[401]
-
-Cardinal Sadolet, one of the four cardinals who formed the Papal
-Commission just referred to, in an appeal to the German princes makes
-the same adverse criticism about the money payments received for the
-granting of indulgences. “The whole of Germany,” he says, “has been
-convulsed by the indulgences granted by Pope Leo. X. to those who would
-contribute to the building of St. Peter’s. These indulgences,” he says,
-“and consequently the agents in distributing them, I do not now defend.
-And I remember that, as far as my position and honour would then allow,
-I spoke against them when those decrees were published, and when my
-opinion had no effect I was greatly grieved.” He did not, he continued,
-doubt the power of the Pope in granting the indulgences, but held that
-“in giving them, the manner now insisted on with every care by the
-supreme Pontiff, Paul III., ought to be maintained, namely, that they
-should be granted freely, and that there should be no mention of money
-in regard to them. The loving-kindness and mercy of God should not be
-sold for money, and if anything be asked for at the time, it should be
-requested as a work of piety.”[402]
-
-The above will show that earnest-minded men were fully alive to the
-abuses which might be connected with the granting of indulgences,
-and no condemnation could have been stronger than that formulated by
-the Council of Trent. At the same time, it is clear that the abuses
-of the system were, so far as England at least is concerned, neither
-widespread nor obvious. The silence of Sir Thomas More on the matter,
-and the very mild representations of his adversary, Christopher
-Saint-German, show that this is the case. Saint-German’s objection was
-not against the system, but against the same kind of abuses against
-which subsequently the Fathers of Trent legislated. The reformers
-attacked not the abuses only but the whole system, and their language
-has quite unjustly been frequently interpreted by subsequent writers
-as evidence of the existence everywhere of widespread abuses. In this
-regard it is well to bear in mind that the translation of the works
-of the German reformers into English cannot be taken as contemporary
-evidence for England itself.
-
-The cry of the advanced party which would sweep away every vestige of
-the old religious observances was certainly not popular. One example of
-a testimony to the general feeling in London is given in a little work
-printed by one of the reforming party in 1542, when it was found that
-Henry VIII. did not advance along the path of reformation marked out by
-the foreign followers of Luther as quickly as his rejection of papal
-supremacy and the overthrow of the religious houses had caused some
-people to hope. The tract in question is called _The lamentation of a
-Christian against the Citie of London, made by Roderigo Mors_,[403] and
-some quotations from it will show what view an ardent reformer took
-of the spirit of Londoners towards the new doctrines. “The greater
-part of these inordinate rich, stiff-necked citizens,” he writes,
-“will not have in their houses that lively word of our souls[404] nor
-suffer their servants to have it, neither yet (will they) gladly read
-it or hear it read, but abhors and disdains all those who would live
-according to the Gospel, and instead thereof they set up and maintain
-idolatry and other innumerable wickedness of man’s invention daily
-committed in the city of London.
-
-“The greatest part of the seniors and aldermen, with the multitude
-of the inordinate rich … with the greatest multitude of thee, O city
-of London, take the part and be fully bent with the false prophets,
-the bishops and other strong, stout, and sturdy priests of Baal, to
-persecute unto death all and every godly person who either preaches
-the word or setteth it forth in writing … O Lord! how blind are
-these citizens who take so good care to provide for the dead which
-is not commanded of them nor availeth the dead.[405]… When they feel
-themselves worthily plagued, which comes of Thee only, then they will
-run a-gadding after their false prophets through the streets once or
-twice a week, crying and calling to creatures of the Creator, or with
-_ora pro nobis_, and that in a tongue which the greatest part of them
-understand not, unto Peter, Paul, James and John, Mary and Martha: and
-I think within a few years they will (without Thy great mercy) call
-upon Thomas Wolsey, late Cardinal, and upon the unholy (or as they
-would say holy) maid of Kent. Why not, as well as upon Thomas Becket?
-What he was, I need not write. It is well known.[406]
-
-“And think ye not that if the Blessed Virgin Mary were now upon earth
-and saw her Son and only Redeemer robbed of His glory, which glory, you
-blind citizens give to her, would she not rend her clothes like as did
-the Apostles, for offering oblations with their forefathers’ kings’
-heads unto the Queen of Heaven? How many queens of Heaven have ye in
-the Litany? O! dear brethren, be no longer deceived with these false
-prophets your bishops and their members.”[407]
-
-“The great substance which you bestow upon chantries, obits, and such
-like dregs of … Rome, which most commonly ye give for three causes, as
-ye say, first, that you will have the service of God maintained in the
-church to God’s honour, and yet by the same service is God dishonoured,
-for the Supper of the Lord is perverted and not used after Christ’s
-institution … and the holy memory turned into a vain superstitious
-ceremonial Mass, as they call it, which Mass is an abominable idol, and
-of all idols the greatest; and never shall idolatry be quenched where
-that idol is used after antichrist’s institution … which no doubt shall
-be reformed when the time is come that God hath appointed, even as it
-is already in divers cities of Germany, as Zurich, Basle, and Strasburg
-and such other.”
-
-“The second cause is for redeeming your souls and your friends, which
-is also abominable.… The idolator nowadays, if he set a candle before
-an image and idol, he says he does not worship the image, but God it
-represents. For say they, who is so foolish as to worship an image? The
-third cause of your good intent is that the profit of your goods may
-come to the priests; as though they were the peculiar people of God and
-only beloved; as indeed to those who preach the Gospel the people are
-bound to give sufficient living … but not that their prayers can help
-the dead no more than a man’s breath blowing a sail can cause a great
-ship to sail. So is this also become an abomination, for those be not
-Christ’s ministers, but the ministers of a rabble of dirty traditions
-and popish ceremonies, and you find a sort of lusty lubbers who are
-well able to labour for their living and strong to get it with the
-sweat of their face.”[408]
-
-“… O ye citizens, if ye would turn but even the profits of your
-chantries and obits to the finding of the poor, what a politic and
-goodly provision! whereas now London being one of the flowers of the
-world as touching worldly riches hath so many, yea innumerable poor
-people, forced to go from door to door and to sit openly in the streets
-begging, and many not able to do otherwise but lie in their houses in
-most grievous pains and die for lack of the aid of the rich, to the
-great shame of thee, oh London!”[409]
-
-After exclaiming against the amount of money spent by the authorities
-of the city of London on civic entertainments, and railing against the
-support given to “the Mass of Scala cœli, of the Five wounds, and other
-such like trumpery,” our author continues: “Have you not slain the
-servants of the Lord, only for speaking against the authority of the
-false bishop of Rome, that monstrous beast, whom now you yourselves do,
-or should, abhor? I mean all his laws being contrary to Christ and not
-His body, and yet you see that a few years past you burnt for heretics
-abominable those who preached or wrote against his usurped power, and
-now it is treason to uphold or maintain any part of his usurped power,
-and he shall die as a traitor who does so, and well worthy.”[410]
-
-After declaiming against the Mass and confession, and declaring that
-the bishops and cathedral churches should be despoiled of their wealth
-as their “companions and brethren in antichrist, the abbots” had been,
-the author of the tract goes on: “God gave the king a heart to take the
-wicked mammon from you, as he may rightfully do with the consent of the
-Commons by Act of Parliament, so that it may be disposed of according
-to God’s glory and the commonwealth, and to take himself as portion, as
-(say) eight or ten of every hundred, for an acknowledgment of obedience
-and for the maintenance of his estate. The rest politically to be put
-into a commonwealth, first distributed among all the towns in England
-in sums according to the quantity and number of the occupiers and where
-most need is, and all the towns to be bound to the king so that he may
-have the money at his extreme need to serve him, he rendering it again.
-And also a politic way (should be) taken for provision of the poor in
-every town, with some part to the marriage of young persons that lack
-friends.”[411]
-
-The bishops the writer considers to be the greatest obstacles to the
-reformation of religion in England on the model of what had already
-taken place in Germany. “You wicked mammon,” he continues, “your
-inordinate riches was not of your heavenly Father’s planting; therefore
-it must be plucked up by the roots with the riches of your other
-brethren of the Romish church or church malignant, which of late were
-rightfully plucked up. I would to God that the distribution of the
-same lands and goods had been as godly distributed as the act of the
-rooting up was; which distribution of the same I dare say all Christian
-hearts lament. For the fat swine only were greased, but the poor sheep
-to whom that thing belonged had least or nothing at all. The fault
-will be laid to those of the Parliament House, especially to those who
-bear the greatest swing. Well, I touch this matter here, to exhort
-all that love God’s word unfeignedly to be diligent in prayer only to
-God to endue the Lords, Knights, and Burgesses of the next Parliament
-with His spirit, that the lands and goods of these bishops may be put
-to a better use, as to God’s glory, the wealth of the commonalty and
-provision for the poor.”[412]
-
-The above lengthy extracts will show what the advanced spirits among
-the English followers of Luther hoped for from the religious revolution
-which had already, when the tract was written, been begun. It will also
-serve to show that even in London, which may be supposed to have been
-in the forefront of the movement, the religious changes were by no
-means popular; but the civic authorities and people clung to the old
-faith and traditions, which the author well and tersely describes as
-“the Romish religion.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-The readers of the foregoing pages will see that no attempt has been
-made to draw a definite conclusion from the facts set down, or expound
-the causes of the ultimate triumph of the Reformation principles
-in England. It has already been pointed out that the time for a
-satisfactory synthesis is not yet come; but it may not be unnecessary
-to deprecate impatience to reach an ultimate judgment.
-
-The necessary assumption which underlies the inherited Protestant
-history of the Reformation in the sixteenth century is the general
-corruption of manners and morals no less than of doctrine, and the
-ignorance of religious truths no less than the neglect of religious
-precepts on the part of both clergy and people. On such a basis nothing
-can be easier and simpler than to account for the issue of the English
-religious changes. The revival of historical studies and the alienation
-of the minds of many historians from traditional Christianity, whether
-in its Catholic or Protestant form, has, however, thrown doubt on this
-great fundamental assumption--a doubt that will be strengthened the
-more the actual conditions of the case are impartially and thoroughly
-investigated. Many of the genuine sources of history have only within
-this generation become really accessible; what was previously known has
-been more carefully examined and sifted, whilst men have begun to see
-that if the truth is to be ascertained inquiries must be pursued in
-detail within local limits, and that it does not suffice to speak in
-general terms of “the corrupt state of the Church.”
-
-If we are to know the real factors of the problem to be solved,
-separate investigations have to be pursued which lead to very varying
-conclusions as to the state of the Church, the ecclesiastical life and
-the religious practices of the people in different countries. It is
-already evident that the corruptions or the virtues prevailing in one
-quarter must not straightway be credited to the account of another;
-that the reason why one country has become Protestant, or another
-remained Catholic, has to be sought for in each case, and that it may
-be safely asserted that the maintenance of Catholicity or the adoption
-of Protestantism in different regions, had comparatively little to do
-with prevalence or absence of abuses, or as little depended on the
-question whether these were more or less grievous.
-
-Unquestionably those who desire to have a ready explanation of great
-historical movements or revolutions, find themselves increasingly
-baulked in the particular case of the Reformation by the new turn
-which modern historical research has given to the consideration of
-the question. Recent attempts to piece up the new results with the
-old views afford a warning against precipitation, and have but shown
-that the explanation of the successful issue of the Reformation
-in England is a problem less simple or obvious than many popular
-writers have hitherto assumed. The factors are clearly seen now to
-be many--sometimes accidental, sometimes strongly personal--whilst
-aspirations after worldly commodities, though destined not to be
-realised for the many, were often and in the most influential quarters
-a stronger determinant to acquiescence or active co-operation in the
-movement than thirst after pure doctrine, love of the open Bible,
-or desire for a vernacular liturgy. The first condition for the
-understanding of the problem at all is the most careful and detailed
-examination possible of the state of popular religion during the
-whole of the century which witnessed the change, quite apart from the
-particular political methods employed to effect the transition from the
-public teaching of the old faith, as it was professed in the closing
-years of the reign of Henry VIII., and the new as it was officially
-practised a dozen years after Elizabeth had held the reins of power.
-
-The interest of the questions discussed in the present volume is by
-no means exclusively, perhaps to some persons is even by no means
-predominantly, a religious one. It has been insisted upon in the
-preceding pages that religion on the eve of the Reformation was
-intimately bound up with the whole social life of the people, animating
-it and penetrating it at every point. No one who is acquainted with the
-history of later centuries in England can doubt for a moment that the
-religion then professed presented in this respect a contrast to the
-older faith; or as some writers may put it, religion became restricted
-to what belongs to the technically “religious” sphere. But this was not
-confined to England, or even to Protestant countries. Everywhere, it
-may be said, in the centuries subsequent to the religious revolution
-of the sixteenth century, religion became less directly social in its
-action; and if the action and interference of what is now called the
-State in every department of social life is continually extending,
-this may not inaptly be said to be due to the fact that it has largely
-taken up the direct social work and direction from which the Church
-found herself perhaps compelled to recede, in order to concentrate her
-efforts more intensely on the promotion of more purely and strictly
-religious influences. It is impossible to study the available sources
-of information about the period immediately preceding the change
-without recognising that, so far from the Church being a merely effete
-or corrupt agency in the commonwealth, it was an active power for
-popular good in a very wide sense. At any rate, whatever view we may
-take of the results of the Reformation, to understand rightly the
-conditions of religious thought and life on the eve of the religious
-revolution, is a condition of being able really to read aright our own
-time and to gauge the extent to which present tendencies find their
-root or their justification in the past.
-
-
-
-
-FOOTNOTES
-
-
-[1] _Opera_ (ed. Frankfort), tom. x. p. 56, quoted by Janssen.
-
-[2] J. L. Andre, in _Sussex Archæological Journal_, xxxix. p. 31.
-
-[3] The use of the expression “New Learning” as meaning the revival of
-letters is now so common that any instance of it may seem superfluous.
-Green, for example, in his _History of the English People_, vol. ii.
-constantly speaks of it. Thus (p. 81), “Erasmus embodied for the
-Teutonic peoples the quickening influence of the New Learning during
-the long scholar-life which began at Paris and ended amidst sorrow at
-Basle.” Again (p. 84), “the group of scholars who represented the New
-Learning in England.” Again (p. 86), “On the universities the influence
-of the New Learning was like a passing from death to life.” Again (p.
-125), “As yet the New Learning, though scared by Luther’s intemperate
-language, had steadily backed him in his struggle.”
-
-[4] _Sermons._ London: Robert Caly, 1557, p. 36.
-
-[5] _The Praier and Complaynte of the Ploweman unto Christ_, sig. Aij.
-
-[6] R. V. _The olde Faith of Great Brittayne, &c._--The style of
-the book may be judged by the following passages:--“How say you (O
-ye popish bishops and priests which maintain Austen’s dampnable
-ceremonies)--For truly so long as ye say masse and lift the bread and
-wine above your heads, giving the people to understand your mass to be
-available for the quick and the dead, ye deny the Lord that bought you;
-therefore let the mass go again to Rome, with all Austen’s trinkets,
-and cleave to the Lord’s Supper”.… Again:--“Gentle reader: It is not
-unknown what an occasion of sclander divers have taken in that the
-king’s majesty hath with his honourable council gone about to alter and
-take away the abuse of the communion used in the mass.… The ignorant
-and unlearned esteem the same abuse, called the mass, to be the
-principal point of Christianity, to whom the altering thereof appears
-very strange.… Our popish priests still do abuse the Lord’s Supper
-or Communion, calling it still a new name of _Missa_ or Mass.” The
-author strongly objects to those like Bishop Gardiner and Dr. Smythe
-who have written in defence of the old doctrine of the English Church
-on the Blessed Sacrament: “Yea, even the mass, which is a derogation
-of Christ’s blood. For Christ left the sacrament of his body and blood
-in bread and wine to be eaten and drunk in remembrance of his death,
-and not to be looked upon as the Israelites did the brazen serpent.…
-Paul saith not, as often as the priest lifts the bread and wine above
-his shaven crown, for the papists to gaze at.” All this, as “the New
-Learning” brought over to England by St. Augustine of Canterbury, the
-author would send back to Rome from whence it came.
-
-[7] Urbanus Regius, _A comparison betwene the old learnynge and the
-newe_, translated by William Turner. Southwark: Nicholson, 1537, sig.
-Aij to Cvij.
-
-[8] _Opera_ (ed. Le Clerc), Ep. 583.
-
-[9] Ibid., Ep. 751.
-
-[10] Remigio Sabbadini, _La Scuola e gli studi di Guarino Guarini
-Veronese_, pp. 217-18.
-
-[11] R. Sabbadini, _Guarino Veronese et il suo epistolario_, p. 57.
-
-[12] The Earl was a confrater and special friend of the monks of
-Christchurch, Canterbury. In 1468-69, Prior Goldstone wrote to the
-Earl, who had been abroad “on pilgrimage” for four years, to try and
-obtain for Canterbury the usual jubilee privileges of 1470. In his Obit
-in the Canterbury _Necrology_ (MS. Arund. 68 f. 45d) he is described
-as “vir undecumque doctissimus, omnium liberalium artium divinarumque
-simul ac secularium litterarum scientia peritissimus.”
-
-[13] Leland (_De Scriptoribus Britannicis_, 482) calls him Tillœus,
-and this has been generally translated as Tilly. In the _Canterbury
-Letter Books_ (Rolls Series, iii. 291) it appears that Prior Selling
-was greatly interested in a boy named Richard Tyll. In 1475, Thomas
-Goldstone, the warden of Canterbury Hall, writes to Prior Selling
-about new clothes and a tunic and other expenses “scolaris tui Ricardi
-Tyll.” In the same volume, p. 315, is a letter of fraternity given to
-“Agnes, widow of William Tyll,” and on February 7, 1491, she received
-permission to be buried where her husband, William Tyll, had been
-interred, “juxta tumbam sancti Thomæ martyris.”
-
-[14] _Canterbury Letters_ (Camden Soc.), pp. 13, 15.
-
-[15] C. C. C. C. MS. 417 f. 54d: “Item hoc anno videlicet 6 Kal. Oct.
-D. Willms Selling celebravit primam suam missam et fuit sacerdos summæ
-missæ per totam illam ebdomadam.”
-
-[16] _Literæ Cantuarr._ (Rolls Series), iii. 239.
-
-[17] Leland, _De Scriptoribus Britannicis_, p. 482. _Cf._ also
-_Canterbury Letters_ (Camden Soc.), p. xxvii.
-
-[18] Leland, _ut supra_.
-
-[19] Umberto Dallari, _I rotuli dei Lettori, &c., dello studio
-Bolognese dal 1384 al 1799_, p. 51.
-
-[20] Serafino Mazzetti, _Memorie storiche sopra l’università di
-Bologna_, p. 308.
-
-[21] Leland, _ut supra_.
-
-[22] B. Mus. Arundel MS. 68, f. 4. The Obit in Christchurch MS. D. 12,
-says: “Sacræ Theologiæ Doctor. Hic in divinis agendis multum devotus et
-lingua Græca et Latina valde eruditus.… O quam laudabiliter se habuit
-opera merito laudanda manifesto declarant.”
-
-[23] In the Canterbury Registers (Reg. R.) there is a record which
-evidently relates to Selling’s previous stay in Rome as a student.
-On October 3, 1469, the date of Selling’s second departure for Rome,
-the Prior and convent of Christchurch granted a letter to Pietro dei
-Milleni, a citizen of Rome, making him a _confrater_ of the monastery
-in return for the kindness shown to Dr. William Selling, when in the
-Eternal City. This letter, doubtless, Selling carried with him in 1469.
-
-[24] _The Old English Bible and other Essays_, p. 306.
-
-[25] B. Mus. Cotton MS. Julius F. vii., f. 118.
-
-[26] One of Prior Selling’s first acts of administration was apparently
-to procure a master for the grammar school at Canterbury. He writes
-to the Archbishop: “Also please it your good faderhood to have in
-knowledge that according to your commandment, I have provided for a
-schoolmaster for your gramerscole in Canterbury, the which hath lately
-taught gramer at Wynchester and atte Seynt Antonyes in London. That,
-as I trust to God, shall so guide him that it shall be worship and
-pleasure to your Lordship and profit and encreas to them that he shall
-have in governance.”--_Hist. MSS. Com._ 9th Report, App. p. 105.
-
-[27] I. Noble Johnson, _Life of Linacre_, p. 11. Among the great
-benefactors to Canterbury College, Oxford, was Doctor Thomas
-Chaundeler, Warden of New College. In 1473, the year after the election
-of Prior Selling, the Chapter of Christchurch, Canterbury, passed a
-resolution that, in memory of his great benefits to them, his name
-should be mentioned daily in the conventual mass at Canterbury, and
-that at dinner each day at Oxford he should be named as founder.
-
-[28] Galeni, _De Temperamentis libri tres, Thoma Linacro
-interpretante_, is dedicated to Pope Leo X., with a letter from Linacre
-dated 1521. “The widow’s mite was approved by Him whose vicar on earth”
-Pope Leo is, so this book is only intended to recall common studies,
-though in itself of little interest to one having the care of the world.
-
-[29] G. Lilii, _Elogia_, ed. P. Jovii, p. 91.
-
-[30] Ibid., lxiii. p. 145.
-
-[31] Sir Thomas More writing to Colet says: “I pass my time here (at
-Oxford) with Grocyn, Linacre, and our (George) Lilly: the first as
-you know the only master of my life, when you are absent; the second,
-the director of my studies; the third, my dearest companion in all
-the affairs of life” (J. Stapleton, _Tres Thomæ_, p. 165.) Another
-constant companion of More at Oxford was Cuthbert Tunstall, one of the
-most learned men of his day, afterwards in succession Bishop of London
-and Durham. Tunstall dedicated to More his tract _De arte supputandi_,
-which he printed at Paris in 1529.
-
-[32] Reg. Warham, in Knight’s _Erasmus_, p. 22 _note_.
-
-[33] Encyclop. Brit. _sub nomine_.
-
-[34] Ibid.
-
-[35] Ugo Balzani, _Un’ ambasciata inglese a Roma_, Società Romana di
-storia patria, iii. p. 175 _seqq._ Of this an epitome is given in
-Bacon’s _Henry VII._, p. 95. Count Ugo Balzani says: “Il prior di
-Canterbury sembra essere veramente stato l’anima dell’ ambasciata.”
-Burchardus, _Rerum Urbanarum Commentarii_ (ed. Thuasne), i. p. 257,
-gives a full account of the reception of this embassy in Rome and by
-the Pope.
-
-[36] Harl. MS. 6237, and Add. MS. 15,673.
-
-[37] In the same beautifully written volume is a printed tract
-addressed to the Venetian Senate in 1471 against princes taking church
-property. The tract had been sent to the Prior of Christchurch by
-Christopher Urswick, with a letter, in which, to induce him to read it,
-he says it is approved by Hermolaus Barbarus and Guarini. Christopher
-Urswick was almoner to Henry VII., and to him Erasmus dedicated three
-of his works.
-
-[38] Leland, _De Scriptoribus Britannicis_, 482.
-
-[39] This information I owe to the kindness of Dr. Montague James.
-
-[40] _Canterbury Letters_ (Camden Soc.), p. xxvii.
-
-[41] Ibid., p. 36, a letter in which Dr. Langton asks Prior Selling to
-“attend to the drawing of it.” The draft sermon is in Cleop. A. iii.
-
-[42] Richard Pace, _De Fructu_, p. 27. The work _De Fructu_ was
-composed at Constance, where Pace was ambassador, and where he had met
-his old master, Paul Bombasius. He dedicates the tract to Colet, who
-had done so much to introduce true classical Latin into England, in
-place of the barbarous language formerly used. The work was suggested
-to him by a conversation he had in England two years before, on his
-return from Rome, with a gentleman he met at dinner, who strongly
-objected to a literary education for his children, on the ground that
-he disapproved of certain expressions made use of by Erasmus. The tract
-shows on what a very intimate footing Pace was with Bombasius.
-
-[43] _De Fructu_, p. 99. Pace published at Venice in 1522, _Plutarchi
-Cheronei Opuscula_, and dedicated the work to Bishop Tunstall. He
-reminds the bishop of their old student days, and says the translation
-has been examined by their “old master, Nicholas Leonicus.”
-
-[44] Ibid.
-
-[45] Ibid.
-
-[46] Ibid., p. 51. “Quas vocant proportionum inductiones … antiquitatem
-superasse.”
-
-[47] More to the University of Oxford, in Knight’s _Erasmus_, p. 31.
-
-[48] Bishop Fisher’s love and zeal for learning is notorious. He did
-all in his power to assist in the foundation of schools of sound
-learning at Cambridge, and especially to encourage the study of Greek.
-Richard Croke, the protégé of Archbishop Warham and Bishop Fisher,
-after teaching Greek in 1516 at Leipzig, was sent by Fisher in 1519 to
-Cambridge to urge the utility of Greek studies at that university. In
-the _Orationes_ he delivered there, after speaking of the importance of
-Greek for all Biblical study, he says that Oxford had taken up the work
-with great avidity, since “they have there as their patrons besides
-the Cardinal (Wolsey), Canterbury (Warham), and Winchester, all the
-other English bishops except the one who has always been your great
-stay and helper, the Bishop of Rochester, and the Bishop of Ely.” It
-was entirely owing to Bishop Fisher’s generosity, and at his special
-request, that Croke had gone to Cambridge rather than to Oxford,
-whither his connection with Warham, More, Linacre, and Grocyn would
-have led him, in order to carry on the work begun by Erasmus.
-
-[49] Thomas Lupset was educated by Colet, and learnt his Latin and
-Greek under William Lilly, going afterwards to Oxford. There he made
-the acquaintance of Ludovico Vives, and at his exhortation went to
-Italy. He joined Reginald Pole in his studies at Padua, and on his
-return, after acting as Thomas Winter’s tutor in Paris, he held a
-position first as a teacher and then in Cardinal Wolsey’s household.
-In his _Exhortation to Young Men_, persuading them to a good life,
-“written at More, a place of my Lord Cardinal’s,” in 1529, he gives a
-charming account of his relation with a former pupil. “It happeneth,”
-he says, “at this time (my heartily beloved Edmund) that I am in such
-a place where I have no manner of books with me to pass the time after
-my manner and custom. And though I had here with me plenty of books,
-yet the place suffereth me not to spend in them any study. For you
-shall understand that I lie waiting on my Lord Cardinal, whose hours
-I must observe, to be always at hand lest I be called when I am not
-bye, which would be straight taken for a fault of great negligence. I
-am well satiated with the beholding of these gay hangings that garnish
-here every wall.” As a relief he turns to address his young friend
-Edmund. Probably Edmund doesn’t understand his affection, because he
-had always acted on the principle he has “been taught, that the master
-never hurteth his scholar more than when he uttereth and sheweth by
-cherishing and cokering the love he beareth to his scholars.” Edmund is
-now “of age, and also by the common board of houseling admitted into
-the number of men, and to be no more in the company of children,” and
-so now he can make known his affection. “This mind had I to my friend
-Andrew Smith, whose son Christopher, your fellow, I ever took for my
-son.… If you will call to your mind all the frays between you and
-me, or me and Smith, you will find that they were all out of my care
-for ‘your manners.’ When I saw certain fantasies in you or him that
-jarred from true opinions, the which true opinions, above all learning,
-I would have masters ever teach their scholars. Wherefore, my good
-withipol, take heed of my lesson.”
-
-[50] John Clement, a protégé of Sir Thomas More, was afterwards a
-doctor of renown not only in medicine but in languages. He had been
-a member of More’s household, which Erasmus speaks of as “schola et
-gymnasium Christianæ religionis.” He is named at the beginning of the
-_Eutopia_, and Sir Thomas, in writing to Erasmus, says that Linacre
-declared that he had had no pupil at Oxford equal to him. John Clement
-translated several ancient Greek authors into Latin, amongst others
-many letters of St. Gregory Nazianzen and the Homilies of Nicephorus
-Callistus on the Saints of the Greek Calendar. Stapleton, in his
-_Tres Thomæ_ (p. 250), says he had himself seen and examined with the
-originals these two voluminous translations at the request of John
-Clement himself. He had married Margaret, the ward of Sir Thomas More,
-and in the most difficult places of his translation he was helped by
-his wife, who, with the daughters of Sir Thomas, had been his disciple
-and knew Greek well. Mary Roper, More’s granddaughter, and the daughter
-of Margaret Roper, translated Eusebius’s _History_ from Greek into
-Latin, but it was never published, because Bishop Christopherson had
-been at work on a similar translation. On the change of religion
-in Elizabeth’s reign, John Clement and his wife, with the Ropers,
-took refuge in the Low Countries. Paulus Jovius, in his _Descriptio
-Britanniæ_, p. 13, speaks of all three daughters of Sir Thomas More
-being celebrated for their knowledge of Latin.
-
-[51] Erasmi _Opera_ (ed. 1703), Col. 40.
-
-[52] Ibid., Ep. 241.
-
-[53] Ibid., Ep. 363.
-
-[54] To take one example, Thomas Millyng, who as Bishop of Hereford
-died in 1492, had studied at Gloucester Hall, Oxford, as a monk of
-Westminster. During the old age of Abbot Fleet, of Westminster, he
-governed the monastery, and became its abbot in 1465. He was noted
-for his love of studies, and especially for his knowledge of Greek.
-This, says the writer of his brief life in the _National Biographical
-Dictionary_, was “a rare accomplishment for _monks_ in those days.” He
-might have added, and for any one else!
-
-[55] Dennistoun, _Memorials of the Dukes of Urbino_, iii., pp. 415
-_seqq._
-
-[56] Erasmus to Abbot Bere. _Opera_, Ep. 700.
-
-[57] MS. Bodl. 80. It is the autograph copy of Free, _cf._ J. W.
-Williams, _Somerset Mediæval Libraries_, p. 87. It was Abbot Bere
-who, in 1506, presented John Claymond, the learned Greek scholar, to
-his first benefice of Westmonkton, in the county of Somerset. In 1516
-Claymond became first President of Corpus Christi College, Oxford,
-often after signing himself, _Eucharistiæ servus_. Dr. Claymond
-procured for his college several Greek manuscripts which had belonged
-to Grocyn and Linacre, which are still possessed by it. At the end
-of MS. XXIII., which is a volume containing ninety homilies of St.
-John Chrysostom in Greek, is an inscription stating that this, and
-MS. XXIV., were copied in the years 1499 and 1500 by a Greek from
-Constantinople, named John Serbopylas, then living and working at
-Reading.
-
-[58] Ludovico Vives had been invited over to England by Cardinal Wolsey
-to lecture on rhetoric at Oxford. He lived at Corpus Christi College,
-then ruled by Dr. John Claymond, whom in his tract _De conscribendis
-Epistolis_ he calls his “father.” The fame of this Spanish master of
-eloquence drew crowds to his lectures at the university, and amongst
-the audience Henry and Queen Katherine might sometimes be seen. For a
-time he acted also as tutor to the Princess Mary, and dedicated several
-works to the queen, to whose generosity he says he owed much. He took
-her side in the “divorce” question, and was thrown into prison for
-some weeks for expressing his views on the matter. Fisher, More, and
-Tunstall were his constant friends in England, and of Margaret Roper
-he writes, “from the time I first made her acquaintance I have loved
-her as a sister.” Among his pupils at Louvain, besides the above-named
-Canterbury monk, John Digon, he mentions with great affection Nicholas
-Wotton, whom the antiquary Twyne speaks of as returning to England with
-Digon and Jerome Ruffaldus, who calls Vives his “Jonathan,” and who
-subsequently became abbot of St. Vaast, Arras.
-
-[59] J. Venn, _Gonville and Caius College_ (1349-1897), Vol. I.
-
-[60] Ibid., p. xvi.
-
-[61] Ibid., p. 18.
-
-[62] Ibid., p. 23.
-
-[63] Ibid., p. 21.
-
-[64] Ibid., p. xviii.
-
-[65] _Sermons_ (1557), f. 54.
-
-[66] A. Chalmers, _History of the Colleges, &c. of Oxford_, ii. p. 351.
-
-[67] Hearne, _John of Glastonbury_, ii. p. 490; from MS. Cott.
-Vitellius c. vii.
-
-[68] Saint-German was born 1460. He was employed by Thomas Cromwell
-on some business of the State, and died in 1540. The _Dyalogue_ was
-printed apparently first in Latin, but subsequently in English. It
-consisted of three parts (1) published by Robert Wyer, (2) by Peter
-Treveris, 1531, and (3) by Thomas Berthalet, also in 1531.
-
-[69] _Dyalogue_, _ut sup._, 3rd part, f. 2.
-
-[70] One of the first Acts of King Henry VII. on his accession, was to
-obtain from the Pope a Bull agreeing to some changes in the Sanctuary
-customs. Prior Selling of Canterbury was despatched as King’s Orator to
-Rome with others to Pope Innocent VIII. in 1487, and brought back the
-Pope’s approval of three points in which the king proposed to change
-these laws. _First_, that if any person in Sanctuary went out at night
-and committed mischief and trespass, and then got back again, he should
-forfeit his privilege of Sanctuary. _Secondly_, that though the person
-of a debtor might be protected in Sanctuary, yet his goods out of the
-precincts were not so protected from his creditors. _Thirdly_, that
-where a person took Sanctuary for treason, the king might appoint him
-keepers within the Sanctuary.
-
-[71] Robert Keilway, _Relationes quorundam casuum_, f. 188, _seqq._
-
-[72] _Dyalogue_, _ut sup._, f. 12.
-
-[73] _Dyalogue_, f. 23.
-
-[74] Ibid.
-
-[75] Ibid., f. 23.
-
-[76] Ibid., f. 21.
-
-[77] Ibid., f. 21.
-
-[78] _A treatyse concerning the power of the clergie and the laws of
-the realme._ London, J. Godfray.
-
-[79] _A treatyse_, &c., _ut supra_, cap. 4.
-
-[80] _A treatyse_, &c., _ut supra_, cap. xii.
-
-[81] _A treatyse_, &c., _ut supra_, cap. xii.
-
-[82] Ibid., cap. xiii.
-
-[83] Ibid., cap. vi.
-
-[84] _English Works_ (ed. 1557), p. 1017.
-
-[85] _A treatyse_, &c., _ut sup._, cap. vi., sig. E. i.
-
-[86] _Salem and Bizance, a dialogue betwixte two Englishmen, whereof
-one was called Salem and the other Bizance_ (Berthelet, 1533), f. 76.
-
-[87] Ibid., f. 84.
-
-[88] _English Works_, p. 892.
-
-[89] Ibid.
-
-[90] _A Dialogue_, &c., _ut sup._, f. 8.
-
-[91] Ibid., f. 11.
-
-[92] Ibid., f. 14.
-
-[93] _A Dialogue_, &c., _ut sup._, p. 17.
-
-[94] _History of English Law_, i., p. 93-4. Mr. James Gairdner, in
-a letter to _The Guardian_, March 1, 1899, says: “There were, in
-the Middle Ages, in every kingdom of Europe that owned the Pope’s
-jurisdiction, two authorities, the one temporal and the other
-spiritual, and the head of the spiritual jurisdiction was at Rome. The
-bishops had the rule over their clergy, even in criminal matters, and
-over the laity as well in matters of faith. Even a bishop’s decision,
-it is true, might be disputed, and there was an appeal to the Pope;
-nay, the Pope’s decision might be disputed, and there was an appeal
-to a general council. Thus there was, in every kingdom, an _imperium
-in imperio_, but nobody objected to such a state of matters, not even
-kings, seeing that they could, as a rule, get anything they wanted out
-of the Popes--even some things, occasionally, that the Popes ought not
-to have conceded.”
-
-[95] William Bond, _The Pilgrymage of perfeccyon_, 1531, f. 223.
-
-[96] Roger Edgworth, _Sermons_, 1557, fol. 102
-
-[97] Edward Powell, _Propugnaculum summi sacerdotii, &c., adversus M.
-Lutherum_, 1523, fol. 22 and fol. 35.
-
-[98] _English Works_, p. 171.
-
-[99] Ibid. p. 185.
-
-[100] Ibid., p. 528.
-
-[101] Ibid., p. 538.
-
-[102] _English Works_, p. 616.
-
-[103] Ibid., p. 798.
-
-[104] _Henry VIII. and the English Monasteries_ (popular edition), p.
-367.
-
-[105] In his work against Luther, Bishop Fisher teaches the supremacy
-of the Pope without any ambiguity. In the _Sermon had at Paulis_
-against Luther and his followers, he also put his position perfectly
-clearly. The Church that has a right to the name _Catholic_ has derived
-the right from its communion with the See of Peter. Our Lord called
-Cephas, Peter, or rock, to signify that upon him as a rock He would
-build His church. Unto Peter He committed His flock, and “the true
-Christian people which we have at this day was derived by a continual
-succession from the See of Peter” (fol. e. 4. d.).
-
-[106] Simon Matthew, _Sermon made in the Cathedrall Church of
-Saynt-Paule, 27 June 1535_ (Berthelet, 1535).
-
-[107] Joannis Longlondi _Tres conciones_ (R. Pynson), f. 45.
-
-[108] _Assertion of the Seven Sacraments against Luther_ (translation
-by J. W., 1687), f. a. i.
-
-[109] _A treatise of the donation or gift and endowment of possessions
-given_ (by Constantine) _with the judgement of certain great men_,
-1517, Thomas Godfray.
-
-[110] London, Thomas Berthelet.
-
-[111] _A dyalogue_, _ut sup._, ff. 3-7.
-
-[112] f. A. ii.; c. i.; c. iiij. The author recommends those who
-would understand the Pope’s power to “resort unto _The glasse of
-truth_ or to the book named the _Determinations of the universities_.”
-The book named here _A glasse of truth_ is written in favour of the
-divorce. “Some lawyers,” the author says, “attribute too much to the
-Pope--at length there shall be no law, but only his will.” The work
-was published by Berthelet anonymously, but Richard Croke, in a letter
-written at this period (Ellis, _Historical Letters_, 3rd series, ii.
-195), says that the book was written by King Henry himself. It was
-generally said that Henry had written a defence of his divorce; but
-Strype did not think it was more than a State paper. Croke (p. 198)
-says that people at Oxford, “Mr. John Roper and others,” did not
-believe that the king was really the author. He says that the tract has
-done more than anything else to get people to take the king’s side.
-
-[113] _Of the olde God and the new_, B. 1. As another sample of what
-was at this time said about the Popes, we may take the following:
-Rome, says the author, “was by Justinian restored from ruin and decay,
-from whence also came the riches of the Church. At the coming of these
-riches, forthwith the book of the gospel was shut up, and the Bishops
-of Rome, instead of evangelical poverty, began to put forth their heads
-garnished with three crowns.” This is taken from the preface of Hartman
-Dulechin, who claims to have “taught the book to speak Latin.” It was
-originally printed and published in German. The English version is a
-translation of the Latin.
-
-[114] _The Defence of Peace, written in Latin more than 200 years ago,
-and set forth in the English tongue by Wyllyam Marshall._ R. Wyer,
-1535, folio.
-
-[115] _The Defence of Peace_, f. 42. The well-known anti-papal opinions
-of Marsilius of Padua are, of course, of no interest in themselves, but
-their publication at this time in English shows the methods by which it
-was hoped to undermine the Papal authority in the country.
-
-[116] _Exposition_, &c., _ut supra_, f. i.
-
-[117] Johann Sturmius, _Epistle sent to the cardinals and prelates that
-were appointed by the Bishop of Rome to search out the abuses of the
-Church_. Translated by Richard Morysine. Berthelet, 1538.
-
-A later copy of the _Concilium de emendanda Ecclesia_, printed by
-Sturmius with his letter in 1538, in the British Museum, formerly
-belonged to Cecil. The title-page has his signature, “Gulielmus
-Cecilius, 1540,” and there are marks and words underlined, and some few
-observations from his pen in the margin. It is interesting to note that
-what struck the statesman as a youth were just the points which could
-be turned against the temporal claims of the Roman See.
-
-The special evils needing correction which the committee of cardinals
-note, and which they call _abuses_, are collected under 22 headings,
-some of which are the following:--
-
-(1) Ordination of priests without cure of souls, not learned, of lower
-order in life, and too young and of doubtful morals: They suggest that
-each diocese should have a _magistrum_ to see that candidates are
-properly instructed--none to be ordained except by their own bishop.
-
-(2) Benefices, and in particular, episcopal sees, are given to people
-with interest, and not because their elevation would be good for the
-church. They suggest that the best man should be chosen, and residence
-should be insisted on, and consequently “non Italo conferendum est
-beneficium in Hispania aut in Britannia aut ex contra.”
-
-(3) _Pensions_ reserved from Benefices. Though the Pope, “who is the
-universal dispenser of the goods of the church,” may reserve a part for
-a pious use, _e.g._ for the poor, &c., still not to reserve sufficient
-for the proper purpose of the beneficiary, and still more to give a
-pension out of a benefice to one rich enough without, is wrong.
-
-(4) Change of benefices for the sake of gain, and handing on benefices
-by arrangement or always assigning episcopal sees to coadjutors, is the
-cause of outcry against the clergy, and is in reality making private
-property out of what is public.
-
-(5) Permission to clergy to hold more than one benefice.
-
-(6) Cardinals being allowed to hold sees. They ought to be counsellors
-to the Pope in Rome, and when holding sees they are more or less
-dependent on the will of the kings, and so cannot give independent
-advice and speak their minds.
-
-(7) Absence of bishops from their sees.
-
-(8) Such religious houses as needed correction should be forbidden to
-profess members, and when they die out, their places should be taken
-by fervent religious. Confessors for convents must be approved by the
-ordinaries of the place.
-
-(9) The use of the keys ought never, under any pretext, to be granted
-for money.
-
-(10) Questors of the Holy Spirit, St. Anthony, &c., who foster
-superstition among the poor people, should be prohibited.
-
-(11) Confessional privileges and use of portable altars to be very
-rarely allowed.
-
-(12) No indulgences to be granted except once a year, and in the great
-cities only.
-
-Finally they say of Rome: “Hæc Romana civitas et ecclesia mater est
-et magistra aliarum ecclesiarum,” and hence it should be a model to
-all. Foreigners, however, who come to St. Peter’s find that priests
-“sordidi, ignari, induti paramentis et vestibus quibus nec in sordidis
-ædibus honeste uti possent, missas celebrant.”
-
-Cardinal Sadolet, on receiving a copy of Sturmius’s letter, replied
-in kindly terms. He had, he declared, a high opinion of “Sturmius,
-Melanchthon, and Bucer, looking on them as most learned men, kindly
-disposed, and cordially friendly to him. He looked upon it as the
-peculiar characteristic of Luther to try and overwhelm all his
-opponents with shouts and attacks.” He speaks of the great piety of
-Pope Clement from personal knowledge. His wars were, he said, rather
-the work of his adversaries than his own (_De consilio_, ed. J. G.
-Schelhorn, 1748, p. 91).
-
-He also, in 1539, penned the _De Christiana Ecclesia_ (in _Specilegium
-Romanum_, ii. p. 101 _seqq._), sending it to Cardinal Salicati, and
-asking him to pass it on to Cardinal Contarini. It was the outcome
-of conversations about the troubles of the Church, and the result of
-the movement was the Council of Trent, to restore, as Sadolet says,
-ecclesiastical discipline “quæ nunc tota pæne nobis e manibus elapsa
-est.”
-
-[118] _Sermon on Palm Sunday_, Berthelet, 1539.
-
-[119] Lancelot Ridley, _Commentary in Englyshe on Sayncte Paule’s
-Epystle to the Ephesians_, L. 4.
-
-[120] This important paper was printed for the first time in the
-_Dublin Review_, April 1894, pp. 390-420.
-
-[121] _A treatise concerning the division between the spiritualtie and
-temporaltie._ London: Robert Redman, f. 2.
-
-[122] _English Works_, p. 871. In the quotations made from the works
-of Sir Thomas More and other old writings, for the sake of the general
-reader the modern form of spelling has been adopted, and at times the
-words transposed to ensure greater clearness.
-
-[123] Ibid., p. 875.
-
-[124] Ibid., p. 882.
-
-[125] _Salem and Bizance. A dialogue betwixte two Englishmen, whereof
-one was called Salem and the other Bizance._ London: Berthelet, 1533,
-f. 5.
-
-[126] _English Works_, p. 934.
-
-[127] Ibid., p. 870.
-
-[128] Ibid., p. 877.
-
-[129] Ibid., p. 877.
-
-[130] Ibid., p. 878.
-
-[131] Ibid., pp. 937, 938.
-
-[132] _A treatise concerning the division_, f. 8.
-
-[133] _English Works_, p. 880.
-
-[134] Ibid., p. 951.
-
-[135] _A treatise concerning the division_, f. 3.
-
-[136] _A treatise concerning the division_, f. 41.
-
-[137] _English Works_, p. 884.
-
-[138] Ibid., p. 895.
-
-[139] Ibid.
-
-[140] Ibid., p. 896.
-
-[141] Ibid., p. 885.
-
-[142] Bishop Fisher gives much the same testimony to the moral
-character of the religious generally in his sermon against Luther.
-After praising the state of virginity, he continues: “And it is not to
-be doubted but that there is in Christendom at this day many thousands
-of religious men and women that full truly keep their religion and
-their chastity unto Christ.… If Almighty God did reserve in that
-little portion of Jewry so great a multitude beyond the estimation of
-the prophet, what number suppose ye doth yet remain in Christendom of
-religious men and women, notwithstanding this great persecution of
-religious monasteries, both of men and women, done by these heretics
-by this most execrable doctrine? It is not to be doubted but in all
-Christendom be left many thousands who at this hour live chaste, and
-truly keep their virginity unto Christ.” (_A Sermon had at Paulis_,
-Berthelet, f. g. ii.)
-
-[143] Ibid., p. 735. Sir Thomas More, in his _Dyalogue_, thinks that
-the number of priests without very definite work had tended to diminish
-the respect paid to them by the laity. “But were I Pope,” he says, … “I
-could not well devise better provisions than by the laws of the Church
-are provided already, if they were as well kept as they are well made.
-But as for the number, I would surely see such a way therein that we
-should not have such a rabble that every mean man must have a priest
-in his house to wait upon his wife. This no mean man lacketh now, to
-the contempt of the priesthood, (placed) in as vile an office as his
-horsekeeper. That is truth indeed, quod he, and in worse, too, for they
-keep hawks and dogs.” If the laws of the Church were kept, there would
-not be the excessive number of priests for fit and proper positions,
-so that “the whole order is rebuked by the priests’ begging and lewd
-living who are either obliged to walk as rovers, and live upon trentals
-or worse, or serve in a secular man’s house” (_English Works_, p. 223).
-
-[144] _A treatise concerning the division_, ff. 14-16.
-
-[145] _Dyalogue_, &c., f. 2.
-
-[146] _A treatise concerning the division_, f. 23.
-
-[147] Ibid., f. 25.
-
-[148] Ibid., f. 26.
-
-[149] _English Works_, p. 936.
-
-[150] _English Works_, p. 620.
-
-[151] _A Sermonde … made in 1538._ By John Longlande, Bishop of
-Lincolne. London: f. 2.
-
-[152] _Henry VIII._, vol. ii. pp. 50-1.
-
-[153] Ibid., vol. i. p. 600.
-
-[154] Ibid., ii. p. 470.
-
-[155] Wilkins, _Concilia_, iii. 717.
-
-[156] _Sermo Exhortatorius_, W. de Worde.
-
-[157] Gairdner, _Calendar of Papers Foreign and Domestic_, v., preface,
-ix.
-
-[158] Froude’s translation.
-
-[159] _Opera_, ed. Leclerc, iii. col. 102.
-
-[160] Ibid., Ep. 144.
-
-[161] In one of his works Erasmus gives the highest praise to English
-ecclesiastics for their single-minded devotion to their clerical
-duties. He contrasts them with clerics of other nations in regard to
-worldly ambitions, &c. “Those who are nearest to Christ,” he writes,
-“should keep themselves free from the baser things of this world. How
-ill the word ‘general’ sounds when connected with that of ‘Cardinal,’
-or ‘duke’ with that of ‘bishop,’ ‘earl’ with that of ‘abbot,’ or
-‘commander’ with that of ‘priest.’ In England the ecclesiastical
-dignity is the highest, and the revenues of churchmen abundant. In that
-country, however, no one who is a bishop or abbot has even a semblance
-of temporal dominion, or possesses castles or musicians or bands of
-retainers, nor does any of them coin his own money, excepting only the
-Archbishop of Canterbury, as a mark of dignity and honour, which has
-been conferred on him on account of the death of Saint Thomas; he is,
-however, never concerned in matters of war, but is occupied only in the
-care of the churches.” (_Consultatio de Bello Turcico._ _Opera_, ed.
-Leclerc, tom. v. p. 363.)
-
-[162] _Opera_, &c., _ut sup._, Ep. 149.
-
-[163] Ibid., Ep. 175.
-
-[164] Ibid., Ep. 216.
-
-[165] Ibid., Ep. 272.
-
-[166] Ibid., Ep. 474.
-
-[167] Thomas More, _Epigrammata_ (ed. Frankfort, 1689), p. 284 _seqq._
-
-[168] Ibid., Ep. 148.
-
-[169] _Erasmus_, p. 63.
-
-[170] _Quarterly Review_, January 1895, p. 23.
-
-[171] The question about Erasmus’s translation of this word came up
-in the discussion between Sir Thomas More and Tyndale about the use
-made by the latter of the word _congregatio_ for Church in his version
-of the New Testament. More writes: “Then he asketh me why I have not
-contended with Erasmus, whom he calls my darling, all this long time,
-for translating this word _ecclesia_ into this word _congregatio_,
-and then he cometh forth with his proper taunt, that I favour him of
-likelihood for making of his book of _Moriæ_ in my house.… Now for
-his translation of _ecclesia_ by _congregatio_ his deed is nothing
-like Tyndale’s. For the Latin tongue had no Latin word used before for
-the Church but the Greek word _ecclesia_, therefore Erasmus in his
-new translation gave it a Latin word.… Erasmus also meant no heresy
-therein, as appears by his writings against the heretics.” (_English
-Works_, pp. 421, 422.)
-
-[172] Ep. 384.
-
-[173] Ep. 423.
-
-[174] Ep. 531. Lee’s account of his quarrel with Erasmus is given in
-his _Apologia_, which he addressed to the University of Louvain. He
-states that Erasmus had come to his house at that place, and had asked
-him to aid in the corrected version of his New Testament which he was
-then projecting. At first Lee refused, but finally, on being pressed
-by Erasmus, he consented, and began the work of revision, but Erasmus
-quickly became angry at so many suggested changes. Reports about the
-annotations and corrections proposed by Lee began to be spread abroad,
-and Erasmus hearing of them, suspected some secret design, and came
-from Basle to try and get a copy of the proposed criticism. Lee wished
-that it should be considered rather a matter of _theology_ than of
-_letters_. Bishop Fisher wrote, on hearing rumours of the quarrel,
-urging Lee to try and make his peace with Erasmus, and in deference
-to this, Lee informed Erasmus that he would leave the matter entirely
-in the hands of the bishop, and had forwarded to him the book of his
-proposed criticisms. Erasmus, however, did not wait, but published
-the _Dialogus Domini Jacobi Latomi_, which all regarded as an attack
-upon Lee. The latter would have published a reply had he not received
-letters from England from Fisher, Colet, Pace, and More, begging him to
-keep his temper. Lee agreed to stop, and only asked Fisher to decide
-the matter quickly. On returning to Louvain, Lee found that Erasmus
-had published his _Dialogus bilingium et trilingium_, in which Lee was
-plainly indicated as a man hostile to the study of letters in general.
-This Lee denied altogether, and in brief, he does not, he says, condemn
-Erasmus’s notes on the New Testament so much as the copy he had taken
-as the basis for his corrections of the later text. “Politian,” says
-Lee, at the end of his _Apologia_, “Politian declares that there are
-two great pests of literature--ignorance and envy. To these I will add
-a third--‘adulation’--for I have no belief in any one who, having made
-a mistake, is not willing to acknowledge it.”
-
-Lee’s criticism of Erasmus’s translation appeared at Louvain in January
-1520. It produced an immediate reply from Erasmus, published at Antwerp
-in May 1520--a reply “all nose, teeth, nails, and stomach.” In this
-Erasmus says that 1200 copies of the New Testament had been printed by
-Froben. In the collation he had been much assisted by Bishop Tunstall,
-who had, in fact, supplied the exemplar on which he had worked. Erasmus
-then gives what he thinks is the correct version of the differences
-between Lee and himself. Lee, he says, was only just beginning Greek,
-and Erasmus, who had been working at the correction of his version of
-the Testament, showed him what he was doing. The margins of the book
-were then full of notes, and here and there whole pages of paper were
-added. Lee said that he had a few notes that might be useful, and
-Erasmus expressed his pleasure at receiving help and asked for them.
-Lee thereupon gave him some miscellaneous jottings, and of these,
-according to Erasmus’s version of the facts, he made use of hardly
-anything. Soon, however, reports were spread about that out of some
-three hundred places in which Lee had corrected the first edition of
-the translation, Erasmus had adopted two hundred. Bishop Fisher tried
-to make peace, and to prevent two men who both meant well to the cause
-of religion from quarrelling in public. His intervention was, however,
-too late, as already the letter of Erasmus to Thomas Lupset had
-appeared and thus rendered reconciliation impossible.
-
-[175] Ep. 231.
-
-[176] Ep. 380. This bishop must have been the Spaniard, George de
-Athegua, who was appointed to the see of Llandaff in 1517, and held it
-for twenty years.
-
-[177] Ep. 380.
-
-[178] Ep. 453.
-
-[179] Ep. 416.
-
-[180] Ep. 547.
-
-[181] Ep. 529. Erasmus wrote strongly against anything that seemed to
-favour the idea of national churches. After declaring that national
-dislikes and enmities were unmeaning and unchristian, he continues: “As
-an Englishman you wish evil fortune to a Frenchman. Why not rather do
-your wishes come as a man to a fellow-man? Why not as a Christian to a
-Christian? Why do these frivolous things have greater weight than such
-natural ties, such bonds of Christ? Places separate bodies, not souls.
-In old days the Rhine divided a Frenchman from a German, but the Rhine
-cannot divide one Christian from another. The Pyrenees cut off Spain
-from France, but these mountains do not destroy the communion of the
-Church. The sea divides the English and French peoples, but it cannot
-cut off the society of religion.…” The world is the fatherland of all
-people; all men are sprung from a common stock. “The Church is but one
-family, common to all.” (_Opera._, tom. iv. col. 638.)
-
-[182] Ep. 715.
-
-[183] Ep. 723.
-
-[184] Ep. 477.
-
-[185] Ep. 528.
-
-[186] Ep. 656.
-
-[187] Ep. 334 (second series.)
-
-[188] _Spongia_ (Basle, Froben, 1523), c. 5.
-
-[189] Ibid., sig. d. 4.
-
-[190] Ibid., sig. e. 2.
-
-[191] Ibid., sig. e. 2. The supreme authority of the Pope is asserted
-by Erasmus in numberless places in his works. For example, in the
-tract _Pacis Querimonia_, after saying that he cannot understand how
-Christians, who understand Christ’s teaching and say their _Pater
-noster_ with intelligence, can always be at strife, he proceeds: “The
-authority of the Roman Pontiff is supreme. But when peoples and princes
-wage impious wars, and that for years, where then is the authority
-of the Pontiffs, where then is the power next to Christ’s power?”
-&c. (_Opera._, tom. iv. p. 635). So too in his _Precatio pro Pace
-Ecclesiæ_, after praying that God would turn the eyes of His mercy upon
-the Church, over which “Peter was made Supreme Pastor,” he declares
-that there is but “one Church, out of which there is no salvation.”
-
-[192] Ep. 478.
-
-[193] Ep. 501.
-
-[194] Ep. 563.
-
-[195] Ep. 600.
-
-[196] Ep. 563.
-
-[197] Ep. 667.
-
-[198] Ep. 501 (Mr. Froude’s translation).
-
-[199] Ep. 793.
-
-[200] Ep. 823.
-
-[201] Ep. 751.
-
-[202] The Pope himself read the _Enconium Moriæ_ and understood the
-spirit of the author; at least so Erasmus was told. He wrote at the
-time “the Supreme Pontiff has read through _Moriæ_ and laughed; all he
-said was, ‘I am glad to see that friend Erasmus is in the _Moriæ_,’
-and this though I have touched no others so sharply as the Pontiffs”
-(Ep. p. 1667). What Sir Thomas More thought about it may be given in
-his own words, written some years later. “As touching _Moriæ_, in which
-Erasmus, under the name and person of _Moria_, which word in Greek
-signifies ‘folly,’ merely touches and reproves such faults and follies
-as he found in any kind of people pursuing every state and condition,
-spiritual and temporal, leaving almost none untouched. By this book,
-says Tyndale, if it were in English, every man should then well see
-that I was then far otherwise minded than I now write. If this be true,
-then the more cause have I to thank God for the amendment. God be
-thanked I never had that mind in my life to have holy saints’ images or
-their holy relics out of reverence. Nor if there were any such thing
-in _Moriæ_ this could not make any man see that I were myself of that
-mind, the book being made by another man though he were my darling
-never so dear. Howbeit, that book of _Moriæ_ doth indeed but jest upon
-abuses of such things.… But in these days, in which men by their own
-default misconstrue and take harm from the very Scripture of God, until
-men better amend, if any man would now translate _Moriæ_ into English,
-or some work either that I have myself written ere this, albeit there
-be no harm therein, folks being (as they be) given to take harm of what
-is good, I would not only my darling’s books, but my own also, help
-to burn them both with my own hands, rather than folk should (though
-through their own fault) take any harm of them.” (_English Works_, pp.
-422-3.)
-
-[203] _Opera Omnia_ (Froben’s ed., 1540), i. p. 831.
-
-[204] Pp. 832-33.
-
-[205] P. 837.
-
-[206] A case in point was the finding of the celebrated statue of the
-Laocöon on January 14, 1506. This discovery was accidentally made in
-a vineyard, near Santa Maria Maggiore, and no statue ever produced so
-general and so profound an emotion as the uncovering of this work of
-art did upon the learned world of Rome. The whole city flocked out
-to see it, and the road to the vineyard was blocked day and night by
-the crowds of cardinals and people waiting to look at it. “One would
-have said,” writes a contemporary, “that it was a Jubilee.” And even
-to-day the visitor to the Ara Cœli may read on the tomb of Felice de
-Fredis, the happy owner of the vineyard, the promise of “immortality,”
-_ob proprias virtutes et repertum Laocohontis divinum simulachrum_ (I.
-Klaczki, _Jules II._, p. 115). It is not at all improbable that in the
-above passage Erasmus was actually thinking of the delirium caused by
-the finding of this statue.
-
-[207] Ibid., p. 838.
-
-[208] For example, the Rev. W. H. Hutton states in the _Guardian_,
-January 25, 1899, as the result of his mature studies upon the
-Reformation period, that “the so-called divorce question had very
-little indeed to do with the Reformation.” Mr. James Gairdner, who
-speaks with all the authority of a full and complete knowledge of the
-State papers of this period, in a letter to a subsequent number of the
-_Guardian_, says, “When a gentleman of Mr. Hutton’s attainments is able
-seriously to tell us this, I think it is really time to ask people to
-put two and two together, and say whether the sum can be anything but
-four. It may be disagreeable to trace the Reformation to such a very
-ignoble origin, but facts, as the Scottish poet says, are fellows you
-can’t coerce … and won’t bear to be disputed.” What “we call _the_
-Reformation in England … was the result of Henry VIII.’s quarrel with
-the Court of Rome on the subject of his divorce, and _the same_ results
-could not possibly have come about in any other way.” When “Henry VIII.
-found himself disappointed in the expectation, which he had ardently
-cherished for a while, that he could manage, by hook or by crook, to
-obtain from the See of Rome something like an ecclesiastical licence
-for bigamy,” he took matters into his own hands, “and self-willed as he
-was, never did self-will lead him into such a tremendous and dangerous
-undertaking as in throwing off the Pope. How much this was resented
-among the people, what secret communications there were between leading
-noblemen with the imperial ambassador, strongly urging the emperor to
-invade England, and deliver the people from a tyranny from which they
-were unable to free themselves, we know in these days as we did not
-know before.”
-
-[209] Camden Society, p. 163.
-
-[210] The same high authority, in a letter to the _Guardian_, March
-1, 1899, says, “People will tell you, of course, that the seeds of
-the Reformation were sown before Henry VIII.’s days, and particularly
-that it was Wycliffe who brought the great movement on. I should be
-sorry to depreciate Wycliffe, who did undoubtedly bring about a great
-movement in his day, though a careful estimate of that movement is
-still a _desideratum_. Even in theology the cardinal doctrine of the
-Reformation--justification by faith--is in Wycliffe, I should say,
-conspicuous by its absence. But, whatever may be the theological debt
-of England to Wycliffe at the present day, twenty Wycliffes, all
-highly popular, in the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries would not
-have brought about a Reformation like that under which we have lived
-during the last centuries. That was a thing which could only have been
-effected by royal power--as in England, or by a subversion of royal
-authority through the medium of successful rebellion--as in Scotland.”
-
-[211] _Henry VIII._, i. p. 51.
-
-[212] Roger Edgworth, _Sermons_ (London: Robert Caly, 1557), preface.
-
-[213] _English Works_, p. 339.
-
-[214] Strype, _Eccl. Mem._ (ed. 1822), I. i. p. 254.
-
-[215] This book was apparently condemned for reflecting on the king’s
-divorce rather than for its Lutheran tendencies. “The Soul’s Garden,”
-as Bishop Tunstall calls it, was printed abroad, and “very many lately
-brought into the realm, chiefly into London and into other haven
-towns.” The objectionable portion was contained in “a declaration made
-in the kalendar of the said book, about the end of the month of August,
-upon the day of the decollation of St. John Baptist, to show the cause
-of why he was beheaded.” (Strype, _ut supra_, ii. p. 274.)
-
-[216] Wilkins, _Concilia_, iii. p. 737.
-
-[217] Ibid., 720.
-
-[218] Wilkins, _Concilia_, iii. p. 727.
-
-[219] Richard Smythe, D.D., _The assertion and defence of the Sacrament
-of the Altar_, 1546, f. 3.
-
-[220] _English Works_, p. 940.
-
-[221] _English Works_, p. 921.
-
-[222] _English Works_, pp. 341-344.
-
-[223] Ibid., p. 346.
-
-[224] Ibid., p. 351.
-
-[225] Germen Gardynare, _A letter of a yonge gentylman_, &c. London: W.
-Rastell, 1534.
-
-[226] _English Works_, pp. 257-259.
-
-[227] Ibid., p. 1035.
-
-[228] Ibid., p. 409.
-
-[229] _The Werke for Householders._ London: John Waylande, 1537.
-
-[230] Richard Whitford, _Dyvers holy instructions_. London: W.
-Mydylton, 1541.
-
-[231] _Sermons_, sig. h. vij.
-
-[232] _English Works_ (ed. 1557), pp. 233-4. This positive declaration
-of Sir Thomas More is generally ignored by modern writers. In a
-recently published work, for example (_England in the Age of Wycliffe_,
-by George Macaulay Trevelyan), it is stated that “we have positive
-proof that the bishops denounced the dissemination of the English Bible
-among classes and persons prone to heresy, burnt copies of it, and
-cruelly persecuted Lollards on the charge of reading it” (p. 131). In
-proof of this statement the author refers his readers to a later page
-(p. 342) of his volume. Here he culls from Foxe (_Acts and Monuments_)
-the depositions of certain witnesses against people suspected of
-teaching heresy. Amongst these depositions it is said by a few of the
-witnesses that some of these teachers were possessed of portions of the
-Scriptures in English. Mr. Trevelyan assumes, because witnesses speak
-to this fact, that it was for this they were condemned, or, as he puts
-it, “cruelly persecuted,” by the ecclesiastical authorities. Had he
-examined his authority, Foxe, more carefully, he would have found the
-actual list of _articles_ formulated against these teachers of heresy.
-These alone are, of course, the _charges_ actually made against them;
-and the mere deposition of witnesses in those days were, no more than
-they are in ours, the charges upon which the accused were condemned.
-In the _articles_ or charges we find no mention whatever of the
-English Bible, and, according to the ordinary rules of interpretation
-of documents, this absence of any mention of Bible-reading in the
-indictment, formulated after the hearing of the evidence, and when
-witnesses had testified to the fact, should be taken to show that the
-mere possession of the vernacular Scriptures, &c., was not accounted
-an offence by the Church authorities. The real charge in these cases,
-as in others, was of teaching what was then held to be false and
-heretical, teaching founded upon false interpretations of the Scripture
-text, or upon false translations.
-
-[233] Ibid., p. 235.
-
-[234] Ibid., p. 240.
-
-[235] Ibid., p. 241.
-
-[236] Ibid., p. 240.
-
-[237] Ibid., p. 241.
-
-[238] Ibid., p. 245.
-
-[239] Ibid., p. 510.
-
-[240] Ibid., p. 678.
-
-[241] Roger Edgworth, _Sermons_, London, Caly, 1557, f. 31.
-
-[242] Sir Thomas More, _English Works_, p. 108.
-
-[243] Thomas Lupset, _Collected Works_, 1546. _Gathered Counsails_, f.
-202.
-
-[244] Ibid. _An Exhortation to young men_, written 1529. He insists
-much on the obligation of following the teaching of the Church.
-
-[245] John Standish, _A discourse wherein is debated whether it be
-expedient that the Scripture should be in English for all men to read
-that wyll_ (1555), A. iij.
-
-[246] _English Works_, p. 850.
-
-[247] J. S. Brewer, _Henry VIII._, vol. ii. p. 468.
-
-[248] Dore, _Old Bibles_, p. 13.
-
-[249] P. 15.
-
-[250] Ellis, _Historical Letters_, 3rd Series, ii. p. 71.
-
-[251] Johannes Cochlæus, _An expediat laicis legere Novi Testamenti
-libros lingua vernacula_, 1533, A. i. The warning of Cochlæus was
-addressed to the Scotch king, and as a result of this letter, pointing
-out the Lutheran character of the English version of Tyndale, the
-Scotch bishops in the Synod of St. Andrews in 1529 forbade the
-importation of Bibles into Scotland.
-
-[252] Ibid., L. iij.
-
-[253] Wilkins, _Concilia_, iii. p. 727.
-
-[254] _Cf._ Parker Soc. Tyndale’s _Doctrinal treatises_, &c., preface
-xxx.
-
-[255] Probably on Sunday, February 11, when Cardinal Wolsey, with
-six and thirty bishops and other ecclesiastics, were present at the
-burning of Lutheran books before the great crucifix at the north gate.
-Amongst the books, according to Tyndale, were copies of his translated
-Testament.
-
-[256] Dore, _Old Bibles_, p. 26.
-
-[257] Dore, _ut sup._, 32.
-
-[258] _English Works_, p. 422.
-
-[259] Dore, 35.
-
-[260] _English Works_, p. 849.
-
-[261] _English Works_, p. 341.
-
-[262] Ibid., p. 410.
-
-[263] Ibid., p. 416.
-
-[264] Ibid., p. 417.
-
-[265] Ibid., p. 419.
-
-[266] Ibid., p. 422.
-
-[267] Ibid., p. 424.
-
-[268] Ibid., p. 425.
-
-[269] Ibid., p. 427.
-
-[270] Ibid., p. 435.
-
-[271] Ibid., p. 437.
-
-[272] Ibid., p. 493.
-
-[273] Ibid., p. 422. For examples of other false translations, see also
-p. 449.
-
-[274] Standish, _A discourse_, &c., _ut supra_, sig. A. iiij.
-
-[275] _English Works_, p. 223.
-
-[276] Ibid., p. 223.
-
-[277] Standish, _ut supra_, sig. E. iiij.
-
-[278] Roger Edgworth, _Sermons_, f. 31.
-
-[279] _The assertion and defence of the Sacrament of the Altar_ (1546),
-f. 3. The amateur theologians and teachers who sprung up so plentifully
-with the growth of Lutheran ideas in England seem to have been a source
-of trouble to the clergy. There was no difficulty in Scripture so hard
-which these “barkers, gnawers, and railers,” as Roger Edgworth calls
-them, were not ready to explain, and even women were ready to become
-teachers of God’s Word, “and openly to dispute with men.” Speaking in
-Bristol, in Mary’s reign, he advises his audience to stick to their
-own occupations and leave theology and Scripture alone, “for when a
-tailor forsaking his own occupation will be a merchant venturer, or a
-shoemaker will become a grocer, God send him help. I have known,” he
-says, “many in this town that studying divinity has killed a merchant,
-and some of other occupations by their busy labours in the Scripture
-hath shut up the shop windows, and were fain to take sanctuary, or
-else for mercery and grocery hath been fain to sell godderds, steaves,
-pitchers, and such other trumpery.”
-
-[280] _A Commentary in Englyshe upon Sayncte Paule’s Epistle to the
-Ephesians_, 1540.
-
-[281] _An Exposition in Englysh upon the Epistle of St. Paule to the
-Colossians_, 1548.
-
-[282] _An Exposition_, &c., _upon the Philippians_, 1545.
-
-[283] As an example of the open way in which the reading of the Bible
-was advocated, take the following instance. Caxton’s translation of
-the _Vitæ Patrum_, published by Wynkyn de Worde in 1495, contained an
-exhortation to all his readers to study the Holy Scripture. “To read
-them is in part to know the felicity eternal, for in them a man may see
-what he ought to do in conversation … oft to read purgeth the soul from
-sin, it engendereth dread of God, and it keeps the soul from eternal
-damnation.” As food nourishes the body, “in like wise as touching
-the soul we be nourished by the lecture and reading of Scripture.…
-Be diligent and busy to read the Scriptures, for in reading them the
-natural wit and understanding are augmented in so much that men find
-that which ought to be left (undone) and take that whereof may ensue
-profit infinite” (p. 345).
-
-[284] B. Mus. Harl. MS. 172, f. 12b.
-
-[285] Harl. MS. 115, f. 51.
-
-[286] Ibid., f. 53.
-
-[287] In speaking of the third Commandment, _The art of good lyvyng and
-good deyng_ (1503) warns people of their obligation to “Layr the holy
-prechyngys, that ys the word of God et the good techyngys, and shoold
-not go from the seyd prechyngs” (fol. 8. 2).
-
-[288] Ibid., f. 1.
-
-[289] _The Myrrour of the Church_ (1527), Sig. B4.
-
-[290] _Exornatorium Curatorum._ W. de Worde. In 1518 the Synod of Ely
-ordered that all having the cure of souls should have a copy of this
-book, and four times a year should explain it in English to their
-people. (Wilkins, _Concilia_, III., p. 712.)
-
-[291] _The Prymer of Salisbury Use._ Rouen: Nicholas le Rour, f. b. vij.
-
-[292] _The art of good lyvyng and good deyng._ Paris, 1503, f. g. 2.
-
-[293] _English Works_, p. 116.
-
-[294] _English Works_, p. 117.
-
-[295] Ibid., p. 121.
-
-[296] Ibid., p. 420.
-
-[297] _Sermons_, fol. 40.
-
-[298] _English Works_, pp. 196-7.
-
-[299] Ibid., p. 198.
-
-[300] Ibid., p. 199.
-
-[301] Ed. W. de Worde, 1496.
-
-[302] William Bond, _The Pilgrymage of Perfeccyon_, Wynkyn de Worde,
-1531, fol. 192.
-
-[303] Ibid., fol. 196.
-
-[304] Ibid.
-
-[305] _English Works_, p. 408.
-
-[306] The full title of this book is: _Pupilla oculi omnibus
-presbyteris precipue Anglicanis necessaria_. It is clear from the
-letter that W. Bretton had already had other works printed in the same
-way, and it is known that amongst those works were copies of Lynwode’s
-_Provinciale_ (1505), _Psalterium et Hymni_ (1506), _Horæ_, &c. (1506),
-_Speculum Spiritualium_, and Hampole, _De Emendatione Vitæ_ (1510),
-(cf. _Ames_, Ed. Herbert, iii. p. 16). Pepwell the London publisher, at
-“the sign of the Holy Trinity,” was the same who published many books
-printed abroad, and had dealings with Bishops Stokesley and Tunstall.
-
-[307] For further information upon popular religious instruction in
-England, see an essay upon the teaching in the fourteenth and fifteenth
-centuries in my _The old English Bible, and other Essays_. The Rev. J.
-Fisher, in his tract on _The Private Devotions of the Welsh_ (1898),
-speaking of the vernacular prayer-books, says, “they continued to be
-published down to the end of Henry’s reign, and, in a modified form,
-even at a later date. Besides these prymers and the oral instruction in
-the principal formulæ of the Church, the scriptorium of the monastery
-was not behind in supplying, especially the poor, with horn-books, on
-which were, as a rule, written in the vulgar tongue the Lord’s Prayer,
-the Creed, and the Hail Mary.” In 1546 appeared a prymer in Welsh in
-which, amongst other things, the seven capital or deadly sins and their
-opposite virtues are given and analysed. This book, consequently,
-besides being a prayer-book afforded popular instruction to the people
-using it. The prymers in Welsh, we are told, were usually called
-“Matins’ Books,” and continued to be published long after the change
-of religion. A copy published in 1618 is called the fifth edition,
-and copies of it are recorded under the years 1633 and 1783. “It is
-rather a curious fact,” writes Mr. Fisher, “that nearly all the Welsh
-manuals of devotion and instruction, of any size, published in the
-second half of the sixteenth and the first half of the seventeenth
-century, were the productions of Welsh Roman Catholics, and published
-on the Continent. In Dr. Gruffydd Roberts’s Welsh Grammar, published at
-Milan in 1567, will be found poetical versions of the Apostles’ Creed,
-the Lord’s Prayer, the Hail Mary, the Ten Commandments and the Seven
-Sacraments. This work was followed by the _Athravaeth Gristnogavl_,
-a short catechism of religious doctrine, translated or compiled by
-Morys Clynog, the first Rector of the English College in Rome. It was
-published at Milan in 1568, and contains the Creed, the Lord’s Prayer,
-the Hail Mary, the Ten Commandments, &c., in Welsh, with expositions.”
-
-The above, with the prayer-books of 1567, 1586, 1599, were all the
-works of religious instruction and devotion (private and public) that
-appeared in Welsh down to the end of the sixteenth century. I might add
-that there is in the Earl of Macclesfield’s collection a large folio
-volume of _Miscellanea_ (Shirburn MS. 113, D. 30), written between 1540
-and 1560, which contains a prymer occupying several pages. There is
-also in the Swansea Public Library a Welsh-Latin MS. of the sixteenth
-and seventeenth centuries, written in different hands and in the South
-Walian dialect, which forms a manual of Roman Catholic devotion,
-containing in Welsh devotions for Mass, the usual meditations and
-prayers for various occasions, instructions, &c.
-
-With the seventeenth century there is a good crop of manuals of
-devotion and instruction, such as the catechisms of Dr. Rosier Smith
-(1609-1611) and Father John Salisbury (1618 _tacito nomine_), both
-Welsh Roman Catholics (pp. 24-26).
-
-[308] _A Werke for Housholders._ London, R. Redman, 1537, sig. A. 8.
-
-[309] Ibid., sig. B. i.
-
-[310] Ibid., sig. C. 8.
-
-[311] Ibid., sig. D. 5.
-
-[312] B. Mus. Harl. MS. 2125, f. 272.
-
-[313] _Penny Cyclopædia._ Art., “English Drama.”
-
-[314] _A Relation of the Island of England_ (Camden Society), p. 20.
-
-[315] Ibid., p. 23.
-
-[316] _Venetian Calendar_, ii. p. 91.
-
-[317] _Works on the Supper_ (Parker Society), p. 229.
-
-[318] To take one instance: the church of St. Neots possessed many
-stained glass windows placed in their present positions between the
-years 1480 and 1530. Almost all of them were put in by individuals,
-as the inscriptions below testify. In the case of three of the lights
-it appears that groups of people joined together to beautify their
-parish church. Thus below one of the windows in the north aisle is the
-following: “_Ex sumptibus juvenum hujus parochiæ Sancti Neoti qui istam
-fenestram fecerunt anno domini millessimo quingentessimo vicessimo
-octavo_.” Another window states that it was made in 1529, “_Ex
-sumptibus sororum hujus parochiæ_”; and a third in 1530, “_Ex sumptibus
-uxorum_.”
-
-[319] _History of Modern Architecture_, pp. 37, 87.
-
-[320] _Archæologia_, vol. xli. p. 355.
-
-[321] _Parish Life in England before the Great Pillage_ (“Nineteenth
-Century,” March 1898), p. 433.
-
-[322] _Churchwardens’ Accounts_ (Somerset Record Soc.), ed. Bishop
-Hobhouse, p. 200, _seqq._
-
-[323] Ibid., p. xxi.
-
-[324] Ibid., p. xii.
-
-[325] _Archæologia_, vol. xli., p. 333 _seqq._
-
-[326] _Somerset Record Soc._, preface, p. xi.
-
-[327] J. W. Cowper, _Accounts of the Churchwardens of St. Dunstan’s,
-Canterbury_ (_Archæologia Cantiana_, 1885).
-
-[328] Siméon Luce, _Histoire de Bertrand du Guesclin_, p. 19.
-
-[329] The words of Pope Leo XIII. as to the Catholic teaching
-most accurately describe the practical doctrine of the English
-pre-Reformation Church on this matter: “The chiefest and most excellent
-rule for the right use of money,” he says, “rests on the principle that
-it is one thing to have a right to the possession of money and another
-to have the right to use money as one pleases.… If the question be
-asked, How must one’s possessions be used? the Church replies, without
-hesitation, in the words of the same holy doctor (St. Thomas), _Man
-should not consider his outward possessions as his own, but as common
-to all_, so as to share _them without difficulty when others are in
-need_. When necessity has been supplied and one’s position fairly
-considered, it is a duty to give to the indigent out of that which
-is over. It is a duty, not of justice (except in extreme cases) but
-of Christian charity … (and) to sum up what has been said, Whoever
-has received from the Divine bounty a large share of blessings … has
-received them for the purpose of using them for the perfecting of his
-own nature, and, at the same time, that he may employ them, as the
-minister of God’s Providence, for the benefit of others.”
-
-[330] _The Economic Interpretation of History_, p. 63.
-
-[331] _Churchwardens’ Accounts_ (Somerset Record Soc.), p. xxiv.
-
-[332] Roger Edgworth, _Sermons_, London, R. Caly, 1557, p. 309.
-
-[333] _Parish Life in England before the Great Pillage_ (“Nineteenth
-Century,” March 1898), p. 432.
-
-[334] _English Gilds_ (Early English Text-Society), pp. lxxx.-civ.
-
-[335] Ibid., p. xiv.
-
-[336] _The Economic Interpretation of History_, p. 306.
-
-[337] _English Gilds_ (Early English Text-Society), p. 3.
-
-[338] Ibid., p. 6.
-
-[339] Ibid., p. 8.
-
-[340] Ibid., p. 48.
-
-[341] Egerton MS., 142.
-
-[342] The existence of which I know from Mr. Francis Joseph Baigent,
-who with his usual generosity allowed me to examine and take my notes
-from the copies which he has among his great collection of materials
-for the history of Hampshire.
-
-[343] One example of this latter, or as I might call it, ordinary
-expense of the society, is worth recording. In 1411, and subsequent
-years, an annual payment of 13s. 4d. is entered on the accounts as
-made to one Thomas Deverosse, a tailor, and apparently a member of the
-fraternity. The history of this man’s poverty is curious. When Bishop
-William of Wykeham, desiring to build Winchester College, purchased
-certain lands for the purpose, amongst the rest was a field which a
-tailor of Winchester, this Thomas Deverosse, subsequently claimed; and
-to make good his contention, brought a suit of ejectment against the
-Bishop. The case was tried in the King’s Bench, and the tailor not only
-lost, but was cast in costs and so ruined. With some writers, William
-of Wykeham’s good name had been allowed to suffer most unjustly for
-his share in the misfortunes of the unlucky tailor; for the Bishop not
-only undertook to pay the costs of the suit himself, but agreed that
-the college should make the unfortunate claimant a yearly allowance of
-8d. to assist him in his poverty. The Tailors’ Guild secured to him a
-pension of 13s. 4d.
-
-[344] Here is the bill for the annual feast in the Guild of Tailors
-of Winchester in 1411. The association was under the patronage of St.
-John the Baptist, and they kept their feast on the Day of the beheading
-of the Saint, August 29. In this year, 1411, the 29th of August fell
-upon a Saturday, which in mediæval times, as all know, was a day of
-abstinence from flesh-meat. It is to be noticed, consequently, that
-provision is made for a fish dinner: “6 bushels of wheat at 8½d. the
-bushel; for grinding of the same, 3d.; for baking the same, 6d.;
-ready-made bread purchased, 12d.; beer, 7s. 1d.; salt fish bought of
-Walter Oakfield, 6s. 8d.; mullet, bass, ray, and fresh conger bought of
-the same Walter, 6s. 8d.; fresh salmon of the same, 8s.; eels, 10½d.;
-fresh fish bought of John Wheller, ‘fisher,’ 2s.; ditto, of Adam Frost,
-9s.; ditto, bought of a stranger, 2s. 8d.; beans purchased, 9d.; divers
-spices, _i.e._ saffron, cinnamon, sanders, 12½d.; salt, 2d.; mustard,
-2½d.; vinegar, 1d.; tallow, 2d.; wood, 18d.; coals, 3½d.; paid to
-Philip the cook, 2s.; to four labourers, 2s. 6d.; to three minstrels,
-3s. 4d.; for rushes to strew the hall, 4d.; three gallons and one pint
-of wine, 19d.; cheese, 8d.” Making in all a total of £3, 4s. 3½d. This,
-no doubt, represented a large sum in those days, but it is as well to
-remember that at this time the guild consisted of 170 men and women,
-and the cost of the feast was not one-sixth part of the annual income.
-
-[345] Harl. MS. 4626, f. 26.
-
-[346] Ibid., f. 29. This was confiscated to the Crown on the
-dissolution of the Guilds and Fraternities under Edward VI.
-
-[347] _Introduction to English Economic History_ (2nd ed.), i. pp.
-100-101.
-
-[348] _Old Crown House_, p. 36, cf. pp. 37-39.
-
-[349] See the remarks in regard to France of M. Charles de Ribbe, _La
-Société Provençale à la fin du moyen age_, 1898, p. 60. Speaking of the
-fifteenth-century wills, he says: “Nous en avons lu un grand nombre, et
-nous avons été frappé de la haute inspiration, parfois meme du talent,
-avec lesquels des notaires de village savaient traduire les élans de
-foi et de piété dont ils étaient les interprètes chez leurs clients.…
-Cette foi et cette piété; trouvé d’abord leur expression dans le
-vénérable signe de la sainte croix (lequel est plus d’une fois figuré
-graphiquement). Suit la recommandation de l’âme à Dieu Créateur du ciel
-et de la terre, au Christ rédempteur, à la Vierge Marie,” &c. (p. 91).
-
-[350] _Testamenta Eboracensia_ (Surtees Society), vol. iv. p. 21.
-
-[351] Ibid., p. 127.
-
-[352] Ibid., p. 127.
-
-[353] Ibid., p. 170.
-
-[354] Ibid., p. 27.
-
-[355] Ibid., p. 60.
-
-[356] Ibid., p. 335.
-
-[357] Ibid., p. 277.
-
-[358] Ibid., p. 139, _seqq._
-
-[359] Ibid., p. 61 and _note_.
-
-[360] Ibid., p. 69.
-
-[361] Ibid., p. 89.
-
-[362] Ibid., p. 132.
-
-[363] Ibid., p. 149.
-
-[364] Ibid., p. 208.
-
-[365] Ibid., p. 215.
-
-[366] Ibid., p. 230.
-
-[367] Ibid., p. 119.
-
-[368] Ibid., p. 160.
-
-[369] B. Mus. Harl. MS. 670, f. 77 b.
-
-[370] _Yorkshire Chantry Surveys_ (Surtees Soc.), ii., preface, p. xiv.
-
-[371] _The Economic Interpretation of History_, p. 306.
-
-[372] J. S. Burn, _History of Henley on Thames_, pp. 173-175.
-
-[373] R. O. Chantry Certificate, No. 13 (account for year 37 H. VIII.),
-No. 17.
-
-[374] Ibid., No. 30 and No. 95, M. 6.
-
-[375] Ibid., No. 37, M. 12; also No. 95, M. 7; and No. 13 (38) Mins.
-Accts. 2, 3, Ed. VI., shows that the king received £11, 19s. 8d. for
-the property of this chapel, which was granted to Robert Swift and his
-brother.
-
-[376] R. O. Chantry Certificate, No. 45 (m. i. d.).
-
-[377] Ibid.
-
-[378] Ibid.
-
-[379] Ibid. (18).
-
-[380] Ibid. (20).
-
-[381] This was owing to the recent dissolution of the Abbey.
-
-[382] In one case it is said: “_Mem._: The decay of rent is caused by
-the fact that most came from lands in possession of the abbey; since
-the dissolution these have been sold, and the purchasers do not allow
-that they are liable to pay.” The hospital called St. Parvell’s,
-without the south gate, also had been dissolved by Henry VIII., and the
-property granted to Sir George Somerset (6th July, 37 H. VIII.). It
-had produced £16, 13s. 4d. a year, with £5, 10s. “paid out of the late
-abbey of Bury to the sustentation of the poor.” The whole charity, of
-course, by the dissolution of the abbey and the grant of the remaining
-property as above, had come to an end.
-
-[383] Ibid. (No. 44).
-
-[384] _Yorkshire Chantry Surveys_ (Surtees Soc.), p. 213.
-
-[385] Ibid., p. 214.
-
-[386] Ibid., p. 215.
-
-[387] Ibid., p. 216.
-
-[388] Ibid., p. 11.
-
-[389] Ibid., p. 12.
-
-[390] Ibid., p. 13.
-
-[391] _Gentleman’s Magazine_, vol. lxxxii., ii. 318. Quoted in J. Gough
-Nichol’s _Pilgrimages_, &c. Introduction, xcv.
-
-[392] Lancelot Rydley. _Exposition in the Epistell of Jude._
-London, Thomas Gybson, 1538, sig. B. v. In sermons and writings,
-pre-Reformation ecclesiastics strove to impress upon the minds of the
-people the true principles of devotion to shrines and relics of the
-saints. To take one example beyond what is given above. In _The Art
-of Good Lyvyng and Good Deyng_, printed in 1503, the writer says: “We
-should also honour the places that are holy, and the relics of holy
-bodies of saints and their images, not for themselves, but for that in
-seeing them we show honour to what it represents, the dread reverence,
-honour and love of God, after the intention of Holy Church, otherwise
-it were idolatry” (fol. 6).
-
-[393] _A Commentary in Englyshe upon the Ephesians_, 1540, sig. A. ii.
-
-[394] P. 190.
-
-[395] _Opera omnia_ (ed. Leclerc), tom. v., col. 26.
-
-[396] Col. 37.
-
-[397] _A treatise concerning the division between the spiritualitie and
-the temporalitie._ London, R. Redman (1532?), fol. 27.
-
-[398] _Dyaloge in Englyshe_, 1531. Part 3, fol. 23.
-
-[399] English Works, p. 476.
-
-[400] Stephen Gardiner. _A declaration of such true articles as George
-Joye hath gone about to confute as false._ 1546, f. 2.
-
-[401] _Consilium de emendanda ecclesia_ (Ed. 1538), sig. B. 4.
-
-[402] Jacobi Sadoletti, _Opera Omnia_, Verona (1737). Tom ii., p. 437.
-
-[403] It is said to be “printed at Jericho in the land of Promes, by
-Thomas Treuth.”
-
-[404] The English Testament.
-
-[405] Sig. A. 3.
-
-[406] Ibid., sig. A. 4.
-
-[407] Ibid., sigs. A. 5 d., A. 6 d.
-
-[408] Ibid., sig. B. i.
-
-[409] Ibid., sig. B. ii.
-
-[410] Ibid., sig. B. viii.
-
-[411] Sig. D. vii.
-
-[412] Ibid., sig. D. viii.
-
-
-
-
-INDEX
-
-
- Abbots, display in elections of, 129
-
- Abraham, religious play, 320
-
- Adrian VI., Pope, 157
-
- Aggeus, Augustine, 310
-
- Aldine press, at Venice, 160
-
- Aldus, printer, 160, 166
-
- Alexander VI., Pope, 102
-
- Alms, 132
-
- Alton, foundation for obits at, 403-404
-
- Amberbach, printer, 166
-
- Amyas Chantry, 401-402
-
- Angels, devotion to, 308
-
- Anti-clerical spirit, 114, 119
-
- Antoninus, St., Archbishop of Florence, 96
-
- “Apology” of Sir Thomas More, 71, 73, 115, 122, 144
-
- Archæology, pagan and Christian, 206
-
- Architecture, pre-Reformation activity in, 9-10, 328 _et seq._;
- decline of the art, 329
-
- Aretino, 23
-
- Art, great activity of, prior to Reformation, 10-12
-
- Arundel, Archbishop, 236
-
- Ashley, Mr. W. J., cited, 379
-
- Augmentation, Court of, 384
-
-
- Badsworth, chantry foundation at, 401
-
- Baigent, Mr. F. T., 372, _note_
-
- Baker, mediæval fresco painter, 11
-
- Baptism, 225
-
- Barbarus, Hermolaus, 29
-
- Barnes, Friar, 88, 118, 119, 136, 223
-
- Basle, printing-press at, 165
-
- Baynard’s Castle, meeting at, 68
-
- Beccles, foundation at, 408
-
- Becket, Thomas, 441
-
- Bede-roll, 335, 341
-
- Benedict XII., 103
-
- Benedictine Order, average of graduates at Oxford, 42
-
- Benefices, 55, 106, 108, _note_, 353
-
- Benefit of clergy, 55
-
- Bequests, mediæval, 389 _et seq._
-
- Bere, Abbot, of Glastonbury, 39, 40, _note_
-
- Berthelet, publisher, 72, _note_, 73, 98, _note_, 102, _note_,
- 107, _note_, 110, 137, _note_, 298
-
- Bible, the Bishops’, 247
-
- Bible, Erasmus’s translation, 168 _et seq._
-
- Bible, English, hostility to, 236;
- evidence of Catholic acceptance, 237, 242, 247;
- supposed early Catholic version, 237, 242, 247;
- persecutions for possession examined, 240, and _note_, 241;
- translations authorised, 242-243, 247-249;
- not prohibited, 247, 275-276;
- absence of popular demand for, 250-251;
- Tyndale’s version and Luther’s share in it, 252 _et seq._;
- useless without interpretation, 275
-
- Bishops, and ordination, 148;
- and spiritual jurisdiction, 154;
- obstacles to Reformation, 444
-
- Blackfriars, meetings at, 67, 68
-
- Bombasius, Paul, 33, _note_, 34
-
- Bond, William, 83, 305
-
- Boniface VIII., Pope, 99
-
- Books, heretical, prohibited, 213-216;
- More on heretical, 218 _et seq._;
- earliest printed largely religious, 315
-
- Bourbon, Duke of, 230
-
- Boyer, Sebastian, Court physician, 160
-
- Brentano, Mr., cited, 362-363
-
- Brethren of St. John’s, 374;
- and Hospital, 375
-
- Bretton, William, 310, and _note_
-
- Brewer, Mr., cited, 147, 211-212, 250, 279
-
- Brotherhoods, Parish, 347
-
- Brunfels, Otto, 194
-
- Brygott, Richard, prior of Westacre, 44
-
- Bucer, 214
-
- Burials, 54
-
- Burnet, historian, cited, 4
-
- Bury St. Edmunds, chantries at, 409
-
- Butley, Priory of, 43
-
-
- Calendar of papers, domestic and foreign, of reign of Henry VIII., 4
-
- Cambray, Bishop of, 159
-
- Cambridge, portions of Prior Selling’s library at, 32;
- monastic students at, 43;
- petition of scholars to the king, 47
-
- Campeggio, Cardinal, 179, 180, 181
-
- Canterbury, Archbishop of, on clerical immunity, 69
-
- Canterbury, entertainment of Emperor Manuel at Christchurch, 22;
- Selling and Hadley, monks of Christchurch, 24 _et seq._;
- Canterbury College at Oxford, 27, 28, _note_;
- St. Augustine’s and the literary movement, 40
-
- Caraffa, Cardinal, afterwards Paul IV., 105, 107, 438
-
- Carmelites, origin, 117;
- responsibility for Lutheranism, 197
-
- Caxton, 275, _note_
-
- Chalcocondylas, Demetrius, 29
-
- Chantries, 123, 124, 399, 401
-
- Chapels of ease, 413
-
- Chaplains, evil effects of their position, 138-139
-
- Charnock, Prior, 39
-
- Chaucer, cited, 415
-
- Children, and idols, 292;
- religious instruction of, 312, 313-314
-
- Christchurch, _see_ Canterbury
-
- Christianity and the classical revival, 203-206
-
- Chrysoloras, Manuel, Greek scholar, 23, and _note_
-
- Chrysostom, St., cited, 122
-
- Church, position of, prior to Reformation, 1, 147, 211;
- need of reform in, 5 _et seq._;
- attitude to learning, 15, 21, 35-38, 41;
- hostility to “New Learning” explained, 15 _et seq._, 19;
- limits of jurisdiction, 51;
- and disputations entailed, _ibid._;
- State right to regulate temporalities of, 53 _et seq._;
- king as supreme head, 65, 111;
- rights, 65;
- what constitutes, 70;
- riches coveted, 75;
- Pope as head, 83 _et seq._;
- Papal Commission appointed to save, 105;
- evils in, and how caused, 105-106;
- abuses pointed out by Commission, 107, _note_, 108, _note_;
- limitations of king’s Headship, 111-112;
- controversy on riches of, 123;
- Erasmus’s attitude to, 167 _et seq._, 199-200;
- Erasmus regarded as an enemy to, 175-176;
- Lutheran tenets concerning, 194;
- need of reform obscured by Reformation, 198;
- attack on, 216;
- attitude to vernacular Bibles, 236 _et seq._, 245-248;
- but hostility to denied, 242-243, 246-247, 251;
- religious teaching prior to Reformation, 278 _et seq._;
- charges against on points of worship, 293, 302-305;
- bequests to, 390 _et seq._;
- suggested disposal of wealth of, 444;
- abuses in, 415
-
- Church of Christ, sermon on, 91
-
- Church-building, activity of, 326;
- contributions of people towards bequests for, 327, and _note_, 390;
- decoration, 328, 332
-
- Church House, 341
-
- Churchyards, trees and grass in, 60
-
- Cicero, and the classical revival, 203-206
-
- _Ciceroniana_ of Erasmus, 203
-
- Clark, Dr. John, English ambassador, 94
-
- Classical revival, Erasmus on, 203;
- absurdities of, 203-204
-
- Claymond, John, Greek scholar, 40, _note_, 41, _note_
-
- Clement, John, 37, _note_
-
- Clement, Pope, 109, _note_
-
- Clergy, alleged encouragement of ignorance, 2, 278;
- mortuary dues, 53, 140-144;
- “benefit,” 55;
- rights and duties, 61, 65-70;
- ordinations, 63, 148-153;
- exemptions, 63;
- immunity, 66 _et seq._;
- not the Church, 70;
- position as individuals, 72;
- attack on their temporalities, 103;
- laity’s grievance against, 114 _et seq._;
- and its causes, 119, 138;
- defended by More, 120-121;
- alleged mercenary spirit, 123;
- and idle laxity of living, 127;
- prayers, 131;
- alms, 132-133;
- fasting and mortification, 134;
- charges of corruption, 136;
- lack of definite work, 137, _note_;
- in households of laity, 138;
- tithe exactions, 142;
- faults, 143-145;
- alleged immorality, 145-146;
- charge of simony, 146;
- Mr. Brewer cited on, 147;
- ignorance of, 151;
- hostility to vernacular scriptures examined, 236 _et seq._, 243, 246;
- and reasons for not encouraging, 242, 244;
- extent and character of their religious teaching, 280 _et seq._;
- books used by for teaching, 309 _et seq._;
- chantry clergy, 400, 405-409, 413;
- pilgrimages and relics maintained by, 415;
- and motives for, 422, 425
-
- “Clericus,” 74
-
- Cloth, clerical, State’s right to legislate on, 60
-
- Cochlæus, John, 253, 254, _note_
-
- Colet, Dean, 7, 19, 29, and _note_, 33, _note_, 149, 160, 164, 168
-
- Commerce, progress not due to Reformation, 8
-
- Commissioners, royal, 380, 384
-
- Compostella, pilgrimages to, 416, 417
-
- Concordat, between Leo X. and Francis I., 76
-
- Concubines, alleged licences for, 145
-
- Confession, 225, 282, 287
-
- Congregation, denoting church, 173, _note_, 262-266
-
- Conscience, examinations of, 286
-
- Constantine, donation to Pope, 95
-
- Constantine, George, 222
-
- Constantinople, effect of fall of, 23
-
- Constitution, Provincial, 237-239, 242, 280
-
- Contarini, Cardinal, 107, 109, _note_
-
- Convocation, grant of headship of Church to the king, 111;
- enactment regarding ordination, 148-149;
- powers of legislation transferred to Crown, 153;
- draws up list of heretical books, 215
-
- Corpus Christi, feast of, 373;
- procession of guilds, 374;
- at Corunna, 217
-
- Council of Trent, 5, 109, _note_, 440
-
- Courts, ecclesiastical, subject to Pope, 80-81
-
- Coverdale, Myles, 102, 258
-
- Cranmer and English Bible, 236, 247;
- on hearing mass, 326
-
- Creeping to the Cross, 302
-
- Criticism in the Church, 155, 171
-
- Croke, Richard, 36, _note_, 102, _note_
-
- Cromwell, Thomas, 112, 153
-
- Cross, honour to on Good Friday, 302
-
- Crowley, quoted, 382
-
- Crucifix, reverence of image of, 126, 289-290, 300, 307;
- not an idol, 293
-
- Curates and mortuaries, 140-141;
- and tithes, 142
-
- Cuthbert, Bishop, 219
-
-
- Dalton, John, of Hull, will of, 391
-
- Dead, prayers for, 387, 399
-
- De Athegua, George, Bishop, 178, and _note_
-
- De Burgo, John, 309
-
- Dee, Dr., supplication to Queen Mary, 48
-
- _Defence of Peace_, 103, and _note_, 104, _note_
-
- Degree, advantage of to religious, 44
-
- De Melton, William, Chancellor of York, 149
-
- De Ribbe, M. Charles, on wills, 389, _note_
-
- _Determinations of the Universities_, 102, _note_
-
- Deventer, school, 157
-
- De Worde, Wynkyn, 83, 149, 275, _note_, 280, and _note_, 298, 312
-
- Digon, John, Canterbury monk, 41, and _note_
-
- Dislike of clergy, alleged, 114;
- reasons for, 127, 138
-
- Dispensations, 106
-
- _Dives et Pauper_, 284, 298, 353, 354
-
- Division between spirituality and temporality, Saint-German’s work on,
- 115 _et seq._, 122, 127, 140
-
- Divorce question, the, and its share in Reformation, 208, and _note_
-
- Doctors of divinity, Erasmus’s satire on, 201
-
- Döllinger, Dr., cited, 21
-
- Dominicans, the, and Erasmus, 187;
- responsibility for Lutheranism, 197
-
- Dorpius, Marten, 169-170
-
- Dues of clergy, 53
-
- Dunstan’s, St., Canterbury, 346;
- parish accounts, 347
-
- _Dyalogue_ of Saint-German, 53 _et seq._, 115, 140;
- of More, 262, 269, 289
-
-
- Ecclesiastical authority, alleged discontent of laity under, 1, 114,
- 208 _et seq._, 416;
- limits of, 51
-
- Ecclesiastical discipline, inquiry into, 438
-
- Ecclesiastics, attitude to revival of learning, 36-38, 41;
- resistance to encroachment, 51, 53;
- Erasmus’s satire on, 201 _et seq._;
- attitude to English Bible, 236 _et seq._;
- alleged encouragement of ignorance, 2, 278
-
- Edgworth, Roger, preacher, 16, 46, 212, 244, 272, 273, _note_, 292, 359
-
- Education, fostered by monasteries, 45
-
- _Enconium Moriæ_, of Erasmus, 161-162, 201 _et seq._
-
- Erasmus, attitude to Reformation, 7, 20;
- made responsible for “New Learning,” 16, _note_;
- but attitude to defined, 19, 20;
- his chief support in England, 38;
- position and views, 155;
- considered a Reformer, 156, 178, 180-181;
- birth and education, 156-157;
- joins order of St. Augustine, 157;
- ordained, _ibid._;
- unfitness for religious life, 157;
- hostility to religious orders, 158, 180, 187, 200;
- denounces enticing of youths into cloister, _ibid._;
- leaves the religious life, 159;
- takes pupils, _ibid._;
- at Oxford, 159-160;
- in London, 160;
- visits Italy, _ibid._;
- his _Adagia_, _ibid._;
- visits Venice, _ibid._;
- returns to London, 161;
- his _Enconium Moriæ_, 161-162, 201 _et seq._, 431;
- at Cambridge, 161-162;
- testimony to Archbishop Warham’s kindness, 162-163;
- praise of English ecclesiastics, 163, _note_;
- amounts received from English friends, 164;
- again leaves England, 165;
- settles at Basle, _ibid._;
- superintends Froben’s press, 166;
- death, 167;
- attitude to Church, 167 _et seq._, 199-200;
- translation of New Testament, 168 _et seq._;
- attacks on, 173 _et seq._;
- regarded as an enemy to the Church, 175-176;
- opposition to his revival of Greek, 177-178;
- defends himself to the Pope, 179, 181-182;
- disclaims connection with Luther, 180-182, 185, 195-198;
- opposition to national churches, 182, _note_;
- attitude to Luther, 185, 195, 196-198;
- attacks Luther, 186;
- replies to von Hutten’s attacks, 187 _et seq._;
- attitude to the Pope, 189-190, and _note_, 193, 194-195, 197;
- attacks Lutheran motives, 191-192;
- letter to Bishop Marlianus on attitude to Luther, 197;
- general attitude to religious movement of his age, 200 _et seq._;
- and to the classical revival, 203;
- on pilgrimages and relics, 415, 418, 431;
- on devotion to saints, 431 _et seq._
-
- Eton College Chapel, wall paintings of, 11
-
- Evensong, said before noon, 134
-
- Exemptions of clergy, 63, 76
-
-
- Fairs, 378 _et seq._;
- at Winchester, 379
-
- _Faith, The Olde, of Great Brittayne and the New Learning of England_,
- 17, and _note_
-
- Fasting, 134
-
- Ferguson, Mr., quoted on architectural art, 329
-
- Fineux, Chief-Justice, tries John Savage, 57 _et seq._;
- opinion on spiritual courts, 69
-
- Fisher, Bishop, love of learning, 36, _note_;
- object in studying Greek, 38;
- views on Papal supremacy, 90, and _note_;
- books against Luther, 90, _note_, 192;
- execution, 91;
- sermon on, 92;
- on moral character of religious, 137, _note_;
- invitation to Erasmus, 161;
- on Erasmus’s New Testament, 169, 175, _note_;
- supports study of Greek, 177
-
- Fisher, Rev. J., 311, _note_
-
- Fleming, Robert, 23
-
- Foxe, cited, 240, _note_, 251
-
- Francis I., 76
-
- Francis, Order of St., 117
-
- Free, John, 40, and _note_
-
- Frith, 215, 222, 223, 227
-
- Froben, printer, 165, 182
-
- Froude, on Erasmus’s New Testament, 172
-
- Funerals, 54
-
-
- Gairdner, James, cited on jurisdiction of Pope, 81, _note_;
- on the divorce question, 208, _note_;
- on Reformation influences, 210, 211, _note_
-
- Gardiner, Bishop, 438
-
- Gardynare, Germen, 227
-
- Garlekhithe, St. James, 366
-
- German reformers, books prohibited, 214-215
-
- Gibbon, cited, 22
-
- _Glasse of Truth_, 101-102, _note_
-
- Glastonbury monastery, 39
-
- Gloucester, Humphrey, Duke of, 23
-
- God, love of, 299;
- worship of, 304
-
- Goldstone, Reginald, monk, companion of Selling, 26
-
- Goldstone, Thomas, Prior of Christchurch, 24
-
- Gonville Hall, Cambridge, 43, 44
-
- Good Friday observances, 302-303
-
- Government, true principle of, 106
-
- Grace at meals, 314
-
- Graduates at Oxford, register of, 41-42
-
- Greek emperors, journeys to courts of Western Europe, 22
-
- Greek, influence in revival of learning, 14, 21 _et seq._;
- first schools of the revival, 23;
- effect of fall of Constantinople, 23-24;
- decline in study of after Reformation, 47;
- Erasmus and the Greek Testament, 168 _et seq._;
- outcry against studies in, 177
-
- Green, historian, cited, 16, _note_
-
- Gregory VII., Pope, 101
-
- Grocyn, William, 29, and _note_, 160
-
- Grudge of laity against ecclesiastics, 114
-
- Guardian angel, prayer to, 309
-
- Guarini, pupil of Chrysoloras, 23
-
- Guilds, 351;
- founded upon principle of Christian brotherhood, 352 _et seq._;
- trade, and religious, 361;
- benefit societies, 363;
- their work, 365, 385;
- constitution, 366 _et seq._;
- “Pinners’” Guild, 368;
- accounts, 369-370;
- fees, 371;
- Guild of Tailors, 371;
- members, 371;
- expenditure, 372, and _note_;
- their part in Corpus Christi processions, 373-374;
- brethren of St. John’s, 374;
- feasts, 376, and _note_;
- Candlemas Guild of Bury St. Edmunds, 377;
- bequests, 377-378;
- connection with fairs, 378;
- final destruction, 380
-
-
- Hadley, William, companion of Prior Selling, 24;
- studies at foreign universities, 25;
- returns to Christchurch, 26
-
- Hair shirts, 131, 134
-
- Headship of the Church, the king’s, 56
-
- Hegius, Alexander, 157
-
- Henley on Thames, chantries at, 405
-
- Henry IV., 136
-
- Henry VII. obtains Bull from Innocent VIII., 56;
- purchases pardon for Westminster and Savoy, 124
-
- Henry VIII., calendar of papers of reign, 4;
- exerts his influence on behalf of learning, 36, 177;
- determined to maintain rights of Crown, 69;
- book against Luther, 90, 94;
- defends Church, 94, 226;
- reputed book, 102, _note_;
- petition of Commons, &c., against spirituality, 153;
- quarrel with Rome on divorce question, 208, and _note_;
- forbids Lutheran books, 214, 259;
- authorises English Bibles, 273;
- destroys the guilds, 380;
- the reformers and, 440
-
- Heresy, spread by books, 213, 218
-
- Hobhouse, Bishop, cited, 346, 357
-
- Holidays, determined by ecclesiastical law, 71
-
- Holy Land, pilgrimages to, 416
-
- _Hortulus Animæ_, the, 214, and _note_
-
- Huchin, William, _see_ Tyndale
-
- Hunn, Richard, 240
-
- Hunting, by priests, 138, 139, 151
-
- Hutton, Rev. W. H., cited, 208, _note_
-
- Hytton, Sir Thomas, 224, 225
-
-
- Idolatry, charges of, 293, 303, 305
-
- Idols, distinguished from images, 265, 289 _et seq._, 305-306
-
- Ignorance, alleged prevalence of, 2, 278
-
- Images, confused with idols, 265, 292;
- veneration of, 289 _et seq._, 423 _et seq._
-
- Immunity of clergy, 63, 66 _et seq._
-
- Indulgences, 108, _note_, 435 _et seq._
-
- Innocent VIII. grants Bull to Henry VII., 56, _note_
-
-
- Janssen, historian, cited, 6, 7, 279, 354
-
- Jerome, St., corrections in Testament, 170;
- cited on Papal supremacy, 197
-
- Jessop, Dr., cited, 43;
- on popular gifts to churches, 336;
- on poverty, 360
-
- Jesus, bowing at name of, 283
-
- Joye, George, or Clarke, 221, 224, 253, 257-258, 438
-
- Judges, English prelates as, 81
-
- Julius II., Pope, 96, 102, 109, 204
-
- Jurisdiction, limits of ecclesiastical and lay, 51, 65 _et seq._, 176;
- leading factor in Reformation, 52;
- Papal, 78 _et seq._;
- Roman curia as court of appeal, 80
-
-
- Katherine, Queen, 178
-
- Kent, Holy Maid of, 441
-
- King’s power, 75;
- his headship of Church, 65, 111
-
- Knowledge, result of increase of, 2
-
-
- Laity, Reformation opposed to convictions of, 1;
- alleged disaffection to Church, _ibid._;
- and reasons advanced, _ibid._;
- attitude to Church’s jurisdiction, 51;
- absence of enthusiasm among in doctrinal disputes, 52;
- grudge against ecclesiastics, 114 _et seq._;
- charge clergy with mercenary spirit, 123;
- dislike of clergy, and reasons for, 127;
- “mortuaries” a great offence to, 140
-
- Langton, Thomas, Bishop of Winchester, 33, and _note_
-
- Languages, battle of, 176-179
-
- Laocöon, the, statue of, 206, _note_
-
- Latimer, William, Bishop, 34, 38, 47;
- lawsuits, 348 _et seq._
-
- “Latria,” 294-304, 306-307
-
- Lawyers, ecclesiastical, 95
-
- Learning, revival not due to Reformation, 7-8, 15;
- adverse effects of Reformation on, 9, 198-199;
- “New Learning” applied only to religious teaching, 15 _et seq._;
- Church’s attitude to learning, 15, 19, 38;
- Erasmus on Reformation’s effect on, 20;
- general aspect of revival, 21;
- Greek influence in, 14, 21 _et seq._;
- subsequent progress, 35;
- occasional pulpit denunciations, _ibid._;
- slight nature of opposition, 36;
- laymen associated with revival, 37;
- fostered by monasteries, 39;
- condition of things at universities, 41-44;
- education assisted by religious houses, 45;
- decay of after Reformation, 45-48;
- revival of, associated with Lutheranism, 178;
- but without cause, 180-181;
- Erasmus’s attitude to revival of letters, 203-207
-
- Lee, Edward, afterwards Archbishop of York, 173-174, and _note_, 252
-
- Leeds, chantries at, 411-412
-
- Leland, cited, 24, _note_, 25
-
- Leo X., Pope, 28, and _note_, 76, 94, 96, 173, 179, 181, 185, 439
-
- Leo XIII., Pope, cited, 355, _note_
-
- Leonicenus, 34
-
- Leonicus, 34, and _note_
-
- Leverton, parish of, 339;
- Church accounts, 343 _et seq._
-
- Lewes, Cluniac House at, 43
-
- Liberty advocated by Luther, 227
-
- Libraries, destruction of, 48;
- Dr. Dee’s supplication to Queen Mary, 48;
- national library suggested, 49
-
- Life, daily rules of, 286-287, 313
-
- Lilly, George, 29, _note_
-
- Linacre, pupil of Selling, sketch of early life, 27;
- accompanies Selling to Italy, 28; becomes pupil of Politian, 28;
- at Rome, 29;
- returns to Oxford, 30;
- appointed Court physician, _ibid._;
- receives priest’s orders, _ibid._;
- friend of Erasmus, 160, 164
-
- Liveries for chaplains, 138
-
- Lollards, the, 209 _et seq._, 214, 240
-
- London, Mors’s Lamentation against, 440
-
- Longland, Bishop, 93, 146, 147, _note_
-
- Louvain, University of, 160, 174, _note_, 176, 178, 179, 180
-
- Love of God, 299
-
- Luce, M. Siméon, cited, 351
-
- Lupset, Thomas, sketch of, 36, _note_;
- on study of Bible, 248
-
- Luther, Martin, aims of, 7;
- cited on pre-Reformation progress, 8;
- “New Learning” inculcated by, 16, and _note_;
- books against, 84-85, 90, 94;
- sermon against, 93;
- Henry VIII. opposes, 94;
- method of, 108-109, _note_; More and Lutherans, 120;
- considered disciple of Erasmus, 156, 178, 180;
- revival of letters not connected with his movement, 180-181;
- Erasmus’s repudiation of, 180-182, 195-198;
- efforts to win over Erasmus, 183-184;
- attacked by Erasmus, 186, 191-192;
- supported by von Hutten, 186 _et seq._;
- tenets of Lutheranism, 194;
- methods of attacking condemned, 196;
- who responsible for his movement, 197;
- effects of Lutheranism, 198;
- and spread of, 212-213;
- books prohibited, 213-215; disciples, 216;
- his book, 222;
- “New Learning” and, 225;
- advocacy of liberty, 227;
- evils of Lutheranism, 228-230;
- and of Lutheran literature, 244;
- Tyndale’s connection with, 252;
- share in Tyndale’s Testament, 252-255;
- direction of his remonstrances, 279
-
- Lutheranism, tenets of, 194;
- responsibility for, 197;
- effects of, 198;
- evils of, 228-230;
- expectations of English Lutherans, 440, 445
-
- Lyndwood, cited, 247, 353
-
-
- Mace, George, canon of Westacre, 44
-
- Maitland, Professor, quoted on pre-Reformation position of the Pope, 80
-
- Manuel, Greek Emperor, arrival at Canterbury, 22
-
- Mary Magdalene, religious play, 320
-
- Marlianus, Bishop, 197
-
- Marshall, William, 103
-
- Marsilius of Padua, 103, 104, _note_
-
- Mary, Queen, attempt to restore learning under, 48
-
- Mass, the, 225, 271, 283, 285
-
- Matrimony, State regulation of, 62;
- Hytton’s view of, 225
-
- Matthew, Simon, preacher, 91
-
- Medici, Lorenzo de, 28
-
- Mentz, Cardinal Archbishop of, 181, 184
-
- Metal-working, inventions in, 428
-
- “Miles,” mouthpiece of Saint-German, 74
-
- Miracles, 62, 427
-
- Monasteries, scholarship in, 39, and _note_;
- members of at universities, 42 _et seq._
-
- Monks, hostile to Erasmus, 176, 180;
- Erasmus quoted on, 202;
- pilgrimages and relics maintained by, 415
-
- Morality, of clergy, 145-146
-
- More, Sir Thomas, attitude to Reformation, 7;
- and to learning, 19, 35-37;
- connection with Christchurch, 28;
- at Oxford, 29, and _note_;
- on immunity of clergy, 70;
- his “Apology,” 71, 73, 115, 122, 144;
- on spiritual authority, 73;
- on Papal supremacy, 85 _et seq._, 88;
- on nature of the Church, 86 _et seq._;
- against Friar Barnes, 88;
- book against Luther, 90;
- death, 91;
- sermon on, 92;
- controversy on clergy and laity, 115 _et seq._;
- on quarrels between religious, 116-117;
- defends clergy, 120;
- and replies to allegation of their mercenary spirit, 124;
- and of their idle laxity of life, 127;
- on abuses in religious life, 130;
- on prayers and alms of clergy, 131-135;
- defends clergy from charges of corruption, 136;
- on faults of clergy, 143-145;
- and on their morality, 145-146;
- visited by Erasmus, 160-161;
- share in Erasmus’s _Enconium Moriæ_, 161-162, 201;
- defends Erasmus’s translation of New Testament, 169-170, 173, _note_;
- defends Greek studies, 177;
- urges Erasmus against Luther, 186;
- opinion of Erasmus’s _Enconium Moriæ_, 202, _note_;
- on spread of heresy, 213, 218;
- on “New Learning” and Lutheranism, 225;
- on Luther’s advocacy of liberty, 227;
- on evils of Lutheranism, 228-230;
- on English Bible, 237 _et seq._;
- on case of Richard Hunn, 241;
- on Church’s acceptance of vernacular Bibles, 242-243, 247-249;
- and on false translations, 243;
- and reasons for condemnation of Tyndale’s version, 243, 260-270;
- on reverence of images, 289-291, 293-298;
- on prayer, 307;
- on pilgrimages, 419 _et seq._, 425 _et seq._;
- on relics, 429;
- on indulgences, 437
-
- Morebath, village of, well-supported church, 337
-
- Mors, Roderigo, his “Lamentation,” 440
-
- Mortality among pilgrims, 418
-
- Mortmain, lands in, 54
-
- Mortuaries, 53, 140
-
- Morysine, Richard, 105, 107, _note_
-
- Mountjoy, Lord, 159, 161, 164
-
- Music, pre-Reformation progress in, 12-13;
- Richard Pace quoted on, 35
-
- Mystery plays, 316 _et seq._
-
-
- National churches, opposed by Erasmus, 182, _note_
-
- National feeling and the Papacy, 82 _et seq._
-
- National library, suggested, 49
-
- Nevill, Archbishop, 281
-
- “New Learning” defined, 15 _et seq._;
- its purely religious application, 16 _et seq._;
- result of, 50;
- founded on Luther’s teaching, 225
-
- New Testament, Erasmus’s translation, 168 _et seq._;
- English versions destroyed, 236;
- Tyndale version, and Luther’s share in it, 252 _et seq._
-
- Nicholas V., Pope, 96
-
- Nicholas of Cusa, reforms in Germany, 6;
- opinion on Constantine’s gift to Pope, 96
-
- “Noah and his Sons,” religious play, 320
-
- Nobility, attitude to clergy, 136
-
- Norwich, Visitations of Diocese of, 43;
- Benedictine Cathedral Priory of, _ibid._
-
- Nottinghamshire, chantries in, 401-402, 406
-
-
- Obits, 399 _et seq._
-
- Œcolampadius, 184, 214
-
- “Open Bible,” 236, 246, 273, 275
-
- Orders, religious, their graduates at Oxford, 42;
- suggested alterations in constitutions, 129;
- hostility of Erasmus, 158
-
- Ordinations, proposed prohibition regarding, 63;
- abuses in, 107, 148;
- action by Convocation, 148-149;
- William de Melton on, 149-153, _note_;
- reformers on, 225, 232
-
- Oxford, Register of Graduates at, 41-42;
- refounding of Durham College at, 48;
- heresy at, 227;
- Constitution or Synod of, 238, 247, 280
-
-
- Pace, Richard, befriended by Bishop Langton, 33;
- his _De Fructu_, 33, _note_;
- at foreign universities, 34;
- the Pope’s library, _ibid._;
- remarks on music, 35;
- indebtedness to Abbot Bere, 40;
- supports Greek studies, 177
-
- Pagula, Walter, 309
-
- Papal Commissions, 105, 439
-
- Papal jurisdiction, meaning of renunciation, 78;
- general acceptance, 79;
- books against, 101
-
- Papal prerogatives, in England, 52, 107-108;
- in France, 77
-
- Papal supremacy, 83 et seq.;
- rejection of, 90;
- English belief in, 93-95;
- rejection defended by Bishop Tunstall, 109;
- Erasmus on, 190, and _note_, 194-195
-
- Pardons, 124, 435 _et seq._
-
- Parish churches, sanctuary privileges, 57;
- religious teaching in, 280 _et seq._
-
- Parish life, 323 _et seq._;
- devotion of people, 325;
- care of the churches, 328;
- raising of money, 340;
- brotherhoods, 347
-
- Parliament, legislation on mortuaries, 53, 141;
- and on immunity of clergy, 66;
- need for settlement of religious divisions, 60;
- suggested legislation, 55, 62, 71;
- right of legislation, 141;
- transfers powers of Convocation to Crown, 153;
- petition of Commons against spirituality, _ibid._;
- authorises destruction of guilds, 380
-
- Paul III., Pope, 105, 439
-
- Paul IV., Pope, 438
-
- Payment for “Pardons,” 435 _et seq._
-
- Peckham, or Pecham, Archbishop, 280, 286
-
- Penance, 282
-
- Pensions, 108, _note_
-
- Pensioners, university, 43
-
- Pepwell, publisher, 310, _note_
-
- Petition of House of Commons against spirituality, 153
-
- _Pilgrimage of Perfection_, quoted, 83
-
- Pilgrimages, State supervision urged, 62;
- objections to, 184, 293, 415;
- importance, 416;
- foreign, 416;
- to England, 418
-
- Pincern, Bartolomeo, 96
-
- Pinners, Guild of, 368-369
-
- Plays, mystery, 316 _et seq._, 342
-
- Pocket, the people’s, a clue to religious changes, 52
-
- Pole, Cardinal, 48, 107
-
- Politian, Angelo, 25, 28
-
- Pomeranus, 214
-
- Poor, right to benefices, 55;
- injury to by confiscations, 382, 402 _et seq._;
- bequests to, 397-398
-
- Pope, Sir Thomas, 48
-
- Pope, the, and Sanctuary, 55 _et seq._;
- pre-Reformation loyalty to, 79;
- powers in England before Reformation, 80 _et seq._;
- spiritual and temporal power in conflict, 82;
- position as head of Church, 83 _et seq._;
- rejection of his supremacy, 90;
- imprisoned, 94;
- English acceptance of his supremacy, 93-95;
- Constantine’s gift to, 95;
- wars of, 97;
- temporal power of, 97-100, 103-104;
- authority as Peter’s successor, 90, 99-100, 103;
- works against character of, 101-104;
- commission appointed by, 105;
- how deceived, _ibid._;
- recommendations of commission, 107;
- sermon against, 109;
- object of attacks on, 110;
- Erasmus’s attitude to, 189-190, 193-195, 197;
- Erasmus’s satire on, 202, and _note_;
- refuses to grant Henry’s divorce, 208, and _note_
-
- Powell, Edward, theologian, quoted on papal supremacy, 85
-
- Power, spiritual and temporal, 70, 72-73, 82;
- dialogue on, 73 _et seq._, 98;
- the king’s, 75
-
- _Praier and Complaynte of the Ploweman_, 17, and _note_, 223
-
- Prayers, for Pope, 110;
- of clergy and religious, 131;
- Sir Thos. More on, 307;
- daily, 313;
- for the dead, 399
-
- Preaching at St Paul’s Cross, 67, 69;
- style of against Pope condemned, 92;
- in parish churches, 281, 283;
- more important than mass, 284-285
-
- “Prick song,” or part music, 12, 13
-
- “Primer,” the, 216, 223-224, 286
-
- Printing, responsible for spread of heresy, 213;
- religious works predominate in earliest, 315-316
-
- Psalter, the, 223-224
-
- Purgatory, 61, 225, 231, 387, 399, 405, 437
-
- Pynson, printer, 298
-
-
- Reformation, impossibility of writing history of, 3;
- revival of letters not due to, 7-8, 15;
- adverse effect on learning, 9, 20, 41 _et seq._;
- English attitude to Pope prior to, 78-79;
- share of divorce question in, 208, and _note_;
- similar in England to Luther’s principles, 231;
- meaning, 82, 279;
- share of Wycliffe and Lollards in, 209 _et seq._;
- effect upon church art, 331;
- and poverty, 358
-
- Relics, honour of, 415 _et seq._, 429 _et seq._
-
- Religious, at universities, 42 _et seq._;
- State interference, 61;
- abuses among, 108, _note_;
- reputed quarrels between, 116-117;
- evils in constitutions, 129;
- testimony to moral character, 137, _note_;
- Mr. Brewer cited on, 147;
- Erasmus on, 202
-
- Religious teaching, alleged neglect of, 278;
- Reformation not directly connected with, 279;
- extent and character, 280 _et seq._;
- nature and effect, 288 _et seq._;
- books used by clergy in, 309 _et seq._;
- religious plays, 316 _et seq._
-
- Renaissance, definition of, 14;
- in England, _ibid._;
- earlier than generally supposed, 15
-
- Restitution, argued, 125;
- a case involving, 140
-
- Reuchlin, 180-181, 184, 186, 187
-
- Reverence of images, 289 _et seq._
-
- Ridley, Lancelot, commentaries on Scriptures, 104, 111, and _note_,
- 273-274;
- on devotion to saints, 422-423;
- on pilgrimages and images, 424
-
- Roberts, John, his _Mustre of scismatyke bysshops of Rome_, 101, and
- _note_
-
- Rogers, Mr. Thorold, cited, 356 _et seq._, 360-361, 364, 403
-
- Rome, classical revival in, 203-206;
- sack of, 230;
- pilgrimages to, 416
-
- Roper, John, 102, _note_
-
- Roper, Mary and Margaret, 37, _note_, 41, _note_
-
- Roy, Friar, 215, 222
-
- Rule of life, daily, 286-287
-
- Rules of religious orders, suggested examination, 129
-
-
- Sacrament of the Altar, Dr. Richard Smythe on, 216-217, 273, _note_;
- Hytton on, 226
-
- Sacraments, English reformers on, 225, 231;
- attack on, 271
-
- Sadolet, Cardinal, 107, 108, _note_, 439
-
- Saint-German, Christopher, lawyer, 53, and _note_;
- attitude to Church, 53, 115;
- cited on mortuaries, 53, 140;
- on lands in mortmain and benefices, 54-55;
- on sanctuary and benefit, 55;
- on churchyards, 60;
- on clerical duties, _ibid._;
- on need for State interference, _ibid._;
- on Purgatory, 61;
- on State regulation of religious life, 61;
- and of matrimony, 62;
- on miracles, _ibid._;
- on other debateable questions, 63;
- on tithes, _ibid._, 142;
- on power of clergy, 65;
- on king’s headship, _ibid._;
- on clerical immunity, 69;
- on holidays, 71;
- his _Salem and Bizance_, 71, 115, 118;
- on position of clergy as individuals, 72;
- controversy with More, 115 _et seq._;
- attacks on clergy, 119 _et seq._;
- alleged mercenary spirit among clergy, 123;
- on election of abbots, 129;
- on constitutions of religious orders, _ibid._;
- on causes of dislike of clergy by laity, 138;
- on indulgences, 435, 440
-
- Saints, reverence of images of, 289 _et seq._;
- amount of honour due to, 304, 306, 308;
- devotion to, 423, and _note_, 431 _et seq._
-
- _Salem and Bizance_, Saint-German’s _Dyalogue of_, 71, 115, 118,
- _note_, 122, 144
-
- Sanctuary, difficulty of the subject, 55;
- a danger to the State, _ibid._;
- case of John Savage, 56 _et seq._;
- Papal Bull granted to Henry VII., 56, _note_;
- the subject examined by Star Chamber, 58
-
- Savage, John, his plea of sanctuary, 56
-
- Scaliger, cited, 166
-
- Scholars, poor, bequests to, 396
-
- Screens, excellence of pre-Reformation work, 12
-
- Scripture, Holy, key of position of English reformers, 231;
- translations of, 234, 236 _et seq._;
- study of advocated by Church, 244, 248, 275, _note_
-
- See of Rome, supremacy of, 79 _et seq._
-
- Selby, chantries at, 411
-
- Selling, Prior William, birth and education, 24;
- real name, 24, and _note_;
- studies at foreign universities, 25;
- takes his degree in theology, 25;
- industrious book collector, 25;
- good work at Christchurch, 26;
- returns to Rome, 26, and _note_;
- establishes Greek at Christchurch, 27;
- as prior, 27, and _note_;
- member of an embassy to the Pope, 31, and _note_, 56, _note_;
- continued interest in literary revival, 31;
- Greek translation, 31;
- fate of his library, 32;
- influence, 33
-
- _Sermo Exhortatorius_, 149
-
- Sermons, Church, more important than the Mass, 283, 284-285
-
- Sharpe, Dr., 359
-
- Shrines, pilgrimages to, 416 _et seq._
-
- Simony, clergy charged with, 146
-
- Slander and libel, jurisdiction pertaining to, 65
-
- Smith, Mr. Toulmin, on guilds, 364, 366, 381
-
- Smythe or Smith, Dr. Richard, 216, 272, 273, and _note_
-
- Social conditions before Reformation, 351 _et seq._;
- case of the poor, 353
-
- _Soul’s Garden_, the, 214, _note_
-
- Sovereignty of the Pope, 97-100, 103-104, 107
-
- Spiritual power, temporal derived from, 70
-
- Spongia, the, of Erasmus, 187 _et seq._
-
- Standish, Dr. Henry, on immunity of clergy, 67;
- charged before convocation, 67;
- on lesser orders, 68
-
- Standish, John, archdeacon, 234, 248, 249, _note_, 270, 271
-
- St. Giorgio, Venice, abbot of, 105
-
- St. John of Jerusalem, priory of, 56
-
- St. John the Baptist, head of, 430
-
- St. Paul’s Cross, preaching at, 67, 91;
- testaments burnt at, 245, 256, and _note_
-
- St. Peter, Catholic succession from, 90, _note_;
- vicarship, 99-100
-
- Star chamber, 58
-
- State, jurisdiction of, 51;
- right of interference in temporalities, 53, 60-64, 72;
- legislates concerning mortuaries, 53, 140;
- limits to State interference, 54;
- power claimed for, 55, 60-64;
- punishment by for spiritual offences, 65;
- protecting power of, 75;
- destruction of guilds by, 380-381
-
- Stokesley, William, 34
-
- Stubbs, Bishop, 354, 356
-
- Students, distress of at university, 46
-
- Sturmius, John, 105, 106, 107, _note_
-
- Suffolk, chantries in, 407
-
- Sunday, legal status of, 71
-
- Superstition, in devotion, 293, 297, 302;
- condemned, 314
-
- _Supplication of Beggars_, the, 213, 221
-
- Surtees Society, publications, 319
-
-
- Tailors, Guild of, 371
-
- Taverns, frequented by clergy, 151
-
- Teaching, religious. _See_ Religious teaching
-
- Temporalities, right of State interference in, 53 _et seq._;
- difference between and spiritual jurisdiction, 72;
- clearly defined in Spain, 76
-
- Temporal power, derived from spiritual, 70;
- of the Pope, 97-100, 103-104, 107
-
- Theologians, Erasmus’s satire on, 201
-
- Tithes, the lay and ecclesiastical cases, 63-64;
- Saint-German quoted on, 142
-
- Torkington, Sir Richard, rector of Mulbarton, 418
-
- _Towneley Mysteries_, the, 319
-
- Tradition and English Reformers, 231
-
- Translations, of Holy Scripture, 236 _et seq._
-
- Trentals, 123, 124, 138, _note_
-
- Trevelyan, George Macaulay, cited, 240, _note_
-
- Trinity, feast of at Compostella, 217
-
- Trojans, opponents of Greek study, 35
-
- Tunstall, Bishop, 29, _note_, 34, and _note_, 109, 169, 175, _note_,
- 185, 198-199, 213, 214, _note_, 255, 256
-
- Tyll. _See_ Selling
-
- Tyndale, More’s confutation of, 87-88, 118, 119, 136;
- charges clergy with immorality, 145;
- use of word congregation for church, 173, _note_;
- attribution of _Enconium Moriæ_ to More, 202, _note_;
- books prohibited, 213;
- English Testament, 220;
- and other books, 220-223;
- advocates liberty, 228;
- influence, 231;
- English Testament condemned, 236, 243, 251, 255 _et seq._, 276;
- demand for his works, 250;
- birth and early life, 252;
- joins Luther, 252;
- Luther’s share in his Testament, 252 _et seq._;
- his revised Testament, 260;
- More’s examination of his Testament, 260-270;
- on indulgences, 437
-
-
- Unity of pre-Reformation belief, 324
-
- Universities, effect of Reformation on, 9, 41 _et seq._;
- monastic students at, 42 _et seq._;
- poverty of students at after Reformation, 46
-
- Urban III., Pope, sanctuary grant of, 56
-
- Urbanus Regius, cited, 18, 19, _note_
-
- Urswick, Christopher, 32, _note_
-
-
- Valla, Laurence, 96
-
- Veneration of relics, 415, 429 _et seq._;
- of saints, 431-432
-
- Venetian, a, cited on attitude of ecclesiastics to learning, 37;
- on religious condition of the English, 324;
- on beauty of English churches, 332
-
- Venice, Aldine press at, 160
-
- Venn, J., historian of Gonville College, quoted, 43-45
-
- Vicarages, appropriations of cancelled, 55
-
- Vives, Ludovico, scholar, 36, _note_, 37, 41, _note_
-
- Von Hutten, Ulrich, tract on Constantine’s donation to the Pope, 96;
- attacks on Erasmus, 186 _et seq._
-
-
- Warham, Archbishop, 36, and _note_, 69, 112, 160, 161, 162, 168, 215,
- 258
-
- Waylande, John, printer, 232
-
- Welsh, vernacular devotional books for, 311, _note_
-
- Wesselius, 214
-
- Westacre, Augustinian priory of, 43
-
- Westminster, the abbot of, 58-59;
- pardon purchased for, 124;
- doles at, 132
-
- Wey, William, itineraries of, 416
-
- Whitford, Richard, 83, 232-233, 283, 305, 312
-
- Wills, ecclesiastical administration of, 65;
- pre-Reformation, 387 _et seq._;
- bequests for pilgrimages, 416
-
- Winchcombe, abbot of, 67
-
- Winchester, wall paintings of Lady Chapel at, 11;
- fair at, 379
-
- Wolffgang, printer, 309
-
- Wolsey, Cardinal, attitude to revival of learning, 36;
- hears the Savage sanctuary case, 58;
- upholds rights of Crown, 68;
- opposes temporal punishments of clergy, _ibid._;
- present at burning of books, 256, _note_
-
- Worcester, Tiptoft, Earl of, 23, and _note_
-
- Worcester, William, antiquary, 26, 27
-
- Work, definite, lack of among clergy, 137, _note_
-
- _Worke entytled of the olde God and the new_, 102, and _note_
-
- Wycliffe, share in Reformation, 209 _et seq._;
- books prohibited, 214;
- origin of Wycliffite Scriptures, 237, 247
-
- Wyer, Robert, printer, 285
-
-
- Yorkshire, chantries in, 411
-
-
- Zwingle, books of prohibited, 213-214
-
-Printed by BALLANTYNE, HANSON & CO. Edinburgh & London
-
-
-
-
- _A Popular Edition._
-
- In One Volume, Demy 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price 10s. 6d. Net,
- pp. 528.
-
- A NEW REVISED AND CORRECTED EDITION OF
-
- FRANCIS AIDAN GASQUET’S
-
- Henry the Eighth and the English Monasteries.
-
- (Of which Six Editions at 24s. have already been sold.)
-
- Contents.
-
- CHAP.
-
- I. The Dawn of Difficulties.
- II. Cardinal Wolsey and the Monasteries.
- III. The Holy Maid of Kent.
- IV. The Friars Observant and the Carthusians.
- V. The Visitation of Monasteries in 1535-36.
- VI. The Parliament of 1536 and the suppression of the Lesser
- Monasteries.
- VII. The “Comperta Monastica” and other charges against the Monks.
- VIII. Thomas Cromwell, the King’s Vicar-General.
- IX. The chief accusers of the Monks--Layton, Legh, Ap Rice, and
- London.
- X. The Dissolution of the Lesser Monasteries.
- XI. The Rising in Lincolnshire.
- XII. The Pilgrimage of Grace.
- XIII. The Second Northern Rising.
- XIV. Dissolution by Attainder.
- XV. The Suppression of Convents.
- XVI. Fall of the Friars.
- XVII. Progress of the General Suppression.
- XVIII. The Three Benedictine Abbots.
- XIX. The Monastic Spoils.
- XX. The Spending of the Spoils.
- XXI. The Ejected Monks and their Pensions.
- XXII. Some Results of the Suppression.
-
- APPENDIX: Accounts of the Augmentation Office, &c. GENERAL
- INDEX.
-
- _=Some Press Notices.=_
-
- =Dublin Review.=--“The recognised authority on the subject upon
- which it treats.”
-
- =Tablet.=--“Produced in excellent style, we welcome and
- recommend this new edition of an old work by such a pioneer
- of historical truth as Dr. Gasquet with renewed confidence,
- for the next best thing to a new work from such a hand is a
- carefully revised and cheaper edition of an old one.”
-
- =Church Times.=--“Dr. Gasquet’s work has won for itself so
- secure a position that it is superfluous to point out its
- merits afresh, but the author in the preface to the new edition
- calls attention to certain alterations necessitated by the
- publication by Dr. James Gairdner of the Calendar of Papers of
- the Reign of Henry VIII. These documents have now been arranged
- in volumes, consequently a very considerable re-arrangement of
- references has been rendered necessary, in order to facilitate
- the consultation of the original documents. This popular
- edition will be greatly appreciated by the students of this
- period of England’s ecclesiastical history.”
-
- =Catholic Book Notes.=--“A standard authority, if not
- a classic … we congratulate author and publisher on its
- production in one handsome volume. We anticipate a large sale
- … and would especially recommend it as a suitable volume for
- prizes in the higher classes of our schools.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- _New Work on English Monastic History._
-
- In Two Volumes, Demy 8vo, Cloth, price 21s. Net.
-
- The English Black Monks of St. Benedict
-
- A Sketch of their history from the coming of St. Augustine to
- the Present Day.
-
- BY THE REV. ETHELRED L. TAUNTON.
-
- Contents.
-
- _VOLUME THE FIRST._
-
- CHAP.
-
- I. The Coming of the Monks.
- II. The Norman Lanfranc.
- III. The Benedictine Constitution.
- IV. The Monk in the World.
- V. The Monk in his Monastery.
- VI. Women under the Rule.
- VII. Chronicles of the Congregation. I.
- VIII. The Downfall.
- IX. John Fecknam, Abbot.
- X. The State of English Catholics, 1559-1601.
- APPENDIX: The Consuetudinary of St. Augustine’s, Canterbury.
-
- _VOLUME THE SECOND._
-
- CHAP.
-
- XI. The Benedictine Mission.
- XII. Douai and Dieuleward.
- XIII. The Renewal of the English Congregation.
- XIV. Dom Leander and his Mission.
- XV. Chronicles of the Congregation. II.
- XVI. St. Gregory’s Monastery.
- XVII. St. Lawrence’s Monastery.
- XVIII. St. Edmund’s Monastery.
- XIX. St. Malo, Lambspring, and Cambrai.
- XX. Other Benedictine Houses. Denizen and Alien.
-
- _=Some Press Notices.=_
-
- =Saturday Review.=--“On the whole, it would be difficult within
- the limits that the author has set for himself to write a more
- interesting book. We recommend, more especially to the general
- reader, the three chapters on the life of a monk in the world
- and in his monastery, and that describing the life of women
- under the rule.”
-
- =Literature.=--“We are struck with the skill with which he has
- mastered the details of a somewhat complicated story, and the
- clear way he has set it down for the benefit of his readers.”
-
- =English Historical Review.=--“Here, for the first time,
- the story of the Benedictine mission of 1603 is fully
- told in English; in this story the central figure is Dom
- Augustine Baker, the true author of the ‘Apostolatus,’ who,
- being professed by the aged Buckley, the last survivor of
- Westminster, claimed the inheritance of the rights and
- privileges of the original congregation, and the power, by
- professing others, to hand on the inheritance to posterity.
- The story of the English Benedictine congregation in its
- settlements abroad, and finally in its settlements at home, is
- very skilfully told, in a pleasant, popular style.”
-
- =Literary World.=--“The story of the English Benedictines is
- one that will be read with sympathy and even admiration by the
- instructed Protestant. Curiously enough the history of the
- Order--not the exact word, but no better offers--has a striking
- affinity with the principles of Congregationalism. The strength
- of the Order was that it consisted of independent homes, and
- was not like most fraternities, a great whole subdivided into
- communities. Upon this Father Taunton again and again insists,
- and his view is indisputable. Of the two volumes before us
- the first will be more generally interesting to Englishmen,
- but it may be well to prepare our readers for its perusal by
- saying that the almost patronising style of the beginning is
- not long continued. We feared at first that the author was
- going to talk down to us in pity for our ignorance, and were
- accordingly prepared to resent his impertinence. A very few
- pages onward and we yielded ourselves willingly to his pleasant
- instruction.… A good book, which we can heartily recommend to
- the open-minded reader.”
-
- =Liverpool Post.=--“Two large and well-printed volumes contain
- what the writer modestly describes as a ‘sketch’ of the
- Benedictine Order in England from the coming of Augustine
- in the sixth century up to the present time. The work is
- something more than a theological history. It is in one aspect
- a history of English society during fifteen hundred years, for
- the Benedictines were ever closely in touch with the people
- among whom they laboured. Mr. Taunton is not an ecclesiastical
- zealot, and he writes with admirable impartiality, as witness
- his outspoken condemnation of the intrigues of Rome and the
- machinations of the Jesuits in England during the reigns of
- Elizabeth and James. Hence his opinions on such a question
- as the social consequences to England of the closing of the
- monasteries is deserving of greater weight.”
-
- =Glasgow Herald.=--“In these two portly volumes Mr. Taunton
- furnishes us with a very full history of the English
- Benedictines, describing it as ‘a tribute of the affection
- and esteem which I, an outsider, have for the English monks.’
- There is doubtless room for such a work, and it must be said
- that Mr. Taunton has brought to his task abundant enthusiasm
- and much painstaking research. … We cordially welcome it for
- its accumulation of valuable historical materials, and for the
- author’s industry we have nothing but praise.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- _Also by F. A. GASQUET, D. D._
-
- In One Volume, Demy 8vo, 408 Pages, Cloth, price 12s. Net.
-
- The Old English Bible, and other Essays.
-
- _Contents._
-
- CHAP.
- I. Notes on Mediæval Monastic Libraries.
- II. The Monastic Scriptorium.
- III. A Forgotten English Preacher.
- IV. The Pre-Reformation English Bible(1).
- V. The Pre-Reformation English Bible(2).
- VI. Religious Instruction in England during the Fourteenth and
- Fifteenth Centuries.
- VII. A Royal Christmas in the Fifteenth Century.
- VIII. The Canterbury Claustral School in the Fifteenth Century.
- IX. The Note-books of William Worcester, a Fifteenth-Century
- Antiquary.
- X. Hampshire Recusants. With a complete Index.
-
- _=Some Press Notices.=_
-
- =Times.=--“Full of the learning and research which Dr. Gasquet
- has made so peculiarly his own.”
-
- =Athenæum.=--“Whatever Dr. Gasquet writes is of interest,
- and thanks are due to him for these essays.… Full of rare
- information, and real contributions to history.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- _By the late MISS MANNING._
-
- In Crown 8vo, with an Introduction by the Rev. W. H. HUTTON,
- B.D., and Twenty-five Illustrations by JOHN JELLICOE and
- HERBERT RAILTON, price 6s. Cloth Elegant, Gilt Top.
-
- The Household of Sir Thos. More.
-
- _=Some Press Notices.=_
-
- =Spectator.=--“A delightful book.… Twenty-five illustrations by
- John Jellicoe and Herbert Railton show off the book to the best
- advantage.”
-
- =Graphic.=--“A picture, not merely of great charm, but of
- infinite value in helping the many to understand a famous
- Englishman and the times in which he lived.”
-
- =Literary World.=--“A charming reprint.… Every feature of the
- pictorial work is in keeping with the spirit of the whole.”
-
- =Scotsman.=--“This clever work of the historical imagination
- has gone through several editions, and is one of the most
- successful artistic creations of its kind.”
-
- =Glasgow Herald.=--“An extremely beautiful reprint of the late
- Miss Manning’s quaint and charming work.”
-
- =Sketch.=--“In the front rank of the gift-books of the season
- is this beautiful and very cleverly illustrated reprint of a
- work which has lasting claims to popularity.”
-
- =Magazine of Art.=--“The grace and beauty of the late Miss
- Manning’s charming work, ‘The Household of Sir Thomas More,’
- has been greatly enhanced by the new edition now put forth by
- Mr. John C. Nimmo.… This remarkable work is not to be read
- without keen delight.”
-
- =Academy.=--“It is illustrated cleverly and prettily, and
- tastefully bound, so as to make an attractive gift-book.”
-
- =Liverpool Post.=--“We welcome the tasteful reprint with its
- artistic illustrations by John Jellicoe and Herbert Railton,
- and its helpful introduction by the Rev. W. H. Hutton.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- _NEW ILLUSTRATED EDITION IN SIXTEEN VOLUMES._
-
- Extra Crown 8vo, Brown Cloth, Gilt Top, price 5s. per Volume
- Net; also in Special Binding, Ruby Cloth, Flat Back, Gilt Top,
- price £4 Net, the Set of 16 Vols. only.
-
- THE REV. S. BARING-GOULD’S
-
- Lives of the Saints.
-
- With a Calendar for Every Day in the Year.
-
- New Edition, Revised, with Introduction and Additional Lives of
- English Martyrs, Cornish and Welsh Saints, and Full Indices to
- the Entire Work. Illustrated by over 400 Engravings.
-
- _Contents of the Volumes._
-
- JANUARY: 170 Biographies, with 45 Illustrations (Vol. 1).
- FEBRUARY: 174 Biographies, with 29 Illustrations (Vol. 2).
- MARCH: 187 Biographies, with 42 Illustrations (Vol. 3).
- APRIL: 141 Biographies, with 24 Illustrations (Vol. 4).
- MAY: 153 Biographies, with 26 Illustrations (Vol. 5).
- JUNE: 200 Biographies, with 39 Illustrations (Vol. 6).
- JULY: 223 Biographies, with 34 Illustrations (Vols. 7 and 8).
- AUGUST: 215 Biographies, with 39 Illustrations (Vol. 9).
- SEPTEMBER: 210 Biographies, with 34 Illustrations (Vol. 10).
- OCTOBER: 220 Biographies, with 28 Illustrations (Vols. 11 and 12).
- NOVEMBER: 185 Biographies, with 47 Illustrations (Vols. 13 and 14).
- DECEMBER: 146 Biographies, with 22 Illustrations (Vol. 15).
-
- APPENDIX VOLUME.
-
- Additional Biographies of English Martyrs, Cornish and Welsh
- Saints, Genealogies of Saintly Families, and two Indices to the
- entire work (Vol. 16).
-
- _=Some Press Notices.=_
-
- =Daily Chronicle.=--“When it is remembered that in these two
- volumes (January and February) the biographies of more than
- four hundred saints are to be found, and that in every case the
- authorities from which they are derived are set forth; that
- in the Introduction the reader is furnished with a succinct
- account of the literature of the subject which is the best
- _résumé_ that we have in English; that errors in the previous
- edition are not left uncorrected--it will be seen how much
- is to be expected from this new issue of Mr. Baring-Gould’s
- wonderful work, and how much will be found in the sixteen
- volumes which will be required to complete it.… No student of
- history--to go no further--can dispense with such a valuable
- book of reference. There is nothing like it in our language.”
-
- =Standard.=--“The earlier volumes of the new edition are before
- us, and even a cursory examination is enough to show that the
- work has been thoroughly revised.… The book is of real value,
- since it is written with scholarly care, imaginative vision,
- and a happy union of charity and courage.”
-
- =Guardian.=--“Whoever reads the more important lives in the
- sixteen volumes of which this new edition is to consist, will
- be introduced to a region of which historians for the most part
- tell him little, and yet one that throws constant light upon
- some of the obscurest points of ordinary histories. For this,
- and for the pleasure and profit thence derived, he will have to
- thank Mr. Baring-Gould.”
-
- =Scotsman.=--“Mr. Baring-Gould, Anglican priest though he be,
- fulfils the promise of his original edition in so far as he
- does not obtrude either prejudice or sectarianism into his
- record of these Saints.”
-
- =British Review and National Observer.=--“The new edition of
- Mr. Baring-Gould’s familiar work may well be called monumental,
- both on account of its size, and the variety and completeness
- of the information to be found in it.”
-
- =Notes and Queries.=--“It is impossible to mention the various
- sources whence have been drawn the illustrations, which will
- render this work, to those to whom the subject appeals, the
- most acceptable, as it is certainly the handsomest, of existing
- editions.”
-
- =Weekly Sun.=--“We unhesitatingly commend it as well to the
- lover of mediævalism as the student who must have at hand
- encyclopædic volumes of reference. No library that aims at
- being comprehensive can afford to be without it. No student of
- ecclesiastical and cathedral antiquities can neglect it if he
- wishes to make a successful study of his particular subject.”
-
- =Christian World.=--“The new edition is tastefully got up, and
- is a worthy setting of a great literary enterprise. The ‘Lives
- of the Saints’ is a human story of unfading interest.”
-
-
-
-
- London: 14 King William Street, Strand
-
- John C. Nimmo’s New & Recent Publications
-
- For the Autumn of 1899
-
-
- _=New Work by the Rev. F. A. GASQUET, D.D., O.S.B.=_
-
- IMPORTANT TO STUDENTS OF THE REFORMATION PERIOD.
-
- In One Volume, Demy 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price 12s. 6d. Net.
-
- The Eve of the Reformation.
-
- Studies in the Religious Life and Thought of the English People
- in the Period preceding the Rejection of the Roman Jurisdiction
- by Henry VIII. By FRANCIS AIDAN GASQUET, D.D., O.S.B., Author
- of “Henry VIII. and the English Monasteries,” “The Old English
- Bible, and other Essays,” &c.
-
- NOTE.--This is not a controversial work, but a study chiefly of
- the literature, &c., of the period in order to see what people
- were doing, saying, and thinking about before the change of
- religion. As touching upon rather new ground, and at the same
- time widening the field of view in the Reformation question, it
- should be of great interest at the present moment.
-
- * * * * *
-
- _=New Illustrated Work on Palestine.=_
-
- In One Volume, Demy 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with 16 Illustrations
- reproduced in Colours in facsimile of the Original Paintings by
- the Author, price 12s. 6d. Net.
-
- Two Years in Palestine and Syria.
-
- BY MARGARET THOMAS,
-
- Author of
-
- “A Scamper through Spain and Tangier,” “A Hero of the
- Workshop,” &c.
-
- With 16 Illustrations reproduced in Colours in facsimile of the
- Original Paintings by the Author.
-
- NOTE.--This book is being looked forward to with great interest
- by travellers, so many people have in one out-of-the-way corner
- or another of Europe, Asia, Africa, and Australia met this
- versatile lady. A Royal Academy Silver Medallist, she has had
- many pictures and pieces of sculpture exhibited in the Royal
- Academy. This (her new book) will be illustrated with sixteen
- reproductions in colours of her oil paintings. The subjects of
- these were painted on the spot, and the reproductions are by a
- new process not as yet employed for book illustration.
-
- * * * * *
-
- _An Artist in Spain._
-
- In One Volume, Super Royal 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with
- Photogravure Portrait, after the Painting by JAN VETH, and 39
- Illustrations, price 12s. 6d. Net.
-
- Spain: The Story of a Journey.
-
- BY JOZEF ISRAËLS.
-
- With a Portrait in Photogravure, and 39 reproductions of
- Sketches by the Author. Translated from the Dutch by ALEXANDER
- TEIXEIRA DE MATTOS.
-
- NOTE.--The author and illustrator of this book (Jozef Israëls)
- has long been acknowledged the most popular painter of the day,
- in this, the best sense, that his work claims the admiration
- not only of the critics, the collectors, and the _dilettanti_,
- but also of those uncultured people who, understanding nothing
- of painting, having no care for artisticity or virtuosity,
- cannot fail to be penetrated by the poetry that fills each of
- the veteran’s canvases.
-
- * * * * *
-
- _A History of Steeple-Chasing._
-
- In Super Royal 8vo, uniform with “The Quorn Hunt and its
- Masters,” VYNER’S “Notitia Venatica,” and RADCLIFFE’S “Noble
- Science of Fox-Hunting.” With 12 Illustrations, chiefly drawn
- by HENRY ALKEN, and all coloured by hand, also 16 Head and Tail
- Pieces, drawn by HENRY ALKEN and others. Cloth, Gilt Top, price
- 21s. net.
-
- A History of Steeple-Chasing.
-
- BY WILLIAM C. A. BLEW, M.A.,
-
- Author of “The Quorn Hunt and its Masters,” Editor of VYNER’S
- “Notitia Venatica,” and RADCLIFFE’S “Noble Science of
- Fox-Hunting.”
-
- With 12 Illustrations, chiefly drawn by HENRY ALKEN, and all
- coloured by hand, also 16 Head and Tail Pieces, drawn by HENRY
- ALKEN and others.
-
- * * * * *
-
- _New Volume, being the Fifth of the Works of the late Miss
- Manning_,
-
- Author of “Mary Powell,” &c. &c.
-
- In Crown 8vo, with Illustrations by JOHN JELLICOE and HERBERT
- RAILTON, price 6s., Cloth Elegant, Gilt Top.
-
- The Colloquies of Edward Osborne.
-
- Citizen and Cloth-Worker of London.
-
- With 10 Illustrations by JOHN JELLICOE.
-
- _Uniform in Size and Price, by the same Author._
-
- The Household of Sir Thos. More.
-
- Cherry and Violet. A Tale of the Great Plague.
-
- The Maiden and Married Life of Mary Powell (AFTERWARDS MISTRESS
- MILTON);
-
- And the Sequel thereto, Deborah’s Diary.
-
- The Old Chelsea Bun-Shop. A Tale of the Last Century.
-
- _=Some Press Notices.=_
-
- =Athenæum.=--“The late Miss Manning’s delicate and fanciful
- little cameos of historical romance possess a flavour of their
- own.… The numerous Illustrations by Mr. Jellicoe and Mr.
- Railton are particularly happy.”
-
- =Public Opinion.=--“It is an example of a pure and beautiful
- style of literature.”
-
- =Spectator.=--“A delightful book.… Twenty-five illustrations by
- John Jellicoe and Herbert Railton show off the book to the best
- advantage.”
-
- =Graphic.=--“A picture, not merely of great charm, but of
- infinite value in helping the many to understand a famous
- Englishman and the times in which he lived.”
-
- =Literary World.=--“A charming reprint.… Every feature of the
- pictorial work is in keeping with the spirit of the whole.”
-
- =Scotsman.=--“This clever work of the historical imagination
- has gone through several editions, and is one of the most
- successful artistic creations of its kind.”
-
- =Glasgow Herald.=--“An extremely beautiful reprint of the late
- Miss Manning’s quaint and charming work.”
-
- =Sketch.=--“In the front rank of the gift-books of the season
- is this beautiful and very cleverly illustrated reprint of a
- work which has lasting claims to popularity.”
-
- =Magazine of Art.=--“The grace and beauty of the late Miss
- Manning’s charming work, ‘The Household of Sir Thomas More,’
- has been greatly enhanced by the new edition now put forth by
- Mr. John C. Nimmo.… This remarkable work is not to be read
- without keen delight.”
-
- =Academy.=--“It is illustrated cleverly and prettily, and
- tastefully bound, so as to make an attractive gift-book.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- _A Cheaper Edition._
-
- In Two Volumes, Extra Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with Portrait
- and 32 Illustrations from Contemporary Sources, price 12s. Net.
-
- The Reminiscences and Recollections of Captain Gronow.
-
- Being Anecdotes of the Camp, Court, Clubs, and Society,
- 1810-1860. With Portrait and 32 Illustrations from Contemporary
- Sources by JOSEPH GREGO.
-
- ⁂ This is a remarkably cheap edition of this favourite and
- popular book.
-
- * * * * *
-
- In One Volume, Demy 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with 6 Photogravure
- Portraits and 30 other Illustrations from Contemporary Sources,
- price 7s. 6d. Net.
-
- Words on Wellington.
-
- The Duke--Waterloo--The Ball.
-
- BY SIR WILLIAM FRASER, BARONET,
-
- M.A., Christ Church, Oxford.
-
- With 6 Photogravure Portraits, and 30 other Illustrations from
- Contemporary Sources.
-
- ⁂ This book was published in 1889, and the whole of the
- edition printed was immediately absorbed. The present new
- edition is illustrated with Photogravure Portraits and other
- illustrations reproduced especially for this edition from rare
- and contemporary engravings selected by Mr. Joseph Grego.
-
- * * * * *
-
- _New Volume of Poems by Violet Fane._
-
- One Volume, Small 4to, printed on Arnold’s Hand-Made Paper,
- and bound in Half-Calf, Gilt Top. Two hundred and sixty copies
- printed for England and America on Arnold’s Hand-Made Paper,
- each numbered, type distributed, price 10s. 6d. net. Uniform
- with previous volumes by the same author, viz., “Poems” and
- “Under Cross and Crescent.”
-
- Betwixt Two Seas. Poems and Ballads.
-
- BY VIOLET FANE.
-
- Written at Constantinople and Therapia.
-
- * * * * *
-
- _New Library Edition of_
-
- _STEELE AND ADDISON’S “SPECTATOR.”_
-
- In Eight Volumes, Extra Crown 8vo, with Original Engraved
- Portraits and Vignettes, Cloth, price 7s. Net per Volume. Sold
- only in Sets, £2, 16s. Net.
-
- The Spectator.
-
- EDITED WITH INTRODUCTION AND NOTES
-
- BY GEORGE A. AITKEN, Author of “The Life of Richard Steele,” &c.
-
- _From the Editor’s Preface._
-
- “The present edition of the ‘Spectator’ has been printed from a
- copy of the original collected and revised edition published in
- 1712-15, with the exception that modern rules of spelling have
- been followed. The principal variations between the text as
- corrected by the authors and the original version in the folio
- numbers have at the same time been indicated in the notes; it
- has not been thought necessary to point out slight differences
- of no importance. In the notes I have aimed at the greatest
- conciseness compatible with the satisfactory explanation of
- the less obvious allusions to literary or social matters. I
- have acknowledged my principal obligations to more recent
- editors, but in some cases notes have been handed down from
- one editor to another, and cannot be traced to their original
- author. Many of the older notes, moreover, were obsolete, or
- needed correction in the light of subsequent knowledge. I have
- endeavoured to preserve what is of value, without burdening
- the pages with the contradictions and inaccuracies which are
- inevitable in a _variorum_ edition.”
-
- _Some Press Notices._
-
- =Pall Mall Gazette.=--“Undoubtedly the best library reprint of
- this famous periodical that has been published.”
-
- =Daily News.=--“If handsome print, paper, and binding, together
- with careful annotation, have attractions in the eyes of lovers
- of standard books, there ought to be a good demand for this new
- edition.”
-
- =Scotsman.=--“An edition in which it is a pleasure to read, and
- one which would adorn any library.”
-
- =Notes and Queries.=--“We congratulate the publisher and the
- editor on the termination of a useful task, and we commend to
- the public this eminently desirable edition of our English
- masterpiece--the most attractive and serviceable yet printed.”
-
- =Birmingham Post.=--“An edition of the ‘Spectator’ which, as
- a book for the library, has no equal, whether we consider the
- stately and appropriate form, the typographical excellence,
- or the erudite and finished editing. Added to these is the
- crowning grace of a full and complete index. It is a luxury to
- read the early eighteenth century classic in such an edition as
- this.”
-
- =Glasgow Herald.=--“All that the most fastidious lover of
- books could desire. Its size--extra crown octavo--is stately,
- without being cumbersome. The buckram cloth binding is neat,
- substantial, and serviceable--exactly what is required for a
- library of which the contents are intended for use as well as
- for show. The notes supplied by Mr. George A. Aitken, as might
- be expected from his exceptional acquaintance with the period,
- enable the reader to understand and appreciate the numerous
- allusions to literary and social matters which occur in most of
- the papers.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- _NEW ILLUSTRATED EDITION IN SIXTEEN VOLUMES._
-
- Extra Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price 5s. per Volume Net.
- Also in Ruby Coloured Cloth. Gilt Top, Flat Back, Elegant, Sold
- in Sets only, price £4 Net.
-
- THE REV. S. BARING-GOULD’S
-
- Lives of the Saints.
-
- With a Calendar for Every Day in the Year.
-
- New Edition, Revised, with Introduction and Additional Lives of
- English Martyrs Cornish and Welsh Saints, and Full Indices to
- the Entire Work. Illustrated by over 400 Engravings.
-
- _Contents of the Volumes._
-
- JANUARY: 170 Biographies, with 45 Illustrations (Vol. 1).
- FEBRUARY: 174 Biographies, with 29 Illustrations (Vol. 2).
- MARCH: 187 Biographies, with 42 Illustrations (Vol. 3).
- APRIL: 141 Biographies, with 24 Illustrations (Vol. 4).
- MAY: 153 Biographies, with 26 Illustrations (Vol. 5).
- JUNE: 200 Biographies, with 39 Illustrations (Vol. 6).
- JULY: 223 Biographies, with 34 Illustrations (Vols. 7 and 8).
- AUGUST: 215 Biographies, with 39 Illustrations (Vol. 9).
- SEPTEMBER: 210 Biographies, with 34 Illustrations (Vol. 10).
- OCTOBER: 220 Biographies, with 28 Illustrations (Vols. 11 and 12).
- NOVEMBER: 185 Biographies, with 47 Illustrations (Vols. 13 and 14).
- DECEMBER: 146 Biographies, with 22 Illustrations (Vol. 15).
-
- APPENDIX VOLUME.
-
- Additional Biographies of English Martyrs, Cornish and Welsh
- Saints, Genealogies of Saintly Families, and two Indices to the
- entire work (Vol. 16).
-
- _Some Press Notices._
-
- =Daily Chronicle.=--“When it is remembered that in these two
- volumes (January and February) the biographies of more than
- four hundred saints are to be found, and that in every case the
- authorities from which they are derived are set forth; that
- in the Introduction the reader is furnished with a succinct
- account of the literature of the subject which is the best
- _résumé_ that we have in English; that errors in the previous
- edition are not left uncorrected--it will be seen how much
- is to be expected from this new issue of Mr. Baring-Gould’s
- wonderful work, and how much will be found in the sixteen
- volumes which will be required to complete it.… No student of
- history--to go no further--can dispense with such a valuable
- book of reference. There is nothing like it in our language.”
-
- =Standard.=--“The earlier volumes of the new edition are before
- us, and even a cursory examination is enough to show that the
- work has been thoroughly revised.… The book is of real value,
- since it is written with scholarly care, imaginative vision,
- and a happy union of charity and courage.”
-
- =Guardian.=--“Whoever reads the more important lives in the
- sixteen volumes of which this new edition is to consist, will
- be introduced to a region of which historians for the most part
- tell him little, and yet one that throws constant light upon
- some of the obscurest points of ordinary histories. For this,
- and for the pleasure and profit thence derived, he will have to
- thank Mr. Baring-Gould.”
-
- =Scotsman.=--“Mr. Baring-Gould, Anglican priest though he
- be, fulfils the promise of his original edition in so far as
- he does not obtrude either prejudice or sectarianism into his
- record of these Saints.”
-
- =British Review and National Observer.=--“The new edition of
- Mr. Baring-Gould’s familiar work may well be called monumental,
- both on account of its size, and the variety and completeness
- of the information to be found in it.”
-
- =Notes and Queries.=--“It is impossible to mention the various
- sources whence have been drawn the illustrations, which will
- render this work, to those to whom the subject appeals, the
- most acceptable, as it is certainly the handsomest, of existing
- editions.”
-
- =Weekly Sun.=--“We unhesitatingly commend it as well to the
- lover of mediævalism as the student who must have at hand
- encyclopædic volumes of reference. No library that aims at
- being comprehensive can afford to be without it. No student of
- ecclesiastical and cathedral antiquities can neglect it if he
- wishes to make a successful study of his particular subject.”
-
- =Christian World.=--“The new edition is tastefully got up, and
- is a worthy setting of a great literary enterprise. The ‘Lives
- of the Saints’ is a human story of unfading interest.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- _Works by FRANCIS AIDAN GASQUET, D.D._
-
- In One Volume, Demy 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price 10s. 6d. Net,
- pp. 528.
-
- A NEW REVISED AND CORRECTED EDITION OF
-
- FRANCIS AIDAN GASQUET’S
-
- Henry the Eighth, and the English monasteries.
-
- Of which Six Editions at 24s. have already been sold.
-
- _Extracts from Press Notices._
-
- =Athenæum.=--“We may say in brief, if what we have already said
- is not sufficient to show it, that a very important chapter of
- English history is here treated with a fulness, minuteness,
- and lucidity which will not be found in previous accounts, and
- we sincerely congratulate Dr. Gasquet on having made such an
- important contribution to English historical literature.”
-
- =Guardian.=--“A learned, careful, and successful vindication
- of the personal character of the monks.… In Dr. Gasquet’s
- skilful hands the dissolution of the monasteries assumes the
- proportions of a Greek tragedy.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- In One Volume, Demy 8vo, 408 Pages, Cloth, price 12s. Net.
-
- The Old English Bible, and other Essays.
-
- _Contents._
-
- CHAP.
- I. Notes on Mediæval Monastic Libraries.
- II. The Monastic Scriptorium.
- III. A Forgotten English Preacher.
- IV. The Pre-Reformation English Bible(1).
- V. The Pre-Reformation English Bible(2).
- VI. Religious Instruction in England during the Fourteenth and
- Fifteenth Centuries.
- VII. A Royal Christmas in the Fifteenth Century.
- VIII. The Canterbury Claustral School in the Fifteenth Century.
- IX. The Note-books of William Worcester, a Fifteenth-Century
- Antiquary.
- X. Hampshire Recusants. With a complete Index.
-
- _Some Press Notices._
-
- =Times.=--“Full of the learning and research which Dr. Gasquet
- has made so peculiarly his own.”
-
- =Athenæum.=--“Whatever Dr. Gasquet writes is of interest,
- and thanks are due to him for these essays.… Full of rare
- information, and real contributions to history.”
-
- =British Review and National Observer.=--“Dr. Gasquet has
- started a very curious controversy, which will entertain even
- those whom it does not seriously interest, and will familiarise
- them incidentally with many facts of history.… The remaining
- essays are also rich in quaint, curious information.”
-
- =Scotsman.=--“He has thrown much light on obscure passages and
- features of later mediæval history in our country.”
-
- =Notes and Queries.=--“Dr. Gasquet writes clearly and
- forcibly, and when touching on controversial points, as he
- frequently has to do, he manifests a studied moderation, and
- liberality.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- _Cheap Illustrated Edition now Completed in 24 Volumes._
-
- Crown 8vo, tastefully bound in Green Cloth, Gilt, in which
- binding any of the Novels may be bought separately, price 3s.
- 6d. each. Also in Special Cloth Binding, Flat Backs, Gilt Tops,
- supplied in Sets only of 24 Volumes, price £4, 4s.
-
- THE LARGE TYPE BORDER EDITION OF THE WAVERLEY NOVELS.
-
- Edited with Introductory Essays and Notes to each Novel
- (supplementing those of the Author) by ANDREW LANG. With 250
- Original Illustrations from Drawings and Paintings specially
- executed by eminent Artists.
-
- ⁂ This is generally conceded to be the best edition of the
- Waverley Novels, not only as regards editing and illustrations,
- but also in point of type, printing and paper, and is complete
- in 24 volumes instead of 25 as in other editions.
-
- _List of the Volumes._
-
- 1. Waverley.
- 2. Guy Mannering.
- 3. The Antiquary.
- 4. Rob Roy.
- 5. Old Mortality.
- 6. The Heart of Midlothian.
- 7. A Legend of Montrose, and The Black Dwarf.
- 8. The Bride of Lammermoor.
- 9. Ivanhoe.
- 10. The Monastery.
- 11. The Abbot.
- 12. Kenilworth.
- 13. The Pirate.
- 14. The Fortunes of Nigel.
- 15. Peveril of the Peak.
- 16. Quentin Durward.
- 17. St. Ronan’s Well.
- 18. Redgauntlet.
- 19. The Betrothed, and The Talisman.
- 20. Woodstock.
- 21. The Fair Maid of Perth.
- 22. Anne of Geierstein.
- 23. Count Robert of Paris, and The Surgeon’s Daughter.
- 24. Castle Dangerous, Chronicles of the Canongate, &c.
-
- _Some of the Artists contributing to the “Border Edition,”_
-
- Sir J. E. Millais, Bart., P.R.A.
- Lockhart Bogle.
- Gordon Browne.
- D. Y. Cameron.
- Frank Dadd, R.I.
- R. de Los Rios.
- Herbert Dicksee.
- M. L. Gow, R.I.
- W. B. Hole, R.S.A.
- John Pettie, R.A.
- Sir James D. Linton, P.R.I.
- Ad. Lalauze.
- J. E. Lauder, R.S.A.
- W. Hatherell, R.I.
- Sam Bough, R.S.A.
- W. E. Lockhart, R.S.A.
- R. W. Macbeth, A.R.A.
- H. Macbeth-Raeburn.
- J. Macwhirter, A.R.A., R.S.A.
- W. Q. Orchardson, R.A.
- James Orrock, R.I.
- Walter Paget.
- Sir George Reid, P.R.S.A.
- Frank Short.
- W. Strang.
- Sir Henry Raeburn, R.A., P.R.S.A.
- Arthur Hopkins, A.R.W.S.
- R. Herdman, R.S.A.
- D. Herdman.
- Hugh Cameron, R.S.A.
-
- _Some Press Notices of the Large Type Border Edition of the
- Waverley Novels._
-
- =The Spectator.=--“We trust that this fine edition of our
- greatest and most poetical of novelists will attain, if it has
- not already done so, the high popularity it deserves. To all
- Scott’s lovers it is a pleasure to know that, despite the daily
- and weekly inrush of ephemeral fiction, the sale of his works
- is said by the booksellers to rank next below Tennyson’s in
- poetry, and above that of everybody else in prose.”
-
- =The Times.=--“It would be difficult to find in these days
- a more competent and sympathetic editor of Scott than his
- countryman, the brilliant and versatile man of letters who
- has undertaken the task; and if any proof were wanted either
- of his qualifications or of his skill and discretion in
- displaying them, Mr. Lang has furnished it abundantly in his
- charming Introduction to ‘Waverley.’ The editor’s own notes are
- judiciously sparing, but conspicuously to the point, and they
- are very discreetly separated from those of the author, Mr.
- Lang’s laudable purpose being to illustrate and explain Scott,
- not to make the notes a pretext for displaying his own critical
- faculty and literary erudition. The illustrations by various
- competent hands are beautiful in themselves and beautifully
- executed, and, altogether, the ‘Border Edition’ of the Waverley
- Novels bids fair to become the classical edition of the great
- Scottish classic.”
-
- =The Athenæum.=-“The handsome ‘Border Edition’ has been brought
- by Mr. Nimmo to a successful conclusion. Mr. Nimmo deserves to
- be complimented on the manner in which the Edition has been
- printed and illustrated, and Mr. Lang on the way in which he
- has performed his portion of the work. His Introductions have
- been tasteful and readable; he has not overdone his part; and,
- while he has supplied much useful information, he has by no
- means overburdened the volumes with notes.”
-
- =Notes and Queries.=--“Mr. Nimmo’s spirited and ambitious
- enterprise has been conducted to a safe termination, and the
- most ideal edition of the Waverley Novels in existence is now
- completed.”
-
- =Saturday Review.=--“Of all the many collections of the
- Waverley Novels, Mr. Nimmo’s ‘Border Edition’ is incomparably
- the most handsome and the most desirable.… Type, paper,
- illustrations are altogether admirable.”
-
- =Daily Chronicle.=--“There is absolutely no fault to be found
- with it, as to paper, type, or arrangement.”
-
- =Magazine of Art.=--“Size, type, paper, and printing, to say
- nothing of the excessively liberal and charming introduction
- or of the illustrations, make this perhaps the most desirable
- edition of Scott ever issued on this side of the border.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- Two-Volume edition of The Border Waverley.
-
- In 48 Volumes, Large Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with the 250
- Etchings printed on Japanese Paper, price 6s. per Volume.
-
- Purchasers of this beautiful edition are recommended to
- complete their sets at once, as many of the Volumes are out of
- print, and those still remaining will soon be.
-
- * * * * *
-
- _Two Important Ornithological Works by Henry Seebohm._
-
- THE STANDARD WORK ON BRITISH BIRDS.
-
- In Four Volumes, Royal 8vo, Cloth, with numerous Wood
- Engravings and Sixty-eight Coloured Plates, price £6, 6s., now
- £5, 5s. Net.
-
- A History or British Birds.
-
- To which is added the Author’s Notes on their Classification
- and Geographical Distribution; also Sixty-eight Coloured Plates
- of their Eggs. By HENRY SEEBOHM, Author of “Siberia in Europe,”
- “Siberia in Asia,” &c. &c.
-
- =Saturday Review.=--“The illustrations are as nearly perfect as
- the most careful colour-printing can produce, rivalling--and it
- is no slight praise--the admirable egg-pictures of Hewitson,
- some of which might almost have been executed by hand; and the
- book is written in an easy, pleasant style, redolent of the
- field rather than of the study.”
-
- =Zoologist.=--“The text contains not only a description of
- each egg and its varieties, but also a very full account of
- the life-history of each bird.… If we may conceive the works
- of Yarrell and Hewitson rolled into one, with corrections,
- emendations, and important additions, and with woodcuts as well
- as coloured plates, such a work is Mr. Seebohm’s.”
-
- =Nature.=--“We unhesitatingly express our opinion that since
- the time of Macgillivray no such original book as Mr. Seebohm’s
- has been published on British ornithology; we think that the
- figures of the eggs are by far the best that have yet been
- given.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- In One Volume, 4to, Cloth, with numerous Wood Engravings and
- Twenty-one Plates of Birds, Coloured by Hand, price £5, 5s.,
- now £2, 12s. 6d. Net.
-
- _ONLY FIVE HUNDRED COPIES PRINTED._
-
- The Geographical Distribution or the Charadriidæ;
-
- Or, The Plovers, Sandpipers, Snipes, and their Allies.
-
- By HENRY SEEBOHM, Author of “Siberia in Europe,” “Siberia in
- Asia,” “A History of British Birds, with Coloured Illustrations
- of their Eggs,” &c.
-
- =Nature.=--“This is a handsome volume of more than 500 pages,
- and is illustrated by twenty-one coloured plates, drawn in
- Mr. Keulemans’s best style. The book is profusely illustrated
- by woodcuts, showing the specific characters of the different
- species, and these will be invaluable to the student of these
- difficult birds. In fact, no work has ever been so remarkably
- treated in this respect, and it will be the book of reference
- for the _Charadriidæ_ for many years to come.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- One Volume, Super-royal 8vo, Cloth, with Two Photogravure
- Plates, One Plate in Colour, and Fifty-nine other
- Illustrations, price 7s. 6d. Net.
-
- Fern Growing: Fifty Years’ Experience in Crossing and
- Cultivation.
-
- With a List of the most important Varieties and a History of
- the Discovery of Multiple Parentage. By E. J. LOWE, F.R.S.,
- F.L.S.
-
- =Athenæum.=--“In some respects the most important treatise on
- British ferns that has hitherto appeared.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- Third Edition, with Seventy-four Coloured Plates, Super-royal
- 8vo, Cloth, price £1, 1s.; now 10s. 6d. Net.
-
- A Natural History or British Grasses.
-
- By E. J. LOWE, F.R.S., F.L.S., &c.
-
- NOTE.--This is a work not only valuable to the botanical
- student for its pictorial accuracy, but of use also to the
- landed proprietor and the farmer, pointing out to them those
- grasses which are useful and lucrative in husbandry, and
- teaching them the varied soils and positions upon which they
- thrive, and explaining their qualities and the several uses
- to which they are applied in many branches of manufacture and
- industry.
-
- * * * * *
-
- _Rev. F. O. Morris’s Popular Works on Natural History._
-
- ISSUE OF NEW AND REVISED EDITIONS.
-
- Fourth Edition, Six Volumes, Super-royal 8vo, Cloth, with 394
- Plates Coloured by Hand, price £4, 10s. Net.
-
- A History of British Birds.
-
- By the Rev. F. O. MORRIS, B.A.
-
- =Times.=--“The protecting landowner, the village naturalist,
- the cockney ‘oologist,’ and the schoolboy all alike owe a debt
- to the Rev. F. O. Morris’s admirable work, in six volumes, on
- British birds, with its beautiful hand-painted plates.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- Fourth Edition, Three Volumes, Super-royal 8vo, Cloth, with 248
- Coloured Plates, price £2, 5s. Net.
-
- A Natural History of the Nests and Eggs of British Birds.
-
- By the Rev. F. O. MORRIS, B.A. Entirely Revised and brought
- up to Date by W. B. TEGETMEIER, F.Z.S., Member of the British
- Ornithologists’ Union, with 248 Plates chiefly Coloured by Hand.
-
- =Times.=--“These latter (illustrations) are excellent, and
- indeed are the strength of this very handsome book, which, in
- its new and more accurate form, ought to find a place in many a
- library.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- Eighth Edition, Super-royal 8vo, Cloth, with Seventy-nine
- Plates Coloured by Hand, price 15s. Net.
-
- A History of British Butterflies.
-
- By the Rev. F. O. MORRIS, B.A.
-
- * * * * *
-
- Fourth Edition, Four Volumes, Royal 8vo, with 132 Plates (1933
- Figures), all Coloured by Hand, price £3, 3s. Net.
-
- A Natural History of British Moths.
-
- By the Rev. F. O. MORRIS, B.A. With 132 Plates Coloured by Hand
- (1933 Figures), and an Introduction by W. EGMONT KIRBY, M.D.
-
- * * * * *
-
- In Two Volumes, Super-royal 8vo, Cloth, £1, 10s. Net.
-
- British Game Birds and Wild Fowl.
-
- By BEVERLEY R. MORRIS, M.D. Entirely Revised and brought up to
- Date by W. B. TEGETMEIER, F.Z.S. With Sixty Large Plates all
- Coloured by Hand.
-
- =Daily News.=--“Has held a unique position among works of its
- class. The sixty hand-coloured plates are splendidly executed.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- One Volume, Large Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price 5s.
-
- Francis Orpen Morris.
-
- A memoir of the above-mentioned Author.
-
- By his Son, the Rev. M. C. F. MORRIS, B.C.L., M.A., Rector of
- Nunburnholme, Yorkshire. With Portrait and Two Illustrations.
-
- =Land and Water.=--“This very interesting memoir of the
- naturalist, whose works are perhaps better known among the
- ‘rising generation’ than those of any other authority, … gives
- a remarkably clear and distinct picture of the late Mr. F. O.
- Morris.”
-
- =Yorkshire Post.=--“A book so conscientiously written as to
- rank well among biographies.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- In Two Volumes, Large 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price £1, 10s.
- Net. With Thirty-seven Illustrations, including Three hitherto
- unpublished Bird Drawings and Ten Portraits of Audubon.
-
- Audubon, and His Journals.
-
- By MARIA R. AUDUBON. With Notes by ELLIOTT COUES.
-
- CONTENTS.--Audubon: A Biography. The European Journals,
- 1826-29. The Labrador Journal, 1833. The Missouri River
- Journal, 1843. The Episodes. With a full Index.
-
- NOTE.--To English people the name of Audubon is a familiar and
- respected one, and there is little reason to doubt that the
- present work, forming as it does so handsome a monument of his
- life’s work, should be acceptable both to the lover of good
- books and to the naturalist. The former has the attraction
- of Audubon’s picturesque and engaging English style, added
- to reminiscences and narratives of a diverse and fascinating
- character, and a highly interesting biography of Audubon from
- the pen of his granddaughter. The naturalist, on the other
- hand, has here for the first time the complete and carefully
- edited text of Audubon’s valuable journals, supplemented by
- appropriate and interesting notes by so eminent a zoologist as
- Dr. Elliott Coues. The entire publication is virtually new,
- since even the European journals are here much amplified, while
- the Missouri and Labrador journals are practically unpublished,
- and the “Episodes” have never before appeared collectively
- except in a French translation. The work is one of the widest
- interest, and must at once take its place as the authoritative
- biography of Audubon, as well as the first adequate
- presentation of his journals, which in their now complete form
- give “the man instead of the death mask.”
-
- =Times.=--“Audubon’s unpublished manuscripts are the record
- of a long, a varied, and an adventurous life, passed in
- unremitting activity and indefatigable industry. We must say
- at once that for the most part they are fascinating. They are
- sensational, instructive, and frankly autobiographical, and
- they show a many-sided man in his various aspects, with the
- absolute unreserve of innocent egoism.”
-
- =Saturday Review.=--“There is much that will interest readers
- of vastly different tastes. Thus the European journals in the
- first volume have an interest that is chiefly personal, and we
- get interesting scraps of conversation with Sir Walter Scott,
- Jeffrey, Wilson, Lord Stanley, Cuvier, St. Hilaire, Selby,
- Constant, Gerard, Jardine, and Bewick, as well as many other
- notables in the science, art, and literature of Edinburgh,
- London, and Paris in the late twenties.”
-
- =Spectator.=--“The two volumes present the life of the great
- French-American naturalist in a most attractive form. The
- journal of his voyage up the Missouri is now first given to the
- world, and the freshness of his life in the woods and of his
- own charming personality is not marred by any unwise editing
- or comment. The illustrations are excellent, worthy of a work
- dealing with the life of the man who used the instruction
- received from the revolutionary painter David in his youth to
- make the greatest advance in the illustration of nature ever
- achieved by one man.”
-
- =Scotsman.=--“A worthy and enduring memorial has been raised
- to the great American ornithologist in the two volumes prepared
- by his granddaughter. Miss Audubon’s work has been admirably
- done; and the worth of the book is much enhanced by the
- zoological and other notes which Dr. Coues has appended.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- _New Work on English Monastic History._
-
- In Two Volumes, Demy 8vo, Cloth, price 21s. Net.
-
- The English Black Monks of St. Benedict
-
- A Sketch of their History from the coming of St. Augustine to
- the Present Day.
-
- By the Rev. ETHELRED L. TAUNTON.
-
- _Some Press Notices._
-
- =Saturday Review.=--“On the whole, it would be difficult within
- the limits that the author has set for himself to write a more
- interesting book. We recommend, more especially to the general
- reader, the three chapters on the life of a monk in the world
- and in his monastery, and that describing the life of women
- under the rule.”
-
- =Literature.=--“We are struck with the skill with which he has
- mastered the details of a somewhat complicated story, and the
- clear way he has set it down for the benefit of his readers.”
-
- =Record.=--“We must add a word to express our sense of the
- interest and value of the appendix to Volume I., which is
- a translation of the Consuetudinary of the monks of St.
- Augustine’s, Canterbury. It is a real help to understanding the
- ways and works, the helps and the temptations, of the monks.”
-
- =Bookman.=--“Much idle legend has been dissipated by Mr.
- Taunton’s researches, many points left dark are now cleared up,
- and in the perplexed quarrellings which ruined the prospects of
- Catholicism at the close of the reign of Elizabeth, as under
- James I. and Charles I., the historian holds a balance which
- does not waver.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- Two Volumes, Extra Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with 120
- Coloured Plates, price 15s. Net.
-
- The Flora of the Alps.
-
- Being a Description of all the Species of Flowering Plants
- indigenous to Switzerland, and of the Alpine Species of the
- adjacent mountain districts of France, Italy, and Austria,
- including the Pyrenees. By ALFRED W. BENNETT, M.A., B.Sc.,
- F.L.S., Lecturer on Botany at St. Thomas’s Hospital.
-
- =Times.=--“Meets a want which has long been felt by English
- travellers of a complete illustrated guide to all the flowers
- which are indigenous to Switzerland.… The illustrations are
- numerous and accurate.”
-
- =Standard.=--“Mr. Bennett gives an adequate description, and
- one which is both clear and exact, of all the species of
- flowering plants common to Switzerland.”
-
- =Spectator.=--“These two volumes will form comprehensive and
- delightful companions to every traveller.”
-
- =Daily News.=--“The letterpress is excellent, as, indeed, we
- should have expected from so high an authority; the plates are
- likely to be of great service to the traveller, and with their
- aid he will be able to identify most of the flowers he may find
- among the mountains.”
-
- =Land and Water.=--“These very beautifully illustrated volumes
- will be welcomed by the numberless people whose summer holiday
- is spent in Switzerland or the Alpine districts.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with Portrait and Eighty-one
- Engravings, price 5s.
-
- The Complete Angler of Izaak Walton and Charles Cotton.
-
- Edited by JOHN MAJOR.
-
- =Scotsman.=--“There are all sorts of editions of the fisher’s
- classic; but this will appeal most strongly to the man whose
- affections attach themselves with an equal tenacity to a good
- day’s fishing and a good book.”
-
- =Bookman.=--“In Creswick’s engravings and all the other
- pictures--‘embellishments’ they are called in the language of
- the forties when Major brought out his edition--will lie the
- chief interest and charm. They alone would make Major’s edition
- one of the very best to possess.”
-
- =Glasgow Herald.=--“As good an edition of the angler’s classic
- as any one need wish to have.”
-
- =Liverpool Post.=--“In these days of processed-blocks it is
- indeed refreshing to come upon wood engravings such as the
- tailpieces to the different chapters.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- _By the Author of “Handley Cross,” &c._
-
- Demy 8vo, 520 Pages, Twelve Full-Page Illustrations by
- WILDRAKE, HEATH, JELLICOE, Coloured by Hand, 10s. 6d. Net.
-
- Hillingdon Hall; or, The Cockney Squire.
-
- A Tale of Country Life. By R. S. SURTEES, Author of “Handley
- Cross,” “Jorrocks’s Jaunts and Jollities,” &c.
-
- =Saturday Review.=--“Mr. Jorrocks is one of those evergreens
- whom age cannot wither nor modern culture stale. ‘Handley
- Cross’ certainly used to be, and probably is still, the delight
- of every well-constituted schoolboy; while the somewhat soberer
- ‘Hillingdon Hall’ should have considerable interest for country
- folk at the present day, both as a picture of life in the early
- days of Queen Victoria, and as containing several eloquent
- dissertations by the hero and others on the effect of the
- abolition of the Corn-laws upon the agricultural interest.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- ILLUSTRATED BY WILLIAM STRANG, R.P.E.
-
- One Volume, Small 4to, Cloth, Gilt Edges, price 10s. 6d. Net.
-
- The Pilgrim’s Progress.
-
- With Fourteen Plates, Designed and Etched by WILLIAM STRANG,
- R.P.E. (Illustrator of Milton’s “Paradise Lost”).
-
- =Times.=--“A sumptuous edition, illustrated by Mr. Strang with
- great artistic power.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- _New Work on the Yiddish Dialect._
-
- One Volume, Extra Crown 8vo, Cloth. Gilt Top, price 9s. Net.
-
- The History of Yiddish Literature in the Nineteenth Century.
-
- BY LEO WIENER
-
- Instructor in the Slavic Languages at Harvard University.
-
- * * * * *
-
- _Works by the late John Addington Symonds._
-
- Third Edition, in Two Volumes, Extra Crown 8vo, with Fifty
- Illustrations, bound in Cloth, Gilt Top, price 12s. Net.
-
- The Life of Michelangelo Buonarotti.
-
- Based on Studies in the Archives of the Buonarotti Family at
- Florence. With Portrait and Fifty Reproductions of the Works of
- the Master.
-
- =Times.=--“It is not, perhaps, too much to say, that this
- biography supersedes, for many purposes, any work in the
- English language.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- Fifth Edition, One Volume, Large Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top,
- with Mezzotint Portrait and Sixteen Illustrations of Cellini’s
- works, price 7s. 6d.
-
- The Life of Benvenuto Cellini.
-
- Translated by JOHN ADDINGTON SYMONDS.
-
- =Athenæum.=--“Among the best translations in the English
- language.”
-
- =Saturday Review.=--“None can surpass the Florentine goldsmith
- and sculptor in the dramatic vigour of his narrative, and in
- the unblushing faithfulness of his confessions.… Among the best
- translations that have ever been made into English.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- Second Edition, One Volume, Demy 8vo, Illustrated, price 5s.
- Net.
-
- Walt Whitman. A Study.
-
- By JOHN ADDINGTON SYMONDS. With Portrait and Four Illustrations.
-
- =National Observer.=--“There is no better interpreter than Mr.
- Symonds is, no better guide to learning than this book.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- New Copyright Edition published by arrangement with MACMILLAN
- & CO., LTD. Fourteen Volumes, Demy 8vo, Illustrated with 112
- Etchings and Photogravure Plates printed on Japan paper, the
- text on a clear, soft, deckle-edge laid paper. Cloth elegant,
- price £6, 6s. Net per Set.
-
- French Memoirs by Lady Jackson.
-
- THE WORKS OF CATHERINE CHARLOTTE, LADY JACKSON, “Old Paris: Its
- Court and Literary Salons,” 2 vols. “The Old Regime: Court,
- Salons, and Theatres,” 2 vols. “The Court of France in the
- Sixteenth Century, 1514-1559,” 2 vols. “The Last of the Valois,
- and Accession of Henry of Navarre, 1559-1589,” 2 vols. “The
- First of the Bourbons, 1589-1595,” 2 vols. “The French Court
- and Society: Reign of Louis XVI. and First Empire,” 2 vols.
- “The Court of the Tuileries, from the Restoration to the Flight
- of Louis Philippe,” 2 vols.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Eve of the Reformation, by
-Francis Aidan Gasquet
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE EVE OF THE REFORMATION ***
-
-***** This file should be named 50328-0.txt or 50328-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/0/3/2/50328/
-
-Produced by Clarity and the Online Distributed Proofreading
-Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from
-images generously made available by The Internet
-Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/50328-0.zip b/old/50328-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 9ff1b6d..0000000
--- a/old/50328-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50328-h.zip b/old/50328-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 97603a7..0000000
--- a/old/50328-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50328-h/50328-h.htm b/old/50328-h/50328-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 877a7bd..0000000
--- a/old/50328-h/50328-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,20669 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Eve of the Reformation, by Francis Aidan Gasquet.
- </title>
-
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-
-<style type="text/css">
-
-a {
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-h1,h2 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {
- width: 45%;
- margin-left: 27.5%;
- margin-right: 27.5%;
-}
-
-hr.chap {
- width: 65%;
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
-}
-
-hr.r15 {
- width: 15%;
- margin-left: 42.5%;
- margin-right: 42.5%;
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
-}
-
-li.ifrst {
- margin-top: 2em;
- padding-left: 2em;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-li.indx {
- margin-top: .5em;
- padding-left: 2em;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-li.isub1 {
- padding-left: 4em;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- text-indent: 1em;
-}
-
-table {
- width: 90%;
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 5%;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-td {
- padding-left: 0.25em;
- padding-right: 0.25em;
- vertical-align: top;
-}
-
-ul {
- list-style-type: none;
-}
-
-.ad-section {
- margin: auto;
- page-break-before: always;
- max-width: 600px;
-}
-
-.advert {
- margin: auto;
- max-width: 550px;
- background-color: #e5e5e5;
-}
-
-.blockquote {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-.center {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.clearboth {
- clear: both;
-}
-
-div.left {
- float: left;
- clear: left;
- max-width: 49%;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- margin-top: 0.5em;
-}
-
-div.right {
- float: right;
- clear: right;
- max-width: 49%;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- margin-top: 0.5em;
-}
-
-.footnotes {
- border: dashed 1px;
-}
-
-.footnote {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- font-size: 0.9em;
-}
-
-.footnote .label {
- position: absolute;
- right: 84%;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: .8em;
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-.hanging {
- padding-left: 2em;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-.intro {
- font-size: 120%;
-}
-
-.larger {
- font-size: 150%;
-}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.poetry-container {
- text-align: center;
- margin: 1em;
-}
-
-.poetry {
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza {
- margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em;
-}
-
-.poetry .verse {
- text-indent: -3em;
- padding-left: 3em;
-}
-
-.poetry .indent2 {
- text-indent: -1em;
-}
-
-.smaller {
- font-size: 80%;
-}
-
-.smcap {
- font-variant: small-caps;
-}
-
-.tdc {
- text-align: center;
- padding-top: 0.5em;
-}
-
-.tdr {
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.title {
- font-size: 150%;
- font-family: "Old English Text MT", Old English, serif;
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.titlepage {
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 3em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.u {
- text-decoration: underline;
-}
-
-@media handheld {
-
-.poetry {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
-}
-
-.blockquote {
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 5%;
-}
-}
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-Project Gutenberg's The Eve of the Reformation, by Francis Aidan Gasquet
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: The Eve of the Reformation
- Studies in the Religious Life and Thought of the English
- people in the Period Preceding the Rejection of the Roman
- jurisdiction by Henry VIII
-
-Author: Francis Aidan Gasquet
-
-Release Date: October 27, 2015 [EBook #50328]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE EVE OF THE REFORMATION ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Clarity and the Online Distributed Proofreading
-Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from
-images generously made available by The Internet
-Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<p class="titlepage larger">THE EVE OF
-THE REFORMATION</p>
-
-<p class="center">FRANCIS AIDAN GASQUET, D.D., O.S.B.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="titlepage">THE EVE OF THE<br />
-REFORMATION</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">STUDIES IN THE
-RELIGIOUS LIFE AND THOUGHT OF THE ENGLISH
-PEOPLE IN THE PERIOD PRECEDING THE
-REJECTION OF THE ROMAN JURISDICTION
-BY HENRY VIII</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage"><span class="smaller">BY</span><br />
-FRANCIS AIDAN GASQUET, D.D., O.S.B.</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">AUTHOR OF<br />
-“HENRY VIII. AND THE ENGLISH MONASTERIES,” ETC.</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage smaller">LONDON<br />
-JOHN C. NIMMO<br />
-14 KING WILLIAM STREET, STRAND<br />
-MDCCCC</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage smaller">Printed by <span class="smcap">Ballantyne, Hanson &amp; Co.</span><br />
-At the Ballantyne Press.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2>CONTENTS</h2>
-
-<table summary="Contents">
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">CHAP.</td><td></td><td class="tdr">PAGE</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">I.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_I">INTRODUCTION</a></td><td class="tdr">1</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">II.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_II">THE REVIVAL OF LETTERS IN ENGLAND</a></td><td class="tdr">14</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">III.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_III">THE TWO JURISDICTIONS</a></td><td class="tdr">51</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IV.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">ENGLAND AND THE POPE</a></td><td class="tdr">78</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">V.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_V">CLERGY AND LAITY</a></td><td class="tdr">114</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VI.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">ERASMUS</a></td><td class="tdr">155</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VII.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">THE LUTHERAN INVASION</a></td><td class="tdr">208</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VIII.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">THE PRINTED ENGLISH BIBLE</a></td><td class="tdr">236</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IX.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">TEACHING AND PREACHING</a></td><td class="tdr">278</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">X.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_X">PARISH LIFE IN CATHOLIC ENGLAND</a></td><td class="tdr">323</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XI.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">PRE-REFORMATION GUILD LIFE</a></td><td class="tdr">351</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XII.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">MEDIÆVAL WILLS, CHANTRIES, AND OBITS</a></td><td class="tdr">387</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIII.</td><td><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">PILGRIMAGES AND RELICS</a></td><td class="tdr">415</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">[1]</a></span></p>
-
-<h1>THE EVE OF
-THE REFORMATION</h1>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_I" id="CHAPTER_I"></a>CHAPTER I<br />
-<span class="smaller">INTRODUCTION</span></h2>
-
-<p>The English Reformation presents a variety of problems
-to the student of history. Amongst them not the least
-difficult or important is the general question, How are
-we to account for the sudden beginning and the ultimate
-success of a movement which, apparently at least, was
-opposed to the religious convictions and feelings of the
-nation at large? To explain away the difficulty, we are
-asked by some writers to believe that the religious revolution,
-although perhaps unrecognised at the moment
-when the storm first burst, had long been inevitable,
-and indeed that its issue had been foreseen by the
-most learned and capable men in England. To some,
-it appears that the Church, on the eve of the Reformation,
-had long lost its hold on the intelligence and
-affection of the English people. Discontented with
-the powers claimed by the ecclesiastical authority, and
-secretly disaffected to much of the mediæval teaching
-of religious truth and to many of the traditional religious
-ordinances, the laity were, it is suggested, only
-too eager to seize upon the first opportunity of emancipating<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2">[2]</a></span>
-themselves from a thraldom which in practice had
-become intolerable. An increase of knowledge, too, it
-is supposed, had inevitably led men to view as false and
-superstitious many of the practices of religion which
-had been acquiesced in and followed without doubt or
-question in earlier and more simple days. Men, with the
-increasing light, had come to see, in the support given
-to these practices by the clergy, a determination to keep
-people at large in ignorance, and to make capital out of
-many of these objectionable features of mediæval worship.</p>
-
-<p>Moreover, such writers assume that in reality there
-was little or no practical religion among the mass of
-the people for some considerable time before the outbreak
-of the religious difficulties in the sixteenth century.
-According to their reading of the facts, the nation, as
-such, had long lost its interest in the religion of its
-forefathers. Receiving no instruction in faith and
-morals worthy of the name, they had been allowed by
-the neglect of the clergy to grow up in ignorance of the
-teachings, and in complete neglect of the duties, of their
-religion. Ecclesiastics generally, secular as well as religious,
-had, it is suggested, forfeited the respect and
-esteem of the laity by their evil and mercenary lives;
-whilst, imagining that the surest way to preserve the
-remnants of their former power was to keep the people
-ignorant, they had opposed the literary revival of the
-fifteenth century by every means at their command.
-In a word, the picture of the pre-Reformation Church
-ordinarily drawn for us is that of a system honeycombed
-with disaffection and unbelief, the natural and
-necessary outcome of an attempt to maintain at all
-hazards an effete ecclesiastical organisation, which clung
-with the tenacity of despair to doctrines and observances<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">[3]</a></span>
-which the world at large had ceased to accept as true,
-or to observe as any part of its reasonable service.</p>
-
-<p>In view of these and similar assertions, it is of
-interest and importance to ascertain, if possible, what
-really was the position of the Church in the eyes of the
-nation at large on the eve of the Reformation, to understand
-the attitude of men’s minds to the system as they
-knew it, and to discover, as far as may be, what in
-regard to religion they were doing and saying and thinking
-about, when the change came upon them. It is
-precisely this information which it has hitherto been
-difficult to get, and the present work is designed to
-supply some evidence on these matters. It does not
-pretend in any sense to be a history of the English
-Reformation, to give any consecutive narrative of the
-religious movements in this country during the sixteenth
-century, or to furnish an adequate account of the causes
-which led up to them. The volume in reality presents
-to the reader merely a series of separate studies which,
-whilst joined together by a certain connecting thread,
-must not be taken as claiming to present any complete
-picture of the period immediately preceding the Reformation,
-still less of that movement itself.</p>
-
-<p>This is intentional. Those who know most about
-this portion of our national history will best understand
-how impossible it is as yet for any one, however well
-informed, to write the history of the Reformation itself
-or to draw for us any detailed and accurate picture of
-the age that went before that great event, and is supposed
-by some to have led up to it. The student of this
-great social and religious movement must at present be
-content to address himself to the necessary work of sifting
-and examining the many new sources of information<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">[4]</a></span>
-which the researches of late years have opened out
-to the inquirer. For example, what a vast field of
-work is not supplied by the <i>Calendar of Papers, Foreign
-and Domestic, of the Reign of Henry VIII.</i> alone! In
-many ways this monumental work may well be considered
-one of the greatest literary achievements of the
-age. It furnishes the student of this portion of our
-national history with a vast catalogue of material, all of
-which must be examined, weighed, and arranged, before
-it is possible to pass a judgment upon the great religious
-revolution of the sixteenth century. And, though obviously
-affording grounds for a reconsideration of many
-of the conclusions previously formed in regard to this
-perplexing period, it must in no sense be regarded as
-even an exhaustive calendar of the available material.
-Rolls, records, and documents of all kinds exist in
-public and private archives, which are not included in
-these State Papers, but which are equally necessary for
-the formation of a sound and reliable opinion on the
-whole story. Besides this vast mass of material, the
-entire literature of the period demands careful examination,
-as it must clearly throw great light on the tone
-and temper of men’s minds, and reveal the origin and
-growth of popular views and opinions.</p>
-
-<p>Writers, such as Burnet, for example, and others,
-have indeed presented their readers with the story of
-the Reformation as a whole, and have not hesitated to
-set out at length, and with assurance, the causes which
-led up to that event. Whether true or false, they have
-made their synthesis, and taking a comprehensive view
-of the entire subject, they have rendered their story
-more plausible by the unity of idea it was designed to
-illustrate and confirm. The real value of such a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">[5]</a></span>
-synthesis, however, must of course entirely depend on
-the data upon which it rests. The opening up of new
-sources of information and the examination of old
-sources in the critical spirit now demanded in all historical
-investigations have fully proved, however, not
-merely this or that fact to be wrong, but that whole
-lines of argument are without justification, and general
-deductions without reasonable basis. In other words,
-the old synthesis has been founded upon false facts and
-false inferences.</p>
-
-<p>Whilst, however, seeing that the old story of the
-Reformation in England is wrong on some of the main
-lines upon which it depended, it is for reasons just stated
-impossible at present to substitute a new synthesis for
-the old. However unsatisfactory it may appear to be
-reduced to the analysis of sources and the examination
-of details, nothing more can safely be attempted at the
-present time. A general view cannot be taken until
-the items that compose it have been proved and tested
-and found correct. Till such time a provisional appreciation
-at best of the general subject is alone possible. The
-present volume then is occupied solely with some details,
-and I have endeavoured mainly by an examination of
-the literature of the period in question to gather some
-evidence of the mental attitude of the English people
-towards the religious system which prevailed before the
-rejection of the Roman jurisdiction by Henry VIII.</p>
-
-<p>In regard to the general question, one or two observations
-may be premised.</p>
-
-<p>At the outset it may be allowed that in many things
-there was need of reform in its truest sense. This
-was recognised by the best and most staunch sons of
-Holy Church; and the Council of Trent itself, when<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">[6]</a></span>
-we read its decrees and measure its language, is sufficient
-proof that by the highest authorities it was
-acknowledged that every effort must be made to purify
-the Church from abuses, superstitions, and scandals
-which, in the course of the long ages of its existence,
-had sprung from its contact with the world and through
-the human weaknesses of its rulers and ministers. In
-reality, however, the movement for reform did not in
-any way begin with Trent, nor was it the mere outcome
-of a terror inspired by the wholesale defection of
-nations under the influence of the Lutheran Reformation.
-The need had long been acknowledged by the
-best and most devoted sons of the Church. There
-were those, whom M. Eugène Müntz has designated
-the “morose cardinals,” who saw whither things were
-tending, and strove to the utmost of their power to
-avert the impending catastrophe. As Janssen has
-pointed out, in the middle of the fifteenth century, for
-instance, Nicholas of Cusa initiated reforms in Germany,
-with the approval&mdash;if not by the positive
-injunctions&mdash;of the Pope. It was, however, a true
-reform, a reform founded on the principle “not of
-destruction, but of purification and renewal.” Holding
-that “it was not for men to change what was holy;
-but for the holy to change man,” he began by reforming
-himself and preaching by example. He restored
-discipline and eagerly welcomed the revival of learning
-and the invention of printing as the most powerful
-auxiliaries of true religion. His projects of general
-ecclesiastical reforms presented to Pius II. are admirable.
-Without wishing to touch the organisation of the
-Church, he desired full and drastic measures of “reformation
-in head and members.” But all this was entirely<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">[7]</a></span>
-different from the spirit and aim of those who attacked the
-Church under the leadership of Luther and his followers.
-Their object was not the reform and purification of abuses,
-but the destruction and overthrow of the existing religious
-system. Before, say, 1517 or even 1521, no one
-at this period ever dreamt of wishing to change the basis
-of the Christian religion, as it was then understood. The
-most earnest and zealous sons of the Church never hesitated
-to attack this or that abuse, and to point out this
-or that spot, desiring to make the edifice of God’s Church,
-as they understood it, more solid, more useful, and more
-like Christ’s ideal. They never dreamt that their work
-could undermine the edifice, much less were their aims
-directed to pulling down the walls and digging up the
-foundations; such a possibility was altogether foreign
-to their conception of the essential constitution of
-Christ’s Church. To suggest that men like Colet, More,
-and Erasmus had any leaning to, or sympathy with,
-“the Reformation” as we know it, is, in view of what
-they have written, absolutely false and misleading.</p>
-
-<p>The fact is, that round the true history of the
-Reformation movement in England, there has grown
-up, as Janssen has shown had been the case in Germany,
-a mass of legend from which it is often difficult
-enough to disentangle the truth. It has been suggested,
-for instance, that the period which preceded the advent
-of the new religious ideas was, to say the least, a period
-of stagnation. That, together with the light of what is
-called the Gospel, came the era of national prosperity,
-and that the golden age of literature and art was the
-outcome of that liberty and freedom of spirit which was
-the distinct product of the Protestant Reformation.
-And yet what are the facts? Was the age immediately<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">[8]</a></span>
-before the religious upheaval of the sixteenth century
-so very black, and was it the magic genius of Luther
-who divined how to call forth the light out of the
-“void and empty darkness”? Luther, himself, shall
-tell us his opinion of the century before the rise of
-Protestantism. “Any one reading the chronicles,” he
-writes, “will find that since the birth of Christ there is
-nothing that can compare with what has happened in
-our world during the last hundred years. Never in any
-country have people seen so much building, so much
-cultivation of the soil. Never has such good drink,
-such abundant and delicate food, been within the reach
-of so many. Dress has become so rich that it cannot
-in this respect be improved. Who has ever heard of
-commerce such as we see it to-day? It circles the
-globe; it embraces the whole world! Painting, engraving&mdash;all
-the arts&mdash;have progressed and are still improving.
-More than all, we have men so capable, and so
-learned, that their wit penetrates everything in such a
-way, that nowadays a youth of twenty knows more
-than twenty doctors did in days gone by.”<a name="FNanchor_1" id="FNanchor_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a></p>
-
-<p>In this passage we have the testimony of the German
-reformer himself that the eve of the Reformation
-was in no sense a period of stagnation. The world was
-fully awake, and the light of learning and art had already
-dawned upon the earth. The progress of commerce and
-the prosperity of peoples owed nothing to the religious
-revolt of the sixteenth century. Nor is this true only
-for Germany. There is evidence to prove that Luther’s
-picture is as correct in that period for England. Learning,
-there can be no question, in the fifteenth century,
-found a congenial soil in this country. In its origin, as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[9]</a></span>
-well as in its progress, the English revival of letters,
-which may be accurately gauged by the renewal of
-Greek studies, found its chief patrons in the fifteenth
-and early sixteenth centuries among the clergy and the
-most loyal lay sons of the Church. The fears of Erasmus
-that the rise of Lutheranism would prove the death-blow
-of solid scholarship were literally fulfilled. In
-England, no less than in Germany, amid the religious
-difficulties and the consequent social disturbances, learning,
-except in so far as it served to aid the exigencies of
-polemics or meet the controversial needs of the hour,
-declined for well-nigh a century; and so far from the
-Reformation affording the congenial soil upon which
-scholarship and letters flourished, it was in reality&mdash;to
-use Erasmus’s own favourite expression about the movement&mdash;a
-“catastrophe,” in which was overwhelmed the
-real progress of the previous century. The state of the
-universities of Oxford and Cambridge, before and after
-the period of religious change, is an eloquent testimony
-as to its effect on learning in general; whilst the differences
-of opinion in religious matters to which the
-Reformation gave rise, at once put a stop to the international
-character of the foreign universities. English
-names forthwith disappeared from the students’ lists at
-the great centres of learning in France and Italy, an
-obvious misfortune, which had a disastrous effect on
-English scholarship; the opening up of the schools of
-the reformed churches of Germany in no wise compensating
-for the international training hitherto received by
-most English scholars of eminence.</p>
-
-<p>In art and architecture, too, in the second half of
-the fifteenth century and the beginning of the sixteenth,
-there was manifested an activity in England which is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[10]</a></span>
-without a parallel. There never was a period in which
-such life and energy was displayed in the building and
-adornment of churches of all kinds as on the very eve
-of the Reformation. Not in one part of the country
-only, nor in regard only to the greater churches, was
-this characteristic activity shown, but throughout the
-length and breadth of England the walls of our great
-cathedrals and minsters, and well-nigh those of every
-little parish church in the land, still bear their testimony
-to what was done out of love for God’s house during
-the period in question by the English people. Moreover,
-by the aid of the existing accounts and inventories
-it can be proved to demonstration that it was a work
-which then, more than at any other period of our
-national existence, appealed to the people at large and
-was carried out by them. No longer, as in earlier
-times, was the building and beautifying of God’s house
-left in this period to some great noble benefactor or
-rich landowner. During the fifteenth century the
-people were themselves concerned with the work,
-initiated it, found the means to carry it out, and superintended
-it in all its details.</p>
-
-<p>The same may be said of art. The work of adorning
-the walls of the churches with paintings and frescoes,
-the work of filling in the tracery of the windows with
-pictured glass, the work of setting up, and carving, and
-painting, and decorating; the making of screens, and
-stalls, and altars, all during this period, and right up to
-the eve of the change, was in every sense popular. It
-was the people who carried out these works, and evidently
-for the sole reason because they loved to beautify
-their churches, which were, in a way now somewhat
-difficult to realise, the centre no less of their lives than of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[11]</a></span>
-their religion. Popular art grows, and only grows luxuriantly,
-upon a religious soil; and under the inspiration
-of a popular enthusiasm the parish churches of England
-became, if we may judge from the evidence of the
-wills, accounts, and inventories which still survive, not
-merely sanctuaries, but veritable picture galleries, teaching
-the poor and unlettered the history and doctrine of
-their religion. Nor were the pictures themselves the
-miserable daubs which some have suggested. The
-stained-glass windows were not only multiplied in the
-churches of England during this period, but by those
-best able to judge, the time between 1480 and 1520
-has been regarded as the golden age of the art; and as
-regards the frescoes and decorations themselves, there
-is evidence of the existence in England of a high proficiency,
-both in design and execution, before the
-Reformation. Two examples may be taken to attest
-the truth of this: the series of paintings against which
-the stalls in Eton College Chapel are now placed, and
-the pictures on the walls of the Lady Chapel at Winchester,
-now unfortunately destroyed by the whitewash
-with which they had been covered on the change of
-religion. Those who had the opportunity of examining
-the former series, when many years ago they were uncovered
-on the temporary removal of the stalls, have
-testified to their intrinsic merit. Indeed, they appeared
-to the best judges of the time as being so excellent in
-drawing and colour that on their authority they were
-long supposed to have been the work of some unknown
-Italian artist of the school of Giotto. By a fortunate
-discovery of Mr. J. Willis Clarke, however, it is now
-known that both these and the Winchester series were
-in reality executed by an Englishman, named Baker.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[12]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The same is true with regard to decoration and
-carving work. In screen-work, the Perpendicular
-period is allowed to have excelled all others, both in
-the lavish amount of the ornament as well as in the
-style of decoration. One who has paid much attention
-to this subject says: “During this period, the
-screen-work was usually enriched by gilding and
-painting, or was ‘depensiled,’ as the phrase runs,
-and many curious works of the limner’s art may still
-be seen in the churches of Norfolk and Suffolk. In
-Sussex, the screens of Brighton and Horsham may
-be cited as painted screens of beauty and merit, both
-having been thus ornamented in a profuse and costly
-manner, and each bore figures of saints in their
-panels.”<a name="FNanchor_2" id="FNanchor_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> The churchwardens’ accounts, too, show
-that the work of thus decorating the English parish
-churches was in full operation up to the very eve of
-the religious changes. In these truthful pictures of
-parochial life, we may see the people and their representatives
-busily engaged in collecting the necessary
-money, and in superintending the work of setting up
-altars and statues and paintings, and in hiring carvers
-and decorators to enrich what their ancestors had
-provided for God’s house. It was the age, too, of
-organ-making and bell-founding, and there is hardly
-a record of any parish church at this time which does
-not show considerable sums of money spent upon these.
-From the middle of the fifteenth century to the period
-described as “the great pillage,” music, too, had made
-great progress in England, and the renown of the
-English school had spread over Europe. Musical
-compositions had multiplied in a wonderful way, and
-before the close of the fifteenth century<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[13]</a></span> “prick song,”
-or part music, is very frequently found in the inventories
-of our English parish churches. In fact, it has
-been recently shown that much of the music of the
-boasted school of ecclesiastical music to which the
-English Reformation had been thought to have given
-birth, is, in reality, music adapted to the new English
-services, from Latin originals, which had been inspired
-by the ancient offices of the Church. Most of the
-“prick song” masses and other musical compositions
-were destroyed in the wholesale destruction which
-accompanied the religious changes, but sufficient remains
-to show that the English pre-Reformation school
-of music was second to none in Europe. The reputation
-of some of its chief masters, like Dunstable, Tallis,
-and Bird, had spread to other countries, and their
-works had been used and studied, even in that land
-of song, Italy.</p>
-
-<p>A dispassionate consideration of the period preceding
-the great religious upheaval of the sixteenth century
-will, it can hardly be doubted, lead the inquirer to
-conclude that it was not in any sense an age of
-stagnation, discontent, and darkness. Letters, art,
-architecture, painting, and music, under the distinct
-patronage of the Church, had made great and steady
-progress before the advent of the new ideas. Moreover,
-those who will examine the old parish records
-cannot fail to see that up to the very eve of the changes,
-the old religion had not lost its hold upon the minds
-and affections of the people at large. And one thing
-is absolutely clear, that it was not the Reformation
-movement which brought to the world in its train the
-blessings of education, and the arts of civilisation.
-What it did for all these is written plainly enough in
-the history of that period of change and destruction.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[14]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_II" id="CHAPTER_II"></a>CHAPTER II<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE REVIVAL OF LETTERS IN ENGLAND</span></h2>
-
-<p>The story of the English literary revival in the fifteenth
-and sixteenth centuries is of no little interest and
-importance. The full history of the movement would
-form the fitting theme of an entire volume; but the
-real facts are so contrary to much that is commonly
-believed about our English renaissance of letters, that
-some brief account is necessary, if we would rightly
-understand the attitude of men’s minds on the eve of
-the Reformation. At the outset, it is useful to recall the
-limits of this English renaissance. Judged by what is
-known of the movement in Italy, the land of its origin,
-the word “renaissance” is usually understood to denote
-not only the adoption of the learning and intellectual
-culture of ancient Greece and Rome by the leaders
-of thought in the Western World during the period
-in question, but an almost servile following of classical
-models, the absorption of the pagan spirit and the
-adoption of pagan modes of expression so fully, as
-certainly to obscure, if it did not frequently positively
-obliterate, Christian sentiment and Christian ideals. In
-this sense, it is pleasing to think, the renaissance was
-unknown in England. So far, however, as the revival
-of learning is concerned, England bore its part in, if
-indeed it may not be said to have been in the forefront
-of, the movement.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[15]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This has, perhaps, hardly been realised as it should
-be. That the sixteenth century witnessed a remarkable
-awakening of minds, a broadening of intellectual interests,
-and a considerable advance in general culture,
-has long been known and acknowledged. There is
-little doubt, however, that the date usually assigned
-both for the dawning of the light and for the time
-of its full development is altogether too late; whilst
-the circumstances which fostered the growth of the
-movement have apparently been commonly misunderstood,
-and the chief agents in initiating it altogether
-ignored. The great period of the reawakening would
-ordinarily be placed without hesitation in post-Reformation
-times, and writers of all shades of opinion have
-joined in attributing the revival of English letters to
-the freedom of minds and hearts purchased by the
-overthrow of the old ecclesiastical system, and their
-emancipation from the narrowing and withering effects
-of mediævalism.</p>
-
-<p>On the assumption that the only possible attitude
-of English churchmen on the eve of the great religious
-changes would be one of uncompromising hostility to
-learning and letters, many have come to regard the one,
-not as inseparably connected with the other, but the
-secular as the outcome of the religious movement. The
-undisguised opposition of the clergy to the “New Learning”
-is spoken of as sufficient proof of the Church’s
-dislike of learning in general, and its determination to
-check the nation’s aspirations to profit by the general
-classical revival. This assumption is based upon a complete
-misapprehension as to what was then the meaning
-of the term “New Learning.” It was in no sense connected
-with the revival of letters, or with what is now<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[16]</a></span>
-understood by learning and culture; but it was in the
-Reformation days a well-recognised expression used to
-denote the novel religious teachings of Luther and his
-followers.<a name="FNanchor_3" id="FNanchor_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> Uncompromising hostility to such novelties,
-no doubt, marked the religious attitude of many, who
-were at the same time the most strenuous advocates of
-the renaissance of letters. This is so obvious in the
-works of the period, that were it not for the common
-misuse of the expression at the present day, and for the
-fact that opposition to the “New Learning” is assumed
-on all hands to represent hostility to letters, rather than
-to novel teachings in religious matters, there would be
-no need to furnish examples of its real use in the period
-in question. As it is, some instances taken from the
-works of that time become almost a necessity, if we
-would understand the true position of many of the chief
-actors at this period of our history.</p>
-
-<p>Roger Edgworth, a preacher, for instance, after
-speaking of those who “so arrogantly glory in their
-learning, had by study in the English Bible, and in
-these seditious English books that have been sent over
-from our English runagates now abiding with Luther
-in Saxony,” praises the simple-hearted faith that was
-accepted unquestioned by all “before this wicked ‘New
-Learning’ arose in Saxony and came over into England
-amongst us.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[17]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_4" id="FNanchor_4"></a><a href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a></p>
-
-<p>From the preface of <i>The Praier and Complaynte of the
-Ploweman</i>, dated February 1531, it is equally clear
-that the expression “New Learning” was then understood
-only of religious teaching. Like the Scribes and
-Pharisees in the time of Our Lord, the author says, the
-bishops and priests are calling out: “What ‘New Learning’
-is it? These fellows teach new learning: these
-are they that trouble all the world with their new
-learning?… Even now after the same manner, our
-holy bishops with all their ragman’s roll are of the same
-sort.… They defame, slander, and persecute the
-word and the preachers and followers of it, with the
-selfsame names, calling it ‘New Learning’ and them
-‘new masters.’”<a name="FNanchor_5" id="FNanchor_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a></p>
-
-<p>The same meaning was popularly attached to the
-words even after the close of the reign of Henry VIII.
-A book published in King Edward’s reign, to instruct
-the people “concerning the king’s majesty’s proceedings
-in the communion,” bears the title, <i>The olde Faith of Great
-Brittayne and the new learning of England</i>. It is, of course,
-true, that the author sets himself to show that the reformed
-doctrines were the old teachings of the Christian
-Church, and that, when St. Gregory sent St. Augustine
-over into England, “the new learning was brought into
-this realm, of which we see much yet remaining in the
-Church at the present day.”<a name="FNanchor_6" id="FNanchor_6"></a><a href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> But this fact rather<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[18]</a></span>
-emphasises than in any way obscures the common
-understanding of the expression “New Learning,” since
-the whole intent of the author is to show that the
-upholders of the old ecclesiastical system were the real
-maintainers of a “New Learning” brought from Rome
-by St. Augustine, and not the Lutherans. The same
-appears equally clearly in a work by Urbanus Regius,
-which was translated and published by William Turner
-in 1537, and called <i>A comparison betwene the old learnynge
-and the newe</i>. As the translator says at the beginning&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“Some ther be that do defye</div>
-<div class="verse">All that is newe and ever do crye</div>
-<div class="verse">The olde is better, away with the new</div>
-<div class="verse">Because it is false, and the olde is true.</div>
-<div class="verse">Let them this booke reade and beholde,</div>
-<div class="verse">For it preferreth the learning most olde.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>As the author of the previous volume quoted, so
-Urbanus Regius compares the exclamation of the Jews
-against our Lord: “What new learning is this?” with
-the objection, “What is this new doctrine?” made by
-the Catholics against the novel religious teaching of
-Luther and his followers. “This,” they say,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[19]</a></span> “is the
-new doctrine lately devised and furnished in the shops
-and workhouses of heretics. Let us abide still in our
-old faith.… Wherefore,” continues the author, “I,
-doing the office of Christian brother, have made a comparison
-between the ‘New Learning’ and the olden,
-whereby, dear brother, you may easily know whether
-we are called worthily or unworthily the preachers of
-the ‘New Learning.’ For so did they call us of late.”
-He then proceeds to compare under various headings
-what he again and again calls “the New Learning” and
-“the Old Learning.” For example, according to the
-former, people are taught that the Sacraments bring
-grace to the soul; according to the latter, faith alone is
-needful. According to the former, Christ is present
-wholly under each kind of bread and wine, the mass is
-a sacrifice for the living and the dead, and “oblation is
-made in the person of the whole church”; according
-to the latter, the Supper is a memorial only of Christ’s
-death, “and not a sacrifice, but a remembrance of the
-sacrifice that was once offered up on the cross,” and that
-“all oblations except that of our Lord are vain and void.”<a name="FNanchor_7" id="FNanchor_7"></a><a href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a></p>
-
-<p>In view of passages such as the above, and in the
-absence of any contemporary evidence of the use of
-the expression to denote the revival of letters, it is
-obvious that any judgment as to a general hostility of
-the clergy to learning based upon their admitted opposition
-to what was then called the “New Learning”
-cannot seriously be maintained. It would seem, moreover,
-that the religious position of many ecclesiastics and
-laymen has been completely misunderstood by the meaning
-now so commonly assigned to the expression. Men
-like Erasmus, Colet, and to a great extent, More himself,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[20]</a></span>
-have been regarded, to say the least, as at heart very
-lukewarm adherents of the Church, precisely because of
-their strong advocacy of the movement known as the
-literary revival, which, identified by modern writers with
-the “New Learning,” was, it is wrongly assumed, condemned
-by orthodox churchmen. The Reformers are
-thus made the champions of learning; Catholics, the upholders
-of ignorance, and the hereditary and bitter foes
-of all intellectual improvement. No one, however, saw
-more clearly than did Erasmus that the rise of Lutheran
-opinions was destined to be the destruction of true
-learning, and that the atmosphere of controversy was
-not the most fitting to assure its growth. To Richard
-Pace he expressed his ardent wish that some kindly
-<i>Deus ex machinâ</i> would put an end to the whole
-Lutheran agitation, for it had most certainly brought
-upon the humanist movement unmerited hatred.<a name="FNanchor_8" id="FNanchor_8"></a><a href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> In
-subsequent letters he rejects the idea that the two,
-the Lutheran and the humanist movements, had anything
-whatever in common; asserting that even Luther
-himself had never claimed to found his revolt against
-the Church on the principles of scholarship and learning.
-To him, the storm of the Reformation appeared&mdash;so
-far as concerned the revival of learning&mdash;as a
-catastrophe. Had the tempest not risen, he had the
-best expectations of a general literary renaissance and
-of witnessing a revival of interest in Biblical and
-patristic studies among churchmen. It was the breath
-of bitter and endless controversy initiated in the
-Lutheran revolt and the consequent misunderstandings
-and enmities which withered his hopes.<a name="FNanchor_9" id="FNanchor_9"></a><a href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a></p>
-
-<p>There remains, however, the broader question as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[21]</a></span>
-to the real position of the ecclesiastical authorities
-generally, in regard to the revival of learning. So
-far as England is concerned, their attitude is hardly
-open to doubt in view of the positive testimony of
-Erasmus, which is further borne out by an examination
-of the material available for forming a judgment.
-This proves beyond all question, not only that the
-Church in England on the eve of the change did not
-refuse the light, but that, both in its origin and later
-development, the movement owed much to the initiative
-and encouragement of English churchmen.</p>
-
-<p>It is not necessary here to enter very fully into
-the subject of the general revival of learning in Europe
-during the course of the fifteenth century. At the very
-beginning of that period what Gibbon calls “a new
-and perpetual flame” was enkindled in Italy. As in
-the thirteenth century, so then it was the study of the
-literature and culture of ancient Greece that re-enkindled
-the lamp of learning in the Western World. Few
-things, indeed, are more remarkable than the influence
-of Greek forms and models on the Western World.
-The very language seems as if destined by Providence
-to do for the Christian nations of Europe what in
-earlier ages it had done for pagan Rome. As Dr.
-Döllinger has pointed out, this is “a fact of immense
-importance, which even in these days it is worth while
-to weigh and place in its proper light,” since “the
-whole of modern civilisation and culture is derived
-from Greek sources. Intellectually we are the offspring
-of the union of the ancient Greek classics with
-Hellenised Judaism.” One thing is clear on the page
-of history: that the era of great intellectual activity
-synchronised with re-awakened interests in the Greek<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[22]</a></span>
-classics and Greek language in such a way that the
-study of Greek may conveniently be taken as representing
-a general revival of letters.</p>
-
-<p>By the close of the fourteenth century, the ever-increasing
-impotence of the Imperial sway on the
-Bosphorus, and the ever-growing influence of the
-Turk, compelled the Greek emperors to look to Western
-Christians for help to arrest the power of the infidels,
-which, like a flood, threatened to overwhelm the Eastern
-empire. Three emperors in succession journeyed into
-the Western world to implore assistance in their dire
-necessity, and though their efforts failed to save Constantinople,
-the historian detects in these pilgrimages of
-Greeks to the Courts of Europe the providential influence
-which brought about the renaissance of letters.
-“The travels of the three emperors,” writes Gibbon,
-“were unavailing for their temporal, or perhaps their
-spiritual salvation, but they were productive of a beneficial
-consequence, the revival of the Greek learning in
-Italy, from whence it was propagated to the last nations
-of the West and North.”</p>
-
-<p>What is true of Italy may well be true of other
-countries and places. The second of these pilgrim
-emperors, Manuel, the son and successor of Palæologus,
-crossed the Alps, and after a stay in Paris, came over
-the sea into England. In December 1400 he landed
-at Dover, and was, with a large retinue of Greeks,
-entertained at the monastery of Christchurch, Canterbury.
-It requires little stretch of imagination to suppose
-that the memory of such a visit would have lingered
-long in the cloister of Canterbury, and it is hardly
-perhaps by chance that it is here that half a century
-later are to be found the first serious indications of a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[23]</a></span>
-revival of Greek studies. Moreover, it is evident that
-other Greek envoys followed in subsequent times, and
-even the great master and prodigy of learning, Manuel
-Chrysoloras himself, found his way to our shores, and
-it is hardly an assumption, in view of the position of
-Canterbury&mdash;on the high-road from Dover to London&mdash;to
-suppose to Christchurch also.<a name="FNanchor_10" id="FNanchor_10"></a><a href="#Footnote_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> It was from his
-arrival in Italy, in 1396, that may be dated the first
-commencement of systematic study of the Greek classics
-in the West. The year 1408 is given for his visit to
-England.<a name="FNanchor_11" id="FNanchor_11"></a><a href="#Footnote_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a></p>
-
-<p>There are indications early in the fifteenth century
-of a stirring of the waters in this country. Guarini, a
-pupil of Chrysoloras, became a teacher of fame at
-Ferrara, where he gathered round him a school of
-disciples which included several Englishmen. Such were
-Tiptoft, Earl of Worcester;<a name="FNanchor_12" id="FNanchor_12"></a><a href="#Footnote_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> Robert Fleming, a learned
-ecclesiastic; John Free, John Gundthorpe, and William
-Gray, Bishop of Ely; whilst another Italian, Aretino,
-attracted by his fame another celebrated Englishman,
-Humphrey, Duke of Gloucester, to his classes. These,
-however, were individual cases, and their studies, and
-even the books they brought back, led to little in the
-way of systematic work in England at the old classical
-models. The fall of Constantinople in 1453 gave the
-required stimulus here, as in Italy. Among the fugitives<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</a></span>
-were many Greek scholars of eminence, such as
-Chalcocondylas, Andronicus, Constantine and John Lascaris,
-who quickly made the schools of Italy famous by
-their teaching. Very soon the fame of the new masters
-spread to other countries, and students from all parts of
-the Western World found their way to their lecture-halls
-in Rome and the other teaching centres established
-in the chief cities of Northern Italy.</p>
-
-<p>First among the scholars who repaired thither from
-England to drink in the learning of ancient Greece and
-bring back to their country the new spirit, we must
-place two Canterbury monks named Selling and Hadley.
-Born somewhere about 1430, William Selling became
-a monk at Christchurch, Canterbury, somewhere about
-1448. There seems some evidence to show that his
-family name was Tyll, and that, as was frequently, if
-not generally, the case, on his entering into religion, he
-adopted the name of Selling from his birthplace, some
-five miles from Faversham in Kent.<a name="FNanchor_13" id="FNanchor_13"></a><a href="#Footnote_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a> It is probable
-that Selling, after having passed through the claustral
-school at Canterbury, on entering the Benedictine
-Order was sent to finish his studies at Canterbury
-College, Oxford. Here he certainly was in 1450,
-for in that year he writes a long and what is described
-as an elegant letter as a student at Canterbury College
-to his Prior, Thomas Goldstone, at Christchurch<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[25]</a></span>
-Canterbury.<a name="FNanchor_14" id="FNanchor_14"></a><a href="#Footnote_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> He was ordained priest, and celebrated
-his first mass at Canterbury in September 1456.<a name="FNanchor_15" id="FNanchor_15"></a><a href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a></p>
-
-<p>In 1464 William Selling obtained leave of his Prior
-and convent to go with a companion, William Hadley,
-to study in the foreign universities for three years,<a name="FNanchor_16" id="FNanchor_16"></a><a href="#Footnote_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a>
-during which time they visited and sat under the most
-celebrated teachers at Padua, Bologna, and Rome.<a name="FNanchor_17" id="FNanchor_17"></a><a href="#Footnote_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a>
-At Bologna, according to Leland, Selling was the pupil
-of the celebrated Politian, “with whom, on account of
-his aptitude in acquiring the classical elegance of ancient
-tongues, he formed a familiar and lasting friendship.”<a name="FNanchor_18" id="FNanchor_18"></a><a href="#Footnote_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a>
-In 1466 and 1467 we find the monks, Selling and his
-companion Hadley, at Bologna, where apparently the
-readers in Greek then were Lionorus and Andronicus,<a name="FNanchor_19" id="FNanchor_19"></a><a href="#Footnote_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a>
-and where, on the 22nd March 1466, Selling took his
-degree in theology, his companion taking his in the
-March of the following year.<a name="FNanchor_20" id="FNanchor_20"></a><a href="#Footnote_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a></p>
-
-<p>Of this period of work, Leland says:&mdash;“His studies
-progressed. He indeed imbued himself with Greek;
-everywhere he industriously and at great expense
-collected many Greek books. Nor was his care less
-in procuring old Latin MSS., which shortly after he
-took with him, as the most estimable treasures, on his
-return to Canterbury.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[26]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_21" id="FNanchor_21"></a><a href="#Footnote_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a></p>
-
-<p>His obituary notice in the Christchurch Necrology
-recites not only his excellence in learning, classical and
-theological, but what he had done to make his monastery
-at Canterbury a real house of studies. He decorated
-the library over the Priests’ Chapel, adding to the books,
-and assigned it “for the use of those specially given to
-study, which he encouraged and cherished with wonderful
-watchfulness and affection.” The eastern cloister
-also he fitted with glass and new desks, “called carrels,”
-for the use of the studious brethren.<a name="FNanchor_22" id="FNanchor_22"></a><a href="#Footnote_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a></p>
-
-<p>After the sojourn of the two Canterbury monks in
-Italy, they returned to their home at Christchurch.
-Selling, however, did not remain there long, for on
-October 3, 1469, we find him setting out again for
-Rome<a name="FNanchor_23" id="FNanchor_23"></a><a href="#Footnote_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a> in company with another monk, Reginald
-Goldstone, also an Oxford student. This visit was
-on business connected with his monastery, and did
-not apparently keep him long away from England,
-for there is evidence that sometime before the election
-of Selling to the Priorship at Canterbury, which was
-in 1472, he was again at his monastery. Characteristically,
-his letter introducing William Worcester, the
-antiquary, to a merchant of Lucca who had a copy
-of Livy’s <i>Decades</i> for sale, manifests his great and continued
-interest in classical literature.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[27]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_24" id="FNanchor_24"></a><a href="#Footnote_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a></p>
-
-<p>At Canterbury, Selling must have established the
-teaching of Greek on systematic lines, and it is certainly
-from this monastic school as a centre, that the study
-spread to other parts of England. William Worcester,
-keenly alive to the classical revival, as his note-books
-show, tells us of “certain Greek terminations as taught
-by Doctor Selling of Christchurch, Canterbury,” and
-likewise sets down the pronunciation of the Greek vowels
-with examples evidently on the same authority.<a name="FNanchor_25" id="FNanchor_25"></a><a href="#Footnote_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a></p>
-
-<p>Selling’s long priorship, extending from 1472 to
-1495, would have enabled him to consolidate the work
-of this literary renaissance which he had so much at
-heart.<a name="FNanchor_26" id="FNanchor_26"></a><a href="#Footnote_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a> The most celebrated of all his pupils was, of
-course, Linacre. Born, according to Caius, at Canterbury,
-he received his first instruction in the monastic
-school there, and his first lessons in the classics and
-Greek from Selling himself. Probably through the personal
-interest taken in this youth of great promise by
-Prior Selling, he was sent to Oxford about 1480.
-Those who have seriously examined the matter believe
-that the first years of his Oxford life were spent by
-Linacre at the Canterbury College, which was connected
-with Christchurch monastery, and which, though
-primarily intended for monks, also afforded a place of
-quiet study to others who were able to obtain<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[28]</a></span>
-admission.<a name="FNanchor_27" id="FNanchor_27"></a><a href="#Footnote_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a> Thus, in later years, Sir Thomas More, no
-doubt through his father’s connection with the monastery
-of Christchurch, Canterbury, of which house he
-was a “confrater,” became a student at the monks’
-college at Oxford. In later years Sir Thomas himself,
-when Chancellor of England, perpetuated the memory
-of his life-long connection with the monks of Canterbury
-by enrolling his name also on the fraternity lists
-of that house.</p>
-
-<p>Linacre, in 1484, became a Fellow of All Souls’
-College, but evidently he did not lose touch with his
-old friends at Canterbury, for, in 1486, Prior Selling
-being appointed one of the ambassadors of Henry VII.
-to the Pope, he invited his former pupil to accompany
-him to Italy, in order to profit by the teaching of the
-great humanist masters at the universities there. Prior
-Selling took him probably as far as Florence, and
-introduced him to his own old master and friend,
-Angelo Politian, who was then engaged in instructing
-the children of Lorenzo de Medici. Through Selling’s
-interest, Linacre was permitted to share in their lessons,
-and there are letters showing that the younger son,
-when in after years he became Pope, as Leo X., was
-not unmindful of his early companionship with the
-English scholar.<a name="FNanchor_28" id="FNanchor_28"></a><a href="#Footnote_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a> From Politian, Linacre acquired a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[29]</a></span>
-purity of style in Latin which makes him celebrated
-even among the celebrated men of his time. Greek
-he learnt from Demetrius Chalcocondylas, who was
-then, like Politian, engaged in teaching the children of
-Lorenzo de Medici.<a name="FNanchor_29" id="FNanchor_29"></a><a href="#Footnote_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a></p>
-
-<p>From Florence, Linacre passed on to Rome, where
-he gained many friends among the great humanists of
-the day. One day, when examining the manuscripts
-of the Vatican Library for classics, and engaged in
-reading the <i>Phædo</i> of Plato, Hermolaus Barbarus came
-up and politely expressed his belief that the youth had
-no claim, as he had himself, to the title Barbarus, if
-it were lawful to judge from his choice of a book.
-Linacre at once, from the happy compliment, recognised
-the speaker, and this chance interview led to a life-long
-friendship between the Englishman and one of the
-great masters of classical literature.<a name="FNanchor_30" id="FNanchor_30"></a><a href="#Footnote_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a></p>
-
-<p>After Linacre had been in Italy for a year or more,
-a youth whom he had known at Oxford, William Grocyn,
-was induced to come and share with him the benefit of
-the training in literature then to be obtained only in
-Italy. On his return in 1492, Grocyn became lecturer
-at Exeter College, Oxford, and among his pupils in
-Greek were Sir Thomas More<a name="FNanchor_31" id="FNanchor_31"></a><a href="#Footnote_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a> and Erasmus. He was
-a graduate in theology, and was chosen by Dean Colet
-to give lectures at St. Paul’s and subsequently appointed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[30]</a></span>
-by Archbishop Warham, Master or Guardian of the
-collegiate church of Maidstone.<a name="FNanchor_32" id="FNanchor_32"></a><a href="#Footnote_32" class="fnanchor">[32]</a> Erasmus describes
-him as “a man of most rigidly upright life, almost
-superstitiously observant of ecclesiastical custom, versed
-in every nicety of scholastic theology, by nature of the
-most acute judgment, and, in a word, fully instructed
-in every kind of learning.”<a name="FNanchor_33" id="FNanchor_33"></a><a href="#Footnote_33" class="fnanchor">[33]</a></p>
-
-<p>Linacre, after a distinguished course in the medical
-schools of Padua, returned to Oxford, and in 1501
-became tutor to Prince Arthur. On the accession of
-Henry VIII. he was appointed physician to the court,
-and could count all the distinguished men of the day,
-Wolsey, Warham, Fox, and the rest, among his patients;
-and Erasmus, Sir Thomas More, and Queen Mary
-among his pupils in letters. In his early life, entering
-the clerical state, he had held ecclesiastical preferment;
-in advanced years he received priest’s orders, and devoted
-the evening of his life to a pious preparation for
-his end.<a name="FNanchor_34" id="FNanchor_34"></a><a href="#Footnote_34" class="fnanchor">[34]</a></p>
-
-<p>Grocyn and Linacre are usually regarded as the
-pioneers of the revival of letters. But, as already
-pointed out, the first to cross the Alps from England
-in search for the new light, to convey it back to England,
-and to hand it on to Grocyn and Linacre, were
-William Selling, and his companion, William Hadley.
-Thus, the real pioneers in the English renaissance were
-the two monks of Christchurch, and, some years after,
-the two ecclesiastics, Grocyn and Linacre.</p>
-
-<p>Selling, even after his election to the priorship of
-Canterbury, continued to occupy a distinguished place
-both in the political world and in the world of letters.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[31]</a></span>
-He was chosen, though only the fifth member of the
-embassy sent by Henry VII. on his accession to the
-Pope, to act as orator, and in that capacity delivered
-a Latin oration before the Pope and Cardinals.<a name="FNanchor_35" id="FNanchor_35"></a><a href="#Footnote_35" class="fnanchor">[35]</a></p>
-
-<p>He was also and subsequently sent with others by
-Henry on an embassy to the French king, in which
-he also fulfilled the function of spokesman, making
-what is described as “a most elegant oration.”</p>
-
-<p>That as Prior, Selling kept up his interest in the
-literary revival is clear from the terms of his obituary
-notice. There exists, moreover, a translation made
-by him after his return from his embassy to Rome,
-when he took his youthful protégé, Linacre, and placed
-him under Chalcocondylas and Politian in Florence,
-which seems to prove that the renewal of his intimacy
-with the great humanist masters of Italy had inspired
-him with a desire to continue his literary work. Even
-in the midst of constant calls upon him, which the high
-office of Prior of Canterbury necessitated, he found time
-to translate a sermon of St. John Chrysostom from the
-Greek, two copies of which still remain in the British
-Museum.<a name="FNanchor_36" id="FNanchor_36"></a><a href="#Footnote_36" class="fnanchor">[36]</a> This is dated 1488; and it is probably
-the first example of any Greek work put into Latin
-in England in the early days of the English renaissance
-of letters. The very volume (Add. MS. 15,673) in
-which one copy of this translation is found shows
-by the style of the writing, and other indications, the
-Italian influences at work in Canterbury in the time<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[32]</a></span>
-of Selling’s succession at the close of the fifteenth
-century; and also the intercourse which the monastery
-there kept up with the foreign humanists.<a name="FNanchor_37" id="FNanchor_37"></a><a href="#Footnote_37" class="fnanchor">[37]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is hardly necessary to say more about the precious
-volumes of the classics and the other manuscripts which
-Selling collected on his travels. Many of them perished,
-with that most rare work, Cicero’s <i>De Republica</i>, in
-the fire caused by the carelessness of some of Henry
-VIII.’s visitors on the eve of the dissolution of Selling’s
-old monastery at Canterbury. Some, like the great
-Greek commentaries of St. Cyril on the Prophets, were
-rescued half burnt from the flames; “others, by some
-good chance,” says Leland, “had been removed; amongst
-these were the commentaries of St. Basil the Great on
-Isaias, the works of Synesius and other Greek codices.”<a name="FNanchor_38" id="FNanchor_38"></a><a href="#Footnote_38" class="fnanchor">[38]</a>
-Quite recently it has been recognised that the complete
-Homer and the plays of Euripides in Corpus Christi
-College library at Cambridge, which tradition had
-associated with the name of Archbishop Theodore in
-the seventh century, are in reality both fifteenth-century
-manuscripts; and as they formed, undoubtedly, part of
-the library at Christchurch, Canterbury, it is hardly too
-much to suppose that they were some of the treasures
-brought back by Prior Selling from Italy. The same
-may probably be said of a Livy, a fifteenth-century
-Greek Psalter, and a copy of the Psalms in Hebrew and
-Latin, in Trinity College Library.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[33]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_39" id="FNanchor_39"></a><a href="#Footnote_39" class="fnanchor">[39]</a></p>
-
-<p>Prior Selling’s influence, moreover, extended beyond
-the walls of his own house, and can be traced to others
-besides his old pupil, and, as some think, relative, Linacre.
-Among the friendships he had formed whilst at
-Padua was that of a young ecclesiastical student, Thomas
-Langton, with whom he was subsequently at Rome.
-Langton was employed in diplomatic business by
-King Edward IV., and whilst in France, through his
-friendship for Prior Selling, obtained some favour from
-the French king for the monastery of Canterbury. In
-return for this the monks offered him a living in
-London.<a name="FNanchor_40" id="FNanchor_40"></a><a href="#Footnote_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a> Prior Selling, on one occasion at least,
-drafted the sermon which Dr. Langton was to deliver
-as prolocutor in the Convocation of the Canterbury
-Province.<a name="FNanchor_41" id="FNanchor_41"></a><a href="#Footnote_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a> In 1483 Langton became Bishop of Winchester,
-and “such was his love of letters” that he
-established in his own house a <i>schola domestica</i> for boys,
-and himself used to preside in the evening at the lessons.
-One youth especially attracted his attention by his
-music. This was Richard Pace, afterwards renowned
-as a classical scholar and diplomatist. Bishop Langton
-recognised his abilities, and forthwith despatched him
-to Italy, paying all his expenses at the universities of
-Padua and Rome.<a name="FNanchor_42" id="FNanchor_42"></a><a href="#Footnote_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a> At the former place, he says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[34]</a></span>
-“When as a youth I began to work at my humanities,
-I was assisted by Cuthbert Tunstall and William
-Latimer, men most illustrious and excelling in every
-branch of learning, whose prudence, probity, and
-integrity were such that it were hard to say whether
-their learning excelled their high moral character, or
-their uprightness their learning.”<a name="FNanchor_43" id="FNanchor_43"></a><a href="#Footnote_43" class="fnanchor">[43]</a></p>
-
-<p>At this university he was taught by Leonicus and
-by Leonicenus, the friend and correspondent of Politian:
-“Men,” he says, as being unable to give higher praise,
-“like Tunstall and Latimer.”<a name="FNanchor_44" id="FNanchor_44"></a><a href="#Footnote_44" class="fnanchor">[44]</a> Passing on to Bologna
-he sat at the feet of Paul Bombasius, “who was then
-explaining every best author to large audiences.” Subsequently,
-at Rome, he formed a lasting friendship with
-William Stokesley, whom he describes as “his best
-friend on earth; a man of the keenest judgment, excellent,
-and indeed marvellous, in theology and philosophy,
-and not only skilled in Greek and Latin, but
-possessed of some knowledge of Hebrew,” whose great
-regret was that he had not earlier in life realised the
-power of the Greek language.<a name="FNanchor_45" id="FNanchor_45"></a><a href="#Footnote_45" class="fnanchor">[45]</a> At Ferrara, too, Pace
-first met Erasmus, and he warmly acknowledges his indebtedness
-to the influence of this great humanist.</p>
-
-<p>In 1509, Richard Pace accompanied Cardinal Bainbridge
-to Rome, and was with him when the cardinal
-died, or was murdered, there in 1514. Whilst in the
-Eternal City, “urged to the study by that most upright
-and learned man, William Latimer,” he searched the
-Pope’s library for books of music, and found a great
-number of works on the subject. The cardinal’s death<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[35]</a></span>
-put a stop to his investigations; but he had seen sufficient
-to be able to say that to study the matter properly
-a man must know Greek and get to the library of the
-Pope, where there were many and the best books on
-music. “But,” he adds, “I venture to say this, our
-English music, if any one will critically examine into
-the matter, will be found to display the greatest subtlety
-of mind, especially in what is called the introduction of
-harmonies, and in this matter to excel ancient music.”<a name="FNanchor_46" id="FNanchor_46"></a><a href="#Footnote_46" class="fnanchor">[46]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is unnecessary to follow in any detail the story
-of the general literary revival in England. Beginning
-with Selling, the movement continued to progress down
-to the very eve of the religious disputes. That there was
-opposition on the part of some who regarded the stirring
-of the waters with suspicion was inevitable. More
-especially was this the case because during the course
-of the literary revival there rose the storm of the great
-religious revolt of the sixteenth century, and because the
-practical paganism which had resulted from the movement
-in Italy was perhaps not unnaturally supposed by
-the timorous to be a necessary consequence of a return
-to the study of the classics of Greece and Rome. The
-opposition sprung generally from a misunderstanding,
-and “not so much from any hostility to Greek itself as
-from an indifference to any learning.” This Sir Thomas
-More expressly declares when writing to urge the Oxford
-authorities to repress a band of giddy people who,
-calling themselves Trojans, made it their duty to fight
-against the <i>Grecians</i>. It is true also that the pulpit was
-at times brought into requisition to decry “not only
-Greek and Latin studies,” but liberal education of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[36]</a></span>
-any kind.<a name="FNanchor_47" id="FNanchor_47"></a><a href="#Footnote_47" class="fnanchor">[47]</a> But, so far as England is concerned, this
-opposition to the revival of letters, even on the score of
-the danger likely to come either to faith or morals, was,
-when all is said, slight, and through the influence of
-More, Fisher, and the king himself, easily subdued.<a name="FNanchor_48" id="FNanchor_48"></a><a href="#Footnote_48" class="fnanchor">[48]</a>
-The main fact, moreover, cannot be gainsaid, namely,
-that the chief ecclesiastics of the day, Wolsey, Warham,
-Fisher, Tunstall, Langton, Stokesley, Fox, Selling,
-Grocyn, Whitford, Linacre, Colet, Pace, William Latimer,
-and Thomas Lupset,<a name="FNanchor_49" id="FNanchor_49"></a><a href="#Footnote_49" class="fnanchor">[49]</a> to name only the most<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[37]</a></span>
-distinguished, were not only ardent humanists, but
-thorough and practical churchmen. Of the laymen,
-whether foreigners or Englishmen, whose names are
-associated with the renaissance of letters in this country,
-such as, for example, the distinguished scholar Ludovico
-Vives, the two Lillys, Sir Thomas More, John Clement,<a name="FNanchor_50" id="FNanchor_50"></a><a href="#Footnote_50" class="fnanchor">[50]</a>
-and other members of More’s family, there can be no
-shadow of doubt about their dispositions towards the
-ancient ecclesiastical régime. A Venetian traveller, in
-1500, thus records what he had noticed as to the attitude
-of ecclesiastics generally towards learning:&mdash;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[38]</a></span>“Few,
-excepting the clergy, are addicted to the study of letters,
-and this is the reason why any one who has any learning,
-though he may be a layman, is called a <i>clerk</i>. And
-yet they have great advantages for study, there being
-two general universities in the kingdom, Oxford and
-Cambridge, in which there are many colleges founded
-for the maintenance of poor scholars. And your magnificence
-(the Doge of Venice) lodged at one named
-Magdalen, in the University of Oxford, of which, as the
-founders having been prelates, so the scholars also are
-ecclesiastics.”</p>
-
-<p>It was in England, and almost entirely among the
-ecclesiastics of England, that Erasmus found his chief
-support. “This England of yours,” he writes to Colet
-in 1498, “this England, dear to me on many accounts,
-is above all most beloved because it abounds in what
-to me is the best of all, men deeply learned in letters.”<a name="FNanchor_51" id="FNanchor_51"></a><a href="#Footnote_51" class="fnanchor">[51]</a>
-Nor did he change his opinion on a closer acquaintance.
-In 1517, to Richard Pace he wrote from
-Louvain in regret at leaving a country which he had
-come to regard as the best hope of the literary revival:&mdash;“Oh,
-how truly happy is your land of England, the
-seat and stronghold of the best studies and the highest
-virtue! I congratulate you, my friend Pace, on having
-such a king, and I congratulate the king whose country
-is rendered illustrious by so many brilliant men of
-ability. On both scores I congratulate this England
-of yours, for though fortunate for many other reasons,
-on this score no other land can compete with it.”<a name="FNanchor_52" id="FNanchor_52"></a><a href="#Footnote_52" class="fnanchor">[52]</a></p>
-
-<p>When William Latimer said in 1518 that Bishop
-Fisher wished to study Greek for Biblical purposes,
-and that he thought of trying to get a master from Italy,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[39]</a></span>
-Erasmus, whilst applauding the bishop’s intention as
-likely to encourage younger men to take up the
-study, told Latimer that such men were not easy to find
-in Italy. “If I may openly say my mind,” he adds,
-“if I had Linacre, or Tunstall, for a master (for of yourself
-I say nothing), I would not wish for any Italian.”<a name="FNanchor_53" id="FNanchor_53"></a><a href="#Footnote_53" class="fnanchor">[53]</a></p>
-
-<p>Not to go into more lengthy details, there is, it
-must be admitted, abundant evidence to show that there
-was in the religious houses of England, no less than in
-the universities, a stirring of the waters, and a readiness
-to profit by the real advance made in education
-and scholarship. The name of Prior Charnock, the
-friend of Colet and Erasmus at Oxford, is known to
-all. But there are others with even greater claim than
-he to be considered leaders in the movement. There
-is distinct evidence of scholarship at Reading, at Ramsey,
-at Glastonbury, and elsewhere.<a name="FNanchor_54" id="FNanchor_54"></a><a href="#Footnote_54" class="fnanchor">[54]</a> The last-named
-house, Glastonbury, was ruled by Abbot Bere, to
-whose criticism Erasmus desired to submit his translation
-of the New Testament from the Greek. Bere
-himself had passed some time, with distinction, in Italy,
-had been sent on more than one embassy by the king,
-and had been chosen by Henry VII. to invest the Duke
-of Urbino with the Order of the Garter, and to make
-the required oration on that occasion.<a name="FNanchor_55" id="FNanchor_55"></a><a href="#Footnote_55" class="fnanchor">[55]</a> He had given
-other evidence also of the way the new spirit that had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[40]</a></span>
-been enkindled in Italy had entered into his soul. It
-was through Abbot Bere’s generosity that Richard Pace,
-whom Erasmus calls “the half of his soul,” was enabled
-to pursue his studies in Italy.<a name="FNanchor_56" id="FNanchor_56"></a><a href="#Footnote_56" class="fnanchor">[56]</a> Glastonbury was apparently
-a soil well prepared for the seed-time, for even
-in the days of Abbot Bere’s predecessor, Abbot John
-Selwood, there is evidence to show that the religious
-were not altogether out of touch with the movement.
-The abbot himself presented one of the monks with
-a copy of John Free’s translation from the Greek
-of <i>Synesius de laude Calvitii</i>. The volume is written
-by an Italian scribe, and contains in the introductory
-matter a letter to the translator from Omnibonus Leonicensis,
-dated at Vicenza in 1461, as well as a preface
-or letter by Free to John Tiptoft, Earl of Worcester.<a name="FNanchor_57" id="FNanchor_57"></a><a href="#Footnote_57" class="fnanchor">[57]</a></p>
-
-<p>At St. Augustine’s, Canterbury, also, we find, even
-amid the ruins of its desolation, traces of the same
-spirit which pervaded the neighbouring cloister of
-Christchurch. The antiquary Twyne declares that he
-had been intimately acquainted with the last abbot,
-whom he knew to have been deeply interested in the
-literary movement. He describes his friend as often
-manifesting in conversation his interest in and knowledge
-of the ancient classical authors. He says that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[41]</a></span>
-this monk was the personal friend of Ludovico Vives,
-and that he sent over the sea one of his subjects at St.
-Augustine’s, John Digon, whom he subsequently made
-prior of his monastery, to the schools of Louvain, in
-order that he might profit by the teaching of that
-celebrated Spanish humanist.<a name="FNanchor_58" id="FNanchor_58"></a><a href="#Footnote_58" class="fnanchor">[58]</a></p>
-
-<p>Beyond the foregoing particular instances of the
-real mind of English ecclesiastics towards the revival
-of studies, the official registers of the Universities of
-Oxford and Cambridge furnish us with evidence of the
-general attitude of approval adopted by the Church
-authorities in England. Unfortunately, gaps in the
-Register of Graduates at Oxford for the second half
-of the fifteenth century do not enable us to gauge
-the full extent of the revival, but there is sufficient
-evidence that the renaissance had taken place. In the
-eleven years, from <span class="smcap">A.D.</span> 1449 to <span class="smcap">A.D.</span> 1459, for which
-the entries exist, the average number of degrees taken
-by all students was 91.5. From 1506, when the
-registers begin again, to 1535, when the commencement
-of operations against the monastic houses
-seemed to indicate the advent of grave religious<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[42]</a></span>
-changes, the average number of yearly degrees granted
-was 127. In 1506 the number had risen to 216, and
-only in very few of the subsequent years had the
-average fallen below 100. From 108 in 1535, the
-number of graduates fell in 1536 to only 44; and the
-average for the subsequent years of the reign of
-Henry VIII. was less than 57. From 1548 to 1553,
-that is, during the reign of Edward VI., the average of
-graduates was barely 33, but it rose again, whilst Mary
-was on the throne, to 70.</p>
-
-<p>If the same test be applied to the religious Orders,
-it will be found that they likewise equally profited by the
-new spirit. During the period from 1449 to 1459 the
-Benedictine Order had a yearly average of 4 graduates
-at Oxford, the other religious bodies taken together
-having 5. In the second period of 1506-1539 the
-Benedictine graduates number 200, and (allowing for
-gaps in the register) the Order had thus a yearly average
-of 6.75, the average of the other Orders during the same
-period being 5.2. If, moreover, the number of the
-religious who took degrees be compared with that of
-the secular students, it will be found that the former
-seem to have more than held their own. During the
-time from 1449 to 1459 the members of the regular
-Orders were to the rest in the proportion of 1 to 9.5.
-In the period of the thirty years immediately preceding
-the general dissolution it was as 1 to 9. Interest in learning,
-too, was apparently kept up among the religious
-Orders to the last. Even with their cloisters falling on
-all sides round about them, in the last hour of their
-corporate existence, that is in the year 1538-39, some
-14 Benedictines took their degrees at Oxford.</p>
-
-<p>In regard to Cambridge, a few notes taken from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[43]</a></span>
-interesting preface to a recent “History of Gonville and
-Caius College” will suffice to show that the monks did
-not neglect the advantages offered to them in the sister
-university.<a name="FNanchor_59" id="FNanchor_59"></a><a href="#Footnote_59" class="fnanchor">[59]</a> Gonville Hall, as the college was then
-called, was by the statutes of Bishop Bateman closely
-connected with the Benedictine Cathedral Priory of
-Norwich. Between 1500 and 1523 the early bursars’
-accounts give a list of “pensioners,” and these “largely
-consisted of monks sent hither from their respective
-monasteries for the purpose of study.” These “pensioners
-paid for their rooms and their commons, and
-shared their meals with the fellows. All the greater
-monasteries in East Anglia, such as the Benedictine
-Priory at Norwich, the magnificent foundation of Bury,
-and (as a large landowner in Norfolk) the Cluniac
-House at Lewes, seem generally to have had several
-of their younger members in training at our college.
-To these must be added the Augustinian Priory of
-Westacre, which was mainly frequented (as Dr. Jessopp
-tells us) by the sons of the Norfolk gentry.”<a name="FNanchor_60" id="FNanchor_60"></a><a href="#Footnote_60" class="fnanchor">[60]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Visitations of the Norwich Diocese (1492-1532),
-edited by Dr. Jessopp for the Camden Society, contain
-many references to the monastic students at the university.
-In one house, for example, in 1520, the numbers
-are short, because “there were three in the university.”
-In another case, when a religious house was too poor
-to provide the necessary money to support a student
-during his college career, it was found by friends of
-the monastery, until a few years later, when, on the
-funds improving, the house was able to meet the
-expenses. This same house, the Priory of Butley,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[44]</a></span>
-“had a special arrangement with the authorities of
-Gonville Hall for the reservation of a suitable room
-for their young monks.” One object of sending
-members of a monastery to undergo the training of
-a university course “was to qualify for teaching the
-novices at their own house”; for after they have
-graduated and returned to their monastery, we not
-infrequently find them described as “<i>idoneus preceptor
-pro confratribus</i>”; “<i>idoneus pro noviciis et junioribus</i>,” &amp;c.
-Moreover, the possession of a degree on the part of
-a religious, as an examination of the lists will show,
-often in after life meant some position of trust or high
-office in the monastery of the graduate.</p>
-
-<p>Nor was the training then received any light
-matter of form; it meant long years of study, and the
-possession of a degree was, too, a public testimony
-to a certain proficiency in the science of teaching.
-Thus, for example, George Mace, a canon of Westacre,
-who became a pensioner at Gonville Hall in 1508,
-studied arts for five years and canon law for four
-years at the university, and continued the latter study
-for eight years in his monastery.<a name="FNanchor_61" id="FNanchor_61"></a><a href="#Footnote_61" class="fnanchor">[61]</a> William Hadley, a
-religious of the same house, had spent eleven years
-in the study of arts and theology;<a name="FNanchor_62" id="FNanchor_62"></a><a href="#Footnote_62" class="fnanchor">[62]</a> and Richard
-Brygott, who took his B.D. in 1520, and who subsequently
-became Prior of Westacre, had studied two
-years and a half in his monastery, two years in Paris,
-and seven in Cambridge.<a name="FNanchor_63" id="FNanchor_63"></a><a href="#Footnote_63" class="fnanchor">[63]</a></p>
-
-<p>“With the Reformation, of course, all this came
-to an end,” writes Mr. Venn, and we can well understand
-that this sudden stoppage of what, in the aggregate,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[45]</a></span>
-was a considerable source of supply to the
-university, was seriously felt. On the old system, as
-we have seen, the promising students were selected
-by their monasteries, and supported in college at the
-expense of the house. As the author of the interesting
-account of Durham Priory says: “If the master did
-see that any of them (the novices) were apt to learning,
-and did apply his book and had a pregnant wit withal,
-then the master did let the prior have intelligence.
-Then, straightway after he was sent to Oxford to
-school, and there did learn to study divinity.”<a name="FNanchor_64" id="FNanchor_64"></a><a href="#Footnote_64" class="fnanchor">[64]</a></p>
-
-<p>Moreover, it should be remembered that it was by
-means of the assistance received from the monastic
-and conventual houses that a very large number of
-students were enabled to receive their education at
-the universities at all. The episcopal registers testify
-to this useful function of the old religious corporations.
-The serious diminution in the number of
-candidates for ordination, and the no less lamentable
-depletion of the national universities, consequent upon
-the dissolution of these bodies, attest what had previously
-been done by them for the education of the
-pastoral clergy. This may be admitted without any
-implied approval of the monastic system as it existed.
-The fact will be patent to all who will examine into
-the available evidence; and the serious diminution in
-the number of clergy must be taken as part of the
-price paid by the nation for securing the triumph of
-the Reformation principles. The state of Oxford
-during, say, the reign of Edward VI., is attested by
-the degree lists. In the year 1547 and in the year
-1550 no student at all graduated, and the historian of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[46]</a></span>
-the university has described the lamentable state to
-which the schools were reduced. If additional testimony
-be needed, it may be found in a sermon of
-Roger Edgworth, preached in Queen Mary’s reign.
-Speaking of works of piety and pity, much needed in
-those days, the speaker advocates charity to the poor
-students at the two national universities. “Very pity,”
-he says, “moves me to exhort you to mercy and pity
-on the poor students in the universities of Oxford and
-Cambridge. They were never so few in number, and
-yet those that are left are ready to run abroad into
-the world and give up their study for very need.
-Iniquity is so abundant that charity is all cold. A
-man would have pity did he but hear the lamentable
-complaints that I heard lately when amongst them.
-Would to God I were able to relieve them. This much
-I am sure of: in my opinion you cannot bestow your
-charity better.” He then goes on to instance his own
-case as an example of what used to be done in Catholic
-times to help the student in his education. “My
-parents sent me to school in my youth, and my good
-lord William Smith, sometime Bishop of Lincoln, (was)
-my bringer up and ‘exhibitour,’ first at Banbury in the
-Grammar School with Master John Stanbridge, and
-then at Oxford till I was a Master of Arts and able
-to help myself.”</p>
-
-<p>He pleads earnestly that some of his hearers may
-be inspired to help the students in the distress to which
-they are now reduced, and so help to restore learning to
-the position from which it had fallen in late years.<a name="FNanchor_65" id="FNanchor_65"></a><a href="#Footnote_65" class="fnanchor">[65]</a></p>
-
-<p>Of the lamentable decay of scholarship as such, the
-inevitable, and perhaps necessary, consequence of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[47]</a></span>
-religious controversies which occupied men’s minds
-and thoughts to the exclusion of all else, it is, of course,
-not the place here to dwell upon. All that it is necessary
-to do is to point out that the admitted decay and
-decline argues a previous period of greater life and
-vigour. Even as early as 1545 the Cambridge scholars
-petitioned the king for an extension of privileges, as they
-feared the total destruction of learning. To endeavour
-to save Oxford, it was ordered that every clergyman,
-having a benefice to the amount of £100, should out
-of his living find at least one scholar at the university.
-Bishop Latimer, in Edward VI.’s reign, looked back
-with regret to past times “when they helped the
-scholars,” for since then “almost no man helpeth to
-maintain them.” “Truly,” he said, “it is a pitiful
-thing to see the schools so neglected. Schools are
-not maintained, scholars have not exhibitions.…
-Very few there be that help poor scholars.… It
-would pity a man’s heart to hear what I hear of the
-state of Cambridge; what it is in Oxford I cannot
-tell.… I think there be at this day (<span class="smcap">A.D.</span> 1550) ten
-thousand students less than there were within these
-twenty years.” In the year 1550, it will be remembered,
-there was apparently no degree of any kind
-taken at the university of Oxford.</p>
-
-<p>This fact appears patent on this page of history;
-that from the time when minds began to exercise
-themselves on the thorny subjects which grew up
-round about the “great divorce” question, the bright
-promises of the revival of learning, which Erasmus
-had seen in England, faded away. Greek, it has
-been said, may conveniently stand for learning generally;
-and Greek studies apparently disappeared in the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[48]</a></span>
-religious turmoils which distracted England. With
-Mary’s accession, some attempt was made to recover
-lost ground, or at least re-enkindle the lamp of learning.
-When Sir Thomas Pope refounded Durham
-College at Oxford under the name of Trinity, he was
-urged by Cardinal Pole, to whom he submitted the
-draft of his statutes, “to order Greek to be more
-taught there than I have provided. This purpose,”
-he says, “I like well, but I fear the times will not
-bear it now. I remember when I was a young scholar
-at Eton, the Greek tongue was growing apace, the
-study of which is now of late much decayed.”<a name="FNanchor_66" id="FNanchor_66"></a><a href="#Footnote_66" class="fnanchor">[66]</a></p>
-
-<p>The wholesale destruction of the great libraries in
-England is an indirect indication of the new spirit
-which rose at this time, and which helped for a time
-to put an end to the renaissance of letters. When
-Mary came to the throne, and quieter times made
-the scheme possible, it was seriously proposed to do
-something to preserve the remnant of ancient and
-learned works that might be left in England after
-the wholesale destruction of the preceding years.
-The celebrated Dr. Dee drew up a supplication to the
-queen, stating that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[49]</a></span> “among the many most lamentable
-displeasures that have of late happened in this realm,
-through the subverting of religious houses and the
-dissolution of other assemblies of godly and learned
-men, it has been, and among all learned students shall
-for ever be, judged not the least calamity, the spoil
-and destruction of so many and so notable libraries
-wherein lay the treasure of all antiquity, and the everlasting
-seeds of continual excellency in learning within
-this realm. But although in those days many a precious
-jewel and ancient monument did utterly perish
-(as at Canterbury that wonderful work of the sage and
-eloquent Cicero, <i>De Republica</i>, and in many other places
-the like), yet if in time great and speedy diligence be
-showed, the remnants of such incredible a store, as well
-of writers theological as in all the other liberal sciences,
-might yet be saved and recovered, which now in your
-Grace’s realm being dispersed and scattered, yea, and
-many of them in unlearned men’s hands, still even yet
-(in this time of reconciliation) daily perish; and perchance
-are purposely by some envious person enclosed
-in walls or buried in the ground.”</p>
-
-<p>The scheme which accompanied this letter in 1556
-was for the formation of a national library, into which
-were to be gathered the original manuscripts still left
-in England, which could be purchased or otherwise
-obtained, or at least a copy of such as were in private
-hands, and which the owners would not part with.
-Beyond this, John Dee proposes that copies of the best
-manuscripts in Europe should be secured. He mentions
-specially the libraries of the Vatican, and of St.
-Mark’s, Venice, those at Florence, Bologna, and Vienna,
-and offers to go himself, if his expenses are paid, to secure
-the transcripts.<a name="FNanchor_67" id="FNanchor_67"></a><a href="#Footnote_67" class="fnanchor">[67]</a> The plan, however, came to nothing,
-and with Mary’s death, the nation was once more
-occupied in the religious controversies, which again
-interfered with any real advance in scholarship.</p>
-
-<p>One other point must not be overlooked. Before
-the rise of the religious dissensions caused England to
-isolate herself from the rest of the Catholic world,
-English students were to be found studying in considerable
-numbers at the great centres of learning in Europe.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[50]</a></span>
-An immediate result of the change was to put a stop to
-this, which had served to keep the country in touch
-with the best work being done on the Continent, and
-the result of which had been seen in the able English
-scholars produced by that means on the eve of the
-Reformation.</p>
-
-<p>Taking a broad survey of the whole movement for
-the revival of letters in England, it would appear then
-certain that whether we regard its origin, or the forces
-which contributed to support it, or the men chiefly
-concerned in it, it must be confessed that to the
-Church and churchmen the country was indebted for
-the successes achieved. What put a stop to the
-humanist movement here, as it certainly did in Germany,
-was the rise of the religious difficulties, which,
-under the name of the “New Learning,” was opposed
-by those most conspicuous for their championship of
-true learning, scholarship, and education.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[51]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_III" id="CHAPTER_III"></a>CHAPTER III<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE TWO JURISDICTIONS</span></h2>
-
-<p>The Reformation found men still occupied with questions
-as to the limits of ecclesiastical and lay jurisdiction,
-which had troubled their minds at various periods during
-the previous centuries. It is impossible to read very
-deeply into the literature of the period without seeing
-that, while on the one hand, all the fundamental principles
-of the spiritual jurisdiction of the Church were
-fully and freely recognised by all; on the other, a
-number of questions, mainly in the broad borderland
-of debatable ground between the two, were constantly
-being discussed, and not infrequently gave cause for
-disagreements and misunderstandings. As in the history
-of earlier times, so in the sixteenth century ecclesiastics
-clung, perhaps not unnaturally, to what they
-regarded as their strict rights, and looked on resistance
-to encroachment as a sacred duty. Laymen on the other
-part, even when their absolute loyalty to the Church was
-undoubted, were found in the ranks of those who claimed
-for the State power to decide in matters not strictly pertaining
-to the spiritual prerogatives, but which chiefly by
-custom had come to be regarded as belonging to ecclesiastical
-domain. It is the more important that attention
-should be directed in a special manner to these questions,
-inasmuch as it will be found, speaking broadly, that the
-ultimate success or ill-success of the strictly doctrinal<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[52]</a></span>
-changes raised in the sixteenth century was determined
-by the issue of the discussions raised on the question
-of mixed jurisdiction. This may not seem very philosophical,
-but in the event it is proved to be roughly
-correct. The reason is not very far to seek. In great
-measure at least, questions of money and property,
-even of national interest and prosperity, were intimately
-concerned in the matter in dispute. They touched the
-people’s pocket; and whether rightly or wrongly, those
-who found the money wished to have a say in its disposal.
-One thing cannot fail to strike an inquirer into
-the literature of this period: the very small number of
-people who were enthusiasts in the doctrinal matters
-with which the more ardent reformers occupied themselves.</p>
-
-<p>We are not here concerned with another and more
-delicate question as to the papal prerogatives exercised
-in England. For clearness’ sake in estimating the
-forces which made for change on the eve of the Reformation,
-this subject must be examined in connection
-with the whole attitude of England to Rome and the
-Pope in the sixteenth century. It must, consequently,
-be understood that in trying here to illustrate the attitude
-of men’s minds at this period to these important
-and practical questions, a further point as to the claims
-of the Roman Pontiffs in regard to some or all of them
-has yet to be considered. Even in examining the
-questions at issue between the authorities&mdash;lay and
-ecclesiastical&mdash;in the country, the present purpose is
-to record rather than to criticise, to set forth the attitude
-of mind as it appears in the literature of the period,
-rather than to weigh the reasons and judge between
-the contending parties.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[53]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The lawyer, Christopher Saint-German, is a contemporary
-writer to whom we naturally turn for information
-upon the points at issue. He, of course,
-takes the layman’s side as to the right of the State
-to interfere in all, or in most, questions which arise as
-to the dues of clerics, and other temporalities, such as
-tithes, &amp;c., which are attached to the spiritual functions
-of the clergy. Moreover, beyond claiming the right
-for the State so to interfere in the regulation of all
-temporalities and kindred matters, Saint-German also
-held that in some things in which custom had given
-sanction to the then practice, it would be for the good
-of the State that it should do so. In his <i>Dyalogue between
-a Student of Law and a Doctor of Divinity</i>,<a name="FNanchor_68" id="FNanchor_68"></a><a href="#Footnote_68" class="fnanchor">[68]</a> his views are
-put clearly; whilst the Doctor states, though somewhat
-lamely perhaps, the position of the clergy.</p>
-
-<p>To take the example of “mortuaries,” upon which
-the Parliament had already legislated to the dismay
-of some of the ecclesiastical party, who, as it appears,
-on the plea that the law was unjust and beyond the
-competence of the State authority, tried in various
-ways to evade the provisions of the Act, which was
-intended to relieve the laity of exactions that, as
-they very generally believed, had grown into an abuse.
-Christopher Saint-German holds that Parliament was
-quite within its rights. The State could, and on occasion
-should, legislate as to dues payable to the clergy,
-and settle whether ecclesiastics, who claim articles in
-kind, or sums of money by prescriptive right, ought<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[54]</a></span>
-in fact to be allowed them. There is, he admits, a
-difficulty; he does not think that it would be competent
-for the State to prohibit specific gifts to God’s
-service, or to say that only “so many tapers shall be
-used at a funeral,” or that only so many priests may
-be bidden to the burial, or that only so much may be
-given in alms. In matters of this kind he does not
-think the State has jurisdiction to interfere. “But it
-has,” he says, “the plain right to make a law, that
-there shall not be given above so many black gowns, or
-that there shall be no herald of arms” present, unless it
-is the funeral of one “of such a degree,” or that “no
-black cloths should be hung in the streets from the house
-where the person died, to the church, as is used in
-many cities and good towns, or the prohibition of
-such other things as are but worldly pomps, and are
-rather consolations to the friends that are alive, than
-any relief to the departed soul.” In these and such
-like things, he says: “I think the Parliament has
-authority to pass laws, so as to protect the executors
-of wills, and relieve them from the necessity of spending
-so much of the inheritance of the deceased man’s
-heirs.”<a name="FNanchor_69" id="FNanchor_69"></a><a href="#Footnote_69" class="fnanchor">[69]</a></p>
-
-<p>In like manner the lawyer holds that in all strictly
-temporal matters, whatever privilege and exemption
-the State may allow and has allowed the clergy, it
-still possesses the radical power to legislate where
-and when it sees fit. It does not in fact by lapse
-of time lose the ordinary authority it possesses over
-all subjects of the realm in these matters. Thus, for
-example, he holds that the State can and should prohibit
-all lands in mortmain passing to the Church;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[55]</a></span>
-and that, should it appear to be a matter of public
-policy, Parliament might prohibit and indeed break
-the appropriations of benefices already made to monasteries,
-cathedrals, and colleges, and order that they
-should return to their original purposes. “The advowson,”
-he says, “is a temporal inheritance, and as such
-is under the Parliament to order it as it sees cause.”
-This principle, he points out, had been practically
-admitted when the Parliament, in the fourth year of
-Henry IV., cancelled all appropriations of vicarages
-which had been made from the beginning of Richard II.’s
-reign. It is indeed “good,” he adds, “that the authority
-of the Parliament in this should be known, and
-that it should cause them to observe such statutes
-as are already made, and to distribute some part of
-the fruits (of the benefices) among poor parishioners
-according to the statute of the twentieth year of King
-Richard II.”</p>
-
-<p>In the same way, and for similar reasons, Saint-German
-claims that the State has full power to determine
-questions of “Sanctuary,” and to legislate as to
-“benefit of clergy.” Such matters were, he contends,
-only customs of the realm, and in no sense any point
-of purely spiritual prerogative. Like every other custom
-of the realm, these were subject to revision by the
-supreme secular authority. “The Pope by himself,”
-he adds, “cannot make any Sanctuary in this realm.”
-This question of “Sanctuary” rights was continually
-causing difficulties between the lay and the ecclesiastical
-authorities. To the legal mind the custom was certainly
-dangerous to the well-being of the State, and
-made the administration of justice unnecessarily complicated,
-especially when ecclesiastics pleaded their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</a></span>
-privileges, and strongly resisted any attempt on the
-part of legal officials to ignore them. Cases were
-by no means infrequent in the courts in the reigns
-of Henry VII. and Henry VIII., which caused more
-or less friction between the upholders of the two
-views.<a name="FNanchor_70" id="FNanchor_70"></a><a href="#Footnote_70" class="fnanchor">[70]</a> To illustrate the state of conflict on this, in
-itself a very minor matter, a trial which took place
-in London in the year 1519 is here given in some
-detail. One John Savage in that year was charged
-with murder. At the time of his arrest he was living
-in St. John Street (Clerkenwell), and when brought
-to trial pleaded that he had been wrongfully arrested
-in a place of Sanctuary belonging to the Priory of St.
-John of Jerusalem. To justify his contention and
-obtain his liberty, he called on the Prior of the Knights
-of St. John to maintain his rights and privileges, and
-vindicate this claim of Sanctuary. The prior appeared
-and produced the grant of Pope Urban III., made by
-Bull dated in 1213, which had been ratified by King
-Henry III. He also cited cases in which he alleged
-that in the reign of the late King Henry VII. felons,
-who had been seized within the precincts, had been
-restored to Sanctuary, and he therefore argued that
-this case was an infringement of the rights of his
-priory.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[57]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Savage also declared that he was in St. John Street
-within the precincts of the priory “pur amendement
-de son vie, durant son vie,” when on the 8th of June
-an officer, William Rotte, and others took him by force
-out of the place, and carried him away to the Tower.
-He consequently claimed to be restored to the Sanctuary
-from which he had been abducted. Chief-Justice
-Fineux, before whom the prisoner had been brought,
-asked him whether he wished to “jeopardy” his case
-upon his plea of Sanctuary, and, upon consultation,
-John Savage replied in the negative, saying that he
-wished rather to throw himself upon the king’s mercy.
-Fineux on this, said: “In this you are wise, for the
-privileges of St. John’s will not aid you in the form
-in which you have pleaded it. In reality it has no
-greater privilege of Sanctuary than every parish church
-in the kingdom; that is, it has privileges for forty days
-and no more, and in this it partakes merely of the
-common law of the kingdom, and has no special
-privilege beyond this.”</p>
-
-<p>Further, Fineux pointed out that even had St. John’s
-possessed the Sanctuary the prior claimed, this right
-did not extend to the fields, &amp;c., but in the opinion of
-all the judges of the land, to which all the bishops and
-clergy had assented, the bounds of any Sanctuary were
-the church, cloister, and cemetery. Most certain it was
-that the <i>ambitus</i> did not extend to gardens, barns, and
-stables, and in his (Fineux’s) opinion, not even to the
-pantry and buttery. He quotes cases in support of his
-opinion. In one instance a certain William Spencer
-claimed the privilege of Sanctuary when in an orchard
-of the Grey Friars at Coventry. In spite of the assertion
-of the guardian that the Pope had extended the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span>
-privilege to the whole enclosure, of which the place the
-friars had to recreate themselves in was certainly a
-portion, the plea was disallowed, and William Spencer
-was hanged.</p>
-
-<p>In regard to the privilege of the forty days, Fineux
-declared that it was so obviously against the common
-good and in derogation of justice, that in his opinion
-it should not be suffered to continue, and he quoted
-cases where it had been set aside. In several cases
-where Papal privileges had been asserted, the judges
-had held “quant à les Bulles du pape, le pape sans le
-Roy ne ad power de fayre sanctuarie.” In other words,
-Fineux rejected the plea of the murderer Savage. But
-the case did not stop here, both the prior and Savage,
-as we should say, “appealed,” and the matter was heard
-in the presence of Cardinal Wolsey, Fineux, Brudnell,
-and several members of the inner Star Chamber. Dr.
-Potkyn, counsel for the Prior of St. John, pleaded the
-“knowledge and allowance of the king” to prove the
-privilege. No decision was arrived at, and a further
-sitting of the Star Chamber was held on November 11,
-1520, in the presence of the king, the cardinal, all the
-judges, and divers bishops and canonists, as well as the
-Prior of St. John and the Abbot of Westminster. Before
-the assembly many examples of difficulties in the
-past were adduced by the judges. These difficulties
-they declared increased so as to endanger the peace
-and law of the country, by reason of the Sanctuaries of
-Westminster and St. John’s. To effect a remedy was
-the chief reason of the royal presence at the meeting.
-After long discussion it was declared that as St. John’s
-Sanctuary was made, as it had been shown, by Papal
-Bull, it was consequently void even if confirmed by the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[59]</a></span>
-king’s patent, and hence that the priory had no privilege at
-all except the common one of forty days. The judges
-and all the canonists were quite clear that the Pope’s right
-to make a Sanctuary had never been allowed in England,
-and that every such privilege must come from the
-king. On the other hand, the bishops present and all
-the clergy were equally satisfied that the general forty
-days’ privilege belonged by right to every parish church.
-The Abbot of Westminster then proved by the production
-of charters and other indubitable evidence that the
-Sanctuary of Westminster had its origin in the grants
-of various kings, and had only been blessed by the
-Pope.</p>
-
-<p>Fineux pointed out that Sanctuary grants had
-always been made to monasteries and churches “to
-the laud and honour of God,” and that it was not certainly
-likely to redound to God’s honour when men
-could commit murder and felony, and trust to get into
-the safe precinct of some Sanctuary; neither did he
-believe that to have bad houses in Sanctuaries, and
-such like abuses, was either to the praise of God or for
-the welfare of the kingdom. Further, that as regards
-Westminster, the abbot had abused his privileges as to
-the <i>ambitus</i> or precincts which in law must be understood
-in the restricted sense. The cardinal admitted
-that there had been abuses, and a Commission was proposed
-to determine the reasonable bounds. Bishop
-Voysey, of Exeter, suggested that if a Sanctuary man
-committed murder or felony outside, with the hope of
-getting back again, the privilege of shelter should be
-forfeited; but the majority were against this restriction.
-On the whole, however, it was determined that for the
-good of the State the uses of these Sanctuaries should<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[60]</a></span>
-be curtailed, and that none should be allowed in law
-but such as could show a grant of the privilege from
-the crown.<a name="FNanchor_71" id="FNanchor_71"></a><a href="#Footnote_71" class="fnanchor">[71]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the opinion of many, of whom Saint-German was
-the spokesman, to go to another matter, Parliament might
-assign “all the trees and grass in churchyards either to
-the parson, to the vicar, or to the parish,” as it thought
-fit; for although the ground was hallowed, the proceeds,
-such as “trees and grass, are mere temporals, and as
-such must be regulated by the power of the State.”</p>
-
-<p>Moreover, according to the same view, whilst it would
-be outside the province of the secular law to determine
-the cut of a priest’s cassock or the shape of his tonsure, it
-could clearly determine that no priest should wear cloth
-made out of the country, or costing above a certain
-price; and it might fix the amount of salary to be paid
-to a chaplain or curate.<a name="FNanchor_72" id="FNanchor_72"></a><a href="#Footnote_72" class="fnanchor">[72]</a></p>
-
-<p>There were circumstances, too, under which, in the
-opinion of Saint-German, Parliament not only could
-interfere to legislate about clerical duties, but would be
-bound to do so. At the time when he was writing,
-the eve of the Reformation, many things seemed to
-point to this necessity for State interference. There
-were signs of widespread religious differences in the
-world. “Why then,” he asks,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[61]</a></span> “may not the king
-and his Parliament, as well to strengthen the faith and
-give health to the souls of many of his subjects, as
-to save his realm being noted for heresy, seek for
-the reason of the division now in the realm by diversity
-of sects and opinions?… They shall have great
-reward before God that set their hands to prevent the
-great danger to many souls of men as well spiritual
-as temporal if this division continue long. And as far
-as I have heard, all the articles that are misliked (are
-aimed) either against the worldly honour, worldly
-power, or worldly riches of spiritual men. To express
-these articles I hold it not expedient, and indeed
-if what some have reported be true, many of them
-be so far against the truth that no Christian man
-would hold them to be true, and they that do so do
-it for some other consideration.”<a name="FNanchor_73" id="FNanchor_73"></a><a href="#Footnote_73" class="fnanchor">[73]</a></p>
-
-<p>As an example, our author takes the question of
-Purgatory, which he believes is attacked because men
-want to free themselves from the money offerings
-which belief in the doctrine necessitates. And indeed,
-“if it were ordained by law,” he continues, “that every
-curate at the death of any of their parishioners should
-be bound to say publicly for their souls <i>Placebo</i>, <i>Dirige</i>
-and mass, without taking anything for (the service):
-and further that at a certain time, to be assigned by
-Parliament, as say, once a month, or as it shall be
-thought convenient, they shall do the same and pray
-for the souls of their parishioners and for all Christian
-souls and for the king and all the realm: and also
-that religious houses do in like manner, I fancy in
-a short time there would be few to say there was no
-purgatory.”<a name="FNanchor_74" id="FNanchor_74"></a><a href="#Footnote_74" class="fnanchor">[74]</a></p>
-
-<p>In some matters Saint-German considered that the
-State might reasonably interfere in regard to the religious
-life. The State, he thinks, would have no right
-whatever to prohibit religious vows altogether; but it
-would be competent for the secular authority to lay
-down conditions to prevent abuses and generally protect<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[62]</a></span>
-society where such protection was needed. “It
-would be good,” for example, he writes, “to make a
-law that no religious house should receive any child
-below a certain age into the habit, and that he should
-not be moved from the place into which he had been
-received without the knowledge and assent of friends.”
-This would not be to prohibit religious life, which
-would not be a just law, but only the laying down
-of conditions. In the fourth year of Henry IV. the
-four Orders of Friars had such a law made for them;
-“when the four Provincials of the said four Orders
-were sworn by laying their hands upon their breasts in
-open Parliament to observe the said statute.”<a name="FNanchor_75" id="FNanchor_75"></a><a href="#Footnote_75" class="fnanchor">[75]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the same way the State may, Saint-German
-thinks, lay down the conditions for matrimony, so long
-as there was no “interference with the sacrament of
-marriage.” Also, “as I suppose,” he says, “the Parliament
-may well enact that every man that makes profit
-of any offerings (coming) by recourse of pilgrims shall
-be bound under a certain penalty not only to set up
-certain tables to instruct the people how they shall
-worship the saints, but also cause certain sermons to
-be yearly preached there to instruct the people, so
-that through ignorance they do not rather displease
-than please the saints.”<a name="FNanchor_76" id="FNanchor_76"></a><a href="#Footnote_76" class="fnanchor">[76]</a></p>
-
-<p>The State<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[63]</a></span> “may also prohibit any miracle being
-noised abroad on such slight evidence as they have
-been in some places in times past; and that they shall
-not be set up as miracles, under a certain penalty, nor
-reported as miracles by any one till they have been
-proved such in such a manner as shall be appointed
-by Parliament. And it is not unlikely that many persons
-grudge more at the abuse of pilgrimages than at
-the pilgrimages themselves.” Parliament, he points
-out, has from time to time vindicated its right to act
-in matters such as these. For example: “To the
-strengthening of the faith it has enacted that no man
-shall presume to preach without leave of his diocesan
-except certain persons exempted in the statute”
-(2 Henry IV.).<a name="FNanchor_77" id="FNanchor_77"></a><a href="#Footnote_77" class="fnanchor">[77]</a></p>
-
-<p>There are, Saint-German notes, many cases where
-it is by no means clear whether they are strictly belonging
-to spiritual jurisdiction or not. Could the law,
-for example, prohibit a bishop from ordaining any
-candidate to Holy Orders who was not sufficiently
-learned? Could the law which exempted priests from
-serving on any inquest or jury be abrogated? These,
-and such like matters in the borderland, are debatable
-questions; but Saint-German makes it clear that, according
-to his view, it is a mistake for clerics to claim
-more exemptions from the common law than is absolutely
-necessary. That there must be every protection
-for their purely spiritual functions, he fully and cordially
-admits; but when all this is allowed, in his opinion, it
-is a grave mistake for the clergy, even from their point
-of view, to try and stretch their immunities and exemptions
-beyond the required limit. The less the clergy
-were made a “caste,” and the more they fell in with
-the nation at large, the better it would be for all parties
-in the State.</p>
-
-<p>On the question of tithe, Saint-German took the
-laymen’s view. To the ecclesiastics of the period tithes
-were spiritual matters, and all questions arising out of
-them should be settled by archbishop or bishop in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[64]</a></span>
-spiritual courts. The lawyer, on the other hand,
-maintained that though given to secure spiritual services,
-in themselves tithes were temporal, and therefore
-should fall under the administration of the State. Who,
-for example, was to determine what was payable on
-new land, and to whom; say on land recovered from
-the sea? In the first place, according to the lawyer,
-it should be the owner of the soil who should apportion
-the payment, and failing him, the Parliament, and not
-the spirituality.</p>
-
-<p>In another work<a name="FNanchor_78" id="FNanchor_78"></a><a href="#Footnote_78" class="fnanchor">[78]</a> Saint-German puts his view more
-clearly. A tithe that comes irregularly, say once in
-ten or twenty years, cannot be considered necessary
-for the support of the clergy. That people were bound
-to contribute to the just and reasonable maintenance
-of those who serve the altar did not admit of doubt,
-but, he holds, a question arises as to the justice of the
-amount in individual cases. “Though the people be
-bound by the law of reason, and also the law of God,
-to find their spiritual ministers a reasonable portion of
-goods to live upon, yet that they shall pay precisely the
-tenth part to their spiritual ministers in the name of
-that portion is but the law of man.” If the tithe did
-not at any time suffice, “the people would be bound
-to give more” in order to fulfil their Christian duty.
-Some authority must determine, and in his opinion as
-a lawyer and a layman, the only authority competent to
-deal with the matter, so far as the payment of money
-was concerned, was the State; and consequently Parliament
-might, and at times ought, to legislate about the
-payment of tithes.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[65]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_79" id="FNanchor_79"></a><a href="#Footnote_79" class="fnanchor">[79]</a></p>
-
-<p>In a second <i>Treatise concerning the power of the clergy
-and the laws of the realm</i>, Saint-German returns to this
-subject of the relation between the two jurisdictions.
-This book, however, was published after Henry VIII.
-had received his parliamentary title of Supreme Head
-of the Church, and by that time the author’s views had
-naturally become somewhat more advanced on the side
-of State power. In regard to the king’s “Headship,”
-he declares that in reality it is nothing new, but if
-properly understood would be recognised as implied
-in the kingly power, and as having nothing whatever
-to do with the spiritual prerogatives as such. He has
-been speaking of the writ, <i>de excommunicato capiendo</i>, by
-which the State had been accustomed to seize the
-person of one who had been excommunicated by the
-Church for the purpose of punishment by the secular
-arm, and he argues that if the Parliament were to
-abrogate the law, such a change would in no sense
-be a derogation of the rights of the Church. Put
-briefly, the principle upon which he bases this opinion
-is one which was made to apply to many other cases
-besides this special one. It is this: that for a spiritual
-offence no one ought in justice to be made to suffer
-in the temporal order.<a name="FNanchor_80" id="FNanchor_80"></a><a href="#Footnote_80" class="fnanchor">[80]</a> Whilst insisting on this, moreover,
-the lawyer maintained that there were many
-things which had come to be regarded as spiritual,
-which were, in reality, temporal, and that it would
-be better that these should be altogether transferred to
-the secular arm of the State. Such, for example, were,
-in his opinion, the proving and administration of wills,
-the citation and consideration of cases of slander and
-libel and other matters of this nature.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[66]</a></span> “And there
-is no doubt,” he says, “but that the Parliament may
-with a cause take that power from them (<i>i.e.</i> the clergy),
-and might likewise have done so before it was recognised
-by the Parliament and the clergy that the king
-was Head of the Church of England; for he was so
-before the recognition was made, just as all other
-Christian princes are in their own realms over all their
-subjects, spiritual and temporal.”<a name="FNanchor_81" id="FNanchor_81"></a><a href="#Footnote_81" class="fnanchor">[81]</a></p>
-
-<p>Moreover, as regards this, “it lieth in princes to
-appease all variances and unquietness that shall arise
-among the people, by whatsoever occasion it rise,
-spiritual or temporal. And the king’s grace has now
-no new authority in that he is confessed by the clergy
-and authorised by Parliament to be the Head of the
-Church of England. For it is only a declaration of his
-first power committed by God to kingly and regal
-authority and no new grant. Further, that, for all the
-power that he has as Head of the Church, he has yet
-no authority to minister any sacraments, nor to do any
-other spiritual thing whereof our Lord gave power to
-His apostles and disciples only.… And there is no
-doubt that such power as the clergy have by the
-immediate grant of Christ, neither the king nor his
-Parliament can take from them, although they may
-order the manner of the doing.”<a name="FNanchor_82" id="FNanchor_82"></a><a href="#Footnote_82" class="fnanchor">[82]</a></p>
-
-<p>The question whether for grave offences the clergy
-could be tried by the king’s judges was one which had
-long raised bitter feeling on the one side and the other.
-In 1512, Parliament had done something to vindicate
-the power of the secular arm by passing a law practically
-confining the immunity of the clergy to those in
-sacred orders. It ordained<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[67]</a></span> “that all persons hereafter
-committing murder or felony, &amp;c., should not be admitted
-to the benefit of clergy.” This act led to a great
-dispute in the next Parliament, held in 1515. The
-clergy as a body resented the statute as an infringement
-upon their rights and privileges, and the Abbot of
-Winchcombe preached at St. Paul’s Cross to this effect,
-declaring that the Lords Spiritual who had assented
-to the measure had incurred ecclesiastical censures. He
-argued that all clerks were in Holy Orders, and that they
-were consequently not amenable to the secular tribunals.</p>
-
-<p>The king, at the request of many of the Temporal
-Lords and several of the Commons, ordered the case to
-be argued at a meeting held at Blackfriars at which
-the judges were present. At this debate, Dr. Henry
-Standish, a Friar Minor, defended the action of Parliament,
-and maintained that it was a matter of public
-policy that clerks guilty of such offences should be
-tried by the ordinary process of law. In reply to
-the assertion that there was a decree or canon forbidding
-it, and that all Christians were bound by the
-canons under pain of mortal sin, Standish said: “God
-forbid; for there is a decree that all bishops should
-be resident at their cathedrals upon every festival day,
-and yet we see the greater part of the English bishops
-practise the contrary.” Moreover, he maintained that
-the right of exemption of clerks from secular jurisdiction
-had never been allowed in England. The bishops
-were unanimously against the position of Standish,
-and there can be little doubt that they had put forward
-the Abbot of Winchcombe to be their spokesman at
-St. Paul’s Cross. Later on, Standish was charged
-before Convocation with holding tenets derogatory to
-the privileges and jurisdiction of ecclesiastics. He<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[68]</a></span>
-claimed the protection of the king, and the Temporal
-Lords and judges urged the king at all costs to
-maintain his right of royal jurisdiction in the matters
-at issue.</p>
-
-<p>Again a meeting of judges, certain members of
-Parliament, and the king’s council, spiritual and temporal,
-were assembled to deliberate on the matter at the
-Blackfriars. Dr. Standish was supposed to have said
-that the lesser Orders were not Holy, and that the
-exemption of clerks was not <i>de jure divino</i>. These
-opinions he practically admitted, saying with regard
-to the first that there was a great difference between
-the greater Orders and the lesser; and in regard to
-the second, “that the summoning of clerks before
-temporal judges implied no repugnance to the positive
-law of God.” He further partially admitted saying
-that “the study of canon law ought to be laid
-aside, because being but ministerial to divinity it taught
-people to despise that nobler science.” The judges
-decided generally against the contention of the clergy,
-and they, with other lords, met the king at Baynard’s
-Castle to tender their advice on the matter. Here
-Wolsey, kneeling before the king, declared “that he
-believed none of the clergy had any intention to disoblige
-the prerogative royal, that for his part he owed
-all his promotion to his Highness’ favour, and therefore
-would never assent to anything that should lessen
-the rights of the Crown.” But<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[69]</a></span> “that this business
-of conventing clerks before temporal judges was, in
-the opinion of the clergy, directly contrary to the
-laws of God and the liberties of Holy Church, and
-that both himself and the rest of the prelates were
-bound by their oath to maintain this exemption. For
-this reason he entreated the king, in the name of the
-clergy, to refer the matter for decision to the Pope.”
-Archbishop Warham added that in old times some of
-the fathers of the Church had opposed the matter so
-far as to suffer martyrdom in the quarrel. On the
-other hand, Judge Fineux pointed out that spiritual
-judges had no right by any statute to judge any clerk
-for felony, and for this reason many churchmen had
-admitted the competence of the secular courts for this
-purpose.</p>
-
-<p>The king finally replied on the whole case. “By
-the Providence of God,” he said, “we are King of
-England, in which realm our predecessors have never
-owned a superior, and I would have you (the clergy)
-take notice that we are resolved to maintain the rights
-of our crown and temporal jurisdiction in as ample
-manner as any of our progenitors.” In conclusion,
-the Archbishop of Canterbury petitioned the king in
-the name of the clergy for the matter to rest till such
-time as they could lay the case before the See of Rome
-for advice, promising that if the non-exemption of
-clerks was declared not to be against the law of
-God, they would willingly conform to the usage of
-the country.</p>
-
-<p>On this whole question, Saint-German maintained
-that the clergy had been granted exemption from the
-civil law not as a right but as a favour. There was,
-in his opinion, nothing whatever in the nature of the
-clerical state to justify any claim to absolute exemption,
-nor was it, he contended, against the law of
-God that the clergy should be tried for felony and
-other crimes by civil judges. In all such things they,
-like the rest of his people, were subject to their prince,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[70]</a></span>
-who, because he was a Christian, did not, for that
-reason, have any diminished authority over his subjects.
-“Christ,” he remarks, “sent His apostles,” as
-appears from the said words, “to be teachers in spiritual
-matters, and not to be like princes, or to take
-from princes their power.”<a name="FNanchor_83" id="FNanchor_83"></a><a href="#Footnote_83" class="fnanchor">[83]</a> Some, indeed, he says,
-argue that since the coming of our Lord “Christian
-princes have derived their temporal power from the
-spiritual power,” established by Him in right of His
-full and complete dominion over the world. But
-Saint-German not only holds that such a claim has
-no foundation in itself, but that all manner of texts
-of Holy Scripture which are adduced in proof of the
-contention are plainly twisted from their true meaning
-by the spiritual authority. And many, he says, talk
-as if the clergy were the Church, and the Church the
-clergy, whereas they are only one portion, perhaps
-the most important, and possessed of greater and special
-functions; but they were not the whole, and were,
-indeed, endowed with these prerogatives for the use
-and benefit of the lay portion of Christ’s Church.</p>
-
-<p>Contrary to what might have been supposed, the
-difficulty between the clergy and laity about the exemption
-of clerics from all lay jurisdiction did not
-apparently reach any very acute stage. Sir Thomas
-More says that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[71]</a></span> “as for the conventing of priests before
-secular judges, the truth is that at one time the occasion
-of a sermon made the matter come to a discussion
-before the king’s Highness. But neither at any time
-since, nor many years before, I never heard that there
-was any difficulty about it, and, moreover, that matter
-ceased long before any word sprang up about this
-great general division.”<a name="FNanchor_84" id="FNanchor_84"></a><a href="#Footnote_84" class="fnanchor">[84]</a></p>
-
-<p>One question, theoretical indeed, but sufficiently
-practical to indicate the current of thought and feeling
-prevalent at the time, was as to the multiplication of
-holidays on which no work was allowed to be done
-by ecclesiastical law. Saint-German, in common with
-other laymen of the period, maintained that the king,
-or Parliament, as representing the supreme will of the
-State, could refuse to allow the spiritual authority to
-make new holidays. About the Sunday he is doubtful,
-though he inclines to the opinion that so long as there
-was one day in the week set apart for rest and prayer,
-the actual day could be determined by the State. The
-Sunday, he says, is partly by the law of God, partly by
-the law of man. “But as for the other holidays, these
-are but ceremonies, introduced by the devotion of the
-people through the good example of their bishops and
-priests.” And “if the multitude of the holidays is
-thought hurtful to the commonwealth, and tending
-rather to increase vice than virtue, or to give occasion
-of pride rather than meekness, as peradventure the
-synod ales and particular holidays have done in some
-places, then Parliament has good authority to reform
-it. But as for the holidays that are kept in honour
-of Our Lady, the Apostles and other ancient Saints,
-these seem right necessary and expedient.”<a name="FNanchor_85" id="FNanchor_85"></a><a href="#Footnote_85" class="fnanchor">[85]</a></p>
-
-<p>In his work, <i>Salem and Bizance</i>, which appeared in
-1533 as a reply to Sir Thomas More’s <i>Apology</i>, Saint-German
-takes up the same ground as in his more
-strictly legal tracts. He holds that a distinction<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[72]</a></span>
-between the purely spiritual functions of the clergy
-and their position as individuals in the State ought to
-be allowed and recognised. The attitude of ecclesiastics
-generally to such a view was, perhaps not unnaturally,
-one of opposition, and where the State had
-already stepped in and legislated, as for instance in the
-case of “mortuaries,” their action in trying to evade
-the prescription of the law, Saint-German declared
-was doing much harm, in emphasising a needless conflict
-between the ecclesiastical and secular jurisdiction.
-“As long,” he writes, “as spiritual rulers will pretend
-that their authority is so high and so immediately
-derived from God that people are bound to obey them
-and to accept all that they do and teach without
-argument, resistance, or murmuring against them”
-there will be discord and difficulty.<a name="FNanchor_86" id="FNanchor_86"></a><a href="#Footnote_86" class="fnanchor">[86]</a></p>
-
-<p>Christopher Saint-German’s position was not by
-any means that of one who would attack the
-clergy all along the line, and deprive them of
-all power and influence, like so many of the
-foreign sectaries of the time. He admitted, and
-indeed insisted on, the fact that they had received
-great and undoubted powers by their high vocation,
-having their spiritual jurisdiction immediately from
-God. Their temporalities, however, he maintained
-they received from the secular power, and were protected
-by the State in their possession. He fully
-agreed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[73]</a></span> “that such things as the whole clergy of
-Christendom teach and order in spiritual things, and
-which of long time have been by long custom and
-usage in the whole body of Christendom ratified,
-agreed, and confirmed, by the spirituality and temporality,
-ought to be received with reverence.”<a name="FNanchor_87" id="FNanchor_87"></a><a href="#Footnote_87" class="fnanchor">[87]</a></p>
-
-<p>To this part of Saint-German’s book Sir Thomas
-More takes exception in his <i>Apology</i>. The former had
-said, that as long as the spiritual rulers will pretend
-that their authority is so high and so immediately
-derived from God that the people are bound to obey
-them and accept all that they do and teach “there
-would certainly be divisions and dissensions.” “If he
-mean,” replies More, “that they speak thus of all
-their whole authority that they may now lawfully do
-and say at this time: I answer that they neither pretend,
-nor never did, that all their authority is given
-them immediately by God. They have authority now
-to do divers things by the grant of kings and princes,
-just as many temporal men also have, and by such
-grants they have such rights in such things as temporal
-men have in theirs.”<a name="FNanchor_88" id="FNanchor_88"></a><a href="#Footnote_88" class="fnanchor">[88]</a></p>
-
-<p>Some authority and power they certainly have from
-God, he says, “For the greatest and highest and most
-excellent authority that they have, either God has Himself
-given it to them, or else they are very presumptuous
-and usurp many things far above all reason. For I
-have never read, or at least I do not remember to have
-read, that any king granted them the authority that now
-not only prelates but other poor plain priests daily take
-on them in ministering the sacraments and consecrating
-the Blessed Body of Christ.”<a name="FNanchor_89" id="FNanchor_89"></a><a href="#Footnote_89" class="fnanchor">[89]</a></p>
-
-<p>Another popular book of the period, published by
-Berthelet, just on the eve of the Reformation, is the
-anonymous <i>Dialogue between a Knight and a Clerk concerning<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[74]</a></span>
-the power spiritual and temporal</i>. We are not here
-concerned with the author’s views as to the power of
-the Popes, but only with what he states about the
-attitude of men’s minds to the difficulties consequent
-upon the confusion of the two jurisdictions. <i>Miles</i> (the
-Knight), who, of course, took the part of the upholder
-of the secular power, clearly distinguished, like
-Saint-German, between directly spiritual prerogatives
-and the authority and position assured to the clergy by
-the State. “God forbid,” he says, “that I should deny
-the right of Holy Church to know and correct men for
-their sins. Not to hold this would be to deny the
-sacrament of Penance and Confession altogether.”<a name="FNanchor_90" id="FNanchor_90"></a><a href="#Footnote_90" class="fnanchor">[90]</a>
-Moreover, like Saint-German, this author, in the person
-of <i>Miles</i>, insists that the temporality “are bound to find
-the spirituality that worship and serve God all that is
-necessary for them. For so do all nations.”<a name="FNanchor_91" id="FNanchor_91"></a><a href="#Footnote_91" class="fnanchor">[91]</a> But
-the direction of such temporalities must, he contends,
-be in the hands of the State. “What,” asks the conservative
-cleric, in the person of <i>Clericus</i>, “What have
-princes and kings to do with the governance of our
-temporalities? Let them take their own and order
-their own, and suffer us to be in peace with ours.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sir,” replies <i>Miles</i>,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[75]</a></span> “the princes must in any wise
-have to do therewith. I pray you, ought not men
-above all things to mind the health of our souls?
-Ought not we to see the wills of our forefathers fulfilled?
-Falleth it not to you to pray for our forefathers
-that are passed out of this life? And did not
-our fathers give you our temporalities right plentifully,
-to the intent that you should pray for them and spend
-it all to the honour of God? And ye do nothing so;
-but ye spend your temporalities in sinful deeds and
-vanities, which temporalities ye should spend in works
-of charity, and in alms-deeds to the poor and needy.
-For to this purpose our forefathers gave ‘great and
-huge dominions.’ You have received them ‘to the
-intent to have clothes and food … and all overplus
-besides these you ought to spend on deeds of mercy
-and pity, as on poor people that are in need, and on
-such as are sick and diseased and oppressed with
-misery.’”<a name="FNanchor_92" id="FNanchor_92"></a><a href="#Footnote_92" class="fnanchor">[92]</a></p>
-
-<p>Further, <i>Miles</i> hints that there are many at that
-time who were casting hungry eyes upon the riches of
-the Church, and that were it not for the protecting power
-of the State, the clergy would soon find that they
-were in worse plight than they think themselves to be.
-And, in answer to the complaints of <i>Clericus</i> that ecclesiastics
-are taxed too hardly for money to be spent on
-soldiers, ships, and engines of war, he tells him that
-there is no reason in the nature of things why ecclesiastical
-property should not bear the burden of
-national works as well as every other kind of wealth.
-“I pray you hold your noise,” he exclaims somewhat
-rudely;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[76]</a></span> “stop your grudging and grumbling, and listen
-patiently. Look at your many neighbours round about
-you in the land, who, wanting the wherewith to support
-life, gape still after your goods. If the king’s power
-failed, what rest should you have? Would not the
-gentlemen such as be needy, and such as have spent
-their substance prodigally, when they have consumed
-their own, turn to yours, and waste and destroy all
-you have? Therefore, the king’s strength is to you
-instead of a strong wall, and you wot well that the
-king’s peace is your peace, and the king’s safeguard
-is your safeguard.”<a name="FNanchor_93" id="FNanchor_93"></a><a href="#Footnote_93" class="fnanchor">[93]</a></p>
-
-<p>The foregoing pages represent some of the practical
-difficulties which were being experienced on the
-eve of the Reformation between the ecclesiastical and
-lay portion of the State in the question of jurisdiction.
-Everything points to the fact that the chief difficulty
-was certainly not religious. The ecclesiastical jurisdiction
-in matters spiritual was cordially admitted by
-all but a few fanatics. What even many churchmen
-objected to, were the claims for exemption
-put forward by ecclesiastics in the name of religion,
-which they felt to be a stretching of spiritual prerogatives
-into the domain of the temporal sovereign.
-History has shown that most of these claims have in
-practice been disallowed, not only without detriment
-to the spiritual work of the Church, but in some instances
-at least it was the frank recognition of the State
-rights, which, under Providence, saved nations from
-the general defection which seemed to threaten the
-old ecclesiastical system. Most of the difficulties
-which were, as we have seen, experienced and debated
-in England were unfelt in Spain, where the sovereign
-from the first made his position as to the temporalities
-of the Church clearly understood by all. In Naples,
-in like manner, the right of State patronage, however
-objectionable to the ecclesiastical legists, was strictly
-maintained. In France, the danger which at one time
-threatened an overthrow of religion similar to that
-which had fallen on Germany, and which at the time
-was looming dark over England, was averted by the
-celebrated Concordat between Leo X. and Francis I.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[77]</a></span>
-By this settlement of outstanding difficulties between
-the two jurisdictions, all rights of election to ecclesiastical
-dignities was swept away with the full and
-express sanction of the Pope. The nomination of
-all bishops and other dignitaries was vested in the
-king, subject, of course, to Papal confirmation. All
-appeals were, in the first place, to be carried in ordinary
-cases to immediate superiors acting in the fixed
-tribunals of the country, and then only to the Holy
-See. The Papal power of appointment to benefices
-was by this agreement strictly limited; and the policy
-of the document was generally directed to securing
-the most important ecclesiastical positions, including
-even parish churches in towns, to educated men. It
-is to this settlement of outstanding difficulties, the
-constant causes of friction&mdash;a settlement of difficulties
-which must be regarded as economic and administrative
-rather than as religious&mdash;that so good a judge
-as M. Hanotaux, the statesman and historian, attributes
-nothing less than the maintenance of the old religion
-in France. In his opinion, this Concordat did in fact
-remove, to a great extent, the genuine grievances which
-had long been felt by the people at large, which elsewhere
-the Reformers of the sixteenth century skilfully
-seized upon, as likely to afford them the most plausible
-means for furthering their schemes of change in matters
-strictly religious.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[78]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_IV" id="CHAPTER_IV"></a>CHAPTER IV<br />
-<span class="smaller">ENGLAND AND THE POPE</span></h2>
-
-<p>Nothing is more necessary for one who desires to
-appreciate the true meaning of the English Reformation
-than to understand the attitude of men’s minds
-to the Pope and the See of Rome on the eve of the
-great change. As in the event, the religious upheaval
-did, in fact, lead to a national rejection of the jurisdiction
-of the Roman Pontiff, it is not unnatural that
-those who do not look below the surface should see
-in this act the outcome and inevitable consequence
-of long-continued irritation at a foreign domination.
-The renunciation of Papal jurisdiction, in other words,
-is taken as sufficient evidence of national hostility to
-the Holy See. If this be the true explanation of the
-fact, it is obvious that in the literature of the period
-immediately preceding the formal renunciation of
-ecclesiastical dependence on Rome, evidence more or
-less abundant will be found of this feeling of dislike,
-if not of detestation, for a yoke which we are told
-had become unbearable.</p>
-
-<p>At the outset, it must be confessed that any one
-who will go to the literature of the period with the
-expectation of collecting evidence of this kind is
-doomed to disappointment. If we put on one side
-the diatribes and scurrilous invectives of advanced
-reformers, when the day of the doctrinal Reformation<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[79]</a></span>
-had already dawned, the inquirer in this field of knowledge
-can hardly fail to be struck by the absence of
-indications of any real hostility to the See of Rome in
-the period in question. So far as the works of the age
-are concerned: so far, too, as the acts of individuals
-and even of those who were responsible agents of the
-State go, the evidence of an unquestioned acceptance
-of the spiritual jurisdiction of the Pope, as Head of
-the Christian Church, is simply overwhelming. In
-their acceptance of this supreme authority the English
-were perhaps neither demonstrative nor loudly protesting,
-but this in no way derogated from their loyal
-and unquestioning acceptance of the supremacy of the
-Holy See. History shows that up to the very eve
-of the rejection of this supremacy the attitude of
-Englishmen, in spite of difficulties and misunderstandings,
-had been persistently one of respect for the
-Pope as their spiritual head. Whilst other nations of
-Christendom had been in the past centuries engaged in
-endeavours by diplomacy, and even by force of
-arms, to capture the Pope that they might use him
-for their own national profit, England, with nothing
-to gain, expecting nothing, seeking nothing, had never
-entered on that line of policy, but had been content to
-bow to his authority as to that of the appointed Head
-of Christ’s Church on earth. Of this much there can
-be no doubt. They did not reason about it, nor sift
-and sort the grounds of their acceptance, any more
-than a child would dream of searching into, or
-philosophising upon, the obedience he freely gives to
-his parents.</p>
-
-<p>That there were at times disagreements and quarrels
-may be admitted without in the least affecting the real<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[80]</a></span>
-attitude and uninterrupted spiritual dependence of
-England on the Holy See. Such disputes were
-wholly the outcome of misunderstandings as to matters
-in the domain rather of the temporal than of the
-spiritual, or of points in the broad debatable land that
-lies between the two jurisdictions. It is a failure to
-understand the distinction which exists between these
-that has led many writers to think that in the rejection
-by Englishmen of claims put forward at various times
-by the Roman curia in matters wholly temporal, or
-where the temporal became involved in the spiritual,
-they have a proof that England never fully acknowledged
-the spiritual headship of the See of Rome.</p>
-
-<p>That the Pope did in fact exercise great powers
-in England over and above those in his spiritual prerogative
-is a matter of history. No one has more
-thoroughly examined this subject than Professor Maitland,
-and the summary of his conclusions given in his
-<i>History of English Law</i> will serve to correct many
-misconceptions upon the matter. What he says may
-be taken as giving a fairly accurate picture of the
-relations of the Christian nations of Christendom to
-the Holy See from the twelfth century to the disintegration
-of the system in the throes of the Reformation.
-“It was a wonderful system,” he writes.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[81]</a></span>
-“The whole of Western Europe was subject to the
-jurisdiction of one tribunal of last resort, the Roman
-curia. Appeals to it were encouraged by all manner
-of means, appeals at almost every stage of almost every
-proceeding. But the Pope was far more than the
-president of a court of appeal. Very frequently the
-courts Christian which did justice in England were
-courts which were acting under his supervision and
-carrying out his written instructions. A very large
-part, and by far the most permanently important part,
-of the ecclesiastical litigation that went on in this
-country came before English prelates who were sitting
-not as English prelates, not as ‘judges ordinary,’ but
-as mere delegates of the Pope, commissioned to hear
-and determine this or that particular case. Bracton,
-indeed, treats the Pope as the ordinary judge of
-every Englishman in spiritual things, and the only
-ordinary judge whose powers are unlimited.”</p>
-
-<p>The Pope enjoyed a power of declaring the law to
-which but very wide and very vague limits could be set.
-Each separate church might have its customs, but there
-was a <i>lex communis</i>, a common law, of the universal Church.
-In the view of the canonist, any special rules of the Church
-of England have hardly a wider scope, hardly a less dependent
-place, than have the customs of Kent or the bye-laws
-of London in the eye of the English lawyer.<a name="FNanchor_94" id="FNanchor_94"></a><a href="#Footnote_94" class="fnanchor">[94]</a></p>
-
-<p>We have only to examine the <i>Regesta</i> of the Popes,
-even up to the dawn of difficulties in the reign of
-Henry VIII., to see that the system as sketched in this
-passage was in full working order; and it was herein
-that chiefly lay the danger even to the spiritual prerogatives
-of the Head of the Church. Had the Providence<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[82]</a></span>
-of God destined that the nations of the world should
-have become a Christendom in fact&mdash;a theocracy presided
-over by his Vicar on earth&mdash;the system elaborated
-by the Roman curia would not have tended doubtless
-to obscure the real and essential prerogatives of the
-spiritual Head of the Christian Church. As it was by
-Providence ordained, and as subsequent events have
-shown, claims of authority to determine matters more
-or less of the temporal order, together with the worldly
-pomp and show with which the Popes of the renaissance
-had surrounded themselves, not only tended to
-obscure the higher and supernatural powers which are
-the enduring heritage of St. Peter’s successors in the
-See of Rome; but, however clear the distinction between
-the necessary and the accidental prerogatives
-might appear to the mind of the trained theologian or
-the perception of the saint, to the ordinary man, when
-the one was called in question the other was imperilled.
-And, as a fact, in England popular irritation at the
-interference of the spirituality generally in matters not
-wholly within the strictly ecclesiastical sphere was, at a
-given moment, skilfully turned by the small reforming
-party into national, if tacit, acquiescence in the rejection
-of even the spiritual prerogatives of the Roman Pontiffs.</p>
-
-<p>It is necessary to insist upon this matter if the full
-meaning of the Reformation movement is to be understood.
-Here in England, there can be no doubt, on
-the one hand, that no nation more fully and freely
-bowed to the spiritual supremacy of the Holy See; on
-the other, that there was a dislike of interference in
-matters which they regarded, rightly or wrongly, as
-outside the sphere of the Papal prerogative. The
-national feeling had grown by leaps and bounds in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[83]</a></span>
-the early years of the sixteenth century. But it was
-not until the ardent spirits among the doctrinal reformers
-had succeeded in weakening the hold of Catholicity
-in religion on the hearts of the people that this
-rise of national feeling entered into the ecclesiastical
-domain, and the love of country could be effectually
-used to turn them against the Pope, even as Head of
-the Christian Church. With this distinction clearly
-before the mind, it is possible to understand the general
-attitude of the English nation to the Pope and his
-authority on the eve of the overthrow of his jurisdiction.</p>
-
-<p>To begin with some evidence of popular teaching
-as to the Pope’s position as Head of the Church. It is,
-of course, evident that in many works the supremacy
-of the Holy See is assumed and not positively stated.
-This is exactly what we should expect in a matter
-which was certainly taken for granted by all. William
-Bond, a learned priest, and subsequently a monk of
-Syon, with Richard Whitford, was the author of a book
-called the <i>Pilgrimage of Perfection</i>, published by Wynkyn
-de Worde in 1531. It is a work, as the author tells
-us, “very profitable to all Christian persons to read”;
-and the third book consists of a long and careful explanation
-of the Creed. In the section treating about
-the tenth article is to be found a very complete statement
-of the teaching of the Christian religion on the
-Church. After taking the marks of the Church, the
-author says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[84]</a></span> “There may be set no other foundation
-for the Church, but only that which is put, namely,
-Christ Jesus. It is certain, since it is founded on the
-Apostles, as our Lord said to Peter, ‘I have prayed
-that thy faith fail not.’ And no more it shall; for (as
-St. Cyprian says) the Church of Rome was never yet
-the root of heresy. This Church Apostolic is so named
-the Church of Rome, because St. Peter and St. Paul,
-who under Christ were heads and princes of this
-Church, deposited there the tabernacles of their bodies,
-which God willed should be buried there and rest in
-Rome, and that should be the chief see in the world;
-just as commonly in all other places the chief see of
-the bishop is where the chief saint and bishop of the
-see is buried. By this you may know how Christ is the
-Head of the Church, and how our Holy Father the Pope
-of Rome is Head of the Church. Many, because they
-know not this mystery of Holy Scripture, have erred
-and fallen to heresies in denying the excellent dignity
-of our Holy Father the Pope of Rome.”<a name="FNanchor_95" id="FNanchor_95"></a><a href="#Footnote_95" class="fnanchor">[95]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the same way Roger Edgworth, a preacher in
-the reign of Henry VIII., speaking on the text “<i>Tu
-vocaberis Cephas</i>,” says: “And by this the error and
-ignorance of certain summalists are confounded, who
-take this text as one of their strongest reasons for the
-supremacy of the Pope of Rome. In so doing, such
-summalists would plainly destroy the text of St. John’s
-Gospel to serve their purpose, which they have no
-need to do, for there are as well texts of Holy Scripture
-and passages of ancient writers which abundantly prove
-the said primacy of the Pope.”<a name="FNanchor_96" id="FNanchor_96"></a><a href="#Footnote_96" class="fnanchor">[96]</a></p>
-
-<p>When by 1523 the attacks of Luther and his
-followers on the position of the Pope had turned
-men’s minds in England to the question, and caused
-them to examine into the grounds of their belief, several
-books on the subject appeared in England. One in
-particular, intended to be subsidiary to the volume<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[85]</a></span>
-published by the king himself against Luther, was
-written by a theologian named Edward Powell, and
-published by Pynson in London. In his preface,
-Powell says that before printing his work he had
-submitted it to the most learned authority at Oxford
-(<i>eruditissimo Oxoniensium</i>). The first part of the book
-is devoted to a scientific treatise upon the Pope’s
-supremacy, with all the proofs from Scripture and the
-Fathers set out in detail. “This then,” he concludes,
-“is the Catholic Church, which, having the Roman
-Pontiff, the successor of Peter, as its head, offers the
-means of sanctifying the souls of all its members, and
-testifies to the truth of all that is to be taught.” The
-high priesthood of Peter “is said to be Roman, not
-because it cannot be elsewhere, but through a certain
-congruity which makes Rome the most fitting place.
-That is, that where the centre of the world’s government
-was, there also should be placed the high priesthood of
-Christ. Just as of old the summus Pontifex was in
-Jerusalem, the metropolis of the Jewish nation, so now
-it is in Rome, the centre of Christian civilisation.”<a name="FNanchor_97" id="FNanchor_97"></a><a href="#Footnote_97" class="fnanchor">[97]</a></p>
-
-<p>We naturally, of course, turn to the works of
-Sir Thomas More for evidence of the teaching as to
-the Pope’s position at this period; and his testimony
-is abundant and definite. Thus in the second book
-of his <i>Dyalogue</i>, written in 1528, arguing that there
-must be unity in the Church of Christ, he points out
-that the effect of Lutheranism has been to breed diversity
-of faith and practice. “Though they began so
-late,” he writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[86]</a></span> “yet there are not only as many sects
-almost as men, but also the masters themselves change
-their minds and their opinions every day. Bohemia
-is also in the same case: one faith in the town, another
-in the field; one in Prague, another in the next town;
-and yet in Prague itself, one faith in one street, another
-in the next. And yet all these acknowledge that they
-cannot have the Sacraments ministered but by such
-priests as are made by authority derived and conveyed
-from the Pope who is, under Christ, Vicar and head of
-our Church.”<a name="FNanchor_98" id="FNanchor_98"></a><a href="#Footnote_98" class="fnanchor">[98]</a> It is important to note in this passage
-how the author takes for granted the Pope’s supreme
-authority over the Christian Church. To this subject
-he returns, and is more explicit in a later chapter of
-the same book. The Church, he says, is the “company
-and congregation of all nations professing the
-name of Christ.” This church “has begun with Christ,
-and has had Him for its head and St. Peter His Vicar
-after Him, and the head under Him; and always since,
-the successors of him continually. And it has had His
-holy faith and His blessed Sacraments and His holy
-Scriptures delivered, kept, and conserved therein by
-God and His Holy Spirit, and albeit some nations fall
-away, yet just as no matter how many boughs whatever
-fall from the tree, even though more fall than
-be left thereon, still there is no doubt which is the
-very tree, although each of them were planted again in
-another place and grew to a greater than the stock it
-first came off, in the same way we see and know well
-that all the companies and sects of heretics and schismatics,
-however great they grow, come out of this Church
-I speak of; and we know that the heretics are they
-that are severed, and the Church the stock that they all
-come out of.”<a name="FNanchor_99" id="FNanchor_99"></a><a href="#Footnote_99" class="fnanchor">[99]</a> Here Sir Thomas More expressly gives<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[87]</a></span>
-communion with the successors of St. Peter as one
-of the chief tests of the true Church.</p>
-
-<p>Again, in his <i>Confutation of Tyndale’s Answer</i>, written
-in 1532 when he was Lord Chancellor, Sir Thomas
-More speaks specially about the absolute necessity of
-the Church being One and not able to teach error.
-There is one known and recognised Church existing
-throughout the world, which “is that mystical body be
-it never so sick.” Of this mystical body “Christ is the
-principal head”; and it is no part of his concern, he
-says, for the moment to determine “whether the successor
-of St. Peter is his vicar-general and head under
-him, as all Christian nations have now long taken him.”<a name="FNanchor_100" id="FNanchor_100"></a><a href="#Footnote_100" class="fnanchor">[100]</a>
-Later on he classes himself with “poor popish men,”<a name="FNanchor_101" id="FNanchor_101"></a><a href="#Footnote_101" class="fnanchor">[101]</a>
-and in the fifth book he discusses the question “whether
-the Pope and his sect” (as Tyndale called them) “is
-Christ’s Church or no.” On this matter More is perfectly
-clear. “I call the Church of Christ,” he says,
-“the known Catholic Church of all Christian nations,
-neither gone out nor cut off. And although all these
-nations do now and have long since recognised and
-acknowledged the Pope, not as the bishop of Rome
-but as the successor of St. Peter, to be their chief
-spiritual governor under God and Christ’s Vicar on
-earth, yet I never put the Pope as part of the definition
-of the Church, by defining it to be the common
-known congregation of all Christian nations under one
-head the Pope.”</p>
-
-<p>I avoided this definition purposely, he continues,
-so as not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[88]</a></span> “to entangle the matter with the two questions
-at once, for I knew well that the Church being
-proved this common known Catholic congregation of
-all Christian nations abiding together in one faith,
-neither fallen nor cut off; there might, peradventure,
-be made a second question after that, whether over
-all this Catholic Church the Pope must needs be head
-and chief governor and chief spiritual shepherd, or
-whether, if the unity of the faith was kept among
-them all, every province might have its own spiritual
-chief over itself, without any recourse unto the
-Pope.…</p>
-
-<p>“For the avoiding of all such intricacies, I purposely
-abstained from putting the Pope as part of
-the definition of the Church, as a thing that was not
-necessary; for if he be the necessary head, he is included
-in the name of the whole body, and whether
-he be or not is a matter to be treated and disputed
-of besides” (p. 615). As to Tyndale’s railing against
-the authority of the Pope because there have been
-“Popes that have evil played their parts,” he should
-remember, says More, that “there have been Popes
-again right holy men, saints and martyrs too,” and
-that, moreover, the personal question of goodness or
-badness has nothing to say to the office.<a name="FNanchor_102" id="FNanchor_102"></a><a href="#Footnote_102" class="fnanchor">[102]</a></p>
-
-<p>In like manner, More, when arguing against Friar
-Barnes, says that like the Donatists “these heretics
-call the Catholic Christian people papists,” and in this
-they are right, since “Saint Austin called the successor
-of Saint Peter the chief head on earth of the whole
-Catholic Church, as well as any man does now.” He
-here plainly states his view of the supremacy of the See
-of Rome.<a name="FNanchor_103" id="FNanchor_103"></a><a href="#Footnote_103" class="fnanchor">[103]</a> He accepted it not only as an antiquarian
-fact, but as a thing necessary for the preservation of the
-unity of the Faith. Into the further question whether<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[89]</a></span>
-the office of supreme pastor was established by Christ
-Himself, or, as theologians would say, <i>de jure divino</i>,
-or whether it had grown with the growth and needs
-of the Church, More did not then enter. The fact was
-sufficient for him that the only Christian Church he
-recognised had for long ages regarded the Pope as
-the <i>Pastor pastorum</i>, the supreme spiritual head of the
-Church of Christ. His own words, almost at the end
-of his life, are the best indication of his mature conclusion
-on this matter. “I have,” he says, “by the
-grace of God, been always a Catholic, never out of
-communion with the Roman Pontiff; but I have heard
-it said at times that the authority of the Roman Pontiff
-was certainly lawful and to be respected, but still an
-authority derived from human law, and not standing upon
-a divine prescription. Then, when I observed that public
-affairs were so ordered that the sources of the power
-of the Roman Pontiff would necessarily be examined, I
-gave myself up to a diligent examination of that question
-for the space of seven years, and found that the authority
-of the Roman Pontiff, which you rashly&mdash;I will
-not use stronger language&mdash;have set aside, is not only
-lawful to be respected and necessary, but also grounded
-on the divine law and prescription. That is my opinion,
-that is the belief in which, by the grace of God, I shall
-die.”<a name="FNanchor_104" id="FNanchor_104"></a><a href="#Footnote_104" class="fnanchor">[104]</a></p>
-
-<p>Looking at More’s position in regard to this question
-in the light of all that he has written, it would
-seem to be certain that he never for a moment doubted
-that the Papacy was necessary for the Church. He
-accepted this without regard to the reasons of the faith
-that was in him, and in this he was not different from<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[90]</a></span>
-the body of Englishmen at large. When, in 1522,
-the book by Henry VIII. appeared against Luther,
-it drew the attention of Sir Thomas specially to a
-consideration of the grounds upon which the supremacy
-of the Pope was held by Catholics. As the result
-of his examination he became so convinced that it was
-of divine institution that “my conscience would be
-in right great peril,” he says, “if I should follow the
-other side and deny the primacy to be provided of
-God.” Even before examination More evidently held
-implicitly the same ideas, since in his Latin book against
-Luther, published in 1523, he declared his entire
-agreement with Bishop Fisher on the subject. That
-the latter was fully acquainted with the reasons which
-went to prove that the Papacy was of divine institution,
-and that he fully accepted it as such, is certain.<a name="FNanchor_105" id="FNanchor_105"></a><a href="#Footnote_105" class="fnanchor">[105]</a></p>
-
-<p>When, with the failure of the divorce proceedings,
-came the rejection of Papal supremacy in England,
-there were plenty of people ready to take the winning
-side, urging that the rejection was just, and not contrary
-to the true conception of the Christian Church.
-It is interesting to note that in all the pulpit tirades
-against the Pope and what was called his “usurped
-supremacy,” there is no suggestion that this supremacy
-had not hitherto been fully and freely recognised by
-all in the country. On the contrary, the change was
-regarded as a happy emancipation from an authority<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[91]</a></span>
-which had been hitherto submitted to without question
-or doubt. A sermon preached at St. Paul’s the
-Sunday after the execution of the Venerable Bishop
-Fisher, and a few days before Sir Thomas More was
-called to lay down his life for the same cause, is of
-interest, as specially making mention of these two
-great men, and of the reasons which had forced them
-to lay down their lives in the Pope’s quarrel. The
-preacher was one Simon Matthew, and his object was
-to instruct the people in the new theory of the Christian
-Church necessary on the rejection of the headship of
-the Pope. “The diversity of regions and countries,”
-he says, “does not make any diversity of churches,
-but a unity of faith makes all regions one Church.”
-“There was,” he continued, “no necessity to know
-Peter, as many have reckoned, in the Bishop of Rome,
-(teaching) that except we knew him and his holy
-college, we could not be of Christ’s Church. Many
-have thought it necessary that if a man would be a
-member of the Church of Christ, he must belong to
-the holy church of Rome and take the Holy Father
-thereof for the supreme Head and for the Vicar of
-Christ, yea for Christ Himself, (since) to be divided
-from him was even to be divided from Christ.” This,
-the preacher informs his audience, is “damnable teaching,”
-and that “the Bishop of Rome has no more
-power by the laws of God in this realm than any foreign
-bishop.”</p>
-
-<p>He then goes on to speak of what was, no doubt,
-in everybody’s mind at the time, the condemnation of
-the two eminent Englishmen for upholding the ancient
-teachings as to the Pope’s spiritual headship. “Of
-late,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[92]</a></span> “you have had experience of some,
-whom neither friends nor kinsfolk, nor the judgment
-of both universities, Cambridge and Oxford, nor the
-universal consent of all the clergy of this realm, nor
-the laws of the Parliament, nor their most natural and
-loving prince, could by any gentle ways revoke from
-their disobedience, but would needs persist therein,
-giving pernicious occasion to the multitude to murmur
-and grudge at the king’s laws, seeing that they were
-men of estimation and would be seen wiser than all
-the realm and of better conscience than others, justifying
-themselves and condemning all the realm besides.
-These being condemned and the king’s prisoners, yet
-did not cease to conceive ill of our sovereign, refusing
-his laws, but even in prison wrote to their mutual
-comfort in their damnable opinions. I mean Doctor
-Fisher and Sir Thomas More, whom I am as sorry to
-name as any man here is to hear named: sorry for
-that they, being sometime men of worship and honour,
-men of famous learning and many excellent graces
-and so tenderly sometime beloved by their prince,
-should thus unkindly, unnaturally, and traitorously use
-themselves. Our Lord give them grace to be repentant!
-Let neither their fame, learning, nor honour
-move you loving subjects from your prince; but regard
-ye the truth.”</p>
-
-<p>The preacher then goes on to condemn the coarse
-style of preaching against the Pope in which some
-indulged at that time. “I would exhort,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</a></span>
-“such as are of my sort and use preaching, so to
-temper their words that they be not noted to speak of
-stomach and rather to prate than preach. Nor would
-I have the defenders of the king’s matters rage and rail,
-or scold, as many are thought to do, calling the Bishop
-of Rome the ‘harlot of Babylon’ or ‘the beast of
-Rome,’ with many such other, as I have heard some
-say; these be meeter to preach at Paul’s Wharf than
-at Paul’s Cross.”<a name="FNanchor_106" id="FNanchor_106"></a><a href="#Footnote_106" class="fnanchor">[106]</a></p>
-
-<p>The care that was taken at this time in sermons to
-the people to decry the Pope’s authority, as well as the
-abuse which was hurled at his office, is in reality
-ample proof of the popular belief in his supremacy,
-which it was necessary to eradicate from the hearts
-of the English people. Few, probably, would have
-been able to state the reason for their belief; but that
-the spiritual headship was fully and generally accepted
-as a fact is, in view of the works of the period, not open
-to question. Had there been disbelief, or even doubt,
-as to the matter, some evidence of this would be forthcoming
-in the years that preceded the final overthrow
-of Papal jurisdiction in England.</p>
-
-<p>Nor are direct declarations of the faith of the
-English Church wanting. To the evidence already
-adduced, a sermon preached by Bishop Longland in
-1527, before the archbishops and bishops of England
-in synod at Westminster, may be added. The discourse
-is directed against the errors of Luther and
-the social evils to which his teaching had led in Germany.
-The English bishops, Bishop Longland declares,
-are determined to do all in their power to
-preserve the English Church from this evil teaching,
-and he exhorts all to pray that God will not allow
-the universal and chief Church&mdash;the Roman Church&mdash;to
-be further afflicted, that He will restore liberty
-to the most Holy Father and high-priest now impiously<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[94]</a></span>
-imprisoned, and in a lamentable state; that He Himself
-will protect the Church’s freedom threatened by a
-multitude of evil men, and through the pious prayers
-of His people will free it and restore its most Holy
-Father. Just as the early Christians prayed when Peter
-was in prison, so ought all to pray in these days of
-affliction. “Shall we not,” he cries, “mourn for the
-evil life of the chief Church (of Christendom)? Shall
-we not beseech God for the liberation of the primate
-and chief ruler of the Church? Let us pray then; let
-us pray that through our prayers we may be heard.
-Let us implore freedom for our mother, the Catholic
-Church, and the liberty, so necessary for the Christian
-religion, of our chief Father on earth&mdash;the Pope.”<a name="FNanchor_107" id="FNanchor_107"></a><a href="#Footnote_107" class="fnanchor">[107]</a></p>
-
-<p>Again, Dr. John Clark, the English ambassador in
-Rome, when presenting Henry’s book against Luther to
-Leo X. in public consistory, said that the English king
-had taken up the defence of the Church because in
-attacking the Pope the German reformer had tried to
-subvert the order established by God Himself. In
-the <i>Babylonian Captivity of the Church</i> he had given
-to the world a book “most pernicious to mankind,”
-and before presenting Henry’s reply, he begged to be
-allowed to protest “the devotion and veneration of
-the king towards the Pope and his most Holy See.”
-Luther had declared war “not only against your
-Holiness but also against your office; against the ecclesiastical
-hierarchy, against this See, and against that
-Rock established by God Himself.” England, the
-speaker continued, “has never been behind other
-nations in the worship of God and the Christian faith,
-and in obedience to the Roman Church.” Hence<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[95]</a></span>
-“no nation” detests more cordially “this monster
-(Luther) and the heresies broached by him.” For he
-has declared war “not only against your Holiness but
-against your office; against the ecclesiastical hierarchy,
-against this See, that Rock established by God Himself.”<a name="FNanchor_108" id="FNanchor_108"></a><a href="#Footnote_108" class="fnanchor">[108]</a></p>
-
-<p>Whilst the evidence goes to show the full acceptance
-by the English people of the Pope’s spiritual
-headship of the Church, it is also true that the system
-elaborated by the ecclesiastical lawyers in the later
-Middle Ages, dealing, as it did, so largely with temporal
-matters, property, and the rights attaching thereto,
-opened the door to causes of disagreement between
-Rome and England, and at times open complaints and
-criticism of the exercise of Roman authority in England
-made themselves heard. This is true of all periods of
-English history. Since these disagreements are obviously
-altogether connected with the question, not of
-spirituals, but of temporals, they would not require any
-more special notice but for the misunderstandings they
-have given rise to in regard to the general attitude of
-men’s minds to Rome and Papal authority on the eve
-of the Reformation. It is easy to find evidence of this.
-As early as 1517, a work bearing on this question appeared
-in England. It was a translation of several
-tracts that had been published abroad on the debated
-matter of Constantine’s donation to the Pope,
-and it was issued from the press of Thomas Godfray
-in a well-printed folio. After a translation of the
-Latin version of a Greek manuscript of Constantine’s
-gift, which had been found in the Papal library<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[96]</a></span>
-by Bartolomeo Pincern, and published by order of
-Pope Julius II., there is given in this volume the
-critical examination of this gift by Laurence Valla,
-the opinion of Nicholas of Cusa, written for the Council
-of Basle, and that of St. Antoninus, Archbishop of
-Florence. The interest of the volume for the present
-purpose chiefly consists in the fact of the publication
-in England at this date of the views expressed
-by Laurence Valla. Valla had been a canon of the
-Lateran and an eminent scholar, who was employed
-by Pope Nicholas V. to translate Thucydides and
-Herodotus. His outspoken words got him into difficulties
-with the Roman curia, and obliged him to
-retire to Naples, where he died in 1457. The tract
-was edited with a preface by the leader of the reform
-party in Germany, Ulrich von Hutten. In this introduction
-von Hutten says that by the publication of
-Pincern’s translation of the supposed donation of
-Constantine Julius II. had “provoked and stirred up
-men to war and battle,” and further, he blames the
-Pontiff because he would not permit Valla’s work
-against the genuineness of the gift to be published.
-With the accession of Leo X. von Hutten looked,
-he declares, for better days, since “by striking as it
-were a cymbal of peace the Pope has raised up the
-hearts and minds of all Christian people.” Before
-this time the truth could not be spoken. Popes
-looked “to pluck the riches and goods of all men
-to their own selves,” with the result that “on the
-other side they take away from themselves all that
-belongs to the succession of St. Peter.”</p>
-
-<p>Valla, of course, condemns the supposed donation
-of Constantine to the Pope as spurious, and declares<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[97]</a></span>
-against the temporal claims the See of Rome had
-founded upon it. He strongly objects to the “temporal
-as well as the spiritual sword” being in the hands
-of the successors of St. Peter. “They say,” he writes,
-“that the city of Rome is theirs, that the kingdom of
-Naples is their own property: that all Italy, France, and
-Spain, Germany, England, and all the west part of the
-world belongs to them. For all these nations and
-countries (they say) are contained in the instrument
-and writ of the donation or grant.”</p>
-
-<p>The whole tract is an attack upon the temporal
-sovereignty of the head of the Christian Church, and it
-was indeed a bold thing for Ulrich von Hutten to publish
-it and dedicate it to Pope Leo X. For the present
-purpose it is chiefly important to find all this set out in
-an English dress, whilst so far and for a long while
-after, the English people were loyal and true to the
-spiritual headship of the Pope, and were second to no
-other nation in their attachment to him. At that time
-recent events, including the wars of Julius II., must
-certainly have caused men to reflect upon the temporal
-aspect of the Papacy; and hearts more loyal to the
-successor of St. Peter than was that of Von Hutten
-would probably have joined fervently in the concluding
-words of his preface as it appeared in English.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[98]</a></span>
-“Would to God I might (for there is nothing I do long
-for more) once see it brought to pass that the Pope
-were only the Vicar of Christ and not also the Vicar of
-the Emperor, and that this horrible saying may no
-longer be heard: ‘the Church fighteth and warreth
-against the Perugians, the Church fighteth against the
-people of Bologna.’ It is not the Church that fights
-and wars against Christian men; it is the Pope that
-does so. The Church fights against wicked spirits in
-the regions of the air. Then shall the Pope be called,
-and in very deed be, a Holy Father, the Father of all
-men, the Father of the Church. Then shall he not
-raise and stir up wars and battles among Christian men,
-but he shall allay and stop the wars which have been
-stirred up by others, by his apostolic censure and papal
-majesty.”<a name="FNanchor_109" id="FNanchor_109"></a><a href="#Footnote_109" class="fnanchor">[109]</a></p>
-
-<p>Evidence of what, above, has been called the probable
-searching of men’s minds as to the action of
-the Popes in temporal matters, may be seen in a book
-called a <i>Dyalogue between a knight and a clerk, concerning
-the power spiritual and temporal</i>.<a name="FNanchor_110" id="FNanchor_110"></a><a href="#Footnote_110" class="fnanchor">[110]</a> In reply to the complaint
-of the clerk that in the evil days in which their
-lot had fallen “the statutes and ordinances of bishops
-of Rome and the decrees of holy fathers” were disregarded,
-the knight exposes a layman’s view of the
-matter. “Whether they ordain,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[99]</a></span> “or have
-ordained in times past of the temporality, may well be
-law to you, but not to us. No man has power to
-ordain statutes of things over which he has no lordship,
-as the king of France may ordain no statute (binding)
-on the emperor nor the emperor on the king of England.
-And just as princes of this world may ordain no statutes
-for your spirituality over which they have no power;
-no more may you ordain statutes of their temporalities
-over which you have neither power nor authority.
-Therefore, whatever you ordain about temporal things,
-over which you have received no power from God, is
-vain (and void). And therefore but lately, I laughed
-well fast, when I heard that Boniface VIII. had made
-a new statute that he himself should be above all
-secular lords, princes, kings, and emperors, and above
-all kingdoms, and make laws about all things: and that
-he only needed to write, for all things shall be his when
-he has so written: and thus all things will be yours.
-If he wishes to have my castle, my town, my field,
-my money, or any other such thing he needed, nothing
-but to will it, and write it, and make a decree, and
-wot that it be done, (for) to all such things he has a
-right.”</p>
-
-<p>The clerk does not, however, at once give up the
-position. You mean, he says in substance, that in
-your opinion the Pope has no power over your property
-and goods. “Though we should prove this by
-our law and by written decrees, you account them for
-nought. For you hold that Peter had no lordship or
-power over temporals, but by such law written. But
-if you will be a true Christian man and of right belief,
-you will not deny that Christ is the lord of all things.
-To Him it is said in the Psalter book: ‘Ask of me, and
-I will give you nations for thine heritage, and all the
-world about for thy possession’ (Ps. ii.). These are
-God’s words, and no one doubts that He can ordain for
-the whole earth.”</p>
-
-<p>Nobody denies God’s lordship over the earth,
-replied the knight, “but if be proved by Holy Writ
-that the Pope is lord of all temporalities, then kings
-and princes must needs be subject to the Pope in
-temporals as in spirituals.” So they are, in effect,
-answered the clerk. Peter was made “Christ’s full
-Vicar,” and as such he can do what his lord can,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[100]</a></span>
-“especially when he is Vicar with full power, without
-any withdrawing of power, and he thus can direct all
-Christian nations in temporal matters.” But, said the
-knight, “Christ’s life plainly shows that He made no
-claim whatever to temporal power. Also in Peter’s
-commission He gave him not the keys of the kingdom
-of the earth, but the keys of the kingdom of heaven.
-It is also evident that the bishops of the Hebrews were
-subjects of the kings, and kings deposed bishops; but,”
-he adds, fearing to go too far, “God forbid that they
-should do so now.” Then he goes on to quote St. Paul
-in the Epistle to the Hebrews to prove that St. Peter
-was Christ’s Vicar only in “the godly kingdom of
-souls, and that though some temporal things may be
-managed by bishops, yet nevertheless it is plain and
-evident that bishops should not be occupied in the
-government of the might and lordship of the world.”
-And indeed, he urges, “Christ neither made St. Peter a
-knight nor a crowned king, but ordained him a priest
-and bishop.” If the contention that “the Pope is the
-Vicar of God in temporal matter be correct,” then of
-necessity you must also grant that “the Pope may take
-from you and from us all the goods that you and we
-have, and give them all to whichever of his nephews or
-cousins he wills and give no reason why: and also that
-he may take away from princes and kings principalities
-and kingdoms, at his own will, and give them where he
-likes.”<a name="FNanchor_111" id="FNanchor_111"></a><a href="#Footnote_111" class="fnanchor">[111]</a></p>
-
-<p>This statement by the layman of the advanced
-clerical view is somewhat bald, and is probably intentionally
-exaggerated; but that it could be published
-even as a caricature of the position taken up by some
-ecclesiastics, shows that at this time some went very<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[101]</a></span>
-far indeed in their claims. It is all the more remarkable
-that the argument is seriously put forward in
-a tract, the author of which is evidently a Catholic
-at heart, and one who fully admits the supreme jurisdiction
-of the Pope in all matters spiritual. Of course,
-when the rejection of Papal jurisdiction became imminent,
-there were found many who by sermons and
-books endeavoured to eradicate the old teaching from
-the people’s hearts, and then it was that what was called,
-“the pretensions” of the successors of St. Peter in
-matters temporal were held up to serve as a convenient
-means of striking at the spiritual prerogatives. As a
-sample, a small book named a <i>Mustre of scismatyke
-bysshops of Rome</i> may be taken. It was printed in
-1534, and its title is sufficient to indicate its tone.
-The author, one John Roberts, rakes together a good
-many unsavoury tales about the lives of individual
-Popes, and in particular he translates the life of
-Gregory VII. to enforce his moral. In his preface
-he says, “There is a fond, foolish, fantasy raging in
-many men’s heads nowadays, and it is this: the
-Popes, say they, cannot err. This fantastical blindness
-was never taught by any man of literature, but
-by some peckish pedler or clouting collier: it is so
-gross in itself.” And I “warn, advise, beseech, and
-adjure all my well-beloved countrymen in England
-that men do not permit themselves to be blinded with
-affection, with hypocrisy, or with superstition. What
-have we got from Rome but pulling, polling, picking,
-robbing, stealing, oppression, blood-shedding, and
-tyranny daily exercised upon us by him and his.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[102]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_112" id="FNanchor_112"></a><a href="#Footnote_112" class="fnanchor">[112]</a></p>
-
-<p>Again, as another example of how the mind of the
-people was stirred up, we may take a few sentences
-from <i>A Worke entytled of the olde God and the new</i>. This
-tract is one of the most scurrilous of the German productions
-of the period. It was published in English
-by Myles Coverdale, and is on the list of books prohibited
-by the king in 1534. After a tirade against
-the Pope, whom he delights in calling “anti-Christ,”
-the author declares that the Popes are the cause of
-many of the evils from which people were suffering
-at that time. In old days, he says, the Bishop of
-Rome was nothing more “than a pastor or herdsman,”
-and adds: “Now he who has been at Rome
-in the time of Pope Alexander VI. or of Pope Julius II.,
-he need not read many histories. I put it to his judgment
-whether any of the Pagans or of the Turks ever
-did lead such a life as did these.”<a name="FNanchor_113" id="FNanchor_113"></a><a href="#Footnote_113" class="fnanchor">[113]</a></p>
-
-<p>The same temper of mind appears in the preface<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[103]</a></span>
-of a book called <i>The Defence of Peace</i>, translated into
-English by William Marshall and printed in 1535.
-The work itself was written by Marsilius of Padua
-about 1323, but the preface is dated 1522. The
-whole tone is distinctly anti-clerical, but the main
-line of attack is developed from the side of the temporalities
-possessed by churchmen. Even churchmen,
-he says, look mainly to the increase of their worldly
-goods. “Riches give honour, riches give benefices,
-riches give power and authority, riches cause men to
-be regarded and greatly esteemed.” Especially is the
-author of the preface severe upon the temporal
-position which the Pope claims as inalienably united
-with his office as head of the Church. Benedict
-XII., he says, acted in many places as if he were
-all powerful, appointing rulers and officers in cities
-within the emperor’s dominions, saying, “that all
-power and rule and empire was his own, for as much
-as whosoever is the successor of Peter on earth is
-the only Vicar or deputy of Jesus Christ the King of
-Heaven.”<a name="FNanchor_114" id="FNanchor_114"></a><a href="#Footnote_114" class="fnanchor">[114]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the body of the book itself the same views are
-expressed. The authority of the primacy is said to
-be “not immediately from God, but by the will and
-mind of man, just as other offices of a commonwealth
-are,” and that the real meaning and extent of the
-claims put forward by the Pope can be seen easily.
-They are temporal, not spiritual.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[104]</a></span> “This is the meaning
-of this title among the Bishops of Rome, that
-as Christ had the fulness of power and jurisdiction
-over all kings, princes, commonwealth, companies, or
-fellowships, and all singular persons, so in like manner
-they who call themselves the Vicars of Christ and
-Peter, have also the same fulness of enactive jurisdiction,
-determined by no law of man,” and thus
-it is that “the Bishops of Rome, with their desire
-for dominion, have been the cause of discords and
-wars.”<a name="FNanchor_115" id="FNanchor_115"></a><a href="#Footnote_115" class="fnanchor">[115]</a></p>
-
-<p>Lancelot Ridley, in his <i>Exposition of the Epistle of
-Jude</i>, published in 1538 after the breach with Rome,
-takes the same line. The Pope has no right to have
-“exempted himself” and “other spiritual men from
-the obedience to the civil rulers and powers.” Some,
-indeed, he says, “set up the usurped power of the
-Bishop of Rome above kings, princes, and emperors,
-and that by the ordinance of God, as if God and His
-Holy Scripture did give to the Bishop of Rome a
-secular power above kings, princes, and emperors here
-in this world. It is evident by Scripture that the
-Bishop of Rome has no other power but at the pleasure
-of princes, than in the ministration of the Word of
-God in preaching God’s Word purely and sincerely,
-to reprove by it evil men, and to do such things as
-become a preacher, a bishop, a minister of God’s
-Word to do. Other power Scripture does not attribute
-to the Bishop of Rome, nor suffer him to use. Scripture
-wills him to be a bishop, and to do the office of
-a bishop, and not to play the prince, the king, the
-emperor, the lord, and so forth.”<a name="FNanchor_116" id="FNanchor_116"></a><a href="#Footnote_116" class="fnanchor">[116]</a> It is important
-to note in this passage that the writer was a reformer,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[105]</a></span>
-and that he was expressing his views after the jurisdiction
-of the Holy See had been rejected by the king
-and his advisers. The ground of the rejection, according
-to him&mdash;or at any rate the reason which it was
-desired to emphasise before the public&mdash;would appear
-to be the temporal authority which the Popes had
-been exercising.</p>
-
-<p>In the same year, 1538, Richard Morysine published
-a translation of a letter addressed by John
-Sturmius, the Lutheran, to the cardinals appointed by
-Pope Paul III. to consider what could be done to
-stem the evils which threatened the Church. As the
-work of this Papal commission was then directly
-put before the English people, some account of it is
-almost necessary. The commission consisted of four
-cardinals, two archbishops, one bishop, the abbot of
-San Giorgio, Venice, and the master of the Sacred
-Palace, and its report was supposed to have been
-drafted by Cardinal Caraffa, afterwards Pope Paul IV.
-The document thanks God who has inspired the Pope
-“to put forth his hand to support the ruins of the
-tottering and almost fallen Church of Christ, and to
-raise it again to its pristine height.” As a beginning,
-the Holy Father has commanded them to lay bare to
-him “those most grave abuses, that is diseases, by
-which the Church of God, and this Roman curia
-especially, is afflicted,” and which has brought about
-the state of ruin now so evident. The initial cause
-of all has been, they declare, that the Popes have
-surrounded themselves with people who only told them
-what they thought would be pleasant to them, and who
-had not the honesty and loyalty to speak the truth.
-This adulation had deceived the Roman Pontiffs about<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[106]</a></span>
-many things. “To get the truth to their ears was
-always most difficult. Teachers sprung up who were
-ready to declare that the Pope was the master of all
-benefices, and as master might by right sell them as
-his own.” As a consequence, it was taught that the
-Pope could not be guilty of simony, and that the will
-of the Pope was the highest law, and could override
-all law. “From this source, Holy Father,” they continue,
-“as from the Trojan horse, so many abuses
-and most grievous diseases have grown up in the
-Church of God.” Even pagans, they say, scoff at
-the state of the Christian Church as it is at present,
-and they, the commissioners, beg the Pope not to
-delay in immediately taking in hand the correction
-of the manifest abuses which afflict and disgrace
-the Church of Christ. “Begin the cure,” they
-say, “whence sprung the disease. Follow the teaching
-of the Apostle St. Paul: ‘be a dispenser, not a
-lord.’”</p>
-
-<p>They then proceed to note the abuses which to
-them are most apparent, and to suggest remedies.
-We are not concerned with these further than to
-point out that, as a preliminary, they state that the
-true principle of government is, that what is the law
-must be kept, and that dispensations should be granted
-only on the most urgent causes, since nothing brings
-government to such bad repute as the continual exercise
-of the power of dispensation. Further, they note
-that it is certainly not lawful for the Vicar of Christ
-to make any profit (<i>lucrum</i>) by the dispensations he
-is obliged to give.</p>
-
-<p>Sturmius, in his preface, says he had hopes of better
-things, now that there was a Pope ready to listen.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[107]</a></span>
-“It is a rare thing, and much more than man could
-hope for, that there should come a Bishop of Rome
-who would require his prelates upon their oath to open
-the truth, to show abuses, and to seek remedies for
-them.” He is pleased to think that these four cardinals,
-Sadolet, Paul Caraffa, Contarini, and Reginald Pole had
-allowed fully and frankly that a great portion of the
-difficulty had come from the unfortunate attitude of the
-Popes in regard to worldly affairs. “You acknowledge,”
-he says, “that no lordship is committed to the Bishop
-of Rome, but rather a certain cure by which he may
-rule things in the church according to good order. If
-you admit this to be true and will entirely grant us this,
-a great part of our (<i>i.e.</i> Lutheran) controversy is taken
-away; granting this also, that we did not dissent from
-you without great and just causes.” The three points
-the cardinals claimed for the Pope, it may be noted,
-were: (1) that he was to be Bishop of Rome; (2) that
-he was to be universal Bishop; and (3) that he should
-be allowed temporal sovereignty over certain cities in
-Italy.<a name="FNanchor_117" id="FNanchor_117"></a><a href="#Footnote_117" class="fnanchor">[117]</a> Again we find the same view put before the
-English people in this translation: the chief objection<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[108]</a></span>
-to the admission of Papal prerogatives was the “lordship”
-which he claimed over and above the spiritual
-powers he exercised as successor of St. Peter. On<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[109]</a></span>
-this point we find preachers and writers of the period
-insisting most clearly and definitely. Some, of course,
-attack the spiritual jurisdiction directly, but most
-commonly such attacks are flavoured and served up
-for general consumption by a supply of abuse of the
-temporal assumptions and the worldly show of the
-Popes. This appealed to the popular mind, and to
-the growing sense of national aims and objects, and
-the real issue of the spiritual headship was obscured
-by the plea of national sentiment and safeguards.</p>
-
-<p>To take one more example: Bishop Tunstall, on
-Palm Sunday, 1539, preached before the king and
-court. His object was to defend the rejection of the
-Papal supremacy and jurisdiction. He declaimed
-against the notion that the Popes were to be considered
-as free from subjection to worldly powers,
-maintaining that in this they were like all other men.
-“The Popes,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[110]</a></span> “exalt their seat above the
-stars of God, and ascend above the clouds, and will
-be like to God Almighty.… The Bishop of Rome
-offers his feet to be kissed, shod with his shoes on.
-This I saw myself, being present thirty-four years ago,
-when Julius, the Bishop of Rome, stood on his feet
-and one of his chamberlains held up his skirt because
-it stood not, as he thought, with his dignity that he
-should do it himself, that his shoes might appear,
-whilst a nobleman of great age prostrated himself upon
-the ground and kissed his shoes.”<a name="FNanchor_118" id="FNanchor_118"></a><a href="#Footnote_118" class="fnanchor">[118]</a></p>
-
-<p>To us, to-day, much that was written and spoken
-at this time will appear, like many of the above passages,
-foolish and exaggerated; but the language served its
-purpose, and contributed more than anything else to
-lower the Popes in the eyes of the people, and to
-justify in their minds the overthrow of the ecclesiastical
-system which had postulated the Pope as the universal
-Father of the Christian Church. Each Sunday, in
-every parish church throughout the country, they had
-been invited in the bidding prayer, as their fathers had
-been for generations, to remember their duty of praying
-for their common Father, the Pope. When the
-Pope’s authority was finally rejected by the English
-king and his advisers, it was necessary to justify this
-serious breach with the past religious practice, and the
-works of the period prove beyond doubt that this was
-done in the popular mind by turning men’s thoughts
-to the temporal aspect of the Papacy, and making them
-think that it was for the national profit and honour that
-this foreign yoke should be cast off. Whilst this is
-clear, it is also equally clear in the works of the time
-that the purely religious aspect of the question was as
-far as possible relegated to a secondary place in the
-discussions. This was perhaps not unnatural, as the
-duty of defending the rejection of the Papal supremacy
-can hardly have been very tasteful to those who were
-forced by the strong arm of the State to justify it before
-the people. As late as 1540 we are told by a contemporary
-writer that the spirituality under the bishops<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[111]</a></span>
-“favour as much as they dare the Bishop of Rome’s
-laws and his ways.”<a name="FNanchor_119" id="FNanchor_119"></a><a href="#Footnote_119" class="fnanchor">[119]</a></p>
-
-<p>Even the actual meaning attached to the formal
-acknowledgment of the king’s Headship by the clergy
-was sufficiently ambiguous to be understood, by some
-at least, as aimed merely at the temporal jurisdiction
-of the Roman curia. It is true it is usually understood
-that Convocation by its act, acknowledging
-Henry as sole supreme Head of the Church of
-England, gave him absolute spiritual jurisdiction.
-Whatever may have been the intention of the king
-in requiring the acknowledgment from the clergy, it
-seems absolutely certain that the ruling powers in the
-Church considered that by their grant there was no
-derogation of the Pope’s spiritual jurisdiction.</p>
-
-<p>A comparison of the clauses required by Henry
-with those actually granted by Convocation makes it
-evident that any admission that the crown had any
-cure of souls, that is, spiritual jurisdiction, was specifically
-guarded against. In place of the clause containing
-the words, “cure of souls committed to his Majesty,”
-proposed in the king’s name to his clergy, they adopted
-the form, “the nation committed to his Majesty.” The
-other royal demands were modified in the same manner,
-and it is consequently obvious that all the insertions
-proposed by the crown were weighed with the greatest
-care by skilled ecclesiastical jurists in some two and
-thirty sessions, and the changes introduced by them
-with the proposals made on behalf of the king throw
-considerable light upon the meaning which Convocation
-intended to give to the <i>Supremum Caput</i> clause. In one<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[112]</a></span>
-sense, perhaps not the obvious one, but one that had
-<i>de facto</i> been recognised during Catholic ages, the sovereign
-was the Protector&mdash;the <i>advocatus</i>&mdash;of the Church
-in his country, and to him the clergy would look to
-protect his people from the introduction of heresy and
-for maintenance in their temporalities. So that whilst,
-on the one hand, the king and Thomas Cromwell
-may well have desired the admission of Henry’s authority
-over “the English Church, whose Protector and
-supreme Head he alone is,” to cover even spiritual
-jurisdiction, on the other hand, Warham and the
-English Bishops evidently did intend it to cover only
-an admission that the king had taken all jurisdiction in
-temporals, hitherto exercised by the Pope in England,
-into his own hands.</p>
-
-<p>Moreover, looking at what was demanded and at
-what was granted by the clergy, there is little room
-for doubt that they at first deliberately eliminated any
-acknowledgment of the Royal jurisdiction. This deduction
-is turned into a certainty by the subsequent
-action of Archbishop Warham. He first protested that
-the admission was not to be twisted in “derogation
-of the Roman Pontiff or the Apostolic See,” and the
-very last act of his life was the drafting of an elaborate
-exposition, to be delivered in the House of Lords, of
-the impossibility of the king’s having spiritual jurisdiction,
-from the very nature of the constitution of
-the Christian Church. Such jurisdiction, he claimed,
-belonged of right to the Roman See.<a name="FNanchor_120" id="FNanchor_120"></a><a href="#Footnote_120" class="fnanchor">[120]</a></p>
-
-<p>That the admission wrung from the clergy in fact
-formed the thin end of the wedge which finally severed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[113]</a></span>
-the English Church from the spiritual jurisdiction of the
-Holy See is obvious. But the “thin end” was, there
-can be hardly any doubt, the temporal aspect of the
-authority of the Roman See; and that its insertion at
-all was possible may be said in greater measure to be
-due to the fact that the exercise of jurisdiction in
-temporals by a foreign authority had long been a
-matter which many Englishmen had strongly resented.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[114]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_V" id="CHAPTER_V"></a>CHAPTER V<br />
-<span class="smaller">CLERGY AND LAITY</span></h2>
-
-<p>It is very generally asserted that on the eve of the
-Reformation the laity in England had no particular
-love or respect for churchmen. That there were
-grave difficulties and disagreements between the two
-estates is supposed to be certain. On the face of it,
-however, the reason and origin of what is frequently
-called “the grudge” of laymen against the ecclesiastics
-is obviously much misunderstood. Its extent is
-exaggerated, its origin put at an earlier date than
-should be assigned to it, and the whole meaning of
-the points at issue interpreted quite unnecessarily as
-evidence of a popular and deep-seated disbelief in the
-prevailing ecclesiastical system. To understand the
-temper of people and priest in those times, it is obviously
-necessary to examine into this question in
-some detail. We are not without abundant material
-in the literature of the period for forming a judgment
-as to the relations which then existed between the
-clerical and lay elements in the State. Fortunately,
-not only have we assertions on the one side and on
-the other as to the questions at issue, but the whole
-matter was debated at the time in a series of tracts
-by two eminent laymen. This discussion was carried
-on between an anonymous writer, now recognised as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[115]</a></span>
-the lawyer, Christopher Saint-German, and Sir Thomas
-More himself.</p>
-
-<p>Christopher Saint-German, who is chiefly known
-as the writer of a <i>Dyalogue in English between a Student
-of Law and a Doctor of Divinity</i>, belonged to the Inner
-Temple, and was, it has already been said, a lawyer
-of considerable repute. About the year 1532, a tract
-from his pen called <i>A treatise concerning the division
-between the spiritualtie and temporaltie</i> appeared anonymously.
-To this Sir Thomas More, who had just
-resigned the office of Chancellor, replied in his celebrated
-<i>Apology</i>, published in 1533. Saint-German
-rejoined in the same year with <i>A Dyalogue between
-two Englishmen, whereof one is called Salem and the other
-Bizance</i>, More immediately retorting with the <i>Debellacyon
-of Salem and Bizance</i>. In these four treatises
-the whole matter of the supposed feud between the
-clergy and laity is thrashed out, and the points at
-issue are clearly stated and discussed.</p>
-
-<p>Christopher Saint-German’s position is at first somewhat
-difficult to understand. By some of his contemporaries
-he was considered to have been tainted by “the
-new teaching” in doctrinal matters, which at the time
-he wrote was making some headway in England. He
-himself, however, professes to write as a loyal believer in
-the teaching of the Church, but takes exception to certain
-ecclesiastical laws and customs which in his opinion are
-no necessary part of the system at all. In these he
-thinks he detects the cause of the “division that had
-risen between the spiritualtie and the temporaltie.”
-Sir Thomas More, it may be remarked, is always careful
-to treat the writer as if he believed him to be a sincere
-Catholic, though mistaken in both the extent of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span>
-existing disaffection to the Church and altogether impracticable
-in the remedies he suggested. In some
-things it must, however, be confessed, granting Saint-German’s
-facts, that he shows weighty grounds for some
-grievance against the clergy on the part of the laity.</p>
-
-<p><i>The treatise concerning the division</i> begins by expressing
-regret at the unfortunate state of things which
-the author pre-supposes as existing in England when
-he wrote in 1532, contrasting it with what he remembered
-before. “Who may remember the state of this
-realm now in these days,” he writes, “without great
-heaviness and sorrow of heart? For whereas, in times
-past, there has reigned charity, meekness, concord, and
-peace, there now reigns envy, pride, division, and strife,
-and that not only between laymen and churchmen, but
-also between religious and religious, and between priests
-and religious, and what is more to be lamented also
-between priests and priests. This division has been so
-universal that it has been a great (cause of) disquiet
-and a great breach of charity through all the realm.”<a name="FNanchor_121" id="FNanchor_121"></a><a href="#Footnote_121" class="fnanchor">[121]</a></p>
-
-<p>It must be confessed that if this passage is to be
-taken as it stands, the division would appear to have
-been very widely spread at the time. Sir Thomas More,
-whilst denying that the difficulty was so great as Saint-German
-would make out, admits that in late years the
-spirit had grown and was still growing apace. He
-holds, however, that Saint-German’s reasons for its existence
-are not the true ones, and that his methods will
-only serve to increase the spirit of division. As regards
-the quarrels between religious, at which Saint-German
-expresses his indignation, he says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[117]</a></span> “Except this man
-means here by religious folk, either women and children
-with whose variances the temporality is not very much
-disturbed, or else the lay brethren, who are in some
-places of religion, and who are neither so many nor so
-much esteemed, that ever the temporality was much
-troubled at their strife, besides this there is no variance
-between religious and religious with which the temporality
-have been offended.”<a name="FNanchor_122" id="FNanchor_122"></a><a href="#Footnote_122" class="fnanchor">[122]</a> Again: “Of some particular
-variance among divers persons of the clergy I have
-indeed heard, as sometimes one against another for his
-tithes, or a parson against a religious place for meddling
-with his parish, or one place of religion with another
-upon some such like occasions, or sometime some one
-religious (order) have had some question and dispute
-as to the antiquity or seniority of its institution, as (for
-instance) the Carmelites claim to derive their origin
-from Elias and Eliseus: and some question has arisen
-in the Order of Saint Francis between the Observants
-and the Conventuals (for of the third company, that is
-to say the Colettines, there are none in this realm).
-But of all these matters, as far as I have read or
-remember, there were never in this realm either so
-very great or so many such (variances) all at once,
-that it was ever at the time remarked through the realm
-and spoken of as a great and notable fault of the whole
-clergy.” Particular faults and petty quarrels should not
-be considered the cause of any great grudge against the
-clergy at large. “And as it is not in reason that it
-should be, so in fact it is not so, as may be understood
-from this:” …<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[118]</a></span> “if it were the case, then must this
-grudge of ours against them have been a very old thing,
-whereas it is indeed neither so great as this man maketh
-out, nor grown to so great (a pass) as it is, but only
-even so late as Tyndale’s books and Frith’s and Friar
-Barnes’ began to go abroad.”<a name="FNanchor_123" id="FNanchor_123"></a><a href="#Footnote_123" class="fnanchor">[123]</a></p>
-
-<p>Further, in several places Sir Thomas More emphatically
-asserts that the talking against the clergy,
-the hostile feeling towards them, and the dissensions
-said to exist between them and lay folk generally, were
-only of very recent origin, and were at worst not very
-serious. “I have, within these four or five years (for
-before I heard little talk of such things),” he writes,
-“been present at such discussions in divers good companies,
-never talking in earnest thereof (for as yet I
-thank God that I never heard such talk), but as a pass-time
-and in the way of familiar talking, I have heard at
-such times some in hand with prelates and secular
-priests and religious persons, and talk of their lives,
-and their learning, and of their livelihood too, and as
-to whether they were such, that it were better to have
-them or not to have them. Then touching their livelihood
-(it was debated), whether it might be lawfully
-taken away from them or no; and if it might, whether
-it were expedient for it to be taken, and if so for what
-use.”<a name="FNanchor_124" id="FNanchor_124"></a><a href="#Footnote_124" class="fnanchor">[124]</a></p>
-
-<p>To this Saint-German replies at length in his <i>Salem
-and Bizance</i>, and says that Sir Thomas More must have
-known that the difficulties had their origin long before
-the rise of the new religious views, and were not in any
-sense founded upon the opinions of the modern heretics.<a name="FNanchor_125" id="FNanchor_125"></a><a href="#Footnote_125" class="fnanchor">[125]</a>
-More answers by reasserting his position that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[119]</a></span>
-“the division is nothing such as this man makes it, and
-is grown as great as it is only since Tyndale’s books
-and Frith’s and Friar Barnes’ began to be spread
-abroad.” And in answer to Saint-German’s suggestion
-that he should look a little more closely into the
-matter, he says: “Indeed, with better looking thereon
-I find it somewhat otherwise. For I find the time
-of such increase as I speak of much shorter than I
-assigned, and that by a great deal. For it has grown
-greater” by reason of “the book upon the division,”
-which Saint-German with the best of intentions had
-circulated among the people.<a name="FNanchor_126" id="FNanchor_126"></a><a href="#Footnote_126" class="fnanchor">[126]</a></p>
-
-<p>Putting one book against the other, it would appear
-then tolerably certain that the rise of the anti-clerical
-spirit in England must be dated only just before the
-dawn of the Reformation, when the popular mind was
-being stirred up by the new teachers against the clergy.
-There seems, moreover, no reason to doubt the positive
-declaration of Sir Thomas More, who had every means
-of knowing, that the outcry was modern&mdash;so modern
-indeed that it was practically unknown only four or
-five years before 1533, and that it originated undoubtedly
-from the dissemination of Lutheran views
-and teachings by Tyndale and others. It is useful to
-examine well into the grounds upon which this anti-clerical
-campaign was conducted, and to note the
-chief causes of objection to the clergy which are found
-set forth by Saint-German in his books. In the first
-place: “Some say,” he writes, that priests and religious
-“keep not the perfection of their order,” and do not
-set that good example to the people “they should do.”
-Some also work for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[120]</a></span> “their own honour, and call it the
-honour of God, and rather covet to have rule over the
-people than to profit the people.” Others think more
-about their “bodily ease and worldly wealth and meat
-and drink,” and the like, even more than lay people do.
-Others, again, serve God “for worldly motives, to obtain
-the praise of men, to enrich themselves and the like,
-and not from any great love of God.”</p>
-
-<p>Such is the first division of the general accusations
-which Saint-German states were popularly made against
-the clergy in 1532. Against these may be usefully set
-Sir Thomas More’s examination of the charges, and his
-own opinion as to the state of the clergy. In his previous
-works he had, he says, forborne to use words
-unpleasant either to the clergy or laity about themselves,
-though he had “confessed what is true, namely,
-that neither were faultless.” But what had offended
-“these blessed brethren,” the English followers of
-Luther, was that “I have not hesitated to say, what
-I also take for the very truth, that as this realm of
-England has, God be thanked, as good and praiseworthy
-a temporality, number for number, as any
-other Christian country of equal number has had, so
-has it had also, number for number, compared with
-any other realm of no greater number in Christendom,
-as good and as commendable a clergy. In both there
-have never been wanting plenty of those who have
-always been ‘naught’; but their faults have ever been
-their own and should not be imputed to the whole
-body, neither in the spirituality nor temporality.”<a name="FNanchor_127" id="FNanchor_127"></a><a href="#Footnote_127" class="fnanchor">[127]</a></p>
-
-<p>Turning to the special accusation made by Saint-German
-that ecclesiastics “do not keep the perfection
-of their order,” More grants that this may<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[121]</a></span> “not be
-much untrue.” For “Man’s duty to God is so great
-that very few serve Him as they should do.”…“But,
-I suppose, they keep it now at this day much after
-such a good metely manner as they did in the years
-before, during which this division was never dreamed
-of, and therefore those who say this is the cause have
-need to go seek some other.”<a name="FNanchor_128" id="FNanchor_128"></a><a href="#Footnote_128" class="fnanchor">[128]</a> To the second point
-his reply is equally clear. It is true, More thinks,
-that some ecclesiastics do look perhaps to their own
-honour and profit, but, he asks, “were there never
-any such till so lately as the beginning of this division,
-or are all of them like this now?” No doubt there
-are some such, and “I pray God that when any new
-ones shall come they may prove no worse. For of
-these, if they wax not worse before they die, those who
-shall live after them may, in my mind, be bold to say
-that England had not their betters any time these forty
-years, and I dare go for a good way beyond this too.
-But this is more than twenty years, and ten before this
-division” (between the clergy and laity) was heard of.<a name="FNanchor_129" id="FNanchor_129"></a><a href="#Footnote_129" class="fnanchor">[129]</a>
-Further, as far as his own opinion goes, although there
-may be, and probably are, some priests and religious
-whom the world accounts good and virtuous, who are
-yet at heart evil-minded, this is no reason to despise
-or condemn the whole order. Equally certain is it
-that besides such there are “many very virtuous, holy
-men indeed, whose holiness and prayer have been, I
-verily believe, one great special cause that God has
-so long held His hand from letting some heavier stroke
-fall on the necks of those whether in the spirituality
-or temporality who are naught and care not.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[122]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_130" id="FNanchor_130"></a><a href="#Footnote_130" class="fnanchor">[130]</a></p>
-
-<p>In his <i>Apology</i>, Sir Thomas More protested against
-the author of the work on the <i>Division</i> translating a
-passage from the Latin of John Gerson, about the evil
-lives of priests; and on Saint-German excusing himself
-in his second book, More returns to the point in <i>The
-Debellation of Salem and Bizance</i>. More had pleaded
-that his opponent had dragged the faults of the clergy
-into light rather than those of the laity, because if the
-priests led good lives, as St. John Chrysostom had said,
-the whole Church would be in a good state; “and if
-they were corrupt, the faith and virtue of the people
-fades also and vanishes away.” “Surely, good readers,”
-exclaims More, “I like these words well.” They are
-very good, and they prove “the matter right well, and
-very true is it, nor did I ever say the contrary, but
-have in my <i>Apology</i> plainly said the same: that every
-fault in a spiritual man is, by the difference of the
-person, far worse and more odious to God and man
-than if it were in a temporal man.” And indeed the
-saying of St. Chrysostom<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[123]</a></span> “were in part the very cause
-that made me write against his (<i>i.e.</i> Saint-German’s) book.
-For assuredly, as St. Chrysostom says: ‘If the priesthood
-be corrupt, the faith and virtue of the people
-fades and vanishes away.’ This is without any question
-very true, for though St. Chrysostom had never said it,
-our Saviour says as much himself. ‘Ye are (saith He
-to the clergy) the salt of the earth.’ … But, I say,
-since the priesthood is corrupted it must needs follow
-that the faith and virtue of the people fades and
-vanishes away, and on Christ’s words it must follow
-that, if the spirituality be nought, the temporality must
-needs be worse than they. I, upon this, conclude
-on the other side against this ‘Pacifier’s’ book, that
-since this realm has (as God be thanked indeed it has)
-as good and as faithful a temporality (though there be
-a few false brethren in a great multitude of true Catholic
-men) as any other Christian country of equal size has,
-it must needs, I say, follow that the clergy (though it
-have some such false evil brethren too) is not so
-sorely corrupted as the book of <i>Division</i> would make
-people think, but on their side they are as good as the
-temporality are on theirs.”<a name="FNanchor_131" id="FNanchor_131"></a><a href="#Footnote_131" class="fnanchor">[131]</a></p>
-
-<p>On one special point Saint-German insists very
-strongly. As it is a matter upon which much has been
-said, and upon which people are inclined to believe the
-worst about the pre-Reformation clergy, it may be
-worth while to give his views at some length, and then
-take Sir Thomas More’s opinion also on the subject. It
-is on the eternal question of the riches of the Church,
-and the supposed mercenary spirit which pervaded the
-clergy. “Some lay people say,” writes Saint-German,
-“that however much religious men have disputed
-amongst themselves as to the pre-eminence of their
-particular state in all such things as pertain to the
-maintenance of the worldly honour of the Church and
-of spiritual men, which they call the honour of God,
-and in all such things as pertain to the increase of
-the riches of spiritual men, all, religious or secular,
-agree as one.” For this reason it is found that religious
-men are much more earnest in trying to induce
-people to undertake and support such works
-as produce money for themselves, such as trentals,
-chantries, obits, pardons, and pilgrimages, than in
-insisting upon the payments of debts, upon restitution
-for wrong done, or upon works of mercy<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[124]</a></span> “to their
-neighbours poor and needy&mdash;sometimes in extreme
-necessity.”<a name="FNanchor_132" id="FNanchor_132"></a><a href="#Footnote_132" class="fnanchor">[132]</a></p>
-
-<p>Sir Thomas More replies that those who object in
-this way, object not so much because the trentals, &amp;c.,
-tend to make priests rich, but because they “hate” the
-things themselves. Indeed, some of these things are
-not such that they make priests so very rich, in fact, as
-to induce them to use all endeavour to procure them.
-The chantries, for example, “though they are many, no
-one man can make any very great living out of them;
-and that a priest should have some living of such a
-mean thing as the chantries commonly are, no good
-man will find great fault.” As for pilgrimages, “though
-the shrines are well garnished, and the chapel well
-hanged with wax (candles), few men nowadays, I fear,
-can have much cause to grudge or complain of the
-great offerings required from them. Those men make
-the most ado who offer nothing at all.” And with
-regard to “pardons,” it should be remembered that
-they were procured often “by the good faithful
-devotion of virtuous secular princes, as was the great
-pardon purchased for Westminster and the Savoy” by
-Henry VII. “And in good faith I never yet perceived,”
-he says, “that people make such great offerings
-at a pardon that we should either much pity their
-expense or envy the priests that profit.”</p>
-
-<p>“But then the trentals! Lo, they are the things, as
-you well know, by which the multitude of the clergy and
-specially the prelates, all get an infinite treasure each
-year.” For himself, Sir Thomas More hopes and
-“beseeches God to keep men devoted to the trentals
-and obits too.” But where this “Pacifier” asserts that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[125]</a></span>
-“some say that all spiritual men as a body induce people
-to pilgrimages, pardons, chantries, obits, and trentals,
-rather than to the payment of their debts, or to restitution
-of their wrongs, or to deeds of mercy to their
-neighbours that are poor and needy, and sometimes in
-extreme necessity, for my part, I thank God,” he says,
-“that I never heard yet of any one who ever would
-give that counsel, and no more has this ‘Pacifier’ himself,
-for he says it only under his common figure of
-‘some say.’”<a name="FNanchor_133" id="FNanchor_133"></a><a href="#Footnote_133" class="fnanchor">[133]</a></p>
-
-<p>In his second reply, More returns to the same
-subject. Saint-German speaks much, he says, about
-“restitution.” This, should there be need, no reasonable
-man would object to. “But now the matter
-standeth all in this way: this man talks as if the
-spirituality were very busy to procure men and induce
-people (generally) to give money for trentals, to found
-chantries and obits, to obtain pardons and to go on
-pilgrimages, leaving their debts unpaid and restitution
-unmade which should be done first, and that this was
-the custom of the spirituality. In this,” says More,
-“standeth the question.” The point is not whether
-debts and restitution should be satisfied before all other
-things, which all will allow, but whether the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[126]</a></span> “multitude
-of the clergy, that is to say either all but a few, or at
-least the most part, solicit and labour lay people to do
-these (voluntary) things rather than pay their debts or
-make restitution for their wrongs.… That the multitude
-of priests do this, I never heard any honest man
-for very shame say. For I think it were hard to meet
-with a priest so wretched, who, were he asked his
-advice and counsel on that point, would not in so plain
-a matter, though out of very shame, well and plainly
-counsel the truth, and if perchance there were found any
-so shameless as to give contrary counsel, I am very
-sure they would be by far the fewer, and not as this
-good man’s first book says, the greater part and multitude.”
-What, therefore, More blames so much is, that
-under pretext of an altogether “untrue report” the
-clergy generally are held up to obloquy and their good
-name slandered.<a name="FNanchor_134" id="FNanchor_134"></a><a href="#Footnote_134" class="fnanchor">[134]</a> If he thinks that “I do but mock
-him to my poor wit, I think it somewhat more civility
-in some such points as this to mock him a little merrily,
-than with odious earnest arguments to discuss matters
-seriously with him.”</p>
-
-<p>In some things even Saint-German considers the
-outcry raised against the clergy unreasonable. But
-then, as he truly says, many “work rather upon will
-than upon reason,” and though possessed of great and
-good zeal are lacking in necessary discretion. Thus
-some people, seeing the evils that come to the Church
-from riches, “have held the opinion that it was not lawful
-for the Church to have any possessions.” Others,
-“taking a more mean way,” have thought that the
-Church ought not to have “that great abundance that”
-it has, for this induces a love of riches in churchmen and
-“hinders, and in a manner strangles, the love of God.”
-These last would-be reformers of churchmen advocate
-taking away all that is not necessary. Others, again,
-have gone a step further still, “and because great riches
-have come to the Church for praying for souls in Purgatory,
-have affirmed that there is no Purgatory.” In
-the same way such men would be against pardons,
-pilgrimages, and chantries. They outwardly appear<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[127]</a></span>
-“to rise against all these … and to despise them, and
-yet in their hearts they know and believe that all such
-things are of themselves right good and profitable, as
-indeed they are, if they are ordered as they should
-be.”<a name="FNanchor_135" id="FNanchor_135"></a><a href="#Footnote_135" class="fnanchor">[135]</a></p>
-
-<p>Sir Thomas More truly says that what is implied in
-this outcry against the riches of the clergy is that as a
-body they lead idle, luxurious, if not vicious lives. It
-is easy enough to talk in this way, but how many men
-in secular occupations, he asks, would be willing to
-change? There might be “some who would, and
-gladly would, have become prelates (for I have heard
-many laymen who would very willingly have been
-bishops), and there might be found enough to match
-those that are evil and naughty secular priests, and
-those too who have run away from the religious life,
-and these would, and were able to, match them in their
-own ways were they never so bad. Yet, as the world
-goes now, it would not be very easy, I ween, to find
-sufficient to match the good, even though they be as
-few as some folk would have them to be.”</p>
-
-<p>In the fifteenth chapter of his book on the <i>Division</i>,
-Saint-German deals specially with the religious life and
-with what in his opinion people think about it, and
-about those who had given up their liberty for a life in
-the cloister. The matter is important, and considerable
-extracts are necessary fully to understand the position.
-“Another cause” of the dislike of the clergy by the
-laity is to be sought for in the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[128]</a></span> “great laxity and liberty
-of living that people have seen in religious men. For
-they say, that though religious men profess obedience
-and poverty, yet many of them have and will have their
-own will, with plenty of delicate food in such abundance
-that no obedience or poverty appears in them. For
-this reason many have said, and yet say to the present
-day, that religious men have the most pleasant and
-delicate life that any men have. And truly, if we
-behold the holiness and blessed examples of the holy
-fathers, and of many religious persons that have lived
-in times past, and of many that now live in these days,
-we should see right great diversity between them. For
-many of them, I trow, as great diversity as between
-heaven and hell.” Then, after quoting the eighteenth
-chapter of <i>The Following of Christ</i>, he proceeds: “Thus
-far goeth the said chapter. But the great pity is that
-most men say that at the present day many religious
-men will rather follow their own will than the will of
-their superior, and that they will neither suffer hunger
-nor thirst, heat nor cold, nakedness, weariness nor
-labour, but will have riches, honour, dignities, friends,
-and worldly acquaintances, the attendance of servants
-at their commands, pleasure and disports, and that
-more liberally than temporal men have. Thus, say
-some, are they fallen from true religion, whereby the
-devotion of the people is in a manner fallen from
-them.”</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[129]</a></span></p>
-<p>“Nevertheless, I doubt not that there are many
-right good and virtuous religious persons. God forbid
-that it should be otherwise. But it is said that there
-are many evil, and that in such a multitude that those
-who are good cannot, or will not, see them reformed.
-And one great cause that hinders reform is this: if the
-most dissolute person in all the community, and the
-one who lives most openly against the rules of religion,
-can use this policy, namely, to extol his (form of)
-religious life above all others, pointing them out as not
-being so perfect as that to which he belongs, anon he
-shall be called a good fervent brother, and one that
-supports his Order, and for this reason his offences
-shall be looked on the more lightly.”</p>
-
-<p>“Another thing that has caused many people to
-mislike religious has been the great extremity that has
-been many times witnessed at the elections of abbots,
-priors, and such other spiritual sovereigns. And this is
-a general ground, for when religious men perceive that
-people mislike them, they in their hearts withdraw their
-favour and devotion again from them. And in this way
-charity has waxed cold between them.”</p>
-
-<p>“And verily, I suppose, that it were better that there
-should be no abbot or prior hereafter allowed to continue
-over a certain number of years, and that these
-should be appointed by the authority of the rulers,
-rather than have such extremities at elections, as in
-many places has been used in times past.</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[130]</a></span></p>
-<p>“And verily, it seems to me, one thing would do
-great good concerning religious Orders and all religious
-persons, and that is this: that the Rules and Constitutions
-of religious bodies should be examined and well
-considered, whether their rigour and straightness can
-be borne now in these days as they were at the beginning
-of the religious Orders. For people be nowadays
-weaker, as to the majority of men, than they were then.
-And if it is thought that they (<i>i.e.</i> the Rules) cannot now
-be kept, that then such relaxations and interpretations
-of their rules be made, as shall be thought expedient by
-the rulers. Better it is to have an easy rule well kept,
-than a strict rule broken without correction. For,
-thereof followeth a boldness to offend, a quiet heart in
-an evil conscience: a custom in sin, with many an ill
-example to the people. By this many have found fault
-at all religious life, where they should rather have found
-fault at divers abuses against the true religion. Certain
-it is that religious life was first ordained by the holy
-fathers by the inspiration of the Holy Ghost, keep it
-who so may.”<a name="FNanchor_136" id="FNanchor_136"></a><a href="#Footnote_136" class="fnanchor">[136]</a></p>
-
-<p>Much of this criticism on the state of the religious
-orders on the eve of the Reformation is obviously only
-very general, and would apply to all states of society,
-composed, as such bodies are, of human members.
-With much that Saint-German suggests, it is impossible
-not to agree in principle, however difficult the attainment
-of the ideal may be in practice. Sir Thomas
-More, whilst admitting that there were undoubtedly
-things requiring correction in the religious life of the
-period, maintains most strongly that in practical working
-it was far better than any one would gather from
-the assertions and suggestions of Saint-German, and
-that in reality, with all their carping at laxity and worldliness,
-none of the critics of the monks would be willing
-to change places with them. “As wealthy,” he writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[131]</a></span>
-“and as easy and as glorious as some tell ‘the pacifier’ religious
-life is, yet if some other would say to them: ‘Lo
-sirs, those folks who are in religion shall out, come you
-into religion in their steads; live there better than they
-do, and you shall have heaven,’ they would answer, I fear
-me, that they are not weary of the world. And even if
-they were invited into religion another way, and it was
-said to them, ‘Sir, we will not bid you live so straight
-in religion as these men should have done; come on
-enter, and do just as they did, and then you will have a
-good, easy, and wealthy life, and much worldly praise
-for it,’&mdash;I ween for all that, a man would not get them
-to go into it. But as easy as we call it, and as wealthy
-too&mdash;and now peradventure when our wives are angry
-we wish ourselves therein&mdash;were it offered … I ween
-that for all our words, if that easy and wealthy life that
-is in religion were offered to us, even as weary as we
-are of wedding, we would rather bear all our pain
-abroad than take a religious man’s life of ease in the
-cloister.”<a name="FNanchor_137" id="FNanchor_137"></a><a href="#Footnote_137" class="fnanchor">[137]</a></p>
-
-<p>With some of the accusations of Saint-German, or
-rather with some of his explanations of the supposed
-“grudge” borne by the laity to the clergy, More has
-hardly the patience to deal. They, the clergy, and above
-all religious, should, the former says, “give alms and
-wear hair (shirts), and fast and pray that this division
-may cease.” “Pray, wear hair, fast, and give alms,” says
-the latter; “why, what else do they do as a rule? Some
-may not; but then there were some negligent in those
-matters for the past thousand years, and so the present
-negligence of a few can’t be the cause of the dissension
-now.” “But this ‘pacifier,’ perceiving that what one
-man does in secret another cannot see, is therefore bold
-to say they do not do all those things he would have
-them do; that is to say, fast, pray, wear hair (shirts),
-and give alms. For he says ‘that they do all these
-things it appears not.’”</p>
-
-<p>Now,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[132]</a></span> “as to praying, it appears indeed that they do
-this; and that so much that they daily pray, as some
-of us lay men think it a pain (to do) once a week; to
-rise so soon from sleep and to wait so long fasting, as
-on a Sunday to come and hear out their matins. And
-yet the matins in every parish is neither begun so early
-nor so long in the saying as it is in the Charter house
-you know well; and yet at the sloth and gluttony of us,
-who are lay people, he can wink and fan himself asleep.
-But as soon as the lips of the clergy stop moving he
-quickly spies out that they are not praying.”</p>
-
-<p>And “now as touching on alms: Is there none
-given, does he think, by the spirituality? If he say, as
-he does, that it does not appear that they do give alms,
-I might answer again that they but follow in this the
-counsel of Christ which says: ‘Let not the left hand
-see what thy right hand doeth.’… But as God, for
-all that counsel, was content that men should both pray
-and give to the needy and do other works both of
-penance and of charity openly and abroad, where there
-is no desire of vain glory, but that the people by the
-sight thereof might have occasion therefore to give laud
-and praise to God, so I dare say boldly that they, both
-secretly and openly too, … give no little alms in the
-year, whatsoever this ‘pacifier’ do say. And I somewhat
-marvel, since he goes so busily abroad that there
-is no ‘some say,’ almost in the whole realm, which he
-does not hear and repeat it; I marvel, I say, not a little
-that he neither sees nor hears from any ‘some say’
-that there is almsgiving in the spirituality; I do not
-much myself go very far abroad, and yet I hear ‘some
-say’ that there is; and I myself see sometimes so many
-poor folk at Westminster at the doles, of whom, as far
-as I have ever heard, the monks are not wont to send
-many away unserved, that I have myself for the press
-of them been fain to ride another way.”</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[133]</a></span></p>
-<p>“But to this, some one once answered me and
-said; ‘that it was no thanks to them, for it (came
-from) lands that good princes have given them.’ But,
-as I then told him, it was then much less thanks to
-them that would now give good princes evil counsel to
-take it from them. And also if we are to call it not
-giving of alms by them, because other good men have
-given them the lands from which they give it, from
-what will you have them give alms? They have no
-other.…”</p>
-
-<p>Further replying to the insinuation of Saint-German
-that the religious keep retainers and servants out of
-pride and for “proud worldly countenance,” Sir Thomas
-More says: “If men were as ready in regard to a deed
-of their own, by nature indifferent, to construe the
-mind and intent of the doer to the better part, as they
-are, of their own inward goodness, to construe and
-report it to the worst, then might I say, that the very
-thing which they call ‘the proud worldly countenance’
-they might and should call charitable alms. That is to
-say, (when they furnish) the right honest keep and
-good bringing up of so many temporal men in their
-service, who though not beggars yet perhaps the
-greater part of them might have to beg if they did
-not support them but sent them out to look for some
-service for themselves,” (they are giving charitable
-alms).</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[134]</a></span></p>
-<p>“And just as if you would give a poor man some
-money because he was in need and yet would make
-him go and work for it in your garden, lest by your
-alms he should live idle and become a loiterer, the
-labour he does, does not take away the nature nor
-merit of alms: so neither is the keeping of servants
-no alms, though they may wait on the finder and serve
-him in his house. And of all alms the chief is, to see
-people well brought up and well and honestly guided.
-In which point, though neither part do fully their duty,
-yet I believe in good faith that in this matter, which is
-no small alms, the spirituality is rather somewhat before
-us than in any way drags behind.”<a name="FNanchor_138" id="FNanchor_138"></a><a href="#Footnote_138" class="fnanchor">[138]</a></p>
-
-<p>With regard to the charge brought against the
-clergy of great laxity in fasting and mortification, More
-thinks this is really a point on which he justly can
-make merry. Fasting, he says, must be regulated according
-to custom and the circumstances of time and
-place. If there were to be a cast-iron rule for fasting,
-then, when compared with primitive times, people in
-his day, since they dined at noon, could not be held to
-fast at all. And yet “the Church to condescend to
-our infirmity” has allowed men “to say their evensong
-in Lent before noon,” in order that they might not break
-their fast before the vesper hour. The fact is that, in
-More’s opinion, a great deal of the outcry about the
-unmortified lives of the religious and clergy had “been
-made in Germany” by those who desired to throw off
-all such regulations for themselves. As a Teuton had
-said to him in “Almaine” colloquial English&mdash;“when I
-blamed him,” More says, “for not fasting on a certain
-day: ‘Fare to sould te laye men fasten? let te prester
-fasten.’ So we, God knows, begin to fast very little
-ourselves, but bid the ‘prester to fasten.’”<a name="FNanchor_139" id="FNanchor_139"></a><a href="#Footnote_139" class="fnanchor">[139]</a></p>
-
-<p>“And as to such mortifications as the wearing of
-hair shirts, it would indeed be hard to bind men,
-even priests, to do this, … though among them
-many do so already, and some whole religious bodies
-too.” If he says, as he does, that this “does not
-appear,” what would he have? Would he wish them<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[135]</a></span>
-to publish to the world these penances? If they
-take his, Saint-German’s, advice, “they will come out
-of their cloisters every man into the market-place,
-and there kneel down in the gutters, and make their
-prayers in the open streets, and wear their hair shirts
-over their cowls, and then it shall appear and men
-shall see it. And truly in this way there will be no
-hypocrisy for their shirts of hair, and yet moreover
-it will be a good policy, for then they will not prick
-them.”<a name="FNanchor_140" id="FNanchor_140"></a><a href="#Footnote_140" class="fnanchor">[140]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the same way More points out that people in
-talking against the wealth of the clergy are not less
-unreasonable than they are when criticising what they
-call their idle, easy lives. “Not indeed that we might
-not be able always to find plenty content to enter
-into their possessions, though we could not always
-find men enough content to enter their religions;”
-but when the matter is probed to the bottom, and
-it is a question how their wealth “would be better
-bestowed,” then “such ways as at the first face seemed
-very good and very charitable for the comfort and
-help of poor folk, appeared after reasoning more likely
-in a short while to make many more beggars than
-to relieve those that are so already. And some other
-ways that at first appeared for the greater advantage
-of the realm, and likely to increase the king’s honour
-and be a great strength for the country, and a great
-security for the prince as well as a great relief of
-the people’s charges, appeared clearly after further
-discussion to be ‘clean contrary, and of all other
-ways the worst.’”</p>
-
-<p>“And to say the truth,” he continues,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[136]</a></span> “I much
-marvel to see some folk now speak so much and
-boldly about taking away any possessions of the
-clergy.” For though once in the reign of Henry
-IV., “about the time of a great rumble that the
-heretics made, when they would have destroyed not
-only the clergy but the king and his nobility also,
-there was a foolish and false bill or two put into
-Parliament and dismissed as they deserved; yet in
-all my time, when I was conversant with the court,
-I had never found of all the nobility of this land
-more than seven (of which seven there are now three
-dead) who thought that it was either right or reasonable,
-or could be any way profitable to the realm,
-without lawful cause to take away from the clergy
-any of the possessions which good and holy princes,
-and other devout, virtuous people, of whom many
-now are blessed saints in heaven, have of devotion
-towards God given to the clergy to serve God and
-pray for all Christian souls.”<a name="FNanchor_141" id="FNanchor_141"></a><a href="#Footnote_141" class="fnanchor">[141]</a></p>
-
-<p>In his <i>Confutation of Tyndale’s Answer</i>, made in
-1532, when Sir Thomas More was still Lord Chancellor
-of England, he protests against imputations
-made by his adversary and his follower Barnes, that
-the clergy were as a body corrupt. “Friar Barnes
-lasheth out against them, against their pride and
-pomp, and all their lives spent in” vicious living,
-“as if there were not a good priest in all the Catholic
-Church.… He jesteth on them because they wear
-crowns and long gowns, and the bishops wear rochets.
-And he hath likened them to bulls, asses, and apes,
-and the rochets to smocks.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[137]</a></span> “But he forgets how
-many good virtuous priests and religious people be
-put out of their places (in Germany) and spoiled of
-their living, and beaten, and sent out a-begging, while
-heretics and apostates, with their women, keep their
-shameless lives with the living that holy folks have
-dedicated unto God for the support of such as would
-serve God in spiritual cleanness and vowed chastity.
-He knows well enough, I warrant you, that the clergy
-can never lack persecution where heretics may grow;
-nor soon after the temporality either, as it has hitherto
-been proved in every such country yet.”<a name="FNanchor_142" id="FNanchor_142"></a><a href="#Footnote_142" class="fnanchor">[142]</a></p>
-
-<p>He will not repeat all his “ribald railing upon all
-the clergy of Christendom who will not be heretics”
-when he calls “them bulls, apes, asses and abominable
-harlots and devils.” … “No good man doubts,
-although among the clergy there are many full bad
-(as, indeed, it were hard to have it otherwise among
-so great a multitude, whilst Christ’s own twelve were
-not without a traitor), that there are again among
-them many right virtuous folk, and such that the whole
-world beside fares the better for their holy living and
-their devout prayer.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[138]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_143" id="FNanchor_143"></a><a href="#Footnote_143" class="fnanchor">[143]</a></p>
-
-<p>Beyond the above supposed causes for the growth
-of the dislike of the clergy which Sir Thomas More
-weighs and considers in the above extracts, Saint-German
-gives others which are instructive as to the
-actual status of the clergy; but with which, as they
-do not reflect upon their moral character, Sir Thomas
-More was not immediately concerned in his reply.
-One occasion of the present difficulties and division,
-writes Saint-German, “has partly arisen by temporal
-men who have desired much the familiarity of priests
-in their games and sports, and who were wont to make
-much more of those who were companionable than of
-those that were not so, and have called them good
-fellows and good companions. And many also would
-have chaplains which they would not only suffer, but
-also command, to go hunting, hawking, and such other
-vain disports; and some would let them lie among
-other lay servants, where they could neither use prayer
-nor contemplation.”</p>
-
-<p>Some even go so far as to insist on their chaplains
-wearing “liveries,” which “are not convenient in
-colour for a priest to wear.” Others give them worldly
-businesses to attend to in the way of stewardships, &amp;c.,
-“so that in this way their inward devotion of heart has
-become as cold and as weak, in a manner, as it is in
-lay men.” Nevertheless, in spite of the evil effect to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[139]</a></span>
-be feared from this training, they do not hesitate to
-put them into the first benefice they have to dispose
-of; “and when they have done so, they will anon
-speak evil of priests, and report great lightness in
-them, and lightly compare the faults of one priest
-with another.” This they do “even when they themselves
-have been partly the occasion of their offences.”</p>
-
-<p>Moreover, “where by the law all priests ought to
-be at the (parish) church on Sundays and holidays, and
-help the service of God in the choir, and also, when
-there, to be under the orders of the curate (or parish
-priest of the place), yet nevertheless many men who
-have chaplains will not allow them to come to the
-parish church; and when they are there, will not
-suffer them to receive their orders from the curate,
-but only from themselves; nor will they tolerate seeing
-them in the choir;” and what is the case with “chaplains
-and serving priests is also (true) of chantry priests
-and brotherhood priests in many places.”</p>
-
-<p>To remedy these evils, Saint-German thinks, as
-indeed every one would be disposed to agree with him,
-that priests should be prohibited from hunting and
-all such games as are unsuitable to the priestly character,
-“though perchance he may, as for recreation, use
-honest disportes for a time.” Moreover, he should not
-“frequent the ale house or tavern,” and, if in his
-recreations the people are offended, he should be
-warned by “an abbot and a justice of the peace of
-the shire.” If, after this, he does not change, he ought
-to be suspended. Further than this, no one should be
-permitted to have a chaplain who has not “a standing
-house,” where the priest is able to have his private
-chamber with a lock and key, so that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[140]</a></span> “he may use
-himself therein conveniently in reading, prayer, or
-contemplation, or such other labours and business as
-it is convenient for a priest to use.”<a name="FNanchor_144" id="FNanchor_144"></a><a href="#Footnote_144" class="fnanchor">[144]</a></p>
-
-<p>Both in his work on the <i>Division</i> and in his previous
-tract, <i>A Dyalogue between a Student of Law and a Doctor of
-Divinity</i>, Saint-German lays great stress upon the question
-of mortuaries, as one that gave great offence to
-lay people at the period when he wrote. As he explained
-in the <i>Dyalogue</i>, the State had already interfered
-to regulate the exactions made by custom at funerals,
-but nevertheless “in some places the Church claims
-to have the taper that stands in the middle of the
-hearse over the heart of the corpse, and some claim
-to have all the tapers. Some also claim to have one
-of the torches that is about the hearse, and others to
-have all the torches. And if the body be brought in
-a charette or with coat armour or such other (ornaments),
-then they claim all the horses and charette
-and the apparel or part thereof.”<a name="FNanchor_145" id="FNanchor_145"></a><a href="#Footnote_145" class="fnanchor">[145]</a> Now, in his other
-book, Saint-German thinks that though these things
-“are annulled already by statute,” there is rising
-up “a thing concerning mortuaries,” that “if it be
-allowed to continue” will cause great difficulties in
-the near future. It is this: “Many curates not regarding
-the king’s statute in that behalf, persuade their
-parishioners when they are sick to believe that they
-cannot be saved unless they restore them as much
-as the old mortuary would have amounted to.” All
-those who act in such a way are, he thinks, “bound
-in conscience to restitution, since they have obtained
-money under false information.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[141]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_146" id="FNanchor_146"></a><a href="#Footnote_146" class="fnanchor">[146]</a></p>
-
-<p>After arguing that Parliament has a right to legislate
-in all matters concerning goods and property, our
-author says: “It is certain that all such mortuaries
-were temporal goods, though they were claimed by
-spiritual men; and the cause why they were taken
-away was, because there were few things within this
-realm which caused more variance among the people
-than they did, when they were allowed. They were
-taken so far against the king’s laws and against justice
-and right, as shall hereafter appear. First they were
-taken not only after the husband’s death, but also after
-the death of the wife, who by the law of the realm had
-no goods, but what were the husband’s. They were
-taken also from servants and children, as well infants
-as others; and if a man died on a journey and had a
-household, he should pay mortuaries in both places.”
-Whilst in some places both the parson and the vicar
-claimed the mortuary; “and sometime even the curate
-(<i>i.e.</i> parish priest) would prohibit poor men to sell
-their goods, as were likely to come to them as mortuaries,
-for they would say it was done in order to
-defraud the Church.” And the mortuaries had to be
-handed over at once, or they would not bury the body.
-All these things led to the great growth of mortuaries
-“by the prescription of the spiritual law, and had they
-not been put an end to by Parliament they would have
-grown more and more.</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[142]</a></span></p>
-<p>“And in many places they were taken in such a
-way that it made the people think that their curates
-loved their mortuaries better than their lives. For this
-reason there rose in many places great division and
-grudge between them, which caused a breach of the
-peace, love, and charity that ought to be between the
-curate and his parishioners, to the great unquietness of
-many of the king’s subjects, as well spiritual as temporal,
-and to the great danger and peril of their souls.
-For these causes the said mortuaries be annulled by
-Parliament, as well in conscience as in law, and yet it
-is said that some curates use great extremities concerning
-the said mortuaries another way; and that is this:
-If at the first request the executor pay not the money
-that is appointed by the statute, they will anon have a
-citation against him, and in this he shall be so handled
-that, as it is said, it would have been generally much
-better for him to have paid the old mortuary, than the
-costs and expenses he will then have to pay.”<a name="FNanchor_147" id="FNanchor_147"></a><a href="#Footnote_147" class="fnanchor">[147]</a></p>
-
-<p>Another fertile cause of complaint against the clergy
-at this time was, in Saint-German’s opinion, the way in
-which tithes were exacted; in many cases without much
-consideration for justice and reason.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[143]</a></span> “In some places,
-the curates all exact their tenth of everything within
-the parish that is subject to tithe, although their predecessors
-from time immemorial have been contented to
-do without it: and this even though there is sufficient
-besides for the curates to live upon, and though perchance
-in old time something else has been assigned in
-place of it. In some places there has been asked, it is
-said, tithe of both chickens and eggs; in some places
-of milk and cheese; and in some others tithe of the
-ground and also of all that falleth to the ground. In
-other places tithes of servants’ wages is claimed without
-any deduction; and indeed it is in but few places that
-any servant shall go quite without some payment of
-tithe, though he may have spent all in sickness, or upon
-his father and mother, or such necessary expenses.”</p>
-
-<p>Our author, from whom we get so much information
-as to the relations which existed in pre-Reformation
-times between the clergy and people, goes on to give
-additional instances of the possible hardships incidental
-to the collection of the ecclesiastical dues. These,
-where they exist, he, no doubt rightly, thinks do not
-tend to a good understanding between those who have
-the cure of souls, and who ought to be regarded rather
-in the light of spiritual fathers, than of worldly tax collectors.
-He admits, however, that these are the abuses
-of the few, and must not be considered as universally
-true of all the clergy. “And though,” he concludes,
-“these abusions are not used universally (God forbid
-that they should), for there are many good curates
-and other spiritual men that would not use them to win
-any earthly thing, yet when people of divers countries
-meet together, and one tells another of some such
-extremity used by some curates in his country, and the
-other in like manner to him, soon they come to think
-that such covetousness and harsh dealing is common to
-all curates. And although they do not well in so doing,
-for the offence of one priest is no offence of any other,
-if they will so take it: yet spiritual men themselves do
-nothing to bring the people out of this judgment; but
-allow these abuses to be used by some without correcting
-them.”<a name="FNanchor_148" id="FNanchor_148"></a><a href="#Footnote_148" class="fnanchor">[148]</a></p>
-
-<p>To these objections, and more of the same kind, Sir
-Thomas More did not make, and apparently did not
-think it at all necessary to make, any formal reply.
-Indeed, he probably considered that where such things
-could be proved it would be both just and politic to
-correct them. His failing to reply on this score, however,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[144]</a></span>
-seems to have been interpreted by Saint-German
-as meaning his rejection of all blame attaching to the
-clerical profession in these matters. In the <i>Deballacion
-of Salem and Byzance</i>, More protests that this is not his
-meaning at all. “He says,” writes he, “that I, in my
-mind, prove it to be an intolerable fault in the people
-to misjudge the clergy, since I think they have no
-cause so to do, and that there I leave them, as if all the
-whole cause and principal fault was in the temporality.”
-This, More declares he never dreamed of, for “if he
-seek these seven years in all my <i>Apology</i>, he shall find
-you no such words” to justify this view. On the
-contrary, he will find that “I say in those places, ‘that
-the people are too reasonable to take this or that thing’
-amiss for ‘any reasonable cause of division.’”<a name="FNanchor_149" id="FNanchor_149"></a><a href="#Footnote_149" class="fnanchor">[149]</a> The
-fact is, “I have never either laid the principal fault to
-the one or to the other.” To much that Saint-German
-said, More assented; and his general attitude to the
-general accusations he states in these words: “Many
-of them I will pass over untouched, both because most
-of them are such as every wise man will, I suppose,
-answer them himself in the reading, and satisfy his own
-mind without any need of my help therein, and because
-some things are there also very well said.”</p>
-
-<p>Reading the four books referred to above together,
-one is forced to the conviction that the description of
-Sir Thomas More really represents the state of the
-clergy as it then was. That there were bad as well as
-good may be taken for granted, even without the
-admissions of More, but that as a body the clergy,
-secular or religious, were as hopelessly bad as subsequent
-writers have so often asked their readers to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[145]</a></span>
-believe, or even that they were as bad as the reports,
-started chiefly by Lutheran emissaries, who were
-striving to plough up the soil in order to implant the
-new German teachings in the place of the old religious
-faith of England, would make out, is disproved by the
-tracts of both Saint-German and Sir Thomas More. In
-such a discussion it may be taken for granted that the
-worst would have appeared. Had the former any
-evidence of general and hopeless corruption he would,
-when pressed by his adversary, have brought it forward.
-Had the latter&mdash;whose honesty and full knowledge must
-be admitted by all&mdash;any suspicion of what later generations
-have been asked to believe as the true picture of
-ecclesiastical life in pre-Reformation England, he would
-not have dared, even if his irreproachable integrity
-would have permitted him, to reject as a caricature
-and a libel even Christopher Saint-German’s moderate
-picture.</p>
-
-<p>In one particular More categorically denies a charge
-made by Tyndale against the clergy in general, and
-against the Popes for permitting so deplorable a state of
-things in regard to clerical morals. As the charge first
-suggested by Tyndale has been repeated very frequently
-down to our own time, it is useful to give the evidence
-of so unexceptional authority as that of the Lord Chancellor
-of England. Tyndale declared that although marriage
-was prohibited by ecclesiastical law to the clergy
-of the Western Church, the Pope granted leave “unto
-as many as bring money” to keep concubines. And
-after asserting that this was the case in Germany, Wales,
-Ireland, &amp;c., he adds, “And in England thereto they
-be not few who have (this) licence&mdash;some of the Pope,
-and some of their ordinaries.” To this More says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[146]</a></span>
-“We have had many pardons come hither, and many
-dispensations and many licences too, but yet I thank
-our Lord I never knew none such, nor I trust never
-shall, nor Tyndale, I trow either; but that he listeth
-loud to lie. And as for his licences customably given
-by the ordinaries, I trust he lies in regard to other
-countries, for as for England I am sure he lies.”<a name="FNanchor_150" id="FNanchor_150"></a><a href="#Footnote_150" class="fnanchor">[150]</a></p>
-
-<p>It would of course be untrue to suggest that there
-were no grounds whatever for objection to the clerical
-life of the period. At all times the ministers of the
-Church of God are but human instruments, manifesting
-now more now less the human infirmities of their nature.
-A passage in a sermon preached by Bishop Longland of
-Lincoln in 1538 suggests that the most crying abuse
-among the clergy of that time was simony. “Yet there
-is one thing, or ill which the prophet saw not in this
-city (of Sodom). What is that? That which specially
-above other things should have been seen. What is it?
-That which most is abused in this world. I pray thee,
-what is it? Make no more ado: tell it. That which
-almost destroyed the Church of Christ. Then, I pray
-thee, shew it: shew what it is: let it be known, that
-remedy may be had and the thing holpen. What is it?
-Forsooth it is simony, simony: chapping and changing,
-buying and selling of benefices and of spiritual gifts and
-promotions. And no better merchandise is nowadays
-than to procure advowsons of patrons for benefices, for
-prebends, for other spiritual livelihood, whether it be by
-suit, request, by letters, by money bargain or otherwise:
-yea, whether it be to buy them or to sell them, thou
-shalt have merchants plenty, merchants enough for it.</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[147]</a></span></p>
-<p>“These advowsons are abroad here in this city. In
-which city? In most part of all the great cities of this
-realm. In the shops, in the streets, a common merchandise.
-And they that do come by their benefices or
-promotions under such a manner shall never have grace
-of God to profit the Church.”<a name="FNanchor_151" id="FNanchor_151"></a><a href="#Footnote_151" class="fnanchor">[151]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is interesting to recall the fact that the late Mr.
-Brewer, whose intimate knowledge of this period of our
-national history is admitted on all hands, arrived, after
-the fullest investigation, at a similar conclusion as to
-the real state of the Church in pre-Reformation England.
-Taking first the religious houses, this high authority
-considers that no doubt many circumstances had contributed
-at this time to lower the tone of religious
-discipline; but taking a broad survey, the following is
-the historian’s verdict: “That in so large a body of
-men, so widely dispersed, seated for so many centuries
-in the richest and fairest estates of England, for which
-they were mainly indebted to their own skill, perseverance,
-and industry, discreditable members were to be
-found (and what literary <i>chiffonnier</i>, raking in the
-scandalous annals of any profession, cannot find filth
-and corruption?) is likely enough, but that the corruption
-was either so black or so general as party spirit
-would have us believe, is contrary to all analogy, and is
-unsupported by impartial and contemporary evidence.”<a name="FNanchor_152" id="FNanchor_152"></a><a href="#Footnote_152" class="fnanchor">[152]</a></p>
-
-<p>“It is impossible,” he says in another place, “that
-the clergy can have been universally immoral and the
-laity have remained sound, temperate, and loyal.”
-This, by the way, is exactly what More, who lived in
-the period, insisted upon.</p>
-
-<p>“But,” continues Brewer,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[148]</a></span> “if these general arguments
-are not sufficient, I refer my readers to a very
-curious document, dated the 8th of July 1519, when a
-search was instituted by different commissioners on a
-Sunday night, in London and its suburbs, for all
-suspected and disorderly persons. I fear no parish in
-London, nor any town in the United Kingdom, of the
-same amount of population, would at this day pass a
-similar ordeal with equal credit.”<a name="FNanchor_153" id="FNanchor_153"></a><a href="#Footnote_153" class="fnanchor">[153]</a> And in another
-place he sums up the question in these words: “Considering
-the temper of the English people, it is not
-probable that immorality could have existed among
-the ancient clergy to the degree which the exaggeration
-of poets, preachers, and satirists might lead us to
-suppose. The existence of such corruption is not
-justified by authentic documents or by any impartial
-and broad estimate of the character and conduct of the
-nation before the Reformation. If these complaints of
-preachers and moralists are to be accepted as authoritative
-on this head, there would be no difficulty in
-producing abundant evidence from the Reformers
-themselves that the abuses and enormities of their
-own age, under Edward VI. and Elizabeth, were far
-greater than in the ages preceding.”<a name="FNanchor_154" id="FNanchor_154"></a><a href="#Footnote_154" class="fnanchor">[154]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is too often assumed that in the choice and
-education of the clergy little care and discretion was
-exercised by the bishops and other responsible officials,
-and that thus those unfit for the sacred ministry by
-education and character often found their way into the
-priesthood. In the last Convocation held on the eve of
-the Reformation a serious attempt was evidently made
-to correct whatever abuses existed in this matter, when
-it was enacted that no bishop might ordain any subject<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[149]</a></span>
-not born in his diocese or beneficed in it, or without a
-domicile in it for three months, even with dimissorial
-letters. Further, that no secular clerk should be ordained
-without testimonial letters as to character from the
-parish priest of the place where he was born or had
-lived for three years, sealed by the archdeacon of the
-district, or in the case of a university, by the seal of the
-vice-chancellor. No one whatsoever was to be admitted
-to the subdiaconate “who was not so versed in the
-Epistles and Gospels, at least those contained in the
-Missal, as to be able at once to explain their grammatical
-meaning to the examiner.” He must also show
-that he understands and knows whatever pertains to his
-office.<a name="FNanchor_155" id="FNanchor_155"></a><a href="#Footnote_155" class="fnanchor">[155]</a></p>
-
-<p>The most important book of this period dealing
-with the life and education of the clergy is a tract
-printed by Wynkyn de Worde about the beginning of
-the sixteenth century. It was written by William de
-Melton, Chancellor of York, and at the end is the
-declaration of Colet, that he has read it and highly
-approves of its contents.<a name="FNanchor_156" id="FNanchor_156"></a><a href="#Footnote_156" class="fnanchor">[156]</a> The author states that he
-desires to instruct the “many young men” who every
-Ember time come up to York for ordination in their
-duties. No person, he says, ought to present himself
-to receive the priesthood who is not prepared to lead
-a life in all things worthy of the sacred ministry.
-He should remember that he is really to be accounted
-one of the twelve who sat with our Lord at His last
-supper. He must be sufficiently versed in the learning
-of the world not to dishonour the priestly calling,
-and above all be taught in His school<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[150]</a></span> “who has
-said, ‘Learn of Me, for I am meek and humble of
-heart.’”</p>
-
-<p>“And since I am now on the question of those only
-partly well learned,” continues the author, “I wish
-all coming for ordination to understand that always
-and everywhere those who have not yet attained to
-at least a fair knowledge of good letters are to be
-rejected as candidates for Holy Orders. They can
-in no way be considered to have a fair knowledge of
-letters who, though skilful in grammar, do not possess
-the science well enough to read promptly and easily
-Latin books, and above all, the sacred Scriptures,
-and expound their meaning and the literal signification
-of the words as they stand in the books; and
-this not haltingly, but readily and easily, so as to show
-that they know the language not merely slightly and
-slenderly, but that they possess a full and radical
-knowledge of it and its construction. Therefore, those
-who read the sacred Scriptures or other Latin work
-with difficulty, or, whilst reading, often mistake the
-proper connection of the words, or read them with
-such pauses as to seem not to be used to the Latin
-language, are to be refused Sacred Orders until, by
-diligent study, they have become more skilled in their
-letters.”</p>
-
-<p>In the same way the tract goes on to declare that
-those who are unable to explain or understand the
-spiritual signification of Scripture are to be refused
-ordination to the sacred ministry until they show
-themselves at least fairly well able to do so. “To be
-reckoned among even the fairly proficient, we require,”
-says the author,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[151]</a></span> “such a thorough and sure foundation
-of grammatical knowledge that there may be hopes that
-alone and without other teachers they may, from books
-and diligent study, endeavour day by day to improve
-themselves by reading and study.” Then addressing
-the candidates the author begs them, if they feel they
-have not this necessary foundation, “not through mere
-presumption to offer themselves to the examiners.”
-“Seek not a position in the Church of God in which
-neither now nor during your whole life will you be
-able to show yourself a fitting minister. For those
-who before taking Holy Orders have not fitted themselves
-fairly well in learning rarely if ever are seen to
-make progress in literature. On the contrary, they
-ever remain, even to old age, dunces and stupid, and,
-furthermore, such priests known to the common people
-for such manifest ignorance are a great scandal which
-involves the whole sacred ministry.”</p>
-
-<p>Great damage is done to the whole Church of God
-through the ignorance of the clergy. Both in towns
-and country places there are priests who occupy themselves,
-some in mean and servile work, some who give
-themselves to tavern drinking; the former can hardly
-help mixing themselves up with women, the latter
-employ their time in games of dice, &amp;c., and some of
-them pass it in the vanities of hunting and hawking.
-Thus do they spend their whole lives to extreme old
-age in idleness and non-religious occupations. Nor
-could they do otherwise, for as they are quite ignorant
-of good letters, how can they be expected to work at
-and take a pleasure in reading and study; rather
-throwing away these despised and neglected books, they
-turn to that kind of miserable and unpriestly life described
-above, hoping to kill time and cure their dulness
-by such things.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He then goes on to exhort the young to implant
-in their hearts a strong desire to study deeply in the
-books of God’s Law rather than to be tainted thus by
-the stains and vanities of the world which they were
-supposed to have left. “It is,” he continues, “impossible
-that such a holy desire should possess you,
-unless you have made progress in such studies before
-taking Holy Orders, and are so advanced in your literary
-studies that the reading of many books is both easy
-and pleasant to you, and the construction of the meaning
-of a passage no longer difficult, but whilst reading
-you may quickly and easily follow at least the literal
-sense of the sentence.”</p>
-
-<p>This interesting tract then goes on to warn subdeacons
-not to take upon themselves the perpetual
-obligations of Sacred Orders unless they are conscious
-to themselves of no reason or objection, however secret
-and hidden, which may stand in the way of their faithfully
-keeping their promises. They must feel that they
-enter the ranks of the clergy only from the motive of
-serving God. Then, after warning the clergy against
-the vices which specially detract from the sacred character
-of the priesthood, the author continues, “Let
-us therefore turn to study, reading, and meditation of
-the Holy Scriptures as the best remedy against unworthy
-sloth and foolish desires. Let us not consume
-the time given us uselessly and fruitlessly.” A priest
-should say his Hours and Mass daily. He should
-spend the morning till mid-day in choir and other
-works, and even then not think he has fulfilled the
-whole duty of the priesthood. A priest is bound to
-serious studies and meditation.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[153]</a></span> “Constant reading
-and meditation of the books of God’s law and the
-writings of the holy Fathers and Doctors are the best
-remedy for slothful habits,” and these have been put
-at the disposition of all through the printing-press.
-Just as a workman has besides his shop a workroom
-where he has to spend hours preparing the wares that
-he offers for sale, so the priest, who in the church on
-Sunday offers his people the things necessary for salvation,
-should spend days and nights in holy reading and
-study in order to make them his own before he hands
-them on to others. “Wherefore, my dearest brethren,
-let us think ourselves proper priests only when we find
-our delight and joy in the constant study of Holy
-Scripture.”</p>
-
-<p>So much for the important advice given to priests
-or those intending to be priests as to the necessity of
-acquiring previous habits of study. Not infrequently
-the fact that in 1532 Parliament did actually transfer
-the power of ecclesiastical legislation hitherto possessed
-by Convocation to the Crown, is adduced as proof that
-to the nation at large the powers of the clergy, for a
-long time resented, had at length become a yoke not
-to be borne. Yet it is clear that the policy of the king
-to crush the clergy in this way was by no means heartily
-supported by the Commons. There can be no doubt
-whatever that the petition of the Commons against the
-spirituality really emanated from the Court, and that the
-Lower House was compelled by direct royal influence to
-take the course indicated by royal will. Four drafts
-of the petition existing among the State papers in the
-Record Office put this beyond doubt, as they are all
-corrected in the well-known hand of Henry’s adviser at
-this time, Thomas Cromwell. The substance of the
-petition states that on account of the diffusion of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[154]</a></span>
-heretical books, and the action of the bishops in spiritual
-courts, “much discord had arisen between the
-clergy and the laity at large.” The answer of the
-bishops denies all knowledge of this discord, at least
-on their parts. The ordinaries, they said, exercised
-spiritual jurisdiction, and no one might interfere in
-that, as their right to make laws in this sphere was
-from God, and could be proved by Scripture. The
-two jurisdictions could not clash as they were derived
-from the same source, namely, the authority given by
-God. Finally, they practically refused to consider the
-possibility of any just royal interference in matters of
-the purely ecclesiastical domain. Their resistance was,
-of course, as we know, of no avail; but the incident
-shows that up to the very eve of the changes the clergy
-had no notion of any surrender of their spiritual prerogatives,
-and that it was the Crown and not the
-Commons that was hostile to them.<a name="FNanchor_157" id="FNanchor_157"></a><a href="#Footnote_157" class="fnanchor">[157]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[155]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_VI" id="CHAPTER_VI"></a>CHAPTER VI<br />
-<span class="smaller">ERASMUS</span></h2>
-
-<p>During the first portion of the sixteenth century
-Erasmus occupied a unique position in Europe. He
-was beyond question the most remarkable outcome of
-the renaissance in its literary aspect; and he may fairly
-be taken as a type of the critical attitude of mind in
-which many even of the best and the most loyal
-Catholics of the day approached the consideration of
-the serious religious problems which were, at that time,
-forcing themselves upon the notice of the ecclesiastical
-authorities. Such men held that the best service a true
-son of the Church could give to religion was the service
-of a trained mind, ready to face facts as they were, convinced
-that the Christian faith had nothing to lose by
-the fullest light and the freest investigation, but at the
-same time protesting that they would suffer no suspicion
-to rest on their entire loyalty of heart to the authority
-of the teaching Church.</p>
-
-<p>Keenly alive to the spiritual wants of the age, and
-to what he, in common with many others of the time,
-considered crying abuses in the government of the
-Church, resulting from the excessive temporal grandeur
-of ecclesiastics engaged in secular sovereignty and
-government, Erasmus, like many of his contemporaries,
-is often perhaps injudicious in the manner in which he
-advocated reforms. But when the matter is sifted to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[156]</a></span>
-the bottom, it will commonly be found that his ideas
-are just. He clamoured loudly and fearlessly for the
-proper enforcing of ecclesiastical discipline, and for a
-complete change in the stereotyped modes of teaching;
-and he proclaimed the need of a thorough literary
-education for Churchmen as the best corrective of what
-he held to be the narrowing formalism of mediæval
-scholastic training. It is, perhaps, hardly wonderful
-that his general attitude in these matters should have
-been misunderstood and exaggerated. By many of
-his Catholic contemporaries he was looked upon as a
-secret rebel against received authority, and in truth as
-the real intellectual force of the whole Lutheran movement.
-By the Reformers themselves, regarded as at
-heart belonging to them, he was upbraided as a coward,
-and spoken of as one who had not the courage of his
-convictions. Posterity has represented him now in
-the one aspect, now in the other, now as at best a
-lukewarm Catholic, now as a secret and dangerous
-heretic. By most Catholics probably he has been
-regarded as a Reformer, as pronounced even as Luther
-himself; or to use the familiar phrase founded upon an
-expression of his own, they considered that “his was
-the egg which Luther hatched.” Few writers have
-endeavoured to read any meaning into his seemingly
-paradoxical position by reference to his own explanations,
-or by viewing it in the light of the peculiar circumstances
-of the times in which he lived, and which
-are, to some extent at least, responsible for it.</p>
-
-<p>Desiderius Erasmus was born at Rotterdam, in the
-year 1467. His father’s Christian name was Gerhard,
-of which Desiderius was intended for the Latin, and
-Erasmus for the Greek, equivalent. Other surname he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[157]</a></span>
-had none, as he was born out of wedlock; but his
-father adopted the responsibility of his education, for
-which he provided by placing him first as a chorister in
-the cathedral of Utrecht, and subsequently by sending
-him to Deventer, then one of the best schools in
-Northern Europe. Deventer was at that time presided
-over by the learned scholar and teacher Alexander
-Hegius, and amongst his fellow-students there, Erasmus
-found several youths who subsequently, as men, won
-for themselves renown in the learned world. One of
-them, under the title of Adrian VI., subsequently occupied
-the Papal chair.</p>
-
-<p>His father and mother both died of the plague
-whilst Erasmus was still young. At the age of thirteen
-he was taken from Deventer by the three guardians to
-whose charge he had been committed, and sent to a
-purely ecclesiastical school, meant to prepare those
-intended only for a life in the cloister. Here he
-remained for three years, and after having for a considerable
-time resisted the suggestions of his masters
-that he should join their Order, he finally entered the
-novitiate of the Canons Regular of St. Augustine at
-Stein, near Gouda. Here he was professed at the age
-of nineteen, and after the usual interval was ordained
-priest.</p>
-
-<p>Much obscurity and many apparent contradictions
-prevent us fully understanding Erasmus’s early life, and
-in particular the portion spent by him in the cloister.
-One thing, however, would seem to be quite clear; he
-could never have had any vocation for the religious life.
-His whole subsequent history shows this unmistakeably;
-and the ill-judged zeal of those who practically forced
-him into a state for which he was constitutionally<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[158]</a></span>
-unfitted, and for which he had no aptitude or
-inclination, must, if we take his account of the facts
-as correct, be as strongly condemned by all right-thinking
-people as by himself. He, however, appears
-not to have understood that this may have been a
-special case, and not the usual lot of youths entering
-religion. One evident result of his experience is the
-bitter feeling created in his heart towards the religious
-Orders and the uncompromising hostility he ever after
-displayed towards them. In the celebrated letter he
-wrote to the papal secretary, Lambert Grunnius, which
-was intended for the information of the Pope himself,
-and which is supposed to describe his own case,
-Erasmus justly condemns in the strongest language the
-practice of enticing youths into the cloister before they
-were fully aware of what they were doing. If we
-are to believe the statements made in that letter,
-Erasmus did not think that his was by any means
-a singular case. Agents of the religious Orders, he
-declared, were ever hanging about the schools and
-colleges, endeavouring to entice the youthful students
-into their ranks by any and every method. But he
-is careful to add,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[159]</a></span> “I do not condemn the religious
-Orders as such. I do not approve of those who make
-the plunge and then fly back to liberty as a licence for
-loose living, and desert improperly what they undertook
-foolishly. But dispositions vary; all things do not suit
-all characters, and no worse misfortune can befall a
-youth of intellect than to be buried under conditions from
-which he can never after extricate himself. The world
-thought well of my schoolmaster guardian because he
-was neither a liar nor a scamp nor a gambler, but
-he was coarse, avaricious, and ignorant, he knew
-nothing beyond the confused lessons he taught to his
-classes. He imagined that in forcing a youth to
-become a monk he would be offering a sacrifice
-acceptable to God. He used to boast of the many
-victims which he destined to Dominic and Francis and
-Benedict.”<a name="FNanchor_158" id="FNanchor_158"></a><a href="#Footnote_158" class="fnanchor">[158]</a></p>
-
-<p>Without any taste for the routine of conventual
-life, and with his mind filled by an ardent love of
-letters, which there seemed in the narrow circle of
-his cloister no prospect of ever being able to gratify,
-the short period of Erasmus’s stay at Stein must have
-been to him in the last degree uncongenial and irksome.
-Fortunately, however, for his own peace of mind and
-for the cause of general learning, a means was quickly
-found by which he was practically emancipated from
-the restraints he ought never to have undertaken.
-The Bishop of Cambray obtained permission to have
-him as secretary, and after keeping him a short time
-in this position he enabled him to proceed to the
-University of Paris. From this time Erasmus was
-practically released from the obligations of conventual
-life; and in 1514, when some question had been
-raised about his return to the cloister, he readily
-obtained from the Pope a final release from a form
-of life for which obviously he was constitutionally
-unfitted, and the dress of which he had been permitted
-to lay aside seven years previously.</p>
-
-<p>The generosity of his episcopal patron did not
-suffice to meet all Erasmus’s wants. To add to his
-income he took pupils, and with one of them, Lord
-Mountjoy, he came to England in 1497. He spent,
-apparently, the next three years at Oxford, living in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[160]</a></span>
-the house which his Order had at that University;
-whilst there he made the acquaintance of the most
-learned Englishmen of that time, and amongst others
-of Grocyn, Linacre, and Colet. He also at this time
-took up the study of the Greek language, with which
-previously he had but a slender acquaintance, and
-his ardour was so great that the following year, 1498,
-whilst at work on the <i>Adagia</i>, he could write, “I am
-giving my whole soul to the study of Greek; directly
-I get some money I shall buy Greek authors first,
-and then some clothes.” From 1499 to 1506 he was
-continually moving about in various learned centres
-of France and Holland, his longest stay being at the
-University of Louvain.</p>
-
-<p>In the April of 1506 he was again in England, first
-with Archbishop Warham and Sir Thomas More in
-London, and subsequently at Cambridge; but in a few
-months he was enabled to carry out the plan of visiting
-Italy which he had long contemplated. He engaged to
-escort the two sons of Sebastian Boyer, the English
-court physician, as far as Bologna, and by September
-he was already in Turin, where he took his doctor’s
-degree in divinity. The winter of the same year he
-passed at Bologna, and reached Venice in the spring
-of 1507.</p>
-
-<p>His main object in directing his steps to this last-named
-city was to pass the second and enlarged edition
-of his <i>Adagia</i> through the celebrated Aldine printing-press.
-Here he found gathered together, within reach
-of the press, a circle of illustrious scholars. Aldus himself,
-a man, as Erasmus recalled in a letter written in
-1524,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[161]</a></span> “approaching the age of seventy years, but in
-all matters relating to letters still in the prime of his
-youth,” was his host. In 1508 Erasmus removed to
-Padua, and the following year passed on to Rome,
-where he was well received. His stay in the eternal
-city at this time was not prolonged, for a letter received
-from Lord Mountjoy announcing the death of
-Henry VII., and the good affection of his youthful
-successor to learning, determined him to turn his face
-once more towards England. He had left the country
-with keen regret, for, as he wrote to Dean Colet, “I
-can truly say that no place in the world has given me
-so many friends&mdash;true, learned, helpful, and illustrious
-friends&mdash;as the single city of London,” and he looked
-forward to his return with pleasurable expectation.</p>
-
-<p>For a brief period on his arrival again in this
-country Erasmus stayed in London at the house of
-Sir Thomas More, where, at his suggestion, he wrote
-the <i>Enconium Moriæ</i>, one of the works by which he is
-best known to the general reader, and the one, perhaps,
-the spirit of which has the most given rise to many
-mistaken notions as to the author’s religious convictions.</p>
-
-<p>From London, in 1510, he was invited by Bishop
-Fisher to come and teach at Cambridge, where by his
-influence he had been appointed Lady Margaret Professor
-of Divinity and Regius Reader of Greek. “Unless
-I am much mistaken,” Erasmus writes, “the Bishop of
-Rochester is a man without an equal at this time, both
-as to integrity of life, learning, or broad-minded sympathies.
-One only do I except, as a very Achilles, the
-Archbishop of Canterbury (Warham), who alone keeps
-me in London, though I confess not very unwillingly.”<a name="FNanchor_159" id="FNanchor_159"></a><a href="#Footnote_159" class="fnanchor">[159]</a></p>
-
-<p>In estimating the spirit which dictated the composition
-of the <i>Moriæ</i>, it is well to remember not only that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[162]</a></span>
-it represented almost as much the thought and genius
-of Sir Thomas More as of Erasmus himself, but that,
-at the very time it was taking definite shape in More’s
-house at Chelsea, the author’s two best friends were the
-two great and devout churchmen, Archbishop Warham
-and the saintly Bishop Fisher. Moreover, Sir Thomas
-More himself denies that to this work of Erasmus there
-can justly be affixed the note of irreverence or irreligion;
-he answers for the good intention of the author, and
-accepts his own share of responsibility for the publication
-of the book.</p>
-
-<p>The period of Erasmus’s stay at Cambridge did not
-extend beyond three years. The stipend attached to
-his professorships was not large, and Erasmus was still,
-apparently, in constant want of money. Archbishop
-Warham continued his friend, and by every means
-tried continually to interest others directly in the cause
-of learning and indirectly in the support of Erasmus,
-who is ever complaining that his means are wholly
-inadequate to supply his wants. The scholar, however,
-remained on the best of terms with all the chief English
-churchmen of the day, until, as he wrote to the Abbot
-of St. Bertin,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[163]</a></span> “Erasmus has been almost transformed
-into an Englishman, with such overwhelming kindness
-do so many treat me, and above all, my special Mæcenas,
-the Archbishop of Canterbury. He indeed is not only
-my patron, but that of all the learned, amongst whom I
-but hold a low place. Immortal gods! how pleasant,
-how ready, how fertile is the wit of that man! What
-dexterity does he not show in managing the most complicated
-business! What exceptional learning! What
-singular courtesy does he not extend to all! What
-gaiety and geniality at interviews! so that he never
-sends people away from him sad. Added to this, how
-great and how prompt is his liberality! He alone
-seems to be ignorant of his own great qualities and the
-height of his dignity and fortune. No one can be more
-true and faithful to his friends; and, in a word, he is
-truly a Primate, not only in dignity, but in everything
-worthy of praise.”<a name="FNanchor_160" id="FNanchor_160"></a><a href="#Footnote_160" class="fnanchor">[160]</a></p>
-
-<p>Erasmus returns to this same subject in writing to
-a Roman Cardinal about this time. When I think, he
-says, of the Italian sky, the rich libraries, and the
-society of the learned men in Rome, I am tempted to
-look back to the eternal city with regret. “But the
-wonderful kindness of William Warham, Archbishop
-of Canterbury, to me mitigates my desire to return.
-Had he been my father or brother he could not have
-been more kind and loving. I have been accorded,
-too, the same reception by many other bishops of
-England. Amongst these stands pre-eminent the
-Bishop of Rochester, a man who, in addition to
-his uprightness of life, is possessed of deep and varied
-learning, and of a soul above all meanness, for which
-gifts he is held here in England in the highest estimation.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[164]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_161" id="FNanchor_161"></a><a href="#Footnote_161" class="fnanchor">[161]</a></p>
-
-<p>Erasmus certainly had reason to be grateful to
-Warham and his other English friends for their ready
-attention to his, at times importunate, requests. Warham,
-he writes at one time, “has given me a living
-worth a hundred nobles and changed it at my request
-into a pension of one hundred crowns. Within these
-few years he has given me more than four hundred
-nobles without my asking. One day he gave me one
-hundred and fifty. From other bishops I have received
-more than one hundred, and Lord Mountjoy
-has secured me a pension of one hundred crowns.” In
-fact, in the <i>Compendium Vitæ</i>, a few years later, he says
-that he would have remained for the rest of his life
-in England had the promises made to him been always
-fulfilled. This constant and importunate begging on
-the part of the great scholar forms certainly an unpleasant
-feature in his life. He gets from Dean Colet
-fifteen angels for a dedication, and in reference to
-his translation of St. Basil on the Prophet Isaias,
-begs Colet to find out whether Bishop Fisher will
-be inclined “to ease his labours with a little reward,”
-adding himself, “O this begging! I know well
-enough that you will be laughing at me.”<a name="FNanchor_162" id="FNanchor_162"></a><a href="#Footnote_162" class="fnanchor">[162]</a> Again,
-whilst lamenting his poverty and his being compelled
-to beg continually in this way, he adds that Linacre
-has been lecturing him for thus pestering his friends,
-and has warned him to spare Archbishop Warham and
-his friend Mountjoy a little. In this same letter,
-written in October 1513, there are signs of friction
-with some of the Cambridge teachers of theology,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[165]</a></span>
-which may have helped Erasmus in his determination
-once more to leave England. Not that he professed
-to care what people thought, for he tells Colet he does
-not worry about those whom he calls in derision “the
-Scotists,” but would treat them as he would a wasp.
-Nevertheless, he is still half inclined by the opposition
-to stop the work he is engaged on; confessing,
-also, that he is almost turned away from the design
-of thus translating St. Basil, as the Bishop of Rochester
-is not anxious for him to do it, and&mdash;at least so
-a friend has told him&mdash;rather suspects that he is
-translating, not from the original Greek, but is making
-use of a Latin version.</p>
-
-<p>Almost immediately after writing this letter Erasmus
-again bade farewell to England, and passed up the
-Rhine to Strasburg, where he made the acquaintance of
-Wimpheling, Sebastian Brant, and others. The following
-year, 1515, he went on to Basle, attracted by the
-great reputation of the printing-press set up in that city
-by Froben. He was there eagerly welcomed by the
-bishop of the city, who had gathered round him many
-men imbued with the true spirit of learning; and Erasmus
-soon became the centre of this brilliant group of
-scholars. From this time Basle became Erasmus’s
-home, although, especially in the early years, he was
-always on the move. He paid a flying visit once
-more, in 1517, to England, but he had learnt to love
-his independence too much to entertain any proposals
-for again undertaking duties that would tie him to any
-definite work in any definite place. Even the suggestions
-of friends that he would find congenial and
-profitable pursuits in England were unheeded, and
-he remained unmoved even when his friend Andrew<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[166]</a></span>
-Ammonius wrote to say the king himself was looking
-for his return. “What about Erasmus?” Henry
-had asked. “When is he coming back to us? He
-is the light of our age. Oh that he would return
-to us!”<a name="FNanchor_163" id="FNanchor_163"></a><a href="#Footnote_163" class="fnanchor">[163]</a></p>
-
-<p>From England, however, he continued to receive supplies
-of money; although his circumstances improved
-so much with the steady circulation of his books, that
-he was not at this second period of his life so dependent
-upon the charity of his friends. About the year
-1520 Erasmus settled permanently at Basle as literary
-superintendent of Froben’s press. What, no doubt,
-induced him to do so, even more than the offer of this
-position, was the fact that Basle had then become, by
-the establishment of printing-presses by Amberbach
-and Froben, the centre of the German book-trade.
-Froben died in 1527, and that circumstance, as well
-as the religious troubles which, separating Basle from
-the empire and making it the focus of civil strife,
-ended in wrecking learning there altogether, put an end
-to Erasmus’s connection with the press which for
-eight years had taken the lead of all the presses of
-Europe. Not only was the literary superintendence
-of the work completely in the hands of Erasmus
-during this period which he described as his “mill,”
-but all the dedications and prefaces to Froben’s editions
-of the Fathers were the distinct work of his own
-pen. His literary activity at this period was enormous,
-and only the power he had acquired of working with
-the greatest rapidity could have enabled him to cope
-with the multiplicity of demands made upon him.
-Scaliger relates that Aldus informed him Erasmus<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[167]</a></span>
-could do twice as much work in a given time as any
-other man he had ever met. This untiring energy
-enabled him to cope with the immense correspondence
-which, as he says, came pouring in “daily from almost
-all parts, from kings, princes, prelates, men of learning,
-and even from persons of whose existence I was, till
-then, ignorant,” and caused him not infrequently to write
-as many as forty letters a day.</p>
-
-<p>On Froben’s death in 1527, the fanatical religious
-contentions forced him to remove to Freiburg, in Breisgau,
-where he resided from 1529 to 1535. The need
-for seeing his <i>Ecclesiastes</i> through the press, as well as
-a desire to revisit the scenes of his former activity, took
-him back to Basle; but his health had been giving way
-for some years, and, at the age of sixty-nine, he expired
-at Basle on July 12, 1536.</p>
-
-<p>Such is a brief outline of the life of the most
-remarkable among the leaders of the movement known
-as the renaissance of letters. Without some general
-knowledge of the main facts of his life and work, it
-would be still more difficult than it is to understand
-the position he took in regard to the great religious
-revolution during the later half of his life. With these
-main facts before us we may turn to a consideration of
-his mental attitude towards some of the many momentous
-questions which were then searching men’s hearts
-and troubling their souls.</p>
-
-<p>In the first place, of course, comes the important
-problem of Erasmus’s real position as regards the
-Church itself and its authority. That he was outspoken
-on many points, even on points which we now
-regard as well within the border-line of settled matters
-of faith and practice, may be at once admitted, but<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[168]</a></span>
-he never appears to have wavered in his determination
-at all costs to remain true and loyal to the Pope and
-the other constituted ecclesiastical authorities. The
-open criticism of time-worn institutions in which he
-indulged, and the sweeping condemnation of the ordinary
-teachings of the theological schools, which he
-never sought to disguise, brought him early in his
-public life into fierce antagonism with many devoted
-believers in the system then in vogue.</p>
-
-<p>The publication of his translation of the New Testament
-from the Greek brought matters to an issue. The
-general feeling in England and amongst those best able
-to judge had been favourable to the undertaking, and
-on its first appearance Erasmus was assured of the
-approval of the learned world at the English universities.<a name="FNanchor_164" id="FNanchor_164"></a><a href="#Footnote_164" class="fnanchor">[164]</a>
-More wrote Latin verses addressed to the
-reader of the new translation, calling it “the holy work
-and labour of the learned and immortal Erasmus,” to
-purify the text of God’s Word. Colet was warm in
-its praises. Copies, he writes to Erasmus, are being
-readily bought and read. Many approved, although,
-of course, as was to be expected, some spoke against
-the undertaking. In England, as elsewhere, says Colet,
-“we have theologians such as you describe in your
-<i>Moriæ</i>, by whom to be praised is dishonour, to be
-blamed is the highest praise.” For his part, Colet has,
-he says, only one regret that he did not himself know
-Greek sufficiently well to be able fully to appreciate
-what Erasmus had done, though “he is only too thankful
-for the light that has been thrown upon the true
-meaning of the Holy Scripture.” Archbishop Warham
-writes what is almost an official letter, to tell Erasmus<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[169]</a></span>
-that his edition of the New Testament has been welcomed
-by all his brother bishops in England to whom
-he has shown it. Bishop Tunstall was away in Holland,
-where, amidst the insanitary condition of the islands
-of Zeeland, which he so graphically describes, he finds
-consolation in the study of the work. He cannot too
-highly praise it&mdash;not merely as the opening up of
-Greek sources of information upon the meaning of
-the Bible, but as affording the fullest commentary on
-the sacred text.<a name="FNanchor_165" id="FNanchor_165"></a><a href="#Footnote_165" class="fnanchor">[165]</a> Bishop Fisher was equally clear as
-to the service rendered to religion by Erasmus in this
-version of the Testament; and when, in 1519, Froben
-had agreed to bring out a second edition, Erasmus
-turned to Fisher and More to assist in making the
-necessary corrections.<a name="FNanchor_166" id="FNanchor_166"></a><a href="#Footnote_166" class="fnanchor">[166]</a></p>
-
-<p>More defended his friend most strenuously. Writing
-to Marten Dorpius in 1515, he upbraided him with
-suggesting that theologians would never welcome the
-help afforded to biblical studies by Erasmus’s work on
-the Greek text of the Bible. He ridicules as a joke not
-meriting a serious reply the report that Erasmus and
-his friends had declared there was no need of the theologians
-and philosophers, but that grammar would
-suffice. Erasmus, who has studied in the universities
-of Paris, Padua, Bologna, and Rome, and taught with
-distinction in some of them, is not likely to hold such
-absurd ideas. At the same time, More does not hesitate
-to say that in many things he thinks some theologians
-are to be blamed, especially those who, rejecting all
-positive science, hold that man is born to dispute about
-questions of all kinds which have not the least practical<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[170]</a></span>
-utility “even as regards the <i>pietas fidei</i> or the cultivation
-of sound morals.”</p>
-
-<p>At great length More defends the translation against
-the insinuations made by Dorpius, who evidently regarded
-it as a sacrilege to suggest that the old Latin
-editions in use in the Church were incorrect. St.
-Jerome, says More, did not hesitate to change when
-he believed the Latin to be wrong, and Dorpius’s suggestion
-that Erasmus should have only noted the errors
-and not actually made any change would, had the
-same principle been applied, have prevented St. Jerome’s
-work altogether. If it was thought proper that the
-Latin codices should be corrected at that time by
-Greek manuscripts, why not now? The Church had then
-an equally recognised version before the corrections of
-St. Jerome.<a name="FNanchor_167" id="FNanchor_167"></a><a href="#Footnote_167" class="fnanchor">[167]</a></p>
-
-<p>There were, indeed, as might be expected, some
-discordant notes in the general chorus of English
-praise. For the time, however, they remained unheeded,
-and, in fact, were hardly heard amid the general
-verdict of approval, in which the Pope, cardinals, and
-other highly-placed ecclesiastics joined. Erasmus,
-however, was fully prepared for opposition of a serious
-character. Writing to Cambridge at the time, he says
-that he knows what numbers of people prefer “their
-old <i>mumpsimus</i> to the new <i>sumpsimus</i>,” and condemn
-the undertaking on the plea that no such work as
-the correction of the text of Holy Scripture ought
-to be undertaken without the authority of a general
-Council.<a name="FNanchor_168" id="FNanchor_168"></a><a href="#Footnote_168" class="fnanchor">[168]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is easy to understand the grounds upon which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[171]</a></span>
-men who had been trained on old methods looked
-with anxiety, and even horror, at this new departure.
-Scholarship and literary criticism, when applied to the
-pagan classics, might be tolerable enough; but what
-would be the result were the same methods to be
-used in the examination of the works of the Fathers,
-and more especially in criticism of the text of the Holy
-Scripture itself? Overmuch study of the writings of
-ancient Greece and Rome had, it appeared to many,
-in those days, hardly tended to make the world much
-better: even in high places pagan models had been
-allowed to displace ideals and sentiments, which, if barbarous
-and homely, were yet Christian. Theologians
-had long been accustomed to look upon the Latin Vulgate
-text as almost sacrosanct, and after the failure of the
-attempt in the thirteenth century to improve and correct
-the received version, no critical revision had been dreamt
-of as possible, or indeed considered advisable. Those
-best able to judge, such as Warham and More and
-Fisher, were not more eager to welcome, than others
-to condemn and ban, this attempt on the part of
-Erasmus to apply the now established methods of
-criticism to the sacred text. Not that the edition
-itself was in reality a work of either sound learning
-or thorough scholarship. As an edition of the Greek
-Testament it is now allowed on all hands to have no
-value whatever; but the truth is, that the Greek played
-only a subordinate part in Erasmus’s scheme. His
-principal object was to produce a new Latin version,
-and to justify this he printed the Greek text along
-with it. And this, though in itself possessing little
-critical value, was, in reality, the starting-point for all
-modern Biblical criticism. As a modern writer has<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[172]</a></span>
-said, “Erasmus did nothing to solve the problem,
-but to him belongs the honour of having first propounded
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>It must, however, be borne in mind that the publication
-of Erasmus’s New Testament was not, as is
-claimed for it by some modern writers, a new revelation
-of the Gospel to the world at large, nor is it
-true that the sacred text had become so obscured by
-scholastic theological disquisitions on side issues as
-almost to be forgotten. According to Mr. Froude,
-“the New Testament to the mass of Christians was an
-unknown book,” when Erasmus’s edition, which was
-multiplied and spread all over Europe, changed all this.
-Pious and ignorant men had come to look on the text
-of the Vulgate as inspired. “Read it intelligently they
-could not, but they had made the language into an
-idol, and they were filled with horrified amazement
-when they found in page after page that Erasmus had
-anticipated modern critical corrections of the text, introduced
-various readings, and re-translated passages
-from the Greek into a new version.”<a name="FNanchor_169" id="FNanchor_169"></a><a href="#Footnote_169" class="fnanchor">[169]</a> The truth is
-that the publication of the New Testament was in no
-sense an appeal <i>ad populum</i>, but to the cultivated few.
-A writer in the <i>Quarterly Review</i>, commenting upon
-Mr. Froude’s picture of the effect of the new edition
-on the people generally, is by no means unjust when
-he says, “Erasmus beyond all question would have
-been very much astonished by this account of the
-matter. Certain it is that during the Middle Ages the
-minds of the most popular preachers and teachers
-(and we might add of the laity too) were saturated
-with the sacred Scriptures.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[173]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_170" id="FNanchor_170"></a><a href="#Footnote_170" class="fnanchor">[170]</a></p>
-
-<p>Loud, however, was the outcry in many quarters
-against the rash author. His translations were glibly
-condemned, and it was pointed out as conclusive
-evidence of his heterodoxy that he had actually
-changed some words in the Our Father, and substituted
-the word <i>congregatio</i> for <i>ecclesia</i>.<a name="FNanchor_171" id="FNanchor_171"></a><a href="#Footnote_171" class="fnanchor">[171]</a></p>
-
-<p>The year 1519 witnessed the most virulent and
-persistent attacks upon the good name of Erasmus.
-Of these, and the malicious reports being spread
-about him, he complains in numerous letters at this
-period. One Englishman in particular at this time,
-and subsequently, devoted all his energies to prove
-not only that Erasmus had falsified many of his translations,
-but that his whole spirit in undertaking the
-work was manifestly uncatholic. This was Edward
-Lee, then a comparatively unknown youth, but who
-was subsequently created Archbishop of York. In February
-1519, Erasmus wrote to Cardinal Wolsey, complaining
-of these continued attacks upon his work,
-although so many learned men, including bishops,
-cardinals, and even the Pope Leo X. himself, had given
-their cordial approval to the undertaking. Those who
-were at the bottom of the movement against the work, he
-considered, were those who had not read it, though they<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[174]</a></span>
-still had no shame in crying out against it and its author.
-He was told that in some public discourses in England
-he had been blamed for translating the word <i>verbum</i> in
-St. John’s Gospel by <i>sermo</i>, and about this matter he
-addressed a letter to the Pope defending himself.<a name="FNanchor_172" id="FNanchor_172"></a><a href="#Footnote_172" class="fnanchor">[172]</a> To
-the Bishop of Winchester he wrote more explicitly about
-his chief opponent. “By your love for me,” he says, “I
-beg you will not too readily credit those sycophants about
-me, for by their action all things seem to me at present
-infected by a deadly plague. If Edward Lee can prove
-that he knows better than I do, he will never offend me.
-But when he, by writing and speech, and by means of
-his followers, spreads rumours hurtful to my reputation,
-he is not even rightly consulting his own reputation.
-He has openly shown a hostile spirit against me, who
-never, either in word or deed, have done him harm.
-He is young, and lusts for fame.… Time will bring
-all to light. Truth may be obscured; overcome it
-cannot be.”<a name="FNanchor_173" id="FNanchor_173"></a><a href="#Footnote_173" class="fnanchor">[173]</a> To the English king he writes that in
-all he had published he had been actuated by the sole
-desire to glorify Christ, and in this particular work had
-obtained the highest approval, even that of the Pope
-himself. Some people, indeed, have conspired to destroy
-his good name. They are so pleased with their
-“old wine,” that “Erasmus’s new” does not satisfy
-them. Edward Lee had been instigated to become
-their champion, and Erasmus only wished that Lee
-were not an Englishman, since he owed more to England
-than to any other nation, and did not like to think
-ill even of an individual.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[175]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_174" id="FNanchor_174"></a><a href="#Footnote_174" class="fnanchor">[174]</a></p>
-
-<p>When men are thoroughly alarmed, they do not
-stop to reason or count the cost; and so those, who
-saw in the work of Erasmus nothing but danger to
-the Church, at once jumped to the conclusion that the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[176]</a></span>
-root of the danger really lay in the classical revival
-itself, of which he was regarded as the chief exponent
-and apostle. The evil must be attacked in its cause,
-and the spread of the canker, which threatened to eat
-into the body of the Christian Church, stayed before it
-was too late. From the theologians of Louvain, with
-which university Erasmus was then connected, he
-experienced the earliest and most uncompromising
-opposition. He was “daily,” to use his own words,
-“pounded with stones,” and proclaimed a traitor to
-the Church.<a name="FNanchor_175" id="FNanchor_175"></a><a href="#Footnote_175" class="fnanchor">[175]</a> His opponents did not stop to inquire
-into the truth of their charges too strictly, and Erasmus
-bitterly complains of the damaging reports that are
-being spread all over Europe concerning his good
-name and his loyalty to religion. To him all opposition
-came from “the monks,” who were, in his eyes,
-typical of antiquated ecclesiastical narrowness and
-bigotry. In a letter written in 1519, at the height
-of “the battle of the languages,” as it was called, he
-gives several instances of this attitude towards himself
-at Louvain when he suggested some alteration in a text
-of Holy Scripture. A preacher told the people that
-he had declared the Gospel “to be merely a collection
-of stupid fables,” and at Antwerp, a Carmelite attacked
-him in a sermon, at which he happened to be present,
-and denounced the appearance of his New Testament
-as a sign of the coming of Antichrist. On being asked
-afterwards for his reasons, he confessed that he had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[177]</a></span>
-never even read the book himself. “This,” says
-Erasmus sadly, “I generally find to be the case: that
-none are more bitter in their outcry than they who
-do not read what I write.” In this same letter, Erasmus
-describes the ferment raised in England against the
-study of languages. At Cambridge, Greek was making
-progress in peace, “because the university was presided
-over by John Fisher, Bishop of Rochester, a
-theologian of learning and uprightness of life.” At
-Oxford, however, fierce public attacks were made in
-sermons on Greek studies; “but the king,” continues
-Erasmus, “as one not unlearned himself, and most
-favourable to the cause of letters, happened to be in
-the neighbourhood, and hearing of the matter from
-More and Pace, ordered that all wishing to study
-Greek literature should be encouraged, and so put a
-stop to the business.”</p>
-
-<p>The contest was not confined to the schools.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[178]</a></span> “A
-theologian preaching in the royal palace before the
-king took this opportunity to inveigh boldly and uncompromisingly
-against Greek studies and the new
-methods of interpretation. Pace, who was present,
-glanced at the king to see how he took it, and Henry
-smiled at Pace. After the sermon the theologian was
-bidden to the king, and to More was assigned the task
-of defending Greek learning against him, the king himself
-desiring to be present at the discussion. After
-More had spoken for some time most happily, he
-paused to hear the theologian’s reply; but he, on
-bended knees, asked pardon for what he had said,
-asserting that whilst talking he was moved by some
-spirit to speak about Greek as he had done. Thereupon
-the king said, ‘And that spirit was not that of
-Christ, but of folly!’ Then Henry asked him whether
-he had read Erasmus’s works&mdash;he admitted that he had
-not. Then said the king, ‘By this you prove your
-folly, in condemning what you have not read.’ Finally
-the king dismissed him, and ordered that he should
-never be allowed to preach in the royal presence
-again.”</p>
-
-<p>Those who desired to carry on the campaign to
-extremities, endeavoured, and even with temporary
-success, to influence Queen Katherine against Erasmus
-and the party for the revival of letters which he represented.
-Her confessor, a Dominican bishop, persuaded
-her that in correcting St. Jerome, Erasmus had perpetrated
-a crime which admitted of no excuse.<a name="FNanchor_176" id="FNanchor_176"></a><a href="#Footnote_176" class="fnanchor">[176]</a> It was
-but another step to connect the renaissance of letters
-generally with the revolt now associated with the name
-of Luther. In England, however, it was not so easy
-to persuade people of this, since, among the chief
-supporters of the movement were to be numbered the
-best and wisest of churchmen and laymen whose entire
-orthodoxy was not open to suspicion. Abroad, however,
-the cry once started, was quickly taken up. A
-theologian at Louvain, writes Erasmus, who up to this
-time had been noted for his sober judgment, before
-a large audience, after having spoken of Lutheranism,
-attacked<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[179]</a></span> “the teaching of languages and polite letters,
-joining the two together, and asserting that heresy
-came from these springs, as if experience had shown
-eloquence to be a mark rather of the heretics than
-of the orthodox, or that the Latin authors of heresy
-were not mere children so far as languages went, or
-that Luther had been schooled by those masters and
-not rather by the scholastics, according to scholastic
-methods.”<a name="FNanchor_177" id="FNanchor_177"></a><a href="#Footnote_177" class="fnanchor">[177]</a></p>
-
-<p>Erasmus puts the position even more clearly in a
-letter to Pope Leo X. on the publication of the revised
-version of his New Testament in August 1519. The
-book is now in people’s hands, he says, and as it has
-appeared under the direct auspices of the Holy Father
-himself, it may be regarded as his work. Some foolish
-people, he understands, have been trying to get the
-Pope to believe that a knowledge of languages is
-detrimental to the true study of theology, whereas, in
-reality, the very contrary is obviously the case. Such
-people will not reason, they cry out and will not listen.
-They suggest damning words, such words for example
-as “heretics,” “antichrists,” &amp;c., as appropriate to their
-opponents. They call out that even the Christian
-religion is imperilled, and beg the Pope to come forward
-and save it. On his part Erasmus hopes that
-the Pope will believe that all his work is for Christ
-alone, and His Church. “This only reward do I
-desire, that I may ever seek the glory of Christ rather
-than my own. From boyhood I have ever endeavoured
-to write nothing that savoured of impiety or disloyalty.
-No one has ever yet been made blacker by my writings;
-no one less pious, no one stirred up to tumult.”<a name="FNanchor_178" id="FNanchor_178"></a><a href="#Footnote_178" class="fnanchor">[178]</a>
-Again, writing to Cardinal Campeggio, when sending
-him a copy of the New Testament “which Pope Leo
-had approved by his Brief,” Erasmus tells him that,
-to his great regret, many at Louvain were doing their
-best not to allow good letters to flourish. As for himself,
-his only real desire was to serve Christ and increase<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[180]</a></span>
-the glory of His Church; though, he adds, “I am a
-man, and as such liable to err.” No one has ever
-succeeded in pleasing every one, and he, Erasmus, will
-not try to do the impossible. Still he wishes to be
-judged by what he really has said and written; whereas
-all kinds of things, letters, books, &amp;c., are attributed to
-him, about which he knows nothing: “even Martin
-Luther’s work, amongst the rest,” whilst the truth is,
-he does not know Luther, and certainly has never
-read his book.<a name="FNanchor_179" id="FNanchor_179"></a><a href="#Footnote_179" class="fnanchor">[179]</a></p>
-
-<p>At the end of the following year, 1520, Erasmus
-again writes to Cardinal Campeggio at great length.
-After telling him that he had hoped to have passed
-the winter in Rome to search in the libraries for Greek
-manuscripts, he informs him that in Louvain those who
-prefer the old barbarism are now rampant. Some
-think to please the people by opposition to learning,
-and amongst the aiders and abettors of the Lutheran
-movement they place Erasmus in the forefront. The
-Dominicans and Carmelites, he says, will regard him
-only as their enemy. Why, he does not know, for in
-reality he reverences true religion under “any coloured
-coat.” If on occasion he has said something about the
-vices of the monks, he does not think it were more
-right for the religious, as a body, to turn against him,
-than it would be for priests as a body, when their vices
-were spoken against. He does not in the least wish to
-be thought opposed to the religious life, as such. The
-condemnation of Luther had been interpreted by many
-as a condemnation of learning, and had been turned
-against Reuchlin and Erasmus. As for himself, he has
-never, he declares, even seen Luther, who has certainly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[181]</a></span>
-never been famous for good letters or for any knowledge
-of ancient tongues, and hence the revival of letters has
-no connection whatever with the Lutheran movement.
-The prefaces of some of Luther’s books, because written
-in good Latin, are considered sufficient proof of his
-(Erasmus’s) connection with the matter, and it is
-asserted openly that he was working cordially with
-the Reformer; whereas, as a fact, he had not suggested
-even so much as a full stop or comma for his writings.
-He had, he admitted, written to Luther, and this and
-another letter to the Cardinal of Mentz were pointed
-to as proof positive of his Lutheran leanings. For
-these he has been denounced to bishops as a heretic
-and delated to the Pope himself, while all the time,
-in truth, he has never read two pages of Luther’s
-writings. Certainly, indeed, he recognised in Luther
-considerable power, but he was not by any means alone
-in doing so. Men of undoubted faith and uprightness
-had congratulated themselves on having fallen in with
-Luther’s works. For himself, he adds, “I have always
-preferred to look for the good rather than to search for
-the evil, and I have long thought that the world needed
-many changes.” Finally, before passing from the
-subject, he begs Cardinal Campeggio to look at the
-letter in question himself, and see whether it could
-justly be said to favour Luther in any way.<a name="FNanchor_180" id="FNanchor_180"></a><a href="#Footnote_180" class="fnanchor">[180]</a></p>
-
-<p>To Pope Leo X. Erasmus also wrote, protesting
-against the cause of letters generally being made the
-same as that of Reuchlin and Luther. With the former
-movement he was identified heart and soul; with Luther
-and his revolt he had, he declared, no part nor sympathy.
-“I have not known Luther,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[182]</a></span> “nor
-have I ever read his books, except perhaps ten or a
-dozen pages in various places. It was really I who
-first scented the danger of the business issuing in
-tumults, which I have always detested.” Moreover,
-he declares that he had induced the Basle printer,
-Johann Froben, to refuse to print Luther’s works, and
-that by means of friends he had tried to induce Luther
-to think only of the peace of the Church. Two years
-previously, he says, Luther had written to him, and he
-had replied in a kindly spirit in order to get him, if
-possible, to follow his advice. Now, he hears, that this
-letter has been delated to the Pope in order to prejudice
-him in the Pontiff’s eyes; but he is quite prepared
-to defend its form and expression. “If any
-one,” he says, “can say he has ever heard me, even at
-the table, maintain the teaching of Luther, I will not
-refuse to be called a Lutheran.” Finally, he expresses
-the hope that, if the opponents of letters have been
-trying to calumniate him, he may rely on the Pope’s
-prudence and the knowledge of his own complete
-innocence. “I, who do not wish to oppose even my
-own bishop, am not,” he writes, “so mad as to act in
-any way against the supreme Vicar of Christ.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[183]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_181" id="FNanchor_181"></a><a href="#Footnote_181" class="fnanchor">[181]</a></p>
-
-<p>As time went on, the position of Erasmus did not
-become more comfortable. Whilst the Lutherans were
-hoping that sooner or later something would happen to
-compromise the outspoken scholar and force him to
-transfer the weight of his learning to their side, the
-champions of Catholicity were ill satisfied that he did
-not boldly strike out in defence of the Church. To
-this latter course many of his English friends had
-strongly urged him, and both the king, Fisher, and
-others had set him an example by publishing works
-against Luther’s position, which they invited him to
-follow. The Pope, too, had on more than one occasion
-personally appealed to him to throw off his reserve and
-come to the aid of orthodoxy. They could not understand
-how he was able to talk of peace and kindness
-amidst the din of strife, and plead for less harsh
-measures and less bitter words against Luther and his
-adherents, when the battle was raging, and cities and
-peoples and even countries were being seduced by the
-German Reformer’s plausible plea for freedom and
-liberty. Those who believed in Erasmus’s orthodoxy,
-as did the Pope and his English friends, considered
-that no voice was more calculated to calm the storm
-and compel the German people to listen to reason than
-was his. Whilst the Reforming party, on the other
-hand, were doing their best to compromise him in the
-eyes of their opponents, Erasmus was most unwilling
-to be forced into action. “Why,” he writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[184]</a></span> “do
-people wish to associate me with Luther? What
-Luther thinks of me, where it is a question of matters
-of faith, I care very little. That he doesn’t think much
-of me he shows in many letters to his friends. In his
-opinion I am ‘blind,’ ‘miserable,’ ‘ignorant of Christ
-and Christianity,’ ‘thinking of nothing but letters.’
-This is just what I should expect,” he says, “for Luther
-has always despised the ancients.” As for himself, he
-(Erasmus) has always tried his best to inculcate true
-piety along with learning.<a name="FNanchor_182" id="FNanchor_182"></a><a href="#Footnote_182" class="fnanchor">[182]</a></p>
-
-<p>To Œcolampadius, in February 1525, he wrote a
-letter of protest against the way some of Luther’s
-followers were doing all they could to associate his
-name with their movement. He does not wish, he
-says, to give his own opinion on the questions at issue;
-but he can tell his correspondent what the King of
-England, Bishop Fisher, and Cardinal Wolsey think
-on these grave matters. He objects to Œcolampadius
-putting <i>Magnus Erasmus noster</i>&mdash;“our great Erasmus”&mdash;in
-a preface he wrote, without any justification. “This
-naturally makes people suppose,” he adds, “that I am
-really on your side in these controversies,” and he begs
-that he will strike out the expression.<a name="FNanchor_183" id="FNanchor_183"></a><a href="#Footnote_183" class="fnanchor">[183]</a></p>
-
-<p>This was no new position that Erasmus had taken
-up in view of the ever-increasing difficulties of the
-situation. Six years before (in 1519) he had written
-fully on the subject to the Cardinal Archbishop of
-Mentz. It was this letter which had been much misunderstood,
-and even denounced to the Pope as the
-work of a disloyal son of the Church. He, on the
-other hand, declared that he was not committed in
-any way to the cause of Reuchlin or Luther.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[185]</a></span> “Luther
-is perfectly unknown to me, and his books I have
-not read, except here and there. If he had written
-well it would not have been to my credit; if then the
-opposite, no blame should attach to me. I regretted
-his public action, and when the first tract, I forget
-which, was talked about, I did all I could to prevent its
-being issued, especially as I feared that tumults would
-come out of all this. Luther had written me what
-appeared to my mind to be a very Christian letter,
-and, in replying, I, by the way, warned him not to write
-anything seditious, nor to abuse the Roman Pontiff, &amp;c.,
-but to preach the Gospel truly and humbly.” He adds
-that he was kind in his reply purposely, as he did not
-wish to be Luther’s judge. And, as he thought that
-there was much good in the man, he would willingly do
-all he could to keep him in the right way. People are
-too fond, he says, of crying out “heretic,” &amp;c., and
-“the cry generally comes from those who have not read
-the works they exclaim against.”<a name="FNanchor_184" id="FNanchor_184"></a><a href="#Footnote_184" class="fnanchor">[184]</a></p>
-
-<p>“I greatly fear,” he writes shortly after, “for this
-miserable Luther; so angry are his opponents on all
-sides, and so irritated against him are princes, and,
-above all, Pope Leo. Would that he had taken my
-advice and abstained from these hateful and seditious
-publications. There would have been more fruit and
-less rancour.”<a name="FNanchor_185" id="FNanchor_185"></a><a href="#Footnote_185" class="fnanchor">[185]</a></p>
-
-<p>Testimonies might be multiplied almost indefinitely
-from Erasmus’s writings to show that with Lutheranism
-as such he had no connection nor sympathy. Yet
-his best friends seem to have doubted him, and
-some, in England, suspected that Erasmus’s hand
-and spirit were to be detected in the reply that
-Luther made to King Henry’s book against him.
-Bishop Tunstall confesses that he is relieved to hear
-by the letter Erasmus had addressed to the king and
-the legate that he had had nothing to do with this
-violent composition, and, moreover, that he was opposed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[186]</a></span>
-to Lutheran principles. In his letter on this
-subject, the bishop laments the rapid spread of these
-dangerous opinions which threaten disturbances everywhere.
-When the sacred ceremonies of the Church
-and all pious customs are attacked as they are, he says,
-civil tumults are sure to follow. After Luther’s book
-<i>De abroganda Missa</i>, the Reformer will quickly go
-further, and so Tunstall begs and beseeches Erasmus,
-by “Christ’s Passion and glory” and “by the reward”
-he expects; “yea, and the Church itself prays and
-desires you,” he adds, “to engage in combat with this
-hydra.”<a name="FNanchor_186" id="FNanchor_186"></a><a href="#Footnote_186" class="fnanchor">[186]</a></p>
-
-<p>At length, urged by so many of his best friends,
-Erasmus took up his pen against Luther and produced
-his book <i>De libero Arbitrio</i>, to which Luther, a past
-master in invective, replied in his contemptuous <i>De servo
-Arbitrio</i>, Erasmus rejoining in the <i>Hyperaspistes</i>. Sir
-Thomas More wrote that this last book delighted him, and
-urged Erasmus to further attacks. “I cannot say how
-foolish and inflated I think Luther’s letter to you,” he
-writes. “He knows well how the wretched glosses into
-which he has darkened Scripture turn to ice at your
-touch. They were, it is true, cold enough already.”<a name="FNanchor_187" id="FNanchor_187"></a><a href="#Footnote_187" class="fnanchor">[187]</a></p>
-
-<p>Erasmus’s volume on <i>Free-will</i> drew down on him,
-as might be expected, the anger of the advanced
-Lutherans. Ulrich von Hutten, formerly a brilliant
-follower of Erasmus and Reuchlin in their attempts
-to secure a revival of letters, was now the leader of
-the most reckless and forward of the young German
-Lutherans, who assisted the Reformer by their violence
-and their readiness to promote any and all of his doctrinal
-changes by stirring up civil dissensions. Von<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[187]</a></span>
-Hutten endeavoured to throw discredit upon Erasmus
-by a brilliant and sarcastic attack upon it. In 1523,
-Erasmus published what he called the <i>Spongia</i>, or reply
-to the assertions of von Hutten on his honour and
-character. The tract is really an apology or explanation
-of his own position as regards the Lutherans, and
-an assertion of his complete loyalty to the Church.
-The book was in Froben’s hands for press in June
-1523, but before it could appear in September von
-Hutten had died. Erasmus, however, determined to
-publish the work on account of the gravity of the issues.
-It is necessary, if we would understand Erasmus’s position
-fully, to refer to this work at some considerable
-length. After complaining most bitterly that many
-people had tried to defame him to the Pope and to his
-English friends, and to make him a Lutheran whether
-he would or no; and after defending his attitude towards
-Reuchlin as consistent throughout, he meets
-directly von Hutten’s assertion that he had condemned
-the whole Dominican body. “I have never,” he says,
-“been ill disposed to that Order. I have never been
-so foolish as to wish ill to any Order. If it were necessary
-to hate all Dominicans because, in the Order,
-there were some bad members, on the same ground
-it would be needful to detest all Orders, since in every
-one there are many black sheep.” On the same principle
-Christianity itself would be worthy of hatred.<a name="FNanchor_188" id="FNanchor_188"></a><a href="#Footnote_188" class="fnanchor">[188]</a>
-The fact really is that the Dominicans have many
-members who are friendly to Erasmus, and who are
-favourable to learning in general, and Scripture study
-and criticism in particular.</p>
-
-<p>In the same way, von Hutten had mistaken Erasmu<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[188]</a></span>s’s
-whole attitude towards the Roman Church. He had
-charged him with being inconsistent, in now praising,
-now blaming the authorities. Erasmus characterises
-this as the height of impudence. “Who,” he asks, “has
-ever approved of the vices of the Roman authorities?
-But, on the other hand, who has ever condemned the
-Roman Church?”</p>
-
-<p>Continuing, he declares that he has never been the
-occasion of discord or tumult in any way, and appeals
-with confidence to his numerous letters and works
-as sufficient evidence of his love of peace. “I love
-liberty,” he writes; “I neither can aid, nor desire to aid,
-any faction.” Already many confess that they were
-wrong in taking a part; and he sees many, who had
-thrown in their lot with Luther, now drawing back, and
-regretting that they had ever given any countenance to
-him.<a name="FNanchor_189" id="FNanchor_189"></a><a href="#Footnote_189" class="fnanchor">[189]</a> His (Erasmus’s) sole object has been to promote
-good letters, and to restore Theology to its simple and
-true basis, the Holy Scripture. This he will endeavour
-to do as long as he has life. “Luther,” he says, “I hold
-to be a man liable to err, and one who has erred.
-Luther, with the rest of his followers will pass away;
-Christ alone remains for ever.”</p>
-
-<p>In more than one place of this <i>Spongia</i>, Erasmus
-complains bitterly that what he had said in joke, and as
-mere pleasantry at the table, had been taken seriously.
-“What is said over a glass of wine,” he writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[189]</a></span> “ought
-not to be remembered and written down as a serious
-statement of belief. Often at a feast, for example, we
-have transferred the worldly sovereignty to Pope Julius,
-and made Maximilian, the emperor, into the supreme
-Pontiff. Thus, too, we have married monasteries of
-monks to convents of nuns; we have sent armies of
-them against the Turks, and colonised new islands with
-them. In a word, we turn the universe topsy-turvy.
-But, such whims are never meant to be taken seriously,
-as our own true convictions.”</p>
-
-<p>Von Hutten had complained that Erasmus had
-spoken harshly about Luther, and hinted that he was
-really actuated by a spirit of envy, on seeing Luther’s
-books more read than his own. Erasmus denies that
-he has ever called Luther by any harsh names, and
-particularly that he has ever called him “heretic.”
-He admits, however, that he had frequently spoken of
-the movement as a “tragedy,” and he points to the
-public discords and tumults then distracting Germany
-as the best justification of this verdict.<a name="FNanchor_190" id="FNanchor_190"></a><a href="#Footnote_190" class="fnanchor">[190]</a></p>
-
-<p>Von Hutten having said that children were being
-taught by their nurses to lisp the name Luther, Erasmus
-declares that he cannot imagine whose children these
-can be; for, he says, “I daily see how many influential,
-learned, grave, and good men have come to curse his
-very name.”</p>
-
-<p>The most interesting portion, however, of the
-<i>Spongia</i> is that in which, at considerable length,
-Erasmus explains his real attitude to Rome and the
-Pope. “Not even about the Roman See,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[190]</a></span>
-“will I admit that I have ever spoken inconsistently.
-I have never approved of its tyranny, rapacity, and
-other vices about which of old common complaints
-were heard from good men. Neither do I sweepingly
-condemn ‘Indulgences,’ though I have always disliked
-any barefaced traffic in them. What I think about
-ceremonies, many places in my works plainly show.…
-What it may mean ‘to reduce the Pope to order’ I
-do not rightly understand. First, I think it must be
-allowed that Rome is a Church, for no number of evils
-can make it cease to be a Church, otherwise we should
-have no Churches whatever. Moreover, I hold it to be
-an orthodox Church; and this Church, it must be
-admitted, has a Bishop. Let him be allowed also to
-be Metropolitan, seeing there are very many archbishops
-in countries where there has been no apostle, and Rome,
-without controversy, had certainly SS. Peter and Paul,
-the two chief apostles. Then how is it absurd that
-among Metropolitans the chief place be granted to the
-Roman Pontiff?”<a name="FNanchor_191" id="FNanchor_191"></a><a href="#Footnote_191" class="fnanchor">[191]</a></p>
-
-<p>As to the rest, Erasmus had never, he declares,
-defended the excessive powers which for many years
-the popes have usurped, and, like all men, he wishes
-for a thorough apostolic man for Pope. For his part,
-if the Pope were not above all things else an apostle,
-he would have him deposed as well as any other
-bishop, who did not fulfil the office of his state. For
-many years, no doubt, the chief evils of the world have
-come from Rome, but now, as he believes, the world has
-a Pope who will try at all costs to purify the See and
-Curia of Rome. This, however, Erasmus fancies is not
-quite what von Hutten desires. He would declare war<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[191]</a></span>
-against the Pope and his adherents, even were the Pope
-a good Pope, and his followers good Christians. War
-is what von Hutten wants, and he cares not whether it
-brings destruction to cities and peoples and countries.</p>
-
-<p>Erasmus admits that he knows many people who
-are ready to go some way in the Lutheran direction;
-but who would strongly object to the overthrow of
-papal authority. Many would rather feel that they
-have a father than a tyrant: who would like to see
-the tables of the money-changers in the temple overthrown,
-and the barefaced granting of indulgences and
-trafficking in dispensations and papal bulls repressed:
-who would not object to have ceremonies simplified,
-and solid piety inculcated: who would like to insist
-on the sacred Scriptures as the true and only basis
-of authoritative teaching, and would not give to scholastic
-conclusions and the mere opinions of schools the
-force of an infallible oracle. With those who think
-thus, says Erasmus, “if (as is the case) there is no
-compact on my part, certainly my old friendly feeling
-for them remains cemented by the bond of learning,
-even if I do not agree with them in all these things.”</p>
-
-<p>But, he continues, it is not among these well-wishers
-of reform that von Hutten and Luther will
-find their support. This is to be found among the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[192]</a></span>
-“unlettered people without any judgment; among
-those who are impure in their own lives, and detractors
-of men; amongst those who are headstrong and ungovernable.
-These are they who are so favourable
-to Luther’s cause that they neither know nor care
-to examine what Luther teaches. They only have the
-Gospel on their lips; they neglect prayer and the
-Sacraments; they eat what they like; and they live
-to curse the Roman Pontiff. These are the Lutherans.”
-From such material spring forth tumults that cannot
-be put down. “It is generally in their cups,” adds
-Erasmus, “that the Evangelical league is recruited.”
-They are too stupid to see whither they are drifting,
-and “with such a type of mankind I have no wish
-to have anything to do.” Some make the Gospel but
-the pretext for theft and rapine; and “there are some
-who, having squandered or lost all their own property,
-pretend to be Lutherans in order to be able to help
-themselves to the wealth of others.” Von Hutten
-wants me, says Erasmus, to come to them. “To
-whom? To those who are good and actuated by the
-true Gospel teaching? I would willingly fly to them
-if any one will point them out. If he knew of any
-Lutherans, who in place of wine, prostitutes, and dice,
-have at any time delighted in holy reading and conversation;
-of any who never cheat or neglect to pay
-their debts, but are ready to give to the needy; of any
-who look on injuries done to them as favours, who
-bless those who curse them&mdash;if he can show me such
-people, he may count on me as an associate. Lutherans,
-I see; but followers of the Gospel, I can discover few
-or none.”</p>
-
-<p>Von Hutten had, in his attack, with much bitterness
-condemned Erasmus for not renouncing connection
-with those who had written strongly against
-Luther. Erasmus refused to entertain the notion.
-“There is,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[193]</a></span> “the reverend Father John,
-Bishop of Rochester. He has written a big volume
-against Luther. For a long period that man has been
-my very special friend and most constant patron.
-Does von Hutten seriously want me to break with
-him, because he has sharpened his pen in writing
-against Luther? Long before Luther was thought
-of,” he says, “I enjoyed the friendship of many
-learned men. Of these, some in later years took
-Luther’s side, but on that account I have not renounced
-outwardly my friendship for them. Some
-of these have changed their views and now do not
-think much of Luther, still I do not cease to regard
-them as my friends.”</p>
-
-<p>Towards the close of his reply, Erasmus returns
-to the question of the Pope. Von Hutten had charged
-him with inconsistency in his views, and Erasmus replies,
-“He who most desires to see the apostolic
-character manifested in the Pope is most in his
-favour.” It may be that one can hate the individual
-and approve of the office. Whoever is favourable to,
-and defends, bad Popes does not honour the office.
-He (Erasmus) has been found fault with for saying
-that the authority of the Pope has been followed by
-the Christian world for very many ages. What he
-wrote is true, and as long as the work of Christ is
-done may it be followed for ever. Luther wants
-people to take his <i>ipse dixit</i> and authority, but he
-(Erasmus) would prefer to take that of the Pope.
-“Even if the supremacy of the Pope was not established
-by Christ, still it would be expedient that there
-should be one ruler possessing full authority over
-others, but which authority no doubt should be free
-from all idea of tyranny.… Because I have criticised
-certain points in the See of Rome, I have not
-for that reason ever departed from it. Who would
-not uphold the dignity of one who, by manifesting the
-virtues of the Gospel, represents Christ to us?” The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[194]</a></span>
-paradoxes of Luther are not worth dying for. “There
-is no question of articles of faith, but of such matters
-as ‘Whether the supremacy of the Roman Pontiff was
-established by Christ:’ ‘whether cardinals are necessary
-to the Christian Church:’ ‘whether confession is
-<i>de jure divino</i>:’ ‘whether bishops can make their laws
-binding under pain of mortal sin:’ ‘whether free will
-is necessary for salvation:’ ‘whether faith alone assures
-salvation,’ &amp;c. If Christ gave him grace,” Erasmus
-hopes that “he would be a martyr for His truth, but
-he has no desire whatever to be one for Luther.”</p>
-
-<p>This last point was immediately taken up by the
-Lutherans. Von Hutten, as it has already been said,
-had died before the publication of the <i>Spongia</i>, and the
-reply to Erasmus was undertaken by Otto Brunfels.
-He rejected Erasmus’s suggestion that nearly all that
-the Lutherans were fighting for were matters of opinion.
-They were matters of faith, he says, and no uncertainty
-could be admitted on this point. In order to make
-the matter clear, he enumerates a great number of
-tenets of Lutheranism which they hold to as matters of
-revealed certainty. For instance: that Christ is the
-only head of the Church; that the Church has no
-corporate existence; that the mass is no sacrifice; that
-justification comes by faith alone; that our works are
-sins and cannot justify; that good men cannot sin;
-that there are only two Sacraments; that the Pope’s
-traditions are heretical and against Scripture; that
-the religious state is from the devil; and several score
-more of similar points more or less important.</p>
-
-<p>That Erasmus’s views upon the necessity of the
-Papacy expressed in the <i>Spongia</i> were not inconsistent
-with his previous position there is ample evidence in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[195]</a></span>
-his letters, to which he himself appeals. Replying, for
-example, to one who had written to him deploring the
-religious differences in Bohemia, Erasmus declares that,
-in his opinion, it is needful for unity that there should
-be one head. If the prince is tyrannical, he should be
-reduced to order by the teaching and authority of the
-Roman Pontiff. If the bishop play the tyrant, there is still
-the authority of the Roman Pontiff, who is the dispenser
-of the authority and the Vicar of Christ. He may not
-please all, but who that really rules can expect to do
-that? “In my opinion,” he adds, “those who reject
-the Pope are more in error than they who demand
-the Eucharist under two kinds.” Personally, he would
-have allowed this, although he thinks that, as most
-Christians have now the other custom, those who
-demand it as a necessity are unreasonable and to be
-greatly blamed. Above all others, he reprobates the
-position of those who refuse to obey, speak of the Pope
-as Antichrist, and the Roman Church as a “harlot”
-because there have been bad Popes. There have been
-bad cardinals and bishops, bad priests and princes, and
-on this ground we ought not to obey bishop or pastor
-or king or ruler.<a name="FNanchor_192" id="FNanchor_192"></a><a href="#Footnote_192" class="fnanchor">[192]</a> In the same letter he rebukes those
-who desire to sweep away vestments and ceremonies
-on the plea that they may not have been used in
-apostolic times.</p>
-
-<p>Later on, in another letter, he complained that people
-call him a favourer of Luther. This is quite untrue.
-“I would prefer,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[196]</a></span> “to have Luther corrected
-rather than destroyed; then I should prefer that it
-should be done without any great social tumults.
-Christ I acknowledge; Luther I know not. I acknowledge
-the Roman Church, which, in my opinion,
-is Catholic. I praise those who are on the side of the
-Roman Pontiff, who is supported by every good man.”<a name="FNanchor_193" id="FNanchor_193"></a><a href="#Footnote_193" class="fnanchor">[193]</a></p>
-
-<p>Again, the following year, writing on the subject of
-the invocation of Papal authority against Luther, he
-says: “I do not question the origin of that authority,
-which is most certainly just, as in ancient times from
-among many priests equal in office one was chosen as
-the bishop; so now from the bishops it is necessary to
-make choice of one Pontiff, not merely to prevent discords,
-but to temper the tyrannical exercise of authority
-on the part of the other bishops and secular princes.”<a name="FNanchor_194" id="FNanchor_194"></a><a href="#Footnote_194" class="fnanchor">[194]</a></p>
-
-<p>The publication of Erasmus’s book against Luther
-and of his reply to von Hutten made little change,
-however, in the adverse feeling manifested against him
-by those who were most busily engaged in combating
-the spread of Lutheran opinions. As he wrote to King
-Henry VIII., the noisy tumults and discords made him
-long for the end of life, when he might hope at least
-to find peace.<a name="FNanchor_195" id="FNanchor_195"></a><a href="#Footnote_195" class="fnanchor">[195]</a> Luckily for him, he still retained the
-confidence of the Pope and some of the best churchmen
-in Europe. Had he not done so, the very violence
-of the attack against his good name might have driven
-him out of the Church in spite of himself. Kind words,
-he more than once said, would have done more for the
-cause of peace in the Church than all the biting sarcasm
-and unmeasured invective that was launched
-against Luther, and those who, like Erasmus, either
-were, or were supposed to be, associated with his cause.
-Luther was not delicate about the choice of his language
-when he had an enemy to pelt, but some of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[197]</a></span>
-preachers and pamphlet writers on the orthodox side
-were his match in this respect. In this way Erasmus
-puts the responsibility for “the tragedy” of Lutheranism
-upon the theologians, and in part especially upon the
-Dominicans and Carmelites. “Ass,” “pig,” “sow,”
-“heretic,” “antichrist,” and “pest of the world,” are
-terms named by Erasmus as samples of the epithets
-launched from the pulpit, or more deliberately set up in
-type, as arguments against Luther and himself.<a name="FNanchor_196" id="FNanchor_196"></a><a href="#Footnote_196" class="fnanchor">[196]</a></p>
-
-<p>In writing to one of the cardinals after the publication
-of his <i>Spongia</i>, there is a touch of sadness in his
-complaints, that having been forced to do battle with
-the “Lutherans as against a hydra of many heads,”
-Catholics should still try and make the world believe
-that he was really a Lutheran at heart. “I have never,”
-he declares, “doubted about the sovereignty of the
-Pope, but whether this supremacy was recognised in
-the time of St. Jerome, I have my doubts, on account of
-certain passages I have noted in my edition of St.
-Jerome. In the same place, however, I have marked
-what would appear to make for the contrary opinion;
-and in numerous other places I call Peter ‘Prince of
-the apostolic order,’ and the Roman Pontiff, Christ’s
-Vicar and the Head of His Church, giving him the
-highest power according to Christ.”<a name="FNanchor_197" id="FNanchor_197"></a><a href="#Footnote_197" class="fnanchor">[197]</a></p>
-
-<p>Probably a more correct view of Erasmus’s real
-mind can hardly be obtained than in part of a letter
-already quoted (Ep. 501) addressed to Bishop Marlianus
-of Tuy in Galicia, on March 25, 1520. “I would
-have the Church,” he writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[198]</a></span> “purified, lest the good in
-it suffer by conjunction with the evil. In avoiding the
-Scylla of Luther, however, I would have care taken to
-avoid Charybdis. If this be sin, then I own my
-guilt. I have sought to save the dignity of the
-Roman Pontiff, the honour of Catholic theology, and
-to look to the welfare of Christendom. I have, as
-yet, read no whole work of Luther, however short,
-and I have never even in jest defended his paradoxes.
-Be assured that if any movement is set on foot
-which is injurious to the Christian religion and dangerous
-to the public peace or the supremacy of the Holy
-See, it does not proceed from Erasmus.… In all I
-have written, I have not deviated one hair’s-breadth
-from the teaching of the Church. But every wise man
-knows that practices and teachings have been introduced
-into the Church partly by custom, partly by the
-canonists, partly by means of scholastic definitions,
-partly by the tricks and arts of secular sovereigns, which
-have no sound sanction. Many great people have
-begged me to support Luther, but I have ever replied
-that I would be ready to take his part when he was on
-the Catholic side. They have asked me to draw up a
-formula of faith; I have said that I know of none save
-the creed of the Catholic Church, and every one who
-consults me I urge to submit to the authority of the
-Pope.”<a name="FNanchor_198" id="FNanchor_198"></a><a href="#Footnote_198" class="fnanchor">[198]</a></p>
-
-<p>In many ways Erasmus regarded the rise of Lutheranism
-as the greatest misfortune. Not only did it tend
-to make good men suspicious of the general revival of
-letters, with which without reason they associated it, but
-the necessity of defending the Catholic position against
-the assaults of the new sectaries naturally obscured the
-need of reform within the Church itself, for which far-seeing
-and good men had long been looking. To Bishop<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[199]</a></span>
-Tunstall he expressed his fears lest in pulling up the
-tares, some, and perchance much, of the precious wheat
-might perish. Whilst, undoubtedly, there was in Luther’s
-work a great deal that he cordially detested, there
-was also much that would never have been condemned,
-had the points been calmly considered by learned men,
-apart from the ferment of revolt. “This, however, I
-promise you,” he adds, “that for my part I will never
-forsake the Church.”<a name="FNanchor_199" id="FNanchor_199"></a><a href="#Footnote_199" class="fnanchor">[199]</a></p>
-
-<p>This same sentiment he repeats the following year,
-1526: “From the judgment of the Church I am not
-able to dissent, nor have I ever dissented.”<a name="FNanchor_200" id="FNanchor_200"></a><a href="#Footnote_200" class="fnanchor">[200]</a> Had this
-tempest not risen up, he said, in another letter from
-Basle, he had hoped to have lived long enough to have
-seen a general revival of letters and theology returning
-more and more to the foundation of all true divinity,
-Holy Scripture. For his part, he cordially disliked
-controversy, and especially the discussion of such
-questions as “whether the Council was above the Pope,”
-and such like. He held that he was himself in all
-things a sound Catholic, and at peace with the Pope
-and his bishop, whilst no name was more hated by the
-Lutherans than that of Erasmus.<a name="FNanchor_201" id="FNanchor_201"></a><a href="#Footnote_201" class="fnanchor">[201]</a></p>
-
-<p>So much with regard to the attitude of mind manifested
-by Erasmus towards the authority of the teaching
-Church, which is the main point of interest in the
-present inquiry. His disposition will probably be construed
-by some into a critical opposition to much that
-was taught and practised; but it seems certain that
-Erasmus did not so regard his own position. He was
-a reformer in the best sense, as so many far-seeing and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[200]</a></span>
-spiritual-minded churchmen of those days were. He
-desired to better and beautify and perfect the system he
-found in vogue, and he had the courage of his convictions
-to point out what he thought stood in need of
-change and improvement, but he was no iconoclast;
-he had no desire to pull down or root up or destroy
-under the plea of improvement. That he remained to
-the last the friend of Popes and bishops and other
-orthodox churchmen, is the best evidence, over and
-above his own words, that his real sentiments were not
-misunderstood by men who had the interests of the
-Church at heart, and who looked upon him as true and
-loyal, if perhaps a somewhat eccentric and caustic son
-of Holy Church. Even in his last sickness he received
-from the Pope proof of his esteem, for he was given a
-benefice of considerable value, and it was hinted to him
-that another honour, as was commonly supposed at the
-time nothing less than the sacred purple, was in store
-for him.</p>
-
-<p>Most people are of course chiefly interested in the
-determination of Erasmus’s general attitude to the great
-religious movement of the age. In this place, however,
-one or two minor points in his literary history can hardly
-be passed over in silence. His attitude to the monks and
-the religious Orders generally, was one of acknowledged
-hostility, although there are passages in his writings,
-some of which have been already quoted, which seem
-to show that this hostility was neither so sweeping nor
-so deeply rooted as is generally thought. Still, it may
-be admitted that he has few good words for the religious
-Orders, and he certainly brings many and even grave
-accusations against their good name. There is little
-doubt, however, that much he had to say on the subject<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[201]</a></span>
-was, as he himself tells us, said to emphasise abuses that
-existed, and was not intended to be taken as any wholesale
-sweeping condemnation of the system of regular
-life. Very frequently the <i>Enconium Moriæ</i> has been
-named as the work in which Erasmus hits the monks
-the hardest. Those who so regard it can hardly have
-read it with attention, and most certainly they fail to
-appreciate its spirit. It was composed, as we have seen,
-at Sir Thomas More’s suggestion, and in his house at
-Chelsea in 1512, on Erasmus’s return from Italy. It
-is a satire on the ecclesiastical manners and customs in
-which all abuses in turn come in for their share of sarcastic
-condemnation; superstitions of people as to
-particular days and images, superstitions about “magic
-prayers and charmlike rosaries,” as to saints set to this
-or that office, to cure the toothache, to discover stolen
-goods, &amp;c., in the first place came under the lash of
-Erasmus’s sarcasm. Then come, in turn, doctors of
-divinity and theologians, “a nest of men so crabbed
-and morose” that he has half a mind, he says, to leave
-them severely alone, “lest perchance they should all at
-once fall upon me with six hundred conclusions, driving
-me to recant.” They are high and mighty and look
-down on other men, thinking of common individuals as
-“silly men like worms creeping on the ground,” and
-startling ordinary folk by the variety of their unpractical
-discussions and questions. “Nowadays,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[202]</a></span>
-“not baptism, nor the Gospel, nor Paul, nor Peter,
-nor Jerome, nor Augustine, nor yet Thomas Aquinas,
-are able to make men Christians, unless those Father
-Bachelors in divinity are pleased to subscribe to the
-same. They require us to address them as <i>Magister
-noster</i> in the biggest of letters.”</p>
-
-<p>Following upon this treatment of the scholastic
-theologians come the few pages devoted to monks, those
-“whose trade and observance were surely most miserable
-and abject, unless I (Folly) did many ways assist
-them.” They are so ignorant (at least so says Folly),
-that they can hardly read their own names. Erasmus
-makes merry over the office they chant, and the begging
-practised by the friars, and jeers amusingly at their
-style of dressing, at their mode of cutting their hair, and
-at their sleeping and working by <i>rule</i>. “Yea,” he says,
-“some of them being of a straightened rule are such
-sore punishers of their flesh, as outwardly they wear
-nought but sackcloth and inwardly no better than fine
-holland.” In a word, he laughs at the general observance
-of regular life, and in one place only passes a hint
-that some of their lives are not so saintly as they pretend.
-As a whole, however, the sarcasm is not so
-bitter as that addressed to other ecclesiastics, and even
-to the Pope himself. In view of Sir Thomas More’s
-subsequent explanation about the spirit of the <i>Enconium
-Moriæ</i>, there can be no doubt that it was intended
-mainly as a playful, if somewhat ill-judged and severe,
-lampoon on some patent abuses, and in no sense an
-attack upon the ecclesiastical system of the Catholic
-Church.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">[203]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_202" id="FNanchor_202"></a><a href="#Footnote_202" class="fnanchor">[202]</a></p>
-
-<p>One other misunderstanding about Erasmus’s position
-in regard to the revival of letters may be here
-noticed. The great scholar has been regarded as the
-incarnation of the spirit of practical paganism, which,
-unfortunately, was quickly the outcome of the movement
-in Italy, and which at this time gave so much
-colour and point to the denunciations of those of the
-opposite school. No view can be more unjust to Erasmus.
-Though he longed anxiously for the clergy to
-awake to a sense of the importance of studies in general,
-of classical and scriptural studies in particular, there
-was no one who saw more clearly the danger and
-absurdity of carrying the classical revivalist spirit to
-extremes. In fact, in his <i>Ciceroniana</i>, he expressly ridicules
-what he has seen in Rome of the classical spirit
-run mad. Those afflicted by it, he says, try to think
-that old Rome has returned. They speak of the
-“Senate,” the “conscript fathers,” the “plebs,” the
-“chief auger,” and the “college of soothsayers,” “Pontifices
-Maximi,” “Vestals,” “triumphs,” &amp;c. Nothing
-can be more unlike the true Ciceronian spirit. Am I,
-he asks, as a Christian speaking to Christians about the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">[204]</a></span>
-Christian religion to try and suppose I am living in the
-age of Cicero, and speak as if I were addressing a meeting
-of the conscript fathers on the Capitol? Am I to
-pick my words, choose my figures and illustrations from
-Cicero’s speeches to the Senate? How can Cicero’s
-eloquence help me to speak to a mixed audience of
-virgins, wives, and widows in praise of fasting, penance,
-prayer, almsgiving, the sanctity of marriage, the contempt
-of the fleeting pleasures of this world, or of the
-study of Holy Scripture. No, a Christian orator dressed
-in Cicero’s clothes is ridiculous.<a name="FNanchor_203" id="FNanchor_203"></a><a href="#Footnote_203" class="fnanchor">[203]</a></p>
-
-<p>As an illustration of the height of absurdity to
-which the madness of the classical craze had brought
-people in Rome in his day, Erasmus relates the story
-of a sermon he himself once heard in the Eternal City
-during the pontificate of Pope Julius II. “I had been
-invited,” he says, “a few days before, by some learned
-men to be present at this sermon (to be preached on
-Good Friday). ‘Take care not to miss it,’ they said,
-‘for you will at last be enabled to appreciate the tone
-of the Roman language, spoken by a Roman mouth.’
-Hence, with great curiosity, I went to the church,
-procuring a place near the orator so as not to miss
-even one word. Julius II. was himself present, a very
-unusual thing, probably on account of his health. And
-there were also there many cardinals and bishops, and
-in the crowd most of the men of letters who were then
-in Rome.</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">[205]</a></span></p>
-<p>“The exordium and peroration were nearly as
-long as the rest of the discourse, and they all rang
-the changes of praise of Julius II. He called him the
-almighty Jove, and pictured him as brandishing the
-trident, casting his thunderbolts with his right hand,
-and accomplishing all he willed by the mere nod of his
-head. All that had taken place of late years in Gaul,
-Germany, Spain, &amp;c., were but the efforts of his simple
-will. Then came a hundred times repeated, such
-words as ‘Rome,’ ‘Romans,’ ‘Roman mouth,’ ‘Roman
-eloquence,’ &amp;c.” But what, asks Erasmus, were all
-these to Julius, bishop of the Christian religion, Christ’s
-vicegerent, successor of Peter and Paul? What are
-these to cardinals and bishops who are in the places
-of the other apostles?</p>
-
-<p>“The orator’s design,” he continues, “was to represent
-to us Jesus Christ, at first in the agony of His
-Passion, and then in the glory of His triumph. To do
-this, he recalled the memory of Curtius and Decius,
-who had given themselves to the gods for the salvation
-of the Republic. He reminded us of Cecrops, of
-Menelaus, of Iphigenia, and of other noble victims
-who had valued their lives less than the honour and
-welfare of their country. Public gratitude (he continued,
-in tears and in most lugubrious tones) had
-always surrounded these noble and generous characters
-with its homage, sometimes raising gilded statues to
-their memory in the forum; sometimes decreeing
-them even divine honours, whilst Jesus Christ, for all
-His benefits, had received no other reward but death.
-The orator then went on to compare our Saviour, who
-had deserved so well of His country, to Phocion and to
-Socrates, who were compelled to drink hemlock though
-accused of no crime; to Epaminondas, driven to defend
-himself against envy roused by his noble deeds; to
-Scipio and to Aristides, whom the Athenians were tired
-of hearing called the ‘Just one,’ &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">[206]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I ask, can anything be imagined colder and more
-inept? Yet, over all his efforts, the preacher sweated
-blood and water to rival Cicero. In brief, my Roman
-preacher spoke Roman so well that I heard nothing
-about the death of Christ.<a name="FNanchor_204" id="FNanchor_204"></a><a href="#Footnote_204" class="fnanchor">[204]</a> If Cicero had lived in our
-days,” asks Erasmus, “would he not think the name of
-God the Father as elegant as Jupiter the almighty?
-Would he think it less elegant to speak of Jesus Christ
-than of Romulus, or of Scipio Africanus, of Quintus
-Curtius, or of Marcus Decius? Would he think the
-name of the Catholic Church less illustrious than that
-of ‘Conscript Fathers,’ ‘Quirites,’ or ‘Senate and people
-of Rome’? He would speak to us of faith in Christ,
-of the Holy Ghost, or the Holy Trinity?” &amp;c.<a name="FNanchor_205" id="FNanchor_205"></a><a href="#Footnote_205" class="fnanchor">[205]</a></p>
-
-<p>At considerable length Erasmus pours out the vials
-of his scorn upon those who act so foolishly under the
-influence of the false classical spirit. He points out
-the danger to be avoided. People, he says, go into
-raptures over pagan antiquities, and laugh at others
-who are enthusiastic about Christian archæology. “We
-kiss, venerate, almost adore a piece of antiquity,” he
-says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">[207]</a></span> “and mock at relics of the Apostles. If any one
-finds something from the twelve tables, who does not
-consider it worthy of the most holy place? And the
-laws written by the finger of God, who venerates, who
-kisses them? How delighted we are with a medal
-stamped with the head of Hercules, or of Mercury, or
-of Fortune, or of Victory, or of Alexander the Great, or
-one of the Cæsars,<a name="FNanchor_206" id="FNanchor_206"></a><a href="#Footnote_206" class="fnanchor">[206]</a> and we deride those who treasure
-the wood of the cross or images of the Virgin and
-saints as superstitious.”<a name="FNanchor_207" id="FNanchor_207"></a><a href="#Footnote_207" class="fnanchor">[207]</a> If in dealing with his subject
-Erasmus may appear to exaggerate the evil he condemns,
-this much is clear, that his advocacy of letters
-and learning, however strenuous and enthusiastic, was
-tempered by a sense of the paramount importance of
-the Christian spirit in the pursuit of science.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">[208]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_VII" id="CHAPTER_VII"></a>CHAPTER VII<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE LUTHERAN INVASION</span></h2>
-
-<p>It is not uncommonly asserted that the religious
-changes in England, although for convenience’ sake
-dated from the rejection of Papal supremacy, were
-in reality the outcome of long-continued and ever-increasing
-dissatisfaction with the then existing ecclesiastical
-system. The Pope’s refusal to grant Henry his
-wished-for divorce from Katherine, we are told, was
-a mere incident, which at most, precipitated by a
-short while what had long been inevitable.<a name="FNanchor_208" id="FNanchor_208"></a><a href="#Footnote_208" class="fnanchor">[208]</a> Those<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">[209]</a></span>
-who take this view are bound to believe that the
-Church in England in the early sixteenth century was
-honeycombed by disbelief in the traditional teachings,
-and that men were only too ready to welcome emancipation.
-What then is the evidence for this picture of
-the religious state of men’s minds in England on the
-eve of the Reformation?</p>
-
-<p>It is, indeed, not improbable that up and down
-the country there were, at this period, some dissatisfied
-spirits; some who would eagerly seize any opportunity
-to free themselves from the restraints which no longer
-appealed to their consciences, and from teachings they
-had come to consider as mere ecclesiastical formalism.
-A Venetian traveller of intelligence and observation,
-who visited the country at the beginning of the century,
-whilst struck with the Catholic practices and with the
-general manifestations of English piety he witnessed,
-understood that there were “many who have various
-opinions concerning religion.”<a name="FNanchor_209" id="FNanchor_209"></a><a href="#Footnote_209" class="fnanchor">[209]</a> But so far as there
-is evidence at all, it points to the fact, that of religious
-unrest, in any real sense, there could have been very
-little in the country generally. It is, of course, impossible
-to suppose that any measurable proportion of
-the people could have openly rejected the teaching of
-the Church or have been even crypto-Lollards, without
-there being satisfactory evidence of the fact forthcoming
-at the present day.</p>
-
-<p>The similarity of the doctrines held by the English
-Reformers of the sixteenth century with many of those
-taught by the followers of Wycliffe has, indeed, led some
-writers to assume a direct connection between them
-which certainly did not exist in fact. So far as England<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">[210]</a></span>
-at least is concerned, there is no justification for
-assuming for the Reformation a line of descent from any
-form of English Lollardism. It is impossible to study
-the century which preceded the overthrow of the old
-religious system in England without coming to the
-conclusion that as a body the Lollards had been long
-extinct, and that as individuals, scattered over the
-length and breadth of the land, without any practical
-principle of cohesion, the few who clung to the tenets
-of Wycliffe were powerless to effect any change of
-opinion in the overwhelming mass of the population
-at large. Lollardry, to the Englishman of the day, was
-“heresy,” and any attempt to teach it was firmly
-repressed by the ecclesiastical authority, supported by
-the strong arm of the State; but it was also an offence
-against the common feeling of the people, and there can
-be no manner of doubt that its repression was popular.
-The genius of Milton enabled him to see the fact that
-“Wycliffe’s preaching was soon damped and stifled by
-the Pope and prelates for six or seven kings’ reigns,”
-and Mr. James Gairdner, whose studies in this period
-of our national history enable him to speak with
-authority, comes to the same conclusion. “Notwithstanding
-the darkness that surrounds all subjects connected
-with the history of the fifteenth century,” he
-writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">[211]</a></span> “we may venture pretty safely to affirm that
-Lollardry was <i>not</i> the beginning of modern Protestantism.
-Plausible as it seems to regard Wycliffe as ‘the
-morning star of the Reformation,’ the figure conveys
-an impression which is altogether erroneous. Wycliffe’s
-real influence did not long survive his own day, and
-so far from Lollardry having taken any deep root among
-the English people, the traces of it had wholly disappeared
-long before the great revolution of which it
-is thought to be the forerunner. At all events, in the
-rich historical material for the beginning of Henry
-VIII.’s reign, supplied by the correspondence of the
-time, we look in vain for a single indication that any
-such thing as a Lollard sect existed. The movement
-had died a natural death; from the time of Oldcastle
-it sank into insignificance. Though still for a while
-considerable in point of numbers, it no longer counted
-among its adherents any men of note; and when
-another generation had passed away the serious action
-of civil war left no place for the crotchets of
-fanaticism.”<a name="FNanchor_210" id="FNanchor_210"></a><a href="#Footnote_210" class="fnanchor">[210]</a></p>
-
-<p>On the only evidence available, the student of the
-reign of Henry VII. and of that of Henry VIII. up to
-the breach with Rome is bound to come to the same
-conclusion as to the state of the English Church. If
-we except manifestations of impatience with the Pope
-and Curia, which could be paralleled in any age and
-country, and which were rather on the secular side than
-on the religious, there is nothing that would make us think
-that England was not fully loyal in mind and heart to the
-established ecclesiastical system. In fact, as Mr. Brewer<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">[212]</a></span>
-says, everything proves that “the general body of the
-people had not as yet learned to question the established
-doctrines of the Church. For the most part, they paid
-their Peter pence and heard mass, and did as their
-fathers had done before them.”<a name="FNanchor_211" id="FNanchor_211"></a><a href="#Footnote_211" class="fnanchor">[211]</a></p>
-
-<p>It may be taken, therefore, for granted that the
-seeds of religious discord were not the product of the
-country itself, nor, so far as we have evidence on the
-subject at all, does it appear that the soil of the country
-was in any way specially adapted for its fructification.
-The work, both of raising the seed and of scattering it
-over the soil of England, must be attributed, if the plain
-facts of history are to be believed, to Germans and the
-handful of English followers of the German Reformers.
-If we would rightly understand the religious situation
-in England at the commencement of the Reformation,
-it is of importance to inquire into the methods of attack
-adopted in the Lutheran invasion, and to note the chief
-doctrinal points which were first assailed.</p>
-
-<p>Very shortly after the religious revolt had established
-itself in Germany, the first indications of a serious attempt
-to undermine the traditional faith of the English Church
-became manifest in England. Roger Edgworth, a preacher
-during the reigns of Henry and Queen Mary, says that
-his “long labours have been cast in most troublesome
-times and most encumbered with errors and heresies,
-change of minds and schisms that ever was in the
-realm.… Whilst I was a young student in divinity,”
-he continues,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">[213]</a></span> “Luther’s heresies rose and were scattered
-here in this realm, which, in less space than a man
-would think, had so sore infected the Christian folk,
-first the youth and then the elders, where the children
-could set their fathers to school, that the king’s
-Majesty and all Christian clerks in the realm had much
-ado to extinguish them. This they could not so perfectly
-quench, but that ever since, when they might
-have any maintenance by man or woman of great
-power, they burst forth afresh, even like fire hid under
-chaff.”<a name="FNanchor_212" id="FNanchor_212"></a><a href="#Footnote_212" class="fnanchor">[212]</a></p>
-
-<p>Sir Thomas More, when Chancellor in 1532,
-attributed the rapid spread of what to him and most
-people of his day in England was heresy, to the
-flood of literature which was poured forth over the
-country by the help of printing. “We have had,” he
-writes, “some years of late, plenteous of evil books.
-For they have grown up so fast and sprung up
-so thick, full of pestilent errors and pernicious
-heresies, that they have infected and killed, I fear
-me, more simple souls than the famine of the dear
-years have destroyed bodies.”<a name="FNanchor_213" id="FNanchor_213"></a><a href="#Footnote_213" class="fnanchor">[213]</a></p>
-
-<p>We are not left in ignorance as to the books here
-referred to, as some few years previously the bishops
-of England had issued a list of the prohibited volumes.
-Thus, in October 1526, Bishop Tunstall ordered that
-in London people should be warned not to read the
-works in question, but that all who possessed them
-should deliver them over to the bishop’s officials in
-order that they might be destroyed as pernicious literature.
-The list included several works of Luther, three
-or four of Tyndale, a couple of Zwingle, and several
-isolated works, such as the <i>Supplication of Beggars</i>, and
-the <i>Dyalogue between the Father and the Son</i>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">[214]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_214" id="FNanchor_214"></a><a href="#Footnote_214" class="fnanchor">[214]</a></p>
-
-<p>In 1530 the king by proclamation forbade the reading
-or possession of some eighty-five works of Wycliffe,
-Luther, Œcolampadius, Zwingle, Pomeranus, Bucer,
-Wesselius, and indeed the German divines generally,
-under the heading of “books of the Lutheran sect or
-faction conveyed into the city of London.” Besides
-these Latin treatises, the prohibition included many
-English tracts, such as <i>A book of the old God and the new</i>,
-the <i>Burying of the Mass</i>, Frith’s <i>Disputation concerning
-Purgatory</i>, and several prayer-books intended to propagate
-the new doctrines, such as <i>Godly prayers</i>; <i>Matins
-and Evensong with the seven Psalms and other heavenly
-psalms with commendations</i>; the <i>Hortulus Animæ</i> in
-English,<a name="FNanchor_215" id="FNanchor_215"></a><a href="#Footnote_215" class="fnanchor">[215]</a> and the <i>Primer</i> in English.</p>
-
-<p>In his proclamation Henry VIII. speaks of the
-determination of the English nation in times past to
-be true to the Catholic faith and to defend the country
-against “wicked sects of heretics and Lollards, who,
-by perversion of Holy Scripture, do induce erroneous
-opinions, sow sedition amongst Christian people, and
-disturb the peace and tranquillity of Christian realms,
-as lately happened in some parts of Germany, where,
-by the procurement and sedition of Martin Luther and
-other heretics, were slain an infinite number of Christian
-people.” To prevent like misfortunes happening in
-England, he orders prompt measures to be taken to
-put a stop to the circulation of books in English and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">[215]</a></span>
-other languages, which teach things “intolerable to the
-clean ears of any good Christian man.”<a name="FNanchor_216" id="FNanchor_216"></a><a href="#Footnote_216" class="fnanchor">[216]</a></p>
-
-<p>By the king’s command, the convocation of Canterbury
-drew up a list of prohibited heretical books. In
-the first catalogue of fifty-three tracts and volumes,
-there is no mention of any work of Wycliffe, and besides
-some volumes which had come from the pens of Tyndale,
-Frith, and Roy, who were acknowledged disciples
-of Luther, the rest are all the compositions of the German
-Reformers. The same may be said of a supplementary
-list of tracts, the authors of which were
-unknown. All these are condemned as containing
-false teaching, plainly contrary to the Catholic faith,
-and the bishops add: “Moreover, following closely
-in the footsteps of our fathers, we prohibit all from
-selling, giving, reading, distributing, or publishing any
-tract, booklet, pamphlet, or book, which translates or
-interprets the Holy Scripture in the vernacular …
-or even knowingly to keep such volumes without the
-licence of their diocesan in writing.”<a name="FNanchor_217" id="FNanchor_217"></a><a href="#Footnote_217" class="fnanchor">[217]</a></p>
-
-<p>About the same time a committee of bishops, including
-Archbishop Warham and Bishop Tunstall was
-appointed to draw up a list of some of the principal
-errors contained in the prohibited works of English
-heretics beyond the sea. The king had heard that
-“many books in the English tongue containing many
-detestable errors and damnable opinions, printed in
-parts beyond the sea,” were being brought into England
-and spread abroad. He was unwilling that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">[216]</a></span> “such
-evil seed sown amongst his people (should) so take root
-that it might overgrow the corn of the Catholic doctrine
-before sprung up in the souls of his subjects,” and he
-consequently ordered this examination. This has been
-done and the errors noted, “albeit many more there be
-in those books; which books totally do swarm full of
-heresies and detestable opinions.” The books thus
-examined and noted were eight in number: <i>The Wicked
-Mammon</i>; the <i>Obedience of Christian man</i>; the <i>Revelation
-of Antichrist</i>; the <i>Sum of Scripture</i>; the <i>Book of Beggars</i>;
-the <i>Kalendar of the Prymer</i>; the <i>Prymer</i>, and an <i>Exposition
-unto the Seventh Chapter of I Corinthians</i>. From
-these some hundreds of propositions were culled which
-contradicted the plain teaching of the Church in matters
-of faith and morality. In this condemnation, as the
-king states in his directions to preachers to publish the
-same, the commission were unanimous.<a name="FNanchor_218" id="FNanchor_218"></a><a href="#Footnote_218" class="fnanchor">[218]</a></p>
-
-<p>The attack on the traditional teachings of the
-Church, moreover, was not confined to unimportant
-points. From the first, high and fundamental doctrines,
-as it seemed to men in those days, were put in peril.
-The works sent forth by the advocates of the change
-speak for themselves, and, when contrasted with those
-of Luther, leave no room for doubt that they were
-founded on them, and inspired by the spirit of the
-leader of the revolt, although, as was inevitable in
-such circumstances, in particulars the disciples proved
-themselves in advance of their master. Writing in
-1546, Dr. Richard Smythe contrasts the old times,
-when the faith was respected, with the then state of
-mental unrest in religious matters. “In our days,”
-he writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">[217]</a></span> “not a few things, nor of small importance,
-but (alack the more is the pity) even the chiefest and
-most weighty matters of our religion and faith are
-called in question, babbled, talked, and jangled upon
-(reasoned I cannot nor ought not to call it). These
-matters in time past (when reason had place and virtue
-with learning was duly regarded, yea, and vice with
-insolency was generally detested and abhorred) were
-held in such reverence and honour, in such esteem and
-dignity, yea, so received and embraced by all estates,
-that it was not in any wise sufferable that tag and rag,
-learned and unlearned, old and young, wise and foolish,
-boys and wenches, master and man, tinkers and tilers,
-colliers and coblers, with other such raskabilia might at
-their pleasure rail and jest (for what is it else they now
-do?) against everything that is good and virtuous,
-against all things that are expedient and profitable,
-not sparing any Sacrament of the Church or ordinance
-of the same, no matter how laudable, decent,
-or fitting it has been regarded in times past, or how
-much it be now accepted by good and Catholic men.
-In this way, both by preaching and teaching (if it so
-ought to be called), playing, writing, printing, singing,
-and (Oh, good Lord!) in how many other ways besides,
-divers of our age, being their own schoolmasters, or
-rather scholars of the devil, have not forborne or feared
-to speak and write against the most excellent and most
-blessed Sacrament of the Altar, affirming that the said
-Sacrament is nothing more than a bare figure, and that
-there is not in the same Sacrament the very body and
-blood of our blessed Saviour and Redeemer, Jesus
-Christ, but only a naked sign, a token, a memorial and
-a remembrance only of the same, if they take it for so
-much even and do not call it (as they are wont to do)
-an idol and very plain idolatry.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">[218]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_219" id="FNanchor_219"></a><a href="#Footnote_219" class="fnanchor">[219]</a></p>
-
-<p>As to the date of the introduction of these heretical
-views into England, Sir Thomas More entirely agreed
-with Dr. Smythe, the writer just quoted. He places
-the growth of these ideas in the circulation of books by
-Tyndale, Frith, and Barnes, and even as late as 1533,
-declares that the number of those who had accepted
-the new teaching was grossly exaggerated. He states
-his belief that “the realm is not full of heretics, and it
-has in it but a few, though that few be indeed over
-many and grown more also by negligence in some part
-than there has been in some late years past.”<a name="FNanchor_220" id="FNanchor_220"></a><a href="#Footnote_220" class="fnanchor">[220]</a> It was,
-indeed, part of the strategy pursued by the innovators
-in religion to endeavour to make the movement appear
-more important than it had any claim to be. It is,
-writes More, the “policy” of “these heretics who call
-themselves ‘evangelical brethren,’” to make their
-number appear larger than it is. “Some pot-headed
-apostles they have that wander about the realm into
-sundry shires, for whom every one has a different name
-in every shire, and some, peradventure, in corners here
-and there they bring into the brotherhood. But whether
-they get any or none they do not hesitate to lie when
-they come home, and say that more than half of every
-shire is of their own sect. Boast and brag these blessed
-brethren never so fast, they feel full well themselves
-that they be too feeble in what country so ever they
-be strongest. For if they thought themselves able to
-meet and match the Catholics they would not, I ween,
-lie still at rest for three days.”</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">[219]</a></span></p>
-<p>“For in all places where heresies have sprung up
-hitherto so hath it proved yet. And so negligently
-might these things be handled, that at length it might
-happen so here. And verily they look (far as they be
-yet from the power) for it, and some of them have not
-hesitated to say this, and some to write it, too. For I
-read the letter myself which was cast into the palace of
-the Right Reverend Father in God, Cuthbert, now
-Bishop of Durham, but then Bishop of London, in
-which among other bragging word … were these
-words contained: ‘There will once come a day.’ And
-out of question that day they long for but also daily
-look for, and would, if they were not too weak, not fail
-to find it. And they have the greater hope because
-… they see that it begins to grow into a custom that
-among good Catholic folk they are suffered to talk
-unchecked.” For good men in their own minds indeed
-think the Catholic faith so strong that heretics with all
-their babbling will never be able to vanquish it, “and in
-this undoubtedly their mind is not only good, but also
-very true. But they do not look far enough. For as
-the sea will never surround and overwhelm all the land,
-and yet has eaten it in many places, and swallowed
-whole countries up and made many places sea, which
-sometime were well-inhabited lands, and has lost part
-of its own possession again in other places, so, though
-the faith of Christ shall never be overwhelmed with
-heresy, nor the gate of hell prevail against Christ’s
-Church, yet as in some places it winneth in new peoples,
-so by negligence in some places the old may be lost.”<a name="FNanchor_221" id="FNanchor_221"></a><a href="#Footnote_221" class="fnanchor">[221]</a></p>
-
-<p>Sir Thomas More is all for vigilance on the part of
-the authorities. He likens those who are in power and
-office to the guardians of a fertile field who are bound
-to prevent the sowing of tares on their master’s land;
-and the multiplication of evil books and their circulation<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">[220]</a></span>
-among the people, cannot, in his opinion, have any
-other effect than to prevent the fertilisation of the good
-seed of God’s word in the hearts of many. “These new
-teachers,” he says, “despise Christ’s Sacraments, which
-are His holy ordinances and a great part of Christ’s New
-Law and Testament. Who can place less value on His
-commandments than they who, upon the boldness of
-faith only, set all good works at naught, and little consider
-the danger of their evil deeds upon the boldness
-that a bare faith and slight repentance, without shrift or
-penance, suffices, and that no vow made to God can
-bind a man to live chastely or hinder a monk from
-marriage. All these things, with many pestilent errors
-besides, these abominable books of Tyndale and his
-fellows teach us. Of these books of heresies there are
-so many made within these few years, what by Luther
-himself and by his fellows, and afterwards by the new
-sects sprung out of his, which, like the children of
-Vippara, would now gnaw out their mother’s belly, that
-the bare names of those books were almost enough to
-make a book. Some of every sort of those books are
-brought into this realm and kept in ‘hucker mucker’
-by some shrewd masters who keep them for no good.
-Besides the Latin, French, and German books of which
-these evil sects have put forth an innumerable number,
-there are some made in the English tongue. First,
-Tyndale’s <i>English Testament</i>, father of them all by reason
-of his false translating, and after that, the <i>Five Books of
-Moses</i> translated by the same man; we need not doubt
-in what manner and for what purpose. Then you have
-his <i>Introduction to Saint Paul’s Epistle</i>, with which he introduces
-his readers to a false understanding of Saint
-Paul, making them believe, among many other heresies,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">[221]</a></span>
-that Saint Paul held that faith only was always sufficient
-for salvation, and that men’s good works were worth
-nothing and could not deserve thanks or reward in
-heaven, although they were done in grace.… Then
-we have from Tyndale <i>The Wicked Mammona</i>, by which
-many a man has been beguiled and brought into many
-wicked heresies, which in good faith would be to me a
-matter of no little wonder, for there was never a more
-foolish frantic book, were it not that the devil is ever
-ready to put out the eyes of those who are content to
-become blind. Then we have Tyndale’s <i>Book of Obedience</i>,
-by which we are taught to disobey the teaching of
-Christ’s Catholic Church and set His holy Sacraments
-at naught. Then we have from Tyndale the <i>First
-Epistle of Saint John</i>, expounded in such wise that I dare
-say that blessed Apostle had rather his Epistle had
-never been put in writing than that his holy words
-should be believed by all Christian people in such a
-sense. Then we have the <i>Supplication of Beggars</i>, a
-piteous beggarly book, in which he would have all the
-souls in Purgatory beg all about for nothing. Then we
-have from George Joye, otherwise called Clarke, a
-<i>Goodly Godly Epistle</i>, wherein he teaches divers other
-heresies, but specially that men’s vows and promises of
-chastity are not lawful, and can bind no man in conscience
-not to wed when he will. And this man, considering
-that when a man teaches one thing and does
-another himself, the people set less value by his preaching,
-determined therefore with himself, that he would
-show himself an example of his preaching. Therefore,
-being a priest, he has beguiled a woman and wedded
-her; the poor woman, I ween, being unaware that he is
-a priest. Then you have also an <i>Exposition on the Seventh<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">[222]</a></span>
-Chapter of Saint Paul’s Epistle to the Corinthians</i>, by which
-exposition also priests, friars, monks, and nuns are
-taught the evangelical liberty that they may run out
-a-caterwauling and wed. That work has no name of
-the maker, but some think it was Friar Roy who, when
-he had fallen into heresy, then found it unlawful to live
-in chastity and ran out of his Order. Then have we
-the <i>Examinations of Thorpe</i> put forth as it is said by
-George Constantine (by whom I know well there has
-been a great many books of that sort sent into this
-realm). In that book, the heretic that made it as (if it
-were) a communication between the bishop and his
-chaplains and himself, makes all the parties speak as he
-himself likes, and sets down nothing as spoken against
-his heresies, but what he himself would seem solemnly
-to answer. When any good Christian man who has
-either learning or any natural wit reads this book, he
-shall be able not only to perceive him for a foolish
-heretic and his arguments easy to answer, but shall also
-see that he shows himself a false liar in his rehearsal of
-the matter in which he makes the other part sometimes
-speak for his own convenience such manner of things
-as no man who was not a very wild goose would have
-done.</p>
-
-<p>“Then have we <i>Jonas</i> made out by Tyndale, a book
-that whosoever delight therein shall stand in such peril,
-that Jonas was never so swallowed up by the whale, as
-by the delight of that book a man’s soul may be so
-swallowed by the devil that he shall never have the
-grace to get out again. Then, we have from Tyndale
-the answer to my <i>Dyalogue</i>. Then, the book of Frith
-against <i>Purgatory</i>. Then, the book of Luther translated
-into English in the name of Brightwell, but, as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">[223]</a></span>
-I am informed, it was translated by Frith; a book,
-such as Tyndale never made one more foolish nor one
-more full of lies.… Then, we have the <i>Practice of
-Prelates</i>, wherein Tyndale intended to have made a
-special show of his high worldly wit, so that men
-should have seen therein that there was nothing done
-among princes that he was not fully advertised of the
-secrets. Then, we have now the book of Friar
-Barnes, sometime a doctor of Cambridge, who was
-abjured before this time for heresy, and is at this day
-come under a safe conduct to the realm. Surely, of
-all their books that yet came abroad in English (of all
-which there was never one wise nor good) there was
-none so bad, so foolish, so false as his. This, since
-his coming, has been plainly proved to his face, and
-that in such wise that, when the books that he cites
-and alleges in his book were brought forth before him,
-and his ignorance showed him, he himself did in divers
-things confess his oversight, and clearly acknowledged
-that he had been mistaken and wrongly understood
-the passages.</p>
-
-<p>“Then, we have besides Barnes’s book, the <i>A B C
-for children</i>. And because there is no grace therein,
-lest we should lack prayers, we have the <i>Primer</i> and
-the <i>Ploughman’s Prayer</i> and a book of other small
-devotions, and then the whole <i>Psalter</i> too. After the
-<i>Psalter</i>, children were wont to go straight to their
-<i>Donat</i> and their Accidence, but now they go straight to
-Scripture. And for this end we have as a Donat, the
-book of the <i>Pathway to Scripture</i>, and for an Accidence,
-the <i>Whole sum of Scripture</i> in a little book, so that after
-these books are learned well, we are ready for Tyndale’s
-<i>Pentateuchs</i> and Tyndale’s <i>Testament</i>, and all the other<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">[224]</a></span>
-high heresies that he and Joye and Frith and Friar
-Barnes teach in all their books. Of all these heresies
-the seed is sown, and prettily sprung up in these little
-books before. For the <i>Primer</i> and <i>Psalter</i>, prayers and
-all, were translated and made in this manner by heretics
-only. The <i>Psalter</i> was translated by George Joye, the
-priest that is wedded now, and I hear say the <i>Primer</i>
-too, in which the seven Psalms are printed without the
-Litany, lest folks should pray to the saints; and the
-<i>Dirge</i> is left out altogether, lest a man might happen
-to pray with it for his father’s soul. In their Calendar,
-before their devout prayers, they have given us a new
-saint, Sir Thomas Hytton, the heretic who was burned
-in Kent. They have put him in on St. Matthew’s Eve,
-by the name of St. Thomas the Martyr.</p>
-
-<p>“It would be a long work to rehearse all their
-books, for there are yet more than I have known.
-Against all these the king’s high wisdom politically
-provided, in that his proclamation forbade any manner
-of English books printed beyond the sea to be brought
-into this realm, or any printed within this realm to be
-sold unless the name of the printer and his dwelling-place
-were set upon the book. But still, as I said
-before, a few malicious, mischievous persons have
-now brought into this realm these ungracious books
-full of pestilent, poisoned heresies that have already in
-other realms killed, by schisms and war, many thousand
-bodies, and by sinful errors and abominable heresies
-many more thousand souls.</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">[225]</a></span></p>
-<p>“Although these books cannot either be there
-printed without great cost, nor here sold without
-great adventure and peril, yet, with money sent hence,
-they cease not to print them there, and send them
-hither by the whole sacks full at once; and in some
-places, looking for no lucre, cast them abroad at night,
-so great a pestilent pleasure have some devilish people
-caught with the labour, travail, cast, charge, peril,
-harm, and hurt of themselves to seek the destruction
-of others.”<a name="FNanchor_222" id="FNanchor_222"></a><a href="#Footnote_222" class="fnanchor">[222]</a></p>
-
-<p>In his introduction to the <i>Confutation</i> of Tyndale’s
-answer, from which the foregoing extracts are taken,
-Sir Thomas More gives ample evidence that the teaching
-of “the New Learning” was founded entirely upon that
-of the German Reformer Luther, although on certain
-points his English followers had gone beyond their
-master. He takes for example what Hytton, “whom
-Tyndale has canonized,” had been teaching “his holy
-congregations, in divers corners and luskes lanes.”
-Baptism, he had allowed to be “a sacrament necessary
-for salvation,” though he declared that there was no
-need for a priest to administer it. Matrimony, he
-thought a good thing for Christians, but would be
-sorry to say it was a sacrament. Extreme Unction
-and Confirmation, together with Holy Orders, he
-altogether rejected as sacraments, declaring them to
-be mere ceremonies of man’s invention. “The mass,”
-he declared, “should never be said,” since to do so was
-rather an act of sin than virtue. Confession to a priest
-was unnecessary, and the penance enjoined was “without
-profit to the soul.” Purgatory he denied, “and said
-further, that neither prayer nor fasting for the souls
-departed can do them any good.” Religious vows
-were wrong, and those who entered religion “sinned
-in so doing.” He held further, that “no man had any
-free-will after he had once sinned;” that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">[226]</a></span> “all the
-images of Christ and His saints should be thrown out
-of the Church,” and that whatsoever laws “the Pope
-or a General Council might make beyond what is
-expressly commanded in Scripture” need not be
-obeyed. “As touching the Sacrament of the Altar,
-he said that it was a necessary sacrament, but held
-that after the consecration, there was nothing whatever
-therein, but only the very substance of material bread
-and wine.”<a name="FNanchor_223" id="FNanchor_223"></a><a href="#Footnote_223" class="fnanchor">[223]</a></p>
-
-<p>Now, it was to defend these points of Catholic
-faith, as More, in common with the most learned in
-the land, believed them to be, that he took up his pen
-against Tyndale and others. I wish, he says, to second
-“the king’s gracious purpose, as being his most unworthy
-chancellor,” since<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">[227]</a></span> “I know well that the king’s
-highness, for his faithful mind to God, desires nothing
-more effectually than the maintenance of the true
-Catholic faith, whereof is his no more honourable
-than well-deserved title, ‘defensor.’ He detests nothing
-more than these pestilent books which Tyndale and
-others send over into the realm in order to set forth
-their abominable heresies. For this purpose he has
-not only by his most erudite famous books, both in
-English and Latin, declared his most Catholic purpose
-and intent, but also by his open proclamations divers
-times renewed, and finally in his own most royal
-person in the Star Chamber most eloquently by his
-mouth, in the presence of his lords spiritual and
-temporal, has given monition and warning to all the
-justices of peace of every quarter of his realm then
-assembled before his Highness, to be declared by them
-to all his people, and did prohibit and forbid under
-great penalties, the bringing in, reading, and keep of
-those pernicious poisoned books.”<a name="FNanchor_224" id="FNanchor_224"></a><a href="#Footnote_224" class="fnanchor">[224]</a></p>
-
-<p>The other writers of the time, moreover, had no
-doubt whatever as to the place whence the novel
-opinions had sprung, and they feared that social disturbances
-would follow in the wake of the religious
-teaching of the sectaries as they had done in the country
-of their birth. Thus Germen Gardynare, writing
-to a friend about the execution of John Frith for
-heresy, says that he was “amongst others found busy
-at Oxford in setting abroad these heresies which lately
-sprang up in Germany, and by the help of such folk
-are spread abroad into sundry places of Christendom,
-tending to nothing else but to the division and rending
-asunder of Christ’s mystical body, His Church; and
-to the pulling down of all power and the utter subversion
-of all commonwealths.”<a name="FNanchor_225" id="FNanchor_225"></a><a href="#Footnote_225" class="fnanchor">[225]</a></p>
-
-<p>Sir Thomas More, too, saw danger to the ship of
-State from the storms which threatened the nation in
-the rise of the religious novelties imported from abroad.
-As a warning anticipation of what might come to pass
-in England if the flood was allowed to gain head, he
-describes what was known of the state of Germany
-when he wrote in 1528. What helped Luther to successfully
-spread his poison was, he says, “that liberty
-which he so highly commended unto the people,
-inducing them to believe that having faith they
-needed nothing else. For he taught them to neglect
-fasting, prayer, and such other things as vain and unfruitful
-ceremonies, teaching them also that being faithful<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">[228]</a></span>
-Christians they were so near cousins to Christ that
-they were, in a full freedom and liberty, discharged of
-all governors and all manner of laws spiritual and temporal,
-except only the Gospel. And though he said that,
-as a point of special perfection, it would be good to
-suffer and bear the rule and authority of Popes and
-princes and other governors, whose rule and authority
-he calls mere tyranny, yet he says the people are so
-free by faith that they are no more bound thereto than
-they are to suffer wrong. And this doctrine Tyndale
-also teaches as the special matter of his holy book of
-disobedience. Now, this doctrine was heard so pleasantly
-in Germany by the common people that it
-blinded them in looking on the remnant, and would
-not allow them to consider and see what end the same
-would come to. The temporal lords also were glad to
-hear this talk against the clergy, and the people were as
-glad to hear it against the clergy and against the lords
-too, and against all the governors of every good town and
-city. Finally, it went so far that it began to burst out
-and fall to open force and violence. For intending to
-begin at the most feeble, a boisterous company of the
-unhappy sect gathered together and first rebelled
-against an abbot, and afterwards against a bishop,
-wherewith the temporal lords had good game and
-sport and dissembled the matter, gaping after the
-lands of the spirituality, till they had almost played
-as Æsop tells of the dog, which, in order to snatch
-at the shadow of the cheese in the water, let the cheese
-he had in his mouth fall, and lost it. For so it was
-shortly after that those uplandish Lutherans took so
-great boldness and began to grow so strong that they
-set also upon the temporal lords. These … so acquitted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">[229]</a></span>
-themselves that they slew in one summer 70,000
-Lutherans and subdued the rest in that part of Germany
-to a most miserable servitude.… And in divers other
-parts of Germany and Switzerland this ungracious sect
-is so grown, by the negligence of governors in great
-cities, that in the end the common people have compelled
-the rulers to follow them.…</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">[230]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“And now it is too piteous a sight to see the ‘dispiteous
-dispyghts’ done in many places to God and all
-good men, with the marvellous change from the face
-and fashion of Christendom into a very tyrannous persecution,
-not only of all good Christians living and dead,
-but also of Christ Himself. For there you will see
-now goodly monasteries destroyed, the places burnt
-up, and the religious people put out and sent to
-seek their living; or, in many cities, the places (the
-buildings) yet standing with more despite to God than
-if they were burned to ashes. For the religious people,
-monks, friars, and nuns, are wholly driven or drawn
-out, except such as would agree to forsake their vows
-of chastity and be wedded; and places dedicated to
-cleanliness and chastity, left only to these apostates as
-brothels to live there in lechery. Now are the parish
-churches in many places not only defaced, all the ornaments
-taken away, the holy images pulled down, and
-either broken or burned, but also the Holy Sacrament
-cast out. And the abominable beasts (which I abhor
-to think about) did not abhor in despite to defile the
-pixes and in many places use the churches continually
-for a common siege. And that they have done in so
-despiteful a wise that when a stranger from other places
-where Christ is worshipped resorts to these cities, some
-of those unhappy wretched citizens do not fail, as it
-were, for courtesy and kindness, to accompany them in
-their walking abroad to show them the pleasures and
-commodities of the town, and then bring them to the
-church, only to show them in derision what uses the
-churches serve for!” Then, after pointing out that “of
-this sect were the greater part of those ungracious
-people who lately entered into Rome with the Duke
-of Bourbon,” Sir Thomas More details at considerable
-length the horrors committed during that sack
-of the Eternal City; adding: “For this purpose I
-rehearse to you these their heavy mischievous dealings,
-that you may perceive by their deeds what good comes
-of their sect. For as our Saviour says: ‘ye shall
-know the tree by the fruit.’”<a name="FNanchor_226" id="FNanchor_226"></a><a href="#Footnote_226" class="fnanchor">[226]</a></p>
-
-<p>The activity of the teachers of the new doctrine
-was everywhere remarkable. More only wished that
-the maintainers of the traditional Catholic faith were
-half so zealous “as those that are fallen into false
-heresies and have forsaken the faith.” These seem,
-he says, indeed to “have a hot fire of hell in their
-hearts that can never suffer them to rest or cease,
-but forces them night and day to labour and work
-busily to subvert and destroy the Catholic Christian
-faith by every means they can devise.”<a name="FNanchor_227" id="FNanchor_227"></a><a href="#Footnote_227" class="fnanchor">[227]</a> The time
-was, “and even until now very late,” when no man
-would allow any heresy to be spoken at his table; for
-this “has been till of late the common Christian zeal
-towards the Catholic faith.” But now (1533)<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">[231]</a></span> “though,
-God be thanked, the faith is itself as fast rooted in this
-realm as ever it was before (except in some very few
-places, and yet even in those few the very faithful folk
-are many more than the faithless), even good men
-are beginning to tolerate the discussion of heretical
-views, and to take part in ‘the evil talk.’”</p>
-
-<p>To understand the Reformation in England, it is
-important to note the progress of its growth, and to
-note that the lines upon which it developed were to
-all intents and purposes those which had been laid
-down by Luther for the German religious revolution,
-although, in many ways, England was carried along the
-path of reformed doctrines, even further than the original
-leader had been prepared to go. The special points
-of the traditional faith of the English people, which the
-reforming party successfully attacked, were precisely
-those which had been the battle-ground in Germany,
-and Sir Thomas More’s description of the result there
-might somewhat later have been written of this country.
-Tyndale was described by More as “the captain of
-the English heretics,” and the influence of his works
-no doubt greatly helped to the overthrow of the traditional
-teaching. The key of the position taken up by
-the English Reformers, as well as by their German
-predecessors, was the claim that all belief must be
-determined by the plain word of Holy Scripture, and
-by that alone. Tradition they rejected, although Sir
-Thomas More pointed out forcibly that the Church
-had always acknowledged the twofold authority of the
-written and unwritten word.<a name="FNanchor_228" id="FNanchor_228"></a><a href="#Footnote_228" class="fnanchor">[228]</a> Upon this ground
-Tyndale and his successors rejected all the sacraments
-but two, attacked popular devotion to sacred images
-and prayers to our Lady and the saints, and rejected
-the old teaching about Purgatory and the help the
-souls of the departed faithful could derive from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">[232]</a></span>
-suffrages and penances of the living. Confirmation
-and the anointing of priests at ordination they contemptuously
-called “butter smearing,” and with their
-denial of the priesthood quickly came their rejection
-of the doctrine of the Sacrifice in the Mass, and their
-teaching that the Holy Eucharist is a “token and
-sign” rather than the actual Body and Blood of our
-Lord.</p>
-
-<p>No means were left untried to further the spread
-of the new views. Books of prayer were drawn up, in
-which, under the guise of familiar devotions, the poison
-of the reformed doctrine was unsuspectedly imbibed.
-Richard Whitford complains that his works, which just
-on the eve of the Reformation were deservedly popular,
-had been made use of for the purpose of interpolating
-tracts against points of Catholic faith, which people were
-induced to buy under the supposition that they were
-from the pen of the celebrated monk of Sion. John
-Waylande, the printer of some Whitford books, in 1537
-prefixed the following notice to the new edition of
-the <i>Werke for Householders</i>. “The said author required
-me instantly that I should not print nor join any other
-works with his, specially of uncertain authors. For
-of late he found a work joined in the same volume
-with his works, and bought and taken for his work.
-This was not his, but was put there instead of his work
-that before was named among the contents of his book,
-and yet his (real) work was left out, as is complained in
-this preface here unto the Reader.”</p>
-
-<p>In his preface Whitford says that the substituted
-work was obviously by one of the Reformers, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">[233]</a></span> “not
-only puts me into infamy and slander, but also puts
-all readers in jeopardy of conscience to be infected
-(by heresy) and in danger of the king’s laws, for the
-manifold erroneous opinions that are contained in the
-same book.” He consequently adds a warning to his
-readers: “By my poor advice,” he says, “read not
-those books that go forth without named authors.
-For, doubtless, many of them that seem very devout
-and good works, are full of heresies, and your old
-English poet says, ‘There is no poison so perilous
-of sharpness as that is that hath of sugar a sweetness.’”<a name="FNanchor_229" id="FNanchor_229"></a><a href="#Footnote_229" class="fnanchor">[229]</a></p>
-
-<p>In a subsequent volume, published in 1541, called
-<i>Dyvers holy instructions and teachings</i>, Whitford again complains
-of this device of the teachers of the new doctrines.
-In the preface he gives the exact titles of the four little
-tracts which go to make up the volume, in order, as he
-says, “to give you warning to search well and surely
-that no other works are put amongst them that might
-deceive you. For, of a certainty, I found now but
-very lately a work joined and bound with my poor
-labours and under the contents of the same volume,
-and one of my works which was named in the same
-contents left out. Instead of this, was put this other
-work that was not mine. For the title of mine was
-this, ‘A daily exercise and experience of death,’ and
-the other work has no name of any author. And all
-such works in this time are ever to be suspected, for
-so the heretics are used to send forth their poison
-among the people covered with sugar. For they seem
-to be good and devout workers, and are in very deed
-stark heresies.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">[234]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_230" id="FNanchor_230"></a><a href="#Footnote_230" class="fnanchor">[230]</a></p>
-
-<p>Even the smallest points were not deemed too insignificant
-for the teaching of novel doctrines destructive
-of the old Catholic spirit. To take an example:
-John Standish, writing in Mary’s reign about the vernacular
-Scripture, complains of the translation which
-had been made in the time of Henry VIII. “Who is
-able,” he writes, “to tell at first sight how many
-hundred faults are even in their best translation (if
-there is any good). Shall they be suffered still to
-continue? Shall they still poison more like as they
-do in a thousand damnable English books set forth
-within the last twenty-two years? Lord deliver us
-from them all, and that with all speed! I take God
-to record (if I may speak only of one fault in the
-translation and touch no more) my heart did ever
-abhor to hear this word <i>Dominus</i> … translated <i>the</i>
-Lord, whereas it ought to be translated <i>our</i> Lord, the
-very Latin phrase so declaring. Is not St. John
-saying to Peter (John, xxi.), <i>Dominus est</i>, ‘it is our
-Lord’? whereas they have falsely translated it as in
-many other places ‘<i>the</i> Lord.’ And likewise in the
-salutation of our Lady, ‘Hail, Mary, full of grace,
-<i>dominus tecum</i>,’ does not this word <i>dominus</i> here include
-<i>noster</i>, and so ought to be translated ‘our Lord is with
-thee’? Would you make the Archangel like a devil
-call him <i>the</i> Lord? He is the Lord to every evil spirit,
-but to us He is our most merciful Lord and ought to
-be called so. If, perchance, you ask of a husbandman
-whose ground that is, he will answer, ‘the lord’s,’ who
-is perhaps no better than a collier. Well, I speak this,
-not now so much for the translation, seeing that it
-swarms as full of faults as leaves (I will not say lines)
-as I do, because I wish that the common speech<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">[235]</a></span>
-among people sprung from this fond translation, ‘I
-thank the Lord’; ‘the Lord be praised’; ‘the Lord
-knoweth’; with all such-like phrases might be given
-up, and that the people might be taught to call Him
-‘our Lord,’ saying, ‘I thank our Lord’; ‘our Lord
-be praised,’<a name="FNanchor_231" id="FNanchor_231"></a><a href="#Footnote_231" class="fnanchor">[231]</a> &amp;c., &amp;c.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">[236]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_VIII" id="CHAPTER_VIII"></a>CHAPTER VIII<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE PRINTED ENGLISH BIBLE</span></h2>
-
-<p>It is very commonly believed that until the influence
-of Cranmer had made itself felt, the ecclesiastical
-authorities continued to maintain the traditionally
-hostile attitude of the English Church towards the
-English Bible. In proof of this, writers point to the
-condemnation of the translations issued by Tyndale,
-and the wholesale destruction of all copies of this, the
-first printed edition of the English New Testament.
-It is consequently of importance to examine into the
-extent of the supposed clerical hostility to the vernacular
-Scriptures, and into the reasons assigned by those
-having the conduct of ecclesiastical affairs at that
-period for the prohibition of Tyndale’s Testament.</p>
-
-<p>It may not be without utility to point out that the
-existence of any determination on the part of the
-Church to prevent the circulation of vernacular Bibles
-in the fifteenth century has been hitherto too hastily
-assumed. Those who were living during that period
-may be fairly considered the most fitting interpreters
-of the prohibition of Archbishop Arundel, which has
-been so frequently adduced as sufficient evidence of
-this supposed uncompromising hostility to what is now
-called “the open Bible.” The terms of the archbishop’s
-monition do not, on examination, bear the meaning
-usually put upon it; and should the language be considered<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">[237]</a></span>
-by some obscure, there is absolute evidence of
-the possession of vernacular Bibles by Catholics of
-undoubted orthodoxy with, at the very least, the tacit
-consent of the ecclesiastical authorities. When to this
-is added the fact that texts from the then known
-English Scriptures were painted on the walls of churches,
-and portions of the various books were used in authorised
-manuals of prayer, it is impossible to doubt that
-the hostility of the English Church to the vernacular
-Bible has been greatly exaggerated, if indeed its attitude
-has not altogether been misunderstood. This much
-may, and indeed must, be conceded, wholly apart from
-the further question whether the particular version now
-known as the Wycliffite Scriptures is, or is not, the
-version used in the fifteenth and early sixteenth century
-by Catholic Englishmen. That a Catholic version, or
-some version viewed as Catholic and orthodox by those
-who lived in the sixteenth century, really existed does
-not admit of any doubt at all on the distinct testimony
-of Sir Thomas More. It will be readily admitted that
-he was no ordinary witness. As one eminent in legal
-matters, he must be supposed to know the value of
-evidence, and his uncompromising attitude towards all
-innovators in matters of religion is a sufficient guarantee
-that he would be no party to the propagation of any
-unorthodox or unauthorised translations.</p>
-
-<p>Some quotations from Sir Thomas More’s works
-will illustrate his belief better than any lengthy exposition.
-It is unnecessary, he says, to defend the law
-prohibiting any English version of the Bible, “for there
-is none such, indeed. There is of truth a Constitution
-which speaks of this matter, but nothing of such fashion.
-For you shall understand that the great arch-heretic<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">[238]</a></span>
-Wycliffe, whereas the whole Bible was long before his
-days by virtuous and well-learned men translated into
-the English tongue, and by good and godly people and
-with devotion and soberness well and reverently read,
-took upon himself to translate it anew. In this translation
-he purposely corrupted the holy text, maliciously
-planting in it such words, as might in the readers’ ears
-serve to prove such heresies as he ‘went about’ to sow.
-These he not only set forth with his own translation of
-the Bible, but also with certain prologues and glosses
-he made upon it, and he so managed this matter, assigning
-probable and likely reasons suitable for lay and unlearned
-people, that he corrupted in his time many folk
-in this realm.…</p>
-
-<p>“After it was seen what harm the people took from
-the translation, prologues, and glosses of Wycliffe and
-also of some others, who after him helped to set forth
-his sect for that cause, and also for as much as it is
-dangerous to translate the text of Scripture out of one
-tongue into another, as St. Jerome testifieth, since in
-translating it is hard to keep the same sentence whole
-(i.e. the exact meaning): it was, I say, for these causes
-at a Council held at Oxford, ordered under great penalties
-that no one might thenceforth translate (the Scripture)
-into English, or any other language, on his own
-authority, in a book, booklet, or tract, and that no one
-might read openly or secretly any such book, booklet,
-or treatise newly made in the time of the said John
-Wycliffe, or since, or should be made any time after, till
-the same translation had been approved by the diocesan,
-or, if need should require, by a Provincial Council.</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">[239]</a></span></p>
-<p>“This is the law that so many have so long spoken
-about, and so few have all this time sought to look
-whether they say the truth or not. For I hope you see
-in this law nothing unreasonable, since it neither forbids
-good translations to be read that were already made of
-old before Wycliffe’s time, nor condemns his because it
-was new, but because it was ‘naught.’ Neither does it
-prohibit new translations to be made, but provides that
-if they are badly made they shall not be read till they
-are thoroughly examined and corrected, unless indeed
-they are such translations as Wycliffe and Tyndale made,
-which the malicious mind of the translator has handled
-in such a way that it were labour lost to try and correct
-them.”</p>
-
-<p>The “objector,” whom Sir Thomas More was engaged
-in instructing in the <i>Dialogue</i>, could hardly believe
-that the formal Provincial Constitution meant nothing
-more than this, and thereupon, as Sir Thomas says: “I
-set before him the Constitutions Provincial, with Lyndwood
-upon it, and directed him to the place under the
-title <i>De magistris</i>. When he himself had read this, he
-said he marvelled greatly how it happened that in so
-plain a matter men were so deceived.” But he thought
-that even if the law was not as he had supposed, nevertheless
-the clergy acted as if it were, and always “took
-all translations out of every man’s hand whether the
-translation was good or bad, old or new.” To this
-More replied that to his knowledge this was not correct.
-“I myself,” he says, “have seen and can show you
-Bibles, fair and old, written in English, which have been
-known and seen by the bishop of the diocese, and left in
-the hands of laymen and women, whom he knew to be
-good and Catholic people who used the books with
-devotion and soberness.” He admitted indeed that all
-Bibles found in the hands of heretics were taken away<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">[240]</a></span>
-from them, but none of these, so far as he had ever
-heard, were burnt, except such as were found to be
-garbled and false. Such were the Bibles issued with
-evil prologues or glosses, maliciously made by Wycliffe
-and other heretics. “Further,” he declared, “no good
-man would be so mad as to burn a Bible in which they
-found no fault.” Nor was there any law whatever that
-prohibited the possession, examination, or reading of
-the Holy Scripture in English.<a name="FNanchor_232" id="FNanchor_232"></a><a href="#Footnote_232" class="fnanchor">[232]</a></p>
-
-<p>In reply to the case of Richard Hunn, who, according
-to the story set about by the religious innovators,
-had been condemned and his dead body burnt<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">[241]</a></span> “only
-because they found English Bibles in his house, in
-which they never found other fault than because they
-were in English,” Sir Thomas More, professedly, and
-with full knowledge of the circumstances, absolutely
-denies, as he says, “from top to toe,” the truth of this
-story.<a name="FNanchor_233" id="FNanchor_233"></a><a href="#Footnote_233" class="fnanchor">[233]</a> He shows at great length that the whole tale
-of Hunn’s death was carefully examined into by the
-king’s officials, and declares that at many of the examinations
-he himself had been present and heard the
-witnesses, and that in the end it had been fully shown
-that Hunn was in reality a heretic and a teacher of
-heresy. “But,” urged his objector, “though Hunn
-were himself a heretic, yet might the book (of the
-English Bible) be good enough; and there is no good
-reason why a good book should be burnt.” The copy
-of this Bible, replied More, was of great use in showing
-the kind of man Hunn really was, “for at the time he
-was denounced as a heretic, there lay his English Bible
-open, and some other English books of his, so that
-every one could see the places noted with his own hand,
-such words and in such a way that no wise and good
-man could, after seeing them, doubt what ‘naughty
-minds’ the men had, both he that so noted them and
-he that so made them. I do not remember the particulars,”
-he continued, “nor the formal words as they
-were written, but this I do remember well, that besides
-other things found to support divers other heresies,
-there were in the prologue of that Bible such words
-touching the Blessed Sacrament as good Christian men
-did much abhor to hear, and which gave the readers undoubted
-occasion to think that the book was written
-after Wycliffe’s copy, and by him translated into our
-tongue.”<a name="FNanchor_234" id="FNanchor_234"></a><a href="#Footnote_234" class="fnanchor">[234]</a></p>
-
-<p>More then goes on to state his own mind as to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">[242]</a></span>
-utility of vernacular Scriptures. And, in the first place,
-he utterly denies again that the Church, or any ecclesiastical
-authority, ever kept the Bible in English from
-the people, except “such translations as were either not
-approved as good translations, or such as had already
-been condemned as false, such as Wycliffe’s and Tyndale’s
-were. For, as for other old ones that were before
-Wycliffe’s days, they remain lawful, and are in the possession
-of some people, and are read.” To this assertion
-of a plain fact Sir Thomas More’s opponent did
-not dissent, but frankly admitted that this was certainly
-the case,<a name="FNanchor_235" id="FNanchor_235"></a><a href="#Footnote_235" class="fnanchor">[235]</a> although he still thought that the English
-Bible might be in greater circulation than it was.<a name="FNanchor_236" id="FNanchor_236"></a><a href="#Footnote_236" class="fnanchor">[236]</a> Sir
-Thomas More considered that the clergy really had
-good grounds not to encourage the spread of the vernacular
-Scriptures at that time, inasmuch as those who
-were most urgent in the matter were precisely those
-whose orthodoxy was reasonably suspected. It made
-men fear, he says, “that seditious people would do
-more harm with it than good and honest folk would
-derive benefit.” This, however, he declared was not
-his own personal view.<a name="FNanchor_237" id="FNanchor_237"></a><a href="#Footnote_237" class="fnanchor">[237]</a> “I would not,” he writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">[243]</a></span>
-“for my part, withhold the profit that one good, devout,
-unlearned man might get by the reading, for fear of the
-harm a hundred heretics might take by their own wilful
-abuse.… Finally, I think that the Provincial Constitution
-(already spoken of) has long ago determined
-the question. For when the clergy in that synod agreed
-that the English Bibles should remain which were translated
-before Wycliffe’s days, they, as a necessary consequence,
-agreed that it was no harm to have the Bible
-in English. And when they forbade any new translation
-to be read till it were approved by the bishops, it
-appears clearly that they intended that the bishop should
-approve it, if he found it to be faultless, and also to
-amend it where it was found faulty, unless the man
-who made it was a heretic, or the faults were so many
-and of such a character that it would be easier to retranslate
-it than to mend it.”<a name="FNanchor_238" id="FNanchor_238"></a><a href="#Footnote_238" class="fnanchor">[238]</a></p>
-
-<p>This absolute denial of any attitude of hostility on
-the part of the Church to the translated Bible is reiterated
-in many parts of Sir Thomas More’s English
-works. When, upon the condemnation of Tyndale’s
-Testament, the author pointed to this fact as proof of
-the determination of the clergy to keep the Word of God
-from the people, More replied at considerable length.
-He showed how the ground of the condemnation had
-nothing whatever to do with any anxiety upon the part of
-ecclesiastics to keep the Scriptures from lay people, but
-was entirely based upon the complete falsity of Tyndale’s
-translation itself. “He pretends,” says Sir Thomas
-More,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">[244]</a></span> “that the Church makes some (statutes) openly
-and directly against the Word of God, as in that statute
-whereby they have condemned the New Testament.
-Now, in truth, there is no such statute made. For
-as for the New Testament, if he mean the Testament
-of Christ, it is not condemned nor forbidden.
-But there is forbidden a false English
-translation of the New Testament newly forged by
-Tyndale, altered and changed in matters of great weight,
-in order maliciously to set forth against Christ’s true
-doctrine Tyndale’s anti-Christian heresies. Therefore
-that book is condemned, as it is well worthy to be, and
-the condemnation thereof is neither openly nor privily,
-directly nor indirectly, against the word of God.”<a name="FNanchor_239" id="FNanchor_239"></a><a href="#Footnote_239" class="fnanchor">[239]</a></p>
-
-<p>Again, in another place, More replies to what he
-calls Tyndale’s “railing” against the clergy, and in particular
-his saying that they keep the Scripture from lay
-people in order that they may not see how they
-“juggle with it.” “I have,” he says, “in the book of
-my <i>Dyalogue</i> proved already that Tyndale in this point
-falsely belies the clergy, and that in truth Wycliffe,
-and Tyndale, and Friar Barnes, and such others, have
-been the original cause why the Scripture has been of
-necessity kept out of lay people’s hands. And of late,
-specially, by the politic provision and ordinance of our
-most excellent sovereign the king’s noble grace, not
-without great and urgent causes manifestly rising from
-the false malicious means of Wycliffe and Tyndale,” this
-has been prevented. “For this (attempt of Tyndale)
-all the lay people of this realm, both the evil folk who
-take harm from him, and the good folk that lose their
-profit by him, have great cause to lament that ever the
-man was born.”<a name="FNanchor_240" id="FNanchor_240"></a><a href="#Footnote_240" class="fnanchor">[240]</a></p>
-
-<p>The same view is taken by Roger Edgworth, a
-popular preacher in the reign of Henry VIII. After
-describing what he considered to be the evils which
-had resulted from the spread of Lutheran literature in
-England, he says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">[245]</a></span> “By this effect you may judge the
-cause. The effect was evil, therefore there must needs
-be some fault in the cause. But what sayest thou? Is
-not the study of Scripture good? Is not the knowledge
-of the Gospels and of the New Testament godly,
-good, and profitable for a Christian man or woman?
-I shall tell you what I think in this matter. I have
-ever been in this mind, that I have thought it no harm,
-but rather good and profitable, that Holy Scripture
-should be had in the mother tongue, and withheld from
-no man that was apt and meet to take it in hand,
-specially if we could get it well and truly translated,
-which will be very hard to be had.”<a name="FNanchor_241" id="FNanchor_241"></a><a href="#Footnote_241" class="fnanchor">[241]</a></p>
-
-<p>There is, it is true, no doubt, that the destruction of
-Tyndale’s Testaments and the increasing number of
-those who favoured the new religious opinions, caused
-people to spread all manner of stories abroad as to the
-attitude of the Church authorities in England towards
-the vernacular Scriptures. Probably the declaration
-of the friend, against whom Sir Thomas More, then
-Chancellor, in 1530, wrote his <i>Dyalogue</i>, “that great
-murmurs were heard against the clergy on this score,”
-is not far from the truth. Ecclesiastics, he said, in the
-opinion of the common people, would not tolerate
-criticism of their lives or words, and desired to keep
-laymen ignorant. “And they” (the people) “think,”
-he adds,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">[246]</a></span> “that for no other cause was there burned at
-St. Paul’s Cross the New Testament, late translated by
-Master William Huchin, otherwise called Tyndale, who
-was (as men say) well known, before he went over the
-sea, as a man of right good life, studious and well
-learned in the Scriptures. And men mutter among
-themselves that the book was not only faultless, but
-also very well translated, and was ordered to be burned,
-because men should not be able to prove that such
-faults (as were at Paul’s Cross declared to have been
-found in it) were never in fact found there at all; but
-untruly surmised, in order to have some just cause
-to burn it, and that for no other reason than to keep
-out of the people’s hands all knowledge of Christ’s
-Gospel and of God’s law, except so much as the clergy
-themselves please now and then to tell them. Further,
-that little as this is, it is seldom expounded. And, as it
-is feared, even this is not well and truly told; but
-watered with false glosses and altered from the truth
-of the words and meaning of Scripture, only to maintain
-the clerical authority. And the fear lest this
-should appear evident to the people, if they were
-suffered to read the Scripture themselves in their own
-tongue, was (it is thought) the very cause, not only
-for which the New Testament translated by Tyndale
-was burned, but also why the clergy of this realm have
-before this time, by a Constitution Provincial, prohibited
-any book of Scripture to be translated into the English
-tongue, and threaten with fire men who should presume
-to keep them, as heretics; as though it were heresy
-for a Christian man to read Christ’s Gospel.”<a name="FNanchor_242" id="FNanchor_242"></a><a href="#Footnote_242" class="fnanchor">[242]</a></p>
-
-<p>It has been already pointed out how Sir Thomas
-More completely disposed of this assertion as to the
-hostility of the clergy to “the open Bible.” In his
-position of Chancellor of England, More could hardly
-have been able to speak with so much certainty about
-the real attitude of the Church, had not the true facts
-been at the same time well understood and commonly
-acknowledged. The words of the “objector,” however,
-not only express the murmurs of those who were at that
-period discontented with the ecclesiastical system; but
-they voice the accusations which have been so frequently
-made from that day to this, by those who do
-not as a fact look at the other side. Sir Thomas More’s
-testimony proves absolutely that no such hostility to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">[247]</a></span>
-English Bible as is so generally assumed of the pre-Reformation
-Church did, in fact, exist. Most certainly
-there never was any ecclesiastical prohibition against
-vernacular versions as such, and the most orthodox
-sons of the Church did in fact possess copies of the
-English Scriptures, which they read openly and devoutly.
-This much seems certain.</p>
-
-<p>Moreover, Sir Thomas More’s contention that there
-was no prohibition is borne out by other evidence.
-The great canonist Lyndwood undoubtedly understood
-the Constitution of Oxford on the Scriptures in the
-same sense as Sir Thomas More. In fact, as it has
-been pointed out already, to his explanation Sir
-Thomas More successfully appealed in proof of his
-assertion that there was no such condemnation of the
-English Scriptures, as had been, and is still, asserted
-by some. It has, of course, been often said that Sir
-Thomas More, and of course Lyndwood, were wrong
-in supposing that there were any translations previous
-to that of the version now known as Wycliffite.
-This is by no means so clear; and even supposing
-they were in error as to the date of the version, it is
-impossible that they could have been wrong as to the
-meaning and interpretation of the law itself, and as
-to the fact that versions were certainly in circulation
-which were presumed by those who used them
-to be Catholic and orthodox. Archbishop Cranmer
-himself may also be cited as a witness to the free
-circulation of manuscript copies of the English Scriptures
-in pre-Reformation times, since the whole of his
-argument for allowing a new version, in the preface to
-the Bishops’ Bible, rests on the well-known custom
-of the Church to allow vernacular versions, and on the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">[248]</a></span>
-fact that copies of the English Scriptures had previously
-been in daily use with ecclesiastical sanction.</p>
-
-<p>The same conclusion must be deduced from books
-printed by men of authority and unquestionable piety.
-In them we find the reading of the Scriptures strongly
-recommended. To take an example: Thomas Lupset,
-the friend and protégé of Colet and Lilly, gives the
-following advice to his sisters, two of whom were nuns:
-“Give thee much to reading; take heed in meditation
-of the Scripture, busy thee in the law of God; have
-a customable use in divine books.”<a name="FNanchor_243" id="FNanchor_243"></a><a href="#Footnote_243" class="fnanchor">[243]</a> The same pious
-scholar has much the same advice for a youth in the
-world who had been his pupil. After urging him to
-avoid “meddling in any point of faith otherwise than
-as the Church shall instruct and teach,” he adds, “more
-particularly in writings you shall learn this lesson, if you
-would sometimes take in your hand the New Testament
-and read it with a due reverence”; and again: “in
-reading the Gospels, I would you had at hand Chrysostom
-and Jerome, by whom you might surely be brought
-to a perfect understanding of the text.”<a name="FNanchor_244" id="FNanchor_244"></a><a href="#Footnote_244" class="fnanchor">[244]</a></p>
-
-<p>Moreover, the testimony of Sir Thomas More that
-translations were allowed by the Church, and that these,
-men considered rightly or wrongly, had been made
-prior to the time of Wycliffe, is confirmed by Archdeacon
-John Standish in Queen Mary’s reign. When the
-question of the advisability of a vernacular translation
-was then seriously debated, he says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">[249]</a></span> “To the intent
-that none should have occasion to misconstrue the true
-meaning thereof, it is to be thought that, if all men
-were good and Catholic, then were it lawful, yea, and
-very profitable also, that the Scripture should be in
-English, as long as the translations were true and
-faithful.… And that is the cause that the clergy
-did agree (as it is in the Constitution Provincial) that
-the Bibles that were translated into English before
-Wycliffe’s days might be suffered; so that only such
-as had them in handling were allowed by the ordinary
-and approved as proper to read them, and so that their
-reading should be only for the setting forth of God’s
-glory.”<a name="FNanchor_245" id="FNanchor_245"></a><a href="#Footnote_245" class="fnanchor">[245]</a></p>
-
-<p>Sir Thomas More, in his <i>Apology</i>, points out that
-although, in his opinion, it would be a good thing to
-have a proper English translation, still it was obviously
-not necessary for the salvation of man’s soul. “If the
-having of the Scripture in English,” he writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">[250]</a></span> “be a
-thing so requisite of precise necessity, that the people’s
-souls must needs perish unless they have it translated
-into their own tongue, then the greater part of them
-must indeed perish, unless the preacher further provide
-that all people shall be able to read it when they have
-it. For of the whole people, far more than four-tenths
-could never read English yet, and many are now too
-old to begin to go to school.… Many, indeed, have
-thought it a good and profitable thing to have the
-Scripture well and truly translated into English, and
-although many equally wise and learned and also very
-virtuous folk have been and are of a very different
-mind; yet, for my own part, I have been and am still
-of the same opinion as I expressed in my Dyalogue,
-if the people were amended, and the time meet
-for it.”<a name="FNanchor_246" id="FNanchor_246"></a><a href="#Footnote_246" class="fnanchor">[246]</a></p>
-
-<p>The truth is, that there was then no such clamour
-for the translated Bible as it has suited the purposes of
-some writers to represent. In view of all that is known
-about the circumstances of those times, it does not
-appear at all likely that the popular mind would be
-really stirred by any desire for Bible reading. The late
-Mr. Brewer may be allowed to speak with authority on
-this matter when he writes: “Nor, indeed, is it possible
-that Tyndale’s writings and translations could at this
-early period have produced any such impressions as is
-generally surmised, or have fallen into the hands of
-many readers. His works were printed abroad; their
-circulation was strictly forbidden; the price of them was
-beyond the means of the poorer classes, even supposing
-that the knowledge of letters at that time was more
-generally diffused than it was for centuries afterwards.
-To imagine that ploughmen and shepherds in the
-country read the New Testament in English by stealth,
-or that smiths and carpenters in towns pored over its
-pages in the corners of their masters’ workshops, is to
-mistake the character and acquirements of the age.”<a name="FNanchor_247" id="FNanchor_247"></a><a href="#Footnote_247" class="fnanchor">[247]</a></p>
-
-<p>“So far from England then being a ‘Bible-thirsty
-land,’” says a well-informed writer, “there was no
-anxiety whatever for an English version at that time,
-excepting among a small minority of the people,”<a name="FNanchor_248" id="FNanchor_248"></a><a href="#Footnote_248" class="fnanchor">[248]</a> and
-these desired it not for the thing in itself so much
-as a means of bringing about the changes in doctrine
-and practice which they desired.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">[251]</a></span> “Who is there
-among us,” says one preacher of the period, “that
-will have a Bible, but he must be compelled thereto.”
-And the single fact that the same edition of the Bible
-was often reissued with new titles, &amp;c., is sufficient
-proof that there was no such general demand for
-Bibles as is pretended by Foxe when he writes: “It
-was wonderful to see with what joy this book of
-God was received, not only among the learneder
-sort, and those that were noted for lovers of the
-Reformation, but generally all England over among
-all the vulgar common people.” “For,” says the
-writer above quoted, “if the people all England
-over were so anxious to possess the new translation,
-what need was there of so many penal enactments to
-force it into circulation, and of royal proclamations
-threatening with the king’s displeasure those who
-neglected to purchase copies.”<a name="FNanchor_249" id="FNanchor_249"></a><a href="#Footnote_249" class="fnanchor">[249]</a></p>
-
-<p>There can be little doubt that the condemnation of
-the first printed English Testament, and the destruction,
-by order of the ecclesiastical authority, of all copies
-which Tyndale had sent over to England for sale, have
-tended, more than anything else, to confirm in their
-opinion those who held that the Church in pre-Reformation
-England would not tolerate the vernacular
-Scriptures at all. It is of interest, therefore, and importance,
-if we would determine the real attitude of
-churchmen in the sixteenth century to the English
-Bible, to understand the grounds of this condemnation.
-As the question was keenly debated at the time, there
-is little need to seek for information beyond the pages
-of Sir Thomas More’s works.</p>
-
-<p>The history of Tyndale’s translation is not of such<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">[252]</a></span>
-importance in this respect, as a knowledge of the chief
-points objected against it. Some brief account of this
-history, however, is almost necessary if we would fully
-understand the character and purpose of the translation.
-William Tyndale was born about the year
-1484, and was in turn at Oxford and Cambridge Universities,
-and professed among the Friars Observant at
-Greenwich. In 1524 he passed over to Hamburg, and
-then, about the middle of the year, to Wittenberg, where
-he attached himself to Luther. Under the direction at
-least, of the German reformer, and very possibly also
-with his actual assistance, he commenced his translation
-of the New Testament. The royal almoner,
-Edward Lee, afterwards Archbishop of York, being
-on a journey to Spain, wrote on December 2, 1525,
-from Bordeaux, warning Henry VIII. of the preparation
-of this book. “I am certainly informed,” he says,
-“that an Englishman, your subject, at the solicitation
-and instance of Luther, with whom he is, hath translated
-the New Testament into English; and within a
-few days intendeth to return with the same imprinted
-into England. I need not to advertise your Grace
-what infection and danger may ensue hereby if it be
-not withstanded. This is the way to fill your realm
-with Lutherans. For all Luther’s perverse opinions
-be grounded upon bare words of Scripture not well
-taken nor understood, which your Grace hath opened
-(<i>i.e.</i> pointed out) in sundry places of your royal book.”<a name="FNanchor_250" id="FNanchor_250"></a><a href="#Footnote_250" class="fnanchor">[250]</a></p>
-
-<p>Luther’s direct influence may be detected on almost
-every page of the printed edition issued by Tyndale,
-and there can be no doubt that it was prepared with
-Luther’s version of 1522 as a guide. From the general<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">[253]</a></span>
-introduction of this German Bible, nearly half, or some
-sixty lines, are transferred by Tyndale almost bodily to
-his prologue, whilst he adopted and printed over against
-the same chapters and verses, placing them in the same
-position in the inner margins, some 190 of the German
-reformer’s marginal references. Besides this, the marginal
-notes on the outer margin of the English Testament
-are all Luther’s glosses, translated from the
-German. In view of this, it can hardly be a matter
-of surprise that Tyndale’s Testament was very commonly
-known at the time as “Luther’s Testament in
-English.”</p>
-
-<p>In this work of translation or adaptation, Tyndale
-was assisted by another ex-friar, named Joye, with
-whom, however, he subsequently quarrelled, and about
-whom he then spoke in abusive and violent terms. At
-first it was intended to print the edition at Cologne, but
-being disturbed by the authorities there, Tyndale fled
-to Worms, and at once commenced printing at the
-press of Peter Schœffer, the octavo volume which is
-known as the first edition of Tyndale’s New Testament.
-Although the author is supposed to have been a good
-Greek scholar, there is evidence to show that the copy
-he used for the work of translation was the Latin version
-of Erasmus, printed by Fisher in 1519, with some
-alterations taken from the edition of 1522, and some
-other corrections from the Vulgate.</p>
-
-<p>John Cochlæus, who had a full and personal knowledge
-of all the Lutheran movements at the time, writing
-in 1533, says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">[254]</a></span> “Eight years previously, two apostates
-from England, knowing the German language, came
-to Wittenberg, and translated Luther’s New Testament
-into English. They then came to Cologne, as to a
-city nearer to England, with a more established
-trade, and more adapted for the despatch of merchandise.
-Here … they secretly agreed with printers to
-print at first three thousand copies, and printers and
-publishers pushed on the work with the firm expectation
-of success, boasting that whether the king and
-cardinal liked it or not, England would shortly ‘be
-Lutheran.’”<a name="FNanchor_251" id="FNanchor_251"></a><a href="#Footnote_251" class="fnanchor">[251]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was this scheme that Cochlæus was instrumental
-in frustrating, his representations forcing Tyndale to
-remove the centre of his operations to Worms. For
-the benefit of the Scotch king, to whom his account was
-addressed, Cochlæus adds, that Luther’s German translation
-of the New Testament was intended of set
-purpose to spread his errors; that the people had
-bought up thousands, and that thereby “they have
-not been made better but rather the worse, artificers
-who were able to read neglecting their shops and
-the work by which they ought to gain the bread
-of their wives and children.” For this reason, he
-says, magistrates in Germany have had to forbid the
-reading of Luther’s Testament, and many have been put
-in prison for reading it. In his opinion the translation
-of the Testament into the vernacular had become an
-idol and a fetish to the German Lutherans, although in
-Germany there were many vernacular translations of
-both the Old and the New Testaments, before the rise
-of Lutheranism.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">[255]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_252" id="FNanchor_252"></a><a href="#Footnote_252" class="fnanchor">[252]</a></p>
-
-<p>With a full understanding of the purpose and tendency
-of Tyndale’s translation and of the evils which
-at least some hard-headed men had attributed to the
-spread of Luther’s German version, upon which almost
-admittedly the English was modelled, the ecclesiastical
-authorities of England approached the practical question&mdash;what
-was to be done in the matter? Copies of
-the printed edition must have reached England some
-time in 1526, for in October of that year Bishop Tunstall
-of London addressed a monition to the archdeacons
-on the subject. “Many children of iniquity,”
-he says, “maintainers of Luther’s sect, blinded through
-extreme wickedness, wandering from the way of truth
-and the Catholic faith, have craftily translated the
-New Testament into our English tongue, intermeddling
-therewith many heretical articles and erroneous opinions,
-pernicious and offensive, seducing the simple people;
-attempting by their wicked and perverse interpretations
-to profane the majesty of Scripture, which hitherto hath
-remained undefiled, and craftily to abuse the most holy
-Word of God, and the true sense of the same. Of this
-translation there are many books printed, some with
-glosses and some without, containing in the English
-tongue that pestiferous and pernicious poison, (and
-these are) dispersed in our diocese of London.” He
-consequently orders all such copies of the New Testament
-to be delivered up to his offices within thirty
-days.<a name="FNanchor_253" id="FNanchor_253"></a><a href="#Footnote_253" class="fnanchor">[253]</a></p>
-
-<p>This was the first action of the English ecclesiastical
-authorities, and it was clearly taken not from distrust
-of what the same bishop calls “the most holy Word
-of God,” but because they looked on the version sent<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[256]</a></span>
-forth by Tyndale as a profanation of the Bible, and
-as intended to disseminate the errors of Lutheranism.</p>
-
-<p>Of the Lutheran character of the translation the
-authorities, whether in Church or State, do not seem
-to have had from the first the least doubt. The king
-himself, in a rejoinder to Luther’s letter of apology,
-says that the German reformer “fell in device with
-one or two lewd persons, born in this our realm, for
-the translating of the New Testament into English, as
-well with many corruptions of that holy text, as certain
-prefaces and other pestilent glosses in the margins, for
-the advancement and setting forth of his abominable
-heresies, intending to abuse the good minds and devotion
-that you, our dearly beloved people, bear toward
-the Holy Scripture and infect you with the deadly corruption
-and contagious odour of his pestilent errors.”<a name="FNanchor_254" id="FNanchor_254"></a><a href="#Footnote_254" class="fnanchor">[254]</a></p>
-
-<p>Bishop Tunstall, in 1529, whilst returning from an
-embassy abroad, purchased at Antwerp through one
-Packington, all copies of the English printed New
-Testament that were for sale, and, according to the
-chronicler Hall, burned them publicly at St. Paul’s
-in May 1530. For the same reason the confiscated
-volumes of the edition first sent over were committed
-to the flames some time in 1527,<a name="FNanchor_255" id="FNanchor_255"></a><a href="#Footnote_255" class="fnanchor">[255]</a> and Bishop Tunstall
-explained to the people at Paul’s Cross that the book
-was destroyed because in more than two thousand
-places wrong translations and corruptions had been
-detected. Tyndale made a great outcry at the iniquity
-of burning the Word of God; but in <i>The Wicked<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">[257]</a></span>
-Mammon</i> he declares that, “in burning the New Testament
-they did none other thynge than I looked for.”
-Moreover, as he sold the books knowing the purpose
-for which they were purchased, he may be said to have
-been a participator in the act he blames. “The fact
-is,” says a modern authority, “the books were full of
-errors and unsaleable, and Tyndale wanted money to
-pay the expense of a revised version and to purchase
-Vastermann’s old Dutch blocks to illustrate his Pentateuch,
-and was glad to make capital in more ways than
-one by the translation. ‘I am glad,’ said he, ‘for these
-two benefits shall come thereof: I shall get money to
-bring myself out of debt, and the whole world will cry
-out against the burning of God’s Word, and the overplus
-of the money that shall remain to me shall make
-me more studious to correct the said New Testament,
-and so newly to imprint the same once again, and I
-trust the second you will much better like than you
-ever did the first.’”<a name="FNanchor_256" id="FNanchor_256"></a><a href="#Footnote_256" class="fnanchor">[256]</a></p>
-
-<p>Tyndale allowed nine years to elapse before issuing
-a second edition of his Testament. Meantime, as his
-former assistant, Joye, says, foreigners looking upon the
-English Testament as a good commercial speculation,
-and seeing that the ecclesiastical authorities in England
-had given orders to purchase the entire first issue of
-Tyndale’s print, set to work to produce other reprints.
-Through ignorance of the language, the various editions
-they issued were naturally full of typographical errors,
-and, as Joye declared, “England hath enough and too
-many false Testaments, and is now likely to have many
-more.” He consequently set to work himself to see
-an edition through the press, in which, without Tyndal<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">[258]</a></span>e’s
-leave, he made substantial alterations in his translation.
-Joye’s version appeared in 1534, and immediately
-Tyndale attacked its editor in the most bitter, reproachful
-terms. In George Joye’s <i>Apology</i>, which appeared
-in 1535, he tried, as he says, “to defend himself against
-so many slanderous lies upon him in Tyndale’s uncharitable
-and unsober epistle.” In the course of the
-tract, Joye charges Tyndale with claiming as his own
-what in reality was Luther’s. “I have never,” he says,
-“heard a sober, wise man praise his own works as I
-have heard him praise his exposition of the fifth, sixth,
-and seventh chapters of St. Matthew, insomuch that
-mine ears glowed for shame to hear him; and yet it
-was Luther that made it, Tyndale only translating it
-and powdering it here and there with his own fantasies.”</p>
-
-<p>In a second publication Joye declares Tyndale’s
-incompetence to judge of the original Greek. “I
-wonder,” he says, “how he could compare it with the
-Greek, since he himself is not so exquisitely seen therein.…
-I know well (he) was not able to do it without such
-a helper as he hath ever had hitherto.”<a name="FNanchor_257" id="FNanchor_257"></a><a href="#Footnote_257" class="fnanchor">[257]</a> Tyndale, however,
-continued his work of revision in spite of opposition,
-and further, with the aid of Miles Coverdale,
-issued translations of various portions of the Old Testament.</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after the public burning of the copies of
-the translated Testament by Bishop Tunstall, on May
-24, 1530, an assembly was called together by Archbishop
-Warham to formally condemn these and other
-books then being circulated with the intention of undermining
-the religion of the country. The king was
-present in person, and a list of errors was drawn up<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">[259]</a></span>
-and condemned “with all the books containing the
-same, with the translation also of Scripture corrupted
-by William Tyndale, as well in the Old Testament as in
-the New.” After this meeting, a document was issued
-with the king’s authority, which preachers were required
-to read to their people. After speaking of the books
-condemned for teaching error, the paper takes notice
-of an opinion “in some of his subjects” that the Scripture
-should be allowed in English. The king declares
-that it is a good thing the Scriptures should be circulated
-at certain times, but that there are others when
-they should not be generally allowed, and taking into
-consideration all the then existing circumstances, he
-“thinketh in his conscience that the divulging of the
-Scripture at this time in the English tongue to be committed
-to the people … would rather be to their
-further confusion and destruction than for the edification
-of their souls.”</p>
-
-<p>In this opinion, we are told, all in the assembly
-concurred. At the same time, however, the king promised
-that he would have the New Testament “faithfully
-and purely translated by the most learned men,”
-ready to be distributed when circumstances might
-allow.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Thomas More plainly states the reason for this
-prohibition.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">[260]</a></span> “In these days, in which Tyndale (God
-amend him) has so sore poisoned malicious and new-fangled
-folk with the infectious contagion of his heresies,
-the king’s highness, and not without the counsel and
-advice, not only of his nobles with his other counsellors
-attending upon his Grace’s person, but also of the most
-virtuous and learned men of both universities and other
-parts of the realm, specially called thereto, has been
-obliged for the time to prohibit the Scriptures of God
-to be allowed in the English tongue in the hands of
-the people, lest evil folk … may turn all the honey
-into poison, and do hurt unto themselves, and spread
-also the infection further abroad … and by their
-own fault misconstrue and take harm from the very
-Scripture of God.”<a name="FNanchor_258" id="FNanchor_258"></a><a href="#Footnote_258" class="fnanchor">[258]</a></p>
-
-<p>Early in 1534 Tyndale took up his abode once
-more in Antwerp at the house of an English merchant,
-and busied himself in passing his revised New Testament
-through the press. This was published in the
-following November. To it he prefixed a second prologue
-dealing with the edition just published by George
-Joye. This he declares was no true translation, and
-charges his former assistant with deliberate falsification
-of the text of Holy Scripture in order to support his
-errors and false opinions. The edition itself manifests
-many changes in the text caused by the criticism to
-which the former impression had been subjected, whilst
-many of the marginal notes “exhibit the great change
-that had taken place in Tyndale’s religious opinions,
-and show that he had ceased to be an Episcopalian.”<a name="FNanchor_259" id="FNanchor_259"></a><a href="#Footnote_259" class="fnanchor">[259]</a></p>
-
-<p>Having given a brief outline of the history of Tyndale’s
-Testament, we are now in a position to examine into
-the grounds upon which the ecclesiastical authorities of
-England condemned it. For this purpose, we need
-again hardly go beyond the works of Sir Thomas More,
-who in several of his tracts deals specifically with this
-subject. “Tyndale’s false translation of the New Testament,”
-he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">[261]</a></span> “was, as he himself confesses, translated
-with such changes as he has made in it purposely, to
-the intent that by those changed words the people
-should be led into the opinions which he himself calls
-true Catholic faith, but which all true Catholic people
-call very false and pestilent heresies.” After saying
-that for this reason this translation was rightly condemned
-by the clergy and openly burnt at Paul’s Cross,
-he continues: “The faults are so many in Tyndale’s translation
-of the New Testament, and so spread throughout
-the whole book, that it were as easy to weave a new
-web of cloth or to sew up every hole in a net, so would
-it be less labour to translate the whole book anew than
-to make in his translation as many changes as there
-needs must be before it were made a good translation.
-Besides this, no wise man, I fancy, would take bread
-which he well knew had once been poisoned by his
-enemy’s hand, even though he saw his friend afterwards
-sweep it ever so clean.… For when it had
-been examined, considered, and condemned by those to
-whom the judgment and ordering of the thing belonged,
-and that false poisoned translation had been forbidden
-to the people,” it would be the height of presumption for
-any one to encourage the people boldly to resist their
-prince and disobey their prelates, and give them, as some
-indeed have, such a poor reason as this, “that poisoned
-bread is better than no bread.”<a name="FNanchor_260" id="FNanchor_260"></a><a href="#Footnote_260" class="fnanchor">[260]</a></p>
-
-<p>Further, in speaking with sorrow of the flood of
-heretical literature which seemed ever growing in volume,
-Sir Thomas More writes:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">[262]</a></span> “Besides the works in Latin,
-French, and German, there are made in the English
-tongue, first, Tyndale’s New Testament, father of them
-all, because of his false translations, and after that the
-five books of Moses, translated by the same man, we
-need not doubt in what manner, when we know by
-whom and for what purpose. Then you have his introduction
-to St. Paul’s Epistle, with which he introduces
-his readers to a false understanding of St. Paul,
-making them, among many other heresies, believe that
-St. Paul held that faith alone was sufficient for salvation,
-and that men’s good works were worth nothing
-and could deserve no reward in heaven, though they
-were done in grace.”<a name="FNanchor_261" id="FNanchor_261"></a><a href="#Footnote_261" class="fnanchor">[261]</a></p>
-
-<p>Again, he says: “In the beginning of my <i>Dyalogue</i>,
-I have shown that Tyndale’s translation of the New
-Testament deserved to be burnt, because itself showed
-that he had translated it with an evil mind, and in such
-a way that it might serve him as the best means of
-teaching such heresies as he had learnt from Luther,
-and intended to send over hither and spread abroad
-within this realm. To the truth of my assertion, Tyndale
-and his fellows have so openly testified that I need
-in this matter no further defence. For every man sees
-that there was never any English heretical book sent
-here since, in which one item of their complaint has not
-been the burning of Tyndale’s Testament. For of a surety
-they thought in the first place that his translation, with
-their further false construction, would be the bass and
-the tenor wherever they would sing the treble with
-much false descant.”<a name="FNanchor_262" id="FNanchor_262"></a><a href="#Footnote_262" class="fnanchor">[262]</a></p>
-
-<p>To take some instances of the false translations to
-which More reasonably objects: First, Tyndale substitutes
-for <i>Church</i> the word <i>Congregation</i>, “a word with
-no more signification in Christendom than among the
-Jews or Turks.” After protesting that Tyndale has no
-right to change the signification of a word, as, for example,
-to speak of “a football,” and to mean<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">[263]</a></span> “the world,”
-More continues: “Most certainly the word <i>Congregation</i>,
-taken in conjunction with the text, would not, when he
-translated it first, have served to make the English
-reader understand by it the Church any more than
-when he uses the word <i>idols</i> for <i>images</i>, or <i>images</i> for
-<i>idols</i>, or the word <i>repenting</i> for <i>doing penance</i>, which he
-also does. And indeed he has since added to his translation
-certain notes, viz., that the order of the priesthood
-is really nothing, but that every man, woman, and child
-is a priest as much as a real priest, and that every man
-and woman may consecrate the body of Christ, and say
-mass as well as a priest, and hear confessions and
-absolve as well as a priest can; and that there is no
-difference between priests and other folks, but that all
-are one congregation and company without any difference,
-save appointment to preach.”</p>
-
-<p>This enables men to understand “what Tyndale
-means by using the word <i>Congregation</i> in his translation
-in place of <i>Church</i>. They also see clearly by these circumstances
-that he purposely changed the word to set
-forth these his heresies, though he will say he takes
-them for no heresies. But, on the other hand, all good
-and faithful people do, and therefore they call the
-Church the Church still, and will not agree to change
-the old <i>Church</i> for his new <i>Congregation</i>.”<a name="FNanchor_263" id="FNanchor_263"></a><a href="#Footnote_263" class="fnanchor">[263]</a></p>
-
-<p>In reply to Tyndale’s claim to be able to use the
-word <i>Congregation</i> to signify the <i>Church</i>, More declares
-that words must be used in their ordinary signification.
-“I say,” he writes, “that this is true of the usual
-signification of these words in the English tongue, by
-the common custom of us English people that now
-use these words in our language, or have used them<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">[264]</a></span>
-before our days. And I say that this common custom
-and usage of speech is the only way by which we know
-the right and proper signification of any word. So
-much so that if a word were taken from Latin, French,
-or Spanish, and from lack of understanding the tongue
-from which it came, was used in English for something
-else than it signified in the other tongue; then in England,
-whatsoever it meant anywhere else, it means only
-what we understand it. Then, I say, that in England
-this word <i>Congregation</i> never did signify the body of
-Christian people … any more than the word <i>assembly</i>,
-which has been taken from French … as
-<i>congregation</i> is from the Latin.… I say now that
-the word Church never has been used to signify in
-the ordinary speech of this realm, any other than the
-body of all those that are christened. For this reason,
-and more especially because of Tyndale’s evil intent, I
-said, and still say, that he did wrong to change <i>Church</i>
-for <i>Congregation</i>; a holy word for a profane one, so far
-as they have signification in our English tongue, into
-which Tyndale made his translation.…<a name="FNanchor_264" id="FNanchor_264"></a><a href="#Footnote_264" class="fnanchor">[264]</a></p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">[265]</a></span></p>
-<p>“If Tyndale had done it either accidentally, or purposely
-merely for pleasure, and not with an evil intent,
-I would never have said a word against it. But inasmuch
-as I perceive that he has been with Luther, and
-was there at the time when he so translated it, and
-because I knew well the malicious heresies that Luther
-had begun to bring forth, I must needs mistrust him in
-this change. And now I say that even from his own
-words here spoken, you may perceive his cankered
-mind in his translation, for he says that Demetrius
-had gathered a company against Paul for preaching
-against <i>images</i>. Here the Christian reader may easily
-perceive the poison of this serpent. Every one knows
-that all good Christian people abhor the idols of the
-false pagan gods, and also honour the images of Christ
-and our Lady, and other holy saints. And as they call
-the one sort images, so they call the other sort idols.
-Now, whereas St. Paul preached against idols, this good
-man comes and says he preached against images. And
-as he here speaks, even so he translates, for in the 15th
-chapter of St. Paul to the Corinthians, where St. Paul
-says, ‘I have written to you that ye company not
-together … if any that is called a brother be … a
-worshipper of <i>idols’</i>&mdash;there Tyndale translates worshipper
-of <i>images</i>. Because he would have it seem
-that the Apostle had in that place forbidden Christian
-men to worship images.… Here you may see the
-sincerity and plain meaning of this man’s translation.”<a name="FNanchor_265" id="FNanchor_265"></a><a href="#Footnote_265" class="fnanchor">[265]</a>…</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">[266]</a></span></p>
-<p>“As he falsely translated <i>Ecclesia</i> into the unknown
-word <i>congregation</i>, in places where he should have translated
-it into the known word of <i>holy Church</i>, and this
-with a malicious purpose to set forth his heresy of the
-secret and unknown church wherein is neither good
-works nor sacraments, in like manner is it now proved,
-in the same way and with like malice, he has translated
-<i>idols</i> into <i>images</i> … to make it seem that Scripture
-reprobates the goodly images of our Saviour Himself
-and His holy saints.… Then he asks me why I have
-not contended with Erasmus whom he calls my darling,
-for translating this word <i>Ecclesia</i> into the word
-<i>congregatio</i>.… I have not contended with Erasmus,
-my darling, because I found no such malicious intent
-with Erasmus, my darling, as I found with Tyndale;
-for had I found with Erasmus, my darling, the cunning
-intent and purpose that I found with Tyndale, Erasmus,
-my darling, should be no more ‘my darling.’ But I
-find in Erasmus, my darling, that he detests and abhors
-the errors and heresies that Tyndale plainly teaches and
-abides by, and therefore Erasmus, my darling, shall be
-my darling still.… For his translation of <i>Ecclesia</i> by
-<i>congregatio</i> is nothing like Tyndale’s, for the Latin
-tongue had no Latin word used for Church, but the
-Greek word, Ecclesia, therefore Erasmus, in his new
-translation gave it a Latin word. But we in our English
-had a proper English word for it, and therefore
-there was no cause for Tyndale to translate it into a
-worse. Erasmus, moreover, meant therein no heresy,
-as appears by his writings against heretics, but Tyndale,
-intended nothing else thereby, as appears by the heresies
-that he himself teaches and abides by. Therefore,
-there was in this matter no cause for me to contend
-with Erasmus, as there was to contend with Tyndale,
-with whom I contended for putting ‘congregation’
-instead of ‘Church.’”<a name="FNanchor_266" id="FNanchor_266"></a><a href="#Footnote_266" class="fnanchor">[266]</a></p>
-
-<p>Further, More blames Tyndale’s translation in its
-substitution of <i>senior</i> or <i>elder</i> for the old-established
-word <i>priest</i>. This word, presbyter, in the Greek, he
-says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">[267]</a></span> “as it signifies the thing that men call priest in
-English, was sometimes called <i>senior</i> in Latin. But
-the thing that Englishmen call a priest, and the Greek
-church called <i>presbyter</i>, and the Latin church also
-sometimes called <i>senior</i>, was never called elder either
-in the Greek church, or the Latin or the English.”<a name="FNanchor_267" id="FNanchor_267"></a><a href="#Footnote_267" class="fnanchor">[267]</a> He
-considers, therefore, the change made by Tyndale, in
-the second edition of his translation, from senior into
-elder was not only no improvement, but a distinct
-and reiterated rejection of the well-understood word
-of priest.… “I said and say,” he continues, “that
-Tyndale changed the word priest into senior with the
-heretical mind and intent to set forth his heresy, in
-which he teaches that the priesthood is no sacrament
-… for else I would not call it heresy if any one
-would translate <i>presbyteros</i> a block, but I would say
-he was a blockhead. And as great a blockhead were
-he that would translate <i>presbyteros</i> into an elder instead
-of a priest, for this English word no more signifies
-an elder than the Greek word <i>presbyteros</i> signifies an
-elderstick.”<a name="FNanchor_268" id="FNanchor_268"></a><a href="#Footnote_268" class="fnanchor">[268]</a> “For the same reason he might change
-bishop into overseer, and deacon into server, both of
-which he might as well do, as priest into elder; and
-then with his English translation he must make us an
-English vocabulary of his own device, and so with such
-provision he may change chin into cheek, and belly
-into back, and every word into every other at his own
-pleasure, if all England like to go to school with Tyndale
-to learn English&mdash;but else, not so.”<a name="FNanchor_269" id="FNanchor_269"></a><a href="#Footnote_269" class="fnanchor">[269]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the same way More condemns Tyndale for
-deliberately changing the word “Grace,” the meaning
-of which was fully understood by Catholic Englishmen,
-into “favour,” “thinking that his own scoffing is sufficient
-reason to change the known holy name of virtue
-through all Scripture into such words as he himself
-liketh.”<a name="FNanchor_270" id="FNanchor_270"></a><a href="#Footnote_270" class="fnanchor">[270]</a> He says the same of the change of the old
-familiar words <i>Confession</i> into <i>knowledge</i>, and <i>penance</i> into
-<i>repentance</i>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">[268]</a></span> “This is what Tyndale means: he would
-have all willing confession quite cast away and all
-penance doing too.”<a name="FNanchor_271" id="FNanchor_271"></a><a href="#Footnote_271" class="fnanchor">[271]</a> And “as for the word <i>penance</i>,
-whatsoever the Greek word be, it ever was, and still is,
-lawful enough (if Tyndale give us leave) to call anything
-in English by whatever word Englishmen by
-common custom agree upon.… Now, the matter
-does not rest in this at all. For Tyndale is not angry
-with the word, but with the matter. For this grieves
-Luther and him that by <i>penance</i> we understand, when
-we speak of it … not mere repenting … but also
-every part of the Sacrament of Penance; oral confession,
-contrition of heart, and satisfaction by good deeds.
-For if we called it the Sacrament of repentance, and by
-that word would understand what we now do by the
-word penance, Tyndale would then be as angry with
-repentance as he is now with penance.”<a name="FNanchor_272" id="FNanchor_272"></a><a href="#Footnote_272" class="fnanchor">[272]</a></p>
-
-<p>Speaking specially in another place about the
-change of the old word <i>charity</i> into <i>love</i> in Tyndale’s
-translation, More declared that he would not much
-mind which word was used were it not for the evident
-intention to change the teaching. When it is done
-consistently through the whole book<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">[269]</a></span> “no man could
-deem but that the man meant mischievously. If he
-called <i>charity</i> sometimes by the bare name <i>love</i>, I would
-not stick at that. But since charity signifies in Englishmen’s
-ears not every common love, but a good virtuous
-and well-ordered love, he that will studiously flee from
-the name of good love, and always speak of ‘love,’ and
-always leave out ‘good,’ I would surely say he meant
-evil. And it is much more than likely. For it is to
-be remembered that at the time of this translation
-Huchins (or Tyndale) was with Luther in Wittenberg,
-and put certain glosses in the margins, made to uphold
-the ungracious sect.”… And “the reason why he
-changed the name of <i>charity</i> and of the <i>church</i> and of
-<i>priesthood</i> is no very great difficulty to perceive. For
-since Luther and his fellows amongst their other
-damnable heresies have one that all salvation rests on
-Faith alone&mdash;therefore he purposely works to diminish
-the reverent mind that men have to charity, and for
-this reason changes the name of holy virtuous affection
-into the bare name of love.”</p>
-
-<p>In concluding his justification of the condemnation
-of Tyndale’s Testament and his criticism of the translator’s
-<i>Defence</i>, Sir Thomas More says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">[270]</a></span> “Every man
-knows well that the intent and purpose of my <i>Dyalogue</i>
-was to make men see that Tyndale in his translation
-changed the common known words in order to make
-a change in the faith. As for example: he changed
-the word <i>Church</i> into this word <i>congregation</i>, because he
-would raise the question which the church was, and
-set forth Luther’s heresy that the church which we
-should believe and obey is not the common known
-body of all Christian realms remaining in the faith of
-Christ and not fallen away or cut off with heresies.…
-But the church we should believe and obey was
-some secret unknown kind of evil living and worse
-believing heretics. And he changed <i>priest</i> into <i>senior</i>,
-because he intended to set forth Luther’s heresy teaching
-that priesthood is no sacrament, but the office of a
-layman or laywoman appointed by the people to preach.
-And he changed <i>Penance</i> into <i>repenting</i>, because he would
-set forth Luther’s heresy teaching that penance is no
-sacrament. This being the only purpose of my <i>Dyalogue</i>,
-Tyndale now comes and expressly confesses what I
-proposed to show. For he indeed teaches and writes
-openly these false heresies so that he himself shows
-now that I then told the people the truth … his own
-writing shows that he made his translation to the intent
-to set forth such heresies as I said he did.”<a name="FNanchor_273" id="FNanchor_273"></a><a href="#Footnote_273" class="fnanchor">[273]</a></p>
-
-<p>John Standish in the tract on the vernacular
-Scriptures, published in Queen Mary’s reign, uses in
-some places the same language as Sir Thomas More
-in condemning the translations which had been later
-in vogue. “At all times,” he writes, “heretics have
-laboured to corrupt the Scriptures that they might
-serve for their naughty purposes and to confirm their
-errors therewith, but especially now in our time. O
-good Lord, how have the translators of the Bible into
-English purposely corrupted the texts, oft maliciously
-putting in such words as in the readers’ ears might
-serve for the proof of such heresies as they went about
-to sow. These are not only set forth in the translations,
-but also in certain prologues and glosses added
-thereunto, and these things they have so handled (as
-indeed it is no great mastery to do) with probable
-reasons very apparent to the simple and unlearned,
-that an infinite number of innocents they have spiritually
-poisoned and corrupted within this realm, and
-caused them to perish obstinately.”<a name="FNanchor_274" id="FNanchor_274"></a><a href="#Footnote_274" class="fnanchor">[274]</a></p>
-
-<p>If further proof were wanting that the New Testament
-as set forth by Tyndale was purposely designed
-to overthrow the then existing religious principles held
-by English churchmen, it is furnished by works subsequently
-published by the English Lutherans abroad.
-The tract named <i>The Burying of the Mass</i>, printed in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">[271]</a></span>
-Germany shortly after the burning of Tyndale’s Testament,
-was, as Sir Thomas More points out, intended
-as a direct attack upon the Sacrifice of the Mass and
-the Sacramental system. In it the author poured out
-the vials of his wrath upon all those who caused
-Tyndale’s translation of the New Testament to be
-destroyed, saying that they burned it because it
-destroyed the Mass. “By this,” adds More, “you
-may see that the author accounted the translation
-very good for the destruction of the Mass.”<a name="FNanchor_275" id="FNanchor_275"></a><a href="#Footnote_275" class="fnanchor">[275]</a> Moreover,
-in a book called <i>The Wicked Mammon</i>, published
-by Tyndale himself shortly after this, although he
-blames the style of the author of <i>The Burying of the
-Mass</i>, he tacitly accepts his assertion that his translation
-of the New Testament was intended to bring about
-the abolition of the Sacrifice of the Mass.<a name="FNanchor_276" id="FNanchor_276"></a><a href="#Footnote_276" class="fnanchor">[276]</a></p>
-
-<p>In later times, after the experience of the religious
-changes in the reign of Edward VI., some writers
-pointed to the evils, religious and social, as evidence
-of the harm done by the promiscuous reading of the
-Scriptures. In their opinion, what More had feared
-and foretold had come to pass. “In these miserable
-years now past,” says Standish of Mary’s reign, in this
-tract on the vernacular Scriptures:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">[272]</a></span> “In these miserable
-years now past, what mystery is so hard that the
-ignorant with the Bible in English durst not set upon,
-yea and say they understood it: all was light! They
-desired no explanation but their own, even in the
-highest mysteries.… Alas! experience shows that
-our own men through having the Bible in English
-have walked far above their reach, being sundry ways
-killed and utterly poisoned with the letter of the
-English Bible.”<a name="FNanchor_277" id="FNanchor_277"></a><a href="#Footnote_277" class="fnanchor">[277]</a></p>
-
-<p>The spirit in which the study of Sacred Scripture
-was taken up by many in those days is described by
-the Marian preacher, Roger Edgworth, already referred
-to. “Scripture,” he says, “is in worse case
-than any other faculty: for where other faculties take
-upon them no more than pertaineth to their own
-science, as (for example) the physician of what pertains
-to the health of man’s body, and the carpenter
-and smith of their own tools and workmanship&mdash;the
-faculty of Sacred Scripture alone is the knowledge
-which all men and women challenge and claim to
-themselves and for their own. Here and there the
-chattering old wife, the doting old man, the babbling
-sophister, and all others presume upon this faculty,
-and tear it and teach it before they learn it. Of all
-such green divines as I have spoken of, it appeareth
-full well what learning they have by this, that when
-they teach any of their disciples, and when they give
-any of their books to other men to read, the first
-suggestion why he should labour (at) such books is
-‘because of this,’ say they, ‘thou shalt be able to
-oppose the best priest in the parish, and tell him he
-lies.’”<a name="FNanchor_278" id="FNanchor_278"></a><a href="#Footnote_278" class="fnanchor">[278]</a></p>
-
-<p>The result is patent in the history of the religious
-confusions which followed, for this much must be
-allowed, whatever view may be taken of the good
-or evil which ultimately resulted. Dr. Richard Smith,
-in 1546, then states the position as he saw it:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">[273]</a></span> “In
-old times the faith was respected, but in our days
-not a few things, and not of small importance, but
-(alack the more the pity) even the chiefest and most
-weighty matters of religion and faith, are called in
-question, babbled about, talked and jangled upon
-(reasoned, I cannot and ought not to call it).”<a name="FNanchor_279" id="FNanchor_279"></a><a href="#Footnote_279" class="fnanchor">[279]</a></p>
-
-<p>Although the cry for the open Bible which had
-been raised by Tyndale and the other early English
-reformers generally assumed the right to free and
-personal interpretation of its meaning, no sooner was
-the English Scripture put into circulation than its
-advocates proclaimed the need of expositions to teach
-people the meaning they should attach to it. In fact,
-the marginal notes and glosses, furnished by Tyndale
-chiefly from Lutheran sources, are evidence that even
-he had no wish that the people should understand or
-interpret the sacred text otherwise than according to
-his peculiar views. Very quickly after the permission
-of Henry VIII. had allowed the circulation of the
-printed English Bible, commentators came forward
-to explain their views. Lancelot Ridley, for example,
-issued many such explanations of portions of the
-Sacred Text with the object, as he explains, of enabling<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">[274]</a></span>
-“the unlearned to declare the Holy Scriptures now
-suffered to all people of this realm to read and study
-at their pleasure.” For the Bible, “which is now
-undeclared (<i>i.e.</i> unexplained) to them, and only had in
-the bare letter, appears to many rather death than
-life, rather (calculated) to bring many to errors and
-heresies than into the truth and verity of God’s Word.
-For this, when unexplained, does not bring the simple,
-rude, and ignorant people from their ignorant blindness,
-from their corrupt and backward judgments, false
-trusts, evil beliefs, vain superstitions, and feigned holiness,
-in which the people have long been in blindness, for
-lack of a knowledge of Holy Scripture which the man
-of Rome kept under latch and would not suffer to
-come to light, that his usurped power should not have
-been espied, his worldly glory diminished, and his
-profit decayed.”<a name="FNanchor_280" id="FNanchor_280"></a><a href="#Footnote_280" class="fnanchor">[280]</a></p>
-
-<p>Again, in another exposition made eight years later,
-the same writer complains that still, for lack of teaching
-what he considers the true meaning of Scripture, the
-views of the people are still turned towards the “old
-superstitions” in spite of “the open Bible.” “Although
-the Bible be in English,” he says, “and be suffered to
-every man and woman to read at their pleasures, and
-commanded to be read every day at Matins, Mass, and
-Evensong, yet there remain great ignorance and corrupt
-judgments … and these will remain still, except the
-Holy Scriptures be made more plain to the lay people
-who are unlearned by some commentary or annotation,
-so that lay people may understand the Holy Scripture
-better.”<a name="FNanchor_281" id="FNanchor_281"></a><a href="#Footnote_281" class="fnanchor">[281]</a> Commentaries would help much, he says in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">[275]</a></span>
-another place, “to deliver the people from ignorance,
-darkness, errors, heresy, superstitions, false trusts, and
-from evil opinions fixed and rooted in the hearts of
-many for lack of true knowledge of God’s Holy Word,
-and expel the usurped power of the bishop of Rome
-and all Romish dregs.”<a name="FNanchor_282" id="FNanchor_282"></a><a href="#Footnote_282" class="fnanchor">[282]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is interesting to find that from the first, whilst
-objecting to the interpretation of the old teachers of
-the Church, and claiming that the plain text of Scripture
-was a sufficient antidote and complete answer
-to them and their traditional deductions, the “new
-teachers” found that without teaching and exposition
-on their part, the open Bible was by no means sufficient
-to wean the popular mind from what they regarded as
-superstitious and erroneous ways. Their attitude in
-the matter is at least a confirmation of the contention
-of Sir Thomas More and other contemporary Catholic
-writers, that the vernacular Scriptures would be useless
-without a teaching authority to interpret their meaning.</p>
-
-<p>A brief word may now be said as a summary of
-the attitude towards the vernacular Bible taken up by
-the ecclesiastical authorities on the eve of the Reformation.
-The passages quoted from Sir Thomas More
-make it evident that no such hostility on the part of
-the Church, as writers of all shades of opinion have too
-hastily assumed, really existed.<a name="FNanchor_283" id="FNanchor_283"></a><a href="#Footnote_283" class="fnanchor">[283]</a> In fact, though those<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">[276]</a></span>
-responsible for the conduct of affairs, both ecclesiastical
-and lay, at this period objected to the circulation
-of Tyndale’s printed New Testament, this objection
-was based, not on any dread of allowing the English
-Bible as such, but on the natural objection to an
-obviously incorrect translation. It is difficult to see
-how those in authority could have permitted a version
-with traditional words changed for the hardly concealed
-purpose of supporting Lutheran tenets, with texts
-garbled and marginal explanations inserted for the
-same end. Those who hold that Tyndale’s views were
-right, and even that his attempt to enforce them in
-this way was justifiable, can hardly, however, blame
-the authorities at that time in England, secular or lay,
-who did not think so, from doing all they could to
-prevent what they regarded as the circulation of a
-book calculated to do great harm if no means were
-taken to prevent it. Men’s actions must be judged
-by the circumstances under which they acted, and it
-would be altogether unjust to regard the prohibition
-of the Tyndale Scriptures as a final attempt on the part
-of the English Church to prevent the circulation of the
-vernacular Scriptures. To the authorities in those days
-at least, the book in question did not represent the
-Sacred Text at all. That it was full of errors, to say
-the least, is confessed by Tyndale himself; and as to
-the chief points in his translation which he defended
-and which Sir Thomas More so roundly condemned,
-posterity has sided with More and not with Tyndale,
-for not one of these special characteristics of the translation<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">[277]</a></span>
-in which so much of Tyndale’s Lutheran teaching
-was allowed to appear, was suffered to remain in
-subsequent revisions. From this point of view alone,
-those who examine the question with an unbiassed
-mind must admit that there was ample justification for
-the prohibition of Tyndale’s printed Testament. If this
-be so, the further point may equally well be conceded,
-namely, that the Church on the eve of the Reformation
-did not prohibit the vernacular Scriptures as such at
-all, and that many churchmen in common with the
-king, Sir Thomas More, and other laymen, would,
-under happier circumstances, have been glad to see a
-properly translated English Bible.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">[278]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_IX" id="CHAPTER_IX"></a>CHAPTER IX<br />
-<span class="smaller">TEACHING AND PREACHING</span></h2>
-
-<p>It is very commonly assumed that on the eve of the
-Reformation, and for a long period before, there was
-little in the way of popular religious instruction in
-England. We are asked to believe that the mass of
-the people were allowed to grow up in ignorance of
-the meaning of the faith that was in them, and in a
-studied neglect of their supposed religious practices.
-So certain has this view of the pre-Reformation Church
-seemed to those who have not inquired very deeply
-into the subject, that more than one writer has been
-led by this assumption to assert that perhaps the most
-obvious benefit of the religious upheaval of the sixteenth
-century was the introduction of some general and
-systematic teaching of the great truths of religion.
-Preaching is often considered as characterising the
-reforming movement, as contrasted with the old ecclesiastical
-system, which it is assumed certainly admitted,
-even if it did not positively encourage, ignorance as the
-surest foundation of its authority. It becomes of importance,
-therefore, to inquire if such a charge is
-founded upon fact, and to see how far, if at all, the
-people in Catholic England were instructed in their
-religion.</p>
-
-<p>At the outset, it should be remembered that the
-questions at issue in the sixteenth century were not, in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">[279]</a></span>
-the first place at least, connected with the influence of
-religious teaching on the lives of the people at large.
-No one contended that the reformed doctrines would
-be found to make people better, or would help them
-to lead lives more in conformity with Gospel teaching.
-The question of what may be called practical religion
-never entered into the disputes of the time. Mr. Brewer
-warns the student of the history of this period that he
-will miss the meaning of many things altogether, and
-quite misunderstand their drift, if he starts his inquiry
-by regarding the Reformation as the creation of light
-to illuminate a previous period of darkness, or the
-evolution of practical morality out of a state of antecedent
-chaotic corruption. “In fact,” he says, “the
-sixteenth century was not a mass of moral corruption
-out of which life emerged by some process unknown to
-art or nature; it was not an addled egg cradling a
-living bird; quite the reverse.” For, as the historian of
-the German people, Janssen, points out, the truth is that
-the entire social order of the Middle Ages “was established
-on the doctrine of good works being necessary
-for the salvation of the Christian soul.” Whilst, as
-Mr. Brewer again notes, Luther’s most earnest remonstrances
-were directed not against <i>bad</i> works, but against
-the undue stress laid by the advocates of the old religion
-upon <i>good</i> works. Moreover, an age which could busy
-itself about discussions of questions as to “righteousness,”
-whether of “faith or works,” “is not a demoralised
-or degenerate age. These are not the
-thoughts of men buried in sensuality.”</p>
-
-<p>Two questions are contained in the inquiry as to
-pre-Reformation religious teaching, namely, as to its
-extent and as to its character. There can hardly be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">[280]</a></span>
-much doubt that the duty of giving instruction to the
-people committed to their charge was fully recognised
-by the clergy in mediæval times. In view of the positive
-legislation of various synods on the subject of
-regular and systematic teaching, as well as of the
-constant repetition of the obligation in the books of
-English canon law, it is obvious that the priests were
-not ignorant of what was their plain duty. From the
-time of the constitution of Archbishop Peckham at the
-Synod of Oxford in 1281, to the time of the religious
-changes, there is every reason to suppose that the
-ordinance contained in the following words was observed
-in every parish church in the country: “We
-order,” says the Constitution, “that every priest having
-the charge of a flock do, four times in each year (that
-is, once each quarter) on one or more solemn feast
-days, either himself or by some one else, instruct the
-people in the vulgar language simply and without any
-fantastical admixture of subtle distinctions, in the
-articles of the Creed, the Ten Commandments, the
-Evangelical Precepts, the seven works of mercy, the
-seven deadly sins with their offshoots, the seven principal
-virtues, and the seven Sacraments.”</p>
-
-<p>This means that the whole range of Christian
-teaching, dogmatic and moral, was to be explained to
-the people four times in every year; and in order that
-there should be no doubt about the matter, the Synod
-proceeds to set out in considerable detail each of the
-points upon which the priest was to instruct his people.
-During the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries the great
-number of manuals intended to help the clergy in the
-execution of this law attest the fact that it was fully
-recognised and very generally complied with. When<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">[281]</a></span>
-at the close of the latter century, the invention of
-printing made the multiplication of such manuals easy,
-the existence both of printed copies of this Constitution
-of Archbishop Peckham, and of printed tracts drawn
-up to give every assistance to the parochial clergy in
-the preparation of these homely teachings, proves that
-the law was understood and acted upon. In the face
-of such evidence it is impossible to doubt that, whatever
-may have been the case as to set sermons and
-formal discourses, simple, straightforward teaching was
-not neglected in pre-Reformation England, and every
-care was taken that the clergy might be furnished with
-material suitable for the fundamental religious teaching
-contemplated by the law. As late as 1466, a synod of
-the York Province, held by Archbishop Nevill, not
-only reiterated this general decree about regular quarterly
-instructions of a simple and practical kind, but
-set out at great length the points of these lessons in
-the Christian faith and life upon which the parish
-priests were to insist.</p>
-
-<p>Even set discourses of a more formal kind, though
-probably by no means so frequent as in these times,
-when they have to a great extent superseded the simple
-instructions of old Catholic days, were by no means
-neglected. Volumes of such sermons in manuscript
-and in print, as well as all that is known of the great
-discourses constantly being delivered at St. Paul’s
-Cross, may be taken as sufficient evidence of this.
-For the conveyance of moral and religious instruction,
-however, the regular and homely talks of a parish
-priest to his people were vastly more important than
-the set orations, and it is with these familiar instructions
-that the student of this period of our history has<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">[282]</a></span>
-chiefly to concern himself. All the available evidence
-goes to show that the giving of these was not only
-regarded as an obligation on the pastor; but attendance
-at them was looked upon as a usual and necessary
-portion of the Christian duty. For example, in the
-examinations of conscience intended to assist lay
-people in their preparation for the Sacrament of penance,
-there are indications that any neglect to attend
-at these parochial instructions was considered sufficiently
-serious to become a matter of confession. It
-is, of course, hardly conceivable that this should be
-so, if the giving of these popular lessons in the duties
-of the Christian life was neglected by the priests, or
-if they were not commonly frequented by the laity.
-To take a few instances. “Also,” runs one such examination,
-“I have been slow in God’s service, and
-negligent to pray and to go to church in due time …
-loth to hear the Word of God, and the preacher of
-the Word of God. Neither have I imprinted it in my
-heart and borne it away and wrought thereafter.”<a name="FNanchor_284" id="FNanchor_284"></a><a href="#Footnote_284" class="fnanchor">[284]</a>
-Again: “I have been setting nought by preaching
-and teaching of God’s Word, by thinking it an idle
-thing.”<a name="FNanchor_285" id="FNanchor_285"></a><a href="#Footnote_285" class="fnanchor">[285]</a> And, to take an example of the view taken
-in such documents as to the priest’s duty:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">[283]</a></span> “If you are
-a priest be a true lantern to the people both in speaking
-and in living, and faithfully and truly do all things
-which pertain to a priest. Seek wisely the ground of
-truth and the true office of the priesthood, and be
-not ruled blindly by the lewd customs of the world.
-Read God’s law and the Expositions of the Holy
-Doctors, and study and learn and keep it, and when
-thou knowest it, preach and teach it to those that are
-unlearned.”<a name="FNanchor_286" id="FNanchor_286"></a><a href="#Footnote_286" class="fnanchor">[286]</a></p>
-
-<p>Richard Whitford, the Monk of Sion, in his <i>Work
-for Householders</i>, published first in 1530, lays great
-stress upon the obligation of parents and masters to
-see that those under their charge attended the instructions
-given in the parish church. Some may perhaps
-regard his greater anxiety for their presence at sermons
-rather than at Mass, when it was not possible for them
-to be at both, as doubtful advice. In this, however, he
-agrees with the author of what was the most popular
-book of instructions at this period, and the advice itself
-is proof that the obligation of attending instructions was
-regarded as sufficiently serious to be contrasted with
-that of hearing Mass. Speaking of the Sunday duties,
-Whitford says: “At church on Sundays see after those
-who are under your care. And charge them also
-to keep their sight in the church close upon their book
-and beads. And whilst they are young accustom them
-always to kneel, stand, and sit, and never walk in the
-church. And let them hear the Mass quietly and
-devoutly, much part kneeling. But at the Gospel, the
-Preface, and at the Paternoster teach them to stand
-and to make curtesy at the word Jesus, as the priest
-does.… If there be a sermon any time of the day
-let them be present, all that are not occupied in needful
-and lawful business; all other (occupations) laid
-aside let them ever keep the preachings, rather than
-the Mass, if, perchance, they may not hear both.”</p>
-
-<p>Nothing could possibly be more definite or explicit
-upon the necessity of popular instructions and upon
-the duty incumbent upon the clergy of giving proper<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">[284]</a></span>
-vernacular teaching to their flocks than the author of
-<i>Dives et Pauper</i>, the most popular of the fifteenth-century
-books of religious instruction. In fact, on this
-point his language is as strong and uncompromising as
-that which writers have too long been accustomed to
-associate with the name of Wycliffe. No more unwarranted
-assumption has ever been made in the name
-of history than that which classed under the head of
-Lollard productions almost every fifteenth-century tract
-in English, especially such as dealt openly with abuses
-needing correction, and pleaded for simple vernacular
-teaching of religion. This is what the author of <i>Dives
-et Pauper</i> says about preaching:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">[285]</a></span> “Since God’s word is
-life and salvation of man’s soul, all those who hinder
-them that have authority of God, and by Orders taken,
-to preach and teach, from preaching and teaching God’s
-word and God’s law, are manslayers ghostly. They are
-guilty of as many souls that perish by the hindering of
-God’s word, and namely those proud, covetous priests
-and curates who can neither teach, nor will teach, nor
-suffer others that both can and will and have authority
-to teach and preach of God and of the bishop who gave
-them Orders, but prevent them for fear lest they should
-get less from their subjects, or else the less be thought
-of, or else that their sins should be known by the
-preaching of God’s word. Therefore, they prefer to
-leave their own sins openly reproved generally, among
-other men’s sins. As St. Anselm saith, God’s word
-ought to be worshipped as much as Christ’s body, and
-he sins as much who hindereth God’s word and despiseth
-God’s word, or taketh it recklessly as he that despiseth
-God’s body, or through his negligence letteth it
-fall to the ground. On this place the gloss showeth
-that it is more profitable to hear God’s word in preaching
-than to hear a Mass, and that a man should rather
-forbear his Mass than his sermon. For, by preaching,
-folks are stirred to contrition, and to forsake sin and
-the fiend, and to love God and goodness, and (by it)
-they be illumined to know their God, and virtue from
-vice, truth from falsehood, and to forsake errors and
-heresies. By the Mass they are not so, but if they
-come to Mass in sin they go away in sin, and shrews
-they come and shrews they wend away.… Nevertheless,
-the Mass profiteth them that are in grace to get
-grace and forgiveness of sin.… Both are good, but
-the preaching of God’s word ought to be more discharged
-and more desired than the hearing of Mass.”<a name="FNanchor_287" id="FNanchor_287"></a><a href="#Footnote_287" class="fnanchor">[287]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the same way the author of a little book named
-<i>The Interpretatyon and Sygnyfycacyon of the Masse</i>, printed
-by Robert Wyer in 1532, insists on the obligation of
-attending the Sunday instruction. “On each Sunday,”
-he says, “he shall also hear a sermon, if it be possible,
-for if a man did lose or omit it through
-contempt or custom, he would sin greatly.”<a name="FNanchor_288" id="FNanchor_288"></a><a href="#Footnote_288" class="fnanchor">[288]</a> And in
-<i>The Myrrour of the Church</i>, the author tells those who
-desire “to see the Will of God in Holy Scripture,” but
-being of “simple learning” and “no cunning” cannot
-read, that they may do so “in open sermon, or in
-secret collation” with those who can. And in speaking
-of the Sunday duties he tells his readers not to
-lie in bed,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">[286]</a></span> “but rising promptly you shall go to the
-church, and with devotion say your matins without
-jangling. Also sweetly hear your Mass and all the
-hours of the day. And then if there is any preacher
-in the church who proposes to make a sermon, you
-shall sweetly hear the Word of God and keep it in
-remembrance.”<a name="FNanchor_289" id="FNanchor_289"></a><a href="#Footnote_289" class="fnanchor">[289]</a> And lastly, to take one more example,
-in Wynkyn de Worde’s <i>Exornatorium Curatorum</i>,
-printed to enable those having the cure of souls to
-perform the duties of instruction laid down by Archbishop
-Peckham’s Provincial Constitution, whilst setting
-forth a form of examination of conscience under the
-head of the deadly sins, the author bids the curate
-teach his people to ask themselves: “Whether you
-have been slothful in God’s service, and specially upon
-the Sunday and the holy day whether you have been
-slothful to come to church, slothful to pray when you
-have been there, and slothful to hear the Word of
-God preached. Furthermore, whether you have been
-negligent to learn your <i>Pater Noster</i>, your <i>Ave Maria</i>,
-or your Creed, or whether you have been negligent
-to teach the same to your own children or to your
-god-children. Examine yourself also whether you have
-taught your children good manners, and guarded them
-from danger and bad company.” The same book
-insists on the need of such examination of conscience
-daily, or at least weekly.<a name="FNanchor_290" id="FNanchor_290"></a><a href="#Footnote_290" class="fnanchor">[290]</a></p>
-
-<p>The following in this connection is of interest as
-being a daily rule of life recommended to laymen
-in the English Prymer printed at Rouen in 1538:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">[287]</a></span>
-“First rise up at six o’clock in the morning
-at all seasons, and in rising do as follows: Thank
-our Lord who has brought you to the beginning of
-the day. Commend yourself to God, to Our Lady
-Saint Mary, and to the saint whose feast is kept that
-day, and to all the saints in heaven. When you have
-arrayed yourself say in your chamber or lodging,
-Matins, Prime, and Hours, if you may. Then go to
-the church before you do any worldly works if you
-have no needful business, and abide in the church the
-space of a low mass time, where you shall think on God
-and thank Him for His benefits. Think awhile on the
-goodness of God, on His divine might and virtue.…
-If you cannot be so long in the church on account of
-necessary business, take some time in the day in your
-house in which to think of these things.”… Take
-your meal “reasonably without excess or overmuch
-forbearing of your meat, for there is as much danger
-in too little as in too much. If you fast once in a
-week it is enough, besides Vigils and Ember days out
-of Lent.” After dinner rest “an hour or half-an-hour,
-praying God that in that rest He will accept your health
-to the end, that after it you may serve Him the more
-devoutly.”</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">[288]</a></span></p>
-<p>“… As touching your service, say up to <i>Tierce</i>
-before dinner, and make an end of all before supper.
-And when you are able say the <i>Dirge</i> and <i>Commendations</i>
-for all Christian souls, at least on holy days, and
-if you have leisure say them on other days, at least
-with three lessons. Shrive yourself every week to your
-curate, except you have some great hindrance. And
-beware that you do not pass a fortnight unless you
-have a very great hindrance. If you have the means
-refuse not your alms to the first poor body that asketh
-it of you that day. Take care to hear and keep the
-Word of God. Confess you every day to God without
-fail of such sins you know you have done that day.”
-Think often of our Lord’s Passion, and at night when
-you wake turn your thoughts to what our Lord was
-doing at that hour in His Passion. In your life look
-for a faithful friend to whom you may open “your
-secrets,” and when found follow his advice. No doubt
-this “manner to live well” will perhaps hardly represent
-what people at this time ordinarily did. But
-the mere fact that it could be printed as a Christian’s
-daily rule of life as late as 1538, is evidence at
-any rate that people took at the least as serious a
-view of their obligations in religious matters as we
-should.<a name="FNanchor_291" id="FNanchor_291"></a><a href="#Footnote_291" class="fnanchor">[291]</a> In the same way <i>The art of good lyvyng</i>,
-quoted above, suggests as the proper way to sanctify
-the Sunday: Meditations on death, the pains of hell,
-and the joys of Paradise. Time should be given to
-reading the lives of the saints, to saying Matins, and
-studying the Paternoster and the Creed. Others
-should be exhorted to enter into God’s service, and
-fathers of families are bound to see that “their
-children, servants, and families go to church and hear
-the preachings.”<a name="FNanchor_292" id="FNanchor_292"></a><a href="#Footnote_292" class="fnanchor">[292]</a></p>
-
-<p>By far the most interesting and important part of
-any inquiry on the subject of pre-Reformation instructions,
-regards of course their nature and effect. We are
-asked to believe that the people were allowed to grow
-up in ignorance of the true nature of religion, and with
-superstitions in their hearts which the clergy could
-easily have corrected; but which they, on the contrary,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">[289]</a></span>
-rather fostered as likely to prove of pecuniary value to
-themselves. To keep the people ignorant (it is said) was
-their great object, as it was through the ignorance of the
-lay folk that the clergy hoped to maintain their influence
-and ascendency, and, it is suggested, to draw money
-out of the pockets of the faithful. The reverence
-which was paid at this time to images of the saints,
-and in an especial manner to the crucifix, is often
-adduced as proof that the people were evidently badly
-instructed in the nature of religious worship; and the
-destruction of statues, paintings, and pictured glass by
-the advanced reformers is thought to be explained, if
-not excused, by the absolute need of putting a stop
-once for all to a crying abuse. The explanation given
-to the people by their religious teachers on the eve
-of the religious changes on this matter of devotion to
-the saints, and of the nature of the reverence to be
-paid to their representations, may be taken as a good
-sample of the practical nature of the general instructions
-imparted in those times. The question divested
-of all ambiguity is really this: Were the people taught
-to understand the nature of an image or representation,
-or were they allowed to regard them as objects of
-reverence in themselves&mdash;that is, as <i>idols</i>? The material
-for a reply to this inquiry is fortunately abundant.
-The <i>Dyalogue</i> of Sir Thomas More was written in 1528,
-in order to maintain the Catholic teaching about images,
-relics, and the praying to saints. To this, then, an inquirer
-naturally turns in the first place for an exposition
-of the common belief in these matters; for Sir Thomas
-claims that in his tract he is defending only “the
-common faith and belief of Christ’s Church.” “What
-this is,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">[290]</a></span> “I am very sure; and perceive it
-well not only by experience of my own time and the
-places where I have myself been to, with the common
-report of other honest men from all other places of
-Christendom.” After having explained that the commandment
-of God had reference to idols or images
-worshipped as gods, and not to mere representations
-of Christ, our Lady, or the Saints,<a name="FNanchor_293" id="FNanchor_293"></a><a href="#Footnote_293" class="fnanchor">[293]</a> he continues:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">[291]</a></span> “but
-neither Scripture nor natural reason forbids a man to
-reverence an image, not fixing his final intent on the
-image, but referring the honour to the person the
-image represents. In such reverence shown to an
-image there is no honour withdrawn from God; but
-the saint is honoured in his image, and God in His
-saint. When a man of mean birth and an ambassador
-to a great king has high honour done to him, to whom
-does that honour redound, to the ambassador or to the
-king? When a man on the recital of his prince’s letter
-puts off his cap and kisses it, does he reverence the
-paper or his prince?… All names spoken and all
-words written are no material signs or images, but are
-made only by consent and agreement of men to betoken
-and signify such things, whereas images painted,
-graven, or carved, may be so well wrought and so
-near to the life and the truth, that they will naturally
-and much more effectually represent the thing than the
-name either spoken or written.… These two words,
-<i>Christus crucifixus</i>, do not represent to us, either to laymen
-or to the learned, so lively a remembrance of His
-bitter Passion as does a blessed image of the crucifix,
-and this these heretics perceive well enough. Nor do
-they speak against images in order to further devotion,
-but plainly with a malicious mind to diminish and
-quench men’s devotions. For they see clearly that no
-one who loves another does not delight in his image
-or in anything of his. And these heretics who are
-so sore against the images of God and His holy saints,
-would be right angry with him that would dishonestly
-handle an image made in remembrance of one of
-themselves, whilst the wretches forbear not to handle
-villainously, and in despite cast dirt upon the holy
-crucifix, an image made in remembrance of our
-Saviour Himself, and not only of His most blessed
-Person, but also of His most bitter Passion.”<a name="FNanchor_294" id="FNanchor_294"></a><a href="#Footnote_294" class="fnanchor">[294]</a></p>
-
-<p>Later on, in the same tract, rejecting the notion
-that people did not fully understand that the image
-was intended merely to recall the memory of the person
-whose image it was, and was not itself in any sense the
-thing or person, More says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">[292]</a></span> “The flock of Christ is
-not so foolish as those heretics would make them to
-be. For whereas there is no dog so mad that he does
-not know a real coney (<i>i.e.</i> rabbit) from a coney carved
-and painted, (yet they would have it supposed that)
-Christian people that have reason in their heads, and
-therefore the light of faith in their souls, would think
-that the image of our Lady were our Lady herself.
-Nay, they be not so mad, I trust, but that they do
-reverence to the image for the honour of the person
-whom it represents, as every man delights in the image
-and remembrance of his friend. And although every
-good Christian man has a remembrance of Christ’s
-passion in his mind, and conceives by devout meditation
-a form and fashion thereof in his heart, yet there
-is no man I ween so good nor so learned, nor so well
-accustomed to meditation, but that he finds himself
-more moved to pity and compassion by beholding the
-holy crucifix than when he lacks it.”<a name="FNanchor_295" id="FNanchor_295"></a><a href="#Footnote_295" class="fnanchor">[295]</a></p>
-
-<p>In his work against Tyndale, More again takes up
-this subject in reference to the way in which the
-former in his new translation of the Bible had substituted
-the word <i>idol</i> for <i>image</i>, as if they were practically
-identical in meaning. “Good folk who worship images
-of Christ and His saints, thereby worship Christ and
-His saints, whom these images represent.” Just as
-pagan worshippers of idols did evil in worshipping
-them, “because in them they worshipped devils (whom
-they called gods and whom those idols represented), so
-Christian men do well in worshipping images, because
-in them they worship Christ and His holy saints.”<a name="FNanchor_296" id="FNanchor_296"></a><a href="#Footnote_296" class="fnanchor">[296]</a></p>
-
-<p>Roger Edgworth, the preacher, describes at Bristol
-in Queen Mary’s reign how the Reforming party endeavoured
-to confuse the minds of the common people
-as to the meaning of the word idol. “I would,” he
-says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">[293]</a></span> “that you should not ignorantly confound and
-abuse those terms ‘idol’ and ‘image,’ taking an image
-for an idol and an idol for an image, as I have heard
-many do in this city, as well fathers and mothers (who
-should be wise) as their babies and children who have
-learned foolishness from their parents. Now, at the
-dissolution of the monasteries and friars’ houses many
-images have been carried abroad and given to children
-to play with, and when the children have them in
-their hands, dancing them in their childish manner, the
-father or mother comes and says, ‘What nase, what
-have you there?’ The child answers (as she is taught),
-‘I have here my idol.’ Then the father laughs and
-makes a gay game at it. So says the mother to
-another, ‘Jugge or Tommy, where did you get that
-pretty idol?’ ‘John, our parish clerk gave it to me,’
-says the child, and for that the clerk must have thanks
-and shall not lack good cheer. But if the folly were
-only in the insolent youth, and in the fond unlearned
-fathers and mothers, it might soon be redressed.” The
-fact is, he proceeds to explain, that the new preachers
-have been doing all in their power to obscure the
-hitherto well-recognised difference in meaning between
-an image and an idol. He begs his hearers to try and
-keep the difference in meaning between an image and
-an idol clearly before their minds. “An image is a
-similitude of a natural thing that has been, is, or may
-be,” he tells them. “An idol is a similitude of what
-never was or may be. Therefore the image of the
-crucifix is no idol, for it represents and signifies Christ
-crucified as He was in very deed, and the image of St.
-Paul with a sword in his hand as the sign of his martyrdom
-is no idol, for the thing signified by it was a
-thing indeed, for he was beheaded with a sword.”<a name="FNanchor_297" id="FNanchor_297"></a><a href="#Footnote_297" class="fnanchor">[297]</a></p>
-
-<p>In another part of the <i>Dialogue</i> Sir Thomas More
-pointed out that what the reforming party said against
-devotion to images and pilgrimages could be summed
-up under one of three heads. They charge the people
-with giving “to the saints, and also to their images,
-honour like in kind to what they give to God Himself”;
-or (2) that “they take the images for the things
-themselves,” which is plain idolatry; or (3) that the
-worship is conducted in a “superstitious fashion with
-a desire of unlawful things.” Now, as to these three
-accusations, More replies:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">[294]</a></span> “The first point is at once
-soon and shortly answered, for it is not true. For
-though men kneel to saints and images, and incense
-them also, yet it is not true that they for this reason
-worship them in every point like unto God.… They
-lack the chief point (of such supreme worship). That
-is, they worship God in the mind that He is God, which
-intention in worship is the only thing that maketh it
-<i>latria</i>, and not any certain gesture or bodily observance.”
-It would not be supreme or divine worship even if “we
-would wallow upon the ground unto Christ, having in
-this a mind that He were the best man we could think
-of, but not thinking Him to be God. For if the lowly
-manner of bodily observance makes <i>latria</i>, then we
-were in grave peril of idolatry in our courtesy used to
-princes, prelates, and popes, to whom we kneel as low
-as to God Almighty, and kiss some their hands and
-some our own, ere ever we presume to touch them;
-and in the case of the Pope, his foot; and as for
-incensing, the poor priests in every choir are as well
-incensed as the Sacrament. Hence if <i>latria</i>, which is
-the special honour due to God, was contained in these
-things, then we were great idolaters, not only in our
-worship of the saints and of their images, but also of
-men, one to another among ourselves.” Though indeed
-to God Almighty ought to be shown as “humble and
-lowly a bodily reverence as possible, still this bodily
-worship is not <i>latria</i>, unless we so do it in our mind
-considering and acknowledging Him as God, and with
-that mind and intention do our worship; and this, as I
-think,” he says, “no Christian man does to any image
-or to any saint either.”</p>
-
-<p>“Now, as touching the second point&mdash;namely, that
-people take the images for the saints themselves, I trust
-there is no man so mad, or woman either, that they do<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_295" id="Page_295">[295]</a></span>
-not know live men from dead stones, and a tree from
-flesh and bone. And when they prefer our Lady at
-one pilgrimage place before our Lady at another, or
-one rood before another, or make their invocations and
-vows some to the one and some to the other, I ween it
-easy to perceive that they mean nothing else than that
-our Lord and our Lady, or rather our Lord for our
-Lady, shows more miracles at the one than the other.
-They intend in their pilgrimages to visit, some one
-place and some another, or sometimes the place is
-convenient for them, or their devotion leads them;
-and yet (this is) not for the place, but because our
-Lord pleases by manifest miracles to provoke men to
-seek Him, or His Blessed Mother, or some Holy Saint
-of His, in these places more especially than in some
-others.”</p>
-
-<p>“This thing itself proves also that they do not take
-the images of our Lady for herself. For if they did,
-how could they possibly in any wise have more mind
-to one of them than to the other? For they can have
-no more mind to our Lady than to our Lady. Moreover,
-if they thought that the image at Walsingham was
-our Lady herself then must they needs think that our
-Lady herself was that image. Then, if in like manner
-they thought that the image at Ipswich was our Lady
-herself, and as they must then need think that our
-Lady was the image at Ipswich, they must needs think
-that all these three things were one thing.… And so
-by the same reason they must suppose that the image
-at Ipswich was the self-same image as at Walsingham.
-If you ask any one you take for the simplest, except
-a natural fool, I dare hold you a wager she will tell
-you ‘nay’ to this. Besides this, take the simplest fool<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_296" id="Page_296">[296]</a></span>
-you can find and she will tell you our Lady herself is
-in heaven. She will also call an image an image, and
-she will tell you the difference between an image of
-a horse and a horse in very deed. And this appears
-clearly whatever her words about her pilgrimage are
-calling, according to the common manner of speech,
-the image of our Lady, our Lady. As men say, ‘Go
-to the King’s Head for wine,’ not meaning his real
-head, but the sign, so she means nothing more in the
-image but our Lady’s image, no matter how she may
-call it. And if you would prove she neither takes our
-Lady for the image, nor the image for our Lady&mdash;talk
-with her about our Lady and she will tell you that our
-Lady was saluted by Gabriel; that our Lady fled into
-Egypt with Joseph; and yet in the telling she will never
-say that ‘our Lady of Walsingham,’ or ‘of Ipswich,’
-was saluted by Gabriel, or fled into Egypt. If you
-would ask her whether it was ‘our Lady of Walsingham,’
-or ‘our Lady of Ipswich,’ that stood by the cross
-at Christ’s Passion, she will, I warrant you, make
-answer that it was neither of them; and if you further
-ask her, ‘which Lady then,’ she will name you no
-image, but our Lady who is in heaven. And this I
-have proved often, and you may do so, too, when you
-will and shall find it true, except it be in the case of
-one so very a fool that God will give her leave to
-believe what she likes. And surely, on this point,
-I think in my mind that all those heretics who make
-as though they had found so much idolatry among the
-people for mistaking (the nature) of images, do but
-devise the fear, to have some cloak to cover their
-heresy, wherein they bark against the saints themselves,
-and when they are marked they say they<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_297" id="Page_297">[297]</a></span>
-only mean the wrong beliefs that women have in
-images.”<a name="FNanchor_298" id="FNanchor_298"></a><a href="#Footnote_298" class="fnanchor">[298]</a></p>
-
-<p>As regards the third point&mdash;namely, that honour
-is sometimes shown to the saints and their images
-in “a superstitious fashion with a desire of unlawful
-things,” More would be ready to blame this as much
-as any man if it could be shown to be the case. “But
-I would not,” he says, “blame all things which are
-declared to be of this character by the new teachers.
-For example, to pray to St. Apollonia for the help
-of our teeth is no witchcraft, considering that she had
-her teeth pulled out for Christ’s sake. Nor is there any
-superstition in other suchlike things.” Still, where
-abuses can be shown they ought to be put down as
-abuses, and the difference between a lawful use and
-an unlawful abuse recognised. But because there may
-be abuses done on the Sunday, or in Lent, that is no
-reason why the Sunday observance, or the fast of Lent,
-should be swept away.<a name="FNanchor_299" id="FNanchor_299"></a><a href="#Footnote_299" class="fnanchor">[299]</a> “In like manner it would not
-be right that all due worship of saints and reverence of
-relics, and honour of saints’ images, by which good
-and devout folk get much merit, should be abolished
-and put down because people abuse” these things.
-“Now, as touching the evil petitions,” he continues,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_298" id="Page_298">[298]</a></span>
-“though they who make them were, as I trust they
-are not, a great number, they are not yet so many
-that ask evil petitions of saints as ask them of God
-Himself. For whatsoever such people will ask of a
-good saint, they will ask of God Himself, and where
-as the worst point it is said, ‘that the people do idolatry
-in that they take the images for the saints themselves,
-or the rood for Christ Himself,’&mdash;which, as I
-have said, I think none do; for some rood has no
-crucifix thereon, and they do not believe that the cross
-which they see was ever at Jerusalem, or that it was
-the holy cross itself, and much less think that the
-image that hangs on it is the body of Christ Himself.
-And though some were so mad as to think so, yet it
-is not ‘the people’ who do so. For a few doddering
-dames do not make the people.”<a name="FNanchor_300" id="FNanchor_300"></a><a href="#Footnote_300" class="fnanchor">[300]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is hard to imagine any teaching about the use
-and abuse of images clearer than that which is contained
-in the foregoing passages from Sir Thomas
-More’s writings. The main importance of his testimony,
-however, is not so much this clear statement
-of Catholic doctrine on the nature of devotion to
-images, as his positive declaration that there were not
-such abuses, or superstitions, common among the
-people on the eve of the religious changes, as it suited
-the purpose of the early reformers to suggest, and of
-later writers with sectarian bias to believe.</p>
-
-<p>For evidence of positive and distinct teaching on
-the matter of reverence to be shown to images, and
-on its nature and limits, we cannot do better than
-refer to that most popular book of instruction in the
-fifteenth and early sixteenth centuries, already referred
-to, called <i>Dives et Pauper</i>, a treatise on the Ten Commandments.
-It was multiplied from the beginning
-of the fifteenth century in manuscript copies, and
-printed editions of it were issued from the presses of
-Pynson, Wynkyn de Worde, and Thomas Berthelet.
-These editions published by our early printers are
-sufficient to attest its popularity, and the importance<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_299" id="Page_299">[299]</a></span>
-attached to it as a book of instruction by the ecclesiastical
-authorities on the eve of the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p>This is how the teacher lays down the general
-principle of loving God: “The first precept of charity is
-this: Thou shalt love the Lord God with all thy heart,
-with all thy soul, and with all thy mind, with all thy
-might. When He saith thou shalt love thy God with all
-thy heart, He excludeth all manner of idolatry that is
-forbidden by the first commandment; that is, that man
-set not his heart, nor his faith, nor his trust in any
-creature more than in God, or against God’s worship.…
-God orders that thou shouldst love Him with all
-thy heart, that is to say, with all thy faith, in such a
-way that thou set all thy faith and trust in Him before
-all others, as in Him that is Almighty and can best
-help thee in thy need.” Later on, under the same
-heading, we are taught that: “by this commandment
-we are bound to worship God, who is the Father of all
-things, who is called the Father of mercies and God
-of all comfort. He is our Father, for He made us of
-nought: He bought us with His blood, He findeth us
-all that we need, and much more, He feedeth us. He
-is our Father by grace, for by His grace He hath
-made us heirs of heavenly bliss. Was there ever a
-father so tender of his child as God is tender of us?
-He is to us both father and mother, and therefore we
-are bound to love Him and worship Him above all
-things.”<a name="FNanchor_301" id="FNanchor_301"></a><a href="#Footnote_301" class="fnanchor">[301]</a></p>
-
-<p>Under the first commandment the whole question
-as to images, and the nature of the reverence to be
-paid to them, is carefully considered, and the matter
-put so plainly, that there is no room for doubt as to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_300" id="Page_300">[300]</a></span>
-the nature of the instructions given to the people in
-pre-Reformation days. Images, the teacher explains,
-are ordered for three great ends, namely: “To stir
-men’s minds to meditate upon the Incarnation of Christ
-and upon His life and passion, and upon the lives of
-the saints;” secondly, to move the heart to devotion
-and love, “for oft man is stirred more by sight than
-by hearing or reading;” thirdly, they “are intended
-to be a token and a book to the ignorant people, that
-they may read in images and painting as clerks read
-in books.”</p>
-
-<p>And in reply to a question from <i>Dives</i>, who pretended
-to think that it would be difficult to read a
-lesson from any painting, <i>Pauper</i> explains his meaning
-in calling them “books to the unlearned.” “When
-thou seest the image of the crucifix,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_301" id="Page_301">[301]</a></span> “think
-of Him that died on the cross for thy sins and thy
-sake, and thank Him for His endless charity that He
-would suffer so much for thee. See in images how
-His head was crowned with a garland of thorns till
-the blood burst out on every side, to destroy the great
-sin of pride which is most manifested in the heads of
-men and women. Behold, and make an end to thy
-pride. See in the image how His arms were spread
-abroad and drawn up on the tree till the veins and
-sinews cracked, and how His hands were nailed to
-the cross, and streamed with blood, to destroy the sin
-that Adam and Eve did with their hands when they
-took the apple against God’s prohibition. Also He
-suffered to wash away the sin of the wicked deeds and
-wicked works done by the hands of men and women.
-Behold, and make an end of thy wicked works. See
-how His side was opened and His heart cloven in two
-by the sharp spear, and how it shed blood and water,
-to show that if He had had more blood in His body,
-more He would have given for men’s love. He shed
-His blood to ransom our souls, and water to wash
-us from our sins.”</p>
-
-<p>But whilst the instructor teaches the way in which
-the crucifix may be a book full of deep meaning to
-the unlearned, he is most careful to see that the true
-signification of the image is not misunderstood. In
-language which for clearness of expression and simplicity
-of illustration cannot be excelled, he warns <i>Dives</i>
-not to mistake the real nature of the reverence paid to the
-symbol of our redemption. “In this manner,” he says,
-“read thy book and fall down to the ground and thank
-thy God who would do so much for thee. Worship
-Him above all things&mdash;not the stock, nor the stone, nor
-the wood, but Him who died on the tree of the cross
-for thy sins and thy sake. Thou shalt kneel if thou
-wilt before the image, but not to the image. Thou
-shalt do thy worship before the image, before the
-thing, not to the thing; offer thy prayer before the
-thing, not to the thing, for it seeth thee not, heareth
-thee not, understandeth thee not: make thy offering, if
-thou wilt, before the thing, but not to the thing: make
-thy pilgrimage not to the thing, nor for the thing, for
-it may not help thee, but to Him and for Him the
-thing represents. For if thou do it for the thing, or to
-the thing, thou doest idolatry.”</p>
-
-<p>This plain teaching as to the only meaning of
-reverence paid to images, namely, that it is relative
-and intended for that which the image represents, our
-author enforces by several examples. Just as a priest
-when saying mass with a book before him, bends<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_302" id="Page_302">[302]</a></span>
-down, holds up his hands, kneels, and performs other
-external signs of worship, not to the book, but to God,
-“so should the unlettered man use his book, that is
-images and paintings, not worshipping the thing, but
-God in heaven and the saints in their degree. All the
-worship which he doth before the thing, he doth, not
-to the thing, but to Him the thing represents.”</p>
-
-<p>The image of the crucified Saviour on the altar is
-specially intended, our author says, to remind all that
-“Mass singing is a special mind-making of Christ’s
-passion.” For this reason, in the presence of the
-crucifix, the priest says “his mass, and offers up the
-highest prayer that Holy Church can devise for the
-salvation of the quick and the dead. He holds up his
-hands, he bows down, he kneels, and all the worship
-he can do, he does&mdash;more than all, he offers up the
-highest sacrifice and the best offering that any heart
-can devise&mdash;that is Christ, the Son of the God of
-heaven, under the form of bread and wine. All this
-worship the priest doth at mass before the thing&mdash;the
-crucifix; and I hope there is no man nor woman so
-ignorant that he will say that the priest singeth his
-mass, or maketh his prayer, or offers up the Son of
-God, Christ Himself, to the thing.… In the same
-way, unlettered men should worship before the thing,
-making prayer before the thing, and not to the thing.”</p>
-
-<p>One of the special practices of the mediæval church
-to which the English reformers objected, and to which
-they gave the epithet “superstitious,” was the honour
-shown to the cross on Good Friday, generally known
-as “the creeping to the cross.” The advocates of
-change in insisting upon this time-honoured ceremony
-being swept away, claimed that in permitting it the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_303" id="Page_303">[303]</a></span>
-Church had given occasion to wrong ideas of worship
-in the minds of the common people, and that the
-reverence shown to the symbol of our redemption on
-that occasion amounted practically to idolatry. In
-view of such assertions, it is not without interest to
-see how <i>Pauper</i> in this book of simple instructions
-treats this matter. “On Good Friday especially,” says
-<i>Dives</i>, “men creep to the cross and worship the cross.”
-“That is so,” replies the instructor, “but not in the
-way thou meanest. The cross that we creep to and
-worship so highly at that time is Christ Himself, who
-died on the cross on that day for our sin and our
-sake.… He is that cross, as all doctors say, to
-whom we pray and say, ‘<i>Ave crux, spes unica</i>,’ ‘Hail,
-thou cross, our only hope.’” But rejoins <i>Dives</i>,
-“On Palm Sunday, at the procession the priest draweth
-up the veil before the rood and falleth down to the
-ground with all the people, saying thrice thus, ‘<i>Ave
-Rex noster</i>,’ ‘Hail, be Thou our King.’ In this he worships
-the thing as King! <i>Absit!</i>” “God forbid!”
-replies <i>Pauper</i>, “he speaks not to the image that the
-carpenter hath made and the painter painted, unless
-the priest be a fool, for the stock and stone was never
-king. He speaketh to Him that died on the cross
-for us all&mdash;to Him that is King of all things.… For
-this reason are crosses placed by the wayside, to remind
-folk to think of Him who died on the cross, and to
-worship Him above all things. And for this same
-reason is the cross borne before a procession, that
-all who follow after it or meet it should worship Him
-who died upon a cross as their King, their Head, their
-Lord and their Leader to Heaven.”</p>
-
-<p>Equally clear is the author of <i>Dives et Pauper</i> upon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_304" id="Page_304">[304]</a></span>
-the distinction between the worship to be paid to God
-and the honour it is lawful to give to His saints. It
-is, of course, frequently asserted that the English pre-Reformation
-church did not recognise, or at least did
-not inculcate, this necessary difference, and consequently
-tolerated, even if it did not suggest, gross
-errors in this matter. No one who has examined
-the manuals of instruction which were in use on the
-eve of the Reformation can possibly maintain an
-opinion so opposed to the only evidence available.
-In particular, the real distinction between the supreme
-worship due to God alone, and the honour, however
-great, to be paid to His creatures is drawn out with
-great care and exactness in regard to the devotion paid
-to our Lord’s Blessed Mother. Thus, after most carefully
-explaining that there are two modes of “service
-and worship” which differ not merely in degree, but
-in kind and nature, and which were then, as now,
-known under the terms <i>latria</i> and <i>dulia</i>, our author
-proceeds, “Latria is a protestation and acknowledgment
-of the high majesty of God; the recognition
-that He is sovereign goodness, sovereign wisdom,
-sovereign might, sovereign truth, sovereign justice;
-that He is the Creator and Saviour of all creatures
-and the end of all things; that all we have we have
-of Him, and that without Him we have absolutely
-nothing; and that without Him we can neither have
-nor do anything, neither we nor any other creature.
-This acknowledgment and protestation is made in three
-ways: by the heart, and by word, and by deed. We
-make it by the heart when we love Him as sovereign
-goodness; when we love Him as sovereign wisdom
-and truth, that may not deceive nor be deceived;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_305" id="Page_305">[305]</a></span>
-when we hope in Him and trust Him as sovereign
-might that can best help us in need; as sovereign
-greatness and Lord, who may best yield us our
-deserts; and as sovereign Saviour, most merciful and
-most ready to forgive us our misdeeds.… Also the
-acknowledgment is done in the prayer and praise of
-our mouths.… For we must pray to Him and
-praise Him as sovereign might, sovereign wisdom,
-sovereign goodness, sovereign truth; as all-just and
-merciful as the Maker and Saviour of all things, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p>“And in this manner we are not to pray to or
-praise any creature. Therefore, they who make their
-prayers and their praises before images, and say their
-<i>Paternoster</i> and their <i>Ave Maria</i> and other prayers
-and praises commonly used by holy Church, or any
-such, if they do it to the image, and speak to the
-image, they do open idolatry. Also they are not
-excused even if they understand not what they say,
-for their lights, and their other wits, and their inner
-wit also, showeth them well that there ought that no
-such prayer, praise, or worship be offered to such images,
-for they can neither hear them, nor see them, nor help
-them in their needs.”</p>
-
-<p>Equally definite and explicit is another writer, just
-on the eve of the Reformation. William Bond, the
-brother of Sion, in 1531 published his large volume
-of instructions called <i>The Pilgrymage of Perfeccyon</i>, to
-which his contemporary, Richard Whitford, refers his
-readers for the fullest teaching on sundry points of
-faith and practice. In setting forth the distinction
-between an <i>image</i> and an <i>idol</i> this authority says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_306" id="Page_306">[306]</a></span>
-“Many nowadays take the Scripture wrongly, and
-thereby fall into heresy as Wycliffe did with his
-followers, and now this abominable heretic, Luther,
-with his adherents.… And (as I suppose) the cause
-of their error is some of these following:&mdash;First, that
-they put no difference between an idol and an image;
-secondly, that they put no difference between the service
-or high adoration due to God, called in the Greek
-tongue <i>latria</i>, and the lower veneration or worship exhibited
-and done to the saints of God, called in Greek
-<i>dulia</i>.… The veneration or worship that is done to
-the images (as Damascene, Basil, and St. Thomas say)
-rest not in them, but redound unto the thing that is
-represented by such images: as for example, the great
-ambassador or messenger of a king shall have the same
-reverence that the king’s own person should have if
-he were present. This honour is not done to this man
-for himself, or for his own person, but for the king’s
-person in whose name he cometh, and all such honour
-and reverence so done redoundeth to the king and
-resteth in him.… So it is in the veneration or worshipping
-of the images of Christ and His saints. The
-honour rests not in the image, nor in the stock, nor
-in the stone, but in the thing that is represented thereby.”
-According to St. Thomas, he says the images
-in churches are intended to “be as books to the rude
-and unlearned people,” and to “stir simple souls to
-devotion.”<a name="FNanchor_302" id="FNanchor_302"></a><a href="#Footnote_302" class="fnanchor">[302]</a></p>
-
-<p>Bond then draws out most carefully the distinction
-which the Church teaches as to the kinds of honour
-to be given to the saints. “Our lights, oblations, or
-Paternosters and creeds that we say before images of
-saints,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_307" id="Page_307">[307]</a></span> “are as praisings of God, for His
-graces wrought in His saints, by whose merits we
-trust that our petitions shall be the sooner obtained
-of God.… We pray to them, not as to the granters
-of our petitions, but as means whereby we may the
-sooner obtain the same.”<a name="FNanchor_303" id="FNanchor_303"></a><a href="#Footnote_303" class="fnanchor">[303]</a></p>
-
-<p>Speaking specially of the reverence shown to the
-crucifix, our author uses the teaching of St. Thomas
-to explain the exact meaning of this honour. “The
-Church in Lent, in the Passion time,” he continues,
-“worships it, singing, ‘<i>O crux ave, spes unica</i>,’ ‘Hail,
-holy cross, our only hope.’ That is to be understood
-as ‘Hail, blessed Lord crucified, Who art our only
-hope’&mdash;for all is one worship and act. Christ, our
-Maker and Redeemer, God and man in one person,
-is of duty worshipped with the high adoration only due
-to God, called <i>latria</i>. His image also, or his similitude,
-called the crucifix, is to be worshipped, just as the
-Blessed Sacrament is adored with the worship of
-<i>latria</i>.”<a name="FNanchor_304" id="FNanchor_304"></a><a href="#Footnote_304" class="fnanchor">[304]</a></p>
-
-<p>To this testimony may be added that of another
-passage from Sir Thomas More. He was engaged in
-refuting the accusation made by Tyndale against the
-religious practices of pre-Reformation days, to which
-charges, unfortunately, people have given too much
-credence in later times. “Now of prayer, Tyndale
-says,” writes More,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">[308]</a></span> “that we think no man may pray
-but at church, and that (<i>i.e.</i> the praying before a crucifix
-or image) is nothing but the saying of a <i>Paternoster</i>
-to a post. (Further) that the observances and ceremonies
-of the Church are vain things of our own
-imagination, neither needful to the taming of the flesh,
-nor profitable to our neighbour, nor to the honour of
-God. These lies come in by lumps; lo! I dare say
-that he never heard in his life men nor women say
-that a man might pray only in church. Just as true
-is it also that men say their <i>Paternosters</i> to the post, by
-which name it pleases him of his reverent Christian
-mind to call the images of holy saints and our Blessed
-Lady, and the figure of Christ’s cross, the book of His
-bitter passion. Though we reverence these in honour
-of the things they represent, and in remembrance of
-Christ do creep to the cross and kiss it, and say <i>Paternoster</i>
-at it, yet we say not our <i>Paternoster</i> to it, but to
-God; and that Tyndale knows full well, but he likes to
-rail.”<a name="FNanchor_305" id="FNanchor_305"></a><a href="#Footnote_305" class="fnanchor">[305]</a></p>
-
-<p>Finally a passage on the subject of pre-Reformation
-devotion to the saints and angels, from the tract <i>Dives et
-Pauper</i>, may fitly close this subject. “First,” says the
-author,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_309" id="Page_309">[309]</a></span> “worship ye our Lady, mother and maid, above
-all, next after God, and then other saints both men and
-women, and then the holy angels, as God giveth the
-grace. Worship ye them not as God, but as our
-tutors, defenders and keepers, as our leaders and
-governors under God, as the means between us and
-God, who is the Father of all and most Sovereign
-Judge, to appease Him, and to pray for us, and to
-obtain us grace to do well, and for forgiveness of
-our misdeeds.… And, dear friend, pray ye heartily
-to your angel, as to him that is nearest to you and
-hath most care of you, and is, under God, most busy
-to save you. And follow his governance and trust
-in him in all goodness, and with reverence and purity
-pray ye to him faithfully, make your plaints to him,
-and speak to him homely to be your helper, since he
-is your tutor and keeper assigned to you by God. Say
-oft that holy prayer, <i>Angele qui meus est</i>, &amp;c.”</p>
-
-<p>This prayer to the Guardian Angel, so highly commended,
-was well known to pre-Reformation Catholics.
-Generations of English mothers taught it to their
-children; it is found frequently recommended in the
-sermons of the fifteenth century, and confessors are
-charged to advise their penitents to learn and make
-use of it. For the benefit of those of my readers who
-may not know the prayer, I here give it in an English
-form, from a Latin version in the tract <i>Dextra Pars
-Oculi</i>, which was intended to assist confessors in the
-discharge of their sacred ministry&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“O angel who my guardian art,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Through God’s paternal love,</div>
-<div class="verse">Defend, and shield, and rule the charge</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Assigned thee from above.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">From vice’s stain preserve my soul,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">O gentle angel bright,</div>
-<div class="verse">In all my life be thou my stay,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">To all my steps the light.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>It is, of course, impossible here to do more than
-refer to the books of instruction, and those intended to
-furnish the priests on the eve of the Reformation with
-material for the familiar teaching they were bound to
-give their people. Such works as Walter Pagula’s <i>Pars
-Oculi Sacerdotis</i>, and the <i>Pupilla Oculi</i> of John de Burgo,
-both fourteenth-century productions, were in general
-use during the fifteenth century among the clergy.
-The frequent mention of these works in the inventories
-and wills of the period shows that they were in great
-demand, and were circulated from hand to hand, whilst
-an edition of the latter, printed in 1510 by Wolffgang,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_310" id="Page_310">[310]</a></span>
-at the expense of an English merchant, William Bretton,
-attests its continued popularity. In a letter from
-the editor, Augustine Aggeus, to Bretton, printed on
-the back of the title-page, it is said that the <i>Pupilla</i> was
-printed solely with the desire that the rites and sacraments
-of the church might be better understood and
-appreciated, and to secure “that nowhere in the English
-Church” should there be any excuse of ignorance
-on those matters.<a name="FNanchor_306" id="FNanchor_306"></a><a href="#Footnote_306" class="fnanchor">[306]</a></p>
-
-<p>The contents of the first-named tract, the <i>Pars
-Oculi Sacerdotis</i>, show how very useful a manual it must
-have been to assist the clergy in their ministrations. It
-consists of three parts: the first portion forms what
-would now be called the <i>praxis confessarii</i>, a manual for
-instructing priests in the science of dealing with souls,
-and giving examples of the kind of questions that should
-be asked of various people, for example, of religious,
-secular priests, merchants, soldiers, and the like. This
-is followed by a detailed examination of conscience,
-and pious practices are suggested for the priest to
-recommend for the use of the faithful. For example,
-in order that the lives of lay people might be associated
-in some way with the public prayer of the church, the
-Divine office, the priest is advised to get his penitents
-to make use of the Pater and Creed, seven times a
-day, to correspond with the canonical hours. Those
-having the cure of souls are reminded that it is their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_311" id="Page_311">[311]</a></span>
-duty to see that all at least know the Lord’s Prayer,
-the Creed, and the Hail Mary by heart, and they are
-urged to do all in their power to inculcate devotions to
-our Lady, Patron Saints, and the Guardian Angels.</p>
-
-<p>The second part of the <i>Dextra Pars Oculi</i> deals
-minutely and carefully with the instructions which a
-priest should give his people in their religion, and this
-includes not only points of necessary belief and Christian
-practice, but such matters as the proper decorum
-and behaviour in Church, and the cemetery, &amp;c. The
-materials for these familiar instructions are arranged
-under thirty-one headings, and following on these are
-the explanations of Christian faith and practice to be
-made in the simple sermons the clergy were bound to
-give to their people quarterly. The third part, called
-the <i>Sinistra Pars Oculi</i>, is an equally careful treatise
-on the sacraments. The instructions on the Blessed
-Eucharist are excellent, and in the course of them many
-matters of English religious practice are touched upon
-and the ceremonies of the Mass are fully explained.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_312" id="Page_312">[312]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_307" id="FNanchor_307"></a><a href="#Footnote_307" class="fnanchor">[307]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is obvious that much of the real religious instruction
-in pre-Reformation days, as indeed in all ages, had
-to be given at home by parents to their children. The
-daily practices by which the home life is regulated and
-sanctified are more efficacious in the formation of early
-habits of solid piety and the fear of God in the young
-than any religious instructions given at school or at
-Church. This was fully understood and insisted upon
-in pre-Reformation books of instruction. Such, for
-example, is the very purpose of Richard Whitford’s
-book, called <i>A werke for Housholders, or for them that
-have the guyding or governance of any company</i>, printed by
-Wynkyn de Worde in 1534, and again by Robert
-Redman in 1537. After reminding his readers that
-life is short, and that it is impossible for any man to
-know when he shall be called upon to give an account<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_313" id="Page_313">[313]</a></span>
-of his stewardship, he turns to the consideration of the
-Christian’s daily life. Begin the day well, he says; on
-first awakening, turn your thoughts and heart to God,
-“and then use by continual custom to make a cross with
-your thumb upon your forehead or front, whilst saying
-these words, <i>In nomine Patris</i>; and another cross upon
-your mouth, with these words, <i>Et filii</i>; and then a third
-cross upon your breast, saying, <i>Et spiritus Sancti</i>.” After
-suggesting a form of morning and evening prayer, and
-urging a daily examination of conscience, he continues:
-Some may object that all this is very well for religious,
-or people secluded from the world, “but we lie two
-or three sometimes together, and even in one chamber
-divers beds, and so many in company, that if we should
-use these things in the presence of our fellows some
-would laugh us to scorn and mock at us.” But to
-this objection Whitford in effect replies that at most it
-would be a nine days’ wonder, and people would quickly
-be induced to follow an example of such a good Christian
-practice if set with courage and firmness.<a name="FNanchor_308" id="FNanchor_308"></a><a href="#Footnote_308" class="fnanchor">[308]</a></p>
-
-<p>Speaking of the duty of instructing others, “the
-wretch of Syon,” as Whitford constantly calls himself,
-urges those who can read to use their gifts for the
-benefit of others not so fortunate. They should get
-their neighbours together on holidays, he says, especially
-the young, and teach them the daily exercise, and
-in particular the “things they are bound to know or
-can say: that is the <i>Paternoster</i>, the <i>Ave</i>, and the <i>Creed</i>.”
-Begin early to teach those that are young, for “our
-English proverb saith that the young cock croweth as
-he doth hear and learn of the old.” Parents, above
-all things, he urges to look well after their children<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_314" id="Page_314">[314]</a></span>
-and to take care of the company they keep. Teach
-them to say their grace at meals. “At every meal,
-dinner or supper, I have advised, and do now counsel,
-that one person should with loud voice say thus,
-‘Paternoster,’ with every petition paraphrased and
-explained, and the Hail Mary and Creed likewise.
-This manner of the Paternoster, Ave, and Creed,” he
-says, “I would have used and read from the book at
-every meal, or at least once a day with a loud voice
-that all the persons present may hear it.” People are
-bound to see that all in their house know these prayers
-and say them.<a name="FNanchor_309" id="FNanchor_309"></a><a href="#Footnote_309" class="fnanchor">[309]</a></p>
-
-<p>Very strongly indeed does Whitford in this volume
-write against belief in charms and giving way to superstitions.
-There is no question about his strong condemnation
-of anything, however slight, which might
-savour of reliance on these external things, and as an
-instance of what he means, he declares that the application
-of a piece of bread, with a cross marked upon it,
-to a tooth to cure its aching, savours of superstition, as
-showing too great a reliance on the material cross. In
-the same place our author urges parents to correct
-their children early for any use of oaths and strong
-expressions. “Teach your children,” he says, “to
-make their additions under this form: ‘yea, father,’
-‘nay, father,’ ‘yea, mother,’ ‘nay, mother,’ and ever to
-avoid such things as ‘by cock and pye,’ and ‘by my
-hood of green,’ and such other.”<a name="FNanchor_310" id="FNanchor_310"></a><a href="#Footnote_310" class="fnanchor">[310]</a></p>
-
-<p>Finally, to take but one more example of the
-advice given in this interesting volume to parents and
-others having the charge of the young, Whitford says:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_315" id="Page_315">[315]</a></span>
-“Teach your children to ask a blessing every night,
-kneeling, before they go to rest, under this form:
-‘Father, I beseech you a blessing for charity.’” If the
-child is too stubborn to do this, he says let it “be well
-whisked.” If too old to be corrected in this way, let it
-be set out in the middle of the dining-room and made
-to feed by itself, and let it be treated as one would
-treat one who did not deserve to consort with its
-fellows. Also teach the young “to ask a blessing
-from every bishop, abbot, and priest, and of their godfathers
-and godmothers also.”<a name="FNanchor_311" id="FNanchor_311"></a><a href="#Footnote_311" class="fnanchor">[311]</a></p>
-
-<p>In taking a general survey of the books issued by
-the English presses upon the introduction of the art of
-printing, the inquirer can hardly fail to be struck with
-the number of religious, or quasi-religious, works which
-formed the bulk of the early printed books. This fact
-alone is sufficient evidence that the invention which at
-this period worked a veritable revolution in the intellectual
-life of the world, was welcomed by the ecclesiastical
-authorities as a valuable auxiliary in the work of
-instruction. In England the first presses were set up
-under the patronage of churchmen, and a very large
-proportion of the early books were actually works of
-instruction or volumes furnishing materials to the clergy
-for the familiar and simple discourses which they were
-accustomed to give four times a year to their people.
-Besides the large number of what may be regarded as
-professional books chiefly intended for use by the
-ecclesiastical body, such as missals, manuals, breviaries,
-and horæ, and the prymers and other prayer-books used
-by the laity, there was an ample supply of religious
-literature published in the early part of the sixteenth
-century. In fact, the bulk of the early printed English<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_316" id="Page_316">[316]</a></span>
-books were of a religious character, and as the publication
-of such volumes was evidently a matter of business
-on the part of the first English printers, it is obvious
-that this class of literature commanded a ready sale,
-and that the circulation of such books was fostered by
-those in authority at this period. Volumes of sermons,
-works of Instruction on the Creed and the Commandments,
-lives of the saints, and popular expositions of
-Scripture history, were not only produced but passed
-through several editions in a short space of time. The
-evidence, consequently, of the productions of the first
-English printing-presses goes to show not only that
-religious books were in great demand, but also that so
-far from discouraging the use of such works of instruction,
-the ecclesiastical authorities actively helped in
-their diffusion.</p>
-
-<p>In considering the religious education of the people
-in the time previous to the great upheaval of the sixteenth
-century, some account must be taken of the
-village mystery plays which obviously formed no inconsiderable
-part in popular instruction in the great truths
-of religion. The inventories of parish churches and
-the churchwardens’ accounts which have survived
-show how very common a feature these religious plays
-formed in the parish life of the fifteenth century, and
-the words of the various dramas, of which we still
-possess copies, show how powerful a medium of teaching
-they would have been among the simple and unlettered
-villagers of Catholic England, and even to
-the crowds which at times thronged great cities like
-Coventry and Chester, to be present at the more
-elaborate plays acted in these traditional centres of
-the religious drama.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_317" id="Page_317">[317]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>As to their popularity there can be no question.
-Dramatic representations of the chief events in the life
-of our Lord, &amp;c., were commonly so associated with
-the religious purposes for which they were originally
-produced, that they were played on Sundays and feast
-days, and not infrequently in churches, church porches,
-and churchyards. “Spectacles, plays, and dances that
-are used on great feasts,” says the author of <i>Dives et
-Pauper</i>, quoted above, “as they are done principally
-for devotion and honest mirth, and to teach men to love
-God the more, are lawful if the people be not thereby
-hindered from God’s service, nor from hearing God’s
-word, and provided that in such spectacles and plays
-there is mingled no error against the faith of Holy
-Church and good living. All other plays are prohibited,
-both on holidays and work days (according
-to the law), upon which the gloss saith that the representation
-in plays at Christmas of Herod and the
-Three Kings, and other pieces of the Gospel, both
-then and at Easter and other times, is lawful and commendable.”</p>
-
-<p>A few examples of the kind of teaching imparted in
-these plays will give a better idea of the purpose they
-served in pre-Reformation days than any description.
-There can be no reasonable doubt that such dramatic
-representations of the chief mysteries of religion and
-of scenes in the life of our Lord or of His saints served
-to impress these truths and events upon the imaginations
-of the audiences who witnessed them, and to
-make them vivid realities in a way which we, who
-are not living in the same religious atmosphere, find
-it difficult now to understand. The religious drama
-was the handmaid of the Church, and was intended<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_318" id="Page_318">[318]</a></span>
-to assist in instructing the people at large in the truths
-and duties of religion, just as the paintings upon the
-walls of the sacred buildings were designed to tell their
-own tale of the Bible history, and form “a book” ever
-open to the eyes of the unlettered children of the
-Church, easy to be understood, graphically setting
-forth events in the story of God’s dealings with
-men, and illustrating truths which often formed
-the groundwork for oral instruction in the Sunday
-sermon.</p>
-
-<p>Whatever we may be inclined to think of these
-simple plays as literary works, or however we may
-be inclined now to smile at some of the characters
-and “situations,” as to the pious spirit which dictated
-their composition and presided over their production
-there can be no doubt. “In great devotion and discretion,”
-says the monk and chronicler, “Higden
-published the story of the Bible, that the simple in
-their own language might understand.”<a name="FNanchor_312" id="FNanchor_312"></a><a href="#Footnote_312" class="fnanchor">[312]</a></p>
-
-<p>This was the motive of all these mediæval religious
-plays. As a popular writer upon the English drama says:
-“There is abundant evidence that the Romish ecclesiastics
-in the mystery plays, especially that part of them
-relating to the birth, passion, and resurrection of Christ,
-had the perfectly serious intention of strengthening the
-faith of the multitude in the fundamental doctrines of
-the Church, and it seems the less extraordinary that
-they should have resorted to this expedient when we
-reflect that, before the invention of printing, books had
-no existence for the people at large.”<a name="FNanchor_313" id="FNanchor_313"></a><a href="#Footnote_313" class="fnanchor">[313]</a></p>
-
-<p>The subjects treated of in these plays were very<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_319" id="Page_319">[319]</a></span>
-varied, although those which were performed at the
-great feasts of Christmas and Easter generally had some
-relation to the mystery then celebrated. In fact, the
-mystery plays of the sacred seasons were only looked
-upon as helping to make men realise more deeply the
-great drama of the Redemption, the memory of which
-was perpetuated in the sequence of the great festivals
-of the Christian year. In such a collection as that
-known as the <i>Towneley Mysteries</i>, and published by the
-Surtees Society, we have examples of the subjects
-treated in the religious plays of the period. The collection
-makes no pretence to be complete, but it comprises
-some three and thirty plays, including such
-subjects as the Creation, the death of Abel, the story
-of Noah, the sacrifice of Isaac and other Old Testament
-histories, and a great number of scenes from
-the New Testament, such as the Annunciation, the
-Visitation, Cæsar Augustus, scenes from the Nativity,
-the Shepherds and the Magi, the Flight into Egypt,
-various scenes from the Passion and Crucifixion, the
-parable of the Talents, the story of Lazarus, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p>Any one who will take the trouble to read these
-plays as they are printed in this volume cannot fail
-to be impressed not only with the vivid picture of the
-special scene in the Old or New Testament that is
-presented to the imagination, but by the extensive
-knowledge of the Bible which the production of
-these plays must have imparted to those who listened
-to them, and by the way in which, incidentally, the
-most important religious truths are conveyed in the
-crude and rugged verse. Again and again, for instance,
-the entire dependence of all created things
-upon the Providence of Almighty God is declared<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_320" id="Page_320">[320]</a></span>
-and illustrated. Thus, the confession of God’s Omnipotence,
-put into the mouth of Noah at the beginning
-of the play of “Noah and his Sons,” contains a profession
-of belief in the Holy Trinity and in the work of
-the three Persons: it describes the creation of the
-world, the fall of Lucifer, the sin of our first parents,
-and their expulsion from Paradise. In the story of
-Abraham, too, the prayer of the patriarch with which
-it begins:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“Adonai, thou God very,</div>
-<div class="verse">Thou hear us when to Thee we call,</div>
-<div class="verse">As Thou art He that best may,</div>
-<div class="verse">Thou art most succour and help of all,”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>gives a complete résumé of the Bible history before the
-days of Abraham, with the purpose of showing that all
-things are in the hands of God, and that complete obedience
-is due to Him by all creatures whom He has
-made.</p>
-
-<p>The same teaching as to the entire dependence
-of the Christian for all things upon God’s Providence
-appears in the address of the soul to its Maker in
-the “morality” of Mary Magdalene, printed by Mr.
-Sharpe from the Digby Manuscript collection of
-religious plays:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_321" id="Page_321">[321]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse center">“<i>Anima</i>:</div>
-<div class="verse">‘Sovereign Lord, I am bound to Thee;</div>
-<div class="verse">When I was nought, Thou made me thus glorious;</div>
-<div class="verse">When I perished through sin, Thou saved me;</div>
-<div class="verse">When I was in great peril, Thou kept me, Christus;</div>
-<div class="verse">When I erred, Thou reduced me, Jesus;</div>
-<div class="verse">When I was ignorant, Thou taught me truth;</div>
-<div class="verse">When I sinned, Thou corrected me thus;</div>
-<div class="verse">When I was heavy, Thou comforted me by truth (<i>i.e.</i> Thy mercy);</div>
-<div class="verse">When I stand in grace, Thou holdest me that tide;</div>
-<div class="verse">When I fall, Thou raisest me mightily;</div>
-<div class="verse">When I go well, Thou art my guide;</div>
-<div class="verse">When I come, Thou receivest me most lovingly;</div>
-<div class="verse">Thou hast anointed me with the oil of mercy;</div>
-<div class="verse">Thy benefits, Lord, be innumerable:</div>
-<div class="verse">Wherefore laud endless to Thee I cry;</div>
-<div class="verse">Recommending me to Thy endless power endurable.’”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The more these old plays which delighted our
-forefathers are examined, the more clear it becomes
-that, although undoubtedly unlearned and unread, the
-people in pre-Reformation days, with instruction such
-as is conveyed in these pious dramas, must have had
-a deeper insight into the Gospel narrative, and a more
-thorough knowledge of Bible history generally, not to
-speak of a comprehension of the great truths of
-religion, than the majority of men possess now in
-these days of boasted enlightenment. Some of the
-plays, as for example that representing St. Peter’s
-fall, exhibit a depth of genuine feeling, of humble
-sorrow, for instance, on the part of St. Peter, and of
-loving-kindness on the part of our Lord, which must
-have come home to the hearts as well as to the minds
-of the beholders. At the same time, the lesson deduced
-by our Saviour from the apostle’s fall, namely, the
-need of all learning by their own shortcomings to be
-merciful to the trespasses of others, must have impressed
-itself upon them with a force which would
-not easily have been forgotten.</p>
-
-<p>In that most popular of all representations&mdash;that
-of Doomsday&mdash;“people learnt that before God there
-is no distinction of persons, and that each individual
-soul will be judged on its own merits, quite apart
-from any fictitious human distinctions of rank, wealth,
-or power.” Thus, as types, appear a <i>saved</i> pope,
-emperor, king and queen, and amongst the <i>damned</i><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_322" id="Page_322">[322]</a></span>
-we also find a pope, emperor, king and queen,
-justiciar and merchant. And the words of thankfulness
-uttered by the Pope that has obtained his crown
-betrays “no self-satisfaction at the attainment of salvation;
-on the contrary, the true ring of Christian
-humility betokens a due appreciation of God’s unutterable
-holiness, and our unworthiness to stand
-before His face till the uttermost blemish left by sin
-has been wiped away” by the healing fires of Purgatory.
-No less clearly is the full doctrine of responsibility
-taught in the lament of the Pope, who is
-represented as having lost his soul by an evil life,
-and as being condemned to eternal punishment. The
-mere fact of a pope being so represented was in
-itself, when the Office was held in the highest regard,
-a lesson of the highest importance in the teaching
-of the true principles of holiness. In a word, these
-mystery plays provided a most useful means of impressing
-upon the minds of all the facts of Bible
-history, the great truths of religion, and the chief
-Christian virtues. The people taught in such a school
-and the people who delighted in such representations,
-as our forefathers in pre-Reformation days unquestionably
-did, cannot, even from this point of view alone, be
-regarded as ignorant of scriptural or moral teaching.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_323" id="Page_323">[323]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_X" id="CHAPTER_X"></a>CHAPTER X<br />
-<span class="smaller">PARISH LIFE IN CATHOLIC ENGLAND</span></h2>
-
-<p>To understand the attitude of men’s minds to the
-ecclesiastical system on the eve of the great religious
-changes of the sixteenth century, some knowledge of
-the parochial life of Catholic England is necessary.
-Under present conditions, when unity has given place
-to diversity, and three centuries of continuous wrangling
-“over secret truths which most profoundly affect the
-heart and mind” have done much to coarsen and
-deaden our spiritual sense; when the religious mind
-of England manifests every shade of belief and unbelief
-without conscious reflection on the logical absurdity of
-the position, it is by no means easy to realise the influence
-of a state of affairs when all men, from the
-highest to the lowest, in every village and hamlet
-throughout the length and breadth of the land, had
-but one creed, worshipped their Maker in but one way,
-and were bound together with what most certainly
-were to them the real and practical ties of the Christian
-brotherhood. It is hardly possible to overestimate the
-effect of surroundings upon individual opinion, or the
-influence of a congenial atmosphere both on the growth
-and development of a spirit of religion and on the
-preservation of Christian morals and religious practices
-generally. When all, so far as religious faith is concerned,
-thought the same, and when all, so far as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_324" id="Page_324">[324]</a></span>
-religious observance is concerned, did the same, the
-very atmosphere of unity was productive of that spirit
-of common brotherhood, which appears so plainly in
-the records of the period preceding the religious revolt
-of the sixteenth century. Those who will read below
-the surface and will examine for themselves into the
-social life of that time must admit, however much they
-feel bound to condemn the existing religious system,
-that it certainly maintained up to the very time of
-its overthrow a hold over the minds and hearts of
-the people at large, which nothing since has gained.
-Religion overflowed, as it were, into popular life, and
-helped to sanctify human interests, whilst the affection
-of the people was manifested in a thousand ways in
-regard to what we might now be inclined to consider
-the ecclesiastical domain. Whether for good or evil,
-religion in its highest and truest sense, at least as it
-was then understood, was to the English people as the
-bloom upon the choicest fruit. Whatever view may
-be taken as to advantage or disadvantage which came
-to the body politic, or to individuals, by the Reformation,
-it must be admitted that at least part of the price
-paid for the change was the destruction of the sense
-of corporate unity and common brotherhood, which
-was fostered by the religious unanimity of belief and
-practice in every village in the country, and which, as
-in the main-spring of its life, and the very central
-point of its being, centred in the Church with its rites
-and ceremonies.</p>
-
-<p>A Venetian traveller at the beginning of the sixteenth
-century bears witness to the influence of religion
-upon the English people of that time. His opinion is
-all the more valuable, inasmuch as he appeals to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_325" id="Page_325">[325]</a></span>
-experience of his master, who was also the companion
-of his travels, to confirm his own impressions, and as
-he was fully alive to the weak points in the English
-character, of which he thus records his opinion: “The
-English are great lovers of themselves and of everything
-belonging to them; they think that there are no
-other men but themselves and no other world but
-England. Whenever they see a handsome foreigner
-they say that ‘he looks like an Englishman,’ or that
-‘it is a great pity that he should not be an Englishman,’
-and when they partake of any delicacy with a
-foreigner they ask him whether such a thing is made
-in his country.”<a name="FNanchor_314" id="FNanchor_314"></a><a href="#Footnote_314" class="fnanchor">[314]</a> In regard to the religious practices
-of the people, this intelligent foreigner says, “They all
-attend mass every day, and say many <i>Paternosters</i> in
-public. The women carry long rosaries in their hands,
-and any who can read take the Office of Our Lady
-with them, and with some companion recite it in
-Church verse by verse, in a low voice, after the
-manner of churchmen. On Sundays they always hear
-Mass in their parish church and give liberal alms,
-because they may not offer less than a piece of money
-of which fourteen are equivalent to a golden ducat.
-Neither do they omit any form incumbent on good
-Christians.”<a name="FNanchor_315" id="FNanchor_315"></a><a href="#Footnote_315" class="fnanchor">[315]</a></p>
-
-<p>In these days perhaps the suggestion that the
-English people commonly in the early sixteenth century
-were present daily at morning Mass is likely to be
-received with caution, and classed among the strange
-tales proverbially told by travellers, then as now. It
-is, however, confirmed by another Venetian who visited<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_326" id="Page_326">[326]</a></span>
-England some few years later, and who asserts that
-every morning “at daybreak he went to Mass arm-in-arm
-with some English nobleman or other.”<a name="FNanchor_316" id="FNanchor_316"></a><a href="#Footnote_316" class="fnanchor">[316]</a> And,
-indeed, the same desire of the people to be present
-daily at the Sacrifice of the Mass is attested by Archbishop
-Cranmer when, after the change had come, he
-holds up to ridicule the traditional observances previously
-in vogue. What he specially objected to was
-the common practice of those who run, as he says,
-“from altar to altar, and from sacring, as they call it,
-to sacring, peeping, tooting, and gazing at that thing
-which the priest held up in his hands … and saying,
-‘this day have I seen my Maker,’ and ‘I cannot be
-quiet except I see my Maker once a day.’”<a name="FNanchor_317" id="FNanchor_317"></a><a href="#Footnote_317" class="fnanchor">[317]</a></p>
-
-<p>If there were no other evidence of the affection
-of the English people on the eve of the Reformation
-for their religion, that of the stone walls of the churches
-would be sufficient to prove the sincerity of their love.
-In the whole history of English architecture nothing is
-more remarkable than the activity in church building
-manifested during the later half of the fifteenth and
-the early part of the sixteenth centuries. From one
-end of England to the other in the church walls are to
-be seen the evidences of thought and skill, labour and
-wealth, spent freely upon the sacred buildings during
-a period when it might not unnaturally have been
-thought that the civil dissensions of the Wars of the
-Roses, and the consequent destruction of life and
-property, would have been fatal to enterprise in the
-field of church building and church decoration and
-enrichment. It is not in any way an exaggeration to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_327" id="Page_327">[327]</a></span>
-say that well-nigh every village church in England can
-show signs of this marvellous activity, whilst in many
-cases there is unmistakable evidence of personal care
-and thought in the smallest details.</p>
-
-<p>No less remarkable than the extent of this movement
-is the source from which the money necessary
-for all the work upon the cathedrals and parish churches
-of the country came. In previous centuries, to a
-great extent churches and monastic buildings owed
-their existence and embellishment mainly to the individual
-enterprise of the powerful nobles or rich
-ecclesiastics; but from the middle of the fifteenth
-century the numerous, and, in many cases, even vast
-operations, undertaken in regard to ecclesiastical buildings
-and ornamentation, were the work of the people
-at large, and were mainly directed by their chosen
-representatives. At the close of the fifteenth century,
-church work was in every sense of the word a
-popular work, and the wills, inventories, and churchwardens’
-accounts prove beyond question that the people
-generally contributed generously according to their
-means, and that theirs was the initiative, and theirs
-the energetic administration by which the whole was
-accomplished.<a name="FNanchor_318" id="FNanchor_318"></a><a href="#Footnote_318" class="fnanchor">[318]</a> Gifts of money and valuables, bequests
-of all kinds, systematic collections by parish officials, or
-by directors of guilds, often extending over considerable<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_328" id="Page_328">[328]</a></span>
-periods, and the proceeds of parish plays and parish
-feasts, were the ordinary means by which the sums
-necessary to carry out these works of building and
-embellishment were provided. Those who had no
-money to give brought articles of jewellery, such as
-rings, brooches, buckles, and the like, or articles of
-dress or of domestic utility, to be converted into vestments,
-banners, and altar hangings to adorn the images
-and shrines, to make the sacred vessels of God’s house, or
-to be sold for like purposes. For the same end, and
-to secure the perpetuity of lamps before the Blessed
-Sacrament, or lights before the altars of saints, people
-gave houses and lands into the care of the parish
-officials, or made over to them cattle and sheep to
-be held in trust, which, when let out at a rent,
-formed a permanent endowment for the furtherance
-of these sacred purposes.</p>
-
-<p>Undoubtedly the period with which we are concerned
-was not merely an age of building, but an age
-of decoration, and of decoration which may almost
-be described as “lavish.” The very architecture of
-the time is proof of the wealth of ornament with which
-men sought to give expression to their enthusiastic
-love of the Houses of God, which they had come to
-regard as the centre of their social no less than of
-their religious life. Flowing lines in tracery and arch
-moulding gave place to straight lines, groined roofs
-were enriched by extra ribs, and panels of elaborate
-work covered the plain surfaces of former times; the
-very key-stones of the vaulting became pendants, and
-the springers branched out like palm trees, forming
-that rich and entirely English variety of groin called
-“fan-tracery,” such as we see at Sherborne, Eton,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_329" id="Page_329">[329]</a></span>
-King’s College, Cambridge, and Henry VII.’s Chapel
-at Westminster. “In other respects,” says a modern
-writer, “the architects of the fifteenth century were
-very successful. Few things can be seen more beautiful
-than the steeples of Gloucester Cathedral and
-St. Mary’s, Taunton. The open roofs, as for example
-that of St. Peter Mancroft, Norwich, are superb, and
-finally they have left us a large number of enormous
-parish churches all over the country, full of interesting
-furniture and decoration.”</p>
-
-<p>The fact is, that this was the last expression of Gothic
-as a living art. The builders and beautifiers of the
-English churches on the eve of the religious changes
-spoke still a living language, and their works still tell
-us of the fulness of the hearts which planned and
-executed such works. It is somewhat difficult for us
-to understand this, when living in an age of imitation,
-and at a time when architecture has no longer a language
-of its own. “Imitation,” writes Mr. Ferguson,
-“is in fact all we aim at in the architectural art of
-the present day. We entrust its exercise to a specially
-educated class, most learned in the details of the style
-they are called upon to work in, and they produce
-buildings which delight the scholars and archæologists
-of the day, but which the less educated classes neither
-understand nor appreciate, and which will lose their
-significance the moment the fashion which produced
-them has passed away.</p>
-
-<p>“The difference between this artificial state of
-things and the practice of a true style will not be
-difficult to understand. When, for instance, Gothic
-was a living art in England, men expressed themselves
-in it as in any other part of the vernacular. Whatever<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_330" id="Page_330">[330]</a></span>
-was done was a part of the usual, ordinary every-day
-life, and men had no more difficulty in understanding
-what others were doing than in comprehending what
-they were saying. A mason did not require to be
-a learned man to chisel what he had carved ever since
-he was a boy, and what alone he had seen being done
-during his lifetime, and he adapted new forms just in
-the same manner and as naturally as men adapt new
-modes of expression in language as they happen to be
-introduced, without even remarking it. At that time
-any educated man could design in Gothic Art, just as
-any man who can read and write can now compose and
-give utterance to any poetry or prose that may be in him.</p>
-
-<p>“Where art is a true art, it is naturally practised and
-as easily understood, as a vernacular literature of which,
-indeed, it is an essential and most expressive part, and
-so it was in Greece and Rome, and so, too, in the Middle
-Ages. But with us it is little more than a dead corpse,
-galvanised into spasmodic life by a few selected practitioners
-for the amusement and delight of a small section
-of the specially educated classes. It expresses truthfully
-neither our wants nor our feelings, and we ought not
-to be surprised how very unsatisfactory every modern
-building really is, even when executed by the most
-talented architects as compared with the productions
-of our village mason or parish priest at an age when
-men sought only to express clearly what they felt
-strongly, and sought to do it only in their natural
-mother tongue, untrammelled by the fetters of a dead
-or familiar foreign form of speech.”<a name="FNanchor_319" id="FNanchor_319"></a><a href="#Footnote_319" class="fnanchor">[319]</a></p>
-
-<p>To any one who will examine the churchwardens’
-accounts of the period previous to the religious changes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_331" id="Page_331">[331]</a></span>
-the truth of the above quotation will clearly appear.
-Then, if ever, ecclesiastical art and architecture was
-the living expression of popular feeling and popular
-love of religion, and the wholesale destruction of
-ancient architectural monuments throughout the land,
-the pulling down of rood and screen and image, the
-casting down of monuments sacred to the memory of
-the best and holiest and most venerated names in the
-long roll of English men of honour, the breaking up of
-stone-work and metal-work upon which the marks of
-the chisel of the mason and graver were yet fresh, the
-whitewash daubed over paintings which had helped to
-make the parish churches objects of beauty and interest
-to the people, the ruthless smashing of the pictured
-window lights, and the pillage of the sacred vessels and
-vestments and hangings, which the people and their
-fathers had loved to provide for God’s service&mdash;all this
-and much more of the same kind, the perhaps inevitable
-accompaniments of the religious change, was nothing
-less to the people than proscription by authority of the
-national language of art and architecture, such as they
-had hitherto understood it. And never probably had
-the language been more truly the language of the people
-at large. For reasons just assigned, the work of church
-building and church decoration, and the provision of
-vestments and plate, the care of the fabric and the very
-details of things necessary for the church services, were
-in the hands of the people. The period in question had
-given rise to the great middle class, and here, as in
-Germany, the burgher folk, the merchants and traders,
-began literally to lavish their gifts in adornment of their
-parish churches, and to vie one with another in the
-profusion of their generosity.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_332" id="Page_332">[332]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It is somewhat difficult for us, as we look upon the
-generally bare and unfurnished churches that have been
-left to us as monuments of the past about which we are
-concerned, to realise what they must have been before
-what a modern writer has fitly called “the great pillage”
-commenced. All, from the great minsters and cathedral
-churches down to the poorest little village sanctuary,
-were in those days simply overflowing with wealth and
-objects of beauty which loving hands had gathered
-together to adorn God’s house, and to make it the best
-and brightest spot in their little world, and so far as
-their means would allow the very pride of their hearts.
-This is no fancy picture. The inventories of English
-churches in this period when compared, say, with those
-of Italy, reveal the fact that the former were in every
-way incomparably better furnished than the latter.
-The Venetian traveller in England in 1500 was impressed
-by this very thing during his journeyings
-throughout the country. He notes and comments
-upon the great sums of money regularly given to the
-church as a matter of course by Englishmen of all
-sorts. Then after speaking of the important wealth
-of the country as evidenced by the silver plate possessed
-by all but the poorest in the land, he continues:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_333" id="Page_333">[333]</a></span>
-“But above all are their riches displayed in the
-church treasures, for there is not a parish church in the
-kingdom so mean as not to possess crucifixes, candlesticks,
-censers, patens and cups of silver, nor is there a
-convent of mendicant friars so poor as not to have all
-these same articles in silver, besides many other ornaments
-worthy of a cathedral church in the same metal.
-Your magnificence may therefore imagine what the
-decorations of those enormously rich Benedictine, Carthusian,
-and Cistercian monasteries must be.… I
-have been informed that amongst other things many of
-these monasteries possess unicorns’ horns of an extraordinary
-size. I have also been told that they have some
-splendid tombs of English saints, such as St. Oswald,
-St. Edmund, and St. Edward, all kings and martyrs.
-I saw, one day being with your magnificence, at Westminster,
-a place out of London, the tomb of that saint,
-King Edward the Confessor, in the church of the foresaid
-place, Westminster; and indeed, neither St. Martin
-of Tours, a church in France, which I have heard is
-one of the richest in existence, nor anything else that
-I have ever seen, can be put into comparison with it.
-The magnificence of the tomb of St. Thomas the
-Martyr, Archbishop of Canterbury, surpasses all belief.”</p>
-
-<p>Our present concern, however, is not with the
-greater churches of the kingdom, but with the parish
-churches which were scattered in such profusion all
-over the country. An examination of such parochial
-accounts as are still preserved affords an insight into
-the working of the parish, and evidences the care
-taken by the people to maintain and increase the
-treasures of their churches. What is most remarkable
-about the accounts that remain, which are, of
-course, but the scanty survivals from the wreck, is
-their consistent tenor. They one and all tell the
-same story of general and intelligent interest taken
-by the people as a whole in the beautifying and
-supporting of their parish churches. In a very real
-sense, that seems strange to us now, it was <i>their</i>
-church; their life centred in it, and they were intimately
-concerned in its working and management.
-The articles of furniture and plate, the vestments<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_334" id="Page_334">[334]</a></span>
-and hangings had a well-known history, and were
-regarded as&mdash;what in truth they were&mdash;the common
-property of every soul in the particular village or district.
-Such accounts as we are referring to prove that specific
-gifts and contributions continued to flow in an ample
-stream to the churches from men and women of every
-sort and condition up to the very eve of the great
-religious changes.</p>
-
-<p>From these and similar records we may learn a
-good deal about parochial life and interests in the
-closing period of the old ecclesiastical system. The
-church was the common care and business. Its
-welfare was the concern of the people at large, and
-took its natural place in their daily lives. Was there
-any building to be done, a new peal of bells to be
-procured, the organs to be mended, new plate to be
-bought, or the like, it was the parish as a corporate
-body that decided the matter, arranged the details, and
-provided for the payment. At times, say for example
-when a new vestment was in question, the whole parish
-would be called to sit in council in the church house
-upon this matter of common interest, and discuss the
-cost, and stuff, and make.</p>
-
-<p>To take some examples: the inventory of Cranbrook
-parish church for 1509 shows that all benefactors were
-regularly noted down on a roll of honour, that their
-gifts might be known and remembered. The presents,
-of course, vary greatly in value: thus, there was a
-monstrance of silver and gilt of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_335" id="Page_335">[335]</a></span> “value of £20,
-of Sir Robert Egelonby’s gift; which Sir Robert was
-John Roberts’ priest thirty years, and he never had
-other service nor benefice; and the said John Roberts
-was father to Walter Roberts, Esquire.” And the foresaid
-Sir Robert gave also to the common treasury of
-the parish “two candlesticks of silver and twenty marks
-of old nobles.” Again John Hendely “gave three copes
-of purple velvet, whereof one was of velvet upon velvet
-with images broidered,” and, adds the inventory, “for
-a perpetual memory of this deed of goodness to the
-common purposes of the parish church, his name is to
-be read out to the people on festival days.” “He is
-grandfather of Gervase Hendely of Cushorn, and of
-Thomas of Cranbrook Street.” Or once more, it is
-recorded that “old mother Hopper” gave the “two
-long candlesticks before Our Lady’s altar, fronted with
-lions, and a towel on the rood of Our Lady’s chancel.”</p>
-
-<p>So, too, the inventory of the church goods of St.
-Dunstan’s, Canterbury, includes a wonderful list of
-furniture, plate, and vestments to which the names of
-the donors are attached. Thus, the best chalice was
-the gift of one “Harry Bole”; the two great candlesticks
-of laten of John Philpot; and “a kercher for Our
-Lady and a chapplet and a powdryd cap for her Son,”
-the gift of Margery Roper.</p>
-
-<p>The memory of these gifts was kept alive among the
-people by the “bede-roll” or list of those for whom
-the parish was bound to pray in return for their benefactions
-to the public good. Thus to take an example:
-at Leverton, in the county of Lincoln, the parson, Sir
-John Wright, presented the church with a suit of red
-purple vestments, “for the which,” says the note in the
-churchwardens’ accounts,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_336" id="Page_336">[336]</a></span> “you shall all specially pray
-for the souls of William Wright and Elizabeth his wife
-(father and mother of the donor), and for the soul of
-Sir William Wright, their son, and for the soul of Sir
-John, sometime parson of this place, and for the souls of
-Richard Wright and Isabel his wife, John Trowting and
-Helen his wife, and for all benefactors, as well them
-that be alive as them that be departed to the mercy of
-God, for whose lives and souls are given here (these vestments)
-to the honour of God, His most blessed Mother,
-Our Lady Saint Mary, and all His Saints in Heaven, and
-the blessed matron St. Helen his patron, to be used at
-such principal feasts and times as it shall please the
-curates as long as they shall last. For all these souls
-and all Christian souls you shall say one Paternoster.”<a name="FNanchor_320" id="FNanchor_320"></a><a href="#Footnote_320" class="fnanchor">[320]</a></p>
-
-<p>In this way the memory of benefactors and their
-good deeds was ever kept alive in the minds of those
-who benefited by their gifts. The parish treasury was
-not to them so much stock, the accumulation of years,
-without definite history or purpose; but every article,
-vestment, banner, hanging, and chalice, and the rest
-called for the affectionate memories of both the living
-and the dead. On high day and festival, when the
-church was decked with all that was best and richest in
-the parochial treasury, the display of the parish ornaments
-recalled to the mind of the people assembled
-within its walls the memory of good deeds done by
-neighbours for the common good. “The immense
-treasures in the churches,” writes Dr. Jessop, “were the
-joy and boast of every man and woman and child in
-England, who day by day and week by week assembled
-to worship in the old houses of God which they and their
-fathers had built, and whose every vestment and chalice
-and candlestick and banner, organs and bells and picture
-and image and altar and shrine, they looked upon
-as their own and part of their birthright.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_337" id="Page_337">[337]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_321" id="FNanchor_321"></a><a href="#Footnote_321" class="fnanchor">[321]</a></p>
-
-<p>What seems so strange about the facts revealed to
-us in these church accounts of bygone times is that,
-where now we might naturally be inclined to look for
-poverty and meanness, there is evidence of the contrary,
-so far as the parish church is concerned. Even when
-the lives of the parishioners were spent in daily labours
-to secure the bare necessities of life, and the village was
-situated in the most out-of-the-way part of the country,
-the sordid surroundings of a hard life find no counterpart
-in the parish accounts so far as the church is concerned,
-but even under such unfavourable circumstances
-there is evidence of a taste for things of art and beauty,
-and of both the will and power to procure them. To
-take some examples: Morebath was a small uplandish
-parish of no importance lying within the borders of
-Devon, among the hills near the sources of the river Exe.
-The population was scanty, and worldly riches evidently
-not abundant. Morebath may, consequently, be taken
-as a fair sample of an obscure and poor village community.
-For this hamlet we possess fairly full accounts
-for the close of the period under consideration, namely,
-from the year 1530. At this time, in this poor place,
-there were no less than eight separate accounts kept of
-money intended for the support of different altars, or
-for carrying out definite decorations, such as, for
-example, the chapels of St. George and Our Lady,
-and the guilds of the young men and maidens of the
-parish. To the credit of these various accounts, or
-“stores,” as they are called, are entered numerous gifts
-of money, or articles of value, and even of kind, like
-cows and swarms of bees. Most of them are possessed
-of cattle and sheep, the proceeds from the rent of which
-form a considerable portion of their endowment. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_338" id="Page_338">[338]</a></span>
-accounts as a whole furnish abundant evidence of active
-and intelligent interest in the support and adornment of
-the parish church on the part of the people at large.
-Voluntary rates to clear off obligations contracted for
-the benefit of the community, such as the purchase of
-bells, the repair of the fabric, or even the making of
-roads and bridges, were raised. Collections for Peter’s
-pence, for the support of the parish clerk, and for various
-other church purposes, are recorded, and the spirit of
-self-help is evidenced in every line of these records. In
-1528 the vicar gave up his rights to certain wool tithes
-in order to purchase a complete set of black vestments,
-which were only finished and paid for, at the cost of
-£6, 5s. 0d., in 1547. In the year 1538, the parish
-made a voluntary rate to purchase a new cope, and the
-collection for the purpose secured £3, 6s. 8d. When
-in 1534 the silver chalice was stolen, “ye yong men
-and maydens of ye parysshe dru themselffe together,
-and at ther gyfts and provysyon they bought in another
-chalice without any charge of the parysshe.” Sums of
-money big and small, specific gifts in kind, the stuff or
-ornaments needed for vestments, were apparently always
-forthcoming when occasion required. Thus at one
-time a new cope is suggested, and Anne Tymwell of
-Hayne gave the churchwardens her “gown and ring,”
-Joan Tymwell a cloak and girdle, and Richard Norman
-“seven sheep and three shillings and four pence in
-money,” towards the expenses. At another time it is a
-set of black vestments; at another a chalice; at another
-a censer; but whatever it was, the people were evidently
-ready and desirous of taking their share in the common
-work of the parish. In 1529 the wardens state that
-Elinor Nicoll gave to the store of St. Sydwell her<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_339" id="Page_339">[339]</a></span>
-wedding-ring&mdash;“the which ring,” they add, “did help to
-make Saint Sydwell’s shoes.” Then she gave to “the
-store of Jesus” a little silver cross, parcel gilt, of the
-value of 4d. In 1537 there is one item which deserves
-to be noted, as it records the arrival of a piece of spoil
-from Barlinch Abbey Church, which was dissolved by
-the king’s orders the previous year. “Memorandum,”
-runs the entry, “Hugh Poulett gave to the church
-one of the glass windows of the Barlinch, with the
-iron and stone and all the price” for setting it up.<a name="FNanchor_322" id="FNanchor_322"></a><a href="#Footnote_322" class="fnanchor">[322]</a></p>
-
-<p>To understand the working of the pre-Reformation
-parish, it is necessary to enter in detail into some one
-of the accounts that are still preserved to us. We may
-conveniently take those of Leverton in Lincolnshire,
-printed in the <i>Archæologia</i>, which commence in the
-year 1492. It is well to note, however, that the same
-story of self-help and the same evidence of a spirit of
-affection for the parish church and its services, is manifested
-in every account of this kind we possess. It
-must be remembered that it was popular government
-in a true sense that then regulated all parochial matters.
-Every adult of both sexes had a voice in this system of
-self-government, and what cannot fail to strike the
-student of these records is that, in the management of
-the fabric, in the arrangements for the services, and all
-things necessary for the due performance of these, diocesan
-authorities evidently left to the parish itself a wise
-discretion. No doubt the higher ecclesiastical officials
-could interfere in theory, but in practice such interference
-was rare. If the means necessary to carry out
-repairs and keep the church in an efficient state, both<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_340" id="Page_340">[340]</a></span>
-as to fabric and ornaments, were apparently never
-wanting, it must be borne in mind that it was then
-regarded as a solemn duty binding on the conscience of
-each parishioner to maintain the House of God and the
-parochial services. Bishop Hobhouse, from an examination
-of the churchwardens’ accounts for some parishes
-in Somerset, is able to describe the various ways in
-which the parochial exchequer was replenished. First,
-there were the voluntary rates, called “setts,” and these,
-though voluntary in the sense that their imposition
-depended on the will of the people at large, when
-once the parish had declared for the rate, all were
-bound to pay. Then the mediæval church authorities
-cultivated various methods of eliciting the goodwill
-of the people, and after prohibiting work on Sundays
-and certain festivals, busied themselves with the finding
-of amusements. Amongst these were the parish feasts
-and church ales, at which collections for various public
-purposes were made, which, together with the profits
-made from such entertainments by those who managed
-them for the benefit of the public purse, formed one of
-the chief sources of parochial income. Beyond this,
-the principle of association was thoroughly understood
-and carried out in practice in the village and town communities.
-People banded themselves together in religious
-guilds and societies, the <i>raison d’être</i> of which was
-the maintenance of special decorations at special altars,
-the support of lamps and lights, or the keeping of obits
-and festivals. These societies, moreover, became the
-centres of organisation of any needed special collections,
-and from their funds, or “stores” as they were called,
-they contributed to the general expenses of maintaining
-the fabric and the services. Popular bounty was, moreover,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_341" id="Page_341">[341]</a></span>
-elicited by means of the “bede-roll,” or list of
-public benefactors, for whom the prayers of the parishioners
-were asked in the church on great festivals.
-On this list of honour, all&mdash;even the poorest&mdash;were
-anxious that their names should appear, and that their
-memory be kept and their souls prayed for in the House
-of God which they had loved in life. Even more than
-money, which in those days, especially in out-of-the-way
-places, was not over plentiful, the churchwardens’
-accounts show that specific gifts of all kinds, either to
-be sold for the profit of the purpose for which they
-were bestowed, or to form a permanent part of the
-church treasury, were common in pre-Reformation times.</p>
-
-<p>Added to these sources of income were the profits
-of trade carried on in the “church house.” Besides the
-church itself, the wardens’ accounts testify to the existence
-of a church house, if not as a universal feature in
-mediæval parish life, at least as a very common one.
-It was the parish club-house&mdash;the centre of parochial
-life and local self-government; the place where the
-community would assemble for business and pleasure.
-It was thus the focus of all the social life of the parish,
-and the system was extending in influence and utility up
-to the eve of the great religious changes which put an
-end to the popular side of parochial life. At Tintinhull,
-a small village in Somerset, for example, the accounts
-help us to trace the growth of this parish club-house.
-Beginning as a place for making the altar bread, it
-developed into a bakery for the supply of the community.
-It then took up the brewing of beer to supply
-the people and the church ales and similar parish festivals.
-This soon grew into the brewing of beer to supply
-those who required a supply, and at the same time the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_342" id="Page_342">[342]</a></span>
-oven and brewing utensils were let out to hire to private
-persons. In the reign of Henry VII. a house was bought
-by the wardens for parish purposes, and one Agnes Cook
-was placed in it to manage it for the common benefit.
-In 1533 it was in full swing as a parish club-house,
-used for business and pleasure.<a name="FNanchor_323" id="FNanchor_323"></a><a href="#Footnote_323" class="fnanchor">[323]</a> The “ale”&mdash;the
-forerunner of the wardens’ “charity dinner”&mdash;was the
-ordinary way of raising money to meet extraordinary
-expenses; and as an incidental accompaniment came
-invitations to other parishes in the neighbourhood, and
-we find items charged for the expenses of churchwardens
-attending at other parochial feasts, and the
-sums they there put into the collection plate.</p>
-
-<p>Beyond this, the parish, as a corporate body generally,
-if not invariably, possessed property in land and
-houses, which was administered by the people’s wardens
-for the public good. The annual proceeds lightened
-the common burdens, as indeed it was intended that
-they should. A further source of occasional income
-was found in the parish plays which were managed for
-the common profit. Very frequently the production
-was entrusted to some local guild, and the expenses of
-mounting were advanced by the parochial authorities,
-who not infrequently had amongst the church treasures
-the dress and other stage properties necessary for the
-proper productions. At Tintinhull, in Somerset, for
-instance, in 1451, five parishioners got up a Christmas
-play for the benefit of the fund required for the erection
-of the new rood loft. At Morebath there was an Easter
-play representing the Resurrection of our Lord, to
-defray the expenses incurred by the parish on some
-extensive repairs.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_343" id="Page_343">[343]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_324" id="FNanchor_324"></a><a href="#Footnote_324" class="fnanchor">[324]</a></p>
-
-<p>With this general notion of the working of pre-Reformation
-parochial accounts, we are now in a
-position to turn by way of a particular example to those
-of Leverton. The village is situated about six miles from
-Boston. The church, until the neglect of the past three
-hundred years had disfigured it, must have been very
-beautiful when decked with the furniture and ornaments
-which the loving care of the people of the
-neighbourhood had collected within its walls. When
-first the accounts open in 1492, the parish was beginning
-to be interested, as indeed, by the way, so many
-parishes were at this period, in the setting up of a new
-peal of bells. The people had evidently made a great
-effort to get these, and they contributed most generously.
-The rector promised ten shillings and sixpence&mdash;which
-sum, by the way, some one paid for him&mdash;but
-the whole arrangement for the purchase and hanging
-of the bells was in the hands of the churchwardens.
-The bell chamber was mended and timber was bought
-to strengthen the framework. When this was ready,
-the great bell was brought over from the neighbouring
-town, and money is disbursed for the carriage and the
-team of horses, not forgetting a penny for the toll in
-crossing a bridge. One William Wright of Benington
-came over professionally to superintend the hanging
-and “trossyng” of this great service bell. We may
-judge, however, that it was not altogether satisfactory,
-for in 1498 the two wardens made a “move” to “the
-gathering of the township of Leverton in the kirk,” in
-which they collected £4, 13s. 0d., and they forthwith
-commenced again the building of a steeple for another
-set of bells. The stone was given to them, but they
-had to see to the work of quarrying it, and to all the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_344" id="Page_344">[344]</a></span>
-business of collecting material and of building. Trees
-in a neighbouring wood were bought, were cut and
-carried, and sawn into beams and boards, and poles
-were selected for scaffolding. Lime was burnt and
-sand was dug for the mortar, and tubs were purchased
-to mix it in, whilst Wreth, the carpenter, was retained
-to look after the building in general, and the timberwork
-of the new belfry in particular.</p>
-
-<p>This seems to have exhausted the parish exchequer
-for a year or two, but in 1503 the two wardens attended
-at Boston to see their bell “shot,” and to provide for
-its transport to Leverton. Here Richard Messur, the
-local blacksmith, had prepared the necessary bolts and
-locks to fasten it to the swinging beam, and he was in
-attendance professionally to see the bell hung, with
-John Red, the bellmaker of Boston, who, moreover,
-remained for a time to teach the parish men how to
-ring a peal upon their new bells.</p>
-
-<p>As the sixteenth century progressed, a great deal
-of building and repairs was undertaken by the parish
-authorities. In 1503, a new font was ordered, and a
-deputation went to Frieston, about three miles from
-Leverton, to inspect and pass the work. The lead for
-the lining was procured, and it was cast on the spot.
-In 1517, repairs on the north side of the church were
-undertaken, and these must have been extensive, judging
-from the cost of the timber employed to shore up
-the walls during the progress of the work. Two years
-later, on the completion of these extensive building
-operations, which had been going on for some time,
-the church and churchyard were consecrated at a cost
-to the public purse of £3. In 1526, the rood loft was
-decorated, and the niches intended for images of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_345" id="Page_345">[345]</a></span>
-saints, but which had hitherto been vacant, were filled.
-One of the parishioners, William Frankish, in that year
-left a legacy of 46s. 8d. for the purpose. The wardens
-hired a man, called sometimes “the alabaster man,” and
-sometimes “Robert Brook the carver,” and in earnest for
-the seventeen images of alabaster of the rood loft they
-gave him a shilling. At the same time a collection was
-made for the support of the artist during his stay; some
-of the parishioners gave money, but most of them apparently
-contributed “cheese” for his use.</p>
-
-<p>So much with regard to the serious building operations
-which were continued up to the very eve of the Reformation.
-They by no means occupied all the energies
-of the parish officials. If the books required binding, a
-travelling workman was engaged on the job, and leather,
-thread, wax, and other necessary materials were purchased
-for the work; the binder’s wife was paid extra
-for stitching, and he was apparently lodged by one of
-the townspeople as a contribution to the common work.
-Then there were vestments to be procured, and surplices
-and other church linen to be made, washed, and marked;
-the very marks, by the way, being given in the accounts.
-So entirely was the whole regarded as the work of the
-people, that just as we have seen how the parish paid for
-the consecration of their parish church and graveyard,
-so did they pay a fee to their own vicar for blessing
-the altar linen and the new vestments, and entering
-the names of benefactors on the parish bede-roll.<a name="FNanchor_325" id="FNanchor_325"></a><a href="#Footnote_325" class="fnanchor">[325]</a></p>
-
-<p>Details such as these, which might be multiplied to
-any extent, make it abundantly clear that the church
-was the centre and soul of village life in pre-Reformation
-times, and that up to the very eve of the religious<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_346" id="Page_346">[346]</a></span>
-revolution it had not lost its place in the hearts of the
-people. In this connection it is useful to bear in mind,
-though somewhat difficult to realise, inasmuch as it is
-now too foreign to our modern experience, that in the
-period about which we are concerned the “parish”
-meant the whole community of a well-defined area
-“organised for church purposes and subject to church
-authority.” In such a district, writes Bishop Hobhouse,
-“every resident was a parishioner, and, as such, owed his
-duty of confession and submission to the official guidance
-of a stated pastor. There was no choice allowed.
-The community was completely organised with a constitution
-which recognised the rights of the whole and
-of every adult member to a voice of self-government
-when assembled for consultation under” their parish
-priest.<a name="FNanchor_326" id="FNanchor_326"></a><a href="#Footnote_326" class="fnanchor">[326]</a> In this way the church was the centre of all
-parish life, in a way now almost inconceivable. “From
-the font to the grave,” says an authority on village life at
-this time, “the greater number of the people lived
-within the sound of its bells. It provided them with
-all the consolations of religion, and linked itself with
-such amusements as it did not directly supply.”<a name="FNanchor_327" id="FNanchor_327"></a><a href="#Footnote_327" class="fnanchor">[327]</a></p>
-
-<p>The writer of the above words was specially interested
-in the accounts of the parish of St. Dunstan in the
-city of Canterbury, and some few notes on those accounts
-founded upon his preface may usefully be added
-to what has already been said. The parochial authorities
-evidently were possessed of considerable power
-either by custom or consent over the inhabitants. In
-St. Dunstan’s, for example, somewhere about 1485,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_347" id="Page_347">[347]</a></span>
-there was some disagreement between a man named
-Baker and the parish, and an item of 2½d. appears
-in the accounts as spent on the arbitration that settled
-it. Later on, two families fell out, and the vicar and a
-jury of four parishioners met in council to put an end
-to what was considered a scandal. A parish so managed
-had necessarily some place in which the inhabitants of
-the district could meet, and this in St. Dunstan’s is called
-the <i>church house</i>, and sometimes the <i>parish house</i>. It is
-frequently mentioned in the matters of repairs, &amp;c., and
-two dozen trenchers and spoons, the property of the
-parish, were placed there for use at the common feasts,
-and for preparation of food distributed to the poor.
-The annual dinner is named in the accounts, and there
-is no doubt the young people too had dancing, bowling,
-and other games, while “the ancients sat gravely by.”</p>
-
-<p>The money needed for the repairs of the fabric and
-for parish work generally was here collected by the
-various brotherhoods connected with the church.
-Some wore “scutchons” or badges to show that they
-were authorised to beg. These brotherhoods were
-possessed of more than money; malt, wheat, barley,
-besides parish sheep and parish cows let out to the
-highest bidder, are mentioned in the accounts as belonging
-to them. One Nicholas Reugge, for example, left
-four cows to the people of the parish to free them
-for ever from the cost of supplying the “paschal,” or
-great Easter candle. These four cows were valued by
-the churchwardens at 10s. apiece, and were each let at
-a rent of 2s. a year. In 1521, one John Richardson
-rented five-and-twenty of the parish sheep, and the
-wardens received rent of lambs, wool, &amp;c. The chief
-of the brotherhoods connected with St. Dunstan’s was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_348" id="Page_348">[348]</a></span>
-that named the “Schaft,” and it had the principal voice
-in the ultimate management of parochial affairs. Besides
-this, however, there were many other associations, such
-as that of St. Anne for women and that of St. John for
-youths, and various wardens were appointed to collect
-the money necessary to keep the various lights, such as
-St. Anne’s light, St. John’s light, St. Katherine’s light,
-and the light of the Holy Rood. “These things,” writes
-the editor of these interesting accounts, “all go to show
-what life and activity there was in this little parish, which
-never wanted willing men to devote their time and influence
-to the management of their own affairs.”</p>
-
-<p>The parish was small, numbering perhaps hardly
-more than 400 souls. “But if small,” says the same
-authority, “it was thoroughly efficient, and the religious
-and intellectual work was as actively carried on as the
-social.” At the close of the reign of Henry VIII. the
-church possessed a library of some fifty volumes. Of
-these about a dozen were religious plays, part, no
-doubt, of the Corpus Christi mystery plays, which were
-carried out at St. Dunstan’s with undiminished splendour
-till the advent of the new ideas in the reign of
-Edward VI.</p>
-
-<p>These parish accounts prove that many cases of
-disagreement and misunderstanding, which in modern
-times would most likely lead to long and protracted
-cases in the Law Courts, were not infrequently settled
-by arbitration, or by means of a parish meeting or a
-jury of neighbours. Sometimes, undoubtedly, the law
-had to be invoked in defence of parochial rights. A
-case in point is afforded in the accounts of St. Dunstan’s,
-Canterbury. Nicholas Reugge, as we have said
-above, had left money to purchase four cows as an<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_349" id="Page_349">[349]</a></span>
-endowment for the Paschal candle and the Font taper.
-Things went well, apparently, till 1486, when William
-Belser, who rented the stock, died, and his executors
-either could not or would not, or, at any rate, did not pay.
-To recover the common property, the churchwardens, as
-trustees for the parish, had to commence a suit at law.
-Chief-Justice Fineux and Mr. Attorney-General John
-Roper were two of the parishioners, and the parish
-had their advice, it may be presumed gratuitously.
-The case, however, seems to have dragged on for
-five years, as it was finally settled only in 1491, when
-the parish scored a pyrrhic victory, for although they
-recovered 30s., the value of three of the cows, their
-costs had mounted up to 35s. 2d., and as they never
-could get more than a third of that amount from the
-defendants, on the whole they were out of pocket by
-their adventure with the law.</p>
-
-<p>For the most part, however, the parish settled its
-own difficulties in its own way. Documents preserved
-almost by chance clearly show that a vast number
-of small cases&mdash;police cases we should call them&mdash;were
-in pre-Reformation days arranged by the ecclesiastical
-authority. Disputes, brawls, libels, minor immoralities,
-and the like, which nowadays would have
-to be dealt with by the local justices of the peace or
-by the magistrates at quarter sessions, or even by the
-judges at assizes, were disposed of by the parson and
-the parish. It may not have been an ideal system, but
-it was patriarchal and expeditious. The Sunday pulpit
-was used not only for religious instruction, properly
-so called, and for the “bedes-bidding,” but for the publication
-of an endless variety of notices of common
-interest. The church was, as we have said, the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_350" id="Page_350">[350]</a></span>
-centre of popular life, and it was under these circumstances
-the natural place for the proclamation of
-the commencement of some inquiry into a local suit,
-or one in which local people were concerned. It was
-here, in the house of God, and at the Sunday service
-at which all were bound to be present, that witnesses
-were cited and accused persons warned of proceedings
-against them. Here was made the declaration of the
-probate of wills of deceased persons, and warning given
-to claimants against the estate to come forward and
-substantiate their demands. Here, too, were issued
-proclamations against such as did not pay their just
-debts or detained the goods of others; here those who
-had been guilty of defamation of character were ordered
-to restore the good name of those they had calumniated;
-and those who, having been joined in wedlock,
-had separated without just and approved cause, were
-warned of the obligations of Christian marriage. The
-transactions of business of this kind in the parish church
-by the parish officials made God’s house a practical
-reality and God’s law a practical code in the ordinary
-affairs of life, and gave religion a living importance
-in the daily lives of every member of every parish
-throughout the country.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_351" id="Page_351">[351]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XI" id="CHAPTER_XI"></a>CHAPTER XI<br />
-<span class="smaller">PRE-REFORMATION GUILD LIFE</span></h2>
-
-<p>It would be impossible to fully understand the conditions
-of life on the eve of the Reformation without
-some knowledge of the working and purposes of
-mediæval guilds. These societies or brotherhoods
-were so common, formed such a real bond of union
-between people of all ranks and conditions of life, and
-fulfilled so many useful and even necessary purposes
-before their suppression under Edward VI., that a study
-of their principles of organisation and of their practical
-working cannot but throw considerable light on the
-popular social life of the period. To appreciate the
-position, it is necessary to bear in mind the very real
-hold the Gospel principles of the Christian brotherhood
-had over the minds of all in pre-Reformation days, the
-extinction of the general sense that man did not stand
-alone being distinctly traceable to the tendencies in regard
-to social matters evolved during the period of
-turmoil initiated by the religious teachings of the Reformers.
-What M. Siméon Luce says about the spirit
-of common life existing in the villages of Normandy in
-the fourteenth century might be adopted as a picture of
-English life in the fifteenth and early sixteenth centuries.
-“Nobles, priests, religious clerks, sons of the soil who
-laboured at various manual works,” he writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_352" id="Page_352">[352]</a></span> “lived
-then, so to say, in common, and they are found continually
-together in all their daily occupations. So
-far from this community of occupations, this familiar
-daily intercourse, being incompatible with the great
-inequality of conditions which then existed, in reality
-it resulted from it. It was where no strict line of demarcation
-divided the various classes that they ordinarily
-affected to keep at a distance one from the other.”<a name="FNanchor_328" id="FNanchor_328"></a><a href="#Footnote_328" class="fnanchor">[328]</a></p>
-
-<p>There can be no doubt as to the nature of the
-teaching of the English Church in regard to the relation
-which, according to true Christian principles,
-should exist between all classes of society. In particular
-is this seen in all that pertained to the care of
-the poorer members of the Christian family. The
-evidence appears clear and unmistakable enough in
-pre-Reformation popular sermons and instructions, in
-formal pronouncements of Bishops and Synods, and in
-books intended for the particular teaching of clergy
-and laity in the necessary duties of the Christian
-man. Whilst fully recognising as a fact that in
-the very nature of things there must ever be the
-class of those who “have,” and the class of those who
-“have not,” our Catholic forefathers in pre-Reformation
-days knew no such division and distinction between the
-rich man and the poor man as obtained later on, when
-pauperism, as distinct from poverty, had come to be recognised
-as an inevitable consequence of the new era. To
-the Christian moralist, and even to the bulk of Catholic
-Englishmen, whether secular or lay, in the fifteenth
-century, those who had been blessed by God’s providence
-with worldly wealth were regarded not so
-much as the fortunate possessors of personal riches,
-their own to do with what they listed, and upon which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_353" id="Page_353">[353]</a></span>
-none but they had right or claim, as in the light of
-stewards of God’s good gifts to mankind at large,
-for the right use and ministration of which they were
-accountable to Him who gave them.</p>
-
-<p>Thus, to take one instance: the proceeds of ecclesiastical
-benefices were recognised in the Constitutions of
-Legates and Archbishops as being in fact as well as in
-theory the <i>eleemosynæ et spes pauperum</i>&mdash;the alms and
-the hope of the poor. Those ecclesiastics who consumed
-the revenues of their cures on other than necessary
-and fitting purposes were declared to be “defrauders
-of the rights of God’s poor,” and “thieves of Christian
-alms intended for them;” whilst the English canonists
-and legal professors who glossed these provisions of the
-Church law gravely discussed the ways in which the
-poor of a parish could vindicate their right to their
-share in the ecclesiastical revenues of the Church.</p>
-
-<p>This “<i>jus pauperum</i>,” which is set forth in such a
-text-book of English Law as Lyndwood’s <i>Provinciale</i>, is
-naturally put forth more clearly and forcibly in a
-work intended for popular instruction such as <i>Dives
-et Pauper</i>. “To them that have the benefices and
-goods of Holy Church,” writes the author, “it belonged
-principally to give alms and to have the cure of poor
-people.” To him who squanders the alms of the
-altar on luxury and useless show, the poor may justly
-point and say: “It is ours that you so spend in pomp
-and vanity!… That thou keepest for thyself of the
-altar passing the honest needful living, it is raveny, it
-is theft, it is sacrilege.” From the earliest days of
-English Christianity the care of the helpless poor was
-regarded as an obligation incumbent on all; and in
-1342, Archbishop Stratford, dealing with <i>appropriations</i>,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_354" id="Page_354">[354]</a></span>
-or the assignment of ecclesiastical revenues to the support
-of some religious house or college, ordered that a
-portion of the tithe should always be set apart for the
-relief of the poor, because, as Bishop Stubbs has
-pointed out, in England, from the days of King
-Ethelred, “a third part of the tithe” which belonged
-to the Church was the acknowledged birthright of the
-poorer members of Christ’s flock.</p>
-
-<p>That there was social inequality is as certain as it was
-inevitable, for that is in the very constitution of human
-society. But this, as M. Luce has pointed out in regard
-to France, and Professor Janssens in regard to Germany,
-in no way detracted from the frank and full acknowledgment
-of the Christian brotherhood. Again and
-again in the sermons of the fifteenth century this truth,
-with all its practical applications, was enforced by the
-priest at the altar, where both poor and rich alike met
-on a common footing&mdash;“all, poor and rich, high and
-low, noble and simple, have sprung from a common
-stock and are children of a common father, Adam:”
-“God did not create a golden Adam from whom the
-nobles are descended, nor a silver Adam from whom
-have come the rich, and another, a clay Adam, from
-whom are the poor; but all, nobles, rich and poor,
-have one common father, made out of the dust of the
-earth.” These and similar lessons were constantly repeated
-by the religious teachers of the pre-Reformation
-English Church.</p>
-
-<p>Equally definite is the author of the book of popular
-instruction, <i>Dives et Pauper</i>, above referred to. The sympathy
-of the writer is with the poor, as indeed is that of
-every ecclesiastical writer of the period. In fact, it is
-abundantly clear that the Church of England in Catholic<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_355" id="Page_355">[355]</a></span>
-days, as a <i>pia mater</i>, was ever ready to open wide her
-heart to aid and protect the poorer members of Christ’s
-mystical body. This is how <i>Pauper</i> in the tract in
-question states the true Christian teaching as to the
-duties of riches, and impresses upon his readers the
-view that the owners of worldly wealth are but stewards
-of the Lord: “All that the rich man hath, passing his
-honest living after the degree of his dispensation, it is
-other men’s, not his, and he shall give full hard reckoning
-thereof at the day of doom, when God shall say to
-him, ‘Yield account of your bailywick.’ For rich men
-and lords in this world are God’s bailiffs and God’s
-reeves, to ordain for the poor folk and to sustain them.”
-Most strongly does the same writer insist that no
-property gives any one the right to say “<i>this is mine</i>”
-and that is “<i>thine</i>,” for property, so far as it is of God,
-is of the nature of governance and dispensation, by
-which those who, by God’s Providence “have,” act
-as His stewards and the dispensers of His gifts to such
-as “have not.”<a name="FNanchor_329" id="FNanchor_329"></a><a href="#Footnote_329" class="fnanchor">[329]</a></p>
-
-<p>It would, of course, be affectation to suggest that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_356" id="Page_356">[356]</a></span>
-poverty and great hardness of life were not to be found
-in pre-Reformation days, but what did not exist was
-pauperism, which, as distinguished from poverty, certainly
-sprung up plentifully amid the ruins of Catholic
-institutions, overthrown as a consequence&mdash;perhaps as
-a necessary and useful consequence&mdash;of the religious
-changes in the sixteenth century. Bishop Stubbs,
-speaking of the condition of the poor in the Middle
-Ages, declares that “there is very little evidence
-to show that our forefathers in the middle ranks of
-life desired to set any impassable boundary between
-class and class.… Even the villein, by learning a
-craft, might set his foot on the ladder of promotion.
-The most certain way to rise was furnished by education,
-and by the law of the land, ‘every man or
-woman, of what state or condition that he be, shall
-be free to set their son or daughter to take learning
-at any school that pleaseth him within the realm.’”
-Mr. Thorold Rogers, than whom no one has ever
-worked so diligently at the economic history of England,
-and whom none can suspect of undue admiration
-of the Catholic Church, has also left it on record that
-during the century and a half which preceded the era
-of the Reformation the mass of English labourers were
-thriving under their guilds and trade unions, the
-peasants were gradually acquiring their lands and
-becoming small freeholders, the artisans rising to
-the position of small contractors and working with
-their own hands at structures which their native genius
-and experience had planned. In a word, according to
-this high authority, the last years of undivided Catholic
-England formed “the golden age” of the Englishman
-who was ready and willing to work.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_357" id="Page_357">[357]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“In the age which I have attempted to describe,”
-writes the same authority, “and in describing which
-I have accumulated and condensed a vast amount of
-unquestionable facts, the rate of production was small,
-the conditions of health unsatisfactory, and the duration
-of life short. But, on the whole, there were none
-of those extremes of poverty and wealth which have
-excited the astonishment of philanthropists and are
-exciting the indignation of workmen. The age, it is
-true, had its discontents, and these discontents were
-expressed forcibly and in a startling manner. But of
-poverty which perishes unheeded, of a willingness to
-do honest work and a lack of opportunity there was
-little or none. The essence of life in England during
-the days of the Plantagenets and Tudors was that every
-one knew his neighbour, and that every one was his
-brother’s keeper.”<a name="FNanchor_330" id="FNanchor_330"></a><a href="#Footnote_330" class="fnanchor">[330]</a></p>
-
-<p>In regard to the general care of the poorer brethren
-of a parish in pre-Reformation England, Bishop Hobhouse,
-after a careful examination of the available
-sources of information, writes as follows:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_358" id="Page_358">[358]</a></span> “I can
-only suppose that the brotherhood tie was so strongly
-realised by the community that the weaker ones were
-succoured by the stronger, as out of a family store.
-The brotherhood tie was, no doubt, very much stronger
-then, when the village community was from generation
-to generation so unalloyed by anything foreign, when
-all were knit together by one faith and one worship
-and close kindred; but, further than this, the guild
-fellowships must have enhanced all the other bonds
-in drawing men to share their worldly goods as a
-common stock. Covertly, if not overtly, the guildsman
-bound himself to help his needy brother in sickness and
-age, as he expected his fellow-guildsman to do for him
-in his turn of need, and these bonds, added to a far
-stronger sense of the duty of children towards aged
-parents than is now found, did, I conceive, suffice for
-the relief of the poor, aided only by the direct almsgiving
-which flowed from the parsonage house, or in
-favoured localities from the doles or broken meat of a
-monastery.”<a name="FNanchor_331" id="FNanchor_331"></a><a href="#Footnote_331" class="fnanchor">[331]</a></p>
-
-<p>To relieve the Reformation from the odious charge
-that it was responsible for the poor-laws, many authors
-have declared that not only did poverty largely exist
-before, say, the dissolution of the monastic houses, but
-that it would not long have been possible for the
-ancient methods of relieving the distressed to cope
-with the increase in their numbers under the changed
-circumstances of the sixteenth century. It is of course
-possible to deal with broad assertions only by the production
-of a mass of details, which is, under the present
-circumstances, out of the question, or by assertions
-equally broad, and I remark that there is no evidence
-of any change of circumstances, so far as such changes
-appear in history, which could not have been fully met
-by the application of the old principles, and met in a
-way which would never have induced the degree of
-distressing pauperism which, in fact, was produced by
-the application of the social principles adopted at the
-Reformation. The underlying idea of these latter was
-property in the sense of absolute ownership in place of
-the older and more Christian idea of property in the
-sense of stewardship.</p>
-
-<p>Most certainly the result was not calculated to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_359" id="Page_359">[359]</a></span>
-improve the condition of the poorer members of the
-community. It was they who were made to pay,
-whilst their betters pocketed the price. The well-to-do
-classes, in the process, became richer and more prosperous,
-whilst the “masses” became, as an old writer
-has it, “mere stark beggars.” As a fact, moreover,
-poverty became rampant, as we should have expected,
-immediately upon the great confiscations of land and
-other property at the dissolution of the religious houses.
-To take one example: Dr. Sharpe’s knowledge of the
-records of the city of London enables him to say that
-“the sudden closing of these institutions caused the
-streets to be thronged with the sick and poor.”</p>
-
-<p>“The devil,” exclaims a preacher who lived through
-all these troublous times&mdash;“the devil cunningly turneth
-things his own way.” “Examples of this we have seen
-in our time more than I can have leisure to express or
-to rehearse. In the Acts of Parliament that we have
-had made in our days what godly preambles hath gone
-afore the same; even <i>quasi oraculum Apollinis</i>, as though
-the things that follow had come from the counsel of the
-highest in heaven; and yet the end hath been either to
-destroy abbeys or chauntries or colleges, or such like,
-by the which some have gotten much land, and have
-been made men of great possessions. But many an
-honest poor man hath been undone by it, and an innumerable
-multitude hath perished for default and lack
-of sustenance. And this misery hath long continued,
-and hath not yet (1556) an end. Moreover, all this
-commotion and fray was made under pretence of a
-common profit and common defence, but in very deed
-it was for private and proper lucre.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_360" id="Page_360">[360]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_332" id="FNanchor_332"></a><a href="#Footnote_332" class="fnanchor">[332]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the sixty years that followed the overthrow of
-the old system, it was necessary for Parliament to pass
-no less than twelve acts dealing with the relief of distress,
-the necessity for which, Thorold Rogers says, “can be
-traced distinctly back to the crimes of rulers and agents.”
-I need not characterise the spirit which is manifested in
-these acts, where poverty and crime are treated as indistinguishable.</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Jessop writes: “In the general scramble of the
-<i>Terror</i> under Henry the Eighth, and of the <i>anarchy</i> in
-the days of Edward the Sixth … the monasteries
-were plundered even to their very pots and pans. The
-almshouses, in which old men and women were fed and
-clothed, were robbed to the last pound, the poor almsfolk
-being turned out in the cold at an hour’s warning
-to beg their bread. The splendid hospitals for the
-sick and needy, sometimes magnificently provided with
-nurses and chaplains, whose very <i>raison d’être</i> was that
-they were to look after the care of those who were past
-caring for themselves, these were stripped of all their
-belongings, the inmates sent out to hobble into some
-convenient dry ditch to lie down and die in, or to crawl
-into some barn or house, there to be tended, not without
-fear of consequences, by some kindly man or
-woman, who could not bear to see a suffering fellow-creature
-drop down and die at their own doorposts.”<a name="FNanchor_333" id="FNanchor_333"></a><a href="#Footnote_333" class="fnanchor">[333]</a></p>
-
-<p>Intimately connected with the subject of the care of
-the poor in pre-Reformation days is obviously that of
-the mediæval guilds which, more than anything else,
-tended to foster the idea of the Christian brotherhood
-up to the eve of the religious changes.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_361" id="Page_361">[361]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It would probably be a mistake to suppose that
-these societies existed everywhere throughout the country
-in equal numbers. Mr. Thorold Rogers, it is true,
-says&mdash;and the opinion of one who has done so much
-work in every kind of local record must carry great
-weight&mdash;that “few parishes were probably without
-guild lands.” But there is certainly no distinct evidence
-that this was the case, especially in counties say
-like Hampshire, always sparsely populated as compared
-with other districts in the east of England, and where
-the people largely depended on agricultural pursuits for
-a living. It was in the great centres of trade and manufacture
-that the guilds were most numerous and most
-important, for it was precisely in those parts that the
-advantages of mutual help and co-operation outside the
-parish bond were most apparent and combination was
-practically possible.</p>
-
-<p>An examination of the existing records leads to a
-general division of mediæval guilds into two classes&mdash;<i>Craft</i>
-or <i>Trade</i> associations, and <i>Religious</i> or, as some
-prefer now to call them, <i>Social</i> guilds. The former,
-as their name implies, had, as the special object of their
-existence, the protection of some work, trade or handicraft,
-and in this for practical purposes we may include
-those associations of traders or merchants known under
-the name of “guild-merchants.” Such, for instance,
-were the great companies of the city of London, and it
-was in reality under the plea that they were trading
-societies that they were saved in the general destruction
-which overtook all similar fraternities and associations
-in the sixteenth century. The division of guilds
-into the two classes named above is, however, after all
-more a matter of convenience than a real distinction<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_362" id="Page_362">[362]</a></span>
-founded on fact. All guilds, no matter for what special
-purpose they were founded, had the same general characteristic
-of brotherly aid and social charity; and no
-guild was divorced from the ordinary religious observances
-commonly practised by all such bodies in those
-days.</p>
-
-<p>It is often supposed that, for the most part, what
-are called religious guilds existed for the purpose of
-promoting or encouraging the religious practices, such
-as the attendance at church on certain days, the taking
-part in ecclesiastical processions, the recitations of
-offices and prayers, and the like. Without doubt, there
-were such societies in pre-Reformation days&mdash;such as,
-for example, the great Guild of Corpus Christi, in the
-city of York, which counted its members by thousands.
-But such associations were the exception, not the rule.
-An examination of the existing statutes and regulations
-of ancient guilds will show how small a proportion these
-purely <i>Ecclesiastical</i> guilds formed of the whole number
-of associations known as Religious guilds. The origin of
-the mistaken notion is obvious. In mediæval days&mdash;that
-is, in times when such guilds flourished&mdash;the word
-“religious” had a wider, and what most people who
-reflect will be inclined to think, a truer signification
-than has obtained in later times. Religion was then
-understood to include the exercise of the two commandments
-of charity&mdash;the love of God and the love
-of one’s neighbour&mdash;and the exercises of practical
-charity to which guild brethren were bound by their
-guild statutes were considered as much religious practices
-as attendance at church or the taking part in an
-ecclesiastical procession. In these days, as Mr. Brentano
-in his essay <i>On the History and Development of Guilds</i> has<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_363" id="Page_363">[363]</a></span>
-pointed out, most of the objects, to promote which
-the guilds existed, would now be called social duties,
-but they were then regarded as true objects of Christian
-charity. Mutual assistance, the aid of the poor, of
-the helpless, of the sick, of strangers, of pilgrims and
-prisoners, the burial of the dead, even the keeping of
-schools and schoolmasters, and other such like works
-were held to be “exercises of religion.”<a name="FNanchor_334" id="FNanchor_334"></a><a href="#Footnote_334" class="fnanchor">[334]</a></p>
-
-<p>If the word “religious” be thought now to give a
-wrong impression about the nature of associations, the
-main object of which was to secure the performance of
-duties we should now call “social,” quite as false an
-impression would be conveyed by the word “social” as
-applied to them. A “social” society would inevitably
-suggest to many in these days an association for
-convivial meetings, and this false notion of the nature
-of a mediæval guild would be further strengthened by
-the fact that in many, if not most, of them a yearly, and
-sometimes a more frequent feast existed under an item
-in their statutes. This guild feast, however, was a mere
-incident in the organisation, and in no case did it form
-what we might consider the end or purpose of the
-association.</p>
-
-<p>By whichever name we call them, and assuming
-the religious basis which underlay the whole social
-life in the fifteenth century, the character and purpose
-of these mediæval guilds cannot in reality be
-misunderstood. Broadly speaking, they were the
-benefit societies and the provident associations of the
-middle ages. They undertook towards their members
-the duties now frequently performed by burial clubs,
-by hospitals, by almshouses, and by guardians of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_364" id="Page_364">[364]</a></span>
-poor. Not infrequently they acted for the public good
-of the community in the mending of roads and the
-repair of bridges, and for the private good of their
-members, in the same way that insurance companies
-to-day compensate for loss by fire or accident. The
-very reason of their existence was the affording of
-mutual aid and assistance in meeting the pecuniary
-demands which were constantly arising from burials,
-legal exactions, penal fines and all other kinds of payments
-and compensations. Mr. Toulmin Smith thus
-defines their object: “The early English guild was
-an institution of local self-help which, before the poor-laws
-were invented, took the place in old times of the
-modern friendly or benefit society, but with a higher
-aim; while it joined all classes together in the care of
-the needy and for objects of common welfare, it did
-not neglect the forms and practice of religion, justice,
-and morality,”<a name="FNanchor_335" id="FNanchor_335"></a><a href="#Footnote_335" class="fnanchor">[335]</a> which I may add was, indeed, the
-main-spring of their life and action.</p>
-
-<p>“The guild lands,” writes Mr. Thorold Rogers,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_365" id="Page_365">[365]</a></span>
-“were a very important economical fact in the social
-condition of early England. The guilds were the
-benefit societies of the time from which impoverished
-members could be, and were, aided. It was an age in
-which the keeping of accounts was common and
-familiar. Beyond question, the treasurers of the village
-guild rendered as accurate an annual statement of their
-fraternity as a bailiff did to his lord.… It is quite
-certain that the town and country guilds obviated
-pauperism in the middle ages, assisted in steadying
-the price of labour, and formed a permanent centre
-for those associations which fulfilled the function that
-in more recent times trades unions have striven to
-satisfy.”<a name="FNanchor_336" id="FNanchor_336"></a><a href="#Footnote_336" class="fnanchor">[336]</a></p>
-
-<p>An examination of the various articles of association
-contained in the returns made into the Chancery in
-1389, and other similar documents, shows how wide
-was the field of Christian charity covered by these
-“fraternities.” First and foremost amongst these works
-of religion must be reckoned the burial of the dead;
-regulations as to which are invariably to be found in all
-the guild statutes. Then, very generally, provisions for
-help to the poor, sick, and aged. In some, assistance
-was to be given to those who were overtaken by misfortune,
-whose goods had been damaged or destroyed
-by fire or flood, or had been diminished by loss or
-robbery; in others, money was found as a loan to such
-as needed temporary assistance. In the guild at
-Ludlow, in Shropshire, for instance, “any good girl
-of the guild had a dowry provided for her if her father
-was too poor to find one himself.” The “guild-merchant”
-of Coventry kept a lodging-house with
-thirteen beds, “to lodge poor folk coming through the
-land on pilgrimage or other work of charity,” with a
-keeper of the house and a woman to wash the pilgrims’
-feet. A guild at York found beds and attendance
-for poor strangers, and the guild of Holy Cross in
-Birmingham kept almshouses for the poor in the
-town. In Hampshire, the guild of St. John at Winchester,
-which comprised men and women of all sorts
-and conditions, supported a hospital for the poor and
-infirm of the city.</p>
-
-<p>The very mass of material at hand makes the task
-of selecting examples for illustrating some of the objects<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_366" id="Page_366">[366]</a></span>
-for which mediæval guilds existed somewhat difficult.
-I take a few such examples at haphazard. The organisation
-of these societies was the same as that which has
-existed in similar associations up to the time of our
-modern trades unions. A meeting was held at which
-officers were elected and accounts audited; fines for
-non-acceptance of office were frequently imposed, as
-well as for absence from the common meeting. Often
-members had to declare on oath that they would fulfil
-their voluntary obligations, and would keep secret the
-affairs of the society. Persons of ill-repute were not
-admitted, and members who disgraced the fraternity
-were expelled. For example, the first guild statutes
-printed by Mr. Toulmin Smith are those of Garlekhithe,
-London. They begin: “In worship of God Almighty
-our Creator and His Mother Saint Mary, and all Saints,
-and St. James the Apostle, a fraternity is begun by good
-men in the Church of St. James, at Garlekhith in London,
-on the day of Saint James, the year of our Lord
-1375, for the amendment of their lives and of their
-souls, and to nourish greater love between the brethren
-and sisters of the said brotherhood.” Each of them
-has sworn on the Book to perform the points underwritten.</p>
-
-<p>“First: all those that are, or shall be, in the said
-brotherhood shall be of good life, condition, and
-behaviour, and shall love God and Holy Church and
-their neighbours, as Holy Church commands.” Then,
-after various provisions as to meetings and payments to
-be made to the general funds, the statutes order that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_367" id="Page_367">[367]</a></span> “if
-any of the foresaid brethren fall into such distress that
-he hath nothing, and cannot, on account of old age or
-sickness, help himself, if he has been in the brotherhood
-seven years, and during that time has performed all
-duties, he shall have every week after from the common
-box fourteen pence (<i>i.e.</i> about £1 a week of our money)
-for the rest of his life, unless he recovers from his
-distress.”<a name="FNanchor_337" id="FNanchor_337"></a><a href="#Footnote_337" class="fnanchor">[337]</a> In one form or other this provision for the
-assistance of needy members is repeated in the statutes
-of almost every guild. Some provide for help in case
-of distress coming “through any chance, through fire
-or water, thieves or sickness, or any other haps.” Some,
-besides granting this kind of aid, add: “and if so befall
-that he be young enough to work, and he fall into distress,
-so that he have nothing of his own to help himself
-with, then the brethren shall help him, each with a
-portion as he pleases in the way of charity.”<a name="FNanchor_338" id="FNanchor_338"></a><a href="#Footnote_338" class="fnanchor">[338]</a> Others
-furnish loans from the common fund to enable brethren
-to tide over temporary difficulties: “and if the case
-falleth that any of the brotherhood have need to borrow a
-certain sum of silver, he (can) go to the keepers of the
-box and take what he hath need of, so that the sum be
-not so large that any one may not be helped as well as
-another, and that he leave a sufficient pledge, or else
-find a sufficient security among the brotherhood.”<a name="FNanchor_339" id="FNanchor_339"></a><a href="#Footnote_339" class="fnanchor">[339]</a>
-Some, again, make the contributions to poor brethren
-a personal obligation on the members, such as a farthing
-a week from each of the brotherhood, unless the distress
-has been caused by individual folly or waste. Others
-extend their Christian charity to relieve distress beyond
-the circle of the brotherhood&mdash;that is, of all<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_368" id="Page_368">[368]</a></span> “whosoever
-falls into distress, poverty, lameness, blindness,
-sent by the grace of God to them, even if he be a thief
-proven, he shall have seven pence a week from the
-brothers and sisters to assist him in his need.”<a name="FNanchor_340" id="FNanchor_340"></a><a href="#Footnote_340" class="fnanchor">[340]</a> Some
-of the guilds in seaside districts provide for help in case
-of “loss through the sea,” and there is little doubt that
-in mediæval days the great work carried on by such a
-body as the Royal Lifeboat Society would have been
-considered a work of religion, and the fitting object of
-a religious guild.</p>
-
-<p>It would be tedious to multiply examples of the
-purposes and scope of the old fraternities, and it is
-sufficient to repeat that there was hardly any kind of
-social service which in some form or other was not
-provided for by these voluntary associations. As an
-illustration of the working of a trade or craft guild, we
-may take that of the “Pinners” of the city of London,
-the register of which, dating from <span class="smcap">A.D.</span> 1464, is now in
-the British Museum.<a name="FNanchor_341" id="FNanchor_341"></a><a href="#Footnote_341" class="fnanchor">[341]</a> These are some of the chief
-articles approved for the guild by the Mayor and Corporation
-of the city of London: (1) No foreigner to be
-allowed to keep a shop for the sale of pins. (2) No
-foreigner to take to the making of pins without undergoing
-previous examinations and receiving the approval
-of the guild officers. (3) No master to receive another
-master’s workman. (4) If a servant or workman who
-has served his master faithfully fall sick he shall be kept
-by the craft. (5) Power to the craft to expel those
-who do ill and bring discredit upon it. (6) Work at
-the craft at nights, on Saturdays, and on the eves of
-feasts is strictly prohibited. (7) Sunday closing is
-rigidly enforced.</p>
-
-<p>It is curious to find, four hundred years ago, so
-many of the principles set down as established, for
-which in our days trades unions and similar societies<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_369" id="Page_369">[369]</a></span>
-are now contending. It has been remarked above, that
-even in the case of craft guilds, such as this Society of
-Pinners undoubtedly was, many of the ordinary purposes
-of the religious guilds were looked to equally
-with the more obvious object of protecting the special
-trade or handicraft of the specific society. The accounts
-of this Pinners’ Guild fully bear out this view. For
-example: We have the funeral services for departed
-brethren, and the usual <i>trentals</i>, or thirty masses, for
-deceased members. Then we find: “4d. to the wax
-chandlers’ man for setting up of our lights at St. James.”
-One of the members, William Clarke, borrowed 5s. 10d.
-from the common chest, to secure which he placed a
-gold ring in pledge. There are also numerous payments
-for singers at the services held on the feast days
-of the guild, and for banners and other hangings for
-processions.</p>
-
-<p>Of payments for the specific ends of the guild
-there are, of course, plenty of examples. For instance:
-spurious pins and “other ware” are searched for and
-burnt by the craft officers, and this at such distances
-from London as Salisbury and the fair at Stourbridge,
-near Cambridge, the great market for East Anglia and
-the centre of the Flanders trade. “William Mitchell is
-paid 8d. for pins for the sisters, on Saint James’ day.”
-In 1466, a man is fined 2s. for setting a child to
-work before he had been fully apprenticed; and
-also another had to pay 2s. for working after seven
-o’clock on a winter night. Later on in the accounts
-we have a man mulcted for keeping a shop before he
-was a “freeman” of the society, and another “for
-that he sold Flaundres pynnes for English pynnes.”
-At another time, a large consignment of no less than<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_370" id="Page_370">[370]</a></span>
-12,000 “pynnes of ware” were forfeited to the craft,
-and sold by them for 8s., which went to the common
-fund. These accounts show also the gradual rise in
-importance and prosperity which the Pinners’ Guild,
-under the patronage of St. James, manifested. At
-first, the warden and brethren at their yearly visit to
-Westminster were content to hire an ordinary barge
-upon the Thames, but after a few years they had
-started “a keverid boote” of their own at the cost of
-half-a-crown, in place of the sixpence formerly paid.
-So, too, in the early days of their incorporation they
-had their annual dinner and audited their accounts at
-some London tavern&mdash;the “Mayremayde in Bread
-Street” and “the brew house atte the Sygne of the
-Rose in Old Jury” are two of the places named. Later
-on they met in some hall belonging to another guild,
-such as the “Armourers’” Hall, and later still they
-built their own Guild Hall and held their banquet there.
-This building made a great demand upon their capital,
-and the officers evidently began to look more carefully
-after the exaction of fines. For late working at this
-time one of the brethren was mulcted in the sum of
-twenty pence; another was fined twopence for coming
-late to the guild mass, and several others had to pay
-for neglecting to attend the meeting. From the period
-of starting their own hall, ill-fortune seems to have
-attended the society. About the year 1499, they got
-involved in a great lawsuit with one Thomas Hill, upon
-which was expended a large sum of money. A special
-whip was made to meet expenses and keep up the
-credit of the guild; for what with counsel’s fees, the
-writing of bills, and the drawing of pleas, the general
-fund was unable to find the necessary munitions of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_371" id="Page_371">[371]</a></span>
-war to continue the suit. To the credit of the members,
-most of them apparently responded generously to this
-call, and, in consequence of this unfortunate litigation,
-to many subsequent demands which the empty exchequer
-necessitated.</p>
-
-<p>There would be no difficulty whatever in multiplying
-the foregoing illustrations of the working of these
-mediæval societies. The actual account books of
-course furnish us with the most accurate knowledge,
-even to minute details, and any one of them would
-afford ample material.</p>
-
-<p>The funds at the disposal of the guilds were derived
-chiefly from voluntary subscriptions, entrance fees, gifts,
-and legacies of members. Frequently these societies
-became in process of time the trustees of lands and
-houses which they either held and administered for the
-purposes of the guilds, or for some specific purpose
-determined by the will of the original donor. Thus, to
-take one or two examples from the account rolls of the
-Guild of Tailors in the city of Winchester. In the time
-of King Richard II.&mdash;say 1392&mdash;the usual entrance
-fee for members was 3s. 4d., and the annual
-subscription was 1s. There were 106 members at
-that time, seven of whom had been enrolled during
-the previous year. Among others who had thus
-entered was one Thomas Warener, or Warner, a
-cousin of Bishop William of Wykeham, and the
-Bishop’s bailiff of the Soke; his payment was 4s. 8d.
-instead of the usual entrance fee. In the same year we
-find the names of Thomas Hampton, lord of the manor
-of Stoke Charity, and Thomas Marleburgh, who was
-afterwards Mayor of Winchester. In the following
-year, seventeen new members were enrolled, one of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_372" id="Page_372">[372]</a></span>
-them being a baker of Southampton, called Dunster.
-Turning over these accounts, we come upon examples
-of presents either in kind or money made to the society.
-Thus in one place Thomas Marleburgh makes a present
-of a hooded garment which was subsequently sold for
-eighteen pence; and in another, one Maurice John
-Cantelaw presented for the service of the guild, “a
-chalice and twelve pence in counted money,” requesting
-the members “to pray for his good estate, for the
-souls of his parents, friends, benefactors, and others for
-whom he was bound to pray.” In return for this
-valuable present, the guild granted that it should be
-accounted as Cantelaw’s life-subscription.</p>
-
-<p>Having spoken of the sources of income, which
-were practically the same in all guilds, something must
-be said as to the expenditure over and above the
-purposes for which the guilds existed. This may be
-illustrated from the accounts of this same fraternity of
-tailors of Winchester.<a name="FNanchor_342" id="FNanchor_342"></a><a href="#Footnote_342" class="fnanchor">[342]</a> In the first place, as in almost
-every similar society, provision was made for the
-funerals of members and for the usual daily mass for
-thirty days after the death of the deceased members.
-The sum set down is 2s. 6d. for each trental of thirty
-masses. Then we find mention of alms to the poor
-and sick; thus in 1403, the sum of 36s., about one-tenth
-of the annual revenue, was spent upon this object.
-This, of course, was charity of a general kind, and
-wholly unconnected with the assistance given by rule
-to necessitous members of the guild.<a name="FNanchor_343" id="FNanchor_343"></a><a href="#Footnote_343" class="fnanchor">[343]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_373" id="Page_373">[373]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>One expense, very common in these mediæval
-guilds, was the preparation for taking a fitting part
-in the great annual religious pageant or procession
-on Corpus Christi day. In the case of this Tailors’
-Guild at Winchester, we find sums of money charged
-for making wax torches and ornamenting them with
-flowers and red and blue wax, with card shields and
-parchment streamers, or “pencils,” as they are called.
-The members of the guild apparently carried small
-tapers; but the four great torches were borne by hired
-men, who received a shilling each for their trouble.
-It is somewhat difficult for us nowadays to understand
-the importance attached to these great ecclesiastical
-pageants by our ancestors four hundred years or
-so ago. But as to the fact, there can be no doubt.
-Among the documents in the municipal archives of
-Winchester there exists an order of the Mayor and
-Corporation as to the disposition of this solemn procession
-in 1435. It runs thus:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_374" id="Page_374">[374]</a></span> “At a convocation
-holden in the city of Winchester the Friday next after
-the Feast of Corpus Christi in the thirteenth year of the
-reign of King Harry the Sixth, after the conquest; it
-was ordained by Richard Salter, mayor of the city of
-Winchester, John Symer and Harry Putt, bailiffs of
-the city aforesaid, and also by all the citizens and
-commonalty of the same city: It is agreed of a certain
-general procession on the Feast of Corpus Christi, of
-divers artificers and crafts within the said city: that is
-to say the carpenters and felters shall go together first;
-smiths and barbers, second; cooks and butchers, third;
-shoemakers with two lights, fourth; tanners and japanners,
-fifth; plumers and silkmen, sixth; fishers and
-farriers, seventh; taverners, eighth; weavers, with two
-lights, ninth; fullers, with two lights, tenth; dyers,
-with two lights, eleventh; chaundlers and brewers,
-twelfth; mercers, with two lights, thirteenth; the wives
-with one light and John Blake with another light,
-fourteenth; and all these lights shall be borne orderly
-before the said procession before the priests of the city.
-And the four lights of the brethren of St. John’s shall
-be borne about the Body of our Lord Jesus Christ, the
-same day in the procession aforesaid.”</p>
-
-<p>The brethren of St. John’s just named, as the chief
-object of their association, kept a hospital for the poor
-and sick in the city. They paid a chaplain of their
-own, as indeed did most of the guilds, and had a
-master and matron to look after the comfort of the
-poor. They provided bed and bedding, and carefully
-administered not only their own subscriptions, but the
-sums of money freely bequeathed to them to be spent
-on charity. At every market held within the precincts
-of Winchester an officer, paid by the society, attended
-and claimed for the support of the poor a tax of two
-handfuls of corn from every sack exposed for sale.
-The mayor and bailiffs were apparently the official
-custodians of this guild, and numerous legacies in wills,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_375" id="Page_375">[375]</a></span>
-even in the reign of Henry VIII., attest its popularity.
-For example, on February 19, 1503, John Cornishe,
-alias Putte, late Mayor of Winchester, died and left to
-the guardians his tenements and gardens under the
-penthouse in the city for the charity, on condition that
-for ten years they would spend 6s. 8d. in keeping his
-annual obit. In 1520, a draper of London, named
-Calley, bequeathed ten shillings to the hospital for
-annually repairing and improving the bedding of the
-poor. The accounts of this Fraternity of St. John’s
-Hospital for a considerable period in the fourteenth
-century are still in existence. They show large receipts,
-sometimes amounting to over £100, from lands,
-shops, houses, and from the sale of cattle and farm
-produce, over and above the annual subscriptions of
-members. On the other side, week by week we have
-the payments for food provided for the service of the
-poor: fish, flesh, beer, and bread are the chief items.
-One year, for instance, the bread bought for the sick
-amounted to 36s. 6d.; beer to 36s. 8d.; meat to 32s. 2d.;
-fish to 28s. 3½d., &amp;c. Besides this seven shillings were
-expended in mustard, and 3s. 6d. for six gallons of
-oil. This same year the guardians also paid 2s. 2d. for
-the clothes and shoes for a young woman named Sibil
-“who nursed the poor in the hospital.” The above represents
-only the actual money expended over the sick
-patients, and from the same source, most minute and
-curious information might be added as to the other expenses
-of the house, including, for instance, even the
-purchase of grave-clothes and coffins for the dead poor,
-the wages and clothing of the matron and servant, and
-the payment of the officer who collected the handfuls of
-corn in the market-place. At times we have evidence<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_376" id="Page_376">[376]</a></span>
-of the arrival and care of strange poor people&mdash;we
-should perhaps call them “tramps” in our day. For
-instance, here is one heading: “The expenses of three
-poor strangers in the hospital for 21 days and nights,
-15¾d.; to each of whom is given ¾d. <i>Item</i>: the
-expenses of one other for 5 days, 3¾d. <i>Item</i>: the expenses
-of the burial of the said sick person, 3d. <i>Item</i>:
-the expenses of four pilgrims lodged for a night, 2d.
-<i>Item</i>: new straw to stuff the beds of the sick, 8d.
-<i>Item</i>: paid to the laundress for washing the clothes of
-the sick during one year, 12d.”</p>
-
-<p>To speak of guilds without making any mention of
-the feasts&mdash;the social meetings&mdash;which are invariably
-associated with such societies, would be impossible.
-The great banquets of the city companies are proverbial,
-and, in origin at least, they arose out of the guild
-meeting for the election of officers, followed by the
-guild feast. As a rule, these meetings took place on
-the day on which the Church celebrated the memory
-of the Saint who had been chosen as patron of the
-society, and were probably much like the club dinners
-which are still cherished features of village life in
-many parts of England.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_377" id="Page_377">[377]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_344" id="FNanchor_344"></a><a href="#Footnote_344" class="fnanchor">[344]</a></p>
-
-<p>It has been said that the wardens of guilds were
-frequently named in mediæval wills as trustees of money
-for various charitable purposes. As an example of
-property thus left to a guild, take the Candlemas Guild,
-established at Bury St. Edmunds: the society was
-established in the year 1471, and a few years later one
-of the members made over to the brethren considerable
-property for the common purposes of the guild and
-other specified objects. His name was John Smith, a
-merchant of Bury, and he died, we are told, on “St.
-Peter’s even at Midsummer, 1481.” His will, which
-is witnessed by the Abbot and Prior of St. Edmund’s
-Abbey, provides, in the first place, for the keeping of
-an obit “devoutly.” The residue of the income was
-to accumulate till the appointment of each new abbot,
-when, on the election, the entire amount was to be
-paid over to the elect in place of the sum of money
-the town was bound to pay on every such occasion.
-Whatever remained over and above this was to be
-devoted to the payments of any tenth, fifteenth, or
-other tax, imposed upon the citizens by royal authority.
-This revenue was to be administered by the guardians
-of the guild, who were bound at the yearly meeting at
-Candlemas to render an account of their stewardship.
-Year by year John Smith’s will was read out at the
-meeting, and proclamation was made before the anniversary
-of his death in the following manner:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_378" id="Page_378">[378]</a></span> “Let us
-all of charity pray for the soul of John. We put you
-in remembrance that you shall not miss the keeping of
-his <i>Dirge</i> and also of his Mass.” Round about the
-town the crier was sent to recite the following lines:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“We put you in remembrance all that the oath have made,</div>
-<div class="verse">To come to the Mass and the <i>Dirge</i> the souls for to glade:</div>
-<div class="verse">All the inhabitants of this town are bound to do the same,</div>
-<div class="verse">To pray for the souls of John and Anne, else they be to blame:</div>
-<div class="verse">The which John afore-rehearsed to this town hath been full kind,</div>
-<div class="verse">Three hundred marks for this town hath paid, no penny unpaid behind.</div>
-<div class="verse">Now we have informed you of John Smith’s will in writing as it is,</div>
-<div class="verse">And for the great gifts that he hath given, God bring his soul to bliss. Amen.”<a name="FNanchor_345" id="FNanchor_345"></a><a href="#Footnote_345" class="fnanchor">[345]</a></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The example set by this donor to the Candlemas
-Guild at Bury was followed by many others in the
-later part of the fifteenth century. For instance, a
-“gentlewoman,” as she calls herself, one Margaret
-Odom, after providing by will for the usual obit and
-for a lamp to burn before “the holie sacrament in St.
-James’s Church,” desires that the brethren of the guild
-shall devote the residue of the income arising from
-certain houses and lands she has conveyed to their
-keeping, to paying a priest to “say mass in the chapel
-of the gaol before the prisoners there, and giving them
-holy water and holy bread on all Sundays, and to give
-to the prisoners of the long ward of the said gaol every
-week seven faggots of wood from Hallowmass (November
-1) to Easter Day.”<a name="FNanchor_346" id="FNanchor_346"></a><a href="#Footnote_346" class="fnanchor">[346]</a></p>
-
-<p>Intimately connected with the subject of the guilds
-is that of the fairs, which formed so great a feature in
-mediæval commercial life, and at which the craft guilds
-were represented. For the south of England, the
-great fair held annually at Winchester became the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_379" id="Page_379">[379]</a></span>
-centre of our national commerce with France. The
-following account of it is given in Mr. W. J. Ashley’s
-most interesting <i>Introduction to English Economic History</i>:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_380" id="Page_380">[380]</a></span>
-“A fair for three days on the eastern hill outside
-Winchester was granted to the bishop by William II.;
-his immediate successors granted extension of time,
-until by a charter of Henry II. it was fixed at sixteen
-days, from 31st August to 15th September. On the
-morning of 31st August ‘the justiciars of the pavilion of
-the bishop’ proclaimed the fair on the hilltop, then
-rode on horseback through the city proclaiming the
-opening of the fair. The keys of the city and the
-weighing machine in the wool market were taken
-possession of, and a special mayor and special bailiffs
-were appointed to supersede the city officials during
-the fair time. The hilltop was quickly covered with
-streets of wooden shops: in one, the merchants from
-Flanders; in another, those of Caen or some other
-Norman town; in another, the merchants from Bristol.
-Here were placed the goldsmiths in a row, and there
-the drapers, &amp;c., whilst around the whole was a wooden
-palisade with guarded entrance, a precaution which did
-not always prevent enterprising adventurers from
-escaping payment of the toll by digging a way in for
-themselves under the wall.… In Winchester all trade
-was compulsorily suspended, and within ‘a seven league
-circuit,’ guards being stationed at outlying posts, on
-bridges and other places of passage, to see that the
-monopoly was not infringed. At Southampton nothing
-was to be sold during the fair time but victuals, and even
-the very craftsmen of Winchester were bound to transfer
-themselves to the hill and there carry on their occupations
-during the fair. There was a graduated scale of
-tolls and duties: all merchants of London, Winchester,
-or Wallingford who entered during the first week were
-free from entrance tolls.… In every fair there was a
-<i>court of pie-powder</i> (of dusty feet) in which was decided
-by merchant law all cases of dispute that might arise,
-the ordinary jurisdiction being for a time suspended in
-the town; at Winchester this was called the Pavilion
-Court. Hither the bishop’s servants brought all the
-weights and measures to be tested; here the justices
-determined on an assize, or fixed scale, for bread, wine,
-beer, and other victuals, adjudging to the pillory any
-baker whose bread was found to be of defective weight;
-and here every day disputes between merchants as to
-debts were decided by juries upon production and
-comparison of the notched wooden tallies.”<a name="FNanchor_347" id="FNanchor_347"></a><a href="#Footnote_347" class="fnanchor">[347]</a></p>
-
-<p>A few words must be said about the final destruction
-of the English guilds. At the close of the reign of
-Henry VIII. an act of Parliament was passed vesting
-the property of colleges, chantries, fraternities, brotherhoods
-and guilds in the Crown (38 Hen. VIII., c. 4).
-The king was empowered to send out his commissioners
-to take possession of all such property, on the plea that
-it might be “used and exercised to more godly and
-virtuous purposes.” Henry died before the provisions
-of the act could be complied with, and a second act
-was passed through the first Parliament in the reign of
-Edward VI. (1 Ed. VI., c. 14). This went beyond the
-former decree of destruction, for after providing for
-the demolition of colleges, free chapels, and chantries,
-it proceeded not only separately by name to grant to
-the king all sums of money devoted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_381" id="Page_381">[381]</a></span> “by any manner
-of corporations, guilds, fraternities, companies or fellowships
-or mysteries or crafts,” to the support of a priest,
-obits or lights (which may be taken under colour of
-religion), but to hand over to the crown “all fraternities,
-brotherhoods and guilds, being within the realm of
-England and Wales and other the king’s dominions,
-and all manors, lands, tenements, and other hereditaments
-belonging to them, other than such corporations,
-guilds, fraternities, &amp;c., and the manors, lands, &amp;c.,
-pertaining to the said corporations, &amp;c., above
-mentioned.”</p>
-
-<p>The Parliament of Henry VIII. assigned as a reason
-for this seizure of the property of the corporate bodies
-the need “for the maintenance of these present wars,”
-and cleverly put into one group “colleges, free chapels,
-chantries, hospitals, fraternities, brotherhoods, and
-guilds.” “The act of Edward VI.,” writes Mr. Toulmin
-Smith, “was still more ingenious, for it held up the
-dogma of purgatory to abhorrence, and began to hint
-at grammar schools. The object of both acts was the
-same. All the possessions of all the guilds (except
-what could creep out as being mere trading guilds,
-which saved the London guilds) became vested by
-these two acts in the Crown; and the unprincipled
-courtiers who had advised and helped the scheme
-gorged themselves out of this wholesale plunder of
-what was, in every sense, public property.”<a name="FNanchor_348" id="FNanchor_348"></a><a href="#Footnote_348" class="fnanchor">[348]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is clear that in seizing the property of the guilds
-the Crown destroyed far more than it gained for itself.
-A very large proportion of their revenues was derived
-from the entrance fees and the annual subscriptions of
-the existing members, and in putting an end to these
-societies the State swept away the organisation by which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_382" id="Page_382">[382]</a></span>
-these voluntary subscriptions were raised, and this
-not in one or two places, but all over England. In
-this way far more harm was in reality done to the
-interests of the poor, sick, and aged, and, indeed, to
-the body politic at large, than the mere seizure of
-their comparatively little capital, whether in land or
-money.</p>
-
-<p>It is not, of course, meant to imply that the injury
-to the poor and sick was not fully recognised at the
-time of these legal confiscations. People deeply resented
-the idea that what generations of benefactors
-had intended for the relief of distress should thus be
-made to pass into the pocket of some “new” man who
-had grown great upon the spoils. The literature of
-the period affords abundant evidence of the popular
-feeling. Crowley, for instance, wrote about 1550&mdash;just
-at this very time&mdash;and although no one would
-look for any accurate description of facts in his rhyming
-satires, he may be taken as a reliable witness as to what
-the people were saying. This is what he writes on the
-point:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_383" id="Page_383">[383]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“A merchant, that long time</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Had been in strange lands</div>
-<div class="verse">Returned to his country,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Which in Europe stands.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">And in his return</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">His way lay to pass</div>
-<div class="verse">By a spittle house not far from</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Where his dwelling-house was.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">He looked for this hospital,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">But none could he see,</div>
-<div class="verse">For a lordly house was built</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Where the hospital should be.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">‘Good Lord!’ (said the merchant),</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">‘Is my country so wealthy</div>
-<div class="verse">That the very beggars’ houses</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Are built so gorgeously?’</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Then by the wayside</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Him chanced to see</div>
-<div class="verse">A poor man that craved</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Of him for charity.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">‘Why’ (quoth the merchant),</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">‘What meaneth this thing?</div>
-<div class="verse">Do ye beg by the way,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">And have a house for a king?’</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">‘Alas! sir’ (quoth the poor man),</div>
-<div class="verse">‘We are all turned out,</div>
-<div class="verse">And lie and die in corners</div>
-<div class="verse">Here and there about.’”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>It has frequently been asserted that although grave
-injury was undoubtedly done to the poor of the land
-by this wholesale confiscation, it was done unwittingly
-by the authorities, or that, at the worst, the portions
-of revenue derived from the property which had been
-intended for the support of the sick, aged, &amp;c., was
-so bound up with those to which religious obligations
-(now declared superstitious and illegal) were attached,
-that it was impossible to distinguish the latter from
-the former, and all perished together, or rather passed
-undistinguished into the royal pocket. Such a view is
-not borne out by facts, and however satisfactory it
-might be to believe that this robbery of the poor and
-sick by the Crown was accidental and unpremeditated,
-the historian is bound by the evidence to hold that the
-pillage was fully premeditated and deliberately and consciously
-carried out. It is of course obvious, that some
-may regard it as proper that funds given for the support<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_384" id="Page_384">[384]</a></span>
-of priests to say masses or offer prayers for the souls of
-the departed should have been confiscated, although it
-would have been better had the money been devoted to
-some purpose of local utility rather than that it should
-have been added to the Crown revenues or have gone
-to enrich some royal favourite. For example it may, for
-the sake of argument, be admitted that the two fields
-at Petersfield in Hampshire thus taken by the royal
-commissioners&mdash;one called <i>White field</i>, in the tenure
-of Gregory Hill, the rent of which was intended to
-keep a perpetual light burning in the parish church,
-and the other held by John Mill, given to support a
-priest “called the Morrow Masse priest” (<i>i.e.</i> the
-priest employed to say the early morning mass for the
-convenience of people going to work)&mdash;were under the
-circumstances fair articles of plunder for the royal
-officials, when the mass was prohibited and the doctrine
-symbolised by the perpetual light declared superstitious.
-But this will not apply to the money intended for the
-poor. It might have been easy to justify the Crown’s
-action in taking the priest’s portion, and even the little
-pittance intended for the serving clerk, but the seizure
-of the benefactions to the poor cannot be defended.
-It was not accidental; for an examination of the original
-documents relating to the guilds and chantries now in
-the Record Office will show not only that the Royal
-Commissioners were as a rule careful to distinguish
-between the portions intended for religious purposes
-and those set aside for perpetual charity to the
-sick and poor, but in many cases they actually proposed
-to the Court of Augmentation to protect the
-latter and preserve them for the objects of Christian
-charity intended by the original donors. In every such<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_385" id="Page_385">[385]</a></span>
-case the document reveals the fact that this suggestion
-in the interest of common justice was rejected by the
-ultimate Crown officials, and a plain intimation is
-afforded on the face of the documents that even those
-sums intended by the original donors for the relief of
-poverty were to be confiscated.</p>
-
-<p>The destruction of the guilds is, from any point of
-view, a sad and humiliating story, and, perhaps fortunately,
-history has so far permitted the thick veil of
-obscurity drawn over the subject at the time to remain
-practically undisturbed. A consideration of the
-scope and purposes of English mediæval guilds cannot
-but raise our opinion of the wisdom of our forefathers
-who fostered their growth, and convince us that many
-and useful ends were served by these voluntary societies.
-This opinion we can hold, wholly apart from any views
-we may entertain about the religious aspects of these
-societies generally. Socialistic they were, but their
-socialism, so far from being adverse to religion, as the
-socialism of to-day is generally considered to be, was
-transfused and directed by a deeply religious spirit,
-carried out into the duties of life, and manifesting itself
-in practical charities of every kind.</p>
-
-<p>One or two points suggested by consideration of
-the working of mediæval guilds may be emphasized.
-The system of these voluntary societies would be, of
-course, altogether impossible and out of place in this
-modern world of ours. They would not, and could
-not, meet the wants and needs of these days; and yet
-their working is quite worth studying by those who are
-interested in the social problems which nowadays
-are thrusting themselves upon the public notice and
-demanding a solution. The general lessons taught by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_386" id="Page_386">[386]</a></span>
-these voluntary associations may be summed up under
-one or two heads suggested by Mr. Ashley’s volume
-already referred to: (1) It is obvious that, unlike what we
-find to-day in the commercial enterprises of the world,
-capital played but a very small part in the handicrafts
-of those times; skill, perseverance, and connection
-were more important. (2) The middle ages had no
-knowledge of any class of what may be called permanent
-wage-labourers. There was no working-class
-in our modern sense: if by that is meant a class
-the greater portion of which never rises. In the
-fourteenth century, a few years of steady work as a
-journeyman meant, in most cases, that a workman was
-able to set up as a master craftsman. Every hardworking
-apprentice expected as a matter of course to
-be able to become in time a master. The collisions
-between capital and labour to which we are so much
-accustomed had no place in the middle ages. (3)
-There was no such gulf between master and man as
-exists in our days. The master and his journeyman
-worked together side by side, in the same shop, at the
-same work, and the man could earn fully half as much
-as his master. (4) If we desire to institute a comparison
-between the status of the working-classes in the
-fourteenth century and to-day, the comparison must
-be between the workman we know and the old master
-craftsman. The shop-keeping class and the middle-man
-were only just beginning to exist. The consumer
-and producer stood in close relation, and public control
-was exercised fully, as the craft guilds were subject
-to the supervision and direction of the municipal or
-central authority of the cities in which they existed.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_387" id="Page_387">[387]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XII" id="CHAPTER_XII"></a>CHAPTER XII<br />
-<span class="smaller">MEDIÆVAL WILLS, CHANTRIES, AND OBITS</span></h2>
-
-<p>The value of side-lights in an historical picture is frequently
-overlooked, or not duly appreciated. The main
-facts of a story may be presented with accuracy and
-detail, and yet the result may be as unlike the reality
-as the fleshless skeleton is to the living man. More
-especially are these side-lights requisite when the object
-of the inquirer is to ascertain the tone and temper
-of minds at some given time, and to discover what men,
-under given circumstances, were doing and thinking
-about. In trying, therefore, to gauge the mental attitude
-of Englishmen towards the ecclesiastical system
-existing on the eve of the Reformation, it is important
-not to neglect any faint glimmer of light which may
-be reflected from the records of the past, the brightness
-of which in its setting has been obscured only too well
-by the dark storm-clouds of controversy and prejudice.</p>
-
-<p>Not the least valuable among what may be described
-as the minor sources of information about the real feeling
-of the people generally towards their religion on the
-eve of the Reformation are the wills, of which we have
-abundant examples in the period in question. It may,
-of course, appear to some that their spirit was in great
-measure dictated by what they now hold to be the
-erroneous opinions then in vogue as to Purgatory and
-the efficacy of prayer for the dead. That these doctrines<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_388" id="Page_388">[388]</a></span>
-of the Church had a firm hold on the minds and
-hearts of the people at large is certain. The evidence
-that this was so is simply overwhelming, and it may be
-taken to prove, not merely the existence of the teaching,
-but the cordial and unhesitating way in which it
-was accepted as a necessary part of the Christian faith.
-But this, after all, is merely a minor point of interest in
-the wills of the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries. What
-clearly appears in these documents, however, is the
-Catholic tone which pervades them, and enables the
-reader to realise perhaps more than he is able to do
-from any other class of document, the strong hold their
-religion must have had on the love and intelligence of
-the people of those days. The intelligences may not,
-indeed, have been of any very high order, but the souls
-were certainly penetrated by true Christian ideals. To
-those who penned those early wills, Faith was clearly no
-mere intellectual apprehension of speculative truth. Religion,
-and religious observance, was to them a practical
-reality which entered into their daily lives. The kindly
-Spirit that led them, brought them strength to bear
-their own and others’ burdens, in sickness and health,
-in adversity and prosperity, from childhood till their
-eyes closed in their last sleep. If we may judge from
-these last aspirations of the Christian soul as displayed
-in mediæval wills, we must allow that religion was very
-real indeed to our English forefathers in the sixteenth
-century, and that in reality the whole social order was
-founded upon a true appreciation of the Christian
-brotherhood in man, and upon the doctrine of the
-efficacy of good works for salvation. These truths of
-the social order were not indeed taught perhaps scientifically,
-and we might look in vain for any technical expression<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_389" id="Page_389">[389]</a></span>
-of them in the books of religious instruction
-most used during this period, but they formed none the
-less part of the traditional Christian teaching of the
-Middle Ages founded on the great principles of the
-Bible which then dominated popular thought.<a name="FNanchor_349" id="FNanchor_349"></a><a href="#Footnote_349" class="fnanchor">[349]</a></p>
-
-<p>Those who would understand what this Christian
-spirit meant and the many ways in which it manifested
-itself, need only compare the wills of the late fifteenth
-and the early sixteenth centuries with those, say, of the
-later years of Queen Elizabeth, when the religious revolution
-had been accomplished, and note the obvious
-difference in tone and purpose. The comparison need
-not be searching or entail much study; the change is
-patent and striking, and lies on the very surface.</p>
-
-<p>Some examples of notes taken from pre-Reformation
-wills may be here given from the collection of Northern
-wills published by the Surtees Society under the title
-<i>Testamenta Eboracensia</i>, the fourth volume of which contains
-many wills made during the period in question.
-It may be useful to remark that one and all of these
-documents manifest the same spirit of practical Christianity,
-though of course in various degrees. Most of
-them contain bequests to churches with which the
-donors were chiefly connected; money is frequently
-left to the fabric, or to some special altar, or for
-the purchase of vestments, or to furnish some light<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_390" id="Page_390">[390]</a></span>
-to burn before the Blessed Sacrament, the rood or
-some image, to which the deceased had a particular
-devotion. Specific gifts of silks, rich articles of
-clothing and embroidered hangings fitted to adorn
-the Church of God, to make chasubles and copes,
-or altar curtains and frontals, are common. Practical
-sympathy with the poor is manifested by provision
-for distributions of doles at funerals and at
-anniversaries, and by gifts of cloaks and other articles
-of clothing, to those of the parish who were engaged in
-carrying torches at the burial, or had promised to offer
-up prayers for the soul of the testator. Besides these
-general features of interest, the wills in question show
-us that building operations of great magnitude were
-being carried on at this time in the parish churches of
-the North, and they thus furnish an additional proof of
-the very remarkable interest thus taken by the people
-at large in the rebuilding and adornment of the parish
-churches of England right up to the very overthrow of
-the old ecclesiastical system. These particular wills
-also bear a singular testimony to the kindly feelings
-which existed at this time between the general body of
-the clergy and the regular orders. Nearly every will of
-any cleric of note contains bequests of money to monks,
-nuns, and friars, whilst, in particular, those of the canons
-and officials of the great metropolitan church of York
-bear testimony to the affection and esteem in which
-they held the Abbot and monks of St. Mary’s Abbey in
-the same city, which from its close proximity to the
-minster might in these days have been regarded as its
-rival.</p>
-
-<p>As an illustration of the religious spirit which pervades
-these documents, we may take the following preface<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_391" id="Page_391">[391]</a></span>
-to the will of one John Dalton of Hull, made in
-1487.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_392" id="Page_392">[392]</a></span> “In nomine Patris et Filii et Spiritus Sancti.
-Amen. I, John Dalton of the Kingstown upon Hull&mdash;considering
-and remembering, think in my heart that
-the days of man in this mortal life are but short, that
-the hour of death is in the hand of Almighty God, and
-that He hath ordained the terms that no man may pass.
-I remember also that God hath ordained man to die,
-and that there is nothing more uncertain than the hour
-of death. I seeing princes and (men of) great estates
-die daily, and men of all ages end their days, and that
-death gives no certain respite to any living creature, but
-takes them suddenly. For these considerations, I, being
-in my right wit and mind, loved be God, whole not
-sick, beseech Almighty God that I may die the true son
-of Holy Church and of heart truly confessed, with contrition
-and repentance, of all my sins that ever I did
-since the first hour I was born of my mother into
-this sinful world, to the hour of my death. Of these
-offences I ask and beseech Almighty God pardon and
-forgiveness; and in this I beseech the Blessed Virgin
-Mary and her blessed Son Jesu, our Saviour, that
-suffered pain and passion for me and all sinful
-creatures, and all the holy company of Paradise to
-pray for me.… For these causes aforesaid, I, being
-alive of whole mind and memory, loved be God, dispose
-and ordain such goods as God hath lent me movable
-and immovable by my testament, and ordain this
-my last will in the form and manner that followeth:
-First, I recommend in humble devotion, contrition, and
-true repentance of my faults and sins, praying and
-craving mercy of our Saviour Jesus Christ … my
-soul to our Lord Jesus Christ when it shall depart from
-my body, and to our Lady St. Mary, Saint Michael, St.
-John the Baptist, St. John the Evangelist, St. Katherine
-and St. Barbara, and to all the whole company and
-saints of heaven: and my body I will to the earth
-whereof it came.”</p>
-
-<p>The testator then proceeds to direct that his executors
-shall give his wife a third of his property, and his
-children another third. The rest he wishes to be bestowed
-in charity as they may think best “to the
-pleasure of God and the health of my soul” … “as
-they shall answer before God at the dreadful day of
-doom. (Especially) I will them to pay my debts,
-charging them before God to discharge me and my
-soul; and in this let them do for me as they would I
-did for them, as I trust they will do.”<a name="FNanchor_350" id="FNanchor_350"></a><a href="#Footnote_350" class="fnanchor">[350]</a></p>
-
-<p>Of much the same character is the briefer Latin
-preface to the will of a sub-dean of York in 1490. “I
-protest before God Almighty, the Blessed Mary, and all
-saints, and I expressly proclaim that, no matter what
-infirmity of mental weakness may happen to me in this
-or any other sickness, it is not my intention in anything
-to swerve from the Catholic faith. On the contrary
-I firmly and faithly believe all the articles of faith,
-all the sacraments of the Church; and that the Church
-with its sacraments is sufficient for the salvation of any
-one however guilty.”<a name="FNanchor_351" id="FNanchor_351"></a><a href="#Footnote_351" class="fnanchor">[351]</a></p>
-
-<p>To take one more example of the same spirit,
-Thomas Dalton, merchant of Hull&mdash;probably son of
-the John Dalton whose will is quoted above&mdash;died in
-1497. After charging his wife, whom he leaves his
-executrix, to pay all his debts, he adds:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_393" id="Page_393">[393]</a></span> “And I will
-and give my mother forty shillings, beseeching her
-meekly to pray for me and to give me her daily blessing,
-and that she will forgive me all trespasses and faults
-done by me to her since I was born of her, as she will
-be forgiven before God at the great day of judgment.”<a name="FNanchor_352" id="FNanchor_352"></a><a href="#Footnote_352" class="fnanchor">[352]</a></p>
-
-<p>Much the same spirit evidently dictated the following
-clause in the will of John Sothill of Dewsbury, 1502:
-“Also I pray Thomas my son, in my name and for the
-love of God, that he never strive with his mother, as he
-will have my blessing, for he will find her courteous to
-deal with.”<a name="FNanchor_353" id="FNanchor_353"></a><a href="#Footnote_353" class="fnanchor">[353]</a></p>
-
-<p>Other examples of the catholicity of these mediæval
-wills may be here added as they are taken from the
-volume almost at haphazard. In 1487, a late mayor
-of the city of York leaves money to help in the repairs
-of many churches of the city and its neighbourhood.
-He charges his executors to provide for the maintenance
-of lamps and lights in several places, and specially
-names a gold ring with a diamond in it, which he desires
-may be hung round the neck of Our Lady’s statue in
-York Minster, and another with a turquoise “round our
-Lord’s neck that is in the arms of the said image of Our
-Lady.” After making provision for several series of
-masses to be said, as for example one of thirty in
-honour of the Holy Trinity, another in honour of the
-Holy Cross, a third in that of Our Lady, &amp;c., the testator
-bequeaths a large sum of money to dower fifteen
-poor girls, and to find fifty complete sets of beds and
-bedding for the poor, as well as other extensive charities.<a name="FNanchor_354" id="FNanchor_354"></a><a href="#Footnote_354" class="fnanchor">[354]</a></p>
-
-<p>Thomas Wood, a draper of Hull, was sheriff in
-1479 and died in 1490. By will he left to his parish<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_394" id="Page_394">[394]</a></span>
-church a piece of worked tapestry, and the clause by
-which the bequest was conveyed shows that the church
-already possessed many costly hangings of this kind.
-It runs thus: “To the Trinity Church one of my best
-beds of Arras work, upon condition that after my
-decease the said bed shall yearly cover my grave at my
-<i>Dirge</i> and Mass, done in the said Trinity Church with
-note (in singing) for ever more. Also I will that the
-said bed be yearly hung in the said church on the feast
-of St. George the Martyr among other worshipful beds,
-and when the said bed be taken down and delivered,
-then I will that the same bed be re-delivered into the
-vestry and there to remain with my cope of gold.”<a name="FNanchor_355" id="FNanchor_355"></a><a href="#Footnote_355" class="fnanchor">[355]</a></p>
-
-<p>The same kind of gift appears in the last testament
-of William Rowkshaw, Rector of Lowthorpe, in 1504.
-“I leave,” he says, “to the Church of Catton a bed-covering
-worked with great figures to lie in front of
-the High Altar on the chief feasts. And I leave also a
-bed-covering (worked) with the image of a lion (a blue
-lion was the family arms) to place in front of the altar
-in the parish church of Lowthorpe on the chief feasts.”
-Also in the will of William Graystoke of Wakefield,
-executed in 1508, there is made a gift to the parish
-church of “a cloth of arras work sometime hanging
-in the Hall.”<a name="FNanchor_356" id="FNanchor_356"></a><a href="#Footnote_356" class="fnanchor">[356]</a></p>
-
-<p>Poor scholars at the universities were not forgotten
-in the wills of the period. Mr. Martin Collins, Treasurer
-of York, for instance, in 1508 charges his executors to
-pay for a scholar at either Oxford or Cambridge for
-seven years to study canon law, or the arts. The only
-condition is that they are to choose him from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_395" id="Page_395">[395]</a></span>
-“poor and very needy, and even from the poorest and
-most necessitous.”<a name="FNanchor_357" id="FNanchor_357"></a><a href="#Footnote_357" class="fnanchor">[357]</a> So, too, William Copley in 1489
-leaves money to support two poor priests for the purpose
-of study at Cambridge. Archbishop Rotheram in
-his long and most Christian will, executed in June 1500,
-makes provision for the education of youth. He founds
-a college in the place of his birth&mdash;the College of Jesus
-at Rotheram&mdash;in thanksgiving for God’s providence in
-securing his own education. “For,” he says, “there
-came to Rotheram, I don’t know by what chance, but I
-believe by the special grace of God, a teacher of grammar,
-who taught me and other youths, and by whose
-means I and others with me rose in life. Wherefore
-desirous of returning thanks to our Saviour, and
-to proclaim the reason, and lest I might seem ungrateful
-and forgetful of God’s benefits and from whence I
-have come, I have determined first of all to establish
-there for ever a grammar master to teach all gratuitously.
-And because I have seen chantry priests boarding with
-lay people, one in one place one in another, to their
-own scandal and in some places ruin, I have desired, in
-the second place, to make them a common dwelling-house.
-For these reasons I have commenced to build
-the college of Jesus, where the head shall teach grammar
-and the others may board and sleep.” Moreover, as
-he has seen, he says, many unlettered and country
-folk from the hills (<i>rudi et montam</i>) attracted to church
-by the very beauty of ceremonial, he establishes at
-Rotheram a choir-master and six singing boys to add
-to the attraction of the services, and for such of these
-boys, who may not want to become priests, he endows
-a master to teach them the art of writing and arithmetic.<a name="FNanchor_358" id="FNanchor_358"></a><a href="#Footnote_358" class="fnanchor">[358]</a></p>
-
-<p>A merchant of Holme, one John Barton, after<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_396" id="Page_396">[396]</a></span>
-leaving legacies to his parish church, charges his
-executors to pay the king’s taxes for all people of the
-town assessed at 4d. and under, for two years after his
-death. John Barton was a merchant of the staple, and
-had made his wealth by the wool trade. At Holme
-he built “a fair stone house and a fair chapel like a
-parish church,” and to remind his descendants of the
-source whence their means had come, and in humble
-acknowledgment of God’s goodness to him, he set in
-the windows of his home the following posie&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“I thank God, and ever shall,</div>
-<div class="verse">It is the sheep hath payed for all.”<a name="FNanchor_359" id="FNanchor_359"></a><a href="#Footnote_359" class="fnanchor">[359]</a></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>As an example of specific bequests for pious
-purposes, we may take the following: Sir Gervase
-Clifton in 1491 gives many sums of money to churches
-in Yorkshire and to various chantries in Southwell
-Minster. For the use of these latter also, he directs
-that “all the altar cloths of silk, a bed of gold bawdkyne
-and another bed of russet satin, which belonged to
-(Archbishop Boothe of York) be delivered to make
-vestments.”<a name="FNanchor_360" id="FNanchor_360"></a><a href="#Footnote_360" class="fnanchor">[360]</a> In 1493-4, John Vavasour, Justice of
-the Common Pleas, leaves £100 in money to the
-monastery of Ellerton, to which he says he had previously
-given all his vestments. He names the Priors
-of Ellerton and Thorneholme his executors, and tells
-them that the Prior of the Charterhouse of Axholme
-has £800 of his in his keeping, and also that a chest of
-his plate is in charge of the London Carthusians.<a name="FNanchor_361" id="FNanchor_361"></a><a href="#Footnote_361" class="fnanchor">[361]</a></p>
-
-<p>Again Agnes Hildyard of Beverley, in 1497-8,
-leaves<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_397" id="Page_397">[397]</a></span> “an old gold noble to hang round the neck of
-the image of Our Lady in the church of Beverley,” some
-money to purchase a mantle for the statue of the
-Blessed Virgin at Fisholme, and another gold piece for
-the statue at Molescroft.<a name="FNanchor_362" id="FNanchor_362"></a><a href="#Footnote_362" class="fnanchor">[362]</a> About the same time Lady
-Scrope of Harling left “to the Rood of Northdor my
-heart of gold with a diamond in the midst. To Our
-Lady of Walsingham, ten of my great gold beads joined
-with silk of crimson and gold, with a button of gold,
-tasselled with the same.… To Our Lady of Pew ten
-of the same beads; to St. Edmund of Bury ten of the
-same; to St. Thomas of Canterbury, ten of the same;
-to my Lord Cardinal, ten aves with two <i>Paternosters</i>
-of the same beads; to Thomas Fynchman ten aves and
-two <i>Paternosters</i> of the same beads.”<a name="FNanchor_363" id="FNanchor_363"></a><a href="#Footnote_363" class="fnanchor">[363]</a> Again, in 1502,
-Elizabeth Swinburne bequeathed to the Carmelites of
-Newcastle a piece of silver to make a crown for the
-image of Our Lady at her altar “where my mother is
-buried,” and to Mount Grace a rosary, “fifty beads of
-gold, a hundred of corall, with all the gaudys of gold,”
-on condition that she and her mother might be considered
-<i>consorores</i> of the house, and that thirteen poor
-people might be fed on the day of her burial.<a name="FNanchor_364" id="FNanchor_364"></a><a href="#Footnote_364" class="fnanchor">[364]</a> So, too,
-a chain of gold is left to make a cup for the Blessed
-Sacrament, velvet and silk dresses to make vestments,<a name="FNanchor_365" id="FNanchor_365"></a><a href="#Footnote_365" class="fnanchor">[365]</a>
-plate to make a new chrismatory, crystal beads to
-adorn the monstrance used on Corpus feast day.<a name="FNanchor_366" id="FNanchor_366"></a><a href="#Footnote_366" class="fnanchor">[366]</a></p>
-
-<p>William Sheffield, Dean of York, whose will is dated
-1496, after some few bequests to friends, leaves the
-residue to the poor, and he thus explains the reason:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_398" id="Page_398">[398]</a></span>
-“Also I will that the residue of my goods be distributed
-among the poor parishioners in each of the benefices
-I have held, according to the discretion of my
-executors, so that they may be bestowed more or less
-in proportion to the time of my living and keeping
-hospitality in them; for the goods of the church are
-the riches of the poor, and so the distribution of church
-goods is a serious matter of conscience, and on those
-badly disposing of them Jesus have mercy.”<a name="FNanchor_367" id="FNanchor_367"></a><a href="#Footnote_367" class="fnanchor">[367]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Vicar of Wighill, William Burton, in 1498-9,
-left a sum of money to remain in the hands of his
-successors for ever “to ease poor folk of the parish, for
-to pay their farms with, so that the said people set not
-their goods at wainworth (<i>i.e.</i> cartloads&mdash;what they
-would fetch), and that they have a reasonable day to
-pay the said silver again duly and truly to the Vicar for
-the time being, and the said Vicar to ask and keep eyes
-(aye) to the same intent, as he will answer for it at the
-dreadful day of judgment betwixt God and the devil;
-and he shall not lend the foresaid money for any tax or
-tallage, nor for any common purpose of the town, but
-only to the said poor men.” With kindly thought for
-the young among his old flock, the Vicar adds a
-bequest of 4d. “to every house poor and rich among
-the children.”<a name="FNanchor_368" id="FNanchor_368"></a><a href="#Footnote_368" class="fnanchor">[368]</a></p>
-
-<p>The above is not by any means an isolated instance
-of a sum, or sums, of money being left to assist the
-poorer members of the Christian brotherhood, represented
-by the parish, with temporary loans. One
-document sets out the working of such a common
-parish chest under the supervision of the priest. The
-original chest and the necessary funds for starting this
-work of benevolence were furnished by one of the
-parishioners. In order to maintain<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_399" id="Page_399">[399]</a></span> “this most pious
-object,” as it is called, the rector undertakes to read
-out the name of the original donor at the “bedes-bidding”
-on principal feasts, together with those of all
-who may subsequently add to the capital sum by alms
-or legacies, in order that people might be reminded of
-their duty to offer up prayers for the eternal welfare of
-their benefactors. The chest was to have three locks,
-the keys being kept by the rector and the two wardens.
-Those who might need to borrow temporarily from the
-common stock to meet their rent, purchase of seed or
-stock, or for any other purpose, were to bring pledges
-to the full value of the loan, or else to find known
-sureties for the amount. No single person was to be
-surety for more than six shillings and eightpence, and
-for wise and obvious reasons the parish priest was not
-to be allowed to stand security under any circumstances.
-The loan was for a year, and if at the end of that time
-the pledge was not redeemed, it was to be sold, but all
-that it might fetch over and above the amount of the
-original loan was to be returned to the borrower.<a name="FNanchor_369" id="FNanchor_369"></a><a href="#Footnote_369" class="fnanchor">[369]</a></p>
-
-<p>In close connection with the subject of wills in
-pre-Reformation times is that of chantries and obits.
-Both these two institutions of the later mediæval church
-in England have been commonly much misunderstood
-and misrepresented. Most writers regard them only
-in the light of the doctrine of Purgatory, and as illustrating
-the extent to which the necessity of praying for
-the dead was impressed upon the people by the ecclesiastical
-authorities, and that with a view to their own
-profit. It has come, therefore, to be believed that a
-“chantry” only meant a place (chapel or other locality)
-connected with the parish church, where masses were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_400" id="Page_400">[400]</a></span>
-offered for the repose of the soul of the donor, and
-other specified benefactors. No doubt there were such
-chantries existing, but to imagine that all followed this
-rule is wholly to mistake the purpose of such foundations.
-Speaking broadly, the chantry priests were the
-assistant priests or, as we should nowadays say, the
-curates of the parish, who were supported by the
-foundation funds which benefactors had left or given
-for that purpose, and even not infrequently by the
-contributions of the inhabitants. To speak the language
-of our own time the system held the place of
-the “additional curates” or “pastoral aid” societies.
-For the most part the <i>raison d’être</i> of these chantry
-priests was to look after the poor of the parish, to visit
-the sick, and to assist in the functions of the parish
-church. By universal custom, and even by statute
-law of the English Church, every chaplain and chantry
-priest, besides the fulfilment of the functions of his
-own special benefice, was bound to be at the disposition
-of the parish priest in the common services of
-the parish church. His presence was required in the
-choir, vested in a surplice or other ecclesiastical dress
-proper to his station, or as one of the sacred ministers
-of the altar, should his services be so required. In
-this way the existence of guild chaplains, chantry
-priests, and others, added to the dignity of the ecclesiastical
-offices and the splendour of the ceremonial
-in most parish churches throughout the country, and
-afforded material and often necessary assistance in the
-working of the parish.</p>
-
-<p>It will give, perhaps, a better idea of the functions
-of a chantry priest on the eve of the Reformation than
-can be obtained by any description, to take an example<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_401" id="Page_401">[401]</a></span>
-of the foundation made for a chantry at the altar of
-Saint Anne in the church of Badsworth. It was
-founded in 1510 to pray for the soul of Isabella, wife
-of William Vavasour, and daughter of Robert Urswick.
-The charter deed ordains that the chaplain shall be a
-secular priest, without other benefice, and that he should
-say a Requiem each week with <i>Placebo</i> and <i>Dirige</i>. At
-the first lavatory of the Mass he is to turn to the people
-and exhort them to pray for the soul of the founder,
-saying <i>De Profundis</i> and the prayer <i>Inclina Domine</i>.
-Once every year there is to be an anniversary service
-on Tuesday in Easter week, when ten shillings and
-eightpence is to be distributed to the poor under the
-direction of the rector. The chaplain is to be learned
-in grammar and plain song, and should be present in
-the choir of the parish church at Matins, Mass, Vespers,
-and Compline, with other divine services on Sundays
-and feasts, when he is to take what part the rector shall
-ordain. He is not to be absent for more than a month,
-and then only with leave of the rector, by whom, for
-certain specified offences, he may be deprived of his
-office.<a name="FNanchor_370" id="FNanchor_370"></a><a href="#Footnote_370" class="fnanchor">[370]</a></p>
-
-<p>In these chantries were established services for the
-dead commonly called “obits.” These were not, as we
-have been asked to believe, mere money payments to the
-priest for anniversary services, but were, for the most
-part, bequests left quite as much for annual alms to the
-poor as for the celebration of those services. A few
-examples will illustrate this better than any explanation.
-In the town of Nottingham there were two chantries
-connected with the parish church of St. Mary, that of
-our Lady and that called Amyas Chantry. The former,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_402" id="Page_402">[402]</a></span>
-according to the record, was founded “to maintain the
-services and to be an aid to the Vicar and partly to
-succour the poor;” the latter, to assist in “God’s service,”
-and to pray for William Amyas the founder. When the
-commissioners, in the first year of Edward VI., came to
-inquire into the possession of these chantries, they were
-asked to note that in this parish there were “1400
-houseling people, and that the vicar there had no other
-priests to help but the above two chantry priests.”
-They were not, of course, spared on this account, for
-within two years the property, upon which these two
-priests were supported, had been sold to two speculators
-in such parcels of land&mdash;John Howe and John Broxholme.</p>
-
-<p>Then again, in the parish of St. Nicholas, in the
-same town, we find from the returns that the members
-of the Guild of the Virgin contributed to the support of
-a priest. In that parish there were more than 200
-houseling people, and as the living was very poor, there
-was absolutely no other priest to look after them but
-this one, John Chester, who was paid by the guild.
-The king’s officials, however, did not hesitate on this
-account to confiscate the property. It is needless to
-adduce other instances of this kind, some scores of
-which might be given in the county of Nottingham
-alone. As an example of “obits” and the purposes
-for which they were intended, the following instances
-may be given, which it must be remembered could be
-multiplied to any extent. From the returns of the commissioners
-in Nottinghamshire we find that in the parish
-of South Wheatley there were parish lands let out to farm
-which produced eighteenpence a year, say from eighteen
-shillings to a pound of our money. Of this sum, one<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_403" id="Page_403">[403]</a></span>
-shilling was for the poor, and sixpence for church lights;
-that is two-thirds, or, say, 16s. of our money, was for the
-relief of the distressed. So in the parish of Tuxford, the
-church “obit” lands produced £1, 5s. 4d., or about
-£16 a year; of which 16s. 4d. was for the poor and
-9s. for the church services.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Thorold Rogers, speaking of the endowments
-left by generations of Englishmen for the support of
-chantries, obits, &amp;c., says: “The ancient tenements
-which are still the property of the London companies
-were originally burdened with masses for donors. In
-the country, the parochial clergy undertook the services
-of these chantries … and the establishment of a mass
-or chantry priest at a fixed stipend in a church with
-which he had no other relation, was a common form of
-endowment. The residue, if any, of the revenue derivable
-from these tenements was made the common
-property of the guild, and as the continuity of the
-service was the great object of its establishment, the
-donor, like the modern trustee of a life income, took
-care that there should be a surplus from the foundation.
-The land or house was let, and the guild consented
-to find the ministration which formed the motive of the
-grant.”<a name="FNanchor_371" id="FNanchor_371"></a><a href="#Footnote_371" class="fnanchor">[371]</a></p>
-
-<p>This is very true, but it is questionable whether Mr.
-Thorold Rogers appreciated the extent to which these
-chantry funds were intended to be devoted to purposes
-other than the performance of the specified religious
-services. A couple of examples have been given in
-Nottinghamshire, and to these may be added one in
-the south of England. In connection with the parish
-church of Alton, in Hampshire, there were, on the eve<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_404" id="Page_404">[404]</a></span>
-of the Reformation, six foundations for obits. The following
-is the account of these taken from the chantry
-certificates made by the king’s commissioners in the
-first year of the reign of Edward VI.: (1) “Issues of
-land for an obit for John Pigott, growing and coming
-out of certain houses and lands in Alton for to maintain
-for ever a yearly obit there, in the tenure of Thomas
-Mathew, of the yearly value of 23s. 4d.; whereof to the
-poor 15s. 4d., to the parish priest and his clerk 8s. (2)
-The same for an obit for William Reding, of the annual
-value of 15s., of which the poor were to have 10s. and
-the priest and his clerk 5s. (3) The same for Alice
-Hacker, of the yearly value of 10s., of which the poor
-were to get 7s. 8d. and the priest 2s. 4d. (4) Another
-of the value of 4s., the poor to get 2s. 10d. and the priest
-1s. 2d. (5) Another for the soul of Nicholas Bailey,
-worth annually 11s., and of this 7s. 8d. was intended
-for the poor and 3s. 4d. for the clergy. (6) Another
-for Nicholas Crushelon, worth annually 4s. 4d., the poor
-to have 3s. 1d. and the priest 1s. 3d.” In this parish
-of Alton, therefore, these six foundations for “obits” or
-anniversaries produced a total of 77s. 8d., but so far
-from the whole sum being spent upon priests’ stipends,
-lights, and singing men, we find that considerably more
-than half, namely 46s. 7d., was bestowed upon the relief
-of the poor of the parish. Or if we take the value of
-money in those days as only twelve times that of our
-present money, out of a total of £36, 12s. some £27, 19s.
-went to the support of the poor.</p>
-
-<p>It is obvious that the general advantages derived by
-a parish from the foundation of these chantries and
-obits have been commonly overlooked, and the notion
-that they were intended for no other purpose than procuring<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_405" id="Page_405">[405]</a></span>
-prayers for the dead, and that in fact they served
-no other end, is altogether misleading and erroneous.
-Without the assistance of the clergy, so supported by
-the generosity of those who left money for these foundations,
-the religious services in many of the parish
-churches of England in pre-Reformation times could
-not have been so fittingly or even adequately provided
-for. Wherever information is available this view is
-borne out, and it is altogether to mistake the true bearing
-of facts to suppose that in suppressing the chantries
-and appropriating the endowment of obits the officials of
-Edward VI. merely put an end to superstitious prayers
-for the souls in Purgatory. In reality they deprived
-the poor of much property left by deceased persons for
-their relief, and took away from every parish in England
-the assistance of the unbeneficed clergy who had hitherto
-helped to support the dignity of God’s worship and look
-after the souls of the people in the larger districts.</p>
-
-<p>One instance may be given to illustrate how far the
-chantry clergy actually took part in the work of the
-parish. At Henley on Thames, on the eve of the
-Reformation, there were seven chapels or chantries&mdash;namely,
-those of Our Lady, St. Katherine, St. Clement,
-St. Nicholas, St. Ann, St. John, and St. Leonard. These
-were all supported by various bequests, and the four
-priests who served them all resided in a common house
-situated in the churchyard known as “the chapel-house,”
-or “the four priest chambers.” The disposition of the
-services of these chaplains was apparently in the hands
-of the “Warden and the commonalty” of the township,
-and for the convenience of the people they arrange, for
-example, that the chaplain of the Lady altar shall say
-his mass there every day at six in the morning, and that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_406" id="Page_406">[406]</a></span>
-the priest in charge of St. Katherine’s shall always begin
-his at eight.<a name="FNanchor_372" id="FNanchor_372"></a><a href="#Footnote_372" class="fnanchor">[372]</a></p>
-
-<p>“To maintain God’s service” is perhaps the most
-common reason assigned to King Edward’s commission
-for the existence of a chantry, or chantries, in connection
-with a parish church. Thus at Edwinstowe, in
-Nottinghamshire, there was a chantry chapel a mile
-from the parish church known as Clipston Chantry.
-The priest was John Thompson, and he had £5 a year,
-and “hath no mansion but a parlour under the chapel.”<a name="FNanchor_373" id="FNanchor_373"></a><a href="#Footnote_373" class="fnanchor">[373]</a>
-At Harworth in the same county there was the hospital
-of St. Mary’s of Bawtree, founded by Robert Morton to
-serve the people two miles from the parish church.
-The priest had a mansion and close, “and had to say
-Mass every morning before sunrise, for such as be
-travellers by the way and to maintain God’s service
-there, which towne is also a thoroughfare towne.”<a name="FNanchor_374" id="FNanchor_374"></a><a href="#Footnote_374" class="fnanchor">[374]</a> At
-Hayton, still in the same county, also two miles from
-the parish church, was the chantry of Tilne, founded
-for a priest to serve the villages of North and South
-Tilne “to celebrate mass and minister the sacraments
-to the inhabitants adjoining, for that they for the greatness
-of the waters cannot divers times in the year repair
-to the parish church.” For “the water doth abound
-so much within the said hamlets that the inhabitants
-thereof can by no means resort into their parish church
-of Hayton, being two miles distant from the said chapel,
-neither for christening, burying, nor other rights.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_407" id="Page_407">[407]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_375" id="FNanchor_375"></a><a href="#Footnote_375" class="fnanchor">[375]</a></p>
-
-<p>The purposes which these chantry priests were
-intended to serve is seen to be the same all over England.
-To take Suffolk for example: at Redgrave, near
-Eye, or rather at Botesdale, a hamlet about a mile and
-a half from Redgrave, there was a chapel of “ancient
-standing for the ease of the inhabitants of the said street,
-which was first built at their cost, whereunto do belong
-no other than the chapel yard.” The “street” consisted
-of forty-six householders, and by estimation
-a hundred and sixty houselings. It was “a common
-thoroughfare and hath a liberty of market.” These
-matters “the poor inhabitants” submitted to the King;
-it is unnecessary to say without success.<a name="FNanchor_376" id="FNanchor_376"></a><a href="#Footnote_376" class="fnanchor">[376]</a> At Levenham
-the alderman of St. Peter’s Guild held certain
-lands to find a priest who was to teach the children of
-the town, and was to be “secondary to the curate, who
-without help of another priest is not able to serve the
-cure there,” as there were two thousand souls in the
-district.<a name="FNanchor_377" id="FNanchor_377"></a><a href="#Footnote_377" class="fnanchor">[377]</a> So, too, at Mildenhall there was a chantry
-established, as the parish was long and populous, “having
-a great number of houseling people and sundry
-hamlets, divers of them having chapels distant from the
-parish church one mile or two miles, where the said
-priest did sing Mass sundry festival days and other holy
-days, and also help the curate to minister the Sacraments,
-who without help were not able to discharge his cure.”<a name="FNanchor_378" id="FNanchor_378"></a><a href="#Footnote_378" class="fnanchor">[378]</a>
-At Southwold were four cottages left by one John Perce
-for an “obit.” The property produced twenty shillings
-a year, and of this sum ten shillings were to be distributed
-to the poor; eight shillings to maintain the town
-and pay the taxes of the poor, and two shillings to be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_408" id="Page_408">[408]</a></span>
-paid to the parson and his clerk for their services in
-church. There was also in the same town a tenement
-called Skilman’s, intended to supply a stipendiary priest
-for sixteen years to the parish, and after that to go to
-the town. The sixteen years were up when the royal
-commissioners visited the town, and the whole sum was
-then being spent on the town. In vain the people
-pleaded that “it was to be considered that the said
-town of Southwold is a very poor town, whereupon the
-sea lies beating daily, to the great ruin and destruction
-of the said town, if that the power and violence of the
-same were not broken by the maintenance of jetties
-and piers there, and that the maintenance of the haven
-and bridge of the same town is likewise very chargeable.”
-The marsh belonging to the said tenement, called Skilman’s,
-is let to the poor inhabitants of the same town,
-every man paying for his cowgate by the year 20d. only
-“to the great relief of the poor.”<a name="FNanchor_379" id="FNanchor_379"></a><a href="#Footnote_379" class="fnanchor">[379]</a></p>
-
-<p>So, too, the Aldermen of the Guild of the Holy
-Ghost in Beccles held lands to supply a priest to assist
-in the parish for ninety-nine years, to find money to
-pay the tenths, fifteenths, and other taxes, and for
-other charitable purposes. The property brought in
-£10, 9s. 4d., and each year the poor received forty
-shillings; thirty shillings went to pay for the taxes,
-and the rest&mdash;some £6&mdash;to the priest. In order to
-induce the king to leave this fund untouched, the commissioners
-of 1547 are asked to note “that Beccles is
-a great and populous town,” there being eight hundred
-houselings, “and the said priest is aiding unto the
-curate there, who without help is not able to discharge
-the said cure.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_409" id="Page_409">[409]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_380" id="FNanchor_380"></a><a href="#Footnote_380" class="fnanchor">[380]</a></p>
-
-<p>The case of Bury St. Edmunds is particularly
-distressing. Amongst other charities, lands had been
-left by will or given by various benefactors to find
-priests to serve St. Mary’s, to sing “the Jesus Mass,”
-and to act as chaplain at the Lady altar. Property also
-was given in charge of St. Nicholas Guild of the annual
-value of 25s. 4d., of which sum 22s. was to be distributed
-to the poor of the town, and the rest was to go to the
-annual anniversary services for members of the guild.
-More property, too, had been left by one Margaret
-Oldham for a priest to say Mass in the church of St.
-James on the week days, and in the jail on the Sundays,
-and to find the poor prisoners in wood for a fire during
-winter months. There were several other similar benefactions
-of the same kind, and the parishioners of St.
-James’s church “gathered weekly of their devotion”
-the stipend of a priest paid to say “the morrow Mass”&mdash;that
-is, the Mass at daybreak intended for those who
-had to go early to their daily work. When the royal
-commissioners came on behalf of the said Edward VI.
-to gather in these spoils at Bury, they were asked
-to forward to the authorities in London the following
-plea for pity: “It is to be considered that the said
-town of Bury is a great and populous town, having in
-it two parish churches, and in the parishes of the same
-above the number of 3000 houseling persons, and a
-great number of youth. And the king’s majesty hath
-all the tithes and all the profits yearly coming and
-growing within the same parishes,<a name="FNanchor_381" id="FNanchor_381"></a><a href="#Footnote_381" class="fnanchor">[381]</a> finding two parish
-priests there. And the said two parish priests are not
-able to serve and discharge the said cures without aid
-and help of other priests. And further, there is no<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_410" id="Page_410">[410]</a></span>
-school, nor other like foundation, within the said town,
-nor within twenty miles of it, for the virtuous education
-and bringing up of youth, nor any hospital or other
-like foundation for the comfort and relief of the poor,
-of which there is an exceeding great number within the
-said town other than what are before mentioned, of
-which the said incumbents do now take the whole<a name="FNanchor_382" id="FNanchor_382"></a><a href="#Footnote_382" class="fnanchor">[382]</a>
-yearly revenues and profits, and distribute no part
-thereof to the aid and comfort or relief of the said
-poor people.</p>
-
-<p>“In consideration whereof it may please the king’s
-majesty of his most charitable benignity, moved with
-pity in that behalf, to convert the revenues and profits
-of the sum of the said promotions into some godly
-foundation, whereby the said poor inhabitants, daily
-there multiplying, may be relieved, and the youth instructed
-and brought up virtuously, or otherwise, according
-to his most godly and discreet wisdom, and the
-inhabitants shall daily pray to God for the prosperous
-preservation of his most excellent majesty, long to
-endure.”<a name="FNanchor_383" id="FNanchor_383"></a><a href="#Footnote_383" class="fnanchor">[383]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is hardly necessary to say that the petition had
-no effect. At Bury, as indeed all over England, the
-claims of the sick and poor were disregarded and the
-money passed into the possession of the crown. The
-hospitals that mediæval charity had erected and supported<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_411" id="Page_411">[411]</a></span>
-were destroyed; the youth remained untaught;
-the poor were deprived of the charity which had
-been, as it was supposed, secured to them for ever by
-the wills of generations of Catholic benefactors; the
-poor prisoners in the jail at Bury had to go without
-their Sunday Mass and their winter fire; whilst the
-money that had hitherto supported chaplains and
-chantry priests to assist the parish priests in the care
-of their districts was taken by the crown.</p>
-
-<p>For Yorkshire the certificates of the commissioners
-have been published by the Surtees Society. The
-same impression as to the utility and purpose of the
-chantry and other assisting priests may be gathered
-from almost every page. For example, the chantry
-of St. Katherine in the parish church of Selby:
-“The necessity thereof is to do divine service, and
-help the parish priest in time of necessity to minister
-sacraments and sacramentals and other divine services.”…
-For “the said parish of Selby is a great
-parish, having but one curate, and in the same parish
-is a thousand houseling people; and the said curate has
-no help in time of necessity but only the said chauntry
-priest.”<a name="FNanchor_384" id="FNanchor_384"></a><a href="#Footnote_384" class="fnanchor">[384]</a></p>
-
-<p>Again: “Two chantries of our Lady in the parish
-church of Leeds, ‘founded by the parishioners there to
-serve in the choir and to minister sacraments and other
-divine service, as shall be appointed by the vicar and
-other honest parishioners there, which they do.…
-The necessity thereof is to do divine service, to help the
-curate, and minister the Sacraments, having 3000
-houseling people.’”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_412" id="Page_412">[412]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_385" id="FNanchor_385"></a><a href="#Footnote_385" class="fnanchor">[385]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the same parish church, the chantry of St. Mary
-Magdalene was “founded by William Evers, late vicar
-of Leeds, to pray for the soul of the founder and all
-Christian souls, to minister at the altar of St. Mary
-Magdalene, to keep one yearly obit, with seven shillings
-to be distributed, and to serve in the choir at divine
-service all holy days and festival days, as appears by
-the foundation deed thereof, dated <span class="smcap">A.D.</span> 1524.”<a name="FNanchor_386" id="FNanchor_386"></a><a href="#Footnote_386" class="fnanchor">[386]</a></p>
-
-<p>One more example may be taken out of the hundreds
-in these volumes: “The chantry, or donative, within
-the chapel of Holbecke in the parish of Leeds, ‘the
-incumbent is used to say daily mass there and is taken
-for a stipendiary priest paying tithes. And there is a
-great river between the said parish church and the
-chapel, whereby they can by no means often pass to
-the said church.… The said chantry is distant from
-the said parish church one mile. The necessity thereof
-is to do divine service according to the foundation.’”<a name="FNanchor_387" id="FNanchor_387"></a><a href="#Footnote_387" class="fnanchor">[387]</a></p>
-
-<p>A few words enforcing the lesson to be learned
-from these extracts taken from the preface to the second
-part of these interesting Yorkshire records may be here
-given. Mr. Page, the editor, says: “Up to the time of
-the Reformation nearly all education was maintained
-by the church, and when the chantries were dissolved
-practically the whole of the secondary education of the
-country would have been swept away, had not some
-provision for the instruction of the middle and lower
-classes been made by continuing, under new ordinances,
-some of the educational endowments which pious
-founders had previously provided.”<a name="FNanchor_388" id="FNanchor_388"></a><a href="#Footnote_388" class="fnanchor">[388]</a></p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_413" id="Page_413">[413]</a></span></p>
-<p>“The next most important class of foundations,
-some of which were continued under the commission
-… consisted of the chapels of ease, which were much
-required in extensive parishes with a scattered population,
-and had been generally founded by the parishioners
-for their own convenience. It seems, therefore, that
-the dissolution of these chapels was a peculiar hardship.
-As early as 1233, the Pope granted licence to the archbishop
-of York to build oratories or chapels and to
-appoint to them priests, in places so distant from the
-parish churches that the people could with difficulty
-attend divine service, and the sick died before the priest
-could get to them to administer the last sacraments.
-The necessity for these chapels of ease was especially
-felt in Yorkshire, where the inhabitants of so many
-outlying hamlets were cut off from their parish churches
-in winter time by impassable roads and flooded rivers,
-which is the reason time after time assigned by the commissioners,
-for the necessity of the existence of such
-chapels; and yet comparatively few of them were recommended
-for continuance by Sir Walter Mildmay and
-Robert Kelway in the returns to the commission.
-Possibly, it was the loss of the endowments of Ayton
-chapel which occasioned the insurrection at Leamer
-… which chapel the inhabitants so piously kept up
-afterwards at their own expense.”<a name="FNanchor_389" id="FNanchor_389"></a><a href="#Footnote_389" class="fnanchor">[389]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_414" id="Page_414">[414]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“In most cases, the chantry priest seems to have
-acted in much the same capacity in a parish as that
-now occupied by the curate; he assisted the parish
-priest in performing mass, hearing confessions and
-visiting the sick, and also helped in the ordinary
-services of the church; the few only were licensed to
-preach, like the schoolmaster at Giggleswick. In the
-Cathedral Church at York, besides praying for the soul
-of his founder and all Christian souls, each chantry
-priest had to be present in the choir in his habit of a
-parson on all principal and double feast days, Sundays,
-and nine lections, at Matins, Mass, Evensong, and processions,
-when he had to read lessons, begin anthems,
-and to minister at the high altar as should be appointed
-to him by the officers of the choir. Besides these
-purely ecclesiastical duties, very many of the chantry
-priests were bound to teach a certain number of the
-children of the neighbourhood, which was the origin of
-most of our Grammar schools.”<a name="FNanchor_390" id="FNanchor_390"></a><a href="#Footnote_390" class="fnanchor">[390]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_415" id="Page_415">[415]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XIII" id="CHAPTER_XIII"></a>CHAPTER XIII<br />
-<span class="smaller">PILGRIMAGES AND RELICS</span></h2>
-
-<p>Pilgrimages and the honour shown to relics are
-frequently pointed out as, with Indulgences, among
-the most objectionable features of the pre-Reformation
-ecclesiastical system. It is assumed that on the eve of
-the religious changes the abuses in these matters were
-so patent, that no voice was, or indeed could have been,
-raised in their defence, and it is asserted that they were
-swept away without regret or protest as one of the most
-obvious and necessary items in the general purification
-of the mediæval church initiated in the reign of Henry
-VIII. That they had indeed been tolerated at all even
-up to the time of their final overthrow was in part, if
-not entirely, due to the clergy, and in particular to the
-monks who, as they derived much pecuniary benefit
-from encouraging such practices, did not scruple to
-inculcate by every means in their power the spiritual
-advantages to be derived from them. That the objectionable
-features of these so-called works of piety had
-long been recognised, is taken for granted, and the
-examinations of people suspected of entertaining Wycliffite
-opinions are pointed to as proof that earnest men
-were alive to these abuses for more than a century
-before religion was purified from them. As conclusive
-evidence of this, the names, too, of Chaucer for early
-times, and of Erasmus for the Reform period, are given<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_416" id="Page_416">[416]</a></span>
-as those whose condemnation and even scornful rejection
-of such practices cannot be doubted. It becomes
-important, then, for a right understanding of the mental
-attitude of the people generally to the existing ecclesiastical
-system at the time of its overthrow, to see how
-far the outcry against pilgrimages and the devotion to
-relics was really popular, and what were the precise
-objections taken to them by the innovators.</p>
-
-<p>It is difficult to exaggerate the importance attached
-to pilgrimages by our pre-Reformation forefathers.
-From very early times the practice was followed
-with eagerness, not to say with devotion, and included
-not merely visits to the shrines situated within
-the country itself, but long and often perilous journeys
-into foreign lands&mdash;to Compostella, Rome, and to the
-Holy Land itself. These foreign pilgrimages of course
-could be undertaken only by the rich, or by those for
-whom the requisite money was found by some one
-unable to undertake the journey in person. Not infrequently
-the early English wills contain injunctions
-upon the executors to defray the cost of some poor
-pilgrim to Spain, to Rome, or to some of the noted
-shrines on the Continent. The English love for these
-works of piety in nowise showed any sign of decadence
-even right up to the period of change. Books furnishing
-intending pilgrims with necessary information,
-and vocabularies, even in Greek, were prepared to assist
-them in their voyages. The itineraries of William
-Wey, printed by the Roxburghe Club, give a very
-good idea of what these great religious pilgrimages must
-have been like at the close of the fifteenth century. In
-1462 Wey was in the Holy Land, and describes how
-joyfully the pilgrims on landing at Jaffa sang the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_417" id="Page_417">[417]</a></span>
-“<i>Urbs beata Jerusalem</i> in faburthyn.” In 1456 he
-took part in a large English pilgrimage to St. James
-of Compostella, leaving Plymouth with a shipload of
-English fellow-pilgrims on May 17. William Wey’s
-ship was named the <i>Mary White</i>, and in company with
-them six other English ships brought pilgrims from
-Portsmouth, Bristol, Weymouth, Lymington, and a
-second from Plymouth. They reached Corunna on
-May 21st, and Compostella for the great celebration of
-Trinity Day. Wey was evidently much honoured by
-being pointed out to the church officials as the chief
-Englishman of note present, and he was given the post
-of first bearer of the canopy in the procession of the
-Blessed Sacrament. Four out of the six poles were
-carried by his countrymen, whom he names as Austill,
-Gale, and Fulford.</p>
-
-<p>On their return the pilgrims spent three days at
-Corunna. They were not allowed to be idle, but religious
-festivities must have occupied most of their time.
-On Wednesday, the eve of Corpus Christi day, there
-was a procession of English pilgrims throughout the
-city and a mass in honour of the Blessed Virgin. On
-Corpus Christi itself their procession was in the Franciscan
-church, and a sermon was preached in English
-by an English Bachelor in Theology on the theme, <i>Ecce
-ego; vocasti me</i>. “No other nation,” says William Wey,
-somewhat proudly, “had these special services but the
-English.” In the first port there were ships belonging
-to English, Welsh, Irish, Norman, French, and Breton,
-and the English alone had two and thirty.</p>
-
-<p>Such journeys were not, of course, in those days
-devoid of danger, especially from sickness brought on,
-or developed in the course of the travels. Erasmus, in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_418" id="Page_418">[418]</a></span>
-his <i>Colloquy on Rash Vows</i>, speaks of losing three in a
-company. “One dying on the way commissioned us
-to salute Peter (in Rome) and James (at Compostella)
-in his name. Another we lost at Rome, and he desired
-that we should greet his wife and children for him.
-The third we left behind at Florence, his recovery
-entirely despaired of, and I imagine he is now in
-heaven.” That this account of the mortality among
-pilgrims is not exaggerated is shown in the diary of Sir
-Richard Torkington, Rector of Mulbarton, in Norfolk.
-In 1517 he made a pilgrimage to Jerusalem, and records
-on “the 25th of August, that was Saynt Bertolmew’s
-day, deceased Robert Crosse of London, and was
-buried in the churchyard of Salyus (in the island of
-Cyprus); and the 27th day of August deceased Sir
-Thomas Tappe, a priest of the West country, and was
-cast over the board; as were many more whose souls
-God assoyl; and then there remained in the ship four
-English priests more.”<a name="FNanchor_391" id="FNanchor_391"></a><a href="#Footnote_391" class="fnanchor">[391]</a></p>
-
-<p>If Englishmen went abroad to the celebrated
-shrines, foreigners in turn found their way to the
-no less renowned places of pilgrimage in England.
-Pilgrims’ inns and places of rest were scattered over
-the great roads leading to Glastonbury, Walsingham,
-and Canterbury, and other “holy spots” in this island,
-and at times these places were thronged with those who
-came to pay their devotion. At one time we are told
-that more than a hundred thousand pilgrims were together
-in the city of Canterbury to celebrate one of the
-Jubilee celebrations of the martyr St. Thomas; whilst
-the road to Walsingham was so much frequented, that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_419" id="Page_419">[419]</a></span>
-in the common mind the very “milk way” had been
-set by Providence in the heaven to point the path to
-Our Lady’s shrine.</p>
-
-<p>With the very question of pilgrimages, Sir Thomas
-More actually deals in the first portion of his <i>Dyalogue</i>,
-and it would be difficult to find any authority who
-should carry greater weight. He first deals with the
-outcry raised by the followers of Luther against the
-riches which had been lavished upon the churches, and
-in particular upon the shrines containing the relics of
-saints.</p>
-
-<p>Those who so loudly condemn this devotion shown
-by the church to the saints should know, he says “that
-the church worships not the saints as God, but as God’s
-servants, and therefore the honour that is done to them
-redoundeth principally to the honour of their Master;
-just as by common custom of people we sometimes, for
-their master’s sake, reverence and make great cheer for
-people to whom perhaps except for this we would not
-have said<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_420" id="Page_420">[420]</a></span> ‘good morrow.’</p>
-
-<p>“And sure if any benefit or alms, done to one of
-Christ’s poor folk for his sake, be reputed and accepted
-by His high goodness, as done unto Himself: and if
-whosoever receiveth one of His apostles or disciples receives
-Himself, every wise man may well think that
-in like manner he who honours His holy saints for His
-sake, honours Himself, except these heretics think that
-God were as envious as they are themselves, and that
-He would be wroth to have any honour done to any
-other, though it thereby redoundeth unto Himself. In
-this matter our Saviour Christ clearly declares the contrary,
-for He shows Himself so well content that His
-holy saints shall be partakers of His honour that He
-promises His apostles that at the dreadful doom (when
-He shall come in His high majesty) they shall have
-their honourable seats and sit with Himself upon the
-judgment of the world. Christ also promised that Saint
-Mary Magdalene should be worshipped through the
-world and have here an honourable remembrance
-because she bestowed that precious ointment upon
-His holy head. When I consider this thing it
-makes me marvel at the madness of these heretics
-that bark against the old ancient customs of Christ’s
-church, mocking at the setting up of candles, and with
-foolish facetiousness (fallacies) and blasphemous mockery
-demand whether God and His saints lack light, or
-whether it be night with them that they cannot see
-without a candle. They might as well ask what good
-did that ointment do to Christ’s head? But the heretics
-grudge the cost now as their brother Judas did then,
-and say it were better spent on alms upon a poor folk,
-and thus say many of them who can neither find in
-their heart to spend on the one nor the other. And
-some spend sometimes on the one for no other intent,
-but the more boldly to rebuke against and rail against
-the other.”</p>
-
-<p>After pointing out how riches were lavished on the
-temple by God’s special ordinance, Sir Thomas More
-continues:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_421" id="Page_421">[421]</a></span> “If men will say that the money were better
-spent among poor folk by whom He (<i>i.e.</i> God) setteth
-more store as the living temples of the Holy Ghost
-made by His own hand than by the temples of stone
-made by the hand of men, this would perhaps be
-true if there were so little to do it with that we should
-be driven by necessity to leave the one undone. But
-God gives enough for both, and gives divers men divers
-kinds of devotion, and all to His pleasure. Luther, in a
-sermon of his, wished that he had in his hand all the
-pieces of the holy cross, and said if he had he would
-throw them where the sun should never shine on them.
-And for what worshipful reason would the wretch do
-such villainy to the cross of Christ? Because, as he
-says, there is so much gold now bestowed on the garnishing
-of the pieces of the cross that there is none left
-for poor folks. Is not this a high reason? As though
-all the gold that is now bestowed about the pieces of
-the holy cross would not have failed to be given to poor
-men if they had not been bestowed on the garnishing
-of the cross; and as though there was nothing lost
-except what is bestowed about Christ’s cross. Take
-all the gold that is spent about all the pieces of Christ’s
-cross through Christendom (albeit many a good Christian
-prince and other godly people have honourably garnished
-many pieces of it), yet if all the gold were gathered
-together it would appear a poor portion in comparison
-with the gold that is bestowed upon cups&mdash;what do we
-speak of cups for? in which the gold, though it is not
-given to poor men, is saved, and may be given in alms
-when men will, which they never will; how small a
-portion, ween we, were the gold about all the pieces of
-Christ’s cross, if it were compared with the gold that is
-quite cast away about the gilding of knives, swords, &amp;c.”</p>
-
-<p>Our author then goes on to put in the mouth of the
-“objector” the chief reasons those who were then the
-advocates of the religious changes were urging against
-pilgrimages to the shrines of saints and to special places
-of devotion to our Blessed Lady. Protesting that he
-had, of course, no desire to see the images of the saints
-treated in any way disrespectfully, the objector declares<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_422" id="Page_422">[422]</a></span>
-that “yet to go in pilgrimages to them, or to pray to
-them, not only seemed vain, considering that (if they
-can do anything) they can do no more for us among
-them all than Christ can Himself alone who can do all
-things, nor are they so ready to hear (if they hear us
-at all) as Christ that is everywhere.”… Moreover, to
-go a pilgrimage to one place rather than to another
-“seems to smell of idolatry,” as implying that God was
-not so powerful in one place as He is in another, and,
-as it were, making God and His saints “bound to a
-post, and that post cut out and carved into images.
-For when we reckon we are better heard by our Lord
-in Kent than at Cambridge, at the north door of Paul’s
-than at the south door, at one image of our Lady than
-at another,” is it not made plain that we “put our trust
-and confidence in the image itself, and not in God and
-our Lady,” and think of the image and not of what the
-image represents.</p>
-
-<p>Further, “men reckon that the clergy gladly favour
-these ways, and nourish this superstition under the name
-and colour of devotion, to the peril of people’s souls for
-the lucre and temporal advantage that they themselves
-receive from the offerings” (p. 120).</p>
-
-<p>Lest it may be thought that these objections to
-places of pilgrimage were merely such as Sir Thomas
-More invented to put into the mouth of the “objector”
-in order to refute them, the reader may like to have the
-words of a known advocate of the new ideas. Lancelot
-Ridley, in his expositions of some of the Epistles,
-states his views very clearly. “Ignorant people,” he
-writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_423" id="Page_423">[423]</a></span> “have preferred the saints before God, and put
-more trust, more confidence, (look for) more help and
-succour, in a saint than in God. Yea, I fear me that
-many have put their help and succour in an image made
-of stone or of wood by men’s hand, and have done
-great honour and reverence to the image, believing
-that great virtue and great holiness was in that image
-above other images. Therefore that image must have
-a velvet coat hanged all over with brooches of silver,
-and much silver hanged about it and on it, with much
-light burning before it, and with candles always burning
-before it. I would no man (should put out the light)
-in contempt of the saint whose image there is, but I
-would have this evil opinion out of the simple hearts
-that they should esteem images after the value they are,
-and put no more holiness in one image than in another,
-no more virtue in one than in another. It holds the
-simple people in great blindness, and makes them put
-great trust and (esteem) great holiness in images, because
-one image is called our Lady of Grace, another our
-Lady of Pity, another our Lady of Succour or Comfort;
-the Holy Rood of such a place, &amp;c.” And this he maintained,
-though he did not condemn images generally
-in churches. These he thought useful to remind people
-of God’s saints and their virtues, and “to stir up our
-dull hearts and slothful minds to God and to goodness.”
-What he objected to chiefly was the special places of
-pilgrimage and special images to which more than
-ordinary devotion was shown.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_424" id="Page_424">[424]</a></span><a name="FNanchor_392" id="FNanchor_392"></a><a href="#Footnote_392" class="fnanchor">[392]</a></p>
-
-<p>In another of his <i>Expositions</i>, printed in 1540, Ridley
-again states his objections to the places of pilgrimage.
-“Some think,” he writes, “that they have some things
-of God, and other part of saints, of images, and so
-divide God’s glory, part to God and part to an image,
-of wood or of stone made by man’s hand. This some
-ignorant persons have done in times past, and thanked
-God for their health and the blessed Lady of Walsingham,
-of Ipswich, St. Edmund of Bury, Etheldred of
-Ely, the Lady of Redbourne, the Holy Blood of Hayles,
-the Holy Rood of Boxley, of Chester, &amp;c., and so other
-images in this realm to the which have been much
-pilgrimage and much idolatry, supposing the dead
-images could have healed them or could have done
-something for them to God. For this the ignorant
-have crouched, kneeled, kissed, bobbed and licked the
-images, giving them coats of cloth, of gold, silver, and
-of tissue, velvet, damask, and satin, and suffered the
-living members of Christ to be without a russet coat
-or a sackcloth to keep them from the cold.”<a name="FNanchor_393" id="FNanchor_393"></a><a href="#Footnote_393" class="fnanchor">[393]</a></p>
-
-<p>Again in another place he says that his great
-objection to images is not that they may not be
-good in themselves and as a reminder of the holiness
-of the saints, but that they are used as a means of
-making money. “Who can tell,” he writes, “half the
-ways they have found to get, yea to extort money from
-men by images, by pardons, by pilgrimages, by indulgences,
-&amp;c. … all invented for money.” The above
-passages may be taken as fair samples of the outcry
-against shrines and pilgrimages raised by the English
-followers of Luther and the advocates of the religious
-changes generally. It will be noticed that the ground<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_425" id="Page_425">[425]</a></span>
-of the objections was in reality only the same as that
-which induced them to declare against any honour
-shown to images, whether of Christ or His saints.
-There is no suggestion of any special abuses connected
-with particular shrines and places of pilgrimage, such
-as is often hinted at by those who refer to Chaucer and
-Erasmus. In addition to the general ground of objection,
-the only point raised in regard to pilgrimages by
-the advocates for their suppression was that money was
-spent upon them which might have been bestowed more
-profitably on the poor, and that the clergy were enriched
-by the offerings made at the shrines visited. Sir Thomas
-More’s reply to the latter suggestion has been already
-given, and elsewhere his views as to the general question
-of the danger of people mistaking the nature of the
-honour shown to images of the saints have been stated
-at length. With regard to his approval of the principle
-of pilgrimages there is no room for doubt.</p>
-
-<p>“If the thing were so far from all frame of right
-religion,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_426" id="Page_426">[426]</a></span> “and so perilous to men’s souls, I
-cannot perceive why the clergy, for the gain they get
-thereby, would suffer such abuses to continue. For,
-first, if it were true that no pilgrimage ought to be
-used, no image offered to, nor worship done nor
-prayer offered to any saint, then&mdash;if all these things
-were all undone (if that were the right way, as I wot
-well it were wrong), then to me there is little question
-but that Christian people who are in the true faith and
-in the right way Godward would not thereby in any
-way slack their good minds towards the ministers of
-His church, but their devotion towards them would
-more and more increase. So that if by this way they
-now get a penny they would not then fail to receive a
-groat; and so should no lucre be the cause to favour
-this way if it be wrong, whilst they could not fail to
-win more by the right.”</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_427" id="Page_427">[427]</a></span></p>
-<p>“Moreover, look through Christendom and you will
-find the fruit of those offerings a right small part of the
-living of the clergy, and such as, though some few
-places would be glad to retain, yet the whole body
-might easily forbear without any notable loss. Let us
-consider our own country, and we shall find that these
-pilgrimages are for the most part in the hands of such
-religious persons or of such poor parishes as have no
-great authority in the convocations. Besides this you
-will not find, I suppose, that any Bishop in England
-has the profit of even one groat from any such offering
-in his diocese. Now, the continuance or breaking of
-this manner and custom stands them specially in the
-power of those who take no profit by it. If they
-believed it to be (as you call it) superstitious and
-wicked they would never suffer it to continue to the
-perishing of men’s souls (something whereby they
-themselves would destroy their own souls and get
-no commodity either in body or goods). And beyond
-this, we see that the bishops and prelates themselves
-visit these holy places and pilgrimages, and make as
-large offerings and (incur) as great cost in coming and
-going as other people do, so that they not only take no
-temporal advantage, but also bestow their own money
-therein. And surely I believe this devotion so planted
-by God’s own hand in the hearts of the whole Church,
-that is to say, not the clergy only, but the whole congregation
-of all Christian people, that if the spirituality
-were of the mind to give it up, yet the temporality
-would not suffer it.”</p>
-
-<p>It would be impossible, without making extensive
-quotations, to do justice to Sir Thomas More’s argument
-in favour of the old Catholic practice of pilgrimages.
-He points out that the whole matter turns upon
-the question whether or no Almighty God does manifest
-His power and presence more in one place of His world
-than in another. That He does so, he thinks cannot be
-questioned; why He should do so, it is not for us to
-guess, but the single example of the Angel and the pool
-of Bethsaida related in St. John’s Gospel is sufficient
-proof of the fact&mdash;at least to Sir Thomas More’s intelligence.
-Moreover, he thinks also that in many cases
-the special holiness of a place of pilgrimage has been
-shown by the graces and favours, and even miracles,
-which have been granted by God at that particular
-spot, and on the “objector” waiving this argument
-aside on the plea that he does not believe in modern
-miracles, More declares that what is even more than
-miracles in his estimation is the “common belief in
-Christ’s Church” in the practice.</p>
-
-<p>As to believing in miracles; they, like every other
-fact, depend on evidence and proof. It is unreasonable in
-the highest degree to disbelieve everything which we
-have not seen or which we do not understand.
-Miracles, like everything else, must be believed on
-the evidence of credible witnesses. What in their day,
-he says, is believed in by all would have been deemed
-impossible a century or two before; for example, that
-the earth is round and “sails in mid-air,” and that
-“men walk on it foot to foot” and ships sail on its seas
-“bottom to bottom.” Again, “It is not fifty years ago,”
-he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_428" id="Page_428">[428]</a></span> “since the first man, as far as men have heard,
-came to London who ever parted the silver gilt from
-the silver, consuming shortly the silver into dust
-with a very fair water.” At first the gold and silver
-smiths laughed at the suggestion as absurd and impossible.
-Quite recently also More had been told that
-it was possible to melt iron and make it “to run as silver
-or lead doeth, and make it take a print.” More had
-never, he says, seen this, but he had seen the new invention
-of drawing out silver into thread-like wires. The
-“objector” was incredulous, and when More went on to
-tell him that if a piece of silver had been gilded, it
-could be drawn out with the gilding into gilt wires, he
-expressed his disbelief in the possibility of such a thing,
-and was hardly more satisfied that he was not being
-deceived when the process was shown to him the next
-day.</p>
-
-<p>These and such like things, argues More, show us
-that our knowledge is, after all, very limited, and that
-while some supposed miracles may be doubted, it is
-most unreasonable to doubt or deny the possibility of
-miracles generally. If nature and reason tell us there
-is a God, the same two prove that miracles are not impossible,
-and that God can act when He wills against
-the course of nature. Whether He does in this or that
-case is plainly a matter of evidence. The importance
-of Sir Thomas More’s opinion on the matter of Pilgrimage
-does not, of course, rest upon the nature of his
-views, which were those naturally of all good Catholic
-sons of Holy Church, but upon the fact that, in face of
-the objections which were then made and which were
-of the kind to which subsequent generations have
-been accustomed, so learned and liberal a man as he
-was, did not hesitate to treat them as groundless, and to
-defend the practice as it was then known in England.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_429" id="Page_429">[429]</a></span>
-That there may have been “abuses” he would have
-no doubt fully admitted, but that the “abuses” were
-either so great or so serious as to be any reasonable
-ground against the “use” he would equally have indignantly
-denied.</p>
-
-<p>No less clear and definite are his opinions as to
-“relics” and the honour shown them. The “adversary”
-in the <i>Dyalogue</i> takes up the usual objections urged
-against the reverence shown to the remains of the
-saints, and in particular to the wealth which was
-lavished upon their shrines. “May the taking up of a
-man’s bones,” he says, “and setting his carcase in a gay
-shrine, and then kissing his bare scalp, make a man a
-saint? And yet are there some unshrined, for no man
-knoweth where they lie. And men doubt whether some
-ever had any body at all or not, but to recompense
-that again some there are who have two bodies, to lend
-one to some good fellow that lacketh his. For …
-some one body lies whole in two places asunder, or else
-the monks of the one be beguiled. For both places
-plainly affirm that it lieth there, and at either place they
-show the shrine, and in the shrine they show a body
-which they say is <i>the</i> body, and boldly allege old
-writings and miracles also for the proof of it. Now
-must he confess that either the miracles at the one
-place be false and done by the devil, or else that the
-same saint had indeed two bodies. It is therefore likely
-that a bone worshipped for a relic of some holy saint
-in some place was peradventure ‘a bone (as Chaucer
-says) of some holy Jew’s sheep.’” More’s “adversary”
-then goes on to say that our Lord in reproving the
-Pharisees for “making fresh the sepulchres of the
-prophets” condemns the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_430" id="Page_430">[430]</a></span> “gay golden shrines made for
-saints’ bodies, especially when we have no certainty that
-they are saints at all.”<a name="FNanchor_394" id="FNanchor_394"></a><a href="#Footnote_394" class="fnanchor">[394]</a></p>
-
-<p>What all this really amounts to, replies More, is not
-that your reasons would condemn honour and worship
-to true relics of the saints, but that “we may be deceived
-in some that we take for saints&mdash;except you
-would say that if we might by any possibility mistake
-some, therefore we should worship none.” Few people
-would say this, and “I see,” says More, “no great
-peril to us from the danger of a mistake. If there
-came, for example, a great many of the king’s friends
-into your country, and for his sake you make them all
-great cheer; if among them there come unawares to
-you some spies that were his mortal enemies, wearing
-his badge and seeming to you and so reported as his
-familiar friends, would he blame you for the good cheer
-you made his enemies or thank you for the good cheer
-you gave his friends?” He then goes on at great
-length to suggest that, as in the case of the head of St.
-John the Baptist in which portions only existing in each
-place are each called “the head,” so, very frequently,
-only a portion of the body of a saint is called “the body.”
-He mentions having himself been present at the abbey
-of Barking thirty years before (<i>i.e.</i> in 1498), when a
-number of relics were discovered hidden in an old
-image, which must have been put there four or five
-hundred years since “when the abbey was burned by the
-infidels.” He thinks that in this way the names of relics
-are frequently either lost or changed. But he adds,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_431" id="Page_431">[431]</a></span>
-“the name is not so very requisite but that we may
-mistake it without peril, so that we nevertheless have
-the relics of holy men in reverence.”</p>
-
-<p>In replying to Tyndale also, More declares that he
-had never in all his life held views against relics of the
-saints or the honour due to their holy images. Tyndale
-had charged him with being compromised by the words
-used by Erasmus in the <i>Enconium Moriæ</i>, which was
-known to have been composed in More’s house, and
-was commonly regarded as almost the joint work of
-the two scholars. If there were anything like this in
-the <i>Moriæ</i>&mdash;any words that could mean or seem to
-mean anything against the true Catholic devotion to
-relics and images&mdash;then More rejects them from his
-heart. But they are not my words, he adds, “the book
-being made by another man, though he were my darling
-never so dear” (p. 422). But the real truth is that
-in the <i>Moriæ</i> Erasmus never said more or meant more
-than to “jest upon the abuses of such things.”</p>
-
-<p>In this regard it is of interest to understand what
-was the real opinion of Erasmus in regard to devotions
-to particular saints and their images and relics. This
-is all the more important, as most people regard the
-account of his two pilgrimages to Walsingham and to
-Canterbury as full and conclusive evidence of his sentiments.
-In his tract <i>Enchiridion Militis Christiani</i>, published
-at Louvain in 1518, his views are stated with absolute
-clearness. “There are some,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_432" id="Page_432">[432]</a></span> “who honour
-certain saints with some special ceremonies.… One
-salutes St. Christopher each day, and only in presence
-of his image. Why does he wish to see it? Simply
-because he will then feel safe that day from any evil
-death. Another honours Saint Roch&mdash;but why? Because
-he thinks that he will drive away infection from
-his body. Others murmur prayers to St. Barbara or
-St. George, so as not to fall into the hands of any
-enemy. One man fasts for St. Apollonia, not to have
-toothache. Some dedicate a certain portion of their
-gains to the poor so that their merchandise is not
-destroyed in shipwreck,” &amp;c.<a name="FNanchor_395" id="FNanchor_395"></a><a href="#Footnote_395" class="fnanchor">[395]</a></p>
-
-<p>Our author’s point is that in these and such-like
-things people pray for riches, &amp;c., and do not think
-much about the right use of them; they pray for health
-and go on living evil lives. In so far such prayers to
-the saints are mere superstitions, and do not much differ
-from the pagan superstitions; the cock to Æsculapius,
-the tithe to Hercules, the bull to Neptune. “But,” he
-says, “I praise those who ask from St. Roch a life protected
-from disease if they would consecrate that life to
-Christ. I would praise them more if they would pray
-only for increased detestation of vice and love virtue.
-I will tolerate infirmity, but with Paul I show the
-better way.” He would think it, consequently, a more
-perfect thing to pray only for grace to avoid sin and to
-please God, and to leave life and death, sickness, health
-and riches to Him and His will.</p>
-
-<p>“You,” he says farther on,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_433" id="Page_433">[433]</a></span> “venerate the saints,
-you rejoice to possess their relics, but you despise
-the best thing they have left behind them, namely,
-the example of a pure life. No devotion is so pleasing
-to Mary as when you imitate her humility; no religion
-is so acceptable to the saints and so proper in
-itself as striving to copy their virtue. Do you wish
-to merit the patronage of Peter and Paul? Imitate the
-faith of the one and the charity of the other and you will
-do more than if you had made ten journeys to Rome.
-Do you wish to do something to show high honour to
-St. Francis? You are proud, you are a lover of riches,
-you are quarrelsome; give these to the saint, rule your
-soul and be more humble by the example of Francis;
-despise filthy lucre, and covet rather the good of the
-soul. Leave contentions aside and overcome evil by
-good. The saint will receive more honour in this way
-than if you were to burn a hundred candles to him.
-You think it a great thing if clothed in the habit of St.
-Francis you are borne to the grave. This dress will
-not profit you when you are dead if, when alive, your
-morals were unlike his.”</p>
-
-<p>“People,” he continues, “honour the relics of St.
-Paul, and do not trouble to listen to his voice still
-speaking. They make much of a large portion of one
-of his bones looked at through a glass, and think little
-of honouring him really by understanding what he
-teaches and trying to follow that.” It is the same so
-often with the honour shown to the crucifix. “You
-honour,” he says, “the representation of Christ’s face
-fashioned of stone or of wood or painted in colours,
-the image of His mind ought to be more religiously
-honoured, which, by the work of the Holy Spirit, is
-set forth in the gospels. No Apelles ever sketched the
-form and figure of a human body in such a perfect
-way as to compare with the mental image formed in
-prayer.”</p>
-
-<p>Erasmus then passes on to speak at length of what
-should lie at the foundation of all true devotion to the
-saints. The spirit which actuates is that which matters.
-To put up candles to images of the saints and not
-to observe God’s laws; to fast and to abstain and not to
-set a guard on the tongue, to give way to detraction
-and evil speaking of all kinds; to wear the religious
-habit and to live the life of a worldling under it; to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_434" id="Page_434">[434]</a></span>
-build churches and not to build up the soul; to keep
-Sunday observances externally but not to mind what
-the spirit gives way to&mdash;these are the things that really
-matter. “By your lips you bless and in your heart
-you curse. Your body is shut up in a narrow cell,
-and in thought you wander over the whole world.
-You listen to God’s word with the ears of your body;
-it would be more to the purpose if you listened inwardly.
-What doth it profit not to do the evil which
-you desire to accomplish? What doth it profit to do
-good outwardly and to do the opposite inwardly? Is
-it much to go to Jerusalem in the body when in the
-spirit it is to thee but Sodom and Egypt and Babylon?”<a name="FNanchor_396" id="FNanchor_396"></a><a href="#Footnote_396" class="fnanchor">[396]</a></p>
-
-<p>In his tract <i>De amabili Ecclesiæ concordia</i>, printed in
-1533, Erasmus lays down the same principle. It is, he
-writes, a pious and good thing to believe that the saints
-who have worked miracles in the time of their lives on
-earth, can help us now that they are in heaven. As
-long as there is no danger of real superstition, it is
-absurd to try to prevent people invoking the saints.
-Though superstition in the cultus of the saints is, of
-course, to be prevented, “the pious and simple affection
-is sometimes to be allowed even if it be mixed with
-some error.” As for the representations of the saints
-in churches, those who disapprove of them should not
-for that reason “blame those who, without superstition,
-venerate these images for the love of those they represent,
-just as a newly-married woman kisses a ring or
-present left or sent by her absent spouse out of affection
-for him.” Such affection cannot be displeasing to
-God, since it comes not from superstition, but from an
-abundance of affectionate feeling, and exactly the same<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_435" id="Page_435">[435]</a></span>
-view should be taken of the true devotion shown to
-the relics of the saints, provided that it be ever borne
-in mind that the highest honour that can be paid to
-them consists in imitation of their lives.</p>
-
-<p>Considering the importance of “indulgences” or
-“pardons,” as they were frequently called, in the Reformation
-controversies, it is curious that very little is
-made of them in the literature of the period preceding
-the religious changes. If we except the works of professed
-followers of Luther, there is hardly any trace of
-serious objection being raised to the fundamental idea
-of “indulgences” in their true sense. Here and there
-may be found indications of some objection to certain
-abuses which had been allowed to creep into the system,
-but these proceeded from loyal sons of the Church
-rather than from those ill affected to the existing
-ecclesiastical authority, or those who desired to see
-the abolition of all such grants of spiritual favours.
-The lawyer Saint-German, for instance, may be taken
-as an example of the acute layman, who, although
-professing to be a Catholic and an obedient son of
-the Church, was credited by his contemporaries with
-holding advanced if not somewhat heterodox views on
-certain matters of current controversy. What he has
-to say about “pardons” and “indulgences” is neither
-very startling nor indeed very different from what all
-serious-minded churchmen of that day held. He considered
-that the people generally were shocked at
-finding “the Pope and other spiritual rulers” granting
-“pardons” for the payment of money. This, he considered,
-had been brought prominently into notice at
-the time he was writing, by the indulgences granted
-to those who should contribute to the building of St.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_436" id="Page_436">[436]</a></span>
-Peter’s when “it has appeared after, evidently that it
-has not been disposed to that use. And that has caused
-many to think that the said pardons were granted rather
-of covetousness than of charity, or for the health of the
-souls of the people. And thereupon some have fallen
-in a manner into despising ‘pardons’ as though pardons
-granted upon such covetousness would not
-avail … and verily it were a great pity that any
-misliking of pardons should grow in the hearts of the
-people for any misdemeanour in the grantor or otherwise,
-for they are right necessary. And I suppose that
-if certain pardons were granted freely without money,
-for the saying of certain appointed prayers, then all
-misliking of pardons would shortly cease and vanish
-away.”<a name="FNanchor_397" id="FNanchor_397"></a><a href="#Footnote_397" class="fnanchor">[397]</a></p>
-
-<p>Christopher Saint-German speaks much in the
-same way as to the evil of connecting payment of
-money with the granting of indulgences, in the work
-in connection with which his name is chiefly known,
-<i>A Dyaloge in English between a Student and a Doctor of
-Divinity</i>. “If it were so ordered by the Pope,” he
-writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_437" id="Page_437">[437]</a></span> “that there might be certain general pardons
-of full remission in diverse parts of the realm, which
-the people might have for saying certain orisons and
-prayers without paying any money for it, it is not
-unlikely that in a short time there would be very few
-that would find any fault with ‘pardons.’ For verily
-it is a great comfort to all Christian people to remember
-that our Lord loved His people so much that to their
-relief and comfort leave behind Him so great a treasure
-as is the power to grant pardons, which, as I suppose,
-next unto the treasure of His precious body in the
-Sacrament of the altar, may be accounted among the
-greatest, and therefore he would labour greatly to his
-own hurt and to the great heaviness of all others also
-who would endeavour to prove that there was no such
-power left by God.”<a name="FNanchor_398" id="FNanchor_398"></a><a href="#Footnote_398" class="fnanchor">[398]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the literature of the period, it must be remembered,
-there is nothing to show that the true nature of
-a “pardon” or indulgence was not fully and commonly
-understood. There is no evidence that it was in any
-way interpreted as a remission of sin, still less that any
-one was foolish enough to regard it as permission to
-commit this or that offence against God. Tyndale,
-indeed, had suggested that by purchasing an indulgence
-“thou mayest quench almost the terrible fire of hell for
-three halfpence.” But Sir Thomas More meets the
-point directly. “Nay, surely,” he says,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_438" id="Page_438">[438]</a></span> “that fire is
-not so lightly quenched that folk upon the boldness of
-pardons should stand out of the fear of purgatory. For
-though the sacrament of penance is able to put away
-the eternal (nature) of the pain, yet the party for all
-that has cause to fear both purgatory and hell too, lest
-some default on his own part prevented God working
-such grace in him in the Sacrament as should serve for
-this. So, though the pardon be able to discharge a
-man of purgatory, yet there may be such default in the
-party to whom the pardon is granted that although
-instead of three halfpence he gives three hundred
-pounds, still he may receive no pardon at all, and
-therefore he cannot be out of fear of purgatory, but
-ever has cause to fear it. For no man without a
-revelation can be sure whether he be partaker of the
-pardon or not, though he may have and ought to have
-both in that and every good thing good hope.”<a name="FNanchor_399" id="FNanchor_399"></a><a href="#Footnote_399" class="fnanchor">[399]</a></p>
-
-<p>Bishop Gardiner in 1546, in writing against George
-Joye, incidentally makes use of some strong expressions
-about the granting of pardons for the payment of money,
-and blames the friars as being instrumental in spreading
-them. He has been asserting that by every means in
-his power the devil, now in one way and now in
-another, attempts to prevent men from practising the
-good works necessary for salvation. “For that purpose,”
-he says, “he procured out pardons from Rome,
-wherein heaven was sold for a little money, and to
-retail that merchandise the devil used friars for his
-ministers. Now they be all gone with all their trumpery;
-but the devil is not yet gone, for now the cry is
-that ‘heaven needs no works at all, but only belief,
-only, only, and nothing else.’”<a name="FNanchor_400" id="FNanchor_400"></a><a href="#Footnote_400" class="fnanchor">[400]</a></p>
-
-<p>This, after all, was very little more than the abuse
-which previously was pointed out by the cardinal
-who, conjointly with Cardinal Caraffa, afterwards Pope
-Paul IV., had been directed to draw up suggestions for
-improvement of ecclesiastical discipline. The document
-drawn up by Caraffa himself was submitted to the
-Pope by his command, and amongst the points which
-were declared to need correction were the granting of
-indulgences for money payments and permission given
-to travelling collectors, such as the Questors of the
-Holy Spirit, &amp;c., to bestow “pardons” in return for
-subscriptions. This, in the judgment of the four
-cardinals, is likely to lead to misunderstandings as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_439" id="Page_439">[439]</a></span>
-to the real nature of the indulgences granted, to deceive
-rustic minds, and to give rise to all manner of
-superstitions.<a name="FNanchor_401" id="FNanchor_401"></a><a href="#Footnote_401" class="fnanchor">[401]</a></p>
-
-<p>Cardinal Sadolet, one of the four cardinals who
-formed the Papal Commission just referred to, in an
-appeal to the German princes makes the same adverse
-criticism about the money payments received for the
-granting of indulgences. “The whole of Germany,” he
-says, “has been convulsed by the indulgences granted
-by Pope Leo. X. to those who would contribute to the
-building of St. Peter’s. These indulgences,” he says,
-“and consequently the agents in distributing them, I
-do not now defend. And I remember that, as far as
-my position and honour would then allow, I spoke
-against them when those decrees were published, and
-when my opinion had no effect I was greatly grieved.”
-He did not, he continued, doubt the power of the Pope
-in granting the indulgences, but held that “in giving
-them, the manner now insisted on with every care by
-the supreme Pontiff, Paul III., ought to be maintained,
-namely, that they should be granted freely, and that
-there should be no mention of money in regard to
-them. The loving-kindness and mercy of God should
-not be sold for money, and if anything be asked for
-at the time, it should be requested as a work of
-piety.”<a name="FNanchor_402" id="FNanchor_402"></a><a href="#Footnote_402" class="fnanchor">[402]</a></p>
-
-<p>The above will show that earnest-minded men were
-fully alive to the abuses which might be connected with
-the granting of indulgences, and no condemnation could
-have been stronger than that formulated by the Council
-of Trent. At the same time, it is clear that the abuses<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_440" id="Page_440">[440]</a></span>
-of the system were, so far as England at least is concerned,
-neither widespread nor obvious. The silence
-of Sir Thomas More on the matter, and the very
-mild representations of his adversary, Christopher Saint-German,
-show that this is the case. Saint-German’s objection
-was not against the system, but against the same
-kind of abuses against which subsequently the Fathers
-of Trent legislated. The reformers attacked not the
-abuses only but the whole system, and their language
-has quite unjustly been frequently interpreted by subsequent
-writers as evidence of the existence everywhere
-of widespread abuses. In this regard it is well to bear
-in mind that the translation of the works of the German
-reformers into English cannot be taken as contemporary
-evidence for England itself.</p>
-
-<p>The cry of the advanced party which would sweep
-away every vestige of the old religious observances was
-certainly not popular. One example of a testimony to
-the general feeling in London is given in a little work
-printed by one of the reforming party in 1542, when it
-was found that Henry VIII. did not advance along the
-path of reformation marked out by the foreign followers
-of Luther as quickly as his rejection of papal
-supremacy and the overthrow of the religious houses
-had caused some people to hope. The tract in question
-is called <i>The lamentation of a Christian against the Citie of
-London, made by Roderigo Mors</i>,<a name="FNanchor_403" id="FNanchor_403"></a><a href="#Footnote_403" class="fnanchor">[403]</a> and some quotations
-from it will show what view an ardent reformer took of
-the spirit of Londoners towards the new doctrines.
-“The greater part of these inordinate rich, stiff-necked
-citizens,” he writes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_441" id="Page_441">[441]</a></span> “will not have in their houses that
-lively word of our souls<a name="FNanchor_404" id="FNanchor_404"></a><a href="#Footnote_404" class="fnanchor">[404]</a> nor suffer their servants to
-have it, neither yet (will they) gladly read it or hear it
-read, but abhors and disdains all those who would
-live according to the Gospel, and instead thereof they
-set up and maintain idolatry and other innumerable
-wickedness of man’s invention daily committed in the
-city of London.</p>
-
-<p>“The greatest part of the seniors and aldermen, with
-the multitude of the inordinate rich … with the
-greatest multitude of thee, O city of London, take the
-part and be fully bent with the false prophets, the
-bishops and other strong, stout, and sturdy priests of
-Baal, to persecute unto death all and every godly person
-who either preaches the word or setteth it forth in writing
-… O Lord! how blind are these citizens who
-take so good care to provide for the dead which is not
-commanded of them nor availeth the dead.<a name="FNanchor_405" id="FNanchor_405"></a><a href="#Footnote_405" class="fnanchor">[405]</a>… When
-they feel themselves worthily plagued, which comes of
-Thee only, then they will run a-gadding after their false
-prophets through the streets once or twice a week, crying
-and calling to creatures of the Creator, or with <i>ora
-pro nobis</i>, and that in a tongue which the greatest part
-of them understand not, unto Peter, Paul, James and
-John, Mary and Martha: and I think within a few years
-they will (without Thy great mercy) call upon Thomas
-Wolsey, late Cardinal, and upon the unholy (or as they
-would say holy) maid of Kent. Why not, as well as
-upon Thomas Becket? What he was, I need not write.
-It is well known.<a name="FNanchor_406" id="FNanchor_406"></a><a href="#Footnote_406" class="fnanchor">[406]</a></p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_442" id="Page_442">[442]</a></span></p>
-<p>“And think ye not that if the Blessed Virgin Mary
-were now upon earth and saw her Son and only Redeemer
-robbed of His glory, which glory, you blind citizens give
-to her, would she not rend her clothes like as did the
-Apostles, for offering oblations with their forefathers’
-kings’ heads unto the Queen of Heaven? How many
-queens of Heaven have ye in the Litany? O! dear
-brethren, be no longer deceived with these false prophets
-your bishops and their members.”<a name="FNanchor_407" id="FNanchor_407"></a><a href="#Footnote_407" class="fnanchor">[407]</a></p>
-
-<p>“The great substance which you bestow upon chantries,
-obits, and such like dregs of … Rome, which most
-commonly ye give for three causes, as ye say, first,
-that you will have the service of God maintained in the
-church to God’s honour, and yet by the same service is
-God dishonoured, for the Supper of the Lord is perverted
-and not used after Christ’s institution … and
-the holy memory turned into a vain superstitious ceremonial
-Mass, as they call it, which Mass is an abominable
-idol, and of all idols the greatest; and never shall
-idolatry be quenched where that idol is used after antichrist’s
-institution … which no doubt shall be reformed
-when the time is come that God hath appointed, even as
-it is already in divers cities of Germany, as Zurich, Basle,
-and Strasburg and such other.”</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_443" id="Page_443">[443]</a></span></p>
-<p>“The second cause is for redeeming your souls and
-your friends, which is also abominable.… The idolator
-nowadays, if he set a candle before an image and idol,
-he says he does not worship the image, but God it represents.
-For say they, who is so foolish as to worship
-an image? The third cause of your good intent is that
-the profit of your goods may come to the priests; as
-though they were the peculiar people of God and only
-beloved; as indeed to those who preach the Gospel the
-people are bound to give sufficient living … but not
-that their prayers can help the dead no more than a
-man’s breath blowing a sail can cause a great ship to
-sail. So is this also become an abomination, for those
-be not Christ’s ministers, but the ministers of a rabble
-of dirty traditions and popish ceremonies, and you find
-a sort of lusty lubbers who are well able to labour for
-their living and strong to get it with the sweat of their
-face.”<a name="FNanchor_408" id="FNanchor_408"></a><a href="#Footnote_408" class="fnanchor">[408]</a></p>
-
-<p>“… O ye citizens, if ye would turn but even the
-profits of your chantries and obits to the finding of the
-poor, what a politic and goodly provision! whereas now
-London being one of the flowers of the world as touching
-worldly riches hath so many, yea innumerable poor
-people, forced to go from door to door and to sit openly
-in the streets begging, and many not able to do otherwise
-but lie in their houses in most grievous pains and
-die for lack of the aid of the rich, to the great shame of
-thee, oh London!”<a name="FNanchor_409" id="FNanchor_409"></a><a href="#Footnote_409" class="fnanchor">[409]</a></p>
-
-<p>After exclaiming against the amount of money spent
-by the authorities of the city of London on civic entertainments,
-and railing against the support given to “the
-Mass of Scala cœli, of the Five wounds, and other such
-like trumpery,” our author continues:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_444" id="Page_444">[444]</a></span> “Have you not
-slain the servants of the Lord, only for speaking against
-the authority of the false bishop of Rome, that monstrous
-beast, whom now you yourselves do, or should, abhor?
-I mean all his laws being contrary to Christ and not His
-body, and yet you see that a few years past you burnt
-for heretics abominable those who preached or wrote
-against his usurped power, and now it is treason to
-uphold or maintain any part of his usurped power,
-and he shall die as a traitor who does so, and well
-worthy.”<a name="FNanchor_410" id="FNanchor_410"></a><a href="#Footnote_410" class="fnanchor">[410]</a></p>
-
-<p>After declaiming against the Mass and confession,
-and declaring that the bishops and cathedral churches
-should be despoiled of their wealth as their “companions
-and brethren in antichrist, the abbots” had
-been, the author of the tract goes on: “God gave the
-king a heart to take the wicked mammon from you, as
-he may rightfully do with the consent of the Commons by
-Act of Parliament, so that it may be disposed of according
-to God’s glory and the commonwealth, and to take
-himself as portion, as (say) eight or ten of every hundred,
-for an acknowledgment of obedience and for the maintenance
-of his estate. The rest politically to be put
-into a commonwealth, first distributed among all the
-towns in England in sums according to the quantity and
-number of the occupiers and where most need is, and
-all the towns to be bound to the king so that he may
-have the money at his extreme need to serve him, he
-rendering it again. And also a politic way (should
-be) taken for provision of the poor in every town, with
-some part to the marriage of young persons that lack
-friends.”<a name="FNanchor_411" id="FNanchor_411"></a><a href="#Footnote_411" class="fnanchor">[411]</a></p>
-
-<p>The bishops the writer considers to be the greatest
-obstacles to the reformation of religion in England
-on the model of what had already taken place in
-Germany. “You wicked mammon,” he continues,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_445" id="Page_445">[445]</a></span>
-“your inordinate riches was not of your heavenly
-Father’s planting; therefore it must be plucked up
-by the roots with the riches of your other brethren
-of the Romish church or church malignant, which of
-late were rightfully plucked up. I would to God that
-the distribution of the same lands and goods had been
-as godly distributed as the act of the rooting up was;
-which distribution of the same I dare say all Christian
-hearts lament. For the fat swine only were greased,
-but the poor sheep to whom that thing belonged had
-least or nothing at all. The fault will be laid to those
-of the Parliament House, especially to those who bear
-the greatest swing. Well, I touch this matter here, to
-exhort all that love God’s word unfeignedly to be diligent
-in prayer only to God to endue the Lords, Knights,
-and Burgesses of the next Parliament with His spirit,
-that the lands and goods of these bishops may be put
-to a better use, as to God’s glory, the wealth of the
-commonalty and provision for the poor.”<a name="FNanchor_412" id="FNanchor_412"></a><a href="#Footnote_412" class="fnanchor">[412]</a></p>
-
-<p>The above lengthy extracts will show what the advanced
-spirits among the English followers of Luther
-hoped for from the religious revolution which had
-already, when the tract was written, been begun. It
-will also serve to show that even in London, which
-may be supposed to have been in the forefront of the
-movement, the religious changes were by no means
-popular; but the civic authorities and people clung to
-the old faith and traditions, which the author well and
-tersely describes as “the Romish religion.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The readers of the foregoing pages will see that no
-attempt has been made to draw a definite conclusion
-from the facts set down, or expound the causes of the
-ultimate triumph of the Reformation principles in England.
-It has already been pointed out that the time for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_446" id="Page_446">[446]</a></span>
-a satisfactory synthesis is not yet come; but it may not
-be unnecessary to deprecate impatience to reach an
-ultimate judgment.</p>
-
-<p>The necessary assumption which underlies the inherited
-Protestant history of the Reformation in the
-sixteenth century is the general corruption of manners
-and morals no less than of doctrine, and the ignorance
-of religious truths no less than the neglect of religious
-precepts on the part of both clergy and people. On
-such a basis nothing can be easier and simpler than
-to account for the issue of the English religious changes.
-The revival of historical studies and the alienation of
-the minds of many historians from traditional Christianity,
-whether in its Catholic or Protestant form, has,
-however, thrown doubt on this great fundamental assumption&mdash;a
-doubt that will be strengthened the more
-the actual conditions of the case are impartially and
-thoroughly investigated. Many of the genuine sources
-of history have only within this generation become
-really accessible; what was previously known has been
-more carefully examined and sifted, whilst men have
-begun to see that if the truth is to be ascertained
-inquiries must be pursued in detail within local limits,
-and that it does not suffice to speak in general terms
-of “the corrupt state of the Church.”</p>
-
-<p>If we are to know the real factors of the problem
-to be solved, separate investigations have to be pursued
-which lead to very varying conclusions as to the state
-of the Church, the ecclesiastical life and the religious
-practices of the people in different countries. It is
-already evident that the corruptions or the virtues
-prevailing in one quarter must not straightway be
-credited to the account of another; that the reason<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_447" id="Page_447">[447]</a></span>
-why one country has become Protestant, or another
-remained Catholic, has to be sought for in each case,
-and that it may be safely asserted that the maintenance
-of Catholicity or the adoption of Protestantism in
-different regions, had comparatively little to do with
-prevalence or absence of abuses, or as little depended on
-the question whether these were more or less grievous.</p>
-
-<p>Unquestionably those who desire to have a ready
-explanation of great historical movements or revolutions,
-find themselves increasingly baulked in the
-particular case of the Reformation by the new turn
-which modern historical research has given to the
-consideration of the question. Recent attempts to
-piece up the new results with the old views afford
-a warning against precipitation, and have but shown
-that the explanation of the successful issue of the Reformation
-in England is a problem less simple or obvious
-than many popular writers have hitherto assumed. The
-factors are clearly seen now to be many&mdash;sometimes
-accidental, sometimes strongly personal&mdash;whilst aspirations
-after worldly commodities, though destined not to
-be realised for the many, were often and in the most
-influential quarters a stronger determinant to acquiescence
-or active co-operation in the movement than thirst
-after pure doctrine, love of the open Bible, or desire for
-a vernacular liturgy. The first condition for the understanding
-of the problem at all is the most careful
-and detailed examination possible of the state of
-popular religion during the whole of the century
-which witnessed the change, quite apart from the
-particular political methods employed to effect the
-transition from the public teaching of the old faith,
-as it was professed in the closing years of the reign<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_448" id="Page_448">[448]</a></span>
-of Henry VIII., and the new as it was officially practised
-a dozen years after Elizabeth had held the reins
-of power.</p>
-
-<p>The interest of the questions discussed in the
-present volume is by no means exclusively, perhaps
-to some persons is even by no means predominantly,
-a religious one. It has been insisted upon in the
-preceding pages that religion on the eve of the Reformation
-was intimately bound up with the whole social
-life of the people, animating it and penetrating it at
-every point. No one who is acquainted with the
-history of later centuries in England can doubt for a
-moment that the religion then professed presented in
-this respect a contrast to the older faith; or as some
-writers may put it, religion became restricted to what
-belongs to the technically “religious” sphere. But this
-was not confined to England, or even to Protestant
-countries. Everywhere, it may be said, in the centuries
-subsequent to the religious revolution of the sixteenth
-century, religion became less directly social in its
-action; and if the action and interference of what is
-now called the State in every department of social
-life is continually extending, this may not inaptly be
-said to be due to the fact that it has largely taken up
-the direct social work and direction from which the
-Church found herself perhaps compelled to recede, in
-order to concentrate her efforts more intensely on
-the promotion of more purely and strictly religious
-influences. It is impossible to study the available
-sources of information about the period immediately
-preceding the change without recognising that, so far
-from the Church being a merely effete or corrupt agency
-in the commonwealth, it was an active power for popular<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_449" id="Page_449">[449]</a></span>
-good in a very wide sense. At any rate, whatever view
-we may take of the results of the Reformation, to
-understand rightly the conditions of religious thought
-and life on the eve of the religious revolution, is a
-condition of being able really to read aright our own
-time and to gauge the extent to which present tendencies
-find their root or their justification in the past.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2>FOOTNOTES</h2>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_1" id="Footnote_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> <i>Opera</i> (ed. Frankfort), tom. x. p. 56, quoted by Janssen.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_2" id="Footnote_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2"><span class="label">[2]</span></a> J. L. Andre, in <i>Sussex Archæological Journal</i>, xxxix. p. 31.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_3" id="Footnote_3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_3"><span class="label">[3]</span></a> The use of the expression “New Learning” as meaning the revival of
-letters is now so common that any instance of it may seem superfluous.
-Green, for example, in his <i>History of the English People</i>, vol. ii. constantly
-speaks of it. Thus (p. 81), “Erasmus embodied for the Teutonic peoples the
-quickening influence of the New Learning during the long scholar-life which
-began at Paris and ended amidst sorrow at Basle.” Again (p. 84), “the
-group of scholars who represented the New Learning in England.” Again
-(p. 86), “On the universities the influence of the New Learning was like a
-passing from death to life.” Again (p. 125), “As yet the New Learning,
-though scared by Luther’s intemperate language, had steadily backed him in
-his struggle.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_4" id="Footnote_4"></a><a href="#FNanchor_4"><span class="label">[4]</span></a> <i>Sermons.</i> London: Robert Caly, 1557, p. 36.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_5" id="Footnote_5"></a><a href="#FNanchor_5"><span class="label">[5]</span></a> <i>The Praier and Complaynte of the Ploweman unto Christ</i>, sig. Aij.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_6" id="Footnote_6"></a><a href="#FNanchor_6"><span class="label">[6]</span></a> R. V. <i>The olde Faith of Great Brittayne, &amp;c.</i>&mdash;The style of the book
-may be judged by the following passages:&mdash;“How say you (O ye popish
-bishops and priests which maintain Austen’s dampnable ceremonies)&mdash;For
-truly so long as ye say masse and lift the bread and wine above your heads,
-giving the people to understand your mass to be available for the quick and
-the dead, ye deny the Lord that bought you; therefore let the mass go again
-to Rome, with all Austen’s trinkets, and cleave to the Lord’s Supper”.…
-Again:&mdash;“Gentle reader: It is not unknown what an occasion of sclander
-divers have taken in that the king’s majesty hath with his honourable council
-gone about to alter and take away the abuse of the communion used in the
-mass.… The ignorant and unlearned esteem the same abuse, called the mass,
-to be the principal point of Christianity, to whom the altering thereof appears
-very strange.… Our popish priests still do abuse the Lord’s Supper or Communion,
-calling it still a new name of <i>Missa</i> or Mass.” The author strongly
-objects to those like Bishop Gardiner and Dr. Smythe who have written in
-defence of the old doctrine of the English Church on the Blessed Sacrament:
-“Yea, even the mass, which is a derogation of Christ’s blood. For Christ
-left the sacrament of his body and blood in bread and wine to be eaten and
-drunk in remembrance of his death, and not to be looked upon as the Israelites
-did the brazen serpent.… Paul saith not, as often as the priest lifts the
-bread and wine above his shaven crown, for the papists to gaze at.” All this,
-as “the New Learning” brought over to England by St. Augustine of
-Canterbury, the author would send back to Rome from whence it came.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_7" id="Footnote_7"></a><a href="#FNanchor_7"><span class="label">[7]</span></a> Urbanus Regius, <i>A comparison betwene the old learnynge and the newe</i>,
-translated by William Turner. Southwark: Nicholson, 1537, sig. Aij to Cvij.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_8" id="Footnote_8"></a><a href="#FNanchor_8"><span class="label">[8]</span></a> <i>Opera</i> (ed. Le Clerc), Ep. 583.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_9" id="Footnote_9"></a><a href="#FNanchor_9"><span class="label">[9]</span></a> Ibid., Ep. 751.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_10" id="Footnote_10"></a><a href="#FNanchor_10"><span class="label">[10]</span></a> Remigio Sabbadini, <i>La Scuola e gli studi di Guarino Guarini Veronese</i>,
-pp. 217-18.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_11" id="Footnote_11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_11"><span class="label">[11]</span></a> R. Sabbadini, <i>Guarino Veronese et il suo epistolario</i>, p. 57.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_12" id="Footnote_12"></a><a href="#FNanchor_12"><span class="label">[12]</span></a> The Earl was a confrater and special friend of the monks of Christchurch,
-Canterbury. In 1468-69, Prior Goldstone wrote to the Earl, who
-had been abroad “on pilgrimage” for four years, to try and obtain for Canterbury
-the usual jubilee privileges of 1470. In his Obit in the Canterbury
-<i>Necrology</i> (MS. Arund. 68 f. 45d) he is described as “vir undecumque doctissimus,
-omnium liberalium artium divinarumque simul ac secularium litterarum
-scientia peritissimus.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_13" id="Footnote_13"></a><a href="#FNanchor_13"><span class="label">[13]</span></a> Leland (<i>De Scriptoribus Britannicis</i>, 482) calls him Tillœus, and this
-has been generally translated as Tilly. In the <i>Canterbury Letter Books</i> (Rolls
-Series, iii. 291) it appears that Prior Selling was greatly interested in a boy
-named Richard Tyll. In 1475, Thomas Goldstone, the warden of Canterbury
-Hall, writes to Prior Selling about new clothes and a tunic and other expenses
-“scolaris tui Ricardi Tyll.” In the same volume, p. 315, is a letter of
-fraternity given to “Agnes, widow of William Tyll,” and on February 7, 1491,
-she received permission to be buried where her husband, William Tyll, had
-been interred, “juxta tumbam sancti Thomæ martyris.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_14" id="Footnote_14"></a><a href="#FNanchor_14"><span class="label">[14]</span></a> <i>Canterbury Letters</i> (Camden Soc.), pp. 13, 15.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_15" id="Footnote_15"></a><a href="#FNanchor_15"><span class="label">[15]</span></a> C. C. C. C. MS. 417 f. 54d: “Item hoc anno videlicet 6 Kal. Oct.
-D. Willms Selling celebravit primam suam missam et fuit sacerdos summæ
-missæ per totam illam ebdomadam.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_16" id="Footnote_16"></a><a href="#FNanchor_16"><span class="label">[16]</span></a> <i>Literæ Cantuarr.</i> (Rolls Series), iii. 239.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_17" id="Footnote_17"></a><a href="#FNanchor_17"><span class="label">[17]</span></a> Leland, <i>De Scriptoribus Britannicis</i>, p. 482. <i>Cf.</i> also <i>Canterbury
-Letters</i> (Camden Soc.), p. xxvii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_18" id="Footnote_18"></a><a href="#FNanchor_18"><span class="label">[18]</span></a> Leland, <i>ut supra</i>.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_19" id="Footnote_19"></a><a href="#FNanchor_19"><span class="label">[19]</span></a> Umberto Dallari, <i>I rotuli dei Lettori, &amp;c., dello studio Bolognese dal
-1384 al 1799</i>, p. 51.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_20" id="Footnote_20"></a><a href="#FNanchor_20"><span class="label">[20]</span></a> Serafino Mazzetti, <i>Memorie storiche sopra l’università di Bologna</i>, p. 308.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_21" id="Footnote_21"></a><a href="#FNanchor_21"><span class="label">[21]</span></a> Leland, <i>ut supra</i>.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_22" id="Footnote_22"></a><a href="#FNanchor_22"><span class="label">[22]</span></a> B. Mus. Arundel MS. 68, f. 4. The Obit in Christchurch MS. D. 12,
-says: “Sacræ Theologiæ Doctor. Hic in divinis agendis multum devotus et
-lingua Græca et Latina valde eruditus.… O quam laudabiliter se habuit
-opera merito laudanda manifesto declarant.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_23" id="Footnote_23"></a><a href="#FNanchor_23"><span class="label">[23]</span></a> In the Canterbury Registers (Reg. R.) there is a record which evidently
-relates to Selling’s previous stay in Rome as a student. On October 3, 1469,
-the date of Selling’s second departure for Rome, the Prior and convent of
-Christchurch granted a letter to Pietro dei Milleni, a citizen of Rome, making
-him a <i>confrater</i> of the monastery in return for the kindness shown to Dr.
-William Selling, when in the Eternal City. This letter, doubtless, Selling
-carried with him in 1469.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_24" id="Footnote_24"></a><a href="#FNanchor_24"><span class="label">[24]</span></a> <i>The Old English Bible and other Essays</i>, p. 306.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_25" id="Footnote_25"></a><a href="#FNanchor_25"><span class="label">[25]</span></a> B. Mus. Cotton MS. Julius F. vii., f. 118.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_26" id="Footnote_26"></a><a href="#FNanchor_26"><span class="label">[26]</span></a> One of Prior Selling’s first acts of administration was apparently to procure
-a master for the grammar school at Canterbury. He writes to the Archbishop:
-“Also please it your good faderhood to have in knowledge that
-according to your commandment, I have provided for a schoolmaster for your
-gramerscole in Canterbury, the which hath lately taught gramer at Wynchester
-and atte Seynt Antonyes in London. That, as I trust to God, shall so guide
-him that it shall be worship and pleasure to your Lordship and profit and
-encreas to them that he shall have in governance.”&mdash;<i>Hist. MSS. Com.</i> 9th
-Report, App. p. 105.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_27" id="Footnote_27"></a><a href="#FNanchor_27"><span class="label">[27]</span></a> I. Noble Johnson, <i>Life of Linacre</i>, p. 11. Among the great benefactors
-to Canterbury College, Oxford, was Doctor Thomas Chaundeler, Warden of
-New College. In 1473, the year after the election of Prior Selling, the
-Chapter of Christchurch, Canterbury, passed a resolution that, in memory of
-his great benefits to them, his name should be mentioned daily in the conventual
-mass at Canterbury, and that at dinner each day at Oxford he should
-be named as founder.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_28" id="Footnote_28"></a><a href="#FNanchor_28"><span class="label">[28]</span></a> Galeni, <i>De Temperamentis libri tres, Thoma Linacro interpretante</i>, is
-dedicated to Pope Leo X., with a letter from Linacre dated 1521. “The
-widow’s mite was approved by Him whose vicar on earth” Pope Leo is, so
-this book is only intended to recall common studies, though in itself of little
-interest to one having the care of the world.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_29" id="Footnote_29"></a><a href="#FNanchor_29"><span class="label">[29]</span></a> G. Lilii, <i>Elogia</i>, ed. P. Jovii, p. 91.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_30" id="Footnote_30"></a><a href="#FNanchor_30"><span class="label">[30]</span></a> Ibid., lxiii. p. 145.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_31" id="Footnote_31"></a><a href="#FNanchor_31"><span class="label">[31]</span></a> Sir Thomas More writing to Colet says: “I pass my time here (at
-Oxford) with Grocyn, Linacre, and our (George) Lilly: the first as you
-know the only master of my life, when you are absent; the second, the
-director of my studies; the third, my dearest companion in all the affairs
-of life” (J. Stapleton, <i>Tres Thomæ</i>, p. 165.) Another constant companion
-of More at Oxford was Cuthbert Tunstall, one of the most learned men of
-his day, afterwards in succession Bishop of London and Durham. Tunstall
-dedicated to More his tract <i>De arte supputandi</i>, which he printed at Paris
-in 1529.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_32" id="Footnote_32"></a><a href="#FNanchor_32"><span class="label">[32]</span></a> Reg. Warham, in Knight’s <i>Erasmus</i>, p. 22 <i>note</i>.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_33" id="Footnote_33"></a><a href="#FNanchor_33"><span class="label">[33]</span></a> Encyclop. Brit. <i>sub nomine</i>.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_34" id="Footnote_34"></a><a href="#FNanchor_34"><span class="label">[34]</span></a> Ibid.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_35" id="Footnote_35"></a><a href="#FNanchor_35"><span class="label">[35]</span></a> Ugo Balzani, <i>Un’ ambasciata inglese a Roma</i>, Società Romana di
-storia patria, iii. p. 175 <i>seqq.</i> Of this an epitome is given in Bacon’s
-<i>Henry VII.</i>, p. 95. Count Ugo Balzani says: “Il prior di Canterbury sembra
-essere veramente stato l’anima dell’ ambasciata.” Burchardus, <i>Rerum Urbanarum
-Commentarii</i> (ed. Thuasne), i. p. 257, gives a full account of the
-reception of this embassy in Rome and by the Pope.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_36" id="Footnote_36"></a><a href="#FNanchor_36"><span class="label">[36]</span></a> Harl. MS. 6237, and Add. MS. 15,673.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_37" id="Footnote_37"></a><a href="#FNanchor_37"><span class="label">[37]</span></a> In the same beautifully written volume is a printed tract addressed to the
-Venetian Senate in 1471 against princes taking church property. The tract
-had been sent to the Prior of Christchurch by Christopher Urswick, with a
-letter, in which, to induce him to read it, he says it is approved by Hermolaus
-Barbarus and Guarini. Christopher Urswick was almoner to Henry VII.,
-and to him Erasmus dedicated three of his works.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_38" id="Footnote_38"></a><a href="#FNanchor_38"><span class="label">[38]</span></a> Leland, <i>De Scriptoribus Britannicis</i>, 482.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_39" id="Footnote_39"></a><a href="#FNanchor_39"><span class="label">[39]</span></a> This information I owe to the kindness of Dr. Montague James.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_40" id="Footnote_40"></a><a href="#FNanchor_40"><span class="label">[40]</span></a> <i>Canterbury Letters</i> (Camden Soc.), p. xxvii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_41" id="Footnote_41"></a><a href="#FNanchor_41"><span class="label">[41]</span></a> Ibid., p. 36, a letter in which Dr. Langton asks Prior Selling to “attend
-to the drawing of it.” The draft sermon is in Cleop. A. iii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_42" id="Footnote_42"></a><a href="#FNanchor_42"><span class="label">[42]</span></a> Richard Pace, <i>De Fructu</i>, p. 27. The work <i>De Fructu</i> was composed
-at Constance, where Pace was ambassador, and where he had met his old
-master, Paul Bombasius. He dedicates the tract to Colet, who had done so
-much to introduce true classical Latin into England, in place of the barbarous
-language formerly used. The work was suggested to him by a conversation
-he had in England two years before, on his return from Rome, with a gentleman
-he met at dinner, who strongly objected to a literary education for his
-children, on the ground that he disapproved of certain expressions made use of
-by Erasmus. The tract shows on what a very intimate footing Pace was with
-Bombasius.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_43" id="Footnote_43"></a><a href="#FNanchor_43"><span class="label">[43]</span></a> <i>De Fructu</i>, p. 99. Pace published at Venice in 1522, <i>Plutarchi Cheronei
-Opuscula</i>, and dedicated the work to Bishop Tunstall. He reminds the bishop
-of their old student days, and says the translation has been examined by their
-“old master, Nicholas Leonicus.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_44" id="Footnote_44"></a><a href="#FNanchor_44"><span class="label">[44]</span></a> Ibid.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_45" id="Footnote_45"></a><a href="#FNanchor_45"><span class="label">[45]</span></a> Ibid.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_46" id="Footnote_46"></a><a href="#FNanchor_46"><span class="label">[46]</span></a> Ibid., p. 51. “Quas vocant proportionum inductiones … antiquitatem
-superasse.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_47" id="Footnote_47"></a><a href="#FNanchor_47"><span class="label">[47]</span></a> More to the University of Oxford, in Knight’s <i>Erasmus</i>, p. 31.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_48" id="Footnote_48"></a><a href="#FNanchor_48"><span class="label">[48]</span></a> Bishop Fisher’s love and zeal for learning is notorious. He did all in his
-power to assist in the foundation of schools of sound learning at Cambridge,
-and especially to encourage the study of Greek. Richard Croke, the protégé
-of Archbishop Warham and Bishop Fisher, after teaching Greek in 1516 at
-Leipzig, was sent by Fisher in 1519 to Cambridge to urge the utility of Greek
-studies at that university. In the <i>Orationes</i> he delivered there, after speaking
-of the importance of Greek for all Biblical study, he says that Oxford had
-taken up the work with great avidity, since “they have there as their patrons
-besides the Cardinal (Wolsey), Canterbury (Warham), and Winchester, all
-the other English bishops except the one who has always been your great stay
-and helper, the Bishop of Rochester, and the Bishop of Ely.” It was entirely
-owing to Bishop Fisher’s generosity, and at his special request, that Croke had
-gone to Cambridge rather than to Oxford, whither his connection with Warham,
-More, Linacre, and Grocyn would have led him, in order to carry on the work
-begun by Erasmus.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_49" id="Footnote_49"></a><a href="#FNanchor_49"><span class="label">[49]</span></a> Thomas Lupset was educated by Colet, and learnt his Latin and Greek
-under William Lilly, going afterwards to Oxford. There he made the acquaintance
-of Ludovico Vives, and at his exhortation went to Italy. He joined
-Reginald Pole in his studies at Padua, and on his return, after acting as
-Thomas Winter’s tutor in Paris, he held a position first as a teacher and then in
-Cardinal Wolsey’s household. In his <i>Exhortation to Young Men</i>, persuading
-them to a good life, “written at More, a place of my Lord Cardinal’s,” in 1529,
-he gives a charming account of his relation with a former pupil. “It happeneth,”
-he says, “at this time (my heartily beloved Edmund) that I am in
-such a place where I have no manner of books with me to pass the time after
-my manner and custom. And though I had here with me plenty of books, yet
-the place suffereth me not to spend in them any study. For you shall understand
-that I lie waiting on my Lord Cardinal, whose hours I must observe,
-to be always at hand lest I be called when I am not bye, which would be
-straight taken for a fault of great negligence. I am well satiated with the beholding
-of these gay hangings that garnish here every wall.” As a relief he
-turns to address his young friend Edmund. Probably Edmund doesn’t understand
-his affection, because he had always acted on the principle he has “been
-taught, that the master never hurteth his scholar more than when he uttereth
-and sheweth by cherishing and cokering the love he beareth to his scholars.”
-Edmund is now “of age, and also by the common board of houseling admitted
-into the number of men, and to be no more in the company of children,” and
-so now he can make known his affection. “This mind had I to my friend
-Andrew Smith, whose son Christopher, your fellow, I ever took for my son.…
-If you will call to your mind all the frays between you and me, or me
-and Smith, you will find that they were all out of my care for ‘your manners.’
-When I saw certain fantasies in you or him that jarred from true opinions, the
-which true opinions, above all learning, I would have masters ever teach their
-scholars. Wherefore, my good withipol, take heed of my lesson.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_50" id="Footnote_50"></a><a href="#FNanchor_50"><span class="label">[50]</span></a> John Clement, a protégé of Sir Thomas More, was afterwards a doctor
-of renown not only in medicine but in languages. He had been a member
-of More’s household, which Erasmus speaks of as “schola et gymnasium
-Christianæ religionis.” He is named at the beginning of the <i>Eutopia</i>, and
-Sir Thomas, in writing to Erasmus, says that Linacre declared that he had had
-no pupil at Oxford equal to him. John Clement translated several ancient Greek
-authors into Latin, amongst others many letters of St. Gregory Nazianzen and
-the Homilies of Nicephorus Callistus on the Saints of the Greek Calendar.
-Stapleton, in his <i>Tres Thomæ</i> (p. 250), says he had himself seen and examined
-with the originals these two voluminous translations at the request of John
-Clement himself. He had married Margaret, the ward of Sir Thomas More,
-and in the most difficult places of his translation he was helped by his wife,
-who, with the daughters of Sir Thomas, had been his disciple and knew
-Greek well. Mary Roper, More’s granddaughter, and the daughter of
-Margaret Roper, translated Eusebius’s <i>History</i> from Greek into Latin, but it
-was never published, because Bishop Christopherson had been at work on a
-similar translation. On the change of religion in Elizabeth’s reign, John
-Clement and his wife, with the Ropers, took refuge in the Low Countries.
-Paulus Jovius, in his <i>Descriptio Britanniæ</i>, p. 13, speaks of all three daughters
-of Sir Thomas More being celebrated for their knowledge of Latin.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_51" id="Footnote_51"></a><a href="#FNanchor_51"><span class="label">[51]</span></a> Erasmi <i>Opera</i> (ed. 1703), Col. 40.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_52" id="Footnote_52"></a><a href="#FNanchor_52"><span class="label">[52]</span></a> Ibid., Ep. 241.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_53" id="Footnote_53"></a><a href="#FNanchor_53"><span class="label">[53]</span></a> Ibid., Ep. 363.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_54" id="Footnote_54"></a><a href="#FNanchor_54"><span class="label">[54]</span></a> To take one example, Thomas Millyng, who as Bishop of Hereford
-died in 1492, had studied at Gloucester Hall, Oxford, as a monk of Westminster.
-During the old age of Abbot Fleet, of Westminster, he governed
-the monastery, and became its abbot in 1465. He was noted for his love of
-studies, and especially for his knowledge of Greek. This, says the writer of his
-brief life in the <i>National Biographical Dictionary</i>, was “a rare accomplishment
-for <i>monks</i> in those days.” He might have added, and for any one
-else!</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_55" id="Footnote_55"></a><a href="#FNanchor_55"><span class="label">[55]</span></a> Dennistoun, <i>Memorials of the Dukes of Urbino</i>, iii., pp. 415 <i>seqq.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_56" id="Footnote_56"></a><a href="#FNanchor_56"><span class="label">[56]</span></a> Erasmus to Abbot Bere. <i>Opera</i>, Ep. 700.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_57" id="Footnote_57"></a><a href="#FNanchor_57"><span class="label">[57]</span></a> MS. Bodl. 80. It is the autograph copy of Free, <i>cf.</i> J. W. Williams,
-<i>Somerset Mediæval Libraries</i>, p. 87. It was Abbot Bere who, in 1506, presented
-John Claymond, the learned Greek scholar, to his first benefice of
-Westmonkton, in the county of Somerset. In 1516 Claymond became first
-President of Corpus Christi College, Oxford, often after signing himself,
-<i>Eucharistiæ servus</i>. Dr. Claymond procured for his college several Greek
-manuscripts which had belonged to Grocyn and Linacre, which are still
-possessed by it. At the end of MS. XXIII., which is a volume containing
-ninety homilies of St. John Chrysostom in Greek, is an inscription stating that
-this, and MS. XXIV., were copied in the years 1499 and 1500 by a Greek
-from Constantinople, named John Serbopylas, then living and working at
-Reading.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_58" id="Footnote_58"></a><a href="#FNanchor_58"><span class="label">[58]</span></a> Ludovico Vives had been invited over to England by Cardinal Wolsey to
-lecture on rhetoric at Oxford. He lived at Corpus Christi College, then ruled
-by Dr. John Claymond, whom in his tract <i>De conscribendis Epistolis</i> he calls
-his “father.” The fame of this Spanish master of eloquence drew crowds to his
-lectures at the university, and amongst the audience Henry and Queen Katherine
-might sometimes be seen. For a time he acted also as tutor to the
-Princess Mary, and dedicated several works to the queen, to whose generosity
-he says he owed much. He took her side in the “divorce” question, and was
-thrown into prison for some weeks for expressing his views on the matter.
-Fisher, More, and Tunstall were his constant friends in England, and of
-Margaret Roper he writes, “from the time I first made her acquaintance I
-have loved her as a sister.” Among his pupils at Louvain, besides the above-named
-Canterbury monk, John Digon, he mentions with great affection
-Nicholas Wotton, whom the antiquary Twyne speaks of as returning to England
-with Digon and Jerome Ruffaldus, who calls Vives his “Jonathan,” and
-who subsequently became abbot of St. Vaast, Arras.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_59" id="Footnote_59"></a><a href="#FNanchor_59"><span class="label">[59]</span></a> J. Venn, <i>Gonville and Caius College</i> (1349-1897), Vol. I.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_60" id="Footnote_60"></a><a href="#FNanchor_60"><span class="label">[60]</span></a> Ibid., p. xvi.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_61" id="Footnote_61"></a><a href="#FNanchor_61"><span class="label">[61]</span></a> Ibid., p. 18.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_62" id="Footnote_62"></a><a href="#FNanchor_62"><span class="label">[62]</span></a> Ibid., p. 23.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_63" id="Footnote_63"></a><a href="#FNanchor_63"><span class="label">[63]</span></a> Ibid., p. 21.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_64" id="Footnote_64"></a><a href="#FNanchor_64"><span class="label">[64]</span></a> Ibid., p. xviii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_65" id="Footnote_65"></a><a href="#FNanchor_65"><span class="label">[65]</span></a> <i>Sermons</i> (1557), f. 54.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_66" id="Footnote_66"></a><a href="#FNanchor_66"><span class="label">[66]</span></a> A. Chalmers, <i>History of the Colleges, &amp;c. of Oxford</i>, ii. p. 351.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_67" id="Footnote_67"></a><a href="#FNanchor_67"><span class="label">[67]</span></a> Hearne, <i>John of Glastonbury</i>, ii. p. 490; from MS. Cott. Vitellius c. vii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_68" id="Footnote_68"></a><a href="#FNanchor_68"><span class="label">[68]</span></a> Saint-German was born 1460. He was employed by Thomas Cromwell
-on some business of the State, and died in 1540. The <i>Dyalogue</i> was printed
-apparently first in Latin, but subsequently in English. It consisted of three
-parts (1) published by Robert Wyer, (2) by Peter Treveris, 1531, and (3) by
-Thomas Berthalet, also in 1531.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_69" id="Footnote_69"></a><a href="#FNanchor_69"><span class="label">[69]</span></a> <i>Dyalogue</i>, <i>ut sup.</i>, 3rd part, f. 2.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_70" id="Footnote_70"></a><a href="#FNanchor_70"><span class="label">[70]</span></a> One of the first Acts of King Henry VII. on his accession, was to obtain
-from the Pope a Bull agreeing to some changes in the Sanctuary customs.
-Prior Selling of Canterbury was despatched as King’s Orator to Rome with
-others to Pope Innocent VIII. in 1487, and brought back the Pope’s
-approval of three points in which the king proposed to change these laws.
-<i>First</i>, that if any person in Sanctuary went out at night and committed mischief
-and trespass, and then got back again, he should forfeit his privilege of
-Sanctuary. <i>Secondly</i>, that though the person of a debtor might be protected
-in Sanctuary, yet his goods out of the precincts were not so protected from his
-creditors. <i>Thirdly</i>, that where a person took Sanctuary for treason, the king
-might appoint him keepers within the Sanctuary.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_71" id="Footnote_71"></a><a href="#FNanchor_71"><span class="label">[71]</span></a> Robert Keilway, <i>Relationes quorundam casuum</i>, f. 188, <i>seqq.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_72" id="Footnote_72"></a><a href="#FNanchor_72"><span class="label">[72]</span></a> <i>Dyalogue</i>, <i>ut sup.</i>, f. 12.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_73" id="Footnote_73"></a><a href="#FNanchor_73"><span class="label">[73]</span></a> <i>Dyalogue</i>, f. 23.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_74" id="Footnote_74"></a><a href="#FNanchor_74"><span class="label">[74]</span></a> Ibid.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_75" id="Footnote_75"></a><a href="#FNanchor_75"><span class="label">[75]</span></a> Ibid., f. 23.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_76" id="Footnote_76"></a><a href="#FNanchor_76"><span class="label">[76]</span></a> Ibid., f. 21.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_77" id="Footnote_77"></a><a href="#FNanchor_77"><span class="label">[77]</span></a> Ibid., f. 21.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_78" id="Footnote_78"></a><a href="#FNanchor_78"><span class="label">[78]</span></a> <i>A treatyse concerning the power of the clergie and the laws of the realme.</i>
-London, J. Godfray.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_79" id="Footnote_79"></a><a href="#FNanchor_79"><span class="label">[79]</span></a> <i>A treatyse</i>, &amp;c., <i>ut supra</i>, cap. 4.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_80" id="Footnote_80"></a><a href="#FNanchor_80"><span class="label">[80]</span></a> <i>A treatyse</i>, &amp;c., <i>ut supra</i>, cap. xii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_81" id="Footnote_81"></a><a href="#FNanchor_81"><span class="label">[81]</span></a> <i>A treatyse</i>, &amp;c., <i>ut supra</i>, cap. xii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_82" id="Footnote_82"></a><a href="#FNanchor_82"><span class="label">[82]</span></a> Ibid., cap. xiii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_83" id="Footnote_83"></a><a href="#FNanchor_83"><span class="label">[83]</span></a> Ibid., cap. vi.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_84" id="Footnote_84"></a><a href="#FNanchor_84"><span class="label">[84]</span></a> <i>English Works</i> (ed. 1557), p. 1017.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_85" id="Footnote_85"></a><a href="#FNanchor_85"><span class="label">[85]</span></a> <i>A treatyse</i>, &amp;c., <i>ut sup.</i>, cap. vi., sig. E. i.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_86" id="Footnote_86"></a><a href="#FNanchor_86"><span class="label">[86]</span></a> <i>Salem and Bizance, a dialogue betwixte two Englishmen, whereof one was
-called Salem and the other Bizance</i> (Berthelet, 1533), f. 76.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_87" id="Footnote_87"></a><a href="#FNanchor_87"><span class="label">[87]</span></a> Ibid., f. 84.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_88" id="Footnote_88"></a><a href="#FNanchor_88"><span class="label">[88]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 892.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_89" id="Footnote_89"></a><a href="#FNanchor_89"><span class="label">[89]</span></a> Ibid.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_90" id="Footnote_90"></a><a href="#FNanchor_90"><span class="label">[90]</span></a> <i>A Dialogue</i>, &amp;c., <i>ut sup.</i>, f. 8.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_91" id="Footnote_91"></a><a href="#FNanchor_91"><span class="label">[91]</span></a> Ibid., f. 11.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_92" id="Footnote_92"></a><a href="#FNanchor_92"><span class="label">[92]</span></a> Ibid., f. 14.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_93" id="Footnote_93"></a><a href="#FNanchor_93"><span class="label">[93]</span></a> <i>A Dialogue</i>, &amp;c., <i>ut sup.</i>, p. 17.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_94" id="Footnote_94"></a><a href="#FNanchor_94"><span class="label">[94]</span></a> <i>History of English Law</i>, i., p. 93-4. Mr. James Gairdner, in a letter to
-<i>The Guardian</i>, March 1, 1899, says: “There were, in the Middle Ages, in
-every kingdom of Europe that owned the Pope’s jurisdiction, two authorities,
-the one temporal and the other spiritual, and the head of the spiritual jurisdiction
-was at Rome. The bishops had the rule over their clergy, even in
-criminal matters, and over the laity as well in matters of faith. Even a
-bishop’s decision, it is true, might be disputed, and there was an appeal to the
-Pope; nay, the Pope’s decision might be disputed, and there was an appeal to a
-general council. Thus there was, in every kingdom, an <i>imperium in imperio</i>,
-but nobody objected to such a state of matters, not even kings, seeing that
-they could, as a rule, get anything they wanted out of the Popes&mdash;even some
-things, occasionally, that the Popes ought not to have conceded.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_95" id="Footnote_95"></a><a href="#FNanchor_95"><span class="label">[95]</span></a> William Bond, <i>The Pilgrymage of perfeccyon</i>, 1531, f. 223.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_96" id="Footnote_96"></a><a href="#FNanchor_96"><span class="label">[96]</span></a> Roger Edgworth, <i>Sermons</i>, 1557, fol. 102</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_97" id="Footnote_97"></a><a href="#FNanchor_97"><span class="label">[97]</span></a> Edward Powell, <i>Propugnaculum summi sacerdotii, &amp;c., adversus M.
-Lutherum</i>, 1523, fol. 22 and fol. 35.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_98" id="Footnote_98"></a><a href="#FNanchor_98"><span class="label">[98]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 171.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_99" id="Footnote_99"></a><a href="#FNanchor_99"><span class="label">[99]</span></a> Ibid. p. 185.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_100" id="Footnote_100"></a><a href="#FNanchor_100"><span class="label">[100]</span></a> Ibid., p. 528.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_101" id="Footnote_101"></a><a href="#FNanchor_101"><span class="label">[101]</span></a> Ibid., p. 538.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_102" id="Footnote_102"></a><a href="#FNanchor_102"><span class="label">[102]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 616.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_103" id="Footnote_103"></a><a href="#FNanchor_103"><span class="label">[103]</span></a> Ibid., p. 798.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_104" id="Footnote_104"></a><a href="#FNanchor_104"><span class="label">[104]</span></a> <i>Henry VIII. and the English Monasteries</i> (popular edition), p. 367.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_105" id="Footnote_105"></a><a href="#FNanchor_105"><span class="label">[105]</span></a> In his work against Luther, Bishop Fisher teaches the supremacy of the
-Pope without any ambiguity. In the <i>Sermon had at Paulis</i> against Luther
-and his followers, he also put his position perfectly clearly. The Church that
-has a right to the name <i>Catholic</i> has derived the right from its communion
-with the See of Peter. Our Lord called Cephas, Peter, or rock, to signify that
-upon him as a rock He would build His church. Unto Peter He committed His
-flock, and “the true Christian people which we have at this day was derived
-by a continual succession from the See of Peter” (fol. e. 4. d.).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_106" id="Footnote_106"></a><a href="#FNanchor_106"><span class="label">[106]</span></a> Simon Matthew, <i>Sermon made in the Cathedrall Church of Saynt-Paule,
-27 June 1535</i> (Berthelet, 1535).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_107" id="Footnote_107"></a><a href="#FNanchor_107"><span class="label">[107]</span></a> Joannis Longlondi <i>Tres conciones</i> (R. Pynson), f. 45.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_108" id="Footnote_108"></a><a href="#FNanchor_108"><span class="label">[108]</span></a> <i>Assertion of the Seven Sacraments against Luther</i> (translation by J. W.,
-1687), f. a. i.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_109" id="Footnote_109"></a><a href="#FNanchor_109"><span class="label">[109]</span></a> <i>A treatise of the donation or gift and endowment of possessions given</i> (by
-Constantine) <i>with the judgement of certain great men</i>, 1517, Thomas Godfray.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_110" id="Footnote_110"></a><a href="#FNanchor_110"><span class="label">[110]</span></a> London, Thomas Berthelet.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_111" id="Footnote_111"></a><a href="#FNanchor_111"><span class="label">[111]</span></a> <i>A dyalogue</i>, <i>ut sup.</i>, ff. 3-7.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_112" id="Footnote_112"></a><a href="#FNanchor_112"><span class="label">[112]</span></a> f. A. ii.; c. i.; c. iiij. The author recommends those who would understand
-the Pope’s power to “resort unto <i>The glasse of truth</i> or to the book named
-the <i>Determinations of the universities</i>.” The book named here <i>A glasse of
-truth</i> is written in favour of the divorce. “Some lawyers,” the author says,
-“attribute too much to the Pope&mdash;at length there shall be no law, but only
-his will.” The work was published by Berthelet anonymously, but Richard
-Croke, in a letter written at this period (Ellis, <i>Historical Letters</i>, 3rd series,
-ii. 195), says that the book was written by King Henry himself. It was
-generally said that Henry had written a defence of his divorce; but Strype
-did not think it was more than a State paper. Croke (p. 198) says that
-people at Oxford, “Mr. John Roper and others,” did not believe that the
-king was really the author. He says that the tract has done more than
-anything else to get people to take the king’s side.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_113" id="Footnote_113"></a><a href="#FNanchor_113"><span class="label">[113]</span></a> <i>Of the olde God and the new</i>, B. 1. As another sample of what was at
-this time said about the Popes, we may take the following: Rome, says
-the author, “was by Justinian restored from ruin and decay, from whence also
-came the riches of the Church. At the coming of these riches, forthwith the
-book of the gospel was shut up, and the Bishops of Rome, instead of evangelical
-poverty, began to put forth their heads garnished with three crowns.”
-This is taken from the preface of Hartman Dulechin, who claims to have
-“taught the book to speak Latin.” It was originally printed and published
-in German. The English version is a translation of the Latin.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_114" id="Footnote_114"></a><a href="#FNanchor_114"><span class="label">[114]</span></a> <i>The Defence of Peace, written in Latin more than 200 years ago, and set
-forth in the English tongue by Wyllyam Marshall.</i> R. Wyer, 1535, folio.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_115" id="Footnote_115"></a><a href="#FNanchor_115"><span class="label">[115]</span></a> <i>The Defence of Peace</i>, f. 42. The well-known anti-papal opinions of
-Marsilius of Padua are, of course, of no interest in themselves, but their publication
-at this time in English shows the methods by which it was hoped to
-undermine the Papal authority in the country.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_116" id="Footnote_116"></a><a href="#FNanchor_116"><span class="label">[116]</span></a> <i>Exposition</i>, &amp;c., <i>ut supra</i>, f. i.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_117" id="Footnote_117"></a><a href="#FNanchor_117"><span class="label">[117]</span></a> Johann Sturmius, <i>Epistle sent to the cardinals and prelates that were
-appointed by the Bishop of Rome to search out the abuses of the Church</i>.
-Translated by Richard Morysine. Berthelet, 1538.
-</p>
-<p>
-A later copy of the <i>Concilium de emendanda Ecclesia</i>, printed by
-Sturmius with his letter in 1538, in the British Museum, formerly belonged
-to Cecil. The title-page has his signature, “Gulielmus Cecilius, 1540,” and
-there are marks and words underlined, and some few observations from his
-pen in the margin. It is interesting to note that what struck the statesman
-as a youth were just the points which could be turned against the temporal
-claims of the Roman See.
-</p>
-<p>
-The special evils needing correction which the committee of cardinals
-note, and which they call <i>abuses</i>, are collected under 22 headings, some of
-which are the following:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-(1) Ordination of priests without cure of souls, not learned, of lower order
-in life, and too young and of doubtful morals: They suggest that each diocese
-should have a <i>magistrum</i> to see that candidates are properly instructed&mdash;none
-to be ordained except by their own bishop.
-</p>
-<p>
-(2) Benefices, and in particular, episcopal sees, are given to people with
-interest, and not because their elevation would be good for the church.
-They suggest that the best man should be chosen, and residence should be
-insisted on, and consequently “non Italo conferendum est beneficium in
-Hispania aut in Britannia aut ex contra.”
-</p>
-<p>
-(3) <i>Pensions</i> reserved from Benefices. Though the Pope, “who is the
-universal dispenser of the goods of the church,” may reserve a part for a
-pious use, <i>e.g.</i> for the poor, &amp;c., still not to reserve sufficient for the proper
-purpose of the beneficiary, and still more to give a pension out of a benefice
-to one rich enough without, is wrong.
-</p>
-<p>
-(4) Change of benefices for the sake of gain, and handing on benefices by
-arrangement or always assigning episcopal sees to coadjutors, is the cause of
-outcry against the clergy, and is in reality making private property out of what
-is public.
-</p>
-<p>
-(5) Permission to clergy to hold more than one benefice.
-</p>
-<p>
-(6) Cardinals being allowed to hold sees. They ought to be counsellors
-to the Pope in Rome, and when holding sees they are more or less dependent
-on the will of the kings, and so cannot give independent advice and speak
-their minds.
-</p>
-<p>
-(7) Absence of bishops from their sees.
-</p>
-<p>
-(8) Such religious houses as needed correction should be forbidden to
-profess members, and when they die out, their places should be taken by
-fervent religious. Confessors for convents must be approved by the ordinaries
-of the place.
-</p>
-<p>
-(9) The use of the keys ought never, under any pretext, to be granted for
-money.
-</p>
-<p>
-(10) Questors of the Holy Spirit, St. Anthony, &amp;c., who foster superstition
-among the poor people, should be prohibited.
-</p>
-<p>
-(11) Confessional privileges and use of portable altars to be very rarely
-allowed.
-</p>
-<p>
-(12) No indulgences to be granted except once a year, and in the great
-cities only.
-</p>
-<p>
-Finally they say of Rome: “Hæc Romana civitas et ecclesia mater
-est et magistra aliarum ecclesiarum,” and hence it should be a model to all.
-Foreigners, however, who come to St. Peter’s find that priests “sordidi,
-ignari, induti paramentis et vestibus quibus nec in sordidis ædibus honeste
-uti possent, missas celebrant.”
-</p>
-<p>
-Cardinal Sadolet, on receiving a copy of Sturmius’s letter, replied in kindly
-terms. He had, he declared, a high opinion of “Sturmius, Melanchthon, and
-Bucer, looking on them as most learned men, kindly disposed, and cordially
-friendly to him. He looked upon it as the peculiar characteristic of Luther
-to try and overwhelm all his opponents with shouts and attacks.” He speaks
-of the great piety of Pope Clement from personal knowledge. His wars were,
-he said, rather the work of his adversaries than his own (<i>De consilio</i>, ed.
-J. G. Schelhorn, 1748, p. 91).
-</p>
-<p>
-He also, in 1539, penned the <i>De Christiana Ecclesia</i> (in <i>Specilegium
-Romanum</i>, ii. p. 101 <i>seqq.</i>), sending it to Cardinal Salicati, and asking him to
-pass it on to Cardinal Contarini. It was the outcome of conversations about
-the troubles of the Church, and the result of the movement was the Council
-of Trent, to restore, as Sadolet says, ecclesiastical discipline “quæ nunc tota
-pæne nobis e manibus elapsa est.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_118" id="Footnote_118"></a><a href="#FNanchor_118"><span class="label">[118]</span></a> <i>Sermon on Palm Sunday</i>, Berthelet, 1539.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_119" id="Footnote_119"></a><a href="#FNanchor_119"><span class="label">[119]</span></a> Lancelot Ridley, <i>Commentary in Englyshe on Sayncte Paule’s Epystle
-to the Ephesians</i>, L. 4.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_120" id="Footnote_120"></a><a href="#FNanchor_120"><span class="label">[120]</span></a> This important paper was printed for the first time in the <i>Dublin Review</i>,
-April 1894, pp. 390-420.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_121" id="Footnote_121"></a><a href="#FNanchor_121"><span class="label">[121]</span></a> <i>A treatise concerning the division between the spiritualtie and temporaltie.</i>
-London: Robert Redman, f. 2.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_122" id="Footnote_122"></a><a href="#FNanchor_122"><span class="label">[122]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 871. In the quotations made from the works of
-Sir Thomas More and other old writings, for the sake of the general reader
-the modern form of spelling has been adopted, and at times the words transposed
-to ensure greater clearness.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_123" id="Footnote_123"></a><a href="#FNanchor_123"><span class="label">[123]</span></a> Ibid., p. 875.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_124" id="Footnote_124"></a><a href="#FNanchor_124"><span class="label">[124]</span></a> Ibid., p. 882.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_125" id="Footnote_125"></a><a href="#FNanchor_125"><span class="label">[125]</span></a> <i>Salem and Bizance. A dialogue betwixte two Englishmen, whereof one
-was called Salem and the other Bizance.</i> London: Berthelet, 1533, f. 5.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_126" id="Footnote_126"></a><a href="#FNanchor_126"><span class="label">[126]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 934.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_127" id="Footnote_127"></a><a href="#FNanchor_127"><span class="label">[127]</span></a> Ibid., p. 870.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_128" id="Footnote_128"></a><a href="#FNanchor_128"><span class="label">[128]</span></a> Ibid., p. 877.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_129" id="Footnote_129"></a><a href="#FNanchor_129"><span class="label">[129]</span></a> Ibid., p. 877.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_130" id="Footnote_130"></a><a href="#FNanchor_130"><span class="label">[130]</span></a> Ibid., p. 878.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_131" id="Footnote_131"></a><a href="#FNanchor_131"><span class="label">[131]</span></a> Ibid., pp. 937, 938.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_132" id="Footnote_132"></a><a href="#FNanchor_132"><span class="label">[132]</span></a> <i>A treatise concerning the division</i>, f. 8.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_133" id="Footnote_133"></a><a href="#FNanchor_133"><span class="label">[133]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 880.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_134" id="Footnote_134"></a><a href="#FNanchor_134"><span class="label">[134]</span></a> Ibid., p. 951.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_135" id="Footnote_135"></a><a href="#FNanchor_135"><span class="label">[135]</span></a> <i>A treatise concerning the division</i>, f. 3.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_136" id="Footnote_136"></a><a href="#FNanchor_136"><span class="label">[136]</span></a> <i>A treatise concerning the division</i>, f. 41.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_137" id="Footnote_137"></a><a href="#FNanchor_137"><span class="label">[137]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 884.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_138" id="Footnote_138"></a><a href="#FNanchor_138"><span class="label">[138]</span></a> Ibid., p. 895.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_139" id="Footnote_139"></a><a href="#FNanchor_139"><span class="label">[139]</span></a> Ibid.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_140" id="Footnote_140"></a><a href="#FNanchor_140"><span class="label">[140]</span></a> Ibid., p. 896.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_141" id="Footnote_141"></a><a href="#FNanchor_141"><span class="label">[141]</span></a> Ibid., p. 885.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_142" id="Footnote_142"></a><a href="#FNanchor_142"><span class="label">[142]</span></a> Bishop Fisher gives much the same testimony to the moral character of
-the religious generally in his sermon against Luther. After praising the state
-of virginity, he continues: “And it is not to be doubted but that there is in
-Christendom at this day many thousands of religious men and women that full
-truly keep their religion and their chastity unto Christ.… If Almighty God
-did reserve in that little portion of Jewry so great a multitude beyond the estimation
-of the prophet, what number suppose ye doth yet remain in Christendom
-of religious men and women, notwithstanding this great persecution of
-religious monasteries, both of men and women, done by these heretics by this
-most execrable doctrine? It is not to be doubted but in all Christendom be
-left many thousands who at this hour live chaste, and truly keep their virginity
-unto Christ.” (<i>A Sermon had at Paulis</i>, Berthelet, f. g. ii.)</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_143" id="Footnote_143"></a><a href="#FNanchor_143"><span class="label">[143]</span></a> Ibid., p. 735. Sir Thomas More, in his <i>Dyalogue</i>, thinks that the
-number of priests without very definite work had tended to diminish the
-respect paid to them by the laity. “But were I Pope,” he says, … “I
-could not well devise better provisions than by the laws of the Church are
-provided already, if they were as well kept as they are well made. But as for
-the number, I would surely see such a way therein that we should not have
-such a rabble that every mean man must have a priest in his house to wait upon
-his wife. This no mean man lacketh now, to the contempt of the priesthood,
-(placed) in as vile an office as his horsekeeper. That is truth indeed, quod he,
-and in worse, too, for they keep hawks and dogs.” If the laws of the Church
-were kept, there would not be the excessive number of priests for fit and
-proper positions, so that “the whole order is rebuked by the priests’ begging
-and lewd living who are either obliged to walk as rovers, and live upon
-trentals or worse, or serve in a secular man’s house” (<i>English Works</i>,
-p. 223).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_144" id="Footnote_144"></a><a href="#FNanchor_144"><span class="label">[144]</span></a> <i>A treatise concerning the division</i>, ff. 14-16.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_145" id="Footnote_145"></a><a href="#FNanchor_145"><span class="label">[145]</span></a> <i>Dyalogue</i>, &amp;c., f. 2.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_146" id="Footnote_146"></a><a href="#FNanchor_146"><span class="label">[146]</span></a> <i>A treatise concerning the division</i>, f. 23.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_147" id="Footnote_147"></a><a href="#FNanchor_147"><span class="label">[147]</span></a> Ibid., f. 25.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_148" id="Footnote_148"></a><a href="#FNanchor_148"><span class="label">[148]</span></a> Ibid., f. 26.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_149" id="Footnote_149"></a><a href="#FNanchor_149"><span class="label">[149]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 936.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_150" id="Footnote_150"></a><a href="#FNanchor_150"><span class="label">[150]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 620.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_151" id="Footnote_151"></a><a href="#FNanchor_151"><span class="label">[151]</span></a> <i>A Sermonde … made in 1538.</i> By John Longlande, Bishop of Lincolne.
-London: f. 2.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_152" id="Footnote_152"></a><a href="#FNanchor_152"><span class="label">[152]</span></a> <i>Henry VIII.</i>, vol. ii. pp. 50-1.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_153" id="Footnote_153"></a><a href="#FNanchor_153"><span class="label">[153]</span></a> Ibid., vol. i. p. 600.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_154" id="Footnote_154"></a><a href="#FNanchor_154"><span class="label">[154]</span></a> Ibid., ii. p. 470.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_155" id="Footnote_155"></a><a href="#FNanchor_155"><span class="label">[155]</span></a> Wilkins, <i>Concilia</i>, iii. 717.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_156" id="Footnote_156"></a><a href="#FNanchor_156"><span class="label">[156]</span></a> <i>Sermo Exhortatorius</i>, W. de Worde.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_157" id="Footnote_157"></a><a href="#FNanchor_157"><span class="label">[157]</span></a> Gairdner, <i>Calendar of Papers Foreign and Domestic</i>, v., preface, ix.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_158" id="Footnote_158"></a><a href="#FNanchor_158"><span class="label">[158]</span></a> Froude’s translation.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_159" id="Footnote_159"></a><a href="#FNanchor_159"><span class="label">[159]</span></a> <i>Opera</i>, ed. Leclerc, iii. col. 102.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_160" id="Footnote_160"></a><a href="#FNanchor_160"><span class="label">[160]</span></a> Ibid., Ep. 144.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_161" id="Footnote_161"></a><a href="#FNanchor_161"><span class="label">[161]</span></a> In one of his works Erasmus gives the highest praise to English
-ecclesiastics for their single-minded devotion to their clerical duties. He
-contrasts them with clerics of other nations in regard to worldly ambitions,
-&amp;c. “Those who are nearest to Christ,” he writes, “should keep themselves
-free from the baser things of this world. How ill the word ‘general’ sounds
-when connected with that of ‘Cardinal,’ or ‘duke’ with that of ‘bishop,’
-‘earl’ with that of ‘abbot,’ or ‘commander’ with that of ‘priest.’ In
-England the ecclesiastical dignity is the highest, and the revenues of churchmen
-abundant. In that country, however, no one who is a bishop or abbot has
-even a semblance of temporal dominion, or possesses castles or musicians or
-bands of retainers, nor does any of them coin his own money, excepting only
-the Archbishop of Canterbury, as a mark of dignity and honour, which has
-been conferred on him on account of the death of Saint Thomas; he is, however,
-never concerned in matters of war, but is occupied only in the care of
-the churches.” (<i>Consultatio de Bello Turcico.</i> <i>Opera</i>, ed. Leclerc, tom. v.
-p. 363.)</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_162" id="Footnote_162"></a><a href="#FNanchor_162"><span class="label">[162]</span></a> <i>Opera</i>, &amp;c., <i>ut sup.</i>, Ep. 149.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_163" id="Footnote_163"></a><a href="#FNanchor_163"><span class="label">[163]</span></a> Ibid., Ep. 175.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_164" id="Footnote_164"></a><a href="#FNanchor_164"><span class="label">[164]</span></a> Ibid., Ep. 216.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_165" id="Footnote_165"></a><a href="#FNanchor_165"><span class="label">[165]</span></a> Ibid., Ep. 272.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_166" id="Footnote_166"></a><a href="#FNanchor_166"><span class="label">[166]</span></a> Ibid., Ep. 474.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_167" id="Footnote_167"></a><a href="#FNanchor_167"><span class="label">[167]</span></a> Thomas More, <i>Epigrammata</i> (ed. Frankfort, 1689), p. 284 <i>seqq.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_168" id="Footnote_168"></a><a href="#FNanchor_168"><span class="label">[168]</span></a> Ibid., Ep. 148.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_169" id="Footnote_169"></a><a href="#FNanchor_169"><span class="label">[169]</span></a> <i>Erasmus</i>, p. 63.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_170" id="Footnote_170"></a><a href="#FNanchor_170"><span class="label">[170]</span></a> <i>Quarterly Review</i>, January 1895, p. 23.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_171" id="Footnote_171"></a><a href="#FNanchor_171"><span class="label">[171]</span></a> The question about Erasmus’s translation of this word came up in the
-discussion between Sir Thomas More and Tyndale about the use made by
-the latter of the word <i>congregatio</i> for Church in his version of the New
-Testament. More writes: “Then he asketh me why I have not contended
-with Erasmus, whom he calls my darling, all this long time, for translating
-this word <i>ecclesia</i> into this word <i>congregatio</i>, and then he cometh forth with
-his proper taunt, that I favour him of likelihood for making of his book
-of <i>Moriæ</i> in my house.… Now for his translation of <i>ecclesia</i> by <i>congregatio</i>
-his deed is nothing like Tyndale’s. For the Latin tongue had no Latin
-word used before for the Church but the Greek word <i>ecclesia</i>, therefore
-Erasmus in his new translation gave it a Latin word.… Erasmus also
-meant no heresy therein, as appears by his writings against the heretics.”
-(<i>English Works</i>, pp. 421, 422.)</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_172" id="Footnote_172"></a><a href="#FNanchor_172"><span class="label">[172]</span></a> Ep. 384.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_173" id="Footnote_173"></a><a href="#FNanchor_173"><span class="label">[173]</span></a> Ep. 423.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_174" id="Footnote_174"></a><a href="#FNanchor_174"><span class="label">[174]</span></a> Ep. 531. Lee’s account of his quarrel with Erasmus is given in his
-<i>Apologia</i>, which he addressed to the University of Louvain. He states that
-Erasmus had come to his house at that place, and had asked him to aid in
-the corrected version of his New Testament which he was then projecting.
-At first Lee refused, but finally, on being pressed by Erasmus, he consented,
-and began the work of revision, but Erasmus quickly became angry at so
-many suggested changes. Reports about the annotations and corrections
-proposed by Lee began to be spread abroad, and Erasmus hearing of them,
-suspected some secret design, and came from Basle to try and get a copy
-of the proposed criticism. Lee wished that it should be considered rather
-a matter of <i>theology</i> than of <i>letters</i>. Bishop Fisher wrote, on hearing
-rumours of the quarrel, urging Lee to try and make his peace with Erasmus,
-and in deference to this, Lee informed Erasmus that he would leave the
-matter entirely in the hands of the bishop, and had forwarded to him the
-book of his proposed criticisms. Erasmus, however, did not wait, but published
-the <i>Dialogus Domini Jacobi Latomi</i>, which all regarded as an attack
-upon Lee. The latter would have published a reply had he not received
-letters from England from Fisher, Colet, Pace, and More, begging him to keep
-his temper. Lee agreed to stop, and only asked Fisher to decide the matter
-quickly. On returning to Louvain, Lee found that Erasmus had published
-his <i>Dialogus bilingium et trilingium</i>, in which Lee was plainly indicated as
-a man hostile to the study of letters in general. This Lee denied altogether,
-and in brief, he does not, he says, condemn Erasmus’s notes on the New
-Testament so much as the copy he had taken as the basis for his corrections
-of the later text. “Politian,” says Lee, at the end of his <i>Apologia</i>, “Politian
-declares that there are two great pests of literature&mdash;ignorance and envy. To
-these I will add a third&mdash;‘adulation’&mdash;for I have no belief in any one who,
-having made a mistake, is not willing to acknowledge it.”
-</p>
-<p>
-Lee’s criticism of Erasmus’s translation appeared at Louvain in January
-1520. It produced an immediate reply from Erasmus, published at Antwerp
-in May 1520&mdash;a reply “all nose, teeth, nails, and stomach.” In this Erasmus
-says that 1200 copies of the New Testament had been printed by Froben. In
-the collation he had been much assisted by Bishop Tunstall, who had, in fact,
-supplied the exemplar on which he had worked. Erasmus then gives what he
-thinks is the correct version of the differences between Lee and himself. Lee,
-he says, was only just beginning Greek, and Erasmus, who had been working
-at the correction of his version of the Testament, showed him what he was
-doing. The margins of the book were then full of notes, and here and
-there whole pages of paper were added. Lee said that he had a few notes
-that might be useful, and Erasmus expressed his pleasure at receiving help and
-asked for them. Lee thereupon gave him some miscellaneous jottings, and of
-these, according to Erasmus’s version of the facts, he made use of hardly anything.
-Soon, however, reports were spread about that out of some three
-hundred places in which Lee had corrected the first edition of the translation,
-Erasmus had adopted two hundred. Bishop Fisher tried to make peace,
-and to prevent two men who both meant well to the cause of religion from
-quarrelling in public. His intervention was, however, too late, as already
-the letter of Erasmus to Thomas Lupset had appeared and thus rendered reconciliation
-impossible.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_175" id="Footnote_175"></a><a href="#FNanchor_175"><span class="label">[175]</span></a> Ep. 231.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_176" id="Footnote_176"></a><a href="#FNanchor_176"><span class="label">[176]</span></a> Ep. 380. This bishop must have been the Spaniard, George de Athegua,
-who was appointed to the see of Llandaff in 1517, and held it for twenty years.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_177" id="Footnote_177"></a><a href="#FNanchor_177"><span class="label">[177]</span></a> Ep. 380.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_178" id="Footnote_178"></a><a href="#FNanchor_178"><span class="label">[178]</span></a> Ep. 453.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_179" id="Footnote_179"></a><a href="#FNanchor_179"><span class="label">[179]</span></a> Ep. 416.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_180" id="Footnote_180"></a><a href="#FNanchor_180"><span class="label">[180]</span></a> Ep. 547.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_181" id="Footnote_181"></a><a href="#FNanchor_181"><span class="label">[181]</span></a> Ep. 529. Erasmus wrote strongly against anything that seemed to
-favour the idea of national churches. After declaring that national dislikes
-and enmities were unmeaning and unchristian, he continues: “As an Englishman
-you wish evil fortune to a Frenchman. Why not rather do your wishes
-come as a man to a fellow-man? Why not as a Christian to a Christian?
-Why do these frivolous things have greater weight than such natural ties,
-such bonds of Christ? Places separate bodies, not souls. In old days the
-Rhine divided a Frenchman from a German, but the Rhine cannot divide one
-Christian from another. The Pyrenees cut off Spain from France, but these
-mountains do not destroy the communion of the Church. The sea divides
-the English and French peoples, but it cannot cut off the society of religion.…”
-The world is the fatherland of all people; all men are sprung
-from a common stock. “The Church is but one family, common to all.”
-(<i>Opera.</i>, tom. iv. col. 638.)</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_182" id="Footnote_182"></a><a href="#FNanchor_182"><span class="label">[182]</span></a> Ep. 715.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_183" id="Footnote_183"></a><a href="#FNanchor_183"><span class="label">[183]</span></a> Ep. 723.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_184" id="Footnote_184"></a><a href="#FNanchor_184"><span class="label">[184]</span></a> Ep. 477.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_185" id="Footnote_185"></a><a href="#FNanchor_185"><span class="label">[185]</span></a> Ep. 528.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_186" id="Footnote_186"></a><a href="#FNanchor_186"><span class="label">[186]</span></a> Ep. 656.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_187" id="Footnote_187"></a><a href="#FNanchor_187"><span class="label">[187]</span></a> Ep. 334 (second series.)</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_188" id="Footnote_188"></a><a href="#FNanchor_188"><span class="label">[188]</span></a> <i>Spongia</i> (Basle, Froben, 1523), c. 5.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_189" id="Footnote_189"></a><a href="#FNanchor_189"><span class="label">[189]</span></a> Ibid., sig. d. 4.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_190" id="Footnote_190"></a><a href="#FNanchor_190"><span class="label">[190]</span></a> Ibid., sig. e. 2.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_191" id="Footnote_191"></a><a href="#FNanchor_191"><span class="label">[191]</span></a> Ibid., sig. e. 2. The supreme authority of the Pope is asserted by
-Erasmus in numberless places in his works. For example, in the tract <i>Pacis
-Querimonia</i>, after saying that he cannot understand how Christians, who
-understand Christ’s teaching and say their <i>Pater noster</i> with intelligence, can
-always be at strife, he proceeds: “The authority of the Roman Pontiff is
-supreme. But when peoples and princes wage impious wars, and that for
-years, where then is the authority of the Pontiffs, where then is the power
-next to Christ’s power?” &amp;c. (<i>Opera.</i>, tom. iv. p. 635). So too in his
-<i>Precatio pro Pace Ecclesiæ</i>, after praying that God would turn the eyes of
-His mercy upon the Church, over which “Peter was made Supreme Pastor,”
-he declares that there is but “one Church, out of which there is no salvation.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_192" id="Footnote_192"></a><a href="#FNanchor_192"><span class="label">[192]</span></a> Ep. 478.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_193" id="Footnote_193"></a><a href="#FNanchor_193"><span class="label">[193]</span></a> Ep. 501.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_194" id="Footnote_194"></a><a href="#FNanchor_194"><span class="label">[194]</span></a> Ep. 563.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_195" id="Footnote_195"></a><a href="#FNanchor_195"><span class="label">[195]</span></a> Ep. 600.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_196" id="Footnote_196"></a><a href="#FNanchor_196"><span class="label">[196]</span></a> Ep. 563.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_197" id="Footnote_197"></a><a href="#FNanchor_197"><span class="label">[197]</span></a> Ep. 667.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_198" id="Footnote_198"></a><a href="#FNanchor_198"><span class="label">[198]</span></a> Ep. 501 (Mr. Froude’s translation).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_199" id="Footnote_199"></a><a href="#FNanchor_199"><span class="label">[199]</span></a> Ep. 793.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_200" id="Footnote_200"></a><a href="#FNanchor_200"><span class="label">[200]</span></a> Ep. 823.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_201" id="Footnote_201"></a><a href="#FNanchor_201"><span class="label">[201]</span></a> Ep. 751.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_202" id="Footnote_202"></a><a href="#FNanchor_202"><span class="label">[202]</span></a> The Pope himself read the <i>Enconium Moriæ</i> and understood the spirit
-of the author; at least so Erasmus was told. He wrote at the time “the
-Supreme Pontiff has read through <i>Moriæ</i> and laughed; all he said was, ‘I
-am glad to see that friend Erasmus is in the <i>Moriæ</i>,’ and this though I have
-touched no others so sharply as the Pontiffs” (Ep. p. 1667). What Sir
-Thomas More thought about it may be given in his own words, written some
-years later. “As touching <i>Moriæ</i>, in which Erasmus, under the name and
-person of <i>Moria</i>, which word in Greek signifies ‘folly,’ merely touches and
-reproves such faults and follies as he found in any kind of people pursuing
-every state and condition, spiritual and temporal, leaving almost none untouched.
-By this book, says Tyndale, if it were in English, every man should
-then well see that I was then far otherwise minded than I now write. If this
-be true, then the more cause have I to thank God for the amendment. God
-be thanked I never had that mind in my life to have holy saints’ images or
-their holy relics out of reverence. Nor if there were any such thing in <i>Moriæ</i>
-this could not make any man see that I were myself of that mind, the book
-being made by another man though he were my darling never so dear. Howbeit,
-that book of <i>Moriæ</i> doth indeed but jest upon abuses of such things.…
-But in these days, in which men by their own default misconstrue and take
-harm from the very Scripture of God, until men better amend, if any man
-would now translate <i>Moriæ</i> into English, or some work either that I have
-myself written ere this, albeit there be no harm therein, folks being (as they
-be) given to take harm of what is good, I would not only my darling’s books,
-but my own also, help to burn them both with my own hands, rather than
-folk should (though through their own fault) take any harm of them.” (<i>English
-Works</i>, pp. 422-3.)</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_203" id="Footnote_203"></a><a href="#FNanchor_203"><span class="label">[203]</span></a> <i>Opera Omnia</i> (Froben’s ed., 1540), i. p. 831.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_204" id="Footnote_204"></a><a href="#FNanchor_204"><span class="label">[204]</span></a> Pp. 832-33.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_205" id="Footnote_205"></a><a href="#FNanchor_205"><span class="label">[205]</span></a> P. 837.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_206" id="Footnote_206"></a><a href="#FNanchor_206"><span class="label">[206]</span></a> A case in point was the finding of the celebrated statue of the Laocöon
-on January 14, 1506. This discovery was accidentally made in a vineyard,
-near Santa Maria Maggiore, and no statue ever produced so general
-and so profound an emotion as the uncovering of this work of art did upon
-the learned world of Rome. The whole city flocked out to see it, and the
-road to the vineyard was blocked day and night by the crowds of cardinals
-and people waiting to look at it. “One would have said,” writes a contemporary,
-“that it was a Jubilee.” And even to-day the visitor to the
-Ara Cœli may read on the tomb of Felice de Fredis, the happy owner of the
-vineyard, the promise of “immortality,” <i>ob proprias virtutes et repertum
-Laocohontis divinum simulachrum</i> (I. Klaczki, <i>Jules II.</i>, p. 115). It is not
-at all improbable that in the above passage Erasmus was actually thinking of
-the delirium caused by the finding of this statue.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_207" id="Footnote_207"></a><a href="#FNanchor_207"><span class="label">[207]</span></a> Ibid., p. 838.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_208" id="Footnote_208"></a><a href="#FNanchor_208"><span class="label">[208]</span></a> For example, the Rev. W. H. Hutton states in the <i>Guardian</i>, January
-25, 1899, as the result of his mature studies upon the Reformation period,
-that “the so-called divorce question had very little indeed to do with the
-Reformation.” Mr. James Gairdner, who speaks with all the authority of a
-full and complete knowledge of the State papers of this period, in a letter
-to a subsequent number of the <i>Guardian</i>, says, “When a gentleman of
-Mr. Hutton’s attainments is able seriously to tell us this, I think it is
-really time to ask people to put two and two together, and say whether
-the sum can be anything but four. It may be disagreeable to trace the
-Reformation to such a very ignoble origin, but facts, as the Scottish poet
-says, are fellows you can’t coerce … and won’t bear to be disputed.”
-What “we call <i>the</i> Reformation in England … was the result of Henry
-VIII.’s quarrel with the Court of Rome on the subject of his divorce,
-and <i>the same</i> results could not possibly have come about in any other
-way.” When “Henry VIII. found himself disappointed in the expectation,
-which he had ardently cherished for a while, that he could manage, by hook
-or by crook, to obtain from the See of Rome something like an ecclesiastical
-licence for bigamy,” he took matters into his own hands, “and self-willed as
-he was, never did self-will lead him into such a tremendous and dangerous
-undertaking as in throwing off the Pope. How much this was resented
-among the people, what secret communications there were between leading
-noblemen with the imperial ambassador, strongly urging the emperor to
-invade England, and deliver the people from a tyranny from which they were
-unable to free themselves, we know in these days as we did not know before.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_209" id="Footnote_209"></a><a href="#FNanchor_209"><span class="label">[209]</span></a> Camden Society, p. 163.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_210" id="Footnote_210"></a><a href="#FNanchor_210"><span class="label">[210]</span></a> The same high authority, in a letter to the <i>Guardian</i>, March 1, 1899,
-says, “People will tell you, of course, that the seeds of the Reformation were
-sown before Henry VIII.’s days, and particularly that it was Wycliffe who
-brought the great movement on. I should be sorry to depreciate Wycliffe,
-who did undoubtedly bring about a great movement in his day, though a
-careful estimate of that movement is still a <i>desideratum</i>. Even in theology
-the cardinal doctrine of the Reformation&mdash;justification by faith&mdash;is in Wycliffe,
-I should say, conspicuous by its absence. But, whatever may be the theological
-debt of England to Wycliffe at the present day, twenty Wycliffes,
-all highly popular, in the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries would not have
-brought about a Reformation like that under which we have lived during the
-last centuries. That was a thing which could only have been effected by
-royal power&mdash;as in England, or by a subversion of royal authority through
-the medium of successful rebellion&mdash;as in Scotland.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_211" id="Footnote_211"></a><a href="#FNanchor_211"><span class="label">[211]</span></a> <i>Henry VIII.</i>, i. p. 51.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_212" id="Footnote_212"></a><a href="#FNanchor_212"><span class="label">[212]</span></a> Roger Edgworth, <i>Sermons</i> (London: Robert Caly, 1557), preface.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_213" id="Footnote_213"></a><a href="#FNanchor_213"><span class="label">[213]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 339.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_214" id="Footnote_214"></a><a href="#FNanchor_214"><span class="label">[214]</span></a> Strype, <i>Eccl. Mem.</i> (ed. 1822), I. i. p. 254.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_215" id="Footnote_215"></a><a href="#FNanchor_215"><span class="label">[215]</span></a> This book was apparently condemned for reflecting on the king’s
-divorce rather than for its Lutheran tendencies. “The Soul’s Garden,” as
-Bishop Tunstall calls it, was printed abroad, and “very many lately brought
-into the realm, chiefly into London and into other haven towns.” The
-objectionable portion was contained in “a declaration made in the kalendar
-of the said book, about the end of the month of August, upon the day of the
-decollation of St. John Baptist, to show the cause of why he was beheaded.”
-(Strype, <i>ut supra</i>, ii. p. 274.)</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_216" id="Footnote_216"></a><a href="#FNanchor_216"><span class="label">[216]</span></a> Wilkins, <i>Concilia</i>, iii. p. 737.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_217" id="Footnote_217"></a><a href="#FNanchor_217"><span class="label">[217]</span></a> Ibid., 720.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_218" id="Footnote_218"></a><a href="#FNanchor_218"><span class="label">[218]</span></a> Wilkins, <i>Concilia</i>, iii. p. 727.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_219" id="Footnote_219"></a><a href="#FNanchor_219"><span class="label">[219]</span></a> Richard Smythe, D.D., <i>The assertion and defence of the Sacrament of the
-Altar</i>, 1546, f. 3.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_220" id="Footnote_220"></a><a href="#FNanchor_220"><span class="label">[220]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 940.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_221" id="Footnote_221"></a><a href="#FNanchor_221"><span class="label">[221]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 921.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_222" id="Footnote_222"></a><a href="#FNanchor_222"><span class="label">[222]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, pp. 341-344.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_223" id="Footnote_223"></a><a href="#FNanchor_223"><span class="label">[223]</span></a> Ibid., p. 346.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_224" id="Footnote_224"></a><a href="#FNanchor_224"><span class="label">[224]</span></a> Ibid., p. 351.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_225" id="Footnote_225"></a><a href="#FNanchor_225"><span class="label">[225]</span></a> Germen Gardynare, <i>A letter of a yonge gentylman</i>, &amp;c. London: W.
-Rastell, 1534.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_226" id="Footnote_226"></a><a href="#FNanchor_226"><span class="label">[226]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, pp. 257-259.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_227" id="Footnote_227"></a><a href="#FNanchor_227"><span class="label">[227]</span></a> Ibid., p. 1035.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_228" id="Footnote_228"></a><a href="#FNanchor_228"><span class="label">[228]</span></a> Ibid., p. 409.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_229" id="Footnote_229"></a><a href="#FNanchor_229"><span class="label">[229]</span></a> <i>The Werke for Householders.</i> London: John Waylande, 1537.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_230" id="Footnote_230"></a><a href="#FNanchor_230"><span class="label">[230]</span></a> Richard Whitford, <i>Dyvers holy instructions</i>. London: W. Mydylton,
-1541.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_231" id="Footnote_231"></a><a href="#FNanchor_231"><span class="label">[231]</span></a> <i>Sermons</i>, sig. h. vij.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_232" id="Footnote_232"></a><a href="#FNanchor_232"><span class="label">[232]</span></a> <i>English Works</i> (ed. 1557), pp. 233-4. This positive declaration of Sir
-Thomas More is generally ignored by modern writers. In a recently published
-work, for example (<i>England in the Age of Wycliffe</i>, by George
-Macaulay Trevelyan), it is stated that “we have positive proof that the
-bishops denounced the dissemination of the English Bible among classes and
-persons prone to heresy, burnt copies of it, and cruelly persecuted Lollards on
-the charge of reading it” (p. 131). In proof of this statement the author
-refers his readers to a later page (p. 342) of his volume. Here he culls from
-Foxe (<i>Acts and Monuments</i>) the depositions of certain witnesses against people
-suspected of teaching heresy. Amongst these depositions it is said by a few
-of the witnesses that some of these teachers were possessed of portions of the
-Scriptures in English. Mr. Trevelyan assumes, because witnesses speak to
-this fact, that it was for this they were condemned, or, as he puts it, “cruelly
-persecuted,” by the ecclesiastical authorities. Had he examined his authority,
-Foxe, more carefully, he would have found the actual list of <i>articles</i> formulated
-against these teachers of heresy. These alone are, of course, the <i>charges</i>
-actually made against them; and the mere deposition of witnesses in those days
-were, no more than they are in ours, the charges upon which the accused were
-condemned. In the <i>articles</i> or charges we find no mention whatever of the
-English Bible, and, according to the ordinary rules of interpretation of documents,
-this absence of any mention of Bible-reading in the indictment, formulated
-after the hearing of the evidence, and when witnesses had testified
-to the fact, should be taken to show that the mere possession of the vernacular
-Scriptures, &amp;c., was not accounted an offence by the Church authorities. The
-real charge in these cases, as in others, was of teaching what was then held
-to be false and heretical, teaching founded upon false interpretations of the
-Scripture text, or upon false translations.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_233" id="Footnote_233"></a><a href="#FNanchor_233"><span class="label">[233]</span></a> Ibid., p. 235.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_234" id="Footnote_234"></a><a href="#FNanchor_234"><span class="label">[234]</span></a> Ibid., p. 240.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_235" id="Footnote_235"></a><a href="#FNanchor_235"><span class="label">[235]</span></a> Ibid., p. 241.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_236" id="Footnote_236"></a><a href="#FNanchor_236"><span class="label">[236]</span></a> Ibid., p. 240.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_237" id="Footnote_237"></a><a href="#FNanchor_237"><span class="label">[237]</span></a> Ibid., p. 241.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_238" id="Footnote_238"></a><a href="#FNanchor_238"><span class="label">[238]</span></a> Ibid., p. 245.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_239" id="Footnote_239"></a><a href="#FNanchor_239"><span class="label">[239]</span></a> Ibid., p. 510.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_240" id="Footnote_240"></a><a href="#FNanchor_240"><span class="label">[240]</span></a> Ibid., p. 678.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_241" id="Footnote_241"></a><a href="#FNanchor_241"><span class="label">[241]</span></a> Roger Edgworth, <i>Sermons</i>, London, Caly, 1557, f. 31.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_242" id="Footnote_242"></a><a href="#FNanchor_242"><span class="label">[242]</span></a> Sir Thomas More, <i>English Works</i>, p. 108.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_243" id="Footnote_243"></a><a href="#FNanchor_243"><span class="label">[243]</span></a> Thomas Lupset, <i>Collected Works</i>, 1546. <i>Gathered Counsails</i>, f. 202.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_244" id="Footnote_244"></a><a href="#FNanchor_244"><span class="label">[244]</span></a> Ibid. <i>An Exhortation to young men</i>, written 1529. He insists much on
-the obligation of following the teaching of the Church.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_245" id="Footnote_245"></a><a href="#FNanchor_245"><span class="label">[245]</span></a> John Standish, <i>A discourse wherein is debated whether it be expedient
-that the Scripture should be in English for all men to read that wyll</i> (1555),
-A. iij.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_246" id="Footnote_246"></a><a href="#FNanchor_246"><span class="label">[246]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 850.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_247" id="Footnote_247"></a><a href="#FNanchor_247"><span class="label">[247]</span></a> J. S. Brewer, <i>Henry VIII.</i>, vol. ii. p. 468.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_248" id="Footnote_248"></a><a href="#FNanchor_248"><span class="label">[248]</span></a> Dore, <i>Old Bibles</i>, p. 13.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_249" id="Footnote_249"></a><a href="#FNanchor_249"><span class="label">[249]</span></a> P. 15.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_250" id="Footnote_250"></a><a href="#FNanchor_250"><span class="label">[250]</span></a> Ellis, <i>Historical Letters</i>, 3rd Series, ii. p. 71.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_251" id="Footnote_251"></a><a href="#FNanchor_251"><span class="label">[251]</span></a> Johannes Cochlæus, <i>An expediat laicis legere Novi Testamenti libros
-lingua vernacula</i>, 1533, A. i. The warning of Cochlæus was addressed to
-the Scotch king, and as a result of this letter, pointing out the Lutheran
-character of the English version of Tyndale, the Scotch bishops in the Synod
-of St. Andrews in 1529 forbade the importation of Bibles into Scotland.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_252" id="Footnote_252"></a><a href="#FNanchor_252"><span class="label">[252]</span></a> Ibid., L. iij.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_253" id="Footnote_253"></a><a href="#FNanchor_253"><span class="label">[253]</span></a> Wilkins, <i>Concilia</i>, iii. p. 727.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_254" id="Footnote_254"></a><a href="#FNanchor_254"><span class="label">[254]</span></a> <i>Cf.</i> Parker Soc. Tyndale’s <i>Doctrinal treatises</i>, &amp;c., preface xxx.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_255" id="Footnote_255"></a><a href="#FNanchor_255"><span class="label">[255]</span></a> Probably on Sunday, February 11, when Cardinal Wolsey, with six and
-thirty bishops and other ecclesiastics, were present at the burning of Lutheran
-books before the great crucifix at the north gate. Amongst the books, according
-to Tyndale, were copies of his translated Testament.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_256" id="Footnote_256"></a><a href="#FNanchor_256"><span class="label">[256]</span></a> Dore, <i>Old Bibles</i>, p. 26.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_257" id="Footnote_257"></a><a href="#FNanchor_257"><span class="label">[257]</span></a> Dore, <i>ut sup.</i>, 32.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_258" id="Footnote_258"></a><a href="#FNanchor_258"><span class="label">[258]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 422.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_259" id="Footnote_259"></a><a href="#FNanchor_259"><span class="label">[259]</span></a> Dore, 35.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_260" id="Footnote_260"></a><a href="#FNanchor_260"><span class="label">[260]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 849.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_261" id="Footnote_261"></a><a href="#FNanchor_261"><span class="label">[261]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 341.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_262" id="Footnote_262"></a><a href="#FNanchor_262"><span class="label">[262]</span></a> Ibid., p. 410.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_263" id="Footnote_263"></a><a href="#FNanchor_263"><span class="label">[263]</span></a> Ibid., p. 416.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_264" id="Footnote_264"></a><a href="#FNanchor_264"><span class="label">[264]</span></a> Ibid., p. 417.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_265" id="Footnote_265"></a><a href="#FNanchor_265"><span class="label">[265]</span></a> Ibid., p. 419.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_266" id="Footnote_266"></a><a href="#FNanchor_266"><span class="label">[266]</span></a> Ibid., p. 422.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_267" id="Footnote_267"></a><a href="#FNanchor_267"><span class="label">[267]</span></a> Ibid., p. 424.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_268" id="Footnote_268"></a><a href="#FNanchor_268"><span class="label">[268]</span></a> Ibid., p. 425.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_269" id="Footnote_269"></a><a href="#FNanchor_269"><span class="label">[269]</span></a> Ibid., p. 427.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_270" id="Footnote_270"></a><a href="#FNanchor_270"><span class="label">[270]</span></a> Ibid., p. 435.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_271" id="Footnote_271"></a><a href="#FNanchor_271"><span class="label">[271]</span></a> Ibid., p. 437.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_272" id="Footnote_272"></a><a href="#FNanchor_272"><span class="label">[272]</span></a> Ibid., p. 493.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_273" id="Footnote_273"></a><a href="#FNanchor_273"><span class="label">[273]</span></a> Ibid., p. 422. For examples of other false translations, see also p. 449.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_274" id="Footnote_274"></a><a href="#FNanchor_274"><span class="label">[274]</span></a> Standish, <i>A discourse</i>, &amp;c., <i>ut supra</i>, sig. A. iiij.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_275" id="Footnote_275"></a><a href="#FNanchor_275"><span class="label">[275]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 223.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_276" id="Footnote_276"></a><a href="#FNanchor_276"><span class="label">[276]</span></a> Ibid., p. 223.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_277" id="Footnote_277"></a><a href="#FNanchor_277"><span class="label">[277]</span></a> Standish, <i>ut supra</i>, sig. E. iiij.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_278" id="Footnote_278"></a><a href="#FNanchor_278"><span class="label">[278]</span></a> Roger Edgworth, <i>Sermons</i>, f. 31.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_279" id="Footnote_279"></a><a href="#FNanchor_279"><span class="label">[279]</span></a> <i>The assertion and defence of the Sacrament of the Altar</i> (1546), f. 3.
-The amateur theologians and teachers who sprung up so plentifully with
-the growth of Lutheran ideas in England seem to have been a source of
-trouble to the clergy. There was no difficulty in Scripture so hard which
-these “barkers, gnawers, and railers,” as Roger Edgworth calls them, were
-not ready to explain, and even women were ready to become teachers of
-God’s Word, “and openly to dispute with men.” Speaking in Bristol,
-in Mary’s reign, he advises his audience to stick to their own occupations
-and leave theology and Scripture alone, “for when a tailor forsaking his
-own occupation will be a merchant venturer, or a shoemaker will become
-a grocer, God send him help. I have known,” he says, “many in this town
-that studying divinity has killed a merchant, and some of other occupations by
-their busy labours in the Scripture hath shut up the shop windows, and were
-fain to take sanctuary, or else for mercery and grocery hath been fain to sell
-godderds, steaves, pitchers, and such other trumpery.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_280" id="Footnote_280"></a><a href="#FNanchor_280"><span class="label">[280]</span></a> <i>A Commentary in Englyshe upon Sayncte Paule’s Epistle to the Ephesians</i>,
-1540.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_281" id="Footnote_281"></a><a href="#FNanchor_281"><span class="label">[281]</span></a> <i>An Exposition in Englysh upon the Epistle of St. Paule to the Colossians</i>,
-1548.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_282" id="Footnote_282"></a><a href="#FNanchor_282"><span class="label">[282]</span></a> <i>An Exposition</i>, &amp;c., <i>upon the Philippians</i>, 1545.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_283" id="Footnote_283"></a><a href="#FNanchor_283"><span class="label">[283]</span></a> As an example of the open way in which the reading of the Bible was
-advocated, take the following instance. Caxton’s translation of the <i>Vitæ
-Patrum</i>, published by Wynkyn de Worde in 1495, contained an exhortation
-to all his readers to study the Holy Scripture. “To read them is in part
-to know the felicity eternal, for in them a man may see what he ought to do
-in conversation … oft to read purgeth the soul from sin, it engendereth
-dread of God, and it keeps the soul from eternal damnation.” As food
-nourishes the body, “in like wise as touching the soul we be nourished by
-the lecture and reading of Scripture.… Be diligent and busy to read the
-Scriptures, for in reading them the natural wit and understanding are
-augmented in so much that men find that which ought to be left (undone)
-and take that whereof may ensue profit infinite” (p. 345).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_284" id="Footnote_284"></a><a href="#FNanchor_284"><span class="label">[284]</span></a> B. Mus. Harl. MS. 172, f. 12b.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_285" id="Footnote_285"></a><a href="#FNanchor_285"><span class="label">[285]</span></a> Harl. MS. 115, f. 51.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_286" id="Footnote_286"></a><a href="#FNanchor_286"><span class="label">[286]</span></a> Ibid., f. 53.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_287" id="Footnote_287"></a><a href="#FNanchor_287"><span class="label">[287]</span></a> In speaking of the third Commandment, <i>The art of good lyvyng and
-good deyng</i> (1503) warns people of their obligation to “Layr the holy prechyngys,
-that ys the word of God et the good techyngys, and shoold not go from
-the seyd prechyngs” (fol. 8. 2).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_288" id="Footnote_288"></a><a href="#FNanchor_288"><span class="label">[288]</span></a> Ibid., f. 1.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_289" id="Footnote_289"></a><a href="#FNanchor_289"><span class="label">[289]</span></a> <i>The Myrrour of the Church</i> (1527), Sig. B4.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_290" id="Footnote_290"></a><a href="#FNanchor_290"><span class="label">[290]</span></a> <i>Exornatorium Curatorum.</i> W. de Worde. In 1518 the Synod of Ely
-ordered that all having the cure of souls should have a copy of this book, and
-four times a year should explain it in English to their people. (Wilkins,
-<i>Concilia</i>, III., p. 712.)</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_291" id="Footnote_291"></a><a href="#FNanchor_291"><span class="label">[291]</span></a> <i>The Prymer of Salisbury Use.</i> Rouen: Nicholas le Rour, f. b. vij.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_292" id="Footnote_292"></a><a href="#FNanchor_292"><span class="label">[292]</span></a> <i>The art of good lyvyng and good deyng.</i> Paris, 1503, f. g. 2.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_293" id="Footnote_293"></a><a href="#FNanchor_293"><span class="label">[293]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 116.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_294" id="Footnote_294"></a><a href="#FNanchor_294"><span class="label">[294]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 117.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_295" id="Footnote_295"></a><a href="#FNanchor_295"><span class="label">[295]</span></a> Ibid., p. 121.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_296" id="Footnote_296"></a><a href="#FNanchor_296"><span class="label">[296]</span></a> Ibid., p. 420.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_297" id="Footnote_297"></a><a href="#FNanchor_297"><span class="label">[297]</span></a> <i>Sermons</i>, fol. 40.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_298" id="Footnote_298"></a><a href="#FNanchor_298"><span class="label">[298]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, pp. 196-7.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_299" id="Footnote_299"></a><a href="#FNanchor_299"><span class="label">[299]</span></a> Ibid., p. 198.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_300" id="Footnote_300"></a><a href="#FNanchor_300"><span class="label">[300]</span></a> Ibid., p. 199.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_301" id="Footnote_301"></a><a href="#FNanchor_301"><span class="label">[301]</span></a> Ed. W. de Worde, 1496.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_302" id="Footnote_302"></a><a href="#FNanchor_302"><span class="label">[302]</span></a> William Bond, <i>The Pilgrymage of Perfeccyon</i>, Wynkyn de Worde, 1531,
-fol. 192.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_303" id="Footnote_303"></a><a href="#FNanchor_303"><span class="label">[303]</span></a> Ibid., fol. 196.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_304" id="Footnote_304"></a><a href="#FNanchor_304"><span class="label">[304]</span></a> Ibid.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_305" id="Footnote_305"></a><a href="#FNanchor_305"><span class="label">[305]</span></a> <i>English Works</i>, p. 408.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_306" id="Footnote_306"></a><a href="#FNanchor_306"><span class="label">[306]</span></a> The full title of this book is: <i>Pupilla oculi omnibus presbyteris precipue
-Anglicanis necessaria</i>. It is clear from the letter that W. Bretton had already
-had other works printed in the same way, and it is known that amongst those
-works were copies of Lynwode’s <i>Provinciale</i> (1505), <i>Psalterium et Hymni</i>
-(1506), <i>Horæ</i>, &amp;c. (1506), <i>Speculum Spiritualium</i>, and Hampole, <i>De Emendatione
-Vitæ</i> (1510), (cf. <i>Ames</i>, Ed. Herbert, iii. p. 16). Pepwell the London
-publisher, at “the sign of the Holy Trinity,” was the same who published many
-books printed abroad, and had dealings with Bishops Stokesley and Tunstall.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_307" id="Footnote_307"></a><a href="#FNanchor_307"><span class="label">[307]</span></a> For further information upon popular religious instruction in England,
-see an essay upon the teaching in the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries in my
-<i>The old English Bible, and other Essays</i>. The Rev. J. Fisher, in his tract
-on <i>The Private Devotions of the Welsh</i> (1898), speaking of the vernacular
-prayer-books, says, “they continued to be published down to the end of
-Henry’s reign, and, in a modified form, even at a later date. Besides these
-prymers and the oral instruction in the principal formulæ of the Church, the
-scriptorium of the monastery was not behind in supplying, especially the
-poor, with horn-books, on which were, as a rule, written in the vulgar tongue
-the Lord’s Prayer, the Creed, and the Hail Mary.” In 1546 appeared a
-prymer in Welsh in which, amongst other things, the seven capital or deadly
-sins and their opposite virtues are given and analysed. This book, consequently,
-besides being a prayer-book afforded popular instruction to the people
-using it. The prymers in Welsh, we are told, were usually called “Matins’
-Books,” and continued to be published long after the change of religion. A
-copy published in 1618 is called the fifth edition, and copies of it are recorded
-under the years 1633 and 1783. “It is rather a curious fact,” writes Mr.
-Fisher, “that nearly all the Welsh manuals of devotion and instruction, of
-any size, published in the second half of the sixteenth and the first half of
-the seventeenth century, were the productions of Welsh Roman Catholics,
-and published on the Continent. In Dr. Gruffydd Roberts’s Welsh Grammar,
-published at Milan in 1567, will be found poetical versions of the Apostles’
-Creed, the Lord’s Prayer, the Hail Mary, the Ten Commandments and the
-Seven Sacraments. This work was followed by the <i>Athravaeth Gristnogavl</i>,
-a short catechism of religious doctrine, translated or compiled by Morys
-Clynog, the first Rector of the English College in Rome. It was published
-at Milan in 1568, and contains the Creed, the Lord’s Prayer, the Hail Mary,
-the Ten Commandments, &amp;c., in Welsh, with expositions.”
-</p>
-<p>
-The above, with the prayer-books of 1567, 1586, 1599, were all the works
-of religious instruction and devotion (private and public) that appeared in
-Welsh down to the end of the sixteenth century. I might add that there is
-in the Earl of Macclesfield’s collection a large folio volume of <i>Miscellanea</i>
-(Shirburn MS. 113, D. 30), written between 1540 and 1560, which contains
-a prymer occupying several pages. There is also in the Swansea Public
-Library a Welsh-Latin MS. of the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries, written
-in different hands and in the South Walian dialect, which forms a manual of
-Roman Catholic devotion, containing in Welsh devotions for Mass, the usual
-meditations and prayers for various occasions, instructions, &amp;c.
-</p>
-<p>
-With the seventeenth century there is a good crop of manuals of devotion
-and instruction, such as the catechisms of Dr. Rosier Smith (1609-1611) and
-Father John Salisbury (1618 <i>tacito nomine</i>), both Welsh Roman Catholics
-(pp. 24-26).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_308" id="Footnote_308"></a><a href="#FNanchor_308"><span class="label">[308]</span></a> <i>A Werke for Housholders.</i> London, R. Redman, 1537, sig. A. 8.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_309" id="Footnote_309"></a><a href="#FNanchor_309"><span class="label">[309]</span></a> Ibid., sig. B. i.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_310" id="Footnote_310"></a><a href="#FNanchor_310"><span class="label">[310]</span></a> Ibid., sig. C. 8.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_311" id="Footnote_311"></a><a href="#FNanchor_311"><span class="label">[311]</span></a> Ibid., sig. D. 5.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_312" id="Footnote_312"></a><a href="#FNanchor_312"><span class="label">[312]</span></a> B. Mus. Harl. MS. 2125, f. 272.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_313" id="Footnote_313"></a><a href="#FNanchor_313"><span class="label">[313]</span></a> <i>Penny Cyclopædia.</i> Art., “English Drama.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_314" id="Footnote_314"></a><a href="#FNanchor_314"><span class="label">[314]</span></a> <i>A Relation of the Island of England</i> (Camden Society), p. 20.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_315" id="Footnote_315"></a><a href="#FNanchor_315"><span class="label">[315]</span></a> Ibid., p. 23.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_316" id="Footnote_316"></a><a href="#FNanchor_316"><span class="label">[316]</span></a> <i>Venetian Calendar</i>, ii. p. 91.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_317" id="Footnote_317"></a><a href="#FNanchor_317"><span class="label">[317]</span></a> <i>Works on the Supper</i> (Parker Society), p. 229.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_318" id="Footnote_318"></a><a href="#FNanchor_318"><span class="label">[318]</span></a> To take one instance: the church of St. Neots possessed many stained glass
-windows placed in their present positions between the years 1480 and 1530.
-Almost all of them were put in by individuals, as the inscriptions below testify.
-In the case of three of the lights it appears that groups of people joined together
-to beautify their parish church. Thus below one of the windows in the
-north aisle is the following: “<i>Ex sumptibus juvenum hujus parochiæ Sancti
-Neoti qui istam fenestram fecerunt anno domini millessimo quingentessimo
-vicessimo octavo</i>.” Another window states that it was made in 1529, “<i>Ex
-sumptibus sororum hujus parochiæ</i>”; and a third in 1530, “<i>Ex sumptibus
-uxorum</i>.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_319" id="Footnote_319"></a><a href="#FNanchor_319"><span class="label">[319]</span></a> <i>History of Modern Architecture</i>, pp. 37, 87.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_320" id="Footnote_320"></a><a href="#FNanchor_320"><span class="label">[320]</span></a> <i>Archæologia</i>, vol. xli. p. 355.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_321" id="Footnote_321"></a><a href="#FNanchor_321"><span class="label">[321]</span></a> <i>Parish Life in England before the Great Pillage</i> (“Nineteenth Century,”
-March 1898), p. 433.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_322" id="Footnote_322"></a><a href="#FNanchor_322"><span class="label">[322]</span></a> <i>Churchwardens’ Accounts</i> (Somerset Record Soc.), ed. Bishop Hobhouse,
-p. 200, <i>seqq.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_323" id="Footnote_323"></a><a href="#FNanchor_323"><span class="label">[323]</span></a> Ibid., p. xxi.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_324" id="Footnote_324"></a><a href="#FNanchor_324"><span class="label">[324]</span></a> Ibid., p. xii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_325" id="Footnote_325"></a><a href="#FNanchor_325"><span class="label">[325]</span></a> <i>Archæologia</i>, vol. xli., p. 333 <i>seqq.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_326" id="Footnote_326"></a><a href="#FNanchor_326"><span class="label">[326]</span></a> <i>Somerset Record Soc.</i>, preface, p. xi.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_327" id="Footnote_327"></a><a href="#FNanchor_327"><span class="label">[327]</span></a> J. W. Cowper, <i>Accounts of the Churchwardens of St. Dunstan’s, Canterbury</i>
-(<i>Archæologia Cantiana</i>, 1885).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_328" id="Footnote_328"></a><a href="#FNanchor_328"><span class="label">[328]</span></a> Siméon Luce, <i>Histoire de Bertrand du Guesclin</i>, p. 19.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_329" id="Footnote_329"></a><a href="#FNanchor_329"><span class="label">[329]</span></a> The words of Pope Leo XIII. as to the Catholic teaching most accurately
-describe the practical doctrine of the English pre-Reformation Church on this
-matter: “The chiefest and most excellent rule for the right use of money,”
-he says, “rests on the principle that it is one thing to have a right to the
-possession of money and another to have the right to use money as one
-pleases.… If the question be asked, How must one’s possessions be used?
-the Church replies, without hesitation, in the words of the same holy doctor
-(St. Thomas), <i>Man should not consider his outward possessions as his own, but
-as common to all</i>, so as to share <i>them without difficulty when others are in need</i>.
-When necessity has been supplied and one’s position fairly considered, it is a
-duty to give to the indigent out of that which is over. It is a duty, not of
-justice (except in extreme cases) but of Christian charity … (and) to sum up
-what has been said, Whoever has received from the Divine bounty a large
-share of blessings … has received them for the purpose of using them for
-the perfecting of his own nature, and, at the same time, that he may employ
-them, as the minister of God’s Providence, for the benefit of others.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_330" id="Footnote_330"></a><a href="#FNanchor_330"><span class="label">[330]</span></a> <i>The Economic Interpretation of History</i>, p. 63.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_331" id="Footnote_331"></a><a href="#FNanchor_331"><span class="label">[331]</span></a> <i>Churchwardens’ Accounts</i> (Somerset Record Soc.), p. xxiv.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_332" id="Footnote_332"></a><a href="#FNanchor_332"><span class="label">[332]</span></a> Roger Edgworth, <i>Sermons</i>, London, R. Caly, 1557, p. 309.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_333" id="Footnote_333"></a><a href="#FNanchor_333"><span class="label">[333]</span></a> <i>Parish Life in England before the Great Pillage</i> (“Nineteenth Century,”
-March 1898), p. 432.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_334" id="Footnote_334"></a><a href="#FNanchor_334"><span class="label">[334]</span></a> <i>English Gilds</i> (Early English Text-Society), pp. lxxx.-civ.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_335" id="Footnote_335"></a><a href="#FNanchor_335"><span class="label">[335]</span></a> Ibid., p. xiv.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_336" id="Footnote_336"></a><a href="#FNanchor_336"><span class="label">[336]</span></a> <i>The Economic Interpretation of History</i>, p. 306.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_337" id="Footnote_337"></a><a href="#FNanchor_337"><span class="label">[337]</span></a> <i>English Gilds</i> (Early English Text-Society), p. 3.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_338" id="Footnote_338"></a><a href="#FNanchor_338"><span class="label">[338]</span></a> Ibid., p. 6.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_339" id="Footnote_339"></a><a href="#FNanchor_339"><span class="label">[339]</span></a> Ibid., p. 8.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_340" id="Footnote_340"></a><a href="#FNanchor_340"><span class="label">[340]</span></a> Ibid., p. 48.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_341" id="Footnote_341"></a><a href="#FNanchor_341"><span class="label">[341]</span></a> Egerton MS., 142.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_342" id="Footnote_342"></a><a href="#FNanchor_342"><span class="label">[342]</span></a> The existence of which I know from Mr. Francis Joseph Baigent, who
-with his usual generosity allowed me to examine and take my notes from the
-copies which he has among his great collection of materials for the history of
-Hampshire.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_343" id="Footnote_343"></a><a href="#FNanchor_343"><span class="label">[343]</span></a> One example of this latter, or as I might call it, ordinary expense of the
-society, is worth recording. In 1411, and subsequent years, an annual payment
-of 13s. 4d. is entered on the accounts as made to one Thomas
-Deverosse, a tailor, and apparently a member of the fraternity. The history
-of this man’s poverty is curious. When Bishop William of Wykeham,
-desiring to build Winchester College, purchased certain lands for the purpose,
-amongst the rest was a field which a tailor of Winchester, this Thomas
-Deverosse, subsequently claimed; and to make good his contention, brought
-a suit of ejectment against the Bishop. The case was tried in the King’s
-Bench, and the tailor not only lost, but was cast in costs and so ruined.
-With some writers, William of Wykeham’s good name had been allowed to
-suffer most unjustly for his share in the misfortunes of the unlucky tailor; for
-the Bishop not only undertook to pay the costs of the suit himself, but agreed
-that the college should make the unfortunate claimant a yearly allowance of
-8d. to assist him in his poverty. The Tailors’ Guild secured to him a
-pension of 13s. 4d.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_344" id="Footnote_344"></a><a href="#FNanchor_344"><span class="label">[344]</span></a> Here is the bill for the annual feast in the Guild of Tailors of Winchester
-in 1411. The association was under the patronage of St. John the Baptist, and
-they kept their feast on the Day of the beheading of the Saint, August 29.
-In this year, 1411, the 29th of August fell upon a Saturday, which in mediæval
-times, as all know, was a day of abstinence from flesh-meat. It is to be
-noticed, consequently, that provision is made for a fish dinner: “6 bushels of
-wheat at 8½d. the bushel; for grinding of the same, 3d.; for baking the same,
-6d.; ready-made bread purchased, 12d.; beer, 7s. 1d.; salt fish bought of
-Walter Oakfield, 6s. 8d.; mullet, bass, ray, and fresh conger bought of the
-same Walter, 6s. 8d.; fresh salmon of the same, 8s.; eels, 10½d.; fresh fish
-bought of John Wheller, ‘fisher,’ 2s.; ditto, of Adam Frost, 9s.; ditto,
-bought of a stranger, 2s. 8d.; beans purchased, 9d.; divers spices, <i>i.e.</i> saffron,
-cinnamon, sanders, 12½d.; salt, 2d.; mustard, 2½d.; vinegar, 1d.; tallow, 2d.;
-wood, 18d.; coals, 3½d.; paid to Philip the cook, 2s.; to four labourers,
-2s. 6d.; to three minstrels, 3s. 4d.; for rushes to strew the hall, 4d.; three
-gallons and one pint of wine, 19d.; cheese, 8d.” Making in all a total of
-£3, 4s. 3½d. This, no doubt, represented a large sum in those days, but it is
-as well to remember that at this time the guild consisted of 170 men and
-women, and the cost of the feast was not one-sixth part of the annual income.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_345" id="Footnote_345"></a><a href="#FNanchor_345"><span class="label">[345]</span></a> Harl. MS. 4626, f. 26.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_346" id="Footnote_346"></a><a href="#FNanchor_346"><span class="label">[346]</span></a> Ibid., f. 29. This was confiscated to the Crown on the dissolution of the
-Guilds and Fraternities under Edward VI.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_347" id="Footnote_347"></a><a href="#FNanchor_347"><span class="label">[347]</span></a> <i>Introduction to English Economic History</i> (2nd ed.), i. pp. 100-101.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_348" id="Footnote_348"></a><a href="#FNanchor_348"><span class="label">[348]</span></a> <i>Old Crown House</i>, p. 36, cf. pp. 37-39.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_349" id="Footnote_349"></a><a href="#FNanchor_349"><span class="label">[349]</span></a> See the remarks in regard to France of M. Charles de Ribbe, <i>La Société
-Provençale à la fin du moyen age</i>, 1898, p. 60. Speaking of the fifteenth-century
-wills, he says: “Nous en avons lu un grand nombre, et nous avons
-été frappé de la haute inspiration, parfois meme du talent, avec lesquels des
-notaires de village savaient traduire les élans de foi et de piété dont ils étaient
-les interprètes chez leurs clients.… Cette foi et cette piété; trouvé d’abord
-leur expression dans le vénérable signe de la sainte croix (lequel est plus
-d’une fois figuré graphiquement). Suit la recommandation de l’âme à Dieu
-Créateur du ciel et de la terre, au Christ rédempteur, à la Vierge Marie,” &amp;c.
-(p. 91).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_350" id="Footnote_350"></a><a href="#FNanchor_350"><span class="label">[350]</span></a> <i>Testamenta Eboracensia</i> (Surtees Society), vol. iv. p. 21.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_351" id="Footnote_351"></a><a href="#FNanchor_351"><span class="label">[351]</span></a> Ibid., p. 127.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_352" id="Footnote_352"></a><a href="#FNanchor_352"><span class="label">[352]</span></a> Ibid., p. 127.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_353" id="Footnote_353"></a><a href="#FNanchor_353"><span class="label">[353]</span></a> Ibid., p. 170.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_354" id="Footnote_354"></a><a href="#FNanchor_354"><span class="label">[354]</span></a> Ibid., p. 27.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_355" id="Footnote_355"></a><a href="#FNanchor_355"><span class="label">[355]</span></a> Ibid., p. 60.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_356" id="Footnote_356"></a><a href="#FNanchor_356"><span class="label">[356]</span></a> Ibid., p. 335.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_357" id="Footnote_357"></a><a href="#FNanchor_357"><span class="label">[357]</span></a> Ibid., p. 277.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_358" id="Footnote_358"></a><a href="#FNanchor_358"><span class="label">[358]</span></a> Ibid., p. 139, <i>seqq.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_359" id="Footnote_359"></a><a href="#FNanchor_359"><span class="label">[359]</span></a> Ibid., p. 61 and <i>note</i>.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_360" id="Footnote_360"></a><a href="#FNanchor_360"><span class="label">[360]</span></a> Ibid., p. 69.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_361" id="Footnote_361"></a><a href="#FNanchor_361"><span class="label">[361]</span></a> Ibid., p. 89.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_362" id="Footnote_362"></a><a href="#FNanchor_362"><span class="label">[362]</span></a> Ibid., p. 132.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_363" id="Footnote_363"></a><a href="#FNanchor_363"><span class="label">[363]</span></a> Ibid., p. 149.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_364" id="Footnote_364"></a><a href="#FNanchor_364"><span class="label">[364]</span></a> Ibid., p. 208.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_365" id="Footnote_365"></a><a href="#FNanchor_365"><span class="label">[365]</span></a> Ibid., p. 215.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_366" id="Footnote_366"></a><a href="#FNanchor_366"><span class="label">[366]</span></a> Ibid., p. 230.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_367" id="Footnote_367"></a><a href="#FNanchor_367"><span class="label">[367]</span></a> Ibid., p. 119.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_368" id="Footnote_368"></a><a href="#FNanchor_368"><span class="label">[368]</span></a> Ibid., p. 160.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_369" id="Footnote_369"></a><a href="#FNanchor_369"><span class="label">[369]</span></a> B. Mus. Harl. MS. 670, f. 77 b.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_370" id="Footnote_370"></a><a href="#FNanchor_370"><span class="label">[370]</span></a> <i>Yorkshire Chantry Surveys</i> (Surtees Soc.), ii., preface, p. xiv.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_371" id="Footnote_371"></a><a href="#FNanchor_371"><span class="label">[371]</span></a> <i>The Economic Interpretation of History</i>, p. 306.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_372" id="Footnote_372"></a><a href="#FNanchor_372"><span class="label">[372]</span></a> J. S. Burn, <i>History of Henley on Thames</i>, pp. 173-175.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_373" id="Footnote_373"></a><a href="#FNanchor_373"><span class="label">[373]</span></a> R. O. Chantry Certificate, No. 13 (account for year 37 H. VIII.), No. 17.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_374" id="Footnote_374"></a><a href="#FNanchor_374"><span class="label">[374]</span></a> Ibid., No. 30 and No. 95, M. 6.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_375" id="Footnote_375"></a><a href="#FNanchor_375"><span class="label">[375]</span></a> Ibid., No. 37, M. 12; also No. 95, M. 7; and No. 13 (38) Mins. Accts.
-2, 3, Ed. VI., shows that the king received £11, 19s. 8d. for the property of
-this chapel, which was granted to Robert Swift and his brother.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_376" id="Footnote_376"></a><a href="#FNanchor_376"><span class="label">[376]</span></a> R. O. Chantry Certificate, No. 45 (m. i. d.).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_377" id="Footnote_377"></a><a href="#FNanchor_377"><span class="label">[377]</span></a> Ibid.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_378" id="Footnote_378"></a><a href="#FNanchor_378"><span class="label">[378]</span></a> Ibid.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_379" id="Footnote_379"></a><a href="#FNanchor_379"><span class="label">[379]</span></a> Ibid. (18).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_380" id="Footnote_380"></a><a href="#FNanchor_380"><span class="label">[380]</span></a> Ibid. (20).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_381" id="Footnote_381"></a><a href="#FNanchor_381"><span class="label">[381]</span></a> This was owing to the recent dissolution of the Abbey.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_382" id="Footnote_382"></a><a href="#FNanchor_382"><span class="label">[382]</span></a> In one case it is said: “<i>Mem.</i>: The decay of rent is caused by the
-fact that most came from lands in possession of the abbey; since the dissolution
-these have been sold, and the purchasers do not allow that they are liable
-to pay.” The hospital called St. Parvell’s, without the south gate, also
-had been dissolved by Henry VIII., and the property granted to Sir George
-Somerset (6th July, 37 H. VIII.). It had produced £16, 13s. 4d. a year, with
-£5, 10s. “paid out of the late abbey of Bury to the sustentation of the poor.”
-The whole charity, of course, by the dissolution of the abbey and the grant of
-the remaining property as above, had come to an end.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_383" id="Footnote_383"></a><a href="#FNanchor_383"><span class="label">[383]</span></a> Ibid. (No. 44).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_384" id="Footnote_384"></a><a href="#FNanchor_384"><span class="label">[384]</span></a> <i>Yorkshire Chantry Surveys</i> (Surtees Soc.), p. 213.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_385" id="Footnote_385"></a><a href="#FNanchor_385"><span class="label">[385]</span></a> Ibid., p. 214.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_386" id="Footnote_386"></a><a href="#FNanchor_386"><span class="label">[386]</span></a> Ibid., p. 215.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_387" id="Footnote_387"></a><a href="#FNanchor_387"><span class="label">[387]</span></a> Ibid., p. 216.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_388" id="Footnote_388"></a><a href="#FNanchor_388"><span class="label">[388]</span></a> Ibid., p. 11.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_389" id="Footnote_389"></a><a href="#FNanchor_389"><span class="label">[389]</span></a> Ibid., p. 12.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_390" id="Footnote_390"></a><a href="#FNanchor_390"><span class="label">[390]</span></a> Ibid., p. 13.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_391" id="Footnote_391"></a><a href="#FNanchor_391"><span class="label">[391]</span></a> <i>Gentleman’s Magazine</i>, vol. lxxxii., ii. 318. Quoted in J. Gough Nichol’s
-<i>Pilgrimages</i>, &amp;c. Introduction, xcv.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_392" id="Footnote_392"></a><a href="#FNanchor_392"><span class="label">[392]</span></a> Lancelot Rydley. <i>Exposition in the Epistell of Jude.</i> London,
-Thomas Gybson, 1538, sig. B. v. In sermons and writings, pre-Reformation
-ecclesiastics strove to impress upon the minds of the people the true
-principles of devotion to shrines and relics of the saints. To take one
-example beyond what is given above. In <i>The Art of Good Lyvyng and
-Good Deyng</i>, printed in 1503, the writer says: “We should also honour the
-places that are holy, and the relics of holy bodies of saints and their images,
-not for themselves, but for that in seeing them we show honour to what it
-represents, the dread reverence, honour and love of God, after the intention
-of Holy Church, otherwise it were idolatry” (fol. 6).</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_393" id="Footnote_393"></a><a href="#FNanchor_393"><span class="label">[393]</span></a> <i>A Commentary in Englyshe upon the Ephesians</i>, 1540, sig. A. ii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_394" id="Footnote_394"></a><a href="#FNanchor_394"><span class="label">[394]</span></a> P. 190.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_395" id="Footnote_395"></a><a href="#FNanchor_395"><span class="label">[395]</span></a> <i>Opera omnia</i> (ed. Leclerc), tom. v., col. 26.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_396" id="Footnote_396"></a><a href="#FNanchor_396"><span class="label">[396]</span></a> Col. 37.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_397" id="Footnote_397"></a><a href="#FNanchor_397"><span class="label">[397]</span></a> <i>A treatise concerning the division between the spiritualitie and the temporalitie.</i>
-London, R. Redman (1532?), fol. 27.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_398" id="Footnote_398"></a><a href="#FNanchor_398"><span class="label">[398]</span></a> <i>Dyaloge in Englyshe</i>, 1531. Part 3, fol. 23.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_399" id="Footnote_399"></a><a href="#FNanchor_399"><span class="label">[399]</span></a> English Works, p. 476.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_400" id="Footnote_400"></a><a href="#FNanchor_400"><span class="label">[400]</span></a> Stephen Gardiner. <i>A declaration of such true articles as George Joye
-hath gone about to confute as false.</i> 1546, f. 2.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_401" id="Footnote_401"></a><a href="#FNanchor_401"><span class="label">[401]</span></a> <i>Consilium de emendanda ecclesia</i> (Ed. 1538), sig. B. 4.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_402" id="Footnote_402"></a><a href="#FNanchor_402"><span class="label">[402]</span></a> Jacobi Sadoletti, <i>Opera Omnia</i>, Verona (1737). Tom ii., p. 437.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_403" id="Footnote_403"></a><a href="#FNanchor_403"><span class="label">[403]</span></a> It is said to be “printed at Jericho in the land of Promes, by Thomas
-Treuth.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_404" id="Footnote_404"></a><a href="#FNanchor_404"><span class="label">[404]</span></a> The English Testament.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_405" id="Footnote_405"></a><a href="#FNanchor_405"><span class="label">[405]</span></a> Sig. A. 3.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_406" id="Footnote_406"></a><a href="#FNanchor_406"><span class="label">[406]</span></a> Ibid., sig. A. 4.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_407" id="Footnote_407"></a><a href="#FNanchor_407"><span class="label">[407]</span></a> Ibid., sigs. A. 5 d., A. 6 d.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_408" id="Footnote_408"></a><a href="#FNanchor_408"><span class="label">[408]</span></a> Ibid., sig. B. i.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_409" id="Footnote_409"></a><a href="#FNanchor_409"><span class="label">[409]</span></a> Ibid., sig. B. ii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_410" id="Footnote_410"></a><a href="#FNanchor_410"><span class="label">[410]</span></a> Ibid., sig. B. viii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_411" id="Footnote_411"></a><a href="#FNanchor_411"><span class="label">[411]</span></a> Sig. D. vii.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_412" id="Footnote_412"></a><a href="#FNanchor_412"><span class="label">[412]</span></a> Ibid., sig. D. viii.</p>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_450" id="Page_450">[450]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>INDEX</h2>
-
-<ul>
-<li class="ifrst">Abbots, display in elections of, <a href="#Page_129">129</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Abraham, religious play, <a href="#Page_320">320</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Adrian VI., Pope, <a href="#Page_157">157</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Aggeus, Augustine, <a href="#Page_310">310</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Aldine press, at Venice, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Aldus, printer, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Alexander VI., Pope, <a href="#Page_102">102</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Alms, <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Alton, foundation for obits at, <a href="#Page_403">403-404</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Amberbach, printer, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Amyas Chantry, <a href="#Page_401">401-402</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Angels, devotion to, <a href="#Page_308">308</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Anti-clerical spirit, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Antoninus, St., Archbishop of Florence, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
-<li class="indx">“Apology” of Sir Thomas More, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_144">144</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Archæology, pagan and Christian, <a href="#Page_206">206</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Architecture, pre-Reformation activity in, <a href="#Page_9">9-10</a>, <a href="#Page_328">328</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">decline of the art, <a href="#Page_329">329</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Aretino, <a href="#Page_23">23</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Art, great activity of, prior to Reformation, <a href="#Page_10">10-12</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Arundel, Archbishop, <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Ashley, Mr. W. J., cited, <a href="#Page_379">379</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Augmentation, Court of, <a href="#Page_384">384</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Badsworth, chantry foundation at, <a href="#Page_401">401</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Baigent, Mr. F. T., <a href="#Page_372">372</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Baker, mediæval fresco painter, <a href="#Page_11">11</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Baptism, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Barbarus, Hermolaus, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Barnes, Friar, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_136">136</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Basle, printing-press at, <a href="#Page_165">165</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Baynard’s Castle, meeting at, <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Beccles, foundation at, <a href="#Page_408">408</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Becket, Thomas, <a href="#Page_441">441</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Bede-roll, <a href="#Page_335">335</a>, <a href="#Page_341">341</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Benedict XII., <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Benedictine Order, average of graduates at Oxford, <a href="#Page_42">42</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Benefices, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_353">353</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Benefit of clergy, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Bequests, mediæval, <a href="#Page_389">389</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Bere, Abbot, of Glastonbury, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Berthelet, publisher, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_98">98</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_298">298</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Bible, the Bishops’, <a href="#Page_247">247</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Bible, Erasmus’s translation, <a href="#Page_168">168</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Bible, English, hostility to, <a href="#Page_236">236</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">evidence of Catholic acceptance, <a href="#Page_237">237</a>, <a href="#Page_242">242</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">supposed early Catholic version, <a href="#Page_237">237</a>, <a href="#Page_242">242</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">persecutions for possession examined, <a href="#Page_240">240</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_241">241</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">translations authorised, <a href="#Page_242">242-243</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247-249</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">not prohibited, <a href="#Page_247">247</a>, <a href="#Page_275">275-276</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">absence of popular demand for, <a href="#Page_250">250-251</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Tyndale’s version and Luther’s share in it, <a href="#Page_252">252</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">useless without interpretation, <a href="#Page_275">275</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Bishops, and ordination, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and spiritual jurisdiction, <a href="#Page_154">154</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">obstacles to Reformation, <a href="#Page_444">444</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Blackfriars, meetings at, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Bombasius, Paul, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Bond, William, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_305">305</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Boniface VIII., Pope, <a href="#Page_99">99</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Books, heretical, prohibited, <a href="#Page_213">213-216</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">More on heretical, <a href="#Page_218">218</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">earliest printed largely religious, <a href="#Page_315">315</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Bourbon, Duke of, <a href="#Page_230">230</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Boyer, Sebastian, Court physician, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Brentano, Mr., cited, <a href="#Page_362">362-363</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Brethren of St. John’s, <a href="#Page_374">374</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and Hospital, <a href="#Page_375">375</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Bretton, William, <a href="#Page_310">310</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Brewer, Mr., cited, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211-212</a>, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>, <a href="#Page_279">279</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Brotherhoods, Parish, <a href="#Page_347">347</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_451" id="Page_451">[451]</a></span>Brunfels, Otto, <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Brygott, Richard, prior of Westacre, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Bucer, <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Burials, <a href="#Page_54">54</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Burnet, historian, cited, <a href="#Page_4">4</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Bury St. Edmunds, chantries at, <a href="#Page_409">409</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Butley, Priory of, <a href="#Page_43">43</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Calendar of papers, domestic and foreign, of reign of Henry VIII., <a href="#Page_4">4</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Cambray, Bishop of, <a href="#Page_159">159</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Cambridge, portions of Prior Selling’s library at, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">monastic students at, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">petition of scholars to the king, <a href="#Page_47">47</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Campeggio, Cardinal, <a href="#Page_179">179</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180</a>, <a href="#Page_181">181</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Canterbury, Archbishop of, on clerical immunity, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><a name="Canterbury" id="Canterbury"></a>Canterbury, entertainment of Emperor Manuel at Christchurch, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Selling and Hadley, monks of Christchurch, <a href="#Page_24">24</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Canterbury College at Oxford, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">St. Augustine’s and the literary movement, <a href="#Page_40">40</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Caraffa, Cardinal, afterwards Paul IV., <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_438">438</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Carmelites, origin, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">responsibility for Lutheranism, <a href="#Page_197">197</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Caxton, <a href="#Page_275">275</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Chalcocondylas, Demetrius, <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Chantries, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_399">399</a>, <a href="#Page_401">401</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Chapels of ease, <a href="#Page_413">413</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Chaplains, evil effects of their position, <a href="#Page_138">138-139</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Charnock, Prior, <a href="#Page_39">39</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Chaucer, cited, <a href="#Page_415">415</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Children, and idols, <a href="#Page_292">292</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">religious instruction of, <a href="#Page_312">312</a>, <a href="#Page_313">313-314</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Christchurch, <i>see</i> <a href="#Canterbury">Canterbury</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Christianity and the classical revival, <a href="#Page_203">203-206</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Chrysoloras, Manuel, Greek scholar, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Chrysostom, St., cited, <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Church, position of, prior to Reformation, <a href="#Page_1">1</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">need of reform in, <a href="#Page_5">5</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attitude to learning, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_35">35-38</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">hostility to “New Learning” explained, <a href="#Page_15">15</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">limits of jurisdiction, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and disputations entailed, <a href="#Page_51"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">State right to regulate temporalities of, <a href="#Page_53">53</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">king as supreme head, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">rights, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">what constitutes, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">riches coveted, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Pope as head, <a href="#Page_83">83</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Papal Commission appointed to save, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">evils in, and how caused, <a href="#Page_105">105-106</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">abuses pointed out by Commission, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">limitations of king’s Headship, <a href="#Page_111">111-112</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">controversy on riches of, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus’s attitude to, <a href="#Page_167">167</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_199">199-200</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus regarded as an enemy to, <a href="#Page_175">175-176</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Lutheran tenets concerning, <a href="#Page_194">194</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">need of reform obscured by Reformation, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attack on, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attitude to vernacular Bibles, <a href="#Page_236">236</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_245">245-248</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">but hostility to denied, <a href="#Page_242">242-243</a>, <a href="#Page_246">246-247</a>, <a href="#Page_251">251</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">religious teaching prior to Reformation, <a href="#Page_278">278</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">charges against on points of worship, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_302">302-305</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">bequests to, <a href="#Page_390">390</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">suggested disposal of wealth of, <a href="#Page_444">444</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">abuses in, <a href="#Page_415">415</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Church of Christ, sermon on, <a href="#Page_91">91</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Church-building, activity of, <a href="#Page_326">326</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">contributions of people towards bequests for, <a href="#Page_327">327</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_390">390</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">decoration, <a href="#Page_328">328</a>, <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Church House, <a href="#Page_341">341</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Churchyards, trees and grass in, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Cicero, and the classical revival, <a href="#Page_203">203-206</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Ciceroniana</i> of Erasmus, <a href="#Page_203">203</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Clark, Dr. John, English ambassador, <a href="#Page_94">94</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Classical revival, Erasmus on, <a href="#Page_203">203</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">absurdities of, <a href="#Page_203">203-204</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Claymond, John, Greek scholar, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Clement, John, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Clement, Pope, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Clergy, alleged encouragement of ignorance, <a href="#Page_2">2</a>, <a href="#Page_278">278</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">mortuary dues, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140-144</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">“benefit,” <a href="#Page_55">55</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">rights and duties, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65-70</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">ordinations, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148-153</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">exemptions, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">immunity, <a href="#Page_66">66</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">not the Church, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">position as individuals, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attack on their temporalities, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">laity’s grievance against, <a href="#Page_114">114</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and its causes, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defended by More, <a href="#Page_120">120-121</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">alleged mercenary spirit, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and idle laxity of living, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">prayers, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">alms, <a href="#Page_132">132-133</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">fasting and mortification, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">charges of corruption, <a href="#Page_136">136</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">lack of definite work, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">in households of laity, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">tithe exactions, <a href="#Page_142">142</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">faults, <a href="#Page_143">143-145</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_452" id="Page_452">[452]</a></span>alleged immorality, <a href="#Page_145">145-146</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">charge of simony, <a href="#Page_146">146</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Mr. Brewer cited on, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">ignorance of, <a href="#Page_151">151</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">hostility to vernacular scriptures examined, <a href="#Page_236">236</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_246">246</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and reasons for not encouraging, <a href="#Page_242">242</a>, <a href="#Page_244">244</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">extent and character of their religious teaching, <a href="#Page_280">280</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">books used by for teaching, <a href="#Page_309">309</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">chantry clergy, <a href="#Page_400">400</a>, <a href="#Page_405">405-409</a>, <a href="#Page_413">413</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">pilgrimages and relics maintained by, <a href="#Page_415">415</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and motives for, <a href="#Page_422">422</a>, <a href="#Page_425">425</a></li>
-<li class="indx">“Clericus,” <a href="#Page_74">74</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Cloth, clerical, State’s right to legislate on, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Cochlæus, John, <a href="#Page_253">253</a>, <a href="#Page_254">254</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Colet, Dean, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a>, <a href="#Page_168">168</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Commerce, progress not due to Reformation, <a href="#Page_8">8</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Commissioners, royal, <a href="#Page_380">380</a>, <a href="#Page_384">384</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Compostella, pilgrimages to, <a href="#Page_416">416</a>, <a href="#Page_417">417</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Concordat, between Leo X. and Francis I., <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Concubines, alleged licences for, <a href="#Page_145">145</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Confession, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_282">282</a>, <a href="#Page_287">287</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Congregation, denoting church, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_262">262-266</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Conscience, examinations of, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Constantine, donation to Pope, <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Constantine, George, <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Constantinople, effect of fall of, <a href="#Page_23">23</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Constitution, Provincial, <a href="#Page_237">237-239</a>, <a href="#Page_242">242</a>, <a href="#Page_280">280</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Contarini, Cardinal, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Convocation, grant of headship of Church to the king, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">enactment regarding ordination, <a href="#Page_148">148-149</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">powers of legislation transferred to Crown, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">draws up list of heretical books, <a href="#Page_215">215</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Corpus Christi, feast of, <a href="#Page_373">373</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">procession of guilds, <a href="#Page_374">374</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">at Corunna, <a href="#Page_217">217</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Council of Trent, <a href="#Page_5">5</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_440">440</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Courts, ecclesiastical, subject to Pope, <a href="#Page_80">80-81</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Coverdale, Myles, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_258">258</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Cranmer and English Bible, <a href="#Page_236">236</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on hearing mass, <a href="#Page_326">326</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Creeping to the Cross, <a href="#Page_302">302</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Criticism in the Church, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>, <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Croke, Richard, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Cromwell, Thomas, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Cross, honour to on Good Friday, <a href="#Page_302">302</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Crowley, quoted, <a href="#Page_382">382</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Crucifix, reverence of image of, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_289">289-290</a>, <a href="#Page_300">300</a>, <a href="#Page_307">307</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">not an idol, <a href="#Page_293">293</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Curates and mortuaries, <a href="#Page_140">140-141</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and tithes, <a href="#Page_142">142</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Cuthbert, Bishop, <a href="#Page_219">219</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Dalton, John, of Hull, will of, <a href="#Page_391">391</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Dead, prayers for, <a href="#Page_387">387</a>, <a href="#Page_399">399</a></li>
-<li class="indx">De Athegua, George, Bishop, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">De Burgo, John, <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Dee, Dr., supplication to Queen Mary, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Defence of Peace</i>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Degree, advantage of to religious, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-<li class="indx">De Melton, William, Chancellor of York, <a href="#Page_149">149</a></li>
-<li class="indx">De Ribbe, M. Charles, on wills, <a href="#Page_389">389</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Determinations of the Universities</i>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Deventer, school, <a href="#Page_157">157</a></li>
-<li class="indx">De Worde, Wynkyn, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="#Page_275">275</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_280">280</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_298">298</a>, <a href="#Page_312">312</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Digon, John, Canterbury monk, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Dislike of clergy, alleged, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">reasons for, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Dispensations, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Dives et Pauper</i>, <a href="#Page_284">284</a>, <a href="#Page_298">298</a>, <a href="#Page_353">353</a>, <a href="#Page_354">354</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Division between spirituality and temporality, Saint-German’s work on, <a href="#Page_115">115</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Divorce question, the, and its share in Reformation, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Doctors of divinity, Erasmus’s satire on, <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Döllinger, Dr., cited, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Dominicans, the, and Erasmus, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">responsibility for Lutheranism, <a href="#Page_197">197</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Dorpius, Marten, <a href="#Page_169">169-170</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Dues of clergy, <a href="#Page_53">53</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Dunstan’s, St., Canterbury, <a href="#Page_346">346</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">parish accounts, <a href="#Page_347">347</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Dyalogue</i> of Saint-German, <a href="#Page_53">53</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">of More, <a href="#Page_262">262</a>, <a href="#Page_269">269</a>, <a href="#Page_289">289</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Ecclesiastical authority, alleged discontent of laity under, <a href="#Page_1">1</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_416">416</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">limits of, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Ecclesiastical discipline, inquiry into, <a href="#Page_438">438</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Ecclesiastics, attitude to revival of learning, <a href="#Page_36">36-38</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_453" id="Page_453">[453]</a></span>resistance to encroachment, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus’s satire on, <a href="#Page_201">201</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attitude to English Bible, <a href="#Page_236">236</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">alleged encouragement of ignorance, <a href="#Page_2">2</a>, <a href="#Page_278">278</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Edgworth, Roger, preacher, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_244">244</a>, <a href="#Page_272">272</a>, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_292">292</a>, <a href="#Page_359">359</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Education, fostered by monasteries, <a href="#Page_45">45</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Enconium Moriæ</i>, of Erasmus, <a href="#Page_161">161-162</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Erasmus, attitude to Reformation, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">made responsible for “New Learning,” <a href="#Page_16">16</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">but attitude to defined, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">his chief support in England, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">position and views, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">considered a Reformer, <a href="#Page_156">156</a>, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180-181</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">birth and education, <a href="#Page_156">156-157</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">joins order of St. Augustine, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">ordained, <a href="#Page_157"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">unfitness for religious life, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">hostility to religious orders, <a href="#Page_158">158</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>, <a href="#Page_200">200</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">denounces enticing of youths into cloister, <a href="#Page_158"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">leaves the religious life, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">takes pupils, <a href="#Page_159"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">at Oxford, <a href="#Page_159">159-160</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">in London, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">visits Italy, <a href="#Page_160"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">his <i>Adagia</i>, <a href="#Page_160"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">visits Venice, <a href="#Page_160"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">returns to London, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">his <i>Enconium Moriæ</i>, <a href="#Page_161">161-162</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_431">431</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">at Cambridge, <a href="#Page_161">161-162</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">testimony to Archbishop Warham’s kindness, <a href="#Page_162">162-163</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">praise of English ecclesiastics, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">amounts received from English friends, <a href="#Page_164">164</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">again leaves England, <a href="#Page_165">165</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">settles at Basle, <a href="#Page_165"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">superintends Froben’s press, <a href="#Page_166">166</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">death, <a href="#Page_167">167</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attitude to Church, <a href="#Page_167">167</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_199">199-200</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">translation of New Testament, <a href="#Page_168">168</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attacks on, <a href="#Page_173">173</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">regarded as an enemy to the Church, <a href="#Page_175">175-176</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">opposition to his revival of Greek, <a href="#Page_177">177-178</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defends himself to the Pope, <a href="#Page_179">179</a>, <a href="#Page_181">181-182</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">disclaims connection with Luther, <a href="#Page_180">180-182</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="#Page_195">195-198</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">opposition to national churches, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attitude to Luther, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196-198</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attacks Luther, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">replies to von Hutten’s attacks, <a href="#Page_187">187</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attitude to the Pope, <a href="#Page_189">189-190</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_193">193</a>, <a href="#Page_194">194-195</a>, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attacks Lutheran motives, <a href="#Page_191">191-192</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">letter to Bishop Marlianus on attitude to Luther, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">general attitude to religious movement of his age, <a href="#Page_200">200</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and to the classical revival, <a href="#Page_203">203</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on pilgrimages and relics, <a href="#Page_415">415</a>, <a href="#Page_418">418</a>, <a href="#Page_431">431</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on devotion to saints, <a href="#Page_431">431</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Eton College Chapel, wall paintings of, <a href="#Page_11">11</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Evensong, said before noon, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Exemptions of clergy, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Fairs, <a href="#Page_378">378</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">at Winchester, <a href="#Page_379">379</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Faith, The Olde, of Great Brittayne and the New Learning of England</i>, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Fasting, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Ferguson, Mr., quoted on architectural art, <a href="#Page_329">329</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Fineux, Chief-Justice, tries John Savage, <a href="#Page_57">57</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">opinion on spiritual courts, <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Fisher, Bishop, love of learning, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">object in studying Greek, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">views on Papal supremacy, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">books against Luther, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_192">192</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">execution, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">sermon on, <a href="#Page_92">92</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on moral character of religious, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">invitation to Erasmus, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Erasmus’s New Testament, <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">supports study of Greek, <a href="#Page_177">177</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Fisher, Rev. J., <a href="#Page_311">311</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Fleming, Robert, <a href="#Page_23">23</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Foxe, cited, <a href="#Page_240">240</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_251">251</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Francis I., <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Francis, Order of St., <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Free, John, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Frith, <a href="#Page_215">215</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Froben, printer, <a href="#Page_165">165</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Froude, on Erasmus’s New Testament, <a href="#Page_172">172</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Funerals, <a href="#Page_54">54</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Gairdner, James, cited on jurisdiction of Pope, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on the divorce question, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Reformation influences, <a href="#Page_210">210</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Gardiner, Bishop, <a href="#Page_438">438</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Gardynare, Germen, <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Garlekhithe, St. James, <a href="#Page_366">366</a></li>
-<li class="indx">German reformers, books prohibited, <a href="#Page_214">214-215</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Gibbon, cited, <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Glasse of Truth</i>, <a href="#Page_101">101-102</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Glastonbury monastery, <a href="#Page_39">39</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Gloucester, Humphrey, Duke of, <a href="#Page_23">23</a></li>
-<li class="indx">God, love of, <a href="#Page_299">299</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_454" id="Page_454">[454]</a></span>worship of, <a href="#Page_304">304</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Goldstone, Reginald, monk, companion of Selling, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Goldstone, Thomas, Prior of Christchurch, <a href="#Page_24">24</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Gonville Hall, Cambridge, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Good Friday observances, <a href="#Page_302">302-303</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Government, true principle of, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Grace at meals, <a href="#Page_314">314</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Graduates at Oxford, register of, <a href="#Page_41">41-42</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Greek emperors, journeys to courts of Western Europe, <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Greek, influence in revival of learning, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_21">21</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">first schools of the revival, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">effect of fall of Constantinople, <a href="#Page_23">23-24</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">decline in study of after Reformation, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus and the Greek Testament, <a href="#Page_168">168</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">outcry against studies in, <a href="#Page_177">177</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Green, historian, cited, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Gregory VII., Pope, <a href="#Page_101">101</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Grocyn, William, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Grudge of laity against ecclesiastics, <a href="#Page_114">114</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Guardian angel, prayer to, <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Guarini, pupil of Chrysoloras, <a href="#Page_23">23</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Guilds, <a href="#Page_351">351</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">founded upon principle of Christian brotherhood, <a href="#Page_352">352</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">trade, and religious, <a href="#Page_361">361</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">benefit societies, <a href="#Page_363">363</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">their work, <a href="#Page_365">365</a>, <a href="#Page_385">385</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">constitution, <a href="#Page_366">366</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">“Pinners’” Guild, <a href="#Page_368">368</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">accounts, <a href="#Page_369">369-370</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">fees, <a href="#Page_371">371</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Guild of Tailors, <a href="#Page_371">371</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">members, <a href="#Page_371">371</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">expenditure, <a href="#Page_372">372</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">their part in Corpus Christi processions, <a href="#Page_373">373-374</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">brethren of St. John’s, <a href="#Page_374">374</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">feasts, <a href="#Page_376">376</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Candlemas Guild of Bury St. Edmunds, <a href="#Page_377">377</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">bequests, <a href="#Page_377">377-378</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">connection with fairs, <a href="#Page_378">378</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">final destruction, <a href="#Page_380">380</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Hadley, William, companion of Prior Selling, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">studies at foreign universities, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">returns to Christchurch, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Hair shirts, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Headship of the Church, the king’s, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Hegius, Alexander, <a href="#Page_157">157</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Henley on Thames, chantries at, <a href="#Page_405">405</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Henry IV., <a href="#Page_136">136</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Henry VII. obtains Bull from Innocent VIII., <a href="#Page_56">56</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">purchases pardon for Westminster and Savoy, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Henry VIII., calendar of papers of reign, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">exerts his influence on behalf of learning, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_177">177</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">determined to maintain rights of Crown, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">book against Luther, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defends Church, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_226">226</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">reputed book, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">petition of Commons, &amp;c., against spirituality, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">quarrel with Rome on divorce question, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">forbids Lutheran books, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>, <a href="#Page_259">259</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">authorises English Bibles, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">destroys the guilds, <a href="#Page_380">380</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">the reformers and, <a href="#Page_440">440</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Heresy, spread by books, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Hobhouse, Bishop, cited, <a href="#Page_346">346</a>, <a href="#Page_357">357</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Holidays, determined by ecclesiastical law, <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Holy Land, pilgrimages to, <a href="#Page_416">416</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Hortulus Animæ</i>, the, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Huchin, William, <i>see</i> <a href="#Tyndale">Tyndale</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Hunn, Richard, <a href="#Page_240">240</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Hunting, by priests, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Hutton, Rev. W. H., cited, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Hytton, Sir Thomas, <a href="#Page_224">224</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Idolatry, charges of, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_303">303</a>, <a href="#Page_305">305</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Idols, distinguished from images, <a href="#Page_265">265</a>, <a href="#Page_289">289</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_305">305-306</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Ignorance, alleged prevalence of, <a href="#Page_2">2</a>, <a href="#Page_278">278</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Images, confused with idols, <a href="#Page_265">265</a>, <a href="#Page_292">292</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">veneration of, <a href="#Page_289">289</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_423">423</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Immunity of clergy, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Indulgences, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_435">435</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Innocent VIII. grants Bull to Henry VII., <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Janssen, historian, cited, <a href="#Page_6">6</a>, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>, <a href="#Page_279">279</a>, <a href="#Page_354">354</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Jerome, St., corrections in Testament, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">cited on Papal supremacy, <a href="#Page_197">197</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Jessop, Dr., cited, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on popular gifts to churches, <a href="#Page_336">336</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on poverty, <a href="#Page_360">360</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Jesus, bowing at name of, <a href="#Page_283">283</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Joye, George, or Clarke, <a href="#Page_221">221</a>, <a href="#Page_224">224</a>, <a href="#Page_253">253</a>, <a href="#Page_257">257-258</a>, <a href="#Page_438">438</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Judges, English prelates as, <a href="#Page_81">81</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Julius II., Pope, <a href="#Page_96">96</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_204">204</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Jurisdiction, limits of ecclesiastical and lay, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_176">176</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">leading factor in Reformation, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Papal, <a href="#Page_78">78</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Roman curia as court of appeal, <a href="#Page_80">80</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Katherine, Queen, <a href="#Page_178">178</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_455" id="Page_455">[455]</a></span>Kent, Holy Maid of, <a href="#Page_441">441</a></li>
-<li class="indx">King’s power, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">his headship of Church, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Knowledge, result of increase of, <a href="#Page_2">2</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Laity, Reformation opposed to convictions of, <a href="#Page_1">1</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">alleged disaffection to Church, <a href="#Page_1"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and reasons advanced, <a href="#Page_1"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attitude to Church’s jurisdiction, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">absence of enthusiasm among in doctrinal disputes, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">grudge against ecclesiastics, <a href="#Page_114">114</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">charge clergy with mercenary spirit, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">dislike of clergy, and reasons for, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">“mortuaries” a great offence to, <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Langton, Thomas, Bishop of Winchester, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Languages, battle of, <a href="#Page_176">176-179</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Laocöon, the, statue of, <a href="#Page_206">206</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Latimer, William, Bishop, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">lawsuits, <a href="#Page_348">348</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">“Latria,” <a href="#Page_294">294-304</a>, <a href="#Page_306">306-307</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Lawyers, ecclesiastical, <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Learning, revival not due to Reformation, <a href="#Page_7">7-8</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">adverse effects of Reformation on, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_198">198-199</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">“New Learning” applied only to religious teaching, <a href="#Page_15">15</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Church’s attitude to learning, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus on Reformation’s effect on, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">general aspect of revival, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Greek influence in, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_21">21</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">subsequent progress, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">occasional pulpit denunciations, <a href="#Page_35"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">slight nature of opposition, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">laymen associated with revival, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">fostered by monasteries, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">condition of things at universities, <a href="#Page_41">41-44</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">education assisted by religious houses, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">decay of after Reformation, <a href="#Page_45">45-48</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">revival of, associated with Lutheranism, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">but without cause, <a href="#Page_180">180-181</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus’s attitude to revival of letters, <a href="#Page_203">203-207</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Lee, Edward, afterwards Archbishop of York, <a href="#Page_173">173-174</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_252">252</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Leeds, chantries at, <a href="#Page_411">411-412</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Leland, cited, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Leo X., Pope, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_96">96</a>, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="#Page_179">179</a>, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="#Page_439">439</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Leo XIII., Pope, cited, <a href="#Page_355">355</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Leonicenus, <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Leonicus, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Leverton, parish of, <a href="#Page_339">339</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Church accounts, <a href="#Page_343">343</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Lewes, Cluniac House at, <a href="#Page_43">43</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Liberty advocated by Luther, <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Libraries, destruction of, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Dr. Dee’s supplication to Queen Mary, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">national library suggested, <a href="#Page_49">49</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Life, daily rules of, <a href="#Page_286">286-287</a>, <a href="#Page_313">313</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Lilly, George, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Linacre, pupil of Selling, sketch of early life, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">accompanies Selling to Italy, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>; becomes pupil of Politian, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">at Rome, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">returns to Oxford, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">appointed Court physician, <a href="#Page_30"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">receives priest’s orders, <a href="#Page_30"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">friend of Erasmus, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Liveries for chaplains, <a href="#Page_138">138</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Lollards, the, <a href="#Page_209">209</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>, <a href="#Page_240">240</a></li>
-<li class="indx">London, Mors’s Lamentation against, <a href="#Page_440">440</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Longland, Bishop, <a href="#Page_93">93</a>, <a href="#Page_146">146</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Louvain, University of, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_176">176</a>, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>, <a href="#Page_179">179</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Love of God, <a href="#Page_299">299</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Luce, M. Siméon, cited, <a href="#Page_351">351</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Lupset, Thomas, sketch of, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on study of Bible, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Luther, Martin, aims of, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">cited on pre-Reformation progress, <a href="#Page_8">8</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">“New Learning” inculcated by, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">books against, <a href="#Page_84">84-85</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">sermon against, <a href="#Page_93">93</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Henry VIII. opposes, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">method of, <a href="#Page_108">108-109</a>, <i>note</i>; More and Lutherans, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">considered disciple of Erasmus, <a href="#Page_156">156</a>, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">revival of letters not connected with his movement, <a href="#Page_180">180-181</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus’s repudiation of, <a href="#Page_180">180-182</a>, <a href="#Page_195">195-198</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">efforts to win over Erasmus, <a href="#Page_183">183-184</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attacked by Erasmus, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_191">191-192</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">supported by von Hutten, <a href="#Page_186">186</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">tenets of Lutheranism, <a href="#Page_194">194</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">methods of attacking condemned, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">who responsible for his movement, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">effects of Lutheranism, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and spread of, <a href="#Page_212">212-213</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">books prohibited, <a href="#Page_213">213-215</a>; disciples, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">his book, <a href="#Page_222">222</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">“New Learning” and, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">advocacy of liberty, <a href="#Page_227">227</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">evils of Lutheranism, <a href="#Page_228">228-230</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and of Lutheran literature, <a href="#Page_244">244</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Tyndale’s connection with, <a href="#Page_252">252</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">share in Tyndale’s Testament, <a href="#Page_252">252-255</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">direction of his remonstrances, <a href="#Page_279">279</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Lutheranism, tenets of, <a href="#Page_194">194</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">responsibility for, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">effects of, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">evils of, <a href="#Page_228">228-230</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">expectations of English Lutherans, <a href="#Page_440">440</a>, <a href="#Page_445">445</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_456" id="Page_456">[456]</a></span>Lyndwood, cited, <a href="#Page_247">247</a>, <a href="#Page_353">353</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Mace, George, canon of Westacre, <a href="#Page_44">44</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Maitland, Professor, quoted on pre-Reformation position of the Pope, <a href="#Page_80">80</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Manuel, Greek Emperor, arrival at Canterbury, <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Mary Magdalene, religious play, <a href="#Page_320">320</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Marlianus, Bishop, <a href="#Page_197">197</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Marshall, William, <a href="#Page_103">103</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Marsilius of Padua, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Mary, Queen, attempt to restore learning under, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Mass, the, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_271">271</a>, <a href="#Page_283">283</a>, <a href="#Page_285">285</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Matrimony, State regulation of, <a href="#Page_62">62</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Hytton’s view of, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Matthew, Simon, preacher, <a href="#Page_91">91</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Medici, Lorenzo de, <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Mentz, Cardinal Archbishop of, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_184">184</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Metal-working, inventions in, <a href="#Page_428">428</a></li>
-<li class="indx">“Miles,” mouthpiece of Saint-German, <a href="#Page_74">74</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Miracles, <a href="#Page_62">62</a>, <a href="#Page_427">427</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Monasteries, scholarship in, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">members of at universities, <a href="#Page_42">42</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Monks, hostile to Erasmus, <a href="#Page_176">176</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus quoted on, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">pilgrimages and relics maintained by, <a href="#Page_415">415</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Morality, of clergy, <a href="#Page_145">145-146</a></li>
-<li class="indx">More, Sir Thomas, attitude to Reformation, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and to learning, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_35">35-37</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">connection with Christchurch, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">at Oxford, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on immunity of clergy, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">his “Apology,” <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_144">144</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on spiritual authority, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Papal supremacy, <a href="#Page_85">85</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on nature of the Church, <a href="#Page_86">86</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">against Friar Barnes, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">book against Luther, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">death, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">sermon on, <a href="#Page_92">92</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">controversy on clergy and laity, <a href="#Page_115">115</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on quarrels between religious, <a href="#Page_116">116-117</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defends clergy, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and replies to allegation of their mercenary spirit, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and of their idle laxity of life, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on abuses in religious life, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on prayers and alms of clergy, <a href="#Page_131">131-135</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defends clergy from charges of corruption, <a href="#Page_136">136</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on faults of clergy, <a href="#Page_143">143-145</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and on their morality, <a href="#Page_145">145-146</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">visited by Erasmus, <a href="#Page_160">160-161</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">share in Erasmus’s <i>Enconium Moriæ</i>, <a href="#Page_161">161-162</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defends Erasmus’s translation of New Testament, <a href="#Page_169">169-170</a>, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defends Greek studies, <a href="#Page_177">177</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">urges Erasmus against Luther, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">opinion of Erasmus’s <i>Enconium Moriæ</i>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on spread of heresy, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_218">218</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on “New Learning” and Lutheranism, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Luther’s advocacy of liberty, <a href="#Page_227">227</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on evils of Lutheranism, <a href="#Page_228">228-230</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on English Bible, <a href="#Page_237">237</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on case of Richard Hunn, <a href="#Page_241">241</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Church’s acceptance of vernacular Bibles, <a href="#Page_242">242-243</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247-249</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and on false translations, <a href="#Page_243">243</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and reasons for condemnation of Tyndale’s version, <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_260">260-270</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on reverence of images, <a href="#Page_289">289-291</a>, <a href="#Page_293">293-298</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on prayer, <a href="#Page_307">307</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on pilgrimages, <a href="#Page_419">419</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_425">425</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on relics, <a href="#Page_429">429</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on indulgences, <a href="#Page_437">437</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Morebath, village of, well-supported church, <a href="#Page_337">337</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Mors, Roderigo, his “Lamentation,” <a href="#Page_440">440</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Mortality among pilgrims, <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Mortmain, lands in, <a href="#Page_54">54</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Mortuaries, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Morysine, Richard, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Mountjoy, Lord, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Music, pre-Reformation progress in, <a href="#Page_12">12-13</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Richard Pace quoted on, <a href="#Page_35">35</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Mystery plays, <a href="#Page_316">316</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="ifrst">National churches, opposed by Erasmus, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">National feeling and the Papacy, <a href="#Page_82">82</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">National library, suggested, <a href="#Page_49">49</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Nevill, Archbishop, <a href="#Page_281">281</a></li>
-<li class="indx">“New Learning” defined, <a href="#Page_15">15</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">its purely religious application, <a href="#Page_16">16</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">result of, <a href="#Page_50">50</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">founded on Luther’s teaching, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-<li class="indx">New Testament, Erasmus’s translation, <a href="#Page_168">168</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">English versions destroyed, <a href="#Page_236">236</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Tyndale version, and Luther’s share in it, <a href="#Page_252">252</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Nicholas V., Pope, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Nicholas of Cusa, reforms in Germany, <a href="#Page_6">6</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">opinion on Constantine’s gift to Pope, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
-<li class="indx">“Noah and his Sons,” religious play, <a href="#Page_320">320</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Nobility, attitude to clergy, <a href="#Page_136">136</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Norwich, Visitations of Diocese of, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_457" id="Page_457">[457]</a></span>Benedictine Cathedral Priory of, <a href="#Page_43"><i>ibid.</i></a></li>
-<li class="indx">Nottinghamshire, chantries in, <a href="#Page_401">401-402</a>, <a href="#Page_406">406</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Obits, <a href="#Page_399">399</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Œcolampadius, <a href="#Page_184">184</a>, <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
-<li class="indx">“Open Bible,” <a href="#Page_236">236</a>, <a href="#Page_246">246</a>, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>, <a href="#Page_275">275</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Orders, religious, their graduates at Oxford, <a href="#Page_42">42</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">suggested alterations in constitutions, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">hostility of Erasmus, <a href="#Page_158">158</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Ordinations, proposed prohibition regarding, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">abuses in, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">action by Convocation, <a href="#Page_148">148-149</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">William de Melton on, <a href="#Page_149">149-153</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">reformers on, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Oxford, Register of Graduates at, <a href="#Page_41">41-42</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">refounding of Durham College at, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">heresy at, <a href="#Page_227">227</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Constitution or Synod of, <a href="#Page_238">238</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247</a>, <a href="#Page_280">280</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Pace, Richard, befriended by Bishop Langton, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">his <i>De Fructu</i>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">at foreign universities, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">the Pope’s library, <a href="#Page_34"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">remarks on music, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">indebtedness to Abbot Bere, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">supports Greek studies, <a href="#Page_177">177</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pagula, Walter, <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Papal Commissions, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_439">439</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Papal jurisdiction, meaning of renunciation, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">general acceptance, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">books against, <a href="#Page_101">101</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Papal prerogatives, in England, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107-108</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">in France, <a href="#Page_77">77</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Papal supremacy, <a href="#Page_83">83</a> et seq.;</li>
-<li class="isub1">rejection of, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">English belief in, <a href="#Page_93">93-95</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">rejection defended by Bishop Tunstall, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus on, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_194">194-195</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pardons, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_435">435</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Parish churches, sanctuary privileges, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">religious teaching in, <a href="#Page_280">280</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Parish life, <a href="#Page_323">323</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">devotion of people, <a href="#Page_325">325</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">care of the churches, <a href="#Page_328">328</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">raising of money, <a href="#Page_340">340</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">brotherhoods, <a href="#Page_347">347</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Parliament, legislation on mortuaries, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_141">141</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and on immunity of clergy, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">need for settlement of religious divisions, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">suggested legislation, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">right of legislation, <a href="#Page_141">141</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">transfers powers of Convocation to Crown, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">petition of Commons against spirituality, <a href="#Page_153"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">authorises destruction of guilds, <a href="#Page_380">380</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Paul III., Pope, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_439">439</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Paul IV., Pope, <a href="#Page_438">438</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Payment for “Pardons,” <a href="#Page_435">435</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Peckham, or Pecham, Archbishop, <a href="#Page_280">280</a>, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Penance, <a href="#Page_282">282</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pensions, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Pensioners, university, <a href="#Page_43">43</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pepwell, publisher, <a href="#Page_310">310</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Petition of House of Commons against spirituality, <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Pilgrimage of Perfection</i>, quoted, <a href="#Page_83">83</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pilgrimages, State supervision urged, <a href="#Page_62">62</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">objections to, <a href="#Page_184">184</a>, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_415">415</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">importance, <a href="#Page_416">416</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">foreign, <a href="#Page_416">416</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">to England, <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pincern, Bartolomeo, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pinners, Guild of, <a href="#Page_368">368-369</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Plays, mystery, <a href="#Page_316">316</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_342">342</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pocket, the people’s, a clue to religious changes, <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pole, Cardinal, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Politian, Angelo, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pomeranus, <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Poor, right to benefices, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">injury to by confiscations, <a href="#Page_382">382</a>, <a href="#Page_402">402</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">bequests to, <a href="#Page_397">397-398</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pope, Sir Thomas, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pope, the, and Sanctuary, <a href="#Page_55">55</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">pre-Reformation loyalty to, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">powers in England before Reformation, <a href="#Page_80">80</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">spiritual and temporal power in conflict, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">position as head of Church, <a href="#Page_83">83</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">rejection of his supremacy, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">imprisoned, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">English acceptance of his supremacy, <a href="#Page_93">93-95</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Constantine’s gift to, <a href="#Page_95">95</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">wars of, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">temporal power of, <a href="#Page_97">97-100</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103-104</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">authority as Peter’s successor, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_99">99-100</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">works against character of, <a href="#Page_101">101-104</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">commission appointed by, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">how deceived, <a href="#Page_105"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">recommendations of commission, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">sermon against, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">object of attacks on, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus’s attitude to, <a href="#Page_189">189-190</a>, <a href="#Page_193">193-195</a>, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus’s satire on, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">refuses to grant Henry’s divorce, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Powell, Edward, theologian, quoted on papal supremacy, <a href="#Page_85">85</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Power, spiritual and temporal, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72-73</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">dialogue on, <a href="#Page_73">73</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_98">98</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">the king’s, <a href="#Page_75">75</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_458" id="Page_458">[458]</a></span><i>Praier and Complaynte of the Ploweman</i>, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Prayers, for Pope, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">of clergy and religious, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Sir Thos. More on, <a href="#Page_307">307</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">daily, <a href="#Page_313">313</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">for the dead, <a href="#Page_399">399</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Preaching at St Paul’s Cross, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">style of against Pope condemned, <a href="#Page_92">92</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">in parish churches, <a href="#Page_281">281</a>, <a href="#Page_283">283</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">more important than mass, <a href="#Page_284">284-285</a></li>
-<li class="indx">“Prick song,” or part music, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_13">13</a></li>
-<li class="indx">“Primer,” the, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223-224</a>, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Printing, responsible for spread of heresy, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">religious works predominate in earliest, <a href="#Page_315">315-316</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Psalter, the, <a href="#Page_223">223-224</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Purgatory, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>, <a href="#Page_387">387</a>, <a href="#Page_399">399</a>, <a href="#Page_405">405</a>, <a href="#Page_437">437</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Pynson, printer, <a href="#Page_298">298</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Reformation, impossibility of writing history of, <a href="#Page_3">3</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">revival of letters not due to, <a href="#Page_7">7-8</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">adverse effect on learning, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">English attitude to Pope prior to, <a href="#Page_78">78-79</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">share of divorce question in, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">similar in England to Luther’s principles, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">meaning, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_279">279</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">share of Wycliffe and Lollards in, <a href="#Page_209">209</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">effect upon church art, <a href="#Page_331">331</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and poverty, <a href="#Page_358">358</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Relics, honour of, <a href="#Page_415">415</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_429">429</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Religious, at universities, <a href="#Page_42">42</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">State interference, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">abuses among, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">reputed quarrels between, <a href="#Page_116">116-117</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">evils in constitutions, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">testimony to moral character, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Mr. Brewer cited on, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Erasmus on, <a href="#Page_202">202</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><a name="Teaching" id="Teaching"></a>Religious teaching, alleged neglect of, <a href="#Page_278">278</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Reformation not directly connected with, <a href="#Page_279">279</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">extent and character, <a href="#Page_280">280</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">nature and effect, <a href="#Page_288">288</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">books used by clergy in, <a href="#Page_309">309</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">religious plays, <a href="#Page_316">316</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Renaissance, definition of, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">in England, <a href="#Page_14"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">earlier than generally supposed, <a href="#Page_15">15</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Restitution, argued, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">a case involving, <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Reuchlin, <a href="#Page_180">180-181</a>, <a href="#Page_184">184</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Reverence of images, <a href="#Page_289">289</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Ridley, Lancelot, commentaries on Scriptures, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_273">273-274</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on devotion to saints, <a href="#Page_422">422-423</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on pilgrimages and images, <a href="#Page_424">424</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Roberts, John, his <i>Mustre of scismatyke bysshops of Rome</i>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Rogers, Mr. Thorold, cited, <a href="#Page_356">356</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_360">360-361</a>, <a href="#Page_364">364</a>, <a href="#Page_403">403</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Rome, classical revival in, <a href="#Page_203">203-206</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">sack of, <a href="#Page_230">230</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">pilgrimages to, <a href="#Page_416">416</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Roper, John, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Roper, Mary and Margaret, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Roy, Friar, <a href="#Page_215">215</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Rule of life, daily, <a href="#Page_286">286-287</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Rules of religious orders, suggested examination, <a href="#Page_129">129</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Sacrament of the Altar, Dr. Richard Smythe on, <a href="#Page_216">216-217</a>, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Hytton on, <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Sacraments, English reformers on, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attack on, <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Sadolet, Cardinal, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_439">439</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Saint-German, Christopher, lawyer, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attitude to Church, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">cited on mortuaries, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on lands in mortmain and benefices, <a href="#Page_54">54-55</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on sanctuary and benefit, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on churchyards, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on clerical duties, <a href="#Page_60"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on need for State interference, <a href="#Page_60"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Purgatory, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on State regulation of religious life, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and of matrimony, <a href="#Page_62">62</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on miracles, <a href="#Page_62"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on other debateable questions, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on tithes, <a href="#Page_63"><i>ibid.</i></a>, <a href="#Page_142">142</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on power of clergy, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on king’s headship, <a href="#Page_65"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on clerical immunity, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on holidays, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">his <i>Salem and Bizance</i>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on position of clergy as individuals, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">controversy with More, <a href="#Page_115">115</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attacks on clergy, <a href="#Page_119">119</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">alleged mercenary spirit among clergy, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on election of abbots, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on constitutions of religious orders, <a href="#Page_129"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on causes of dislike of clergy by laity, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on indulgences, <a href="#Page_435">435</a>, <a href="#Page_440">440</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Saints, reverence of images of, <a href="#Page_289">289</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">amount of honour due to, <a href="#Page_304">304</a>, <a href="#Page_306">306</a>, <a href="#Page_308">308</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">devotion to, <a href="#Page_423">423</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_431">431</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_459" id="Page_459">[459]</a></span><i>Salem and Bizance</i>, Saint-German’s <i>Dyalogue of</i>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_144">144</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Sanctuary, difficulty of the subject, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">a danger to the State, <a href="#Page_55"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">case of John Savage, <a href="#Page_56">56</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Papal Bull granted to Henry VII., <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">the subject examined by Star Chamber, <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Savage, John, his plea of sanctuary, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Scaliger, cited, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Scholars, poor, bequests to, <a href="#Page_396">396</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Screens, excellence of pre-Reformation work, <a href="#Page_12">12</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Scripture, Holy, key of position of English reformers, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">translations of, <a href="#Page_234">234</a>, <a href="#Page_236">236</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">study of advocated by Church, <a href="#Page_244">244</a>, <a href="#Page_248">248</a>, <a href="#Page_275">275</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">See of Rome, supremacy of, <a href="#Page_79">79</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Selby, chantries at, <a href="#Page_411">411</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><a name="Selling" id="Selling"></a>Selling, Prior William, birth and education, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">real name, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">studies at foreign universities, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">takes his degree in theology, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">industrious book collector, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">good work at Christchurch, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">returns to Rome, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">establishes Greek at Christchurch, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">as prior, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, and <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">member of an embassy to the Pope, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">continued interest in literary revival, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Greek translation, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">fate of his library, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">influence, <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Sermo Exhortatorius</i>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Sermons, Church, more important than the Mass, <a href="#Page_283">283</a>, <a href="#Page_284">284-285</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Sharpe, Dr., <a href="#Page_359">359</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Shrines, pilgrimages to, <a href="#Page_416">416</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Simony, clergy charged with, <a href="#Page_146">146</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Slander and libel, jurisdiction pertaining to, <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Smith, Mr. Toulmin, on guilds, <a href="#Page_364">364</a>, <a href="#Page_366">366</a>, <a href="#Page_381">381</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Smythe or Smith, Dr. Richard, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>, <a href="#Page_272">272</a>, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Social conditions before Reformation, <a href="#Page_351">351</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">case of the poor, <a href="#Page_353">353</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Soul’s Garden</i>, the, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Sovereignty of the Pope, <a href="#Page_97">97-100</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103-104</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Spiritual power, temporal derived from, <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Spongia, the, of Erasmus, <a href="#Page_187">187</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Standish, Dr. Henry, on immunity of clergy, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">charged before convocation, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on lesser orders, <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Standish, John, archdeacon, <a href="#Page_234">234</a>, <a href="#Page_248">248</a>, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_270">270</a>, <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li>
-<li class="indx">St. Giorgio, Venice, abbot of, <a href="#Page_105">105</a></li>
-<li class="indx">St. John of Jerusalem, priory of, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-<li class="indx">St. John the Baptist, head of, <a href="#Page_430">430</a></li>
-<li class="indx">St. Paul’s Cross, preaching at, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">testaments burnt at, <a href="#Page_245">245</a>, <a href="#Page_256">256</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">St. Peter, Catholic succession from, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">vicarship, <a href="#Page_99">99-100</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Star chamber, <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-<li class="indx">State, jurisdiction of, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">right of interference in temporalities, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60-64</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">legislates concerning mortuaries, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">limits to State interference, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">power claimed for, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60-64</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">punishment by for spiritual offences, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">protecting power of, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">destruction of guilds by, <a href="#Page_380">380-381</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Stokesley, William, <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Stubbs, Bishop, <a href="#Page_354">354</a>, <a href="#Page_356">356</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Students, distress of at university, <a href="#Page_46">46</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Sturmius, John, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Suffolk, chantries in, <a href="#Page_407">407</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Sunday, legal status of, <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Superstition, in devotion, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_297">297</a>, <a href="#Page_302">302</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">condemned, <a href="#Page_314">314</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Supplication of Beggars</i>, the, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_221">221</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Surtees Society, publications, <a href="#Page_319">319</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Tailors, Guild of, <a href="#Page_371">371</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Taverns, frequented by clergy, <a href="#Page_151">151</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Teaching, religious. <i>See</i> <a href="#Teaching">Religious teaching</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Temporalities, right of State interference in, <a href="#Page_53">53</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">difference between and spiritual jurisdiction, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">clearly defined in Spain, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Temporal power, derived from spiritual, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">of the Pope, <a href="#Page_97">97-100</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103-104</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Theologians, Erasmus’s satire on, <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Tithes, the lay and ecclesiastical cases, <a href="#Page_63">63-64</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Saint-German quoted on, <a href="#Page_142">142</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Torkington, Sir Richard, rector of Mulbarton, <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Towneley Mysteries</i>, the, <a href="#Page_319">319</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Tradition and English Reformers, <a href="#Page_231">231</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Translations, of Holy Scripture, <a href="#Page_236">236</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Trentals, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_460" id="Page_460">[460]</a></span>Trevelyan, George Macaulay, cited, <a href="#Page_240">240</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Trinity, feast of at Compostella, <a href="#Page_217">217</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Trojans, opponents of Greek study, <a href="#Page_35">35</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Tunstall, Bishop, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="#Page_198">198-199</a>, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_255">255</a>, <a href="#Page_256">256</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Tyll. <i>See</i> <a href="#Selling">Selling</a></li>
-<li class="indx"><a name="Tyndale" id="Tyndale"></a>Tyndale, More’s confutation of, <a href="#Page_87">87-88</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>, <a href="#Page_136">136</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">charges clergy with immorality, <a href="#Page_145">145</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">use of word congregation for church, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attribution of <i>Enconium Moriæ</i> to More, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <i>note</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">books prohibited, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">English Testament, <a href="#Page_220">220</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and other books, <a href="#Page_220">220-223</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">advocates liberty, <a href="#Page_228">228</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">influence, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">English Testament condemned, <a href="#Page_236">236</a>, <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_251">251</a>, <a href="#Page_255">255</a> <i>et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_276">276</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">demand for his works, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">birth and early life, <a href="#Page_252">252</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">joins Luther, <a href="#Page_252">252</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Luther’s share in his Testament, <a href="#Page_252">252</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">his revised Testament, <a href="#Page_260">260</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">More’s examination of his Testament, <a href="#Page_260">260-270</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on indulgences, <a href="#Page_437">437</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Unity of pre-Reformation belief, <a href="#Page_324">324</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Universities, effect of Reformation on, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">monastic students at, <a href="#Page_42">42</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">poverty of students at after Reformation, <a href="#Page_46">46</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Urban III., Pope, sanctuary grant of, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Urbanus Regius, cited, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Urswick, Christopher, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Valla, Laurence, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Veneration of relics, <a href="#Page_415">415</a>, <a href="#Page_429">429</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">of saints, <a href="#Page_431">431-432</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Venetian, a, cited on attitude of ecclesiastics to learning, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on religious condition of the English, <a href="#Page_324">324</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">on beauty of English churches, <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Venice, Aldine press at, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Venn, J., historian of Gonville College, quoted, <a href="#Page_43">43-45</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Vicarages, appropriations of cancelled, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Vives, Ludovico, scholar, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Von Hutten, Ulrich, tract on Constantine’s donation to the Pope, <a href="#Page_96">96</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">attacks on Erasmus, <a href="#Page_186">186</a> <i>et seq.</i></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Warham, Archbishop, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, and <i>note</i>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>, <a href="#Page_162">162</a>, <a href="#Page_168">168</a>, <a href="#Page_215">215</a>, <a href="#Page_258">258</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Waylande, John, printer, <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Welsh, vernacular devotional books for, <a href="#Page_311">311</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Wesselius, <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Westacre, Augustinian priory of, <a href="#Page_43">43</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Westminster, the abbot of, <a href="#Page_58">58-59</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">pardon purchased for, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">doles at, <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Wey, William, itineraries of, <a href="#Page_416">416</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Whitford, Richard, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232-233</a>, <a href="#Page_283">283</a>, <a href="#Page_305">305</a>, <a href="#Page_312">312</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Wills, ecclesiastical administration of, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">pre-Reformation, <a href="#Page_387">387</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">bequests for pilgrimages, <a href="#Page_416">416</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Winchcombe, abbot of, <a href="#Page_67">67</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Winchester, wall paintings of Lady Chapel at, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">fair at, <a href="#Page_379">379</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Wolffgang, printer, <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Wolsey, Cardinal, attitude to revival of learning, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">hears the Savage sanctuary case, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">upholds rights of Crown, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">opposes temporal punishments of clergy, <a href="#Page_68"><i>ibid.</i></a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">present at burning of books, <a href="#Page_256">256</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Worcester, Tiptoft, Earl of, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Worcester, William, antiquary, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Work, definite, lack of among clergy, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx"><i>Worke entytled of the olde God and the new</i>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, and <i>note</i></li>
-<li class="indx">Wycliffe, share in Reformation, <a href="#Page_209">209</a> <i>et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">books prohibited, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">origin of Wycliffite Scriptures, <a href="#Page_237">237</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247</a></li>
-<li class="indx">Wyer, Robert, printer, <a href="#Page_285">285</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Yorkshire, chantries in, <a href="#Page_411">411</a></li>
-<li class="ifrst">Zwingle, books of prohibited, <a href="#Page_213">213-214</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class="titlepage">Printed by <span class="smcap">Ballantyne, Hanson &amp; Co.</span>
-Edinburgh &amp; London</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="ad-section">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1_1" id="Page_1_1">[1]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro u"><i>A Popular Edition.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">In One Volume, Demy 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price 10s. 6d. Net, pp. 528.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">A New Revised and Corrected Edition of</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">FRANCIS AIDAN GASQUET’S</p>
-
-<p class="title">Henry the Eighth <span class="smaller">and the</span><br />
-English Monasteries.</p>
-
-<p class="center">(Of which Six Editions at 24s. have already been sold.)</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center">Contents.</p>
-
-<table summary="">
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr smaller">CHAP.</td><td></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">I.</td><td>The Dawn of Difficulties.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">II.</td><td>Cardinal Wolsey and the Monasteries.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">III.</td><td>The Holy Maid of Kent.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IV.</td><td>The Friars Observant and the Carthusians.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">V.</td><td>The Visitation of Monasteries in 1535-36.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VI.</td><td>The Parliament of 1536 and the suppression of the Lesser Monasteries.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VII.</td><td>The “Comperta Monastica” and other charges against the Monks.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VIII.</td><td>Thomas Cromwell, the King’s Vicar-General.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IX.</td><td>The chief accusers of the Monks&mdash;Layton, Legh, Ap Rice, and London.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">X.</td><td>The Dissolution of the Lesser Monasteries.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XI.</td><td>The Rising in Lincolnshire.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XII.</td><td>The Pilgrimage of Grace.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIII.</td><td>The Second Northern Rising.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIV.</td><td>Dissolution by Attainder.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XV.</td><td>The Suppression of Convents.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVI.</td><td>Fall of the Friars.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVII.</td><td>Progress of the General Suppression.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVIII.</td><td>The Three Benedictine Abbots.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIX.</td><td>The Monastic Spoils.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XX.</td><td>The Spending of the Spoils.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXI.</td><td>The Ejected Monks and their Pensions.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXII.</td><td>Some Results of the Suppression.</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Appendix:</span> Accounts of the Augmentation Office, &amp;c.
-<span class="smcap">General Index.</span></p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i><b>Some Press Notices.</b></i></p>
-
-<p><b>Dublin Review.</b>&mdash;“The recognised authority on the subject upon which it treats.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Tablet.</b>&mdash;“Produced in excellent style, we welcome and recommend this new edition
-of an old work by such a pioneer of historical truth as Dr. Gasquet with renewed confidence,
-for the next best thing to a new work from such a hand is a carefully revised and
-cheaper edition of an old one.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Church Times.</b>&mdash;“Dr. Gasquet’s work has won for itself so secure a position that
-it is superfluous to point out its merits afresh, but the author in the preface to the new
-edition calls attention to certain alterations necessitated by the publication by Dr. James
-Gairdner of the Calendar of Papers of the Reign of Henry VIII. These documents have
-now been arranged in volumes, consequently a very considerable re-arrangement of
-references has been rendered necessary, in order to facilitate the consultation of the
-original documents. This popular edition will be greatly appreciated by the students
-of this period of England’s ecclesiastical history.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Catholic Book Notes.</b>&mdash;“A standard authority, if not a classic … we congratulate
-author and publisher on its production in one handsome volume. We anticipate a large
-sale … and would especially recommend it as a suitable volume for prizes in the higher
-classes of our schools.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2_1" id="Page_2_1">[2]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center u intro"><i>New Work on English Monastic History.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">In Two Volumes, Demy 8vo, Cloth, price 21s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title"><span class="smaller">The</span><br />
-English Black Monks of St. Benedict</p>
-
-<p class="center intro">A Sketch of their history from the coming of St. Augustine
-to the Present Day.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By the Rev. ETHELRED L. TAUNTON.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">Contents.</p>
-
-<table summary="">
- <tr>
- <td colspan="2" class="tdc"><i>VOLUME THE FIRST.</i></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr smaller">CHAP.</td><td></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">I.</td><td>The Coming of the Monks.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">II.</td><td>The Norman Lanfranc.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">III.</td><td>The Benedictine Constitution.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IV.</td><td>The Monk in the World.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">V.</td><td>The Monk in his Monastery.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VI.</td><td>Women under the Rule.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VII.</td><td>Chronicles of the Congregation. I.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VIII.</td><td>The Downfall.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IX.</td><td>John Fecknam, Abbot.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">X.</td><td>The State of English Catholics, 1559-1601.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td colspan="2"><span class="smcap">Appendix:</span> The Consuetudinary of St. Augustine’s, Canterbury.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td colspan="2" class="tdc"><i>VOLUME THE SECOND.</i></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr smaller">CHAP.</td><td></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XI.</td><td>The Benedictine Mission.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XII.</td><td>Douai and Dieuleward.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIII.</td><td>The Renewal of the English Congregation.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIV.</td><td>Dom Leander and his Mission.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XV.</td><td>Chronicles of the Congregation. II.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVI.</td><td>St. Gregory’s Monastery.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVII.</td><td>St. Lawrence’s Monastery.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVIII.</td><td>St. Edmund’s Monastery.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIX.</td><td>St. Malo, Lambspring, and Cambrai.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XX.</td><td>Other Benedictine Houses. Denizen and Alien.</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center"><i><b>Some Press Notices.</b></i></p>
-
-<p><b>Saturday Review.</b>&mdash;“On the whole, it would be difficult within the limits that the author has
-set for himself to write a more interesting book. We recommend, more especially to the general
-reader, the three chapters on the life of a monk in the world and in his monastery, and that describing
-the life of women under the rule.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Literature.</b>&mdash;“We are struck with the skill with which he has mastered the details of a somewhat
-complicated story, and the clear way he has set it down for the benefit of his readers.”</p>
-
-<p><b>English Historical Review.</b>&mdash;“Here, for the first time, the story of the Benedictine mission of
-1603 is fully told in English; in this story the central figure is Dom Augustine Baker, the true author
-of the ‘Apostolatus,’ who, being professed by the aged Buckley, the last survivor of Westminster,
-claimed the inheritance of the rights and privileges of the original congregation, and the power, by
-professing others, to hand on the inheritance to posterity. The story of the English Benedictine congregation
-in its settlements abroad, and finally in its settlements at home, is very skilfully told, in a
-pleasant, popular style.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Literary World.</b>&mdash;“The story of the English Benedictines is one that will be read with sympathy
-and even admiration by the instructed Protestant. Curiously enough the history of the Order&mdash;not
-the exact word, but no better offers&mdash;has a striking affinity with the principles of Congregationalism.
-The strength of the Order was that it consisted of independent homes, and was not like most fraternities,
-a great whole subdivided into communities. Upon this Father Taunton again and again insists,
-and his view is indisputable. Of the two volumes before us the first will be more generally interesting
-to Englishmen, but it may be well to prepare our readers for its perusal by saying that the almost
-patronising style of the beginning is not long continued. We feared at first that the author was going
-to talk down to us in pity for our ignorance, and were accordingly prepared to resent his impertinence.
-A very few pages onward and we yielded ourselves willingly to his pleasant instruction.… A good
-book, which we can heartily recommend to the open-minded reader.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Liverpool Post.</b>&mdash;“Two large and well-printed volumes contain what the writer modestly
-describes as a ‘sketch’ of the Benedictine Order in England from the coming of Augustine in the sixth
-century up to the present time. The work is something more than a theological history. It is in one
-aspect a history of English society during fifteen hundred years, for the Benedictines were ever closely
-in touch with the people among whom they laboured. Mr. Taunton is not an ecclesiastical zealot,
-and he writes with admirable impartiality, as witness his outspoken condemnation of the intrigues of
-Rome and the machinations of the Jesuits in England during the reigns of Elizabeth and James.
-Hence his opinions on such a question as the social consequences to England of the closing of the
-monasteries is deserving of greater weight.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Glasgow Herald.</b>&mdash;“In these two portly volumes Mr. Taunton furnishes us with a very full
-history of the English Benedictines, describing it as ‘a tribute of the affection and esteem which I,
-an outsider, have for the English monks.’ There is doubtless room for such a work, and it must be
-said that Mr. Taunton has brought to his task abundant enthusiasm and much painstaking research.
-… We cordially welcome it for its accumulation of valuable historical materials, and for the author’s
-industry we have nothing but praise.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3_1" id="Page_3_1">[3]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="intro center"><i>Also by F. A. GASQUET, D. D.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">In One Volume, Demy 8vo, 408 Pages, Cloth, price 12s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Old English Bible, <span class="smaller">and other Essays.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>Contents.</i></p>
-
-<table summary="">
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr smaller">CHAP.</td><td></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">I.</td><td>Notes on Mediæval Monastic Libraries.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">II.</td><td>The Monastic Scriptorium.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">III.</td><td>A Forgotten English Preacher.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IV.</td><td>The Pre-Reformation English Bible(1).</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">V.</td><td>The Pre-Reformation English Bible(2).</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VI.</td><td>Religious Instruction in England during the Fourteenth and Fifteenth Centuries.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VII.</td><td>A Royal Christmas in the Fifteenth Century.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VIII.</td><td>The Canterbury Claustral School in the Fifteenth Century.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IX.</td><td>The Note-books of William Worcester, a Fifteenth-Century Antiquary.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">X.</td><td>Hampshire Recusants. With a complete Index.</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center"><i><b>Some Press Notices.</b></i></p>
-
-<p><b>Times.</b>&mdash;“Full of the learning and research which Dr. Gasquet has made so peculiarly
-his own.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Athenæum.</b>&mdash;“Whatever Dr. Gasquet writes is of interest, and thanks are due to
-him for these essays.… Full of rare information, and real contributions to history.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="intro center"><i>By the late MISS MANNING.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">In Crown 8vo, with an Introduction by the Rev. <span class="smcap">W. H. Hutton, B.D.</span>,
-and Twenty-five Illustrations by <span class="smcap">John Jellicoe</span> and <span class="smcap">Herbert
-Railton</span>, price 6s. Cloth Elegant, Gilt Top.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Household of Sir Thos. More.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><i><b>Some Press Notices.</b></i></p>
-
-<p><b>Spectator.</b>&mdash;“A delightful book.… Twenty-five illustrations by John Jellicoe and
-Herbert Railton show off the book to the best advantage.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Graphic.</b>&mdash;“A picture, not merely of great charm, but of infinite value in helping the
-many to understand a famous Englishman and the times in which he lived.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Literary World.</b>&mdash;“A charming reprint.… Every feature of the pictorial work is
-in keeping with the spirit of the whole.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Scotsman.</b>&mdash;“This clever work of the historical imagination has gone through several
-editions, and is one of the most successful artistic creations of its kind.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Glasgow Herald.</b>&mdash;“An extremely beautiful reprint of the late Miss Manning’s
-quaint and charming work.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Sketch.</b>&mdash;“In the front rank of the gift-books of the season is this beautiful and very
-cleverly illustrated reprint of a work which has lasting claims to popularity.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Magazine of Art.</b>&mdash;“The grace and beauty of the late Miss Manning’s charming
-work, ‘The Household of Sir Thomas More,’ has been greatly enhanced by the new
-edition now put forth by Mr. John C. Nimmo.… This remarkable work is not to be
-read without keen delight.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Academy.</b>&mdash;“It is illustrated cleverly and prettily, and tastefully bound, so as to
-make an attractive gift-book.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Liverpool Post.</b>&mdash;“We welcome the tasteful reprint with its artistic illustrations by
-John Jellicoe and Herbert Railton, and its helpful introduction by the Rev. W. H.
-Hutton.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4_1" id="Page_4_1">[4]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i>NEW ILLUSTRATED EDITION IN SIXTEEN VOLUMES.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center" >Extra Crown 8vo, Brown Cloth, Gilt Top, price 5s. per Volume Net; also in
-Special Binding, Ruby Cloth, Flat Back, Gilt Top, price £4 Net,
-the Set of 16 Vols. only.</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE REV. S. BARING-GOULD’S</p>
-
-<p class="title">Lives of the Saints.</p>
-
-<p class="center intro">With a Calendar for
-Every Day in the Year.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging">New Edition, Revised, with Introduction and Additional Lives of English Martyrs,
-Cornish and Welsh Saints, and Full Indices to the Entire Work. Illustrated by
-over 400 Engravings.</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>Contents of the Volumes.</i></p>
-
-<ul>
- <li class="hanging">JANUARY: 170 Biographies, with 45 Illustrations (Vol. 1).</li>
- <li class="hanging">FEBRUARY: 174 Biographies, with 29 Illustrations (Vol. 2).</li>
- <li class="hanging">MARCH: 187 Biographies, with 42 Illustrations (Vol. 3).</li>
- <li class="hanging">APRIL: 141 Biographies, with 24 Illustrations (Vol. 4).</li>
- <li class="hanging">MAY: 153 Biographies, with 26 Illustrations (Vol. 5).</li>
- <li class="hanging">JUNE: 200 Biographies, with 39 Illustrations (Vol. 6).</li>
- <li class="hanging">JULY: 223 Biographies, with 34 Illustrations (Vols. 7 and 8).</li>
- <li class="hanging">AUGUST: 215 Biographies, with 39 Illustrations (Vol. 9).</li>
- <li class="hanging">SEPTEMBER: 210 Biographies, with 34 Illustrations (Vol. 10).</li>
- <li class="hanging">OCTOBER: 220 Biographies, with 28 Illustrations (Vols. 11 and 12).</li>
- <li class="hanging">NOVEMBER: 185 Biographies, with 47 Illustrations (Vols. 13 and 14).</li>
- <li class="hanging">DECEMBER: 146 Biographies, with 22 Illustrations (Vol. 15).</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class="center">APPENDIX VOLUME.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Additional Biographies of English Martyrs, Cornish and Welsh Saints, Genealogies of
-Saintly Families, and two Indices to the entire work (Vol. 16).</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i><b>Some Press Notices.</b></i></p>
-
-<p><b>Daily Chronicle.</b>&mdash;“When it is remembered that in these two volumes (January and February)
-the biographies of more than four hundred saints are to be found, and that in every case the
-authorities from which they are derived are set forth; that in the Introduction the reader is furnished
-with a succinct account of the literature of the subject which is the best <i>résumé</i> that we have in
-English; that errors in the previous edition are not left uncorrected&mdash;it will be seen how much is to
-be expected from this new issue of Mr. Baring-Gould’s wonderful work, and how much will be found
-in the sixteen volumes which will be required to complete it.… No student of history&mdash;to go no
-further&mdash;can dispense with such a valuable book of reference. There is nothing like it in our
-language.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Standard.</b>&mdash;“The earlier volumes of the new edition are before us, and even a cursory examination
-is enough to show that the work has been thoroughly revised.… The book is of real value,
-since it is written with scholarly care, imaginative vision, and a happy union of charity and courage.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Guardian.</b>&mdash;“Whoever reads the more important lives in the sixteen volumes of which this new
-edition is to consist, will be introduced to a region of which historians for the most part tell him little,
-and yet one that throws constant light upon some of the obscurest points of ordinary histories. For
-this, and for the pleasure and profit thence derived, he will have to thank Mr. Baring-Gould.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Scotsman.</b>&mdash;“Mr. Baring-Gould, Anglican priest though he be, fulfils the promise of his
-original edition in so far as he does not obtrude either prejudice or sectarianism into his record of
-these Saints.”</p>
-
-<p><b>British Review and National Observer.</b>&mdash;“The new edition of Mr. Baring-Gould’s
-familiar work may well be called monumental, both on account of its size, and the variety and
-completeness of the information to be found in it.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Notes and Queries.</b>&mdash;“It is impossible to mention the various sources whence have been
-drawn the illustrations, which will render this work, to those to whom the subject appeals, the most
-acceptable, as it is certainly the handsomest, of existing editions.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Weekly Sun.</b>&mdash;“We unhesitatingly commend it as well to the lover of mediævalism as the
-student who must have at hand encyclopædic volumes of reference. No library that aims at being
-comprehensive can afford to be without it. No student of ecclesiastical and cathedral antiquities
-can neglect it if he wishes to make a successful study of his particular subject.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Christian World.</b>&mdash;“The new edition is tastefully got up, and is a worthy setting of a great
-literary enterprise. The ‘Lives of the Saints’ is a human story of unfading interest.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="ad-section">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1_2" id="Page_1_2">[1]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="tdr smaller">London: 14 King William Street, Strand</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage intro">John C. Nimmo’s</p>
-
-<p class="center larger">New &amp; Recent Publications</p>
-
-<p class="center intro">For the Autumn of 1899</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2_2" id="Page_2_2">[2]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i><b>New Work by the Rev. F. A. GASQUET, D.D., O.S.B.</b></i></p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Important to Students of the Reformation Period.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">In One Volume, Demy 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price 12s. 6d. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Eve of the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging">Studies in the Religious Life and Thought of the English People in
-the Period preceding the Rejection of the Roman Jurisdiction by
-Henry VIII. By <span class="smcap">Francis Aidan Gasquet</span>, D.D., O.S.B., Author
-of “Henry VIII. and the English Monasteries,” “The Old English
-Bible, and other Essays,” &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Note.</span>&mdash;This is not a controversial work, but a study chiefly of the literature,
-&amp;c., of the period in order to see what people were doing, saying, and
-thinking about before the change of religion. As touching upon rather new
-ground, and at the same time widening the field of view in the Reformation
-question, it should be of great interest at the present moment.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i><b>New Illustrated Work on Palestine.</b></i></p>
-
-<p class="center">In One Volume, Demy 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with 16 Illustrations reproduced in
-Colours in facsimile of the Original Paintings by the Author, price 12s. 6d. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">Two Years in Palestine and Syria.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By MARGARET THOMAS</span>,</p>
-
-<p class="center">Author of<br />
-“A Scamper through Spain and Tangier,” “A Hero of the Workshop,” &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class="center">With 16 Illustrations reproduced in Colours in facsimile of the Original
-Paintings by the Author.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Note.</span>&mdash;This book is being looked forward to with great interest by
-travellers, so many people have in one out-of-the-way corner or another
-of Europe, Asia, Africa, and Australia met this versatile lady. A Royal
-Academy Silver Medallist, she has had many pictures and pieces of sculpture
-exhibited in the Royal Academy. This (her new book) will be illustrated
-with sixteen reproductions in colours of her oil paintings. The subjects of
-these were painted on the spot, and the reproductions are by a new process
-not as yet employed for book illustration.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3_2" id="Page_3_2">[3]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center"><i>An Artist in Spain.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging">In One Volume, Super Royal 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with Photogravure
-Portrait, after the Painting by <span class="smcap">Jan Veth</span>, and 39 Illustrations, price
-12s. 6d. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">Spain: <span class="smaller">The Story of a Journey.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By JOZEF ISRAËLS.</span></p>
-
-<p class="hanging">With a Portrait in Photogravure, and 39 reproductions of Sketches
-by the Author. Translated from the Dutch by <span class="smcap">Alexander
-Teixeira de Mattos</span>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Note.</span>&mdash;The author and illustrator of this book (Jozef Israëls) has
-long been acknowledged the most popular painter of the day, in this,
-the best sense, that his work claims the admiration not only of the
-critics, the collectors, and the <i>dilettanti</i>, but also of those uncultured
-people who, understanding nothing of painting, having no care for
-artisticity or virtuosity, cannot fail to be penetrated by the poetry that
-fills each of the veteran’s canvases.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center"><b><i>A History of Steeple-Chasing.</i></b></p>
-
-<p class="hanging">In Super Royal 8vo, uniform with “The Quorn Hunt and its Masters,”
-<span class="smcap">Vyner’s</span> “Notitia Venatica,” and <span class="smcap">Radcliffe’s</span> “Noble Science of
-Fox-Hunting.” With 12 Illustrations, chiefly drawn by <span class="smcap">Henry Alken</span>,
-and all coloured by hand, also 16 Head and Tail Pieces, drawn by
-<span class="smcap">Henry Alken</span> and others. Cloth, Gilt Top, price 21s. net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">A History of Steeple-Chasing.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By WILLIAM C. A. BLEW, M.A.</span>,</p>
-
-<p class="center smaller">Author of “The Quorn Hunt and its Masters,”
-Editor of <span class="smcap">Vyner’s</span> “Notitia Venatica,” and <span class="smcap">Radcliffe’s</span> “Noble Science
-of Fox-Hunting.”</p>
-
-<p class="hanging">With 12 Illustrations, chiefly drawn by <span class="smcap">Henry Alken</span>, and all
-coloured by hand, also 16 Head and Tail Pieces, drawn by
-<span class="smcap">Henry Alken</span> and others.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4_2" id="Page_4_2">[4]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center"><b><i>New Volume, being the Fifth of the Works of the late
-Miss Manning</i>,</b></p>
-
-<p class="center">Author of “Mary Powell,” &amp;c. &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class="center">In Crown 8vo, with Illustrations by <span class="smcap">John Jellicoe</span> and <span class="smcap">Herbert Railton</span>,
-price 6s., Cloth Elegant, Gilt Top.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Colloquies of Edward Osborne.<br />
-<span class="smaller">Citizen and Cloth-Worker of London.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">With 10 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">John Jellicoe.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>Uniform in Size and Price, by the same Author.</i></p>
-
-<p class="title"><span class="smaller">The Household of Sir Thos. More.</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><span class="smaller">Cherry and Violet. A Tale of the Great Plague.</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><span class="smaller">The Maiden and Married Life of Mary Powell
-<span class="smaller">(AFTERWARDS MISTRESS MILTON);</span></span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><span class="smaller">And the Sequel thereto, Deborah’s Diary.</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><span class="smaller">The Old Chelsea Bun-Shop. A Tale of the Last Century.</span></p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i><b>Some Press Notices.</b></i></p>
-
-<p><b>Athenæum.</b>&mdash;“The late Miss Manning’s delicate and fanciful little cameos of
-historical romance possess a flavour of their own.… The numerous Illustrations by
-Mr. Jellicoe and Mr. Railton are particularly happy.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Public Opinion.</b>&mdash;“It is an example of a pure and beautiful style of literature.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Spectator.</b>&mdash;“A delightful book.… Twenty-five illustrations by John Jellicoe and
-Herbert Railton show off the book to the best advantage.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Graphic.</b>&mdash;“A picture, not merely of great charm, but of infinite value in helping
-the many to understand a famous Englishman and the times in which he lived.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Literary World.</b>&mdash;“A charming reprint.… Every feature of the pictorial work is
-in keeping with the spirit of the whole.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Scotsman.</b>&mdash;“This clever work of the historical imagination has gone through several
-editions, and is one of the most successful artistic creations of its kind.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Glasgow Herald.</b>&mdash;“An extremely beautiful reprint of the late Miss Manning’s
-quaint and charming work.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Sketch.</b>&mdash;“In the front rank of the gift-books of the season is this beautiful and very
-cleverly illustrated reprint of a work which has lasting claims to popularity.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Magazine of Art.</b>&mdash;“The grace and beauty of the late Miss Manning’s charming
-work, ‘The Household of Sir Thomas More,’ has been greatly enhanced by the new
-edition now put forth by Mr. John C. Nimmo.… This remarkable work is not to be
-read without keen delight.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Academy.</b>&mdash;“It is illustrated cleverly and prettily, and tastefully bound, so as to
-make an attractive gift-book.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5_2" id="Page_5_2">[5]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center"><b><i>A Cheaper Edition.</i></b></p>
-
-<p class="center">In Two Volumes, Extra Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with Portrait and
-32 Illustrations from Contemporary Sources, price 12s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Reminiscences and Recollections
-of Captain Gronow.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging">Being Anecdotes of the Camp, Court, Clubs, and Society, 1810-1860. With
-Portrait and 32 Illustrations from Contemporary Sources by <span class="smcap">Joseph
-Grego</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center smaller">⁂ This is a remarkably cheap edition of this favourite and popular book.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center">In One Volume, Demy 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with 6 Photogravure Portraits and
-30 other Illustrations from Contemporary Sources, price 7s. 6d. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">Words on Wellington.<br />
-<span class="smaller">The Duke&mdash;Waterloo&mdash;The Ball.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By Sir WILLIAM FRASER, Baronet</span>,<br />
-<span class="smaller">M.A., Christ Church, Oxford.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">With 6 Photogravure Portraits, and 30 other Illustrations from
-Contemporary Sources.</p>
-
-<p>⁂ This book was published in 1889, and the whole of the edition printed was
-immediately absorbed. The present new edition is illustrated with Photogravure
-Portraits and other illustrations reproduced especially for this edition from rare
-and contemporary engravings selected by Mr. Joseph Grego.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center"><i>New Volume of Poems by Violet Fane.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging">One Volume, Small 4to, printed on Arnold’s Hand-Made Paper, and bound in Half-Calf,
-Gilt Top. Two hundred and sixty copies printed for England and America
-on Arnold’s Hand-Made Paper, each numbered, type distributed, price 10s. 6d.
-net. Uniform with previous volumes by the same author, viz., “Poems” and
-“Under Cross and Crescent.”</p>
-
-<p class="title">Betwixt Two Seas. <span class="smaller">Poems and Ballads.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By VIOLET FANE.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">Written at Constantinople and Therapia.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6_2" id="Page_6_2">[6]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i>New Library Edition of</i><br />
-<i>STEELE AND ADDISON’S “SPECTATOR.”</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">In Eight Volumes, Extra Crown 8vo, with Original Engraved Portraits and Vignettes,
-Cloth, price 7s. Net per Volume. Sold only in Sets, £2, 16s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Spectator.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Edited with Introduction and Notes</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By GEORGE A. AITKEN</span>,<br />
-<span class="smaller">Author of “The Life of Richard Steele,” &amp;c.</span></p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>From the Editor’s Preface.</i></p>
-
-<p>“The present edition of the ‘Spectator’ has been printed from a copy of the
-original collected and revised edition published in 1712-15, with the exception that
-modern rules of spelling have been followed. The principal variations between the
-text as corrected by the authors and the original version in the folio numbers have
-at the same time been indicated in the notes; it has not been thought necessary to
-point out slight differences of no importance. In the notes I have aimed at the
-greatest conciseness compatible with the satisfactory explanation of the less obvious
-allusions to literary or social matters. I have acknowledged my principal
-obligations to more recent editors, but in some cases notes have been handed down
-from one editor to another, and cannot be traced to their original author. Many of
-the older notes, moreover, were obsolete, or needed correction in the light of subsequent
-knowledge. I have endeavoured to preserve what is of value, without burdening
-the pages with the contradictions and inaccuracies which are inevitable in a <i>variorum</i>
-edition.”</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>Some Press Notices.</i></p>
-
-<p><b>Pall Mall Gazette.</b>&mdash;“Undoubtedly the best library reprint of this famous periodical that has
-been published.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Daily News.</b>&mdash;“If handsome print, paper, and binding, together with careful annotation, have
-attractions in the eyes of lovers of standard books, there ought to be a good demand for this new
-edition.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Scotsman.</b>&mdash;“An edition in which it is a pleasure to read, and one which would adorn any
-library.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Notes and Queries.</b>&mdash;“We congratulate the publisher and the editor on the termination of a
-useful task, and we commend to the public this eminently desirable edition of our English masterpiece&mdash;the
-most attractive and serviceable yet printed.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Birmingham Post.</b>&mdash;“An edition of the ‘Spectator’ which, as a book for the library, has no
-equal, whether we consider the stately and appropriate form, the typographical excellence, or the
-erudite and finished editing. Added to these is the crowning grace of a full and complete index.
-It is a luxury to read the early eighteenth century classic in such an edition as this.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Glasgow Herald.</b>&mdash;“All that the most fastidious lover of books could desire. Its size&mdash;extra
-crown octavo&mdash;is stately, without being cumbersome. The buckram cloth binding is neat, substantial,
-and serviceable&mdash;exactly what is required for a library of which the contents are intended for use as
-well as for show. The notes supplied by Mr. George A. Aitken, as might be expected from his
-exceptional acquaintance with the period, enable the reader to understand and appreciate the numerous
-allusions to literary and social matters which occur in most of the papers.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7_2" id="Page_7_2">[7]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i>NEW ILLUSTRATED EDITION IN SIXTEEN VOLUMES.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">Extra Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price 5s. per Volume Net. Also in Ruby Coloured
-Cloth. Gilt Top, Flat Back, Elegant, Sold in Sets only, price £4 Net.</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE REV. S. BARING-GOULD’S</p>
-
-<p class="title">Lives of the Saints.</p>
-
-<p class="title"><span class="smaller">With a Calendar for
-Every Day in the Year.</span></p>
-
-<p class="hanging">New Edition, Revised, with Introduction and Additional Lives of English Martyrs
-Cornish and Welsh Saints, and Full Indices to the Entire Work. Illustrated by
-over 400 Engravings.</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>Contents of the Volumes.</i></p>
-
-<ul>
- <li class="hanging">JANUARY: 170 Biographies, with 45 Illustrations (Vol. 1).</li>
- <li class="hanging">FEBRUARY: 174 Biographies, with 29 Illustrations (Vol. 2).</li>
- <li class="hanging">MARCH: 187 Biographies, with 42 Illustrations (Vol. 3).</li>
- <li class="hanging">APRIL: 141 Biographies, with 24 Illustrations (Vol. 4).</li>
- <li class="hanging">MAY: 153 Biographies, with 26 Illustrations (Vol. 5).</li>
- <li class="hanging">JUNE: 200 Biographies, with 39 Illustrations (Vol. 6).</li>
- <li class="hanging">JULY: 223 Biographies, with 34 Illustrations (Vols. 7 and 8).</li>
- <li class="hanging">AUGUST: 215 Biographies, with 39 Illustrations (Vol. 9).</li>
- <li class="hanging">SEPTEMBER: 210 Biographies, with 34 Illustrations (Vol. 10).</li>
- <li class="hanging">OCTOBER: 220 Biographies, with 28 Illustrations (Vols. 11 and 12).</li>
- <li class="hanging">NOVEMBER: 185 Biographies, with 47 Illustrations (Vols. 13 and 14).</li>
- <li class="hanging">DECEMBER: 146 Biographies, with 22 Illustrations (Vol. 15).</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class="center">APPENDIX VOLUME.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Additional Biographies of English Martyrs, Cornish and Welsh Saints, Genealogies of
-Saintly Families, and two Indices to the entire work (Vol. 16).</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>Some Press Notices.</i></p>
-
-<p><b>Daily Chronicle.</b>&mdash;“When it is remembered that in these two volumes (January and February)
-the biographies of more than four hundred saints are to be found, and that in every case the
-authorities from which they are derived are set forth; that in the Introduction the reader is furnished
-with a succinct account of the literature of the subject which is the best <i>résumé</i> that we have in
-English; that errors in the previous edition are not left uncorrected&mdash;it will be seen how much is to
-be expected from this new issue of Mr. Baring-Gould’s wonderful work, and how much will be found
-in the sixteen volumes which will be required to complete it.… No student of history&mdash;to go no
-further&mdash;can dispense with such a valuable book of reference. There is nothing like it in our
-language.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Standard.</b>&mdash;“The earlier volumes of the new edition are before us, and even a cursory examination
-is enough to show that the work has been thoroughly revised.… The book is of real value,
-since it is written with scholarly care, imaginative vision, and a happy union of charity and courage.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Guardian.</b>&mdash;“Whoever reads the more important lives in the sixteen volumes of which this new
-edition is to consist, will be introduced to a region of which historians for the most part tell him little,
-and yet one that throws constant light upon some of the obscurest points of ordinary histories. For
-this, and for the pleasure and profit thence derived, he will have to thank Mr. Baring-Gould.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Scotsman.</b>&mdash;“Mr. Baring-Gould, Anglican priest though he be, fulfils the promise of his
-original edition in so far as he does not obtrude either prejudice or sectarianism into his record of
-these Saints.”</p>
-
-<p><b>British Review and National Observer.</b>&mdash;“The new edition of Mr. Baring-Gould’s
-familiar work may well be called monumental, both on account of its size, and the variety and
-completeness of the information to be found in it.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Notes and Queries.</b>&mdash;“It is impossible to mention the various sources whence have been
-drawn the illustrations, which will render this work, to those to whom the subject appeals, the most
-acceptable, as it is certainly the handsomest, of existing editions.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Weekly Sun.</b>&mdash;“We unhesitatingly commend it as well to the lover of mediævalism as the
-student who must have at hand encyclopædic volumes of reference. No library that aims at being
-comprehensive can afford to be without it. No student of ecclesiastical and cathedral antiquities
-can neglect it if he wishes to make a successful study of his particular subject.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Christian World.</b>&mdash;“The new edition is tastefully got up, and is a worthy setting of a great
-literary enterprise. The ‘Lives of the Saints’ is a human story of unfading interest.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8_2" id="Page_8_2">[8]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i>Works by FRANCIS AIDAN GASQUET, D.D.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">In One Volume, Demy 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price 10s. 6d. Net, pp. 528.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">A New Revised and Corrected Edition of</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">FRANCIS AIDAN GASQUET’S</p>
-
-<p class="title">Henry the Eighth, <span class="smaller">and the</span>
-English monasteries.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Of which Six Editions at 24s. have already been sold.</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>Extracts from Press Notices.</i></p>
-
-<p><b>Athenæum.</b>&mdash;“We may say in brief, if what we have already said is not sufficient to show it,
-that a very important chapter of English history is here treated with a fulness, minuteness, and
-lucidity which will not be found in previous accounts, and we sincerely congratulate Dr. Gasquet on
-having made such an important contribution to English historical literature.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Guardian.</b>&mdash;“A learned, careful, and successful vindication of the personal character of the
-monks.… In Dr. Gasquet’s skilful hands the dissolution of the monasteries assumes the proportions
-of a Greek tragedy.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center">In One Volume, Demy 8vo, 408 Pages, Cloth, price 12s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Old English Bible, <span class="smaller">and other Essays.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>Contents.</i></p>
-
-<table summary="">
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr smaller">CHAP.</td><td></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">I.</td><td>Notes on Mediæval Monastic Libraries.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">II.</td><td>The Monastic Scriptorium.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">III.</td><td>A Forgotten English Preacher.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IV.</td><td>The Pre-Reformation English Bible(1).</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">V.</td><td>The Pre-Reformation English Bible(2).</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VI.</td><td>Religious Instruction in England during the Fourteenth and Fifteenth Centuries.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VII.</td><td>A Royal Christmas in the Fifteenth Century.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VIII.</td><td>The Canterbury Claustral School in the Fifteenth Century.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IX.</td><td>The Note-books of William Worcester, a Fifteenth-Century Antiquary.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">X.</td><td>Hampshire Recusants. With a complete Index.</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center"><i>Some Press Notices.</i></p>
-
-<p><b>Times.</b>&mdash;“Full of the learning and research which Dr. Gasquet has made so peculiarly his own.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Athenæum.</b>&mdash;“Whatever Dr. Gasquet writes is of interest, and thanks are due to him for these
-essays.… Full of rare information, and real contributions to history.”</p>
-
-<p><b>British Review and National Observer.</b>&mdash;“Dr. Gasquet has started a very curious controversy,
-which will entertain even those whom it does not seriously interest, and will familiarise
-them incidentally with many facts of history.… The remaining essays are also rich in quaint,
-curious information.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Scotsman.</b>&mdash;“He has thrown much light on obscure passages and features of later mediæval
-history in our country.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Notes and Queries.</b>&mdash;“Dr. Gasquet writes clearly and forcibly, and when touching on controversial
-points, as he frequently has to do, he manifests a studied moderation, and liberality.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9_2" id="Page_9_2">[9]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i>Cheap Illustrated Edition now Completed in 24 Volumes.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging">Crown 8vo, tastefully bound in Green Cloth, Gilt, in which binding any of the Novels
-may be bought separately, price 3s. 6d. each. Also in Special Cloth Binding, Flat
-Backs, Gilt Tops, supplied in Sets only of 24 Volumes, price £4, 4s.</p>
-
-<p class="title">THE LARGE TYPE BORDER EDITION OF
-THE WAVERLEY NOVELS.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging">Edited with Introductory Essays and Notes to each Novel (supplementing those of
-the Author) by <span class="smcap">Andrew Lang</span>. With 250 Original Illustrations from Drawings
-and Paintings specially executed by eminent Artists.</p>
-
-<p>⁂ This is generally conceded to be the best edition of the Waverley Novels, not only
-as regards editing and illustrations, but also in point of type, printing and paper, and is
-complete in 24 volumes instead of 25 as in other editions.</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>List of the Volumes.</i></p>
-
-<div class="left">
-<ul>
-<li class="hanging">1. Waverley.</li>
-<li class="hanging">2. Guy Mannering.</li>
-<li class="hanging">3. The Antiquary.</li>
-<li class="hanging">4. Rob Roy.</li>
-<li class="hanging">5. Old Mortality.</li>
-<li class="hanging">6. The Heart of Midlothian.</li>
-<li class="hanging">7. A Legend of Montrose, and The Black Dwarf.</li>
-<li class="hanging">8. The Bride of Lammermoor.</li>
-<li class="hanging">9. Ivanhoe.</li>
-<li class="hanging">10. The Monastery.</li>
-<li class="hanging">11. The Abbot.</li>
-<li class="hanging">12. Kenilworth.</li>
-<li class="hanging">13. The Pirate.</li>
-</ul>
-</div>
-
-<div class="right">
-<ul>
-<li class="hanging">14. The Fortunes of Nigel.</li>
-<li class="hanging">15. Peveril of the Peak.</li>
-<li class="hanging">16. Quentin Durward.</li>
-<li class="hanging">17. St. Ronan’s Well.</li>
-<li class="hanging">18. Redgauntlet.</li>
-<li class="hanging">19. The Betrothed, and The Talisman.</li>
-<li class="hanging">20. Woodstock.</li>
-<li class="hanging">21. The Fair Maid of Perth.</li>
-<li class="hanging">22. Anne of Geierstein.</li>
-<li class="hanging">23. Count Robert of Paris, and The Surgeon’s Daughter.</li>
-<li class="hanging">24. Castle Dangerous, Chronicles of the Canongate, &amp;c.</li>
-</ul>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>Some of the Artists contributing to the “Border Edition,”</i></p>
-
-<div class="left">
-<ul>
-<li class="hanging">Sir J. E. Millais, Bart., P.R.A.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Lockhart Bogle.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Gordon Browne.</li>
-<li class="hanging">D. Y. Cameron.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Frank Dadd, R.I.</li>
-<li class="hanging">R. de Los Rios.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Herbert Dicksee.</li>
-<li class="hanging">M. L. Gow, R.I.</li>
-<li class="hanging">W. B. Hole, R.S.A.</li>
-<li class="hanging">John Pettie, R.A.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Sir James D. Linton, P.R.I.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Ad. Lalauze.</li>
-<li class="hanging">J. E. Lauder, R.S.A.</li>
-<li class="hanging">W. Hatherell, R.I.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Sam Bough, R.S.A.</li>
-</ul>
-</div>
-
-<div class="right">
-<ul>
-<li class="hanging">W. E. Lockhart, R.S.A.</li>
-<li class="hanging">R. W. Macbeth, A.R.A.</li>
-<li class="hanging">H. Macbeth-Raeburn.</li>
-<li class="hanging">J. Macwhirter, A.R.A., R.S.A.</li>
-<li class="hanging">W. Q. Orchardson, R.A.</li>
-<li class="hanging">James Orrock, R.I.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Walter Paget.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Sir George Reid, P.R.S.A.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Frank Short.</li>
-<li class="hanging">W. Strang.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Sir Henry Raeburn, R.A., P.R.S.A.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Arthur Hopkins, A.R.W.S.</li>
-<li class="hanging">R. Herdman, R.S.A.</li>
-<li class="hanging">D. Herdman.</li>
-<li class="hanging">Hugh Cameron, R.S.A.</li>
-</ul>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10_2" id="Page_10_2">[10]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="center clearboth"><i>Some Press Notices of the Large Type Border Edition of
-the Waverley Novels.</i></p>
-
-<p><b>The Spectator.</b>&mdash;“We trust that this fine edition of our greatest and most poetical
-of novelists will attain, if it has not already done so, the high popularity it deserves. To
-all Scott’s lovers it is a pleasure to know that, despite the daily and weekly inrush of
-ephemeral fiction, the sale of his works is said by the booksellers to rank next below
-Tennyson’s in poetry, and above that of everybody else in prose.”</p>
-
-<p><b>The Times.</b>&mdash;“It would be difficult to find in these days a more competent and
-sympathetic editor of Scott than his countryman, the brilliant and versatile man of letters
-who has undertaken the task; and if any proof were wanted either of his qualifications
-or of his skill and discretion in displaying them, Mr. Lang has furnished it abundantly
-in his charming Introduction to ‘Waverley.’ The editor’s own notes are judiciously
-sparing, but conspicuously to the point, and they are very discreetly separated from those
-of the author, Mr. Lang’s laudable purpose being to illustrate and explain Scott, not to
-make the notes a pretext for displaying his own critical faculty and literary erudition.
-The illustrations by various competent hands are beautiful in themselves and beautifully
-executed, and, altogether, the ‘Border Edition’ of the Waverley Novels bids fair to
-become the classical edition of the great Scottish classic.”</p>
-
-<p><b>The Athenæum.</b>-“The handsome ‘Border Edition’ has been brought by Mr.
-Nimmo to a successful conclusion. Mr. Nimmo deserves to be complimented on the
-manner in which the Edition has been printed and illustrated, and Mr. Lang on the way
-in which he has performed his portion of the work. His Introductions have been
-tasteful and readable; he has not overdone his part; and, while he has supplied much
-useful information, he has by no means overburdened the volumes with notes.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Notes and Queries.</b>&mdash;“Mr. Nimmo’s spirited and ambitious enterprise has been
-conducted to a safe termination, and the most ideal edition of the Waverley Novels in
-existence is now completed.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Saturday Review.</b>&mdash;“Of all the many collections of the Waverley Novels, Mr.
-Nimmo’s ‘Border Edition’ is incomparably the most handsome and the most desirable.…
-Type, paper, illustrations are altogether admirable.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Daily Chronicle.</b>&mdash;“There is absolutely no fault to be found with it, as to paper,
-type, or arrangement.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Magazine of Art.</b>&mdash;“Size, type, paper, and printing, to say nothing of the excessively
-liberal and charming introduction or of the illustrations, make this perhaps the most
-desirable edition of Scott ever issued on this side of the border.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="title"><span class="smaller">Two-Volume edition of</span><br />
-The Border Waverley.</p>
-
-<p class="center">In 48 Volumes, Large Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with the 250 Etchings printed on
-Japanese Paper, price 6s. per Volume.</p>
-
-<p>Purchasers of this beautiful edition are recommended to complete their sets at
-once, as many of the Volumes are out of print, and those still remaining will
-soon be.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11_2" id="Page_11_2">[11]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i>Two Important Ornithological Works by Henry Seebohm.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">THE STANDARD WORK ON BRITISH BIRDS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">In Four Volumes, Royal 8vo, Cloth, with numerous Wood Engravings and Sixty-eight
-Coloured Plates, price £6, 6s., now £5, 5s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">A History or British Birds.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging">To which is added the Author’s Notes on their Classification and Geographical Distribution;
-also Sixty-eight Coloured Plates of their Eggs. By <span class="smcap">Henry Seebohm</span>, Author
-of “Siberia in Europe,” “Siberia in Asia,” &amp;c. &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p><b>Saturday Review.</b>&mdash;“The illustrations are as nearly perfect as the most careful colour-printing
-can produce, rivalling&mdash;and it is no slight praise&mdash;the admirable egg-pictures of Hewitson, some of
-which might almost have been executed by hand; and the book is written in an easy, pleasant style,
-redolent of the field rather than of the study.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Zoologist.</b>&mdash;“The text contains not only a description of each egg and its varieties, but also a
-very full account of the life-history of each bird.… If we may conceive the works of Yarrell and
-Hewitson rolled into one, with corrections, emendations, and important additions, and with woodcuts
-as well as coloured plates, such a work is Mr. Seebohm’s.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Nature.</b>&mdash;“We unhesitatingly express our opinion that since the time of Macgillivray no such
-original book as Mr. Seebohm’s has been published on British ornithology; we think that the figures
-of the eggs are by far the best that have yet been given.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center">In One Volume, 4to, Cloth, with numerous Wood Engravings and Twenty-one Plates
-of Birds, Coloured by Hand, price £5, 5s., now £2, 12s. 6d. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>ONLY FIVE HUNDRED COPIES PRINTED.</i></p>
-
-<p class="title">The Geographical Distribution or the Charadriidæ;<br />
-<span class="smaller">Or, The Plovers, Sandpipers, Snipes, and their Allies.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Henry Seebohm</span>, Author of “Siberia in Europe,” “Siberia in Asia,” “A History
-of British Birds, with Coloured Illustrations of their Eggs,” &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p><b>Nature.</b>&mdash;“This is a handsome volume of more than 500 pages, and is illustrated by twenty-one
-coloured plates, drawn in Mr. Keulemans’s best style. The book is profusely illustrated by woodcuts,
-showing the specific characters of the different species, and these will be invaluable to the student of
-these difficult birds. In fact, no work has ever been so remarkably treated in this respect, and it will
-be the book of reference for the <i>Charadriidæ</i> for many years to come.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center">One Volume, Super-royal 8vo, Cloth, with Two Photogravure Plates, One Plate in
-Colour, and Fifty-nine other Illustrations, price 7s. 6d. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">Fern Growing:<br />
-<span class="smaller">Fifty Years’ Experience in Crossing and Cultivation.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">With a List of the most important Varieties and a History of the Discovery of Multiple
-Parentage. By <span class="smcap">E. J. Lowe</span>, F.R.S., F.L.S.</p>
-
-<p><b>Athenæum.</b>&mdash;“In some respects the most important treatise on British ferns that has hitherto
-appeared.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center">Third Edition, with Seventy-four Coloured Plates, Super-royal 8vo, Cloth, price
-£1, 1s.; now 10s. 6d. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">A Natural History or British Grasses.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">E. J. Lowe</span>, F.R.S., F.L.S., &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Note.</span>&mdash;This is a work not only valuable to the botanical student for its pictorial
-accuracy, but of use also to the landed proprietor and the farmer, pointing out to them
-those grasses which are useful and lucrative in husbandry, and teaching them the varied
-soils and positions upon which they thrive, and explaining their qualities and the several
-uses to which they are applied in many branches of manufacture and industry.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12_2" id="Page_12_2">[12]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i>Rev. F. O. Morris’s Popular Works on Natural History.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">ISSUE OF NEW AND REVISED EDITIONS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Fourth Edition, Six Volumes, Super-royal 8vo, Cloth, with 394 Plates Coloured by Hand,
-price £4, 10s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">A History of British Birds.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By the Rev. <span class="smcap">F. O. Morris</span>, B.A.</p>
-
-<p><b>Times.</b>&mdash;“The protecting landowner, the village naturalist, the cockney ‘oologist,’ and the
-schoolboy all alike owe a debt to the Rev. F. O. Morris’s admirable work, in six volumes, on British
-birds, with its beautiful hand-painted plates.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center">Fourth Edition, Three Volumes, Super-royal 8vo, Cloth, with 248 Coloured Plates,
-price £2, 5s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">A Natural History of the Nests and Eggs of
-British Birds.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging">By the Rev. <span class="smcap">F. O. Morris</span>, B.A. Entirely Revised and brought up to Date by <span class="smcap">W. B.
-Tegetmeier</span>, F.Z.S., Member of the British Ornithologists’ Union, with 248 Plates
-chiefly Coloured by Hand.</p>
-
-<p><b>Times.</b>&mdash;“These latter (illustrations) are excellent, and indeed are the strength of this very handsome
-book, which, in its new and more accurate form, ought to find a place in many a library.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center">Eighth Edition, Super-royal 8vo, Cloth, with Seventy-nine Plates Coloured by Hand,
-price 15s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">A History of British Butterflies.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By the Rev. <span class="smcap">F. O. Morris</span>, B.A.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center">Fourth Edition, Four Volumes, Royal 8vo, with 132 Plates (1933 Figures), all Coloured
-by Hand, price £3, 3s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">A Natural History of British Moths.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By the Rev. <span class="smcap">F. O. Morris</span>, B.A. With 132 Plates Coloured by Hand (1933 Figures),
-and an Introduction by <span class="smcap">W. Egmont Kirby</span>, M.D.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center">In Two Volumes, Super-royal 8vo, Cloth, £1, 10s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">British Game Birds and Wild Fowl.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Beverley R. Morris</span>, M.D. Entirely Revised and brought up to Date by <span class="smcap">W. B.
-Tegetmeier</span>, F.Z.S. With Sixty Large Plates all Coloured by Hand.</p>
-
-<p><b>Daily News.</b>&mdash;“Has held a unique position among works of its class. The sixty hand-coloured
-plates are splendidly executed.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center">One Volume, Large Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price 5s.</p>
-
-<p class="title">Francis Orpen Morris.<br />
-<span class="smaller">A memoir of the above-mentioned Author.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">By his Son, the Rev. <span class="smcap">M. C. F. Morris</span>, B.C.L., M.A., Rector of Nunburnholme,
-Yorkshire. With Portrait and Two Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p><b>Land and Water.</b>&mdash;“This very interesting memoir of the naturalist, whose works are perhaps
-better known among the ‘rising generation’ than those of any other authority, … gives a remarkably
-clear and distinct picture of the late Mr. F. O. Morris.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Yorkshire Post.</b>&mdash;“A book so conscientiously written as to rank well among biographies.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13_2" id="Page_13_2">[13]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="hanging">In Two Volumes, Large 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, price £1, 10s. Net. With Thirty-seven
-Illustrations, including Three hitherto unpublished Bird Drawings and
-Ten Portraits of Audubon.</p>
-
-<p class="title">Audubon, and His Journals.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Maria R. Audubon</span>. With Notes by <span class="smcap">Elliott Coues</span>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Contents.</span>&mdash;Audubon: A Biography. The European Journals, 1826-29. The
-Labrador Journal, 1833. The Missouri River Journal, 1843. The Episodes. With a
-full Index.</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Note.</span>&mdash;To English people the name of Audubon is a familiar and respected one,
-and there is little reason to doubt that the present work, forming as it does so handsome
-a monument of his life’s work, should be acceptable both to the lover of good books and
-to the naturalist. The former has the attraction of Audubon’s picturesque and engaging
-English style, added to reminiscences and narratives of a diverse and fascinating character,
-and a highly interesting biography of Audubon from the pen of his granddaughter.
-The naturalist, on the other hand, has here for the first time the complete and carefully
-edited text of Audubon’s valuable journals, supplemented by appropriate and interesting
-notes by so eminent a zoologist as Dr. Elliott Coues. The entire publication is virtually
-new, since even the European journals are here much amplified, while the Missouri and
-Labrador journals are practically unpublished, and the “Episodes” have never before
-appeared collectively except in a French translation. The work is one of the widest
-interest, and must at once take its place as the authoritative biography of Audubon, as
-well as the first adequate presentation of his journals, which in their now complete form
-give “the man instead of the death mask.”</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p><b>Times.</b>&mdash;“Audubon’s unpublished manuscripts are the record of a long, a varied,
-and an adventurous life, passed in unremitting activity and indefatigable industry. We
-must say at once that for the most part they are fascinating. They are sensational, instructive,
-and frankly autobiographical, and they show a many-sided man in his various
-aspects, with the absolute unreserve of innocent egoism.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Saturday Review.</b>&mdash;“There is much that will interest readers of vastly different
-tastes. Thus the European journals in the first volume have an interest that is chiefly
-personal, and we get interesting scraps of conversation with Sir Walter Scott, Jeffrey,
-Wilson, Lord Stanley, Cuvier, St. Hilaire, Selby, Constant, Gerard, Jardine, and Bewick,
-as well as many other notables in the science, art, and literature of Edinburgh, London,
-and Paris in the late twenties.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Spectator.</b>&mdash;“The two volumes present the life of the great French-American naturalist
-in a most attractive form. The journal of his voyage up the Missouri is now first given
-to the world, and the freshness of his life in the woods and of his own charming personality
-is not marred by any unwise editing or comment. The illustrations are excellent, worthy
-of a work dealing with the life of the man who used the instruction received from the
-revolutionary painter David in his youth to make the greatest advance in the illustration
-of nature ever achieved by one man.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Scotsman.</b>&mdash;“A worthy and enduring memorial has been raised to the great American
-ornithologist in the two volumes prepared by his granddaughter. Miss Audubon’s work
-has been admirably done; and the worth of the book is much enhanced by the zoological
-and other notes which Dr. Coues has appended.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14_2" id="Page_14_2">[14]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i>New Work on English Monastic History.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">In Two Volumes, Demy 8vo, Cloth, price 21s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title"><span class="smaller">The</span><br />
-English Black Monks of St. Benedict<br />
-<span class="smaller">A Sketch of their History from the coming of St. Augustine
-to the Present Day.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">By the Rev. <span class="smcap">Ethelred L. Taunton</span>.</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>Some Press Notices.</i></p>
-
-<p><b>Saturday Review.</b>&mdash;“On the whole, it would be difficult within the limits that the
-author has set for himself to write a more interesting book. We recommend, more
-especially to the general reader, the three chapters on the life of a monk in the world and
-in his monastery, and that describing the life of women under the rule.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Literature.</b>&mdash;“We are struck with the skill with which he has mastered the details
-of a somewhat complicated story, and the clear way he has set it down for the benefit of
-his readers.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Record.</b>&mdash;“We must add a word to express our sense of the interest and value of
-the appendix to Volume I., which is a translation of the Consuetudinary of the monks
-of St. Augustine’s, Canterbury. It is a real help to understanding the ways and works,
-the helps and the temptations, of the monks.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Bookman.</b>&mdash;“Much idle legend has been dissipated by Mr. Taunton’s researches,
-many points left dark are now cleared up, and in the perplexed quarrellings which ruined
-the prospects of Catholicism at the close of the reign of Elizabeth, as under James I. and
-Charles I., the historian holds a balance which does not waver.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center">Two Volumes, Extra Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with 120 Coloured Plates,
-price 15s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Flora of the Alps.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging">Being a Description of all the Species of Flowering Plants indigenous to Switzerland,
-and of the Alpine Species of the adjacent mountain districts of France, Italy,
-and Austria, including the Pyrenees. By <span class="smcap">Alfred W. Bennett</span>, M.A., B.Sc.,
-F.L.S., Lecturer on Botany at St. Thomas’s Hospital.</p>
-
-<p><b>Times.</b>&mdash;“Meets a want which has long been felt by English travellers of a complete
-illustrated guide to all the flowers which are indigenous to Switzerland.… The illustrations
-are numerous and accurate.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Standard.</b>&mdash;“Mr. Bennett gives an adequate description, and one which is both clear
-and exact, of all the species of flowering plants common to Switzerland.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Spectator.</b>&mdash;“These two volumes will form comprehensive and delightful companions
-to every traveller.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Daily News.</b>&mdash;“The letterpress is excellent, as, indeed, we should have expected from
-so high an authority; the plates are likely to be of great service to the traveller, and with
-their aid he will be able to identify most of the flowers he may find among the mountains.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Land and Water.</b>&mdash;“These very beautifully illustrated volumes will be welcomed by
-the numberless people whose summer holiday is spent in Switzerland or the Alpine districts.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15_2" id="Page_15_2">[15]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center">Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with Portrait and Eighty-one Engravings, price 5s.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Complete Angler<br />
-of Izaak Walton and Charles Cotton.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Edited by <span class="smcap">John Major</span>.</p>
-
-<p><b>Scotsman.</b>&mdash;“There are all sorts of editions of the fisher’s classic; but this will appeal most
-strongly to the man whose affections attach themselves with an equal tenacity to a good day’s fishing
-and a good book.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Bookman.</b>&mdash;“In Creswick’s engravings and all the other pictures&mdash;‘embellishments’ they are
-called in the language of the forties when Major brought out his edition&mdash;will lie the chief interest
-and charm. They alone would make Major’s edition one of the very best to possess.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Glasgow Herald.</b>&mdash;“As good an edition of the angler’s classic as any one need wish to have.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Liverpool Post.</b>&mdash;“In these days of processed-blocks it is indeed refreshing to come upon wood
-engravings such as the tailpieces to the different chapters.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i>By the Author of “Handley Cross,” &amp;c.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">Demy 8vo, 520 Pages, Twelve Full-Page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Wildrake</span>, <span class="smcap">Heath</span>,
-<span class="smcap">Jellicoe</span>, Coloured by Hand, 10s. 6d. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">Hillingdon Hall; or, The Cockney Squire.</p>
-
-<p class="center">A Tale of Country Life. By <span class="smcap">R. S. Surtees</span>, Author of “Handley Cross,”
-“Jorrocks’s Jaunts and Jollities,” &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p><b>Saturday Review.</b>&mdash;“Mr. Jorrocks is one of those evergreens whom age cannot wither nor
-modern culture stale. ‘Handley Cross’ certainly used to be, and probably is still, the delight of
-every well-constituted schoolboy; while the somewhat soberer ‘Hillingdon Hall’ should have considerable
-interest for country folk at the present day, both as a picture of life in the early days of
-Queen Victoria, and as containing several eloquent dissertations by the hero and others on the effect
-of the abolition of the Corn-laws upon the agricultural interest.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center">ILLUSTRATED BY WILLIAM STRANG, R.P.E.</p>
-
-<p class="center">One Volume, Small 4to, Cloth, Gilt Edges, price 10s. 6d. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Pilgrim’s Progress.</p>
-
-<p class="center">With Fourteen Plates, Designed and Etched by <span class="smcap">William Strang</span>, R.P.E.
-(Illustrator of Milton’s “Paradise Lost”).</p>
-
-<p><b>Times.</b>&mdash;“A sumptuous edition, illustrated by Mr. Strang with great artistic power.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i>New Work on the Yiddish Dialect.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">One Volume, Extra Crown 8vo, Cloth. Gilt Top, price 9s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The History of Yiddish Literature<br />
-in the Nineteenth Century.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By LEO WIENER</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">Instructor in the Slavic Languages at Harvard University.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16_2" id="Page_16_2">[16]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="center intro"><i>Works by the late John Addington Symonds.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">Third Edition, in Two Volumes, Extra Crown 8vo, with Fifty Illustrations, bound in
-Cloth, Gilt Top, price 12s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Life of Michelangelo Buonarotti.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Based on Studies in the Archives of the Buonarotti Family at Florence. With
-Portrait and Fifty Reproductions of the Works of the Master.</p>
-
-<p><b>Times.</b>&mdash;“It is not, perhaps, too much to say, that this biography supersedes, for many
-purposes, any work in the English language.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center">Fifth Edition, One Volume, Large Crown 8vo, Cloth, Gilt Top, with Mezzotint
-Portrait and Sixteen Illustrations of Cellini’s works, price 7s. 6d.</p>
-
-<p class="title">The Life of Benvenuto Cellini.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Translated by <span class="smcap">John Addington Symonds</span>.</p>
-
-<p><b>Athenæum.</b>&mdash;“Among the best translations in the English language.”</p>
-
-<p><b>Saturday Review.</b>&mdash;“None can surpass the Florentine goldsmith and sculptor in the dramatic
-vigour of his narrative, and in the unblushing faithfulness of his confessions.… Among the best
-translations that have ever been made into English.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center">Second Edition, One Volume, Demy 8vo, Illustrated, price 5s. Net.</p>
-
-<p class="title">Walt Whitman. A Study.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">John Addington Symonds</span>. With Portrait and Four Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p><b>National Observer.</b>&mdash;“There is no better interpreter than Mr. Symonds is, no better guide to
-learning than this book.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="advert">
-
-<p class="hanging">New Copyright Edition published by arrangement with <span class="smcap">Macmillan &amp; Co., Ltd.</span>
-Fourteen Volumes, Demy 8vo, Illustrated with 112 Etchings and Photogravure Plates
-printed on Japan paper, the text on a clear, soft, deckle-edge laid paper. Cloth
-elegant, price £6, 6s. Net per Set.</p>
-
-<p class="title">French Memoirs by Lady Jackson.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging"><span class="smcap">The Works of Catherine Charlotte, Lady Jackson</span>, “Old Paris:
-Its Court and Literary Salons,” 2 vols. “The Old Regime: Court,
-Salons, and Theatres,” 2 vols. “The Court of France in the Sixteenth
-Century, 1514-1559,” 2 vols. “The Last of the Valois, and Accession
-of Henry of Navarre, 1559-1589,” 2 vols. “The First of the Bourbons,
-1589-1595,” 2 vols. “The French Court and Society: Reign of Louis
-XVI. and First Empire,” 2 vols. “The Court of the Tuileries, from the
-Restoration to the Flight of Louis Philippe,” 2 vols.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Eve of the Reformation, by
-Francis Aidan Gasquet
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE EVE OF THE REFORMATION ***
-
-***** This file should be named 50328-h.htm or 50328-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/0/3/2/50328/
-
-Produced by Clarity and the Online Distributed Proofreading
-Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from
-images generously made available by The Internet
-Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/50328-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/50328-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ad6501a..0000000
--- a/old/50328-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ